//-------------------------------------------------------// The Warehouse -by Caladis- //-------------------------------------------------------// //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 1 - Logistical Start //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 1 - Logistical Start After having graduated from Princess Celestia’s School for Gifted Unicorns, Twilight Sparkle decided that she needed a new challenge. As such, Twilight started working on post-graduate education to become a government official, likely serving in Celestia’s Royal Court, much like her father served the royal court. In hindsight, it would be nice to serve alongside him. While Twilight cherished her time with Princess Celestia, she was acutely aware of the princess's responsibilities ruling Equestria and sought ways to ease her burden without imposing. While being Princess Celestia's personal student had been the pinnacle of her achievements, Twilight recognized the need to evolve beyond that role, even as she strived to maintain her relevance. Twilight eagerly embraced the opportunity to oversee the Summer Sun Celebration preparations, relishing the chance to contribute meaningfully to Equestria's governance as a prelude to joining official civil service. Becoming the Element of Magic wasn’t something that she had planned on and living in Ponyville after saving Princess Luna from the darkness of Nightmare Moon was interesting. Though Twilight treasured her new friendships, the weekly friendship reports to Princess Celestia began to feel more like a tedious obligation than a meaningful exercise, despite fulfilling the princess's request. As days turned into weeks, Twilight found herself adapting to the rhythms and quirks of Ponyville life. Between running the library and working closely with Mayor Mare to ensure the town was running smoothly, she also had to contend with Spike’s infatuation with Rarity, Rainbow Dash’s pranks and Pinkie Pie’s parties. In contrast, Fluttershy's animal care and Applejack's orchard management provided a grounding counterpoint to the town's more eccentric elements, which explained why Twilight spent so much time helping them with their work when she could. Twilight's efforts in solving friendship problems proved crucial, particularly when she helped dispel the town's suspicions about Zecora, fostering understanding and bringing a measure of calm to the often-chaotic Ponyville. Twilight savored this period of relative calm, finding solace in her books and tea, a welcome respite from the constant crises that had previously defined her days. That calm didn’t last long as a short time later, a magical portal to a place called ‘Earth’ was discovered in the Everfree Forest by Zecora and a lot of ponies were scared when Zecora brought the equally scared human to meet Twilight for the first time. The humans towered over ponies, had omnivorous diets, and possessed strength that could be intimidating, yet this particular human appeared friendly and unarmed, offering a glimmer of hope for peaceful relations. Recognizing the gravity of the situation yet uncertain of her own authority, Twilight deferred to Princess Celestia's wisdom and experience in handling the matter. It took a little magical experimentation with the portal and about a year to work out the details, but a treaty was worked out between Equestria and the nations of Earth. When Princess Celestia asked for volunteers to go to Earth as part of an Equestrian Worker Exchange program, sometimes called the EWE, letting humans into Equestria and ponies onto Earth to work, learn new skills and learn the culture, Twilight jumped at the chance with Princess Celestia’s and her parents’ permission. While initially elated to be granted permission, Twilight felt a pang of loneliness realizing none of her friends shared her eagerness for the journey. She consoled herself with the knowledge that it was only a six-month assignment. She had to hope that she would be able to make new friends. After having gained permission, Twilight was thoroughly briefed on what to expect from the experts that helped write the treaty. Going through the portal was a little unpredictable, given that while the Equestrian side always exited into the Everfree Forest, the portal to Earth seemed to exit almost at random in ten different places. Given the logistics of letting ponies work on Earth to learn the human culture and gain human job experience, it was decided in advance that wherever the portal sent you, that was where you worked, though that dashed the dreams of a lot of ponies that wanted to live in a particular part of Earth. In Twilight’s case, she had arrived on Earth on the North American continent, in the nation of the United States of America, in the southern state of Texas. She knew that America was a constitutional republic with elected officials, but it almost seemed like everything was divided into smaller and smaller jurisdictions to allow for more people to run for and hold elected office. The complex layers of human governance struck Twilight as potentially inefficient and ripe for corruption, not unlike the noble circles in Equestria. However, she reminded herself that her mission was to observe and learn, not to judge, hoping to glean insights that could benefit Equestria in the future. The human French Revolution’s execution of nobles was unsettling for most of the upper class in Equestria… and they seemed to take notice while trying to learn more. The towering skyscrapers and endless stretches of asphalt overwhelmed Twilight's senses; a stark contrast to the quaint, organic architecture of Equestria. Even Manehatten couldn’t compare to Houston, Dallas or Austin. The heat and humidity of a Texas summer was also very different than the summers in Equestria. While Equestria's climate was generally mild, the Texas heat and humidity were oppressive, especially for a fur-covered pony unused to such extreme conditions. Twilight was given a week to acclimate to the area, complete with free room and board, while the EWE was trying to find her a job and she was given $2,000 American Dollars to start her new life with. The other ponies she had arrived with were given the same amount. The other mares seemed willing to pair up and combine their resources with each other, but Twilight was determined to make it on her own. She had already left behind Spike and all her friends, and she wasn’t here to make friends with the other pony workers; she needed to make human friends. Examining the unfamiliar currency, Twilight could only hope that the sum would suffice until she received her first paycheck, acutely aware of the economic differences between Equestria and her new temporary home. Earth's wage system puzzled Twilight. Whether paid hourly or annually, employees typically worked for two weeks before receiving payment on the third Friday, followed by biweekly pay thereafter. Only a few companies paid weekly, but that was still different than Equestria. In Equestria, workers received daily wages, making Earth's biweekly pay schedule feel alien to Twilight. Budgeting for two weeks at a time seemed like a daunting challenge. She did put her time to good use. She started by doing research into renting an apartment for a 6-month period, which she found out was almost impossible to do because most apartment leases were for a full year. Even when she could get them to give her a 6-month lease, the cheapest apartment she found in the area was $850 dollars per month, with the first month and last month rent due at signing, along with a pet deposit of 250 dollars, which they wouldn’t waive because she was a pony and the fur would be hard to get out the carpet after she moved out. When she pointed out the morality of charging her extra and treating her like a pet when she was a sapient race the same as them, they simply shrugged and replied that American Federal Law hadn’t yet been updated to force landlords to treat the Equestrian ponies to the same standards as humans. Legally, the argument was sound, but it was morally questionable and could be eventually challenged in court. While she liked fighting a good fight, Twilight didn’t feel like it was her place to help challenge or change Earth’s laws. Right, wrong, or indifferent, she was a guest of Earth, and she had to live within the rules of the current society. The overall encounter, however, made Twilight reflect on the warnings she'd heard about human prejudices, wondering if there was more truth to them than she'd initially believed. If she had agreed to that deal, it would take nearly all the 2,000 dollars the EWE gave her to start with. She was starting to realize that the other mares pairing up weren’t for safety in numbers or even for friendship; it was impossible to afford the cost of living alone here. Reflecting on her pre-arrival briefings, Twilight realized nopony had warned her about Earth's living costs, though she acknowledged these would vary by location, much like in Equestria. Ponyville was a lot cheaper than Canterlot or Manehatten and it had to be similar on Earth. From her research, she knew that Tokyo was more expensive than Houston, although a lot of ponies seemed to want to live in Tokyo because the anime coplayers made ponies feel more welcome into human culture. Her research instead turned to renting a hotel for 3 weeks, looking at a concept called a ‘weekly rate.’ To her shock, even with a weekly rate discount, a hotel was even more expensive than renting an apartment, even with the pet deposit. While the rates varied by the quality of the hotel, the price ranged from the cheapest being about 350 dollars a week to the most expensive being over 1,000 dollars per week. The cheapest one was a valid option, but it wasn’t in a very safe area according to the reviews and she still had no idea how the average human would treat an Equestrian pony. At least she could pay weekly and wasn’t required to pay for all 3 weeks all up front in case something came up. That would give her more money for food, but she was confronted by the fact that vegetarian meals and other ‘healthy options’ seemed to cost more. Hay wasn’t readily available unless she went to a feed store for animals, like Tractor Supply, though Wal-Mart had oats and grains in a variety of flavors that tasted good. Flavored oatmeal quickly became her favorite breakfast option given that it was both cheap and healthy. Transportation posed another challenge for Twilight. Unless she could teleport to work, she'd need to hire rides, with taxis being the safest but most expensive option due to their licensing. The prevalence of crime reports made Twilight wary of ride-sharing services, like Uber and Lyft, and the prospect of using her magic defensively, potentially causing harm, filled her with dread. How did humans live like this? The week went by quickly while she reviewed all her options, and she came to conclusion that she would have to go to work that first Monday and then wing it. As the week drew to a close, Twilight found herself the sole remaining pony awaiting job placement at the EWE office, a situation ripe with both opportunity and uncertainty. Twilight steeled herself for a tough negotiation, but she knew she would only have one chance to get this right… * * * Twilight The male EWE placement agent smiled at me. “Good morning and happy Friday. I am pleased to tell you that we do have a job lined up for you starting Monday morning. The agency will get you transportation to the job site and then after work, you’re on your own. If you lose the job or can’t handle it, the agency can get you placed elsewhere but we won’t be able to provide room and board while you are unemployed. Any questions?” I nodded. “Just a few. Are we expecting any more ponies to show up? It would be cheaper for me short-term if I had a roommate.” The placement worker shook his head. He seemed unsurprised about my request for a possible roommate. “I knew that there would be a problem with having an odd number of ponies arriving in this group, but the short answer is no. No more ponies are coming here until your group leaves in six months. Also, you can’t go back early because learning how humans live and learning to adapt to our culture and society is part of why you’re here.” Suppressing a sigh, I shrugged. “So, what’s the job?” He placed a sheet of paper in front of me. “Pipeline Express needs order pickers. It’s blue-collar work in a non-climate-controlled warehouse environment but it is literally the only thing we could find for a unicorn at this time.” A bead of sweat rolled down my forehead at the mere thought of working in a non-climate-controlled environment in Texas. Yes, Equestria didn’t have air conditioning, but it also wasn’t 100 degrees with a ‘feels like’ temperature of 110 degrees, in the shade. I cleared my throat. “I have the Equestrian equivalent of a bachelor’s degree and I’m almost done with the Equestrian equivalent of a master’s degree. I should be doing sales, clerical work or management… I don’t remember agreeing to do blue collar work in my placement contract. I was promised a human job that took my education and experience into account. My most recent job was as a librarian.” He nodded, having been at least partly briefed. “Pipeline Express will give you a sales job in a few weeks, but you must start as an order picker to learn the products. I promise that you don’t know anything about the American oil and gas industry. Don’t worry, the office spaces for the sales team are climate controlled once you know enough to sell the products.” I pursed my lips and conceded the point. “I suppose that makes sense. I can’t sell items that I know nothing about. Very well… I am willing to work as an order picker for one month to learn the products but I want the sales job guaranteed in writing with a breach of contract clause written in that states that Pipeline Express will owe me a full five months of pay in a lump sum at the higher salespony pay rate if they fail to provide the agreed upon job with full knowledge that I would be quitting to pursue other work if they can’t be bothered to honor their agreements.” He mumbled as he drew up the modified contract. “You really are well educated, huh.” I snorted. “I am the personal student of Princess Celestia herself and my father is a member of the Canterlot Royal Court. I did not come here uninformed, and you better believe that the Princess and my father will be receiving weekly updates on my progress in learning human culture. I would hate for a negative report to negatively impact the relationship between our peoples.” It was his turn to sweat as he looked up slowly to meet my eyes. “I wasn’t aware that you had direct ties to the Equestrian government…” I glared at him. “I was fully briefed; I don’t see how you weren’t. As the Princesses personal student, I’m as close to being the heir to the throne of Equestria as any non-alicorn could ever be. The princess doesn’t have foals of her own and I always got the impression that she treated me as she would have treated her own daughter, had the princess had one. Such was the perk of being her most faithful student.” He shifted uncomfortably. “I see. Are you concerned about the nature of the work we're offering?” I shook my head, trying to maintain control but not scare him. “No, I am not a noble. My family is upper middle class, with my father working as a civil servant and my mother being a published writer, although my older brother is a high-ranking member of the Equestrian military. I do know how to get my hooves dirty; I just don’t do it so often. While I'm eager to learn, I also seek a position that aligns with my qualifications and potential for growth. Like I said, I am willing to start as an order picker, at the entry level, but the company had better be willing to honor the contract or there will be trouble.” He nodded as he finished drawing up the contract. “I’ll be sure to make sure they know all of that.” I snorted. “You say that as if they wouldn’t read the contract.” The agent winced while putting final touches on the contract. “Ironically, the average human doesn’t read the contracts that they sign. Most contracts are only read word by word by lawyers and paralegals.” My brow creased in a frown as I clicked my tongue once. “That sounds dangerous.” He nodded as he got to the last line. “Humans can be lazy or stupid. Reading a basic contract is easy but you’d be surprised by how many people can’t be bothered to take the 5 minutes to make sure that they aren’t being screwed over.” He slid the contract over to me and I read every word and made a few changes. Specifically, I added that I wanted full compensation for any work I did with magic that would be otherwise impossible without magic, paid in addition to and outside of my hourly rate or salary, and slid it back. He grunted when he read the new conditions, not bothering to dispute that such a thing was possible, since other unicorns had already proven it possible. While he retyped the contract so that the changes I made were included, I asked him a question. “What else can you tell me about Pipeline Express?” He sighed. “Pipeline Express is owned and operated by a Fortune 500 company but is managed as a separate company. With less than 500 total employees nationwide, Pipeline Express offers Fortune 500 benefits with a smaller and more family oriented ‘Mom and Pop’ small business management style. It is a hard job though. They go through a lot of temps, but the core of the business is a small group of seasoned employees that have worked there for years. The local location has approximately nine order pickers plus however many temps are currently there, the warehouse coordinator, about five sales reps, the sales manager, transportation manager, warehouse manager and the corporate regional manager has his office at this location, marking it as a very important location for customer service. The regional manager, Allen, manages 5 of the company’s 10 locations, making him a very high-ranking member of the corporate management. However, all Fortune 500 companies and their subsidiary companies have agreed to participate in the Equestrian Worker Exchange program in exchange for tax breaks and they are bound by the contract that we are currently negotiating, even though they won’t be directly signing it, as I am acting as their agent. They need you more than you need them, which is at least part of how you can negotiate your contract terms instead of a take it or leave it offer like most humans get.” He gave me the final draft only to be exasperated by me reading it again. I giggled. “Just making sure that all my changes made it into the final draft. I firmly believe in the expression of ‘Trust but verify.’ In all honesty, the EWE contract states that you have to provide me with room and board until my first job placement. I could have flat refused this job and your hooves, no… hands, would have been tied. You’re lucky that I want new experiences.” He nodded as he watched me sign it, and he signed it himself, making me three copies to keep as I had requested. His curiosity got the better of him. “Why did you want three copies?” I hummed. “Insurance. I’m going to send one copy to my father, one copy to Princess Celestia and I’m keeping a copy for myself. I also expect you to keep a copy in my EWE file here at the office. I want to believe that humans aren’t that bad, but I’ve watched your news channels. Either there is a lot of crime here or that’s the only thing that the news cares to report. I’ve seen very few things about this area that I like so far. At least with more than one copy of my signed contract, nopony can claim that it got lost or that the terms aren’t being met. I will hold Pipeline Express accountable for what we both signed and if you know they won’t hold up their end of this agreement, then you had better keep looking for replacement employment for me. I don’t want to be unemployed for long even with five months of pay as a lump sum payout.” He handed me some additional forms. “You’re going to need these forms to file a compensation claim for work done with magic that would normally be impossible without magic, per your contract. You will need a manager to sign off on approving anything that you try to claim so keep your magical acrobatics reasonable.” I didn’t comment on his advice as he walked me out of his office. He continued to speak. “I can respect that you have a plan, and that you seem to know how to take care of yourself. I will do my part to hold up my end of this agreement.” Though skeptical of the agent's assurances, I recognized that I had little choice but to proceed with cautious optimism. With nothing else to say, I left, and I had to hope for the best. * * * Monday morning was the worst time of day on the worst day of the week for Tim. He had worked for Pipeline Express for two years although it had felt like a lifetime. At 27 years old, he could handle the back-breaking work and having lived in Texas his entire life, other than a brief stint in the military, he could handle the heat. Tim’s desperation to provide for his family, coupled with his lack of time and resources for further education, had inadvertently made him an ideal employee for the demanding job. Blue collar for life, though he wasn’t proud of that fact. Tim's daily routine of dropping his daughter at school before work, knowing she'd spend her after-school hours in daycare until he could retrieve her, weighed heavily on his conscience. He wished that he had more help taking care of his daughter, but his situation didn’t allow for a lot of chances to date, not that he was sure he was ready yet after the recent death of his wife. It had been a little over a year, but the wound was still too fresh. He still needed time to heal but his daughter needed a mother. Her needs would always come before his. Monday was also the hardest day of the week because a lot of the bigger clients tended to order all the 55-gallon drums they needed for the entire week on Monday. The drums weighed between 20 pounds each for the thinner walled plastic drums and up to 65 pounds each for the thinker walled steel drums. Rolling 208 drums to palletize eight drums to a pallet for a full truck of 26 pallets could take a worker over two hours if they were stuck doing it alone. Nobody liked having to do it alone but sometimes we didn’t have a choice. Daily, the company shipped seven full 53-foot trailers and three 26-foot bobtail trucks of assorted products, sometimes more if drivers made double trips. This required emptying at least seven trailers each day to prepare for the next shift's loading. On a good day, we could unload pallets of pails. On bad days, it was rolling and palletizing drums. We weren’t lucky enough to have a lot of good days and the temps usually got stuck with unloading and palletizing the drums. Rolling drums for a whole 8 hours was the hardest job we had at our location and the management wondered why the temps kept quitting. It wasn’t rocket science; it was a shitty job. The products we sold ranged from pallets of 1-gallon pails, plastic and steel all the way up to 13-gallon pails, plastic and steel. Drums of all types and sizes from 20-gallon drums all the way up to 85-gallon drums plus 275- and 330-gallon totes. In addition to oil and gas supplies, we also carried restaurant and medical grade containers. Having that level of product diversification prevented a slowdown and kept us busy. Even on a slow day, we didn’t work less than 8 hours. Heavy days could last a full 12 hours or longer, but we couldn’t leave until all the orders were pulled and all the trucks were loaded. As we used to say in the military, the only easy day was yesterday. The company was growing and despite as heavy as our workload was, there just wasn’t enough justification to build another location in Texas. One location in Houston and one location in Dallas served the entire state. A new location opening in San Antonio or Austin would have helped lighten the load, but it wouldn’t happen in my lifetime; the company was too cheap. It would require more customers in West Texas or getting clients in New Mexico or Arizona to force an expansion like that. It was too bad that we couldn’t seem to get a unicorn willing to work for us. Tim knew that his manager, Melvin, was worried about adding something like magic to our workplace but he thought that having some magical help would be amazing. Well… depending on how long a unicorn could use it without needing to rest. Tim didn't envy his co-worker, Cory, who typically handled new hire training. Training a unicorn would present a steep learning curve for both trainer and trainee. He chuckled wryly at the unexpected twist of fate. Cory doesn’t even like horses. A talking pony would be worse for him. I can’t wait to see it. * * * Tim Pulling into the gate, I was the last person to arrive, as always. Dropping off my daughter at school every morning always made me late according to our normal start time, but since someone usually had to stay late to load late arriving trucks, it worked out because it allowed me to stay late without getting too much overtime. Getting out of my car, I walked to the warehouse coordinator’s officer where the time clock was and punched in. The coordinator’s name was Juan, and he was something of an assistant warehouse manager. He printed all the bills of lading and made sure the order pullers were working. His smile this morning had me on edge. “I got a special task for you, Tim.” I sighed. “It’s too early in the morning for this crap. What is it? 1,000 drums?” Juan laughed at me. “If only it was so easy. Melvin wants to see you in his office.” I grumbled as I walked to the main office spaces. I had a good working relationship with the Warehouse Manager, Melvin, but I wished he listened to me more. Things didn’t have to be as hard as they were, but the company refused to innovate. The only thing worse than getting a late start daily was being further delayed by management nonsense. When I arrived at Melvin’s office, I walked right in without knocking since the door was open and I froze at the sight of a lavender unicorn sitting in a chair in the corner of the room. She seemed to freeze also, taken aback by my sudden appearance in the office. Melvin nodded at me curtly. “Let’s get right to it. This is Twilight Sparkle, as you can see, she’s a unicorn, and she’ll be starting today. I want you to train her, any questions?” My jaw dropped. She’s quite pretty. Caught off-guard, I shook my head and fumbled for a response. “I don’t understand. Why assign this to me instead of Cory? He usually handles new hire training.” Melvin shook his head. “Cory is on vacation this week and you are the only other person I have that I trust to train her correctly. Two of the three temps we had last week quit so we are shorthanded again. Probably going to be a long Monday.” I sighed as I rubbed my eyes. “Yeah. Sounds about right. I guess we will start with drums like normal. I’ll grab the outgoing drum orders and see if we can pull those first to make figuring out which trailers will be the easiest to unload afterwards.” Melvin nodded. “Just remember to have Joe check the trailers first to make sure they don’t need maintenance. No sense unloading a trailer that we can’t use.” I nodded in agreement and turned to Twilight. “Okay, I guess you just follow me, and I’ll explain everything while teaching you how to do the work. May I call you Twilight or do you have a preferred name?” She smiled. “Twilight is fine. My brother used to call me Twily if you prefer something less formal. What’s your name?” I almost facepalmed as I had forgotten to introduce myself and the manager never said my name, but I smiled as I composed myself and spoke warmly. “You may call me Tim. Let’s get started, shall we?” * * * Author's Note I write commissions!. At 5 dollars per 1,000 words, I'm one of the cheaper writers on the site. If you have a story idea, E, T or M, please DM me and we'll work something out. //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 2 - A Magical Order Picker //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 2 - A Magical Order Picker Twilight Walking onto the warehouse floor for the first time was shocking. The floor was concrete, and the walls and ceiling were steel. Rows upon rows of pallets of plastic pails of all sizes and colors, although most were white or black. Even early in the day, the warehouse was as hot as I had feared it would be, though it didn’t seem to bother Tim. He was walking slowly, allowing me to keep up easily and allowing me to look at everything as we walked past it. Unlike the middle-aged or near-retirement humans I had encountered at the EWE, Tim stood out as the youngest male I'd worked with so far. When he noticed me focusing on him and not the product, he spoke up and started explaining things, seemingly very respectful of my curiosity. “We will be focusing on drums today. I’ll teach you everything you need to know about how to identify the product and how to palletize them. I don’t think you will be able to ‘roll’ the drums the way a human would but I’m hoping that between magic and a little common sense we can figure something out that works for both of us. How much magic can you use before you get tired?” I was relieved at the chance to answer a question. “Most unicorns have a magical talent centered around their cutie mark. Their special talent is easier for them to use, although with the correct training, they could learn nearly any spell, but with different degrees of competency. In my case, my special talent is magic. You could say that I am a magical generalist, able to master many different things. However, I don’t believe that I have ever put myself through a magic stress test to see what my limits are. Today will be a learning experience for me in more than one way.” Tim nodded, very serious. “I trust that you know your own limits, so do your best, but please don’t push yourself too hard. There is a lot of work to get done, but I’d rather you take breaks than injure yourself. I’m not just your trainer, I am now responsible for your safety.” My mouth went dry at the level of honesty and concern in his voice. “Trust me… I’ll tell you if I need a break. I’m not used to this kind of heat. Texas is hotter than the deserts of the Badlands.” By that time, we had arrived at the coordinator’s office on the floor. Tim walked me in and nodded to another human a little older than himself. “Okay Juan, I assume that you’ve met Twilight already? We’re on drums so let me have the drum orders for our trucks and any Customer Pick-ups that you know for sure is coming today.” Juan sorted through the paperwork and set aside several sheets. “Here’s all of them. Nine orders totaling just over 1,000 drums. If you can get these done, I’ll let you leave early.” To my surprise, Tim snorted and laughed. “Yeah, real funny.” We left the office together and I was frowning. “If that was a joke then I’m afraid that I don’t get it.” Tim shook his head and smiled. “Even with two people working together, 1,000 drums will take more than 6 hours, and that’s not including unloading even more drums just to make empty trailers to use for shipping. We will be working a full day, unless we end up needing to go to the hospital from overworking ourselves.” The mention of possible hospitalization startled me, but I couldn't deny the very real risks of dehydration and heat exhaustion in this environment. I hated how hot it was. I swallowed my unease. “If I take a break, then you have to take one also.” He shook his head. “It doesn’t work that way, kid. Odds are that if you have to take an extra break, then I’ll have to take up the slack. It may not be fair, but life rarely is.” I resolved right at that moment not to take any extra breaks. All my breaks would be taken with Tim. His attempt at a playful nickname was nice but was also a little out of place. I wasn’t a ‘kid’, and he wasn’t much older than me. I played along. “I’m not a goat, but if you want to use some pony phrases in a more informal way, you could say filly instead of kid, even though I’m a grown mare.” He laughed, his mood slightly improved. “Filly, please. I’m not here to insult you. I’ve been wanting to work with a pony ever since I heard about the Equestrian Worker Exchange program, but I never thought it would happen. I know that I’m going to make some mistakes but if you can be open minded and correct me instead of getting mad, I think we could be good friends.” I giggled. “That sounds good. So, what’s first?” Tim showed me the pick sheet. “We need 208 drums palletized for a customer pick-up. That’s 26 pallets at 8 drums per pallet. I’ll grab a forklift and put the pallets down and then we can start.” It took him about 10 minutes to bring in what amounted to be two stacks of pallets and placed them in two rows as close to the dock door as possible and evenly spaced them to be able to walk around them to wrap them once the drums were on the pallets. With the pallets in place, he got off the forklift and showed me the pick sheet again. “Okay. First things first, we got to verify that this is the correct drum. There are two basic types of drums, tight head and open head. Tight heads have two or three bungs to put in and let out the liquids stored inside. Open heads are easy to spot because the lids are removeable and are latched to the drums with grey metal rings. Open head drums can have no bungs or also have two or three bungs. Before starting to palletize a drum, verify that the item number on the bottom right side of the trailer matches the item number on the order. Then, in case a mistake was made, and the wrong item number was printed, you need to verify that the drum is the correct color, the correct type of drum, tight or open, has the correct number of bungs and that the UN number matches. The UN number will tell you the manufacturer, the drums wall thickness, and if it’s rated for a more corrosive substance, like acid. Those are typically ‘lined’ drums while most others are ‘unlined’. Lined drums are more expensive, naturally.” At some point during his explanation, I had pulled a pen and a notepad out of my magical storage portal and was taking notes. I didn’t even realize that I was doing it until he looked at me and stopped short. “Huh. I don’t think I have ever had anyone take notes before.” I blushed as the pen continued to try to catch up with his explanation. “I am starting as an order puller, but I’m supposed to be moving into sales within a month or so. I need to know not just how to pick and load these products but everything that would help me sell them. Your explanation was better than I was expecting.” Tim sighed, which brought me up short. “Education helps, but it doesn’t always replace experience. I could probably be in sales myself with my product knowledge, but they won’t even consider me for the position without my education finished. I won’t hold it against you that you’re moving up to bigger and better things.” The scratching of the pen stopped, and I bit my lip. “Did I take a position that you wanted?” A sad smile brushed his lips. “Don’t worry about it. I will never qualify for it. Let’s get rolling.” His acceptance of the loss of any possible promotion worried me. Tim was clearly a knowledgeable worker, but I didn’t understand his attitude towards himself. He took a position in the trailer about one third in and rolled 8 drums towards the rear of the trailer. The way he hooked the drums reminded me a little of a bowling match I watched as part of my introduction to some of Earth’s sports. It really was an ergonomic way to unload drums swiftly, but I also now knew what he meant about a pony not being able to do it. My hoof could grab a drum in a similar fashion, but I doubted that I’d be able to roll the drums without damaging them. He clearly had years of experience. He exited the trailer and stacked the drums, placing 8 on one pallet. Tim continued to explain the process. “Tight head drums are simpler to stack since their tops and bottoms are identical. For open head drums, however, we stack tops on tops and bottoms on bottoms. This makes it easier to apply shrink wrap and secure them from toppling during transit. When wrapping them, you start in the middle, securing the top stacked drums to the bottle stacked drums and you warp them to at least this mid-point ring in the middle of the top drum all the way to the mid-point ring of the bottom drum. This wraps about 67% of the pallet and secures the drums from falling over. If they are being loaded on a flatbed truck or trailer, I recommend wrapping them top to bottom and securing it to the pallet itself for maximum safety. Now, it’s your turn. Show me what you can do, filly.” * * * Tim I stood back and watched as Twilight tried to analyze how she wanted to do this. She was clearly very educated and was clearly not meant to be doing lowly blue-collar work. I felt blessed to have even been able to meet her and she seemed so cute while problem solving. With a lavender glow of her horn, she wrapped the drums in her aura, and they seemed to shoot out of the trailer like missiles. With the complete control of a magical master, she had the rest of the 200 drums stacked within 5 minutes and wrapped within another 5 minutes. Trotting out of the trailer, she wiped her brow. “Whew. It’s hot in there.” Holy shit. If she wasn’t moving to sales, we would all be losing our jobs. I gulped. “Yeah… by mid-day, the trailers can get to temperatures of about 150 degrees Fahrenheit. That is one of the reasons why we try to do the drum orders early in the day to avoid heat related injuries. Are you okay? Need to rest?” She shook her head. “Nope. That was a good warm up. What’s next?” I stood there slack-jawed. “Warm up, huh... Um. I can move these finished pallets to a staging area with the forklift and you can take these pick sheets to start the next order. You can unload the drums with magic, but Melvin still wants the drum pallets moved with forklifts.” Twilight nodded and even saluted, which seemed odd to me. “I’ll get it done right away!” I started moving the pallets and it took 20 minutes to push all 26 pallets to the staging area and then stack them 3 pallets high. By the time I had that done, Twilight had all eight other orders done with literally 100 pallets of drums ready to go. It took me longer to verify that all eight orders had the correct drums than it took her to palletize them. I turned to her. “Okay then. It’s going to take me at least an hour to move all these pallets so… um, you can go to the break room and enjoy an early lunch. I’ll come find you when it’s time to get back to work.” She didn’t look happy about that. “But I want to help more.” I tugged at the collar of my shirt. “Trust me, you’ve done plenty. And there will be more work to do after lunch.” With a sigh, she trotted off towards the employee break room. * * * Twilight Sitting down in a climate-controlled break room was nice but my salad tasted stale. It was far too early to be eating lunch, and it felt worse to be eating alone. “I wonder if Tim is mad at me… Did I do something wrong?” Pondering the question that I had asked myself, I chewed on my salad with zero enthusiasm. Solving friendship problems was my specialty but could I solve a ‘friendship problem’ with someone that I had just met? Especially if I was the problem? By the time half my salad was gone, it hit me. “I did six hours’ worth of work in under an hour with almost no help from him. He must feel inadequate, which is bad because he’s training me and he’s a good person.” I forced myself to finish the salad even though I had lost my appetite and remembered from the explanation that Melvin gave me before Tim arrived that lunch breaks at Pipeline were a full hour, so I really couldn’t go back early. It was the longest hour of my life. When the hour was up, I returned to the floor, and I was impressed to see that all 100 pallets that I had finished had been moved and stacked in the staging area. What Tim lacked in magic, he surely made up for with skill in driving that forklift. Tim had a hard-working Earth Pony style work ethic, and that was appealing to me since I didn’t like lazy stallions. I tried to smile at him, but it felt weak on my muzzle. “I took the full one-hour lunch, just like Melvin told me I’d be doing. When will you eat?” He looked at a watch on his wrist. “I normally eat around 1 pm, any earlier than that and I’ll be hungry again before I have a chance to eat dinner later tonight.” I looked at a clock on the wall, it was just barely past 10 am. “Oh, I was hoping to eat lunch with you, but I doubt they will let me take two lunch breaks in one day.” He looked at me with a mix of surprise and apprehension. “If anyone asks, you needed a long break and needed to eat something after moving 1,000 drums with your magic. No one will say anything about it given that a lot of them take smoke breaks or longer than normal lunches without even putting in the amount of work that you already have.” I had to admit that since humans didn’t know how unicorn magic worked, it sounded plausible. I tilted my head at him before asking my next question. “Do you need a break before we continue? It doesn’t look like you’ve had one yet.” Tim chuckled as he shook his head. “I rarely take breaks other than my one lunch. Often times I’ll merge both of my ‘breaks’ into my lunch so I can enjoy a longer lunch, so I’m not rushed while eating but it largely depends on how busy we are. We have some hard-working people here but not everyone carries their weight and the rest of us have to pick up the slack. We probably wouldn’t even need temps if anyone did their fair share of the work.” His explanation made sense, but it also revealed a deeper problem. From my research, I knew that human companies liked to save money by cutting expenses. With me able to do all the drums without help, they won’t even try to get new temps. How long until they do a reduction in force layoff? I cleared my throat, hoping to make him feel better. “Well, that break really did help me. I feel like I can handle the next task without hurting myself, like you were worried about earlier. You said something about unloading more drums to empty trailers?” He nodded, focused back on work. “Yes. You see, the company owns most of the trailers that we use, and they rent a few extras. Empty trailers are dropped off at our suppliers and then we pick them up and bring them here when they fill the trailer up. We then have to unload the trailers to create an empty trailer to ship outgoing products and 80% of the time, those trailers are dropped at suppliers after the deliveries are made. It’s a never-ending process. Unloading trailers is often more work than pulling the actual outgoing orders and loading the trailers at the end of the day. Given that most of the trailers have drums in them, you can see why temps would quit. A 53-foot trailer can hold 360 tight head drums or 336 open head drums. Unloading 6 trailers is literally 2,000 drums if we were to be unfortunate enough to have to unload multiple full trailers, and it does happen sometimes. It’s a lot of work for two or three humans. Between outgoing drum orders and simply unloading trucks, I think we unload about 7,000 to 10,000 drums a week here. I was getting worried about you using too much magic on your first day, but you seem fine after that break.” I was relieved that he wasn’t mad at me, but I also understood where he was coming from. I sighed, finally understanding the full process. “And I didn’t empty a single trailer from the drums I palletized earlier because all nine orders were for different drums.” Tim shrugged, seemingly unsurprised. “That may be so, but all nine trailers are closer to empty so we can probably unload the good trailers to make six or seven empties. Or maybe another unexpected customer will show up needing drums and filling that order will make emptying a trailer that much easier. There isn’t a single person here that likes to pull drums but sometimes the dumb luck of it is that pulling the orders makes getting the empties we need easier. On rare occasions, we get lucky and have an empty trailer from the previous day that didn’t get dropped or we have a trailer with pallets of pails that are easy to unload with forklifts. The rest of the time, it’s all drums.” I scratched my chin. “Seems like we should have extra empty trailers just to use for shipping.” Tim’s laugh was bitter. “I’ve been saying that for over a year. The problem isn’t that we don’t have enough trailers, but rather, that we don’t have enough ‘good’ trailers. We have a lot of trailers sitting in the storage yard just waiting to get fixed or scrapped. There is a hold on buying new ones because trailer manufacturers are behind in the production of new trailers.” I perked up at the information. “So, if I fixed some of the broken trailers, we wouldn’t have to unload drums?” Tim smiled at me warmly, mirth in his eyes. “Were it so easy.” * * * Tim Twilight’s enthusiasm was almost contagious, but I had explained this same thing to about 20 temps in the last year. We had a maintenance department that did repairs and upkeep on the trailers, but they had a monthly maintenance budget that they couldn’t exceed and buying parts could get expensive. I walked Twilight to the maintenance shop and showed her the process of fixing the trailers. Making sure that all the lights worked, and the all the DOT regulations were being met. It was a straight-forward process, but it was a lot of preventative maintenance combined with more complicated repairs. Joe, the maintenance manager, was a gruff man in his late fifties. His weathered face and sharp tongue hinted at years of dealing with workplace frustrations. Worse still, he had no issues with trying to embarrass me, being as crass as possible every single time. “What’s up, sweet cheeks. Showing your new girlfriend around?” I retorted. “Can’t call her my girlfriend until after the first date. Joe, this is Twilight Sparkle, unicorn miracle worker. Twilight, this is Joe, the asshole maintenance manager. He could probably explain what he needs for the trailers if you can explain what you think you can do with your magic.” When I looked back at her, she was blushing slightly and had a mild look of embarrassment. I turned back to Joe. “I almost forgot that ponies don’t joke around the same way that humans do, and even if they did, your humor requires thick skin and a beer.” Joe barked a laugh that seemed to paint him as more of a gruff old grandfather-type, and I noticed that Twilight started to relax more. Joe wiped some sweat from his eyes. “It might be best to hop on the golf cart and just take her to the yard. Easier to explain it out there.” I climbed into the passenger seat and Twilight hopped into the back of the golf cart. I wished that we could have sat side by side, but I didn't want to give Joe any more fuel for his jokes. It was a short ride out to the storage yard where all the trailers were kept. The yard included empty trailers that weren’t being used and the loaded trailers waiting to be unloaded. We had parking spots for over 200 trailers, but at least 50 were out of service. Some were too expensive to fix with the current budget and some were too old to fix. Joe parked near the out-of-service trailers. “These 50 or so trailers are out of service. Some are missing doors on the back. Some have a weak floor or holes in the floor. Some need brake lines, brakes or tires. And some are just so old that I can’t get parts for them anymore and the parts on them can’t be used to fix other trailers. I think the only reason we haven’t gotten rid of them yet is the price of scrap steel is too low right now for the company to make a profit.” I turned to Twilight. “So, do you have a spell that can fix these trailers?” The mere question caused Joe to frown but he also looked interested in the answer. Twilight hummed briefly and nodded. “I can use a conjuration spell combined with a transmutation spell to use parts from a trailer that is going to be scrapped to fix the other trailers. Basically, I’ll use the entire trailer, regardless of its original functionality, to replace parts on the other trailers needing to be fixed. In turn, the trailer I’m using for parts will disappear as if it was scrapped. I’ll just need Joe to sign this form.” She handed Joe the form and he pulled out a pair of reading glasses from his shirt pocket to read it. “What is this?” Twilight smiled. “It’s just an authorization form. Per my contract, I get compensation for doing things with magic that would normally be impossible without magic. I don’t know how many trailers I’ll able to fix by scrapping one, but it would be reasonable for me to receive compensation for either the value of the parts that I’m providing you or for the scrap value of the trailer since that was the original plan for them.” Joe signed the form. “I can authorize the scrap value of the trailer. Fixing two or three of these older trailers by buying the parts would exceed my maintenance budget for the entire month. Corporate would probably be a little upset about losing the expected scrap value of a trailer off the bottom line but they would be pleased to get a few extra good trailers at the cost of the scrap value of one. You get paid and the company saves money, I can’t think of a better win/win if this works. I won’t know how to explain losing a trailer if it doesn’t work.” I cleared my throat. “How much is the scrap value of a 53-foot trailer? I think Twilight deserves to know before she uses a lot of magic. I can’t put my finger on it, but this feels risky somehow.” Joe scratched the back of his head. “Most dry van trailers are 5 to 7 tons and scrap steel is selling for about 230 dollars a ton right now. I can authorize a payment of $1,500 dollars to her, per her contract if this works, but she won’t get it until her normal first paycheck.” I looked back at Twilight, trying to gauge her mood. She nodded but also seemed a little sad. I understood her disappointment at the offer of such a small amount of money for pulling off what amounted to a mechanical and magical miracle. She would be helping the company far more than they were helping her. She sighed. “Better than nothing, I guess. Let’s see if this works.” With a glow of her horn, me and Joe both took a step back, unsure how this was going to work. Right before our eyes, we witnessed the transformation of the old, worn-out trailers into trailers that looked brand new, complete with new Pipeline Express decals and repainted with the company’s white and blue color scheme. The process was mesmerizing to watch, and five trailers transformed into something new with significant improvements on a sixth trailer. Meanwhile, the trailer that got ‘scrapped’ disappeared from existence as if it was never there. I walked over to Twilight to tell her how amazing that was when I saw her start to lose her balance and fall. With a speed that I didn’t know I was capable of; I swooped down and caught her before she hit the ground. She was wheezing hard, and it was obvious even to me that she had overused her magic. I turned back to Joe. “She needs to lay down. I should get her back to the break room. Can you check to see if these six trailers are useable?” Joe nodded. “I’ll check them out and I’ll finish filling out this form. She’s earned that $1,500 dollars even if I have to give it to her out of my own pocket. She saved me a week’s worth of work in 30 minutes. Go ahead and put her in the golf cart and take her to the break room. I’ll walk back when I’m done out here.” Carrying her to the golf cart was like carrying a large dog. I expected her to weigh more, but I was glad that she didn’t. I never drove recklessly but this time had a sense of urgency. I knew that human hospitals couldn’t treat magic depletion or whatever the pony term was. I had to hope that an ice pack in a climate-controlled environment would be enough. * * * Twilight I used too much magic. I knew that I used too much magic when I got dizzy and lost my balance. I hadn’t passed out from using too much magic since I was a foal. As I fell towards the earth, three equally mortifying thoughts competed for dominance: had I passed out simply from overexertion, or was my foolish attempt to impress Tim to blame? Or were they two in the same? Tim was the one who told me not to overdo it and yet here I am. The hard ground of compressed gravel, as hard as concrete but not as smooth, was going to hurt when my face hit it. The pain never came as warm hands seemed to catch me in midfall. I was aware enough to know that Tim had caught me, as no one else could have. The sensation of being carried was novel, as I hadn’t been carried since I was a foal, and even then, I had never been carried like this. The golf cart was a smooth ride, though I could feel that it was going at maximum speed. Being carried again felt nice and I wouldn’t have fought it even if I had been fully conscious, even though it would have been embarrassing to admit it. It wasn’t long until I was in a climate-controlled room again and I felt what had to be an ice pack being applied on my head, near my horn. The ice pack was a welcome relief. It was odd that Tim seemed to know exactly what to do to help me. Whether by dumb luck or by applying common sense, he was doing his best and I was very grateful. My only problem was that I felt the need to repay his kindness, and I didn’t know how to yet. At some point I fell asleep, and my body badly needed rest. I would have normally been terrified to sleep in an unfamiliar place, but I could sense that Tim was nearby. He was still here, and he wouldn’t let anything happen to me. Other than my older brother and my father, I don’t think I have ever trusted another stallion in quite the same way that I trusted Tim. It felt good to lean on him, but I also wondered if this was moving too fast. We were acquaintances at best and coworkers at worst. As my trainer, it would be easy to call him my boss, even though he was an order picker the same as me. I badly wanted to call him a friend and he had earned my trust as actions speak louder than words. His joke with Joe about me not being his girlfriend until after the first date made me blush and consider the possibility. Would he date me? It felt like a question that I didn’t yet have the right to ask. After a while, I started to wake up, very refreshed after a much-needed power nap and I could hear voices in the background. Opening my eyes just a hair so I could pretend to still being asleep, I could see through the window that Melvin and Tim were talking outside of the break room. I strained my ears, but I still couldn’t make out what they were saying. I couldn’t be sure, but I was almost certain that they were going to yell at me. Or at least Melvin would… Tim had my back. * * * Tim It had been a long day. I had spent more time with Twilight watching her sleep and applying ice pack after ice pack than I had ‘working’. Still, we pulled nine orders, and we emptied, or in this case fixed, five or six trailers. The other eight order pullers could do the rest of the work and Melvin could kiss my ass; I wasn’t going anywhere while Twilight was still unconscious. She was my responsibility, and I wouldn’t fail her. I didn’t even take a lunch break while I was taking care of her. Melvin was worried, but he was less worried about Twilight’s safety and more worried about a lawsuit from Twilight. I had assured him that she was fine but needed to be looked after closely while she rested. He had agreed that me and Twilight had more than earned our pay for the day and he would pay us a full eight hours even if we left early but I didn’t know where to take her, so I had to stay with her until she woke up, something that Melvin understood. I told Melvin that I would take Twilight home as soon as she woke up and Joe had already signed Twilight’s paperwork authorizing the extra pay for her ‘magic work’ and he had faxed it directly to the corporate office. Melvin was no longer on a warpath, grateful for answers that absolved him of liability, and I went back into the break room to continue my vigil. Twilight seemed to wake up when the door closed, and she smiled at me. I leaned in close and looked deeply into her eyes. I knew that pony eyes weren’t the same as humans, but she didn’t seem to have any sort of concussion, though I had prevented her from hitting her head. I subconsciously assumed that using too much magic would have similar side effects to a hangover, so I whispered a question. “Are you okay now?” She smiled and nodded. “I’m fine. You did a good job of taking care of me. What’s next?” I sighed. “Next is going home. It’s already past 4 pm… you’ve been asleep for nearly 5 hours. I was very worried about you.” She bit her lip. “I’m sorry. I pushed myself to impress you and I guess I never thought about how much magic it would take to transmute an object as big as a 53-foot trailer. Such an object doesn’t exist in Equestria. The more I use my magic, the stronger it gets, so I can say with complete honesty that it won’t happen again.” I nodded. “They may want you to fix the rest of the trailers by scrapping a few now that you’ve shown that you can. The trick will be preventing you from passing out again afterwards.” She seemed to think about that. “We can try to do it first thing in the morning so it’s the first thing I do. Then I can take a break as needed and then palletize some drums until I can’t. That will give you the maximum amount of work and magic out of me without me passing out. Good enough?” I wanted to sigh, but I didn’t want her to think I was mad at her. “I think that is as close as we are going to get as far as ‘good enough’. The other guys had an easy day not having to do drum orders and they only had to unload two trailers without us. I think we can worry about that tomorrow though. I told Melvin that I would take you home when you woke up, so I’ll take you to wherever you need to go.” She bit her lip again and sighed. “I have nowhere to go. I don’t have any friends in the area, the other ponies I came here with paired up with each other and they don’t need another roommate, and the EWE expects me to find my own accommodation. Renting an apartment is too expensive before I get paid the first check and a weekly rate at a hotel is just as bad unless I can accept a high crime area. I’m not sure what to do and sleeping half the day wasn’t in my original plans.” I knew what I had to do. “You can stay with me.” She looked up at me in shock. “Are you sure?” I nodded vigorously. “My living room has a daybed for overnight guests. It’s much more comfortable than sleeping on a normal couch while couch surfing. I’d be more than happy to host you while you wait on that first check.” She frowned. “What’s couch surfing?” I chuckled. “It’s a term for a friend sleeping on another friend’s couch while they are trying to find a permanent place to stay. The economy is crap and inflation is high, so I have no doubt that however much money they gave you to start with wasn’t enough. The government is cheap, after all. If you want to contribute to food or utilities while staying with me, I won’t stop you, but I also won’t charge you actual rent. I don’t know if you trust me enough to stay with me, but this might be the best offer you’re going to get.” Twilight looked into my eyes, a single tear rolling down her face. “I trust you,” she whispered. “Let’s go home.” * * * Author's Note I write commissions!. At 5 dollars per 1,000 words, I'm one of the cheaper writers on the site. If you have a story idea, E, T or M, please DM me and we'll work something out. //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 20 - A Matter of Honor //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 20 - A Matter of Honor Tim Monday morning brought a transformed embassy. The weekend's renovations had reshaped our floor into something that straddled two worlds - Earth's sleek professionalism merged seamlessly with Equestrian elegance. Mack had outdone himself. The daycare center gleamed with safety features designed for both species, while the commercial kitchen hummed with activity as Velvet directed her new staff. Velvet had brought an assistant with her, who I had to hope Twilight would approve of. Sara's office, positioned perfectly between our diplomatic suites, already displayed her weekend art projects. The twelve Royal Guards in gleaming armor had settled into their routines, their presence lending gravitas to what had once been ordinary office space. The entire floor radiated authority - a true embassy ready for its first full week of operation. Twilight paused beside me, taking it all in. "Hard to believe this was empty space just a few days ago." "Gallery Furniture delivers," I quipped, though we both knew it was more than just furniture. This was our vision made real - a bridge between worlds, staffed and ready to serve both. "There you are!" Velvet's enthusiasm was barely contained as she trotted forward to greet us. "I've been reviewing the security arrangements with Captain Dawn Star here." She gestured to a particularly tall mare whose pearl-white coat and flowing violet mane seemed to shimmer even under the fluorescent lights. I studied the assembled guards, noting their professional bearing and impressive armor. Something struck me as unusual, though. "They're all mares," I observed, trying to keep my tone neutral. "Of course," Velvet replied with that knowing smile that reminded me uncomfortably of her romance novels. "We have a full complement - four of each tribe for proper magical and tactical balance." Captain Dawn Star stepped forward, her horn gleaming against her pearl-white coat as her flowing violet mane caught the light, lending her natural authority. "Allow me to introduce the detail, sir. I command, with Lieutenant Starlight as my second." She gestured to another unicorn, this one with a pale blue coat and silver-streaked navy mane. "For Sara's security detail," the Captain continued professionally, though I caught Velvet's knowing smirk, "we have Maple Leaf, an earth pony with autumn-brown coat and golden mane, and Summer Breeze, a pegasus whose butter-yellow coat and white mane help her blend with the clouds. Both are mothers themselves - a key selection criterion for foal security." "Embassy security specialists are Forest Shadow," a muscular earth pony with forest-green coat and sleek black mane nodded sharply, "and Moonbeam," this time a unicorn with a midnight-blue coat and starlit mane. "They handle external threats." "Your personal security detail," Velvet cut in smoothly before Dawn Star could continue, her smile growing, "consists of Swift Wing," the midnight-blue pegasus with silver mane stepped forward, "and Rose Petal," the crimson-coated, pink-maned earth pony joined her partner. "Internal security is managed by Crystal Light," a white unicorn with rainbow-shimmering mane, "and Thunder Step," a gray pegasus with storm-cloud colored mane. "And of course," Velvet's tone grew honey-sweet, "Morning Dew," an earth pony with dew-drop white coat and spring-green mane, "and Sky Whisper," a pale lavender pegasus with dawn-pink mane. "All twelve are at your disposal, dear," Velvet added with a meaningful look that made Twilight's ears flatten. "For any... discussions you might need. Day or night. They all have excellent... diplomatic training." "Mother!" Twilight hissed, her cheeks flushing. "What?" Velvet asked, the picture of innocence despite her knowing smirk. "I simply mean they're all qualified for... private security consultations. Should the need arise. After all, a stallion of your position needs proper... support." I shifted uncomfortably as the reactions rippled through the guard detail. Some ears perked forward with genuine interest, while others flattened slightly or remained carefully neutral. Captain Dawn Star maintained her professional demeanor, though I caught her lip twitch with barely concealed resignation. Her eyes held a weary understanding that spoke of too much “experience” with such "arrangements." "As Lady Velvet says, sir," she stated carefully, each word measured, "the entire detail is available for your... requirements. At your discretion, of course." "I hardly think that's appropriate," Twilight cut in, her horn sparking slightly. But Velvet simply waved off her daughter's concern. "It's about power projection, dear," she continued smoothly, patting Twilight's shoulder. "On Earth, a male diplomat surrounded by female guards suggests influence. In Equestria, a stallion with an ‘all-mare guard detail’ commands... respect." She managed to make the pause before 'respect' feel meaningful without being explicit. Captain Dawn Star stepped forward quickly, her professional demeanor a welcome contrast to Velvet's less than subtle implications. "If I may, sir - while Lady Velvet has outlined our personnel assignments, I should emphasize that every guard was selected not just for their combat expertise, but for their dedication to duty and our ability to follow orders above all else. We understand the gravity of protecting Earth's first embassy to Equestria." Her tone carried both pride and conviction. "Our security protocols have been vetted by both Princess Celestia and your Earth military advisors." "That sounds reasonable," I said firmly, grateful for the shift to practical matters, though I couldn't help noticing how the guards seemed to stand just a bit straighter when I addressed them directly. Their eagerness to please was becoming increasingly apparent. Twilight, clearly sharing my desire to focus on business, immediately launched into questions about magical security measures and emergency protocols. As she discussed defensive spells with the Captain, I caught Velvet watching me with that same knowing smile. "You'll get used to it," she said quietly, sidling closer. "Though I must say, you wear authority rather well for someone so new to it." Before I could respond, she turned to join the security discussion, leaving me to wonder exactly what I was supposed to be getting used to. Looking at the assembled guards - all undeniably elite warriors despite their feminine appearance - I had to admire the subtle complexity of Equestrian diplomacy. Every choice, it seemed, carried multiple layers of meaning. Even something as straightforward as security staff could apparently send political messages that I was only beginning to understand. At least they were all consummately professional, I thought, watching them discuss patrol rotations and security protocols. Though I couldn't help noticing that the two assigned to my personal detail seemed particularly attentive whenever I spoke. "Before we move on - do any of you mares have young foals to care for?" The question sent a visible ripple of tension through the guards. Several shifted uncomfortably, exchanging quick, almost panicked glances before one finally gathered the courage to speak. "Yes, sir," she answered carefully, her voice barely above a whisper. "My... my little filly is just starting school." Seeing no immediate negative reaction, another added, her voice trembling slightly, "Mine's barely walking." "Mine is 8," a third mare volunteered, though her stance had become notably defensive. "The human equivalent of 3rd grade." "Make sure you take advantage of the embassy daycare," I said firmly. "It's a free service for staff, and we should have a certified caregiver starting soon. There is no reason your duties should keep you from being good mothers." The change in their demeanor was dramatic - relief flooding their expressions even as they fought to maintain their professional stance. Captain Dawn Star's approving nod carried an extra weight of understanding. * * * Tim I settled into my office chair, acutely aware of the two mares taking up positions near my door. Their gold armor caught the morning light streaming through the windows, and I found myself wondering how I was supposed to concentrate with constant companions. "Let me make sure I'm matching names to faces correctly," I said, turning to face them. "Swift Wing and Rose Petal, right?" The taller of the two, a pegasus with a midnight blue coat and silver mane, stepped forward with a small nod. "Swift Wing, sir." Her wings shuffled slightly as she spoke, betraying a hint of nervous energy despite her professional demeanor. "I probably should have guessed the pegasus would be the one with 'Wing' in her name," I said with a slight smile. "Equestrian naming conventions aren't exactly subtle. And such pretty names too - it's like you both walked out of a flower garden, just with more armor." The guards exchanged a quick glance, hiding small smiles at my attempt at friendliness. "And that makes you Rose Petal," I said to the earth pony, whose deep crimson coat made the gold armor stand out even more dramatically, her pale pink mane adding a softer contrast to her martial bearing. "Yes, sir," she confirmed with a crisp nod. "We're honored to have been hoof-picked to serve as your personal security detail." Her tone carried a subtle emphasis on 'personal' that made me wonder just how specific Lady Velvet's selection criteria had been. "I'm sure that we'll be everything that you need, unicorn wife notwithstanding." I nodded, trying to maintain a professional air while processing the situation and the loaded implications of 'everything you need.' "And you'll be... following me everywhere?" "Within reason, sir," Swift Wing replied. "We'll maintain a respectful distance during private moments, of course, but otherwise we're responsible for your safety at all times." "Celestia's orders," Rose Petal added with what might have been the ghost of a smile. "She was very specific about keeping you safe." "So... what constitutes a 'respectful distance' exactly? Because I had three cups of coffee this morning, and I'm about to learn just how awkward this arrangement can get." Swift Wing's professional demeanor cracked slightly as she suppressed a snort. "Sir, we won't be following you into the restroom. Though Lady Velvet did suggest we might want to..." She caught herself, ears reddening. "That is... we'll guard the door. From the outside." Something about Velvet's "suggestions" set off warning bells, but I decided to keep my tone light. "Thank goodness. But wait - what about at home? Between your team, Twilight's guards, Sara's detail, and the house guards... that's going to be quite the crowd. Do we all squeeze into the living room for movie night?" Rose Petal cleared her throat delicately. "We would maintain a... professional perimeter, sir. Though perhaps some additional quarters might be... advisable." "Right," I said dryly. "I'll add a barracks to the construction plans - right next to those mother-in-law cabins that I suggested for Velvet and my own father. Something that can accommodate all twelve of you." "That's very thoughtful, sir," Rose Petal replied, suddenly finding the floor fascinating. "Guards are used to... close quarters, but some privacy might be desired for... late night discussions of security protocols, as needed." "Actually," I mused innocently, turning back to my desk to hide my smirk, "maybe we should include a common room for group discussions of these... security protocols? Just in case multiple guards need to review procedures simultaneously?" The guards' reactions were priceless - Rose Petal choked on air while Swift Wing's wings snapped tight against her sides, their professional demeanor cracking. The look they exchanged spoke volumes about what kind of "group discussions" they'd assumed I meant. "That's... not typically how those protocols are reviewed, sir," Swift Wing managed, her voice strained as she fought to maintain composure. "Really? Seems inefficient to review them with one pony at a time, it could be so much fun to bounce ideas off of each other over drinks." I replied with feigned confusion, enjoying their flustered expressions. "Though I suppose with Velvet planning the layouts, she'll probably include space for whatever... review methods she deems traditional. Perhaps I should suggest rooms for both situations, just in case." Having guards was one thing - but Velvet's careful planning of possible review of procedures and other late-night consultations suggested she had very specific ideas about how I'd be using them. Especially given her earlier comments about power dynamics... Did she forget I was married? "Will you need anything else, sir?" Swift Wing asked, her professional tone somehow making the situation both better and worse. "No," I managed, focusing very intently on the documents before me. "Just... carry on with your duties." As they took up their positions again, I couldn't help but wonder if Celestia had known exactly what she was doing with these assignments. Then again, given her friendship with Velvet, she probably did. This was definitely going to take some getting used to. * * * Twilight I cornered Mother in her office, my horn sparking with barely contained frustration. "Mother, why are all of Tim's guards female? Surely there were qualified male guards available." "Darling," Mother's knowing smile made my ears flatten, "I simply selected the most qualified candidates. Though if you're interested in male companions, that could certainly be arranged-" "That's not what I meant!" I felt my cheeks burning. "I just... they're all so... perfect. Swift Wing with her athletic build, Rose Petal with those earth pony curves..." I swallowed hard. "And I'm going to get fat soon and-" "Oh sweetie," Mother's expression softened with false sympathy, "I didn't know you wanted male companionship outside your husband, though it's not uncommon for nobles to do so. In fact, many find it helps balance their relationships, especially during pregnancy-" "Mother!" My horn sparked, making several books leap from her shelves. "I don't want male guards! I don't want any guards flirting with me or my husband! I just... couldn't you have picked some that were less..." I gestured helplessly, "...supermodel-pretty?" "Darling, they're Royal Guards. They're all in peak physical condition." Mother's smile turned sly. "Though I must say, your protective instincts are quite charming. Almost as charming as how quickly Tim noticed Swift Wing's athletic build..." The rest of the books joined their companions on the floor as my magic flared. "He what?!" "Oh my," Mother practically purred, "did I say that out loud? Well, I'm sure it's nothing to worry about. After all, traditional noble arrangements often include-" "We are NOT having a traditional noble arrangement!" I stamped my hoof, then caught myself as several more books went flying. "Tim loves me. Only me." "Of course he does, dear." Mother's tone was entirely too understanding. "Though perhaps we should discuss some traditional pregnancy customs? Many noble mares find that having additional support during this delicate time-" I teleported out before she could finish, leaving her office in complete disarray. Let her clean up her own books. I had bigger problems – like the fact that my husband had apparently noticed Swift Wing's "athletic build." Still fuming from Mother's implications, I headed to Tim's office to check on him. Just a casual visit, I told myself. Nothing to do with Swift Wing's athletic build at all. I found him at his desk, reviewing embassy documents while his guards maintained their posts. Everything looked perfectly professional. Almost too professional. "How are things working out?" I asked, trying to keep my tone light. Tim looked up with a warm smile. "Just fine, honey. Getting used to the new arrangements." He gestured to the stack of papers. "Lots of protocols to review." I caught a flash of movement in my peripheral vision. Something about how Rose Petal shifted her stance, the way her tail moved... had she just...? My nostrils flared involuntarily, catching a faint but unmistakable scent of mare arousal. One of them was definitely excited about something. Tim shifted uncomfortably in his chair. "Would you excuse me for a moment? Nature calls." Swift Wing stepped forward immediately. "Sir, we should accompany—" "It's just down the hall," Tim cut her off firmly. "I think I can manage a bathroom break without an escort. Besides, we're in the embassy – what's going to happen, a paper cut?" As the door closed behind him, I studied the guards more carefully. Their "traditional" armor was worse than wearing nothing at all - the golden metal seemed specifically designed to frame and accentuate their assets rather than protect them. The way it cupped their teats while leaving them exposed, how it traced the curves of their flanks only to leave their marehoods completely accessible... This wasn't combat gear. This was decoration, meant to display rather than defend. Growing up in Celestia's court, I'd seen plenty of... arrangements between nobles and their guards. Things that made no sense to me as a filly now carried uncomfortable clarity. I'd promised myself I'd never abuse noble authority like that, never use position or rank to demand anything from those who served. But jealousy has a way of corrupting even the best intentions. Taking advantage of my position as Ambassador, I made a show of "inspecting" the guards, moving closer under the pretense of checking their armor fit. Neither dared move as I approached. "Flag for inspection," I whispered, barely loud enough for them to hear. When Swift Wing's wings twitched uncertainly, I added with deliberate sweetness, "I need to ensure you're... suitable for my husband's... service. After all, Mother went to such trouble selecting you both." I'd become everything I once despised about noble privilege, a small voice whispered in my mind. But the scent of their arousal around my husband's desk drowned out any remaining moral qualms. They exchanged quick glances before slowly lifting their tails, their "traditional" armor leaving nothing to the imagination. Rose Petal's rich, wine-like scent was neutral, professional, her deep crimson coat matching the darker burgundy of her exposed marehood. But Swift Wing... beneath her natural honey-sweet pegasus scent, the mare was practically dripping with excitement, her midnight blue folds noticeably darker and glistening with arousal, her athletic form trembling slightly as I examined her. I leaned in close, letting my breath tickle her folds as I inhaled her scent deeply, making sure she knew I could distinguish between her natural honey sweetness and the unmistakable aroma of her arousal. Her wings shuffled nervously, pressed tight against those small, perfectly shaped teats that apparently my husband had already allegedly noticed. Why would Tim even notice her smaller teats? I thought bitterly. Most stallions prefer fuller, more maternal builds like Rose Petal's... or a normal, average size like mine used to be before they started getting even bigger to prepare for the foal… Then it hit me - they were smaller because everything about Swift Wing was athletic, toned, perfectly maintained. No softness, no maternal curves... nothing like how I was going to look in a few months. Mother knew exactly what she was doing when she pointed out the pegasus to me. "Careful, Lady Sparkle," Swift Wing murmured, a hint of challenge in her trembling voice. "This kind of jealousy turned Princess Luna into Nightmare Moon." "Nightmare Moon can kiss my plot," I hissed back, surprising myself with the human-like vulgarity. I repositioned myself and leaned in close to her ear, making sure she felt my horn near her neck. "I'm watching you... closely. Very closely. And I can smell everything." She stiffened but didn't dare respond, her wings pressed so tight against her sides they trembled. The faint whimper she couldn't quite suppress was deeply satisfying, as was the way her marehood clenched involuntarily at my words. Her scent spiked - now tinged with both arousal and fear. The door opened as Tim returned, catching me still uncomfortably close to his guards. His eyes darted between us, taking in Swift Wing's trembling wings and Rose Petal's carefully neutral expression. "Everything okay in here?" he asked carefully. "Just fine," I replied with dangerous sweetness. "Just ensuring your guards understand their... proper place." Still, I considered researching magical monitoring spells before catching myself. No, that's foolish. The royal guards would detect any surveillance magic immediately - it's part of their basic security training. And even if I could hide it somehow, Tim would figure it out. He always does. Besides, what kind of marriage starts with secret spying? Then again, a small voice whispered, what kind of marriage starts with twelve suspiciously attractive royal guards? No. I trusted Tim. I just didn't trust Mother's "traditional arrangements." As I walked towards the door to finally leave, Tim caught my hoof. "I'll meet you for lunch, sweetheart. Try to have a good day in the meantime." I smiled back, it was strained, but genuine. "I'll try... don't have too much fun in here while I'm gone... and don't you dare ever lock this door." * * * Tim The past hour went slowly as Twilight's warning whispered in the back of my mind. What was she so afraid of? A flick of Rose's tail, briefly exposing herself, again, seemed to answer the question. "Do you have to do that?" I asked, trying to maintain my composure at my desk. The guards' positioning was becoming increasingly distracting. "Do what, sir?" Swift Wing asked innocently, though there was something knowing in her tone that suggested she understood exactly what I meant. "Face your flanks towards me so... directly," I managed. "You're giving me quite the show. Every single time your tail flicks..." I shifted uncomfortably in my chair. "That armor really doesn't leave much to the imagination back there." Rose Petal bit her lip, exchanging a glance with her partner. "It's normal in Equestria for personal guards to give their charge... personal attention, sir. Especially for a stallion of your position. The personal guard ‘mare’s armor’ is... specially designed for a noble's convenience... not having to remove the armor to-" "That's as convenient as it is disturbing," I interrupted flatly, my voice hardening with disgust. "The armor should protect you, not... display you. You don't expect me to believe that you'd flag your tail if I ordered it. You met me barely an hour ago." Almost in unison, both guards turned and lifted their tails high. Despite my protest, I couldn't help but notice how their tails framed their exposed marehoods - Swift Wing's midnight blue folds a perfect match for her coat, while Rose Petal's deeper burgundy provided a striking contrast to her crimson coloring. They held the position long enough to make their point thoroughly before turning back, their coats darkened with embarrassment, but their stance remained stubbornly professional. The guards exchanged another glance, this one more uncertain. Rose Petal spoke first, her professional demeanor cracking slightly. "Lady Velvet was... very specific about what kind of noble you'd be, sir. About what we should expect..." "And be prepared to offer," Swift Wing added quietly, her wings drooping with what looked like embarrassment at having to explicitly state what any Equestrian noble would already understand. The need to explain such traditional arrangements to a human seemed to make her more uncomfortable than the arrangements themselves. "And... what exactly, did Lady Velvet tell you?" I asked, my jaw tightening as I began to understand just how thoroughly my mother-in-law had orchestrated this situation. The guards shifted uncomfortably. Rose Petal's ears flattened. "She said... you might need extra attention, being away from your wife during the day. That it would be our duty to ensure you were... adequately supported in your new role." "She was very... thorough in her research," Swift Wing added hesitantly. "She explained Earth males often engage in something called 'quickies' during work hours. Our armor design is meant to facilitate such... brief encounters. For the stallion's convenience, of course." "The Bureau of Equestrian Affairs made sure this office is soundproof, for security reasons," Rose Petal added with a hint of military crudeness breaking through her professional tone. "And for when you need to... clear your head, sir. Can't have the Military Governor distracted by physical needs when Lady Sparkle is... indisposed." "Nothing helps focus like a good release," Swift Wing muttered with dark military humor. "Door locks too. Very... convenient. I don't think Lady Twilight would mind you forgetting what she said once or twice... or as often as necessary." "That's why the armor is designed this way," Rose Petal elaborated, her professional tone strained. "Personal guard armor for mares has always been... accessible... while maintaining a presentable appearance. Though Lady Velvet did share romance novels as 'research material' to help us understand what Earth males might... expect." "I’m starting to see that the name ‘Equestrian Affairs’ has a double meaning… That armor doesn't even cover your teats," I observed, unable to keep the disgust from my voice despite noticing how they immediately shifted stance to display themselves better. Swift Wing's small, perky teats suited her athletic build perfectly, while Rose Petal's fuller but firm ones matched her earth pony frame. Both were beautiful in ways completely different from Twilight's softer, more maternal form... and then I realized that was exactly the point. "Damn you, Velvet," I muttered, understanding dawning. "She didn't just pick you for your willingness to serve - she deliberately chose different body types to..." I couldn't finish the thought, disgusted by how calculated it all seemed. Even their natural beauty felt weaponized, engineered to offer tempting alternatives to my wife's lovely figure. This wasn't a random selection. My mother-in-law had apparently spent considerable time thinking about what physical traits might appeal to her son-in-law. The thought made my skin crawl. "This isn't the Equestria of love and friendship I was told about," I said quietly. "What kind of society turns elite soldiers into... this?" The guards exchanged uncomfortable glances. Rose Petal found her voice first, though it wavered slightly: "Lady Sparkle would... understand, sir... eventually. It's traditional for-" "Would she?" I asked pointedly. "Are you really willing to bet your posting on that? Because I guarantee my wife's reaction to finding you displaying yourself to her husband won't be 'understanding.' And judging by how she was looming over you earlier when I got back from the restroom, she's already made her feelings pretty clear." Their ears flattened as reality sank in. Swift Wing's wings pressed tight against her sides, something in her expression suggesting this wasn't the first time she'd heard such a warning today. "We... we may have received similar... concerns... about Lady Sparkle's potential non-traditional reaction." "And you chose to proceed anyways?" They exchanged panicked glances before Rose Petal spoke, her professional demeanor cracking. "There is more at play here than you understand. Please... let us follow our instructions without upsetting the order of things. Traditions are Traditions because they've been in place for centuries, please don't cast us aside just because we don't know what else to do!" Swift Wing nodded desperately. "We have to at least try to follow traditions, even knowing the risks. What else can we do?" I felt my expression soften slightly at their obvious distress. "First thing tomorrow," I said firmly, "we're getting you proper armor. Real guard armor, not this... decorative metal lingerie they've got you wearing. You're combat veterans - you deserve equipment that reflects that." I felt a headache coming on. "Were you two specifically chosen as my personal guards because you seemed the most... receptive to these traditional arrangements?" The guards exchanged another uncomfortable glance. Swift Wing's wings pressed tight against her sides while Rose Petal found sudden interest in the floor. "Let me guess – from your reactions, she gave you 'The Captain's Mare' and 'Duty and Desire'?" Their startled expressions confirmed it. "Are you aware that I've exchanged exactly one letter with Lady Velvet, and spoke with her one time via magic mirror before meeting her in person for the first time today?" I asked dryly. "And, by the way, Lady Twilight hates those romance novels. I dare say that Lady Velvet doesn't know me well enough to suggest ways to seduce me." The guards shifted uncomfortably. Rose Petal found her voice first. "But she's your mother-in-law, sir. She seemed so certain about your... preferences." "And Princess Celestia endorsed her selections," Swift Wing added weakly, though she was starting to look mortified. I laughed, standing to emphasize my point. "It shouldn't surprise you that I've never met Celestia at all. I don't understand why she would blindly accept Velvet's endorsements..." Both guards stared at me in shock. Rose Petal found her voice first: "You've... never met the Princess? But she specifically approved each of us for your personal detail..." "Based entirely on Velvet's recommendations, I'm guessing," I said dryly, pacing behind my desk. "A mare who, again, had never met me in person before today." I stopped, a new thought occurring to me. "Wait - is this normal for military nobles too? I'm a knight, not some pampered aristocrat. Surely there's a difference between military commanders and civilian nobles when it comes to... these expectations?" The guards shared another uncomfortable look. Rose Petal spoke first, her voice carefully measured: "Military nobles can be... worse, sir. They have direct command authority. More power to..." she trailed off, unable to finish. "...More power to order you to take off the armor and flag?" I finished grimly, watching their ears flatten in confirmation. The implications turned my stomach. "Is that why you flagged me earlier when I asked you if you would do it if I ordered it? Surely... you didn't take that as an order but rather the question it was meant to be?" Their silence and flattened ears spoke volumes. "Even Lady Sparkle would understand," Swift Wing added quickly, her voice carrying a note of desperate self-persuasion as her wings pressed tighter against her sides. "It's expected that a stallion with your responsibilities would need... additional support." The way she repeated the common justification felt more like a mantra she was using to convince herself than a genuine belief. "That’s the second time I’ve heard one of you say that. I don’t know if you’re trying to convince me or yourself. Look, I'm not blind," I said firmly, needing them to understand how serious I was. "And I apologize - I didn't mean for my question about flagging to come across as an order. I'm still learning about this authority I've been given, and I never meant to make you feel compelled to demonstrate anything. You may be right that I need support in this role, but not that kind of support." I met their eyes directly. "Swift Wing, your athletic pegasus build is striking - completely different from Twilight's softer unicorn curves. And Rose Petal, your earth pony form has this powerful grace that's uniquely beautiful. But recognizing your beauty doesn't mean I want to act on it. My marriage vows mean something to me. Different kinds of beauty don't make Twilight any less perfect in my eyes. I don't care what's traditional or expected - I won't disrespect her by taking 'additional support', no matter what Equestrian custom says is acceptable." The guards shared another look, this one filled with something that looked almost like admiration. The fact that I could acknowledge their beauty while firmly rejecting their advances seemed to affect them more deeply than simple rejection would have. "You truly love her, don't you?" Rose Petal asked softly, her voice carrying a note of wistful understanding. "More than anything," I confirmed. "So please, can we keep things professional? I value your protection and your service, but that's all I want or need from you." I studied their expressions, noting how their relief seemed mixed with something darker. "Though something's been bothering me - why would respected Guardsmares like yourselves accept an assignment where you were told up front you'd be expected to... service your charge? That doesn't align with the military bearing I see in both of you." The guards exchanged another uncomfortable glance. Rose Petal spoke first, her voice carefully measured: "In the limited time that it’s been available, it’s been proven that most Earth-duty assignments are... safer… than serving nobles in Canterlot, sir. Even if similar situations arose, a human seemed like less of a risk than..." she trailed off, looking away. "The entire guard detail volunteered for Earth duty, and we all accepted this post knowing what you might want." Swift Wing added quietly, her wings tight against her sides. "Lady Velvet interviewed us personally and her suggestions were... preferable to our previous postings. Even the most reluctant among us would rather serve you than return to Canterlot. We're desperate, sir, but not unwilling. At least you were an unknown factor, not a known... foalphile." She gasped at the open admission, her professional mask slipping for just a moment. "And honestly, sir," Rose Petal continued, finding her courage at her friend’s admission, "most nobles don't even bother asking why we'd accept such arrangements. They don't care if we're willing – they just... expect it. The fact that you're questioning it at all..." She straightened slightly. "Perhaps Lady Velvet was wrong about your expectations, but right about your character. At least our foals are safe here." I felt sick as the implications settled in. "You're saying you all chose this assignment, knowing what might be expected, because the alternatives were worse?" "Yes sir," Swift Wing whispered. "We'd rather take our chances with a human noble who might want us than serve those who..." her wings trembled, "...who would definitely take what they want anyway." "These foals," I managed through gritted teeth, my knuckles white as I gripped the desk, "were they from chosen relationships, or..." I couldn't finish the question, but their increasingly flattened ears told me everything. "Previous 'assignments'?" "Some nobles," Rose Petal whispered, her voice barely audible, "view producing foals as part of our... duties. Especially if we try to refuse other... traditional arrangements." "It ensures our continued... cooperation," Swift Wing added, her wings pressed so tight against her sides they trembled. "A mare with a foal can't afford to be... difficult. But... sometimes the foals become part of the game. 8 years old is about the right age for the wrong noble. You saw how Maple Leaf reacted when you asked about the guards' foals... You never want to hear your daughter has caught a noble's eye." I forced myself to ask the hardest question. "You should know - Twilight is pregnant with my foal. We've proven humans can get ponies pregnant. Does... does that change your minds? About me being a safer option?" The guards exchanged another glance before Rose Petal spoke softly. "Sir, with respect... at least you'd acknowledge any foal as yours. Most nobles..." she swallowed hard, "they treat any resulting foals as proof of our 'willingness to serve,' not as their own children." "And you've shown more concern for our existing foals in one conversation than most nobles show in years, you have no idea what a free daycare means to us." Swift Wing added, her voice barely steady. "The risk of pregnancy doesn't change that you're still a better option than..." she couldn't finish. Their careful avoidance of answering whether they actually wanted my foals didn't escape my notice. Perhaps they weren't sure themselves - or maybe they knew better than to admit such desires openly, even to a "safer option." "Has it occurred to either of you," I said carefully, "that out of all the planned embassy staff - both human and pony - I'm currently the only male? That your postings here might be safer than you think, regardless of my character?" Rose Petal's ears perked slightly at this realization. "We... hadn't considered that, sir. Lady Velvet's arrangements seemed so... deliberate." "Almost as if she was trying to recreate a noble's traditional household, just with human leadership," Swift Wing mused, her wings loosening slightly. "Should we test that theory?" I asked dryly. "Either of you in heat right now?" Both mares froze, their professional masks cracking completely as they processed my dark humor. Rose Petal actually blushed while Swift Wing's wings snapped tight against her sides. "Sir!" Swift Wing managed, somewhere between scandalized and amused. "That's... that's not..." "What? Just asking for... scientific purposes. Cultural exchange and all that." I kept my expression innocent. "Though maybe we should save that particular research for the gym later... You know, being basically an earth pony myself, I do wonder if a foal with a pegasus would end up with wings or not. Rose Petal wouldn't have that genetic puzzle to solve, being an earth pony already..." Their shocked expressions made me regret the joke immediately. "I'm sorry, that was inappropriate given what you've just told me about-" "No, sir," Rose Petal interrupted, finding her voice. "It's... refreshing actually. Most nobles wouldn't joke about it. They'd just... do it." My grip tightened until I heard the wood creak. When I spoke, my voice was low but intense, barely masking my rage... "You know," I said, trying to lighten the mood slightly, "you seem to be overlooking something important about your posting. Twilight is the Ambassador and Countess of Ponyville. I'm just her husband who happens to be a Knight and Military Governor. Power-wise, I'm actually less important than my wife, even if Equestrian tradition sees me as head of household." The guards exchanged puzzled looks. Swift Wing spoke first, "Sir?" "Maybe you should respectfully request permission from the ranking noble in the embassy to perform your... traditional duties?" I suggested with a slight smile. The guards straightened. "Of course, sir. We'll go ask Lady Velvet right away-" "Wait, what? No!" I cut them off. "I meant Twilight!" Rose Petal looked uncomfortable. "Sir... while Lady Sparkle is indeed Ambassador and Countess, Lady Velvet's noble title actually outranks her. As a direct descendant of Princess Platinum and current Duchess of Unicornia, Lady Velvet's orders can technically override Lady Sparkle's..." "You're kidding," I said flatly. "The mare who's been orchestrating this entire situation with romance novels and guard selections actually outranks my wife?" "Traditional noble hierarchy is... quite specific, sir," Swift Wing added carefully. "Lady Velvet's bloodline gives her considerable influence, even if she usually chooses not to exercise it directly. However, given her lineage, even Princess Celestia tends to give Lady Velvet what she wants, since she makes so few requests." "Like giving me the twelve most beautiful, unmarried, royal guards in the whole damned army? Choosing instead to exercise her power through carefully selected guard assignments and suggestive literature," I muttered. "No wonder Twilight's been so stressed about her mother's involvement." "Though technically," Rose Petal added hesitantly, "Lady Sparkle will inherit her mother's title and authority eventually... as it will pass to the oldest female heir…" "Is that so?" I said thoughtfully. "And exactly how long do Equestrian nobles usually live?" Both guards' eyes widened as they caught my meaning. Swift Wing actually choked back a laugh. "Sir! You can't possibly be suggesting..." "What? I'm just asking for... succession planning purposes." I tried to keep my expression innocent. "After all, as Military Governor, I should understand the noble hierarchy. For diplomatic reasons." "We cannot advise on methods to... advance Lady Sparkle's inheritance, sir," Rose Petal managed, though her professional mask was cracking. "Even if Lady Velvet's... enthusiasm for traditional arrangements might occasionally warrant such thoughts." "Shame," I muttered. "Though I suppose Twilight would object to becoming Duchess through suspicious circumstances. She's irritatingly ethical that way." The mares exchanged glances; their earlier fear replaced by something warmer as they realized I'd rather joke about murdering my mother-in-law than take advantage of their situation. "Perhaps we should focus on more immediate concerns, sir," Rose Petal suggested gently, seeing how my fingers had unconsciously tightened on the desk again at the thought of everything they'd endured. I nodded, forcing myself to release my white-knuckled grip as I settled back in my chair. Professional distance suddenly seemed less about propriety and more about giving these mares the respect they'd been denied. "Now, shall we review the actual security protocols? I need guards I can trust, and you need a commander who respects you." Swift Wing's posture shifted, becoming more formally military and less suggestive. "Of course, sir. We apologize for any discomfort." She hesitated, then added softly, "Lady Sparkle is fortunate to have such a devoted husband." "I'm the fortunate one," I corrected gently. The guards exchanged another meaningful glance before Swift Wing spoke hesitantly. "Sir... while we understand what you want from us, we are still required to try to provide you proper service. Lady Velvet was... very specific about the consequences of failing our duties. And she has considerable influence with Princess Celestia." I couldn't help but smirk. "Then you may try, but don't expect me to respond. Though perhaps we should keep the more... enthusiastic attempts private. My wife's horn tends to spark when she's jealous." Rose Petal's expression softened, though her stance remained professional as she began outlining their patrol rotations and emergency procedures. As they discussed security protocols, I caught them stealing occasional glances, their expressions suggesting they weren't entirely convinced our "traditional" relationship wouldn't evolve over time. After all, they'd probably seen plenty of nobles start with firm rejections only to eventually give in to custom. And now they had explicit permission to continue their attempts, even if I'd made it clear I wouldn't reciprocate. I'd have to prove my commitment to Twilight wasn't just words - and somehow navigate these complex cultural waters without destroying the trust we were building. Though given how they'd reacted to my jokes about their heat and killing Velvet, perhaps inappropriate humor was a safer way to handle cultural misunderstandings than I'd initially thought. * * * Twilight The morning passed quickly as Tim and I settled into our new routine, processing embassy paperwork and getting used to our constant guard presence. When lunchtime arrived, my mother proudly announced she had prepared our first official embassy meal in the new kitchen. "Nothing too fancy," she said as she levitated covered plates to the private dining room. "Just some light fare to test the equipment." Despite her modest description, the spread was impressive - delicate hay and flower sandwiches for me, and what looked like an expertly prepared chicken salad for Tim. The kitchen already smelled amazing, herbs and spices mingling in the air. Once we were alone - the guards respectfully stationed outside - Tim cleared his throat. "We need to talk about something serious." I looked up from my sandwich, concerned by his tone. "What's wrong?" "I promised to tell you if anything threatened our marriage," Tim said firmly. "Your mother gave the guards romance novels as 'research material' and told them to expect me to want... sexual favors. When I questioned whether they'd really lift their tails on command, they actually turned and flagged me to prove they would." My sandwich dropped to the plate. "They WHAT?!" "There's something else," Tim said carefully. "When I told them I wasn't interested, Swift Wing admitted they're still required to try to provide... proper service. Apparently your mother was very specific about the consequences of failing their duties. So... I may have told them they could try, but not to expect me to respond." I felt my horn beginning to spark violently. "You gave them permission to keep trying to seduce you?!" "More like... acknowledged they had to keep trying to avoid your mother's wrath," Tim explained, looking increasingly uncomfortable. "I figured it was better than letting them be punished for failing their 'duties.' I don't think they'll take it too far, hopefully." My magic crackled dangerously. "And when exactly were you planning to tell me about this arrangement?" "I just told you, just now. It's been less than 2 hours since this conversation happened and they made no attempts yet so I feel like I fulfilled my promise to keep you informed... however, it gets worse," Tim continued, his voice tight. "I saw everything - Swift Wing's midnight blue matching her coat, Rose Petal's deeper burgundy. That 'traditional' armor of theirs is practically lingerie. When I told them we'd get them proper combat armor tomorrow, they explained that their current armor is designed to be... accessible." He paused. "Three of the guards have foals from previous 'assignments' - not chosen relationships. They came here to escape nobles who used their children to... ensure cooperation." I felt my horn beginning to spark violently. "My mother did WHAT? And those poor mares were FORCED to..." Magic crackled around me as the implications sank in. "She told them exactly what kind of 'attention' I'd want," Tim said, his voice tight. "Even gave them copies of 'The Captain's Mare' and 'Duty and Desire' as guides. The guard selection seems very deliberate - Swift Wing's athletic pegasus build is completely different from your curves, Rose Petal with her powerful earth pony form. No unicorns. It can't be coincidence." "Oh, sweet Celestia..." I sighed, rubbing my temples. "In Equestrian nobility, it's... traditional for a stallion to have guards that complement his... existing relationships. If he's married to a unicorn like me, his guards would typically be earth ponies or pegasi to provide... variety." My face felt like it was on fire. "Mother must have orchestrated this whole thing. Even down to selecting single mothers who'd be desperate enough to..." I couldn't finish the thought. "They told me something else that's been bothering me," Tim said quietly, his expression troubled. "Even the most reluctant guards in our detail would rather... service me... than risk being sent back to their previous assignments. They're not just willing - they're desperate to stay here, even if it means..." He ran a hand through his hair in frustration. "How am I supposed to feel about that? Knowing that even the ones who don't want to are still willing to do whatever it takes to avoid being sent back?" My ears flattened against my head as the full implications hit me. Mother's schemes suddenly seemed far darker than her usual matchmaking. "This isn't just about traditional arrangements anymore, is it? She's using their fear to..." I trailed off, feeling sick. "So, your mother convinced Celestia to help arrange this?" Tim asked, looking more concerned than amused now. "To provide me with... what - pre-approved mistresses who couldn't refuse because their foals' safety depends on it?" "Apparently," I groaned. "Though I'm sure they thought they were doing the right thing. In Equestrian culture, it would be seen as a sign of respect to provide a stallion of your position with such... carefully selected companions. Even if the methods are..." My horn sparked again. "Why didn't you ever tell me how much political power your mother actually has?" Tim asked quietly. "I feel like I'm in an impossible position here. If none of the guards succeed in their 'duties', it reflects badly on the whole squad. But I can't... I won't betray you. And I can't ask for permission because that's not what I want at all. I just want to protect them without compromising our marriage." "Which explains why they were so shocked when I shut it down," Tim said. "I told them they were beautiful - because denying that would be insulting - but that different kinds of beauty don't make you any less perfect to me. Rose Petal actually said, 'even Lady Sparkle would understand.' As if you'd be fine with this arrangement." "For an Equestrian noble? That would be normal," I admitted. "The fact that they're not unicorns like me, that they're single mothers who need protection... it's all very deliberate. Though I should have realized humans would see it differently..." I paused, my voice hardening. "But 'normal' doesn't make it right. I don't care what's traditional - I won't share you. Ever." "Different species, different customs," Tim said firmly. "But I'm deeply concerned that Celestia would help arrange this - selecting guards who either have foals to protect or, like Swift Wing and Rose Petal, are willing to follow 'traditional protocols' without question. Even if she was just going along with your mother's schemes." I felt my embarrassment shift to outrage. "Oh, we'll be having words about that. She knows how much I love you, how special our marriage is. And using vulnerable mares like this... even if it's traditional, she should have known better." "Particularly since Swift Wing mentioned it was Celestia's specific suggestion," Tim added. "I had to order them to get proper combat armor - they seem to think their current 'ceremonial' gear is appropriate for actual guard duty." "And they just... flagged for you? Just like that?" I asked, still struggling with the image. Tim shifted uncomfortably. "They were trying to prove they'd follow orders. In a way, it's almost worse that Swift Wing and Rose Petal did it willingly - they genuinely believe this is what's expected of them. At least until I made it clear I wanted real guards, not... whatever your mother thinks I need." "This explains why they keep positioning themselves so... provocatively," I muttered. "Mother probably gave them detailed instructions about proper guard stances." "Twilight," Tim said gently, "I meant what I told them about seeing their beauty without wanting to act on it. You're all I want or need." My ears flicked back. "You told them they were beautiful?" "I told them I could see how Swift Wing's athletic pegasus build and Rose Petal's powerful earth pony form were uniquely attractive," he admitted carefully. "But I also told them that different kinds of beauty don't make you any less perfect to me. Denying their beauty would have been insulting - acknowledging it while staying faithful means more." "And they just... accepted that?" I asked skeptically. "Most nobles who comment on a guard's beauty usually follow it with... demands." "Actually, they seemed more impressed that I could acknowledge their appeal while still refusing their advances," Tim said thoughtfully. "Like it was the first time someone had seen them as both beautiful and worthy of respect. It makes me wonder how many nobles simply take what they want without caring about the guards' feelings at all." I felt my anger at the situation shift slightly. "That's... unfortunately common. Which is probably why my mother thought she was doing you a favor by selecting such willing guards. She probably told Celestia it would be better to provide you with guards who actually wanted to serve that way, rather than..." I couldn't finish the thought. "Or my mother convinced her it was necessary for your position," I groaned, the pieces falling into place. "This has Velvet written all over it. 'The noble stallion needs proper companionship, your highness!'" I mimicked my mother's voice. Tim shifted uncomfortably. "Speaking of your mother... I should probably mention something else. When the guards were explaining her involvement, I may have made a joke about... um... accelerating your inheritance of her title. Through suspicious means." "Tim!" My eyes widened. "You didn't!" "It just slipped out! I was angry about how she'd manipulated everything, and I asked about noble succession timing..." He had the grace to look sheepish. "The guards were actually impressed that I'd rather joke about removing your mother than take advantage of their situation." I wasn't sure whether to laugh or be horrified. "Only you would manage to earn their respect by threatening regicide." "Technically it would be aristocide," Tim corrected helpfully. "And I made it very clear it was just frustration speaking. Though they did seem relieved that I'd rather eliminate your mother than dishonor our marriage." "That's... weirdly sweet, in a completely inappropriate way," I sighed. "Just please don't make jokes about killing my mother in front of Princess Celestia?" "No promises. Though speaking of your mother's schemes..." "I warned you not to play along with her," I pointed out, unable to resist an 'I told you so' moment. "I said she'd take any encouragement and run with it." "You did," Tim admitted ruefully. "But in my defense, I never thought I'd have to contemplate murder just to avoid ending up with thirteen wives. I mean, okay, maybe I should have seen something coming when she started talking about guard quarters and 'traditional arrangements,' but thirteen? Really?" "Thirteen?" I blinked. "How do you get thirteen?" "You plus the twelve guards she personally selected," Tim counted off on his fingers. "Though I suppose if we're counting your mother's plans, it might be more. Has she interviewed the kitchen staff yet?" My horn sparked involuntarily. "TIM!" "What? I'm just trying to stay ahead of her plotting! Maybe if I joke about killing her enough, she'll be too busy writing murder mysteries to arrange more marriages..." I started to retort, but something in Tim's expression had shifted, the humor fading into genuine concern. The change in his tone made my ears perk forward attentively. "Level with me, Twi," he said carefully. "You said you wouldn't share me, and I'd never ask you to. Let's say I wasn't as devoted as I am, and I blindly accepted what they offered at their word... would you have forgiven me for being tricked or held it against me for not being faithful?" My ears flattened as I considered his question seriously. "I... would have been devastated, Tim. Traditional or not, tricked or not... you're my husband. The father of our foal." I met his eyes firmly. "Being from different worlds means we have to be even more careful about our promises to each other, not less. I don't care what Mother or even Celestia says is normal - I wouldn't have forgiven that kind of betrayal. It doesn't feel possible." "You know," Tim said thoughtfully, "your mother creating a situation where we get divorced seems counterproductive to her getting more grandfoals." He paused, then his eyes widened slightly. "Unless... she doesn't think you'd leave me. Or-" his voice took on a note of dawning realization, " -does she think that any of our guards bearing my foals would automatically be her grandfoals as long as I'm your husband? Is that how herds work in Equestria?" I felt my cheeks burning. "I... that is... Mother's romance novels do tend to end with everyone in one big happy herd..." I buried my face in my hooves. "Oh gods, she's probably already plotting out which guard would provide the best genetic diversity for our future foals." "Twilight," Tim said slowly, "please tell me your mother isn't trying to arrange a herd marriage through guard assignments." "Can we please talk about literally anything else?" I groaned, though we both knew this conversation wasn't over. Mother's matchmaking had just taken on a whole new concerning dimension. Tim reached across the table to take my hoof again. "Hey, no harm done..." He paused, frowning slightly. "Yet. Though something just occurred to me. Three of the guards mentioned having foals, but none of them said anything about husbands or wives. Think being single and... willing... was part of your mother's selection criteria?" I felt my horn spark involuntarily. "Tim!" "I'm serious, Twi. Thirteen wives seems excessive, but your mother apparently interviewed and selected twelve single mothers or soon-to-be mothers who'd be 'receptive' to certain arrangements." His expression darkened. "The more I think about it, the more calculated this feels." "We need to be much clearer about human marriage expectations in our cultural exchange documentation," I said firmly, trying to redirect the conversation. "And I'll speak with both Celestia and my mother about respecting human customs. Just because something is traditional in Equestria doesn't mean it's appropriate here." "And maybe we should review those guard assignments," I added, unable to keep the jealous note from my voice. "Particularly the ones Mother personally recommended..." Tim squeezed my hoof. "Twilight, after what those mares have been through, the last thing they need is to lose a safe posting because we're worried about your mother's matchmaking schemes. They came here to protect their foals. Let's focus on that, not potential herd arrangements that aren't going to happen." I sighed, knowing he was right. "Fine. But we're having a very long talk with Mother about appropriate guard selection criteria. Though maybe we should leave out the part where we figured out her grand herd-building plan. I don't think I can handle another conversation about 'optimal genetic diversity.'" He shook his head, his expression shifting from serious to amused as he processed the absurdity of the situation. "Though I have to admit, it's somewhat flattering that they went to such lengths. Even if it was completely unnecessary." I rolled my eyes but couldn't help smiling. "Don't let it go to your head. Though... thank you. For being so loyal." "Always," he promised. "Though maybe we should finish lunch before your mother comes to check why her carefully selected guards haven't reported any... success." "Oh gods," I groaned, dropping my head to the table again. "She's probably already planning a romance novel about this. 'The Faithful Human: A Tale of Resisted Temptation.'" Tim's laughter filled the room. "Complete with detailed descriptions of the guards' disappointment? Your mother would have a field day with that." He paused, then added with a mischievous grin, "Though, I suppose with personal guards, I won't be needing that Ponyfinder app anymore..." I shot up straight, my ears pinning back. "Timothy Talbert! That is NOT funny!" "What? I'm just saying, if I was interested in such things..." He held up his hands defensively, though his grin remained. "Having personal guards is certainly more prestigious than using an app." "Oh, so NOW you care about prestige?" I tried to maintain my stern expression, but I could feel my lips twitching. "And here I thought you were trying to convince me of your unwavering loyalty." "Hey, I turned them down, didn't I? Even after Celestia's personal recommendation." His eyes sparkled with mischief. "Though I have to admit, the app probably doesn't have a 'Royal Guard' filter..." "Tim!" I tossed my napkin at him with my magic, but I was laughing now too. "You are impossible!" "Just keeping things interesting," he said, catching the napkin. "Besides, I think we both know the only mare I need is right here. Even if she does throw napkins at me." "Sweet talker," I muttered, but I was smiling. "Just don't let my mother hear you making app jokes. She'll probably want to create an official royal matchmaking service." "Now who's giving her ideas?" Tim asked, raising an eyebrow. "Though I suppose that would be more dignified than Ponyfinder..." "That's it," I declared, standing up. "I'm going back to work before you give my mother any more novel material." "Too late," Tim called after me. "I'm sure she's already outlining 'The Ambassador's App: A Tale of Digital Temptation.' Maybe she'll make it a series!" I couldn't help but laugh as I left the dining room, though I made a mental note to check his phone later - just to ensure that app was truly deleted. Mother trotted in just as I was leaving, her eyes bright with curiosity. "My goodness, what was all that commotion? I could hear raised voices, though these walls are quite soundproof..." I bit back what I really wanted to say - this wasn't the time or place for that conversation. But Tim's smirk should have warned me he had his own way of handling the situation. "Oh, Twilight's just being mean to me, Velvet. After everything that happened this morning, maybe I need some motherly comfort..." I spun around so fast my hooves squeaked on the floor. "Tim!" "What?" He asked innocently, though his eyes danced with mischief. "I just thought your mother might have some advice about dealing with difficult mares. She seems quite experienced in that area." Mother's delighted gasp made me want to teleport straight home. "Oh my! Having wife troubles already, dear? I'm sure I could offer some... practical guidance." "Don't you dare," I warned Tim, who was clearly enjoying my reaction far too much. "But Twilight," he said with exaggerated innocence, "your mother's so knowledgeable about these situations. Why, just this morning she was explaining all about proper noble... traditions." "I hate you both," I muttered, though we all knew I didn't mean it. "Now dear," Mother said, barely containing her glee, "is that any way to talk about your husband? Why, if you're not careful, he might need additional... support staff." "That's it!" I declared. "I'm going back to work. You two can plot together all you want - just remember who signs the kitchen requisition forms!" "Ah! So I can plot all I want!" Tim called after me. "That sounds like permission. Your mother will be so pleased!" "Don't worry, dear," Mother's voice followed me down the hall, "I'll help him handle any... staff issues that arise. We have so many traditional solutions to discuss!" "Mother!" I shouted back, my horn sparking. "Stop giving him ideas!" "But darling, he's so receptive to proper noble traditions," Mother replied with obvious delight. "We were just discussing optimal guard rotation schedules..." I could still hear Tim choking on his drink as I rounded the corner, promising myself that someone was sleeping on the couch tonight. Though I had to admit, seeing him tease my mother back was rather satisfying - even if it meant I'd probably be the target of their combined mischief from now on. And at least this way, I could save my real conversation with Mother about guard selection criteria for a more private setting. Preferably one without witnesses to whatever magic might accidentally discharge during that discussion. * * * Tim After lunch, I returned to my office to find Swift Wing and Rose Petal organizing what appeared to be an extensive collection of reports. The earlier awkwardness had been replaced by professional efficiency, something I greatly appreciated. "Sir," Swift Wing began, her tone strictly businesslike, "we've received detailed security assessments from Ponyville. As Military Governor, you'll need to review the current situation, particularly regarding the Everfree Forest border." I settled behind my desk, grateful for the shift to official duties. "What's our biggest concern?" Rose Petal levitated a map onto my desk, various areas marked in different colors. "The forest continues to encroach on the town's boundaries. While the local guard maintains regular patrols, we've seen increased activity from timber wolves and other magical creatures." "The town's current defenses?" I asked, studying the map with growing concern. "Adequate for normal threats," Swift Wing reported, "but vulnerable to coordinated attacks. The guard station is understaffed, and their magical barriers need reinforcement." I nodded, making notes. This was the real reason for my position - not just a title, but actual responsibility for ponies' safety. "We'll need to address this. Have there been any civilian casualties?" "None yet," Rose Petal confirmed, "but several close calls. The local weather team has been helping with aerial surveillance, but they're not trained for combat." "Draft a proposal for additional guard posts," I decided. "And see if we can get some magical barrier specialists to reinforce the town's defenses. I won't have ponies living in fear on my watch." The guards exchanged approving looks as they began drafting the orders. This was what they were trained for - real security work, not whatever cultural misunderstanding had occurred earlier. "And prepare a full briefing," I added. "I'll need to discuss this with Lady Sparkle. She knows Ponyville better than anyone." Finally, I felt like I was doing something real with my position. Protecting ponies - that was what mattered, not ancient noble traditions or cultural confusion. The real work of being Military Governor was just beginning. * * * Tim After an hour of poring over defense proposals and maps, restlessness crept in. Years of military training and warehouse work had left me unsuited for long periods behind a desk. Glancing at my guards, who maintained their perfect posture despite standing for so long, an idea struck me. "Ladies," I said, standing and stretching, "I think we could all use a break. This building has a gym, doesn't it?" Swift Wing's wings shuffled with interest. "Yes sir, on the third floor. It's quite well-equipped." "Perfect. I need to move, and honestly..." I gathered the Ponyville reports into a neat stack, "if I'm going to properly understand our defensive capabilities, I should see pony combat abilities firsthand." Rose Petal's ears perked forward. "The gym does have a sparring area, sir." "Even better." I loosened my tie, already feeling more energized at the prospect of physical activity. "Let's head down there. I want to see what Royal Guards can really do." The gym was impressive - clearly designed with both species in mind. Various exercise equipment filled one half, while padded sparring mats occupied a generous space near the windows. Perfect for what I had in mind. I turned to my guards, noting how their professional demeanor had shifted slightly to something more alert, almost eager. "I need to see how well ponies can fight. Let's spar. One on one." Swift Wing and Rose Petal exchanged glances, their training warring with obvious curiosity about their human charge's combat abilities. "Sir," Rose Petal stepped forward, her professional tone tinged with concern. "While we'd be honored to demonstrate guard combat techniques, we're required to protect you. Sparring might be seen as... contradictory to our duties." "Really?" I countered dryly. "Sex is contradictory to your honor but you're both chomping at the bit for that. Let's try to meet in the middle here - actual combat training instead of 'traditional duties.'" Rose Petal's crimson coat darkened further with embarrassment, but there was a hint of respect in her eyes as she nodded. "Consider it essential training," I continued, removing my suit jacket and dress shirt to reveal the t-shirt underneath. "As Military Governor, I need to understand exactly what ponies are capable of in combat. Reports and statistics only tell me so much." Swift Wing's wings rustled thoughtfully. "He has a point, Rose. And he does have combat experience." She turned to me. "We received your military file, sir. Combat medic, decorated for valor under fire." "Then you know I can handle myself." I moved to the center of the mat, rolling my shoulders. "Rose Petal, you're up first. Earth pony strength against human training. No armor, light contact only." Rose Petal nodded crisply, moving to face me. Her stance shifted subtly - no longer just a guard at attention but a trained warrior ready for combat. The change was remarkable, reminding me that beneath their professional exterior, these mares were elite soldiers. "Rules of engagement?" Rose Petal asked, her voice low, almost playful, as her muscles rippled under her crimson coat. Without her armor, every line and curve of her athletic form was on display, a sight that was far more distracting than I anticipated. Each shift in her stance made the light dance across her toned form, highlighting those curves she typically kept hidden under a professional exterior. Her tail flicked, swishing just enough to make me wonder if she was doing it on purpose, pulling my attention in ways that made it increasingly challenging to keep eye contact. "Three solid hits wins," I replied, squaring my stance. "Show me what an earth pony can really do in close combat." "Yes, sir," she answered, her tone carrying a hint of something richer than simple anticipation. "But fair warning - Royal Guard combat training? Thorough. We learn to use every natural advantage." Right away, I knew sparring with Rose Petal would be unlike anything I'd faced. Living with a unicorn wife had trained me well in reading pony movements, but without her armor, Rose’s maneuvers had an entirely different allure. Every twist, every pivot of her body seemed crafted to draw my gaze exactly where she wanted. Her coat had taken on a faint sheen from exertion, each motion fluid, graceful, almost more suited to a dance than a fight. When she finally launched her first strike, a controlled, powerful kick that would have surprised most, I was already moving. I caught a brief, teasing glimpse of her fuller, earth-pony build, her teats noticeably more prominent than Twilight’s. I had already seen them but it was still distracting, to say the least, but I stayed focused, my training emphasizing agility and swift reactions. Yet, each time she reared, it was hard not to notice just how each movement seemed designed to pull my eyes precisely where I was supposed to stay wary. "Good speed," I said, sidestepping her advance. "But you’re telegraphing. Are you holding back?" "As ordered, sir." She pivoted with a challenging smile, her coat gleaming, her breath catching just a little as she spoke. "Light contact only. But I could be much more… aggressive if you prefer." I ducked under her follow-up strike, using my height to slip past her, landing a light tap to her shoulder. "One point." From the sidelines, Swift Wing’s wings gave a subtle rustle, her gaze glued to Rose’s increasingly bold movements. Rose shifted tactics quickly, mixing in a series of unpredictable moves. But each time she struck, her form held a bit of flair, her recovery positions almost artful. As I evaded, I slid past her flank and tapped her there, my touch lingering a beat too long. "Two." She smirked, her breaths coming deeper, her voice carrying a sultry edge. "You’ve clearly sparred with ponies before, sir… Most find it… distracting to see us without armor." Her next move took me by surprise; as she dodged my strike, she spun in a way that made her tail lift higher, exposing her marehood - deeper in color than her coat, glistening unmistakably. For a split second, I was frozen, eyes locked on her as her unmistakable unique scent mingled with the air. I had seen her marehood in my office earlier, but this time she looked… aroused. That heartbeat of hesitation was all she needed, and her hoof connected squarely with my shoulder. "Point," she declared with a triumphant smile, though her tail stayed up a fraction longer than necessary, slowly lowering as her expression softened. Her eyes held a spark, a challenge, something daring me to see exactly what she could do without any restraints. "Let’s just say marriage has unexpected benefits," I murmured, feinting left before shifting smoothly to her right and landing the final tap against her shoulder. "Match." Rose Petal straightened, then dipped into a low, graceful bow, her crimson coat catching the light, muscles rippling under her skin. "Impressive, sir," she replied, her voice a touch lower, eyes gleaming with a hint of mischief. "Though I suspect Lady Sparkle’s approach is a bit… different from guard training. We’re taught to yield to a superior opponent when appropriate. Perhaps I should demonstrate our more advanced techniques?" "True enough," I replied, wiping the sweat from my brow, my pulse still quickened from the exchange. "But principles stay the same - read your opponent, stay mobile, and strike when they least expect it." Rose tilted her head, her mane falling slightly over one shoulder as her gaze held mine, challenging. "So… again, sir?" I rolled my shoulders, feeling the adrenaline rising again. "Show me what a Royal Guard can really do. I need to understand your true combat capabilities." Her expression shifted, amusement fading to concentration, her stance grounding as her hooves dug slightly into the earth. "Are you certain, sir?" she asked, the question laced with caution. "Completely. Don’t worry, I’ve taken harder hits than this before," I said with a grin, the invitation clear. This time, there was no holding back. Rose launched forward with a newfound intensity, her earth pony strength powering each movement, her form precise and powerful, each strike carrying the weight of her training. I dodged, each near miss sending a whisper of air past me, close enough to feel the sheer force she could command if she wanted. Every motion was a calculated dance, her movements flowing as if choreographed, her muscles flexing under her coat with each turn. But it was the subtle cues that I read best - the slight twitch of a hind leg, the shift of her tail signaling a strike, a feint she nearly executed before switching directions, giving herself away only in the final moments. Combat medicine had drilled an awareness of movement, the why and how of injuries, into me, and my time with Twilight had added an instinctual understanding of pony body language. Still, I felt the burn of every dodge, each strike drawing me to the edge of my own reflexes, the thrill of the fight heightened by the closeness of each pass. Rose’s breathing quickened as the pace increased, her body moving with an unrestrained confidence. She dipped low, and I felt the brush of her coat as she shifted to my left, her tail flicking tantalizingly close, that deep burgundy color catching my eye as she pivoted. The sparring grew more intense, her strikes coming faster, sharper, but still with a fluidity that was almost hypnotic. We traded moves, our movements a balance of strength and restraint, each of us pushing but not quite breaking past the boundary. Just as she moved in close, aiming for my shoulder, I shifted back, catching her off guard and slipping past her guard. With a swift but light tap to her shoulder, I called, "Match." Rose’s eyes gleamed with respect, her chest rising and falling, her breathing heavy but steady. She straightened, a faint smile playing at her lips, her voice carrying a note of appreciation. "Impressive, sir. Adaptive strategy." She dipped her head slightly, the respect in her gaze unmistakable. "You used my own momentum against me." "You're an excellent fighter," I replied sincerely. "Exactly the kind of skill we need protecting Ponyville." The match had served its purpose - not just exercise, but genuine understanding of pony combat capabilities. Knowledge I'd need as Military Governor. "Swift Wing," I called, my breath still coming in quick bursts. "Your turn. Show me some pegasus combat techniques." She stepped onto the mat, her wings unfurled just enough to hint at readiness, each feather poised like a carefully honed blade. Without armor, her athletic build was all the more striking - lean muscle beneath a smooth coat, powerful and graceful. Her movements were quick and poised, her entire stance a far cry from Twilight’s softer, maternal curves but every bit as captivating. "Pegasus combat is… quite different from earth pony tactics, sir," she replied, voice low. "We rely more on aerial agility and close-contact maneuvers." "Perfect," I said, settling into a defensive stance. "Same rules as before - controlled contact, focus on technique." What followed was a dazzling display of pegasus strategy and agility. Swift Wing used her wings not just for flight, but for balance and misdirection, each flutter and subtle twist showing off her flawless form. Her movements were precise yet fluid, almost as if she was performing an intricate dance, her agile frame shifting with each heartbeat. When she balanced on her hind legs, wings flaring to hold position, I found my gaze drawn to her compact chest, smaller teats subtly moving in rhythm with her athletic form. The sight was… distracting, to say the least. That moment of unguarded awareness cost me. "Point," she called out, tapping my shoulder with a playful grin that spoke volumes - she knew exactly what had broken my focus. Determined to regain composure, I forced myself to observe purely tactical details. Her darting and weaving were masterful, her style blending precision and swiftness, keeping her light on her hooves. I managed a counter, catching her in a twist and scoring a tap, leveling the score between us. She gave a breathy laugh, her wings sending gentle currents that carried her scent my way, a rich, almost floral note, distinct from Twilight and Rose’s scents. "Impressive recovery, sir. Most humans find pegasus tactics a bit… overwhelming." She launched into her next move, and before I knew it, she executed a quick aerial maneuver that swept my legs from under me. I hit the mat with a thud, and she too stumbled, toppling forward in a blur of wings and hooves. We landed in a tangled heap, her warm, slick marehood pressing against my face, the scent of her unmistakably heady arousal filling my senses. Her midnight-blue folds, a deeper shade than her coat, glistened, a small droplet of her excitement marking my collar. Her scent - completely different from Twilight’s lavender warmth or Rose’s earthy, rich musk, yet equally intoxicating. "Point," she murmured, her voice soft but charged, taking perhaps a heartbeat longer than necessary before lifting herself away. Her wings fluttered with a hint of playful mischief, wafting more of her scent toward me. Her breathing was still quickened from the exertion, her smaller teats prominent from this angle, and though I would never admit it to Twilight, there was something alluring about their subtle shape against her athletic form. It took me a second to collect myself, the lingering scent of her excitement clinging to me as I rose, my own pulse elevated. Her wings shuffled with slight nervousness, but her expression remained unguarded, a knowing glint in her eye as she observed my reactions. But like Rose, Swift had her own tells - a flick of her feathers, a subtle shift of her stance - and I used it to land a second point. Swift adjusted immediately, resetting her stance, but I read her next move quickly and tapped her before she could recover. "Match," I announced, slightly breathless, each point bringing us uncomfortably close. Her breathing was still a little uneven, chest rising and falling, and I could sense a charged energy in the air, the closeness of our sparring leaving little room for formality. Her coat gleamed, and her gaze held a mix of challenge and respect. "You’re both excellent fighters," I said, taking a steadying breath. "Different styles, but equally… effective." Swift’s smile widened as her wings shuffled in slight self-consciousness, but the gleam in her eye was unmistakable. She knew exactly what effect she’d had. Rose Petal, watching from the sidelines, was breathing harder than seemed necessary for an observer. As I extended my hand to shake hooves and call the match over, Rose’s hoof lingered a moment too long, trailing up to brush against my chest - right where Swift Wing’s “enthusiasm” had already dampened my shirt. Her touch left a faint, warm trail, and I caught a glint of moisture that looked suspiciously like marecum. I pushed the thought aside. Rose was a soldier; maybe the thrill of a fight could have that effect. Maybe I hadn’t seen her do anything to herself. And maybe, just maybe, I didn’t want to think about what she might’ve been doing as she watched me and Swift spar. “Perhaps we should head back to the embassy, sir,” Rose said, her voice husky, her gaze heavy with something beyond simple admiration. “Before we get… carried away with further training exercises.” Swift Wing chuckled, fluttering her wings and sending another faint, tantalizing breeze my way, bringing with it the rich scent of her arousal. “Though,” she said with a sly glance, “there’s plenty more we could demonstrate… if you’re not too tired?” Their mingled scents filled the air around me, their closeness pulling my mind down a dangerous path. I couldn’t help but wonder if earth ponies tasted as different from unicorns as they looked, if pegasi’s sweetness matched the faintly floral scent they carried. Each tribe had their own distinct… qualities. Swift Wing’s smaller, athletic frame was built for precision and agility, contrasting perfectly with Rose Petal’s fuller, solid earth pony form, all muscle and subtle curves, both so unlike Twilight’s familiar unicorn softness. My mind drifted to their colors, the thought of how they might each taste. Swift’s midnight blue, Rose’s deep burgundy, Twilight’s royal purple… Each hue felt like a promise of something different, something alluring. I jerked myself out of the fantasy, horrified at the turn my thoughts had taken. These mares were making it painfully difficult to hold steady to my vows - beautiful, willing, skilled in ways that stirred something deep and primal. But I loved Twilight. Accidents could happen, training mishaps, but betrayal? No. I owed her better than that, even if Rose’s low suggestions about "late-night discussions" hinted at things beyond training, or the way Swift’s scent clung to my clothing seemed to follow me, lingering even as we walked. What was wrong with me? Here I was comparing my wife to my guards, measuring differences in body, in scent, like some deviant biologist. Twilight trusted me; this wasn’t a game, not some Pokémon catalog of collectable mares. I couldn’t think this way. But the session had served its purpose - more than just exercise. I’d gained a real, close-up understanding of pony combat techniques, from earth pony strength to pegasus aerial maneuvers. Information I’d need as Military Governor, knowledge that would protect Twilight and the others when things got serious. At least that’s what I told myself as I pulled my gaze away, trying to steady my breathing and focus on the bigger picture. * * * Twilight I was reviewing diplomatic correspondence when Tim returned to the embassy with his guards, all three looking rather disheveled and catching their breath. My ear twitched as I noticed their windblown appearance and caught the distinct scents of recent physical exertion - and something more primal - still clinging to them. My sensitive unicorn nose couldn't help but distinguish between mere workout perspiration and... other responses to vigorous activity. From the corner of my eye, I caught several of the other guards exchanging meaningful glances. Maple Leaf whispered something to Summer Breeze that made the pegasus' wings flutter, while Crystal Light and Thunder Step pretended to study a security report with suspicious intensity. Mother, naturally, was watching the entire exchange with poorly concealed delight, no doubt mentally drafting her next romance novel. I caught her subtle nod of approval toward Forest Shadow and Moonbeam, who had positioned themselves to "guard" the corridor with an excellent view of the proceedings. "And just what have you been up to?" I asked, trying to maintain my diplomatic composure while my nostrils flared involuntarily at the telling mixture of scents. Tim grinned, that mischievous look in his eyes that usually meant trouble. "Just getting some much-needed exercise with my personal guards. I had to test their combat capabilities." "Combat capabilities?" I raised an eyebrow, watching how Swift Wing hovered just slightly too close to Tim while Rose Petal attempted to smooth her still-tussled mane. The lingering aroma of their combined exertion was... rather telling of exactly how they'd responded to his "combat techniques." "Sir proved quite... skilled at handling both our styles," Swift Wing offered helpfully, her wings fluttering. "Such stamina." Rose Petal nodded with a barely suppressed smile. "He mastered every position we demonstrated." "Purely professional research," Tim assured me with exaggerated innocence, though I noticed he wasn't quite meeting my eyes. "As Military Governor, I need to understand pony combat techniques. Very educational." "I'm sure it was," I replied dryly. "And this couldn't wait until after we received Doctor Stable's report about appropriate... physical activities?" Tim shrugged, "That report will limit your physical activities, not mine, although I am eager to see what the good doctor says and recommends." "Some things just can't be contained by paperwork," Swift Wing murmured, then quickly added, "Sir's enthusiasm for training, I mean." "He certainly gave us a thorough workout," Rose Petal added, stretching in a way that made her muscles ripple. "Multiple rounds." The guards maintained admirably straight faces, though I caught Swift Wing's wing twitch - a tell that I was definitely going to ignore. "The gym's shower is quite spacious," Swift Wing noted innocently. "Though we haven't had the chance to use it yet. Still cooling down from... intense activity." "And, you know me," Tim said, wiping his brow. "I'm not used to administrative duties, so some good healthy exercise did wonders for my... mood." From the corner of my eye, I caught Morning Dew and Sky Whisper exchanging knowing looks, their barely suppressed giggles doing nothing to hide their interest. Lieutenant Starlight suddenly became very interested in reorganizing the duty roster, though her magic kept faltering as she stole glances at the returning trio. Even Captain Dawn Star's professional demeanor cracked slightly, her lip twitching as she pretended not to notice the telling scents wafting through the embassy. Mother looked quite pleased with the results, her quill already floating beside her as if ready to take notes. I noticed how the remaining guards had all found reasons to patrol this particular corridor, their "random" routes somehow all intersecting at this exact moment. "Good. Healthy. Exercise. That's what we're calling it now?" I muttered, my horn beginning to spark. Then louder: "Perhaps next time inform your pregnant wife before engaging in... strenuous activities." "Yes dear," he replied, failing to hide his grin. "Though you have to admit, at least I'm taking an active interest in my position." "Several positions," Rose Petal whispered, just loud enough to hear. The comment triggered a wave of poorly suppressed snickers from the watching guards. "That's enough, all of you," Captain Dawn Star finally intervened, though her professional tone was somewhat undermined by her twitching lip. "Perhaps we should give Sir Tim and Lady Sparkle some privacy to... discuss training protocols." The other guards reluctantly dispersed, though I distinctly heard Crystal Light murmur to Thunder Step, "Bold of them to test the waters so openly. Either they're very confident or very foolish." "Or very well-positioned," Thunder Step replied just loud enough for me to hear. "Lady Velvet did say the personal guard positions were crucial..." "Well," Forest Shadow added with a sultry whisper, falling into step beside them, "after seeing how... vigorous his training style is, I wouldn't mind going for a gallop with Sir myself." Captain Dawn Star's professional mask slipped just slightly as she joined their huddle. "At my age, no stallion should catch my fancy, especially after how many nobles have..." She paused, her expression darkening before softening again. "But there's something different about Sir Tim. He might just change my mind about... traditional arrangements." I levitated a towel at his face with perhaps more force than necessary. "Go get cleaned up before our afternoon meetings. And you two," I addressed the guards, "remember what we discussed this morning." "Of course, my lady," they chorused, though their smirks suggested they were enjoying this far too much. "You should probably remove your armor," Tim suggested helpfully. "Help you cool down faster after such an... intense workout." "Tim!" I squeaked, my horn sparking. "You can't have them getting naked in front of you!" He raised an eyebrow, glancing pointedly at my own unclothed form. "Honey, you're not wearing anything right now. Besides, they weren't wearing armor during our sparring match and that was..." he caught himself, clearly remembering something, "...completely professional. Mostly professional. Professional-adjacent?" "That's different!" I sputtered, though I couldn't exactly explain why. My eyes twitched when I saw them shift positions. The way they positioned themselves – as if daring Tim to mount them in the middle of the embassy - made my horn tingle with suppressed magic. "Tim," I said, perhaps more sharply than intended. "A word in private?" He looked up, finally seeming to notice the guards' positioning and their barely contained amusement. His expression shifted from tired satisfaction to concern as he caught the dangerous spark in my horn. "Of course, honey." He stood quickly, maintaining a proper distance from the guards. "Sweet- uh, Swift Wing, Rose Petal - please wait outside. And keep your armor on!" The nearby flower vase exploded in a shower of magical sparks. "Did you just almost call her SWEETHEART?!" Tim's expression went carefully blank. "Maybe?" Once we were alone, I let out a frustrated sigh. "We need to talk about these guard assignments. The scent of aroused mare is still all over you, and don't tell me it was just from exercise! And since when do you use pet names with my mother's carefully selected guards?!" "I already spoke to them about boundaries," Tim assured me, pulling me close despite my bristling horn. "You know you're the only mare in my life. And that 'sweetheart' slip? First time that's ever happened - maybe I'm just tired from the workout. Or maybe your mother's romance novels are getting to me." He paused, looking genuinely troubled by the slip. "We did have a little... training accident... that put me a little closer to Swift Wing's marehood than I should have been... but I kept it as respectful as any co-ed sparring match can be. Though I have to admit, watching a pegasus balance on her hind legs during combat training was... educational. Is it a bad time to mention that her teats are smaller than yours?" My eyes narrowed to dangerous slits, my voice dropping to an icy whisper. "How close to her marehood are we talking about here... and think very carefully about your answer. I can smell her all over you." He gulped but had a look that I recognized as him being completely honest. "Close enough to lick her if I had wanted to. However, I did exercise remarkable self-control." My magic threatened to break something as darker thoughts crept in. If I could smell her arousal this strongly, how certain could I be that he hadn't... "Tim!" My voice cracked with barely contained fear and rage. "Did you..." Before I could finish the accusation, Tim pulled me into a deep kiss. My sensitive unicorn nose, the same one that had been torturing me with Swift Wing's scent, now detected only Tim - no trace of mare on his tongue or breath. He broke the kiss gently, his eyes holding mine. "That answer your question?" he asked softly. "I may have gotten closer than I should have during training, but I kept my mouth to myself. You're the only mare I taste." "How can you kiss me like that and then be so cruel with your teasing?" I asked, my voice trembling between relief and frustration. "You're telling me about their teats and assets and then prove your faithfulness as if this was just another joke? Do you have any idea what you're doing to my emotions right now?" "What? I'm just being honest. I think you should be more worried about me lying. If you can physically cast a truth spell, I'll answer any questions that you have. Promise. Rose Petal's earth pony strength was impressive too, though fortunately, I didn't end up as close and personal to her as I did with Swift Wing, although I did still see all her assets. Her teats are larger than yours, but I guess that's normal for an earth pony..." I jabbed him with my horn twice. "Not. Helping." "Ow!" He rubbed his chest where my horn had poked him. "Okay, okay! Though you have to admit, for a pregnant mare, your aim is still perfect-" "Maybe we should request different guards?" I suggested, my voice rising slightly. "Ones who don't get quite so... excited about physical training?" "Honey, we can't just replace them," he said gently. "Travel between worlds is limited right now. Besides, any guards your mother selects are probably going to be just as... enthusiastic about their duties, if not worse, if they think the first two were replaced for failing.” I deflated slightly, knowing he was right. "So, we're stuck with guards who get hot and bothered during 'combat training' and then make suggestive comments about positions and stamina? And are actively pursuing you, complete with training accidents that put their marehood’s in your face while also taunting me with blatant courting positions whether you realize it or not?" "Not stuck," Tim corrected, stroking my mane. "We just need to be clear about expectations. They're professional soldiers first - even if they do enjoy their training a bit too much. As far as courting positions are concerned, you might have to show me what to look for because I don't remember you doing anything weird to get my attention, other than that towel drop the first day we lived together as roommates. Your hip sways are nice. Though after that kiss earlier, you can't possibly think I find them more attractive than you." "I'm sure that's not all it proved," I muttered. "But no more private 'exercise sessions' without my knowledge. And they need to shower immediately after training - I don't want to smell their... enthusiasm... all over you again. And no more almost calling them 'sweetheart'!" "Agreed, I'll let you watch next time." He kissed my forehead. "Though you have to admit, watching you get jealous over a little workout scent is kind of adorable. At least you know for certain I'm not tasting any other mares." "A little workout scent?" I pulled back to glare at him. "Tim, I can smell their... their... heat! Both of them! All over you! And don't think I didn't notice how you keep comparing their teats to mine!" "Heat? As in being in season?" He raised an eyebrow with dangerous amusement. "Well, if they get pregnant as quickly as you did, we might need to expand the nursery... Though at the rate your teats are growing from the pregnancy, you'll have Rose Petal beat in no time." "TIMOTHY TALBERT!" My horn sparked involuntarily. "That is NOT funny! Stop comparing our... assets!" "What?" He grinned, though he did take a prudent step back. "Just saying, your mother would be thrilled. More grandfoals to spoil..." Seeing my horn spark more dangerously, his expression softened. "You're lovely, and sometimes the best way to prove that is comparing you to another mare. You see them as prettier, but I love you just the way you are. Growing teats and all." I swatted him with my tail. "Don't push your luck, mister. I may be pregnant, but I can still teleport you into the fountain outside. Maybe that'll cool off all this... enthusiasm for physical training." His laughter only made my horn spark more. "Oh, by the way - probably a bad time to mention this, but we need to build a barracks for the guards. Right next to those mother-in-law cabins your mother's been pushing for..." "Tim!" I could feel a stress-headache forming. "Are you trying to get teleported into the fountain?" Tim's laughter tapered off. "Twilight, let me redirect you again, like I did with that kiss earlier. I didn't shower after the sparring just like the guards didn't. Smell me. Do you smell my release? I know you know what it smells like." I bent down and sniffed his pants. “…No, no release. Not even pre-cum.” Tim nodded. “See? They may have gotten too excited, but I didn’t. I kept it in my pants. I’m not sure how else to prove my loyalty. They can bend over and flag for me, but they can’t make me mount them. And I never will.” I raised my eyebrows. “Never?” He smiled. “Not without some kind of permission from you, and we both know that it’ll never happen. So… never.” Tears filled my eyes, and I kissed him, their scent still all over his shirt. “Tim… you have to understand. They are gorgeous… they look like super models compared to me and I’m just going to get fatter the longer I’m pregnant. I’m scared.” Tim hugged me. "I'm not going to leave you. And if you're really that worried about my guards, I'll try to think of something. But... they are part of our lives for the foreseeable future, and I'll do my best to make this work for both of us. My jokes may be poorly timed given all this, but I do love you and I'll try to keep that clear. Though maybe I should stop comparing teats for a while." We'd figure this out, just like everything else - one cultural hurdle at a time. Even if it meant dealing with guards who got a bit too... excited about their duties. Though first, I needed to figure out how to make his guards’ armor magically waterproof. Because at this rate, my husband's fountain dunking was becoming less of an inevitability and more of a scheduled event. * * * Tim Back in my office, Swift Wing and Rose Petal had resumed their professional demeanor entirely, though there was a lingering awkwardness in the air. "We need to talk about what happened," I said, setting aside the budget papers. "I told Twilight everything - including the 'accident' with Swift Wing's marehood in my face. I don't keep secrets from my wife." The guards exchanged worried glances. Swift Wing's wings drooped slightly. "Sir, about that... we fear we may have overstepped..." "I need to ask something directly," I said, meeting Swift Wing's eyes. "Was that really an accident, or did you take advantage of a situation knowing I wouldn't normally consent to such contact? When I said you could keep trying to provide 'proper service' to avoid trouble with Lady Velvet, that wasn't permission to get physical." Swift Wing's ears flattened in shame. "Sir... I... It wasn't entirely accidental. I apologize. We got caught up in the moment, in the traditions... but that doesn't excuse taking liberties with your person. We misinterpreted your permission to try as... permission for more." "Permission for more?" My voice carried an edge of authority they hadn't heard before. "You'd know if I wanted more. You've made it quite clear that I could bend you over my desk without so much as a whimper of protest. You may chase... but nothing more. My permission to try doesn't extend to physical contact until or unless I say otherwise.” "Lady Sparkle must be furious," Rose Petal added quietly. "We never meant to threaten your marriage. We should have respected the boundaries of your permission rather than pushing for physical contact." "Twilight understands more than you think," I said carefully. "But she needs to know she can trust us - all of us. I love her completely. That isn't changing. However..." I paused, choosing my words with care, "if you're interested in building something deeper than just a guard-charge relationship, it has to start with trust and respect." "What exactly are you suggesting, sir?" Rose Petal asked, her professional mask slipping to show genuine curiosity. "Friendship first. Real friendship - not just flirting or teasing. You can joke with me; you can even help me tease Twilight sometimes but keep it reasonable. No more 'accidents' or deliberate courtship displays. Show her that you respect our marriage." Both guards straightened, their expressions thoughtful. "And if we prove ourselves trustworthy?" Swift Wing ventured carefully. "Then we see where friendship leads," I replied firmly. "But only with complete honesty and Twilight's full knowledge and consent. I won't betray her trust - ever." "Yes sir," they chorused, and I could see they truly understood. This wasn't rejection or acceptance - it was a challenge to earn trust first. "Good," I said, turning back to the papers. "Though I have to admit, my ego's still recovering from that takedown during sparring, Swift Wing. Next time try winning with pure skill?" The pegasus's wings ruffled slightly as she fought back a small smile. "Yes sir. Though you have to admit, it was an effective technique..." "Too effective," I replied dryly. "Let's stick to actual combat training from now on. The trust we're building has to be earned properly." "Sir," Rose Petal ventured carefully, "Lady Velvet suggested that human males often take... companions outside marriage. She said it was similar to Equestrian herds..." I sighed heavily. "That's not entirely accurate. While some humans do have affairs or 'mistresses,' it's generally considered improper and dishonorable. The closest equivalent to a herd that humans have would be what we call an 'open marriage,' where both partners agree to see others. But most of those relationships end in divorce - that means permanent separation." Swift Wing's ears perked with concern. "But Lady Velvet said..." "Twilight's mother is meddling," I cut in firmly. "She deliberately selected twelve mares who are as beautiful as or more beautiful than Twilight - something that's hurting my wife's confidence at exactly the wrong time. Twilight's carrying our foal, dealing with complicated magic, and now she has to face a guard detail that looks like they stepped out of a fashion magazine, hoof-picked to fuck me. She’s going to have a stroke." The guards exchanged guilty glances. "We had no idea," Rose Petal said softly. "About the pregnancy affecting her confidence, I mean. We thought..." "You thought what every other mare in the guard probably thinks - that I'd be flattered by the attention and eventually give in to tradition." I shook my head. "Twilight and I never planned on having a herd. We're learning to navigate between two cultures, but some things aren't negotiable. My loyalty to her is one of them." "Even if..." Swift Wing hesitated, then pressed on, "even if your wife's mother arranged for certain... compatibility factors in guard selection?" "Especially then," I said firmly. "Look, I'm not blind. You're both beautiful mares, and Velvet clearly chose guards she thought would appeal to me. But that's exactly the problem - she's trying to manipulate a situation without considering how it affects her daughter's happiness. The 12 of you would force a stallion to change a top 5 best list to a top 12 list, meanwhile, Twilight is going to grow fat, her words, not mine, as the pregnancy progresses. I legitimately think that betraying her with any of you would kill her - whether from a heart attack, a stroke, or pure heartbreak." Both guards fell silent, processing this. Finally, Rose Petal spoke: "We'll do better, sir. Not just for you, but for Lady Sparkle. She deserves better than having her mother's schemes undermine her marriage." "Agreed," Swift Wing added. "Though... perhaps we could help counteract some of Lady Velvet's influence? Show Lady Sparkle that we support her?" I smiled slightly. "That's exactly the kind of trust-building I was talking about. Show her you can be friends without trying to seduce her husband. Though maybe ease into it - she's still a bit sensitive about the whole marehood-to-face incident." "Never going to live that one down, am I?" Swift Wing muttered, though her embarrassed smile suggested she was finally understanding the gravity of her actions. "Not anytime soon," I confirmed. "Now, let's get back to these defense reports. And maybe consider how to handle the fact that all the other guards will be gossiping about your display for weeks. Now, about these defense budgets-" A golden flash announced an urgent dispatch. My stomach dropped as I read the report. "No..." I breathed, the paper trembling in my hands. "Sir?" Swift Wing stepped forward, instantly alert. "There's been an incident in Ponyville. A human construction worker - James Ross, age 34. He was..." I swallowed hard. "Found dead at the edge of the Everfree Forest. Signs of timber wolf attack." Rose Petal's ears flattened. "Our first human casualty." "He was helping build the new schoolhouse," I continued, scanning the details. "Apparently went for a walk during lunch break. Didn't know about the forest's dangers." My fist clenched. "Didn't know because we hadn't finished setting up proper warning systems yet." The implications hit hard. As Military Governor, this death was ultimately my responsibility. We'd been discussing improved defenses all morning, but for James Ross, we'd been too late. My first human casualty as Military Governor. It wouldn't be my last. * * * Tim I stormed out of my office. "CAPTAIN!" All the guards jumped, Dawn Star came running towards me. "Sir!" I glared at her. "Make arrangements for immediate travel to Equestria. I'm going to Ponyville." "Sir," Captain Dawn Star's professional demeanor held firm despite my outburst, "travel arrangements will take at least-" "No." I cut her off sharply. "Not tomorrow. Not next week. Now. A man is dead because we were too slow with basic safety measures. I will not let bureaucracy delay us further." Swift Wing stepped forward. "Sir, protocol requires-" "Protocol?" I rounded on her, my voice tight with barely controlled anger. "James Ross followed 'protocol' - signed all the right forms, got all the right approvals to work in Ponyville. Fat lot of good that did him against Timberwolves." "Tim?" Twilight's voice came from behind me. She must have heard the commotion. "What's happened?" I turned to her, seeing the concern in her eyes. The anger drained slightly, replaced by grim determination. "We lost someone, Twilight. A human construction worker. The Everfree Forest... Timberwolves got him." Her ears flattened immediately, understanding darkening her expression. "Oh no..." "I need to go to Ponyville," I said, my tone softening but still firm. "Now. This can't wait." "Of course," she nodded, already turning to Captain Dawn Star. "Captain, I'll handle the portal spell myself. We can bypass standard travel protocols under emergency provisions." The Captain looked like she wanted to object, but something in Twilight's expression stopped her. Instead, she snapped to attention. "Yes, my lady. How many guards should I assign to the detail?" "Four," I answered before Twilight could. "Two for perimeter security at the site, two for close protection. We need to understand exactly what happened." Rose Petal spoke up from her position by the door. "Sir, if I may... Swift Wing and I are familiar with Timberwolf behavior from our previous postings. We'd be well-suited for this mission." I nodded sharply. "Good. Captain, select two more guards and have them ready in ten minutes. Full combat gear." As the Captain hurried off to make arrangements, Twilight stepped closer to me, her voice low. "Tim... you know this isn't your fault." "Isn't it?" I snapped, my voice rough with barely contained anger. "We've been pushing paper all morning, discussing defense improvements that should have been in place the day I was made military governor over a week ago. If we'd moved faster..." My fist clenched. "And Twilight - the foals. Sweet God, the schoolhouse he was building. We got lucky it was an adult human who wandered too close. What if it had been one of the students?" The color drained from her face. "Tim..." "What if it had been Sara?" My voice cracked slightly. "These wolves are hunting at the edge of town, right where we're building a school. We got lucky this time. A grown man died, and I'm calling that lucky because at least it wasn't a child." "Then we'll fix it," Twilight said firmly, though I could see the fear in her eyes now too. "Right now. Together." She nuzzled against my arm, but there was tension in the gesture. "But you need to focus that anger, Tim. Use it to make the changes we need, not tear yourself apart." She paused, then added, "And... you know, I am still Countess of Ponyville. This is my responsibility too." "Twilight..." "She's right, dear," Velvet's voice came from the doorway, making us all turn. She'd clearly been listening. "The embassy renovations are already finished, and those guest cabins and barracks on your property need to be started. We could close the embassy for a week, take all the guards, and handle this properly. As a family. I’ll stay here and oversee construction at home.” I turned to look at Twilight, catching something in her expression. "Are you really ready to take responsibility as Countess of Ponyville or are you just worried about leaving me alone with my guards?" Her ears flattened, but she met my gaze steadily. Mother's knowing smile didn't help matters. "Can't it be both? Yes, I'm concerned about that, but I'm also right. Ponyville is my home, Tim. Those foals - I taught some of them magic. I can't just sit here in the embassy while they're in danger." She took a deep breath. "And yes, fine, the thought of you spending a week in Ponyville with just Swift Wing and Rose Petal makes my horn itch. Happy?" "Oh, darling," Velvet interjected, her smile widening, "you really must learn to trust your husband more. Though I must say, your protective instincts are absolutely charming..." "Mother, please," Twilight groaned. "Not helping." "Actually," I said, turning to Captain Dawn Star and deliberately ignoring Velvet's amused expression, "relocating the entire guard detail to Ponyville temporarily makes tactical sense. We could secure the construction site properly, set up permanent defenses..." The Captain nodded crisply. "It would allow for more comprehensive security measures, sir. And the embassy doesn’t need guards if it’s closed. Regular building security can handle it.” "Excellent!" Velvet clapped her hooves together. "I've already discussed the construction plans with the contractors, and Princess Celestia fully supports the idea of a temporary relocation to Ponyville." I turned slowly to look at her. "How long have you been planning this?" "Planning?" Velvet's innocent expression wouldn't have fooled a child. "Why, I simply like to be prepared for all contingencies, dear. Though I must say, this tragic incident does make the timing rather... convenient." "Mother!" Twilight hissed. "Of course, I've already arranged for accommodations in Ponyville," Velvet continued smoothly. "And the guard rotation schedules are prepared, though we may need to adjust them given the circumstances." "Mother..." Twilight's warning tone made her ears flatten. "What?" Velvet asked innocently. "I simply want to ensure everyone is properly situated. Though the guard quarters might be somewhat... cozy." That knowing smile played at her lips again. "The immediate priority is securing the town," I interrupted firmly. "Guard assignments can wait until we've assessed the situation." "Of course, dear," Velvet agreed with a serene smile. "Safety first. Though I'm sure Swift Wing and Rose Petal will continue their... attentive protection of you." I pinched the bridge of my nose. "You're both impossible. This isn't about guard arrangements, Velvet. This is about protecting Ponyville." "Of course, dear," Velvet agreed with a serene smile that somehow managed to suggest exactly the opposite. "Though securing the town will require extensive patrols... such thorough attention to detail is so... important." "Speaking of details," I cut in before Twilight could object to her mother's implications, "we need to pick up Sara first. This will be her first trip to Equestria - we should at least let her pack a bag." Twilight's magic, which had begun to glow in preparation for portal creation, flickered out. "Oh! You're right. And it's your first time crossing over too." Her expression softened despite the urgency of our situation. "I wish it were under better circumstances." "Perhaps we should be a bit... discreet with the guard presence at Sara's school," Velvet suggested practically. "Earth schools or daycares might not react well to armored ponies appearing at pickup time." I nodded, my earlier militant stance deflating slightly. "Right. Of course. Swift Wing, Rose Petal - civilian clothing for daycare pickup. Or… I guess naked unless you actually have clothes to wear, but no armor. The rest of you can meet us at the portal site." Twilight muttered. “I knew he’d find a way to get them naked again…” The words echoed in my head… "The portal site? Where is it, exactly?" I asked, realizing I had no idea where we'd be crossing over. "There's a secure facility outside the city," Twilight explained. "All official travel between worlds happens there. It's more stable than creating portal spells anywhere else, and there are safety protocols in place." "Speaking of protocols," Captain Dawn Star interjected, "I'll have the rest of the guard detail prepare the site for a group crossing. Lady Sparkle, how long do you estimate before you arrive?" "Give us three hours," Twilight said. "The Woodlands is already a fairly long drive from Downtown Houston. Plus, Sara will need time to pack, and... well, she might have a lot of questions about her first trip to Equestria." I felt a small smile despite our grim circumstances. In all the urgency about Ponyville's security, I'd almost forgotten this would be Sara's first-time seeing Twilight's world. Our daughter was about to step into the realm of magic and talking ponies she'd only heard stories about. "She's going to be so excited," I said softly, then straightened. "Right. Let's go get our daughter. Then we can start fixing this mess." The Timberwolves might have won this round, but they'd learn soon enough what happened when they threatened children under my protection. First, though, I had to figure out how this whole portal-crossing thing worked. And hopefully keep Velvet from making any more... creative guard scheduling suggestions along the way. * * * Twilight The embassy rented a car and hired a driver for the trip, as we wouldn’t be taking Tim’s personal vehicle. I could tell that Tim wasn’t used to not driving but this was a limousine. The drive to Sara's after-school daycare felt longer than usual with two naked Royal Guards in the backseat. Even without their armor, Swift Wing and Rose Petal carried themselves with unmistakable military bearing. "Remember," I whispered to Tim as we pulled into the parking lot, "we need to act normal. We don't want to frighten Sara or the other children." Sara burst out of the daycare doors with her usual enthusiasm, then stopped short at the sight of our unexpected passengers after we had waved her over to us. Her eyes went wide with wonder. "Daddy! You have new pretty pony friends like Mommy!" She climbed into the car, staring openly at the guards. "Are they magic too?" "Not quite like Mommy," Tim explained carefully. "Swift Wing can fly though - she's a pegasus." "Pretty wings!" Sara exclaimed, making Swift Wing blush slightly under her professional demeanor. "And your red friend is so shiny!" Rose Petal maintained her composure, but I caught the slight softening in her expression at Sara's innocent admiration. "Sweetie," I interjected before she could ask more questions, "how would you like to see where Mommy comes from? We're going to visit Equestria!" Sara's squeal of delight effectively ended any further discussion of the guards' appearance. As she bombarded us with questions about magic and ponies, I caught Tim's amused glance. Leave it to our daughter to defuse tension with pure childhood wonder. Though I noticed he was careful to keep Sara between himself and the guards for the entire ride home. * * * Twilight It took an hour to pack bags for both Sara and Tim. As urgent as everything was, we didn’t know how long we’d be there, so I had to pack enough for both of them. I levitated the last bag into place and trotted outside, only for my stomach to drop. Sara was soaring above our driveway on Swift Wing's back, her delighted squeals mixing with steady wingbeats. I shot Tim a look that could have melted steel. "Why is Sara riding her?" He smirked, arms crossed casually. "Better than me riding her. You haven’t given Sara any pony rides lately, and I think she likes flying. Better for me to keep my feet on the ground, after all, it’s quite the view from here.” "Tim!" I hissed, my magic crackling with maternal panic. "She could fall!" "I assure you, Lady Sparkle," Swift Wing called down, banking gently with Sara, "I would never let harm come to Sir Tim's daughter." Rose Petal stood nearby looking sympathetic, though she couldn't hide her blush at Tim's comment about riding. She kept stealing glances at him when she thought I wasn't looking. I looked up and saw Swift Wing's small blue teats jiggling overhead, her athletic pegasus build so different from my increasingly maternal form. Was her marehood winking? Did she like having Sara on her back or is that from the fact she knows Tim is watching her with a perfect view from under her. Damn Tim for making me notice these things. Damn him for making me count the ways these guards were prettier than his pregnant wife. "Down," I ordered, my horn glowing with barely contained fury. "Now. And you," I glared at Tim, trying not to notice how Rose Petal was practically presenting herself to him, "are sleeping on the couch tonight." "My lady," Rose Petal interjected, her voice carrying that honey-sweet tone that made my horn spark, "I could stand guard over him-" she caught herself at my expression "-from a professional distance, of course." I pinned my ears back, watching how both guards managed to position themselves just so, making sure Tim had the best possible view of their assets. "The only thing you'll be guarding is the front door. From the outside. Both of you." As Swift Wing landed with Sara, making sure to arch her back just enough to show off that perfect athletic build one last time, I made a mental note to have a very long talk with Celestia about these "traditional" guard assignments. Though privately, I had to admit - keeping the pegasus guard occupied with Sara might not be the worst idea. At least she couldn't press those perfect little teats against my husband while she was foalsitting. And maybe, just maybe, if I was lucky, she'd forget how to wink that marehood of hers by the time Sara's flying lesson was over. This couldn’t possibly get any worse… Traffic made us thirty minutes late to the portal site. When we arrived, Captain Dawn Star was practically prancing with anxiety. "Sir Tim! My deepest apologies for any security gaps during your transit. I take full responsibility for not anticipating Houston traffic patterns." She bowed deeply, and I noticed with growing irritation how the Captain's shorter-than-average unicorn height put her muzzle right at my husband's crotch level. She was practically nuzzling him while apologizing, though whether she realized it or not was debatable. "Your safety is our highest priority and I-" "Captain," Rose Petal whispered urgently, "Lady Sparkle's horn is starting to spark..." Mother stepped forward to say her goodbyes, barely containing her amusement. "Now dears, do be careful in Ponyville. I'll have everything ready here when you return, the cabin plans, the barracks, a new garden or two…" She winked at Tim. "Perhaps even some new guard protocols or embassy staff…” "Mother!" I snapped, just as Sara asked innocently, "Why is Mommy's horn all glowy?" Tim, wisely, stepped closer to me and further from the guards. "Maybe we should focus on the portal protocols? Velvet, you'll keep us updated on the construction?" "Of course, dear," Mother practically purred. "I'll make sure everything is properly... arranged for your return." The captain straightened immediately, though I noticed she still kept glancing at Tim with that same protective intensity. At least crossing to Equestria would give me a break from Mother's knowing smirks. For a while, anyway. * * * Tim Blinding light faded to reveal dense, dark forest. My stomach lurched from the portal crossing, but training kicked in as I registered the guards' instant reaction. Swift Wing and Rose Petal flanked Sara and me while the other guards formed a perimeter. The forest felt wrong - unnatural shadows and strange sounds that set my combat instincts on edge. "Timberwolves," Captain Dawn Star warned quietly. "Two packs, north and east. Moving parallel to us." "Twilight?" I pulled Sara closer. "Portal destination shifted," she muttered, horn glowing. "Something's interfering with the usual arrival point." "Move out," the captain ordered. "Diamond formation. Southwest bearing to Ponyville." We pressed through the undergrowth, guards scanning continuously. Sara clung to my neck, silent for once. A distant howl made my skin crawl. "Almost there," Twilight assured us as town lights appeared ahead. "The forest's edge is just beyond those trees." The wolves never showed themselves, but their presence followed us until we crossed into Ponyville proper. Only then did the guards relax slightly - though I noticed they kept glancing back at the tree line. This was what had killed James Ross. And it was far too close to where foals would be going to school. * * * Tim The hotel lobby had been transformed into a makeshift command center, maps and tactical displays covering every surface. Guards moved with practiced efficiency, setting up communication crystals and ward stones. "Perfect," I said, surveying the space. "We can coordinate all defensive operations from here. Direct line of sight to both the schoolhouse site and the forest edge." Twilight's expression darkened as she watched Swift Wing and Rose Petal efficiently arranging the tactical displays. "And I suppose you'll need your personal guards close at hoof? For tactical reasons?" "Actually," Captain Dawn Star interjected before I could respond, "standard protocol requires Sir Tim's personal security detail to maintain constant proximity during combat operations. The command post will need to be fully staffed at all times." "Fully staffed?" Twilight's voice carried a dangerous edge. "And I suppose that means all twelve of you will be rotating through. Taking turns providing close protection?" "Twilight," I said quietly, "this isn't about guard arrangements. A man died today. We need this command post operational immediately." "And it has to be here? Not at the library? Where your wife will be staying?" I met her gaze steadily. "The library doesn't have direct lines of sight to our vulnerable points. And you know your magic isn't reliable enough right now for combat operations." Her ears flattened at the reminder of her condition. "So instead, you'll stay here? With them? While I'm alone at the library?" "You won't be alone," I assured her. "Sara needs a safe place to stay, away from potential combat zones. And your magic expertise will be crucial for researching methods to strengthen the town's magical barriers." "Right," she muttered. "Because that's all I'm good for right now. Research. While your guards handle the real work." I could see where this was heading. But before I could respond, Captain Dawn Star stepped forward with perfect military precision. "My lady," she began diplomatically, "perhaps we could arrange for additional quarters here at the command post? A private suite for you and Sir Tim, separate from the guard barracks and operations center?" I winced internally. The Captain meant well, but mentioning the guard barracks was exactly the wrong thing to say. Twilight's horn began to spark dangerously. "Guard barracks?" she asked, her voice deceptively calm. "You're planning to house all twelve of my mother's personally selected guards right next to my husband's quarters? Why don't you just go ahead and stop pretending! Just arrange for two of them to sleep directly with him! After all, they've already had their marehoods in his face during 'training accidents!'" I tried to calm her down. "Please, Twilight. It's not what you think. This will be okay, I promise." "Absolutely not!" Twilight stamped her hoof in the hotel lobby. "We've only been married two weeks, and you want to stay here? With them? After what happened at the gym today?" "Mommy?" Sara's small voice cut through the tension. "Are you and Daddy getting divorced? Tommy at school said his parents fought like this before they split up..." The color drained from Twilight's face as she realized what we'd been saying in front of our daughter. I knelt down quickly beside Sara. "No, sweetie, absolutely not," I assured her, pulling her close. "Mommy and I just disagree about where to stay, that's all. We love each other very much." I kept my voice firm as I stood, channeling the authority I'd developed in the military, though now tempered by our daughter's fears. "This is a military operation, Twilight. I need to be at the command center. Captain?" Dawn Star stepped forward. "Lady Sparkle, as Military Governor, Sir Tim holds the equivalent rank of General in the Royal Guard. Protocol demands he remain at the forward operating base with his personal guard detail if he’s not in the field with his troops.” "Protocol?" Twilight's ears flattened. "This morning you were all happy to ignore protocol for 'traditional arrangements.'" "That was different," I said, maintaining my composure. "A man died today. I need to focus on preventing more deaths. No distractions." "So, I'm a distraction now?" Her voice cracked. I softened, stepping closer, conscious of Sara watching us. "You're the best kind of distraction, but you can't use your full magic right now - we both know why. Maybe it's time we told Sara about the foal, but until then, you're safer at the library with reduced magic. This is my job." I met her gaze firmly. "Traditions or not, they aren't going to lift their tails in a combat zone. We'll address your concerns and jealousy later. But if you don't trust that I love you, then we have a bigger problem than Timberwolves." Swift Wing and Rose Petal maintained their professional stance, though I caught their ears twitching at the conversation. Both mares seemed particularly focused on avoiding any suggestive poses or movements, likely aware of Sara's presence. I turned to my guards. "Can you please say something to reassure my wife? And keep in mind our daughter is listening." Both mares snapped to attention. Swift Wing spoke first: "Lady Sparkle, we swore oaths to protect Sir Tim. In a combat zone, that means exactly that - protection, nothing more." "Your husband commands our utmost respect," Rose Petal added firmly. "And that includes respecting your marriage and family. We both take what he told us very seriously." Twilight's ears twitched, but she nodded slowly. "Fine. But we're still discussing this later. Stay safe... all of you." "Yes, Lady Sparkle," they responded, maintaining their focus on me but with a new professional distance that seemed to ease some of Twilight's tension. Sara tugged at Twilight's mane. "Can't we stay with Daddy?" "No sweetie," Twilight sighed. "Daddy has important work to do." "That's what Tommy's dad said before they got divorced," Sara muttered, just loud enough for everyone to hear. "He said he had 'important work' too." "Captain," I called out as Twilight and Sara departed. "I need a weapon. I'm joining the patrols." Sara's eyes went wide with fear. "Mommy? Is Daddy going to get hurt fighting the bad guys? Like the man who died?" I caught Twilight's ear twitch as she hesitated at the door, but she kept walking. She understood - this wasn't about proving anything. A man had died on my watch. I wouldn't sit in a command post while others risked their lives. Swift Wing and Rose Petal exchanged glances before falling into formation behind me. Combat would be a far safer activity than navigating whatever traditional expectations they'd arrived with. * * * Twilight I watched Tim head toward the forest edge with his guards, trying to focus on his confident stride and not how perfectly Swift Wing's wings framed her flanks, or how Rose Petal somehow managed to make even combat-ready posture look seductive. Sara's hand in my hoof kept me from doing something foolish with my unreliable magic. "Mommy? Why are you grinding your teeth?" I forced my jaw to relax. "Just worried about Daddy, sweetie." We crossed the town square, the library's familiar shape offering little comfort as I watched Tim's group disappear around a corner. A flash of midnight blue caught my eye - Swift Wing demonstrating proper aerial reconnaissance posture. Again. My horn sparked involuntarily. "That's the third time she's done that move," I muttered. "Nopony needs to arch their back that much for a simple patrol pattern." "What move, Mommy?" "Nothing, sweetie. Just... guard things." I turned toward the library steps, then caught Rose Petal leaning in close to point something out on Tim's map. Too close. The nearby flowerpot rattled ominously. That did it. "Let's go up to the balcony," I said, perhaps a bit too brightly. "We can... keep an eye on Daddy from there. Make sure he stays safe." And if I happened to cast a tiny eavesdropping spell while we watched... well, that was just being thorough. For security purposes. Obviously. "Look Sara, you can see clear across town from here! Why don't you draw a picture of everything you can spot?" I levitated her sketchbook and crayons from our bags, grateful when she settled into her artistic focus. Which left me free to focus on my own... observations. The first hour wasn't so bad. Tim maintained a professional demeanor as they established patrol routes. But then Swift Wing just had to demonstrate proper aerial maneuvers. Again. And again. And again. Each demonstration seemed to require more elaborate movements, more "accidental" displays of her athletic form, more reasons to hover right at my husband's eye level with those perfect little teats of hers. Any closer and he'd be able to suckle her - not that I was giving him ideas. I paced the library balcony, my hooves wearing a path in the ancient wood as I watched Tim and his guards make another circuit of the town. My horn kept sparking with suppressed magic every time Swift Wing "accidentally" brushed against him, or Rose Petal positioned herself to give him an "optimal tactical view." "They're just doing their jobs," I muttered to myself, though my tail lashed when Swift Wing demonstrated proper aerial maneuvers with what seemed like unnecessary hip swaying, almost identical to what she did herself to catch her husband's eye… "Completely professional. Nothing to worry about..." Then Rose Petal leaned in close to point out something on Tim's map, her fuller earth pony form pressed against him in a way that made my horn spark dangerously. The nearby flowerpot exploded. "Mommy?" Sara's voice quavered. "Your horn is doing the scary sparking again. Maybe... maybe I should go color inside where it's safer?" My heart clenched at her nervous tone. "That's probably a good idea, sweetie. I'm sorry if I frightened you." I watched her hurry inside, my guilt warring with my anger at the guards for making me lose control like this. "Having some control issues, Twilight?" Spike's voice made me jump. "I'm fine," I said through gritted teeth, magically gathering the scattered dirt and pottery shards. "Just watching Tim review defensive positions with his... experienced guards." "Uh huh." Spike crossed his arms. "And that's why you're up here casting eavesdropping spells instead of down there helping?" My ears flattened. "I am not-" The remnants of the broken pot clattered to the ground as my magic flickered with guilt. "How did you know?" "Twilight, I've known you since you were a filly. Your horn glows a specific shade of purple when you're spying on someone." He paused. "Also, you keep muttering 'stop touching my husband' under your breath." I felt my cheeks heat. "I just want to make sure they're staying professional! Did you see how Swift Wing keeps 'demonstrating' aerial moves? She's using every trick I ever used on Tim - and some I wish I'd thought of!" "And I'm sure Tim is completely focused on their flying techniques," Spike deadpanned. "It's not like he's down there actually trying to protect Ponyville or anything." "That's not-" I started to protest, then caught sight of Rose Petal's latest "tactical demonstration" that involved bending over the map in a way that made my teeth grind. "Did she really need to flag her tail that much to point out guard tower positions? I mean, I know earth pony flanks are naturally fuller, but that was just showing off!" "Maybe you should go down there," Spike suggested reasonably. "You know, actually participate in the defense planning instead of up here making yourself crazy and exploding flowerpots? Sara's still nervous about that, by the way." "I can't," I admitted, my ears drooping. "My magic isn't reliable enough right now. I'd just be in the way." I rubbed my still-flat belly. "And we haven't told anyone about the foal yet..." "So instead, you're up here watching your embassy guards throw themselves at your husband while getting progressively more jealous?" Spike shook his head. "Yeah, that seems healthy. Though maybe scaring Sara isn't the best way to handle this?" I opened my mouth to argue, then closed it as Tim's voice carried clearly through my eavesdropping spell: "The schoolhouse will need at least two guard towers. Swift Wing, what's the standard patrol radius for aerial surveillance?" His tone was pure military focus. No reaction to Swift Wing's theatrical wing fluttering or Rose Petal's strategic positioning. Just a commander reviewing defenses with his troops. "Twenty wingbeats up gives optimal visibility without sacrificing response time, sir," Swift Wing replied, all professional attention despite her earlier flirting. "Good. Rose Petal, we'll need reinforced barriers along this entire stretch. Something that can withstand a full pack assault." My ears burned with shame as I continued listening. While I'd been up here imagining the worst, Tim had been focused entirely on protecting Ponyville. The guards had matched his dedication, their earlier seduction attempts replaced by genuine military expertise. "You know," Spike said quietly, watching my expression shift, "maybe you should trust him more. He did pick you, after all." "I do trust him," I whispered, watching Tim mark another defensive position with precise efficiency. "I just... Mother makes everything so complicated with her schemes. And they're both so beautiful... Swift Wing with her perfect athletic build, Rose Petal with those earth pony curves... meanwhile I'm getting fatter by the day and can barely control my magic..." "And you're carrying his foal," Spike reminded me. "Which honestly? Is way more impressive than some fancy flight moves or strategic tail flagging." I managed a small smile, though I still winced when Swift Wing demonstrated another unnecessarily acrobatic maneuver. "I suppose you're right. Though we really need to discuss appropriate guard attire. No one needs armor that form-fitting for embassy duty." "Says the mare not wearing anything at all," Spike muttered, dodging my halfhearted swat. "At least Sara's calmed down about the exploding pot-" A filly’s high-pitched scream cut through our banter - a sound that made my blood run cold. "I'll get Sara!" Spike called, already running inside. "You keep watch!" The Timberwolf’s massive form seemed to absorb the evening shadows, its wooden joints creaking like ancient trees in a storm. Each step crushed cobblestones beneath paws larger than wagon wheels, the smell of dark magic and decaying wood rolling off it in waves. Green magic sparked between its wooden segments as it moved - a horrible parody of natural motion that made my coat stand on end. The scream had shattered the evening quiet, the Timberwolf bearing down on a small unicorn filly who'd frozen in terror, her ice cream dropped and forgotten. By Celestia, was that Sweetie Belle? Before I could gather my magic, Tim was already moving. "TIMBERWOLF!" Swift Wing's cry rang out across the square. I lurched forward against the balcony railing, my horn sparking uselessly as pregnancy hormones disrupted my magic. But Tim... oh Celestia, Tim was running toward the monster, Swift Wing and Rose Petal flanking him with military precision. "HEY!" Tim's voice boomed with command authority. "Come eat me! I have more meat on my bones you stupid dog!" The wolf's head snapped toward him, glowing green eyes fixing on the larger prey. My heart climbed into my throat as Tim positioned himself between the beast and Sweetie Belle. What was visible of his face through my tears showed no fear - only calculated determination as he kept the wolf's attention. Tim moved with fluid precision - the kind of grace that only comes from countless hours of combat training. But there was something else in his stance, something I'd never seen before. Pure, focused rage channeled into deadly purpose. His eyes never left the wolf's glowing gaze as he positioned himself, deliberately drawing its attention from Sweetie Belle. Each step was calculated, each taunt precisely timed to keep the predator's focus. Rose Petal moved like liquid crimson, snatching Sweetie Belle to safety while Swift Wing took to the air, her wings creating deliberate noise to help draw the wolf's focus. They'd clearly drilled this maneuver, working with Tim as a seamless unit. "That's right," Tim taunted, backing away slowly. "Fresh human meat right here. Bet you've never tasted anything like it." I couldn't breathe, couldn't think. My husband was facing down a creature of living wood and dark magic with nothing but his wits and two guards. And he'd done it without hesitation, putting himself at risk to save a child. Every protective instinct in my body screamed to teleport down there, to blast the wolf with everything I had. But I knew - I knew - that attempting complex magic in my condition could harm our unborn foal. I could only watch, praying to Celestia that I wouldn't lose him to his own bravery. Those guards I'd been so jealous of minutes ago were now the only thing standing between my husband and death. Swift Wing's perfect athletic form and Rose Petal's earth pony strength weren't for seduction now - they were being used exactly as they should be, protecting the stallion I loved. The wolf lunged, its wooden jaws unhinging like a snake's to reveal row after row of jagged wooden teeth. The sound it made wasn't a bark or growl - it was the groan of ancient trees being torn apart, amplified by dark magic into something that made my bones vibrate. Time seemed to slow as I watched those jaws descend toward my husband. Swift Wing's scream pierced my heart as the Timberwolf's jaws closed around her. She'd saved Tim, pushing him clear at the cost of her own safety. But Tim... my Tim... his roar of rage matched the wolf's own savagery. I was already moving, my hooves clattering down the library's spiral staircase. My magic might be unreliable, but my legs still worked. I nearly fell twice in my haste, the sound of splintering wood and cracking bone mingling with Swift Wing's scream spurring me faster. By the time I burst through the library doors, Tim had transformed. The careful, tactical movement exploded into raw fury. His roar wasn't just anger - it was primal, protective rage. His sword moved almost faster than my eyes could track, the blade finding the exact spot where the head met the body. His sword moved like lightning, severing the creature's wooden head from its body in one perfect arc. But he wasn't done. With strength born of desperation and fury, Tim wedged himself between the disembodied jaws, muscles straining as he forced them apart. Swift Wing tumbled free, bloodied but alive. "Rose! Cover us!" Tim barked the order while dropping to his knees beside Swift Wing. His combat medic training took over, hands moving with practiced efficiency over her injuries. The wolf's head tried to reform with its body, but Tim stood up and used his boot to crush the chaos core at its heart, green light sputtering out forever. I galloped from the library, horn glowing with what little magic I could safely manage. "Tim! More could come!" "I know," he replied without looking up, focused entirely on Swift Wing's wounds. "Guard formation, ten-meter radius. Rose, north. Twilight, south. I need two minutes." I held position, scanning the shadows while Tim worked. Swift Wing's breathing steadied under his care. The professional distance from earlier was gone - replaced by the intense focus of a combat medic determined to save his patient. "Sir," Swift Wing managed weakly, "I'm sorry I failed-" "You protected me," Tim cut her off, tightening a bandage. "That's your job. Now let me do mine and keep you alive." The raw emotion in his voice - not for a potential conquest, but for a wounded soldier under his command - made my earlier jealousy seem ridiculous. This was who Tim truly was: a protector, a healer, a leader who would risk everything to save others. Even if those others happened to be attractive guards who might or might not harbor inappropriate feelings for him. Those two minutes stretched into eternity as I watched Tim carry Swift Wing's limp form to the hotel. Her wings dragged limply, leaving trails in the dirt. The same wings that had saved my husband's life moments ago. His hands moved with practiced precision as he worked. Combat medic training had taken over completely - each movement efficient and purposeful. His touch remained gentle, professional, focused entirely on saving his guard. "Stay with me, soldier," he murmured, applying pressure to stem the bleeding. "That's an order." I couldn't look away, even though the sight of blood made my stomach turn. My horn kept trying to spark healing magic, but pregnancy made complex spells dangerous. All I could do was watch and wait for the doctor, guarding the door against further attacks. The mare who'd made me so jealous now owed her life to my husband's skills. And my husband, who'd refused her advances, now fought to save her with the same intensity he brought to everything that mattered. Rose Petal maintained her guard position with military precision, but I caught her stealing glances at Tim as he worked, her expression a mix of professional admiration and something deeper. The way she positioned herself - not to show off her fuller earth pony form now, but to provide the best possible defensive coverage - spoke volumes about her priorities. Love, I realized, took many forms. Not all of them are simple. Not all of them are easy to understand. Sometimes it looked like a pegasus sacrificing herself to save a commander. Sometimes it looked like an earth pony standing guard while desperately wanting to help. And sometimes it looked like a husband ignoring everything else to save a mare who'd tried to seduce him hours earlier. Maybe Mother's guard selections weren't entirely misguided - just aimed at the wrong kind of love. The doctor burst through the door in a flash of white coat and confident magic. I recognized him from my own checkups in Canterlot - one of Equestria's best trauma healers. "Stand aside," he ordered, horn already glowing. Tim stepped back, his uniform stained with blood. The doctor's magic enveloped Swift Wing, knitting flesh and mending bone. "Another minute without proper first aid, she'd have bled out," the doctor stated matter-of-factly. "Your field medicine saved her life, Sir Tim. Though I'd appreciate it if you'd stop giving me patients to practice on." Tim just nodded, exhaustion finally showing in his stance. I moved to support him, feeling his slight tremor as the adrenaline faded. "She saved my life," he said quietly. "I just returned the favor." The doctor's horn glowed brighter. "Well, she'll live to save it again. Though perhaps with less dramatic results next time." "Good work, everyone," Tim said, pushing himself up from beside Swift Wing's bed. His voice sounded strained, but I attributed it to exhaustion. "Rose Petal, maintain guard position. I need to check the perimeter-" He took three steps toward me, swaying slightly. Something was wrong. Very wrong. "Tim?" He tried to smile, but it came out as a grimace. "Just tired, honey. I should probably..." His next step faltered. I saw the blood then, darkening his shirt, dripping steadily onto the floor. It wasn’t Swift Wing’s blood… it was his blood. "Twilight," he whispered, reaching for me. "I think the wolf... got a piece..." The blood spreading across the floor wasn't just drops now - it was a steady flow that had soaked through layers of uniform, leaving a trail I'd somehow missed in my focus on Swift Wing. How long had he been bleeding? How much strength had it taken to carry Swift Wing while hiding this? Rose Petal's fuller earth pony build seemed to shrink as she processed what was happening - all that strength, all those subtle poses and seductive movements from earlier, now useless to help the stallion bleeding out before her. I recognized that helplessness. It matched my own. "Doctor! Please! He's hurt!" "Fool man," the doctor muttered as his magic revealed the full extent of the damage. "The wolf's teeth caught you when you went for Swift Wing, didn't they? These puncture patterns... you must have felt them tear in deeper every time you moved. Some of these splinters are inches from your heart." "Had to... keep pressure on her wounds," Tim managed through gritted teeth. "Couldn't risk... distraction..." Tim's words came out weak, each one an effort as the doctor worked. "Someone's already died today." Blood stained his lips as he spoke. "On Earth, a combat medic lives twenty-eight seconds on average. I've beaten the odds a hundred times." My heart clenched. Even now, statistics. Always the medic. "Luck runs out eventually." His hand squeezed my hoof. "I couldn't let her die to save myself. I'm a knight..." His eyes found mine, fever-bright but clear. "And like Celestia whom I serve, I love all of my little ponies..." The room fell silent except for the hum of healing magic Swift Wing's tears fell quietly from her bed. The pegasus who'd been so proud of her athletic form, who'd used those perfect wings to catch Tim's eye hours ago, now had them wrapped protectively around herself, making her look smaller, younger. More vulnerable than I'd ever seen her. Rose Petal stood rigidly at attention, but I saw her shoulders shake, eyes filled with unshed tears. And I... I finally understood what kind of man I'd married. Not just my Tim, but Sir Timothy - a true knight who would die for his duty, who saw these guards not as potential conquests but as his sacred charge. "You're not dying today," I whispered fiercely. "I forbid it. As your wife, as Countess of Ponyville, as the mare carrying your foal - I forbid it." The doctor's magic glowed brighter. "Listen to your wife, Sir Tim. The odds just got better." * * * Tim Pain pulled me from sleep, but voices kept me still. Twilight was speaking softly with Rose and Swift Wing in our hotel room. The scent of healing magic and bandages hung heavy in the air, mingling with the lingering traces of Timberwolf that still clung to my torn uniform. "He told us very clearly this morning," Swift Wing's voice came quietly from her recovery bed, her wings rustling softly against the sheets. "Said he didn't care about Equestrian traditions or expectations. That you were all he wanted or needed. We... we didn't believe him at first. Most nobles say that, then..." "We should be honest about everything," Rose said softly, her usual confidence replaced by genuine remorse. "Your mother... she selected us specifically. Said we'd be 'receptive' if Sir Tim made advances. She even gave us copies of 'The Captain's Mare' as... research material." Her voice caught slightly. "Said it would help us understand what Earth males might expect." "All twelve of us in the detail," Swift added, her breathing still labored from her injuries, "we volunteered for Earth duty to escape Equestrian nobles. Even if similar situations arose... somehow it felt safer with a human. At least he was an unknown factor, not like..." She trailed off, unable to finish. "We tested him anyway," Rose admitted, shame evident in her voice. "The sparring session... we thought maybe physical activity would change his mind. Most nobles, when their blood gets hot... Swift Wing even deliberately fell into that compromising position. We're not proud of it now." "But he stayed professional," Swift continued, wincing as she shifted position. "Though... we should confess something, Lady Sparkle. When he started teasing you about the guard arrangements..." Rose's voice held a note of embarrassment. "We played along. Made it seem more possible than it was. The way he used our presence to make you jealous was... rather adorable. All those jokes about the Ponyfinder app and guard protocols..." "If we couldn't have him," Swift added softly, "we could at least help him tease you. It seemed harmless at the time. Even that training accident... we never meant for it to go so far." "Never had a noble turn us down before," Rose said, her voice thick with emotion. "Usually, they at least flirt back. They expect certain... privileges. But Sir Tim... He just wanted to do his duty. To protect ponies. To honor you. Even when we were flagging our tails during combat training..." "When he saved me," Swift's voice cracked slightly, "he didn't hesitate. Didn't try to use it to his advantage. Just... treated me like any other soldier under his command. Even while he was bleeding out himself..." A quiet sob escaped her. "We'd spent all day trying to seduce him, and he nearly died saving me without a second thought." "He carried me to safety," she continued, "hiding his own wounds the whole time. No noble I've ever served would have done that. They would have..." She stopped, composing herself. "Your mother was right about his character, Lady Sparkle. Just... not in the way she intended." I kept my breathing steady, letting them talk. Twilight's hoof found mine in the darkness. The same mare who’s horn that had sparked with jealous magic hours earlier now held nothing but gentle understanding. "I know," she whispered. "That's who he is. That's why I love him. And... I'm sorry about my mother's meddling. I should have trusted him more. Should have known better than to let her romance novels and guard selection influence my faith in him." I squeezed her hoof gently, letting her know I was awake. That I'd heard. That I understood. The pain in my chest seemed less important now, somehow. Sometimes the strongest bonds form in the strangest ways - through combat, through duty, through choosing what's right over what's expected. Even if your mother-in-law tries to arrange otherwise with careful guard selections and convenient training accidents. I opened my eyes fully, letting them know I was awake. "Thank you for your honesty. Now let me be honest as well." I shifted carefully, mindful of my wounds. "That was my first battle with a sword, and it was so cool..." A weak laugh turned into a wince as stitches pulled. "Though next time, maybe we skip the getting bitten part. And Swift Wing?" I turned to face her bed. "That aerial maneuver was impressive… even if I'm pretty sure combat demonstrations doesn't usually require quite that much hip swaying." Swift Wing had the grace to blush, her wings rustling with embarrassment. "Sir, about that... and the training accident..." "And Rose," I continued, managing a small grin despite the pain, "I have to admit, your earth pony strength was impressive. Though I'm still not convinced that bending over the map quite that dramatically was strictly necessary for tactical planning." Rose Petal's crimson coat darkened further. "We may have been... overly enthusiastic in our interpretation of traditional guard duties." "Which reminds me," I said, squeezing Twilight's hoof. "Honey, I think we need to have a talk with your mother about her guard selection criteria. Somehow I doubt 'willingness to accidentally fall into compromising positions' was on the official requirements list." Twilight snorted despite herself. "Mother probably called it 'adaptability in dynamic situations.'" "More like 'creative interpretation of creating opportunities protocols,'" Swift Wing muttered, then covered her muzzle with a hoof, eyes wide at her own boldness. The tension broke as we all laughed, though mine quickly turned to a groan as my injuries protested. "Ow. No making the injured human laugh. Doctor's orders, I'm sure." "Sir," Rose Petal said, her professional demeanor cracking slightly, "we truly are sorry for our behavior. We never meant to cause problems in your marriage." "I meant what I said this morning," I replied, growing serious. "About friendship first. Real friendship." I paused, gathering my thoughts. "And I'd like to expand on that now. If you're willing to listen?" Both guards straightened, their ears perked forward attentively. "I've been thinking about what you said - about volunteering for Earth duty to escape certain... situations. About feeling safer with a human commander." My hand found Twilight's hoof again. "So let me be clear: if you desire some of my love... let me love you like a little sister." Swift Wing's breath caught audibly. Rose Petal's ears perked forward even further. "I'd like to respect you as guards, treat you as friends, and love you as family. No traditions, no expectations, no political arrangements." I managed a small smile. "Just a very strange family doing our best to protect each other. What do you say?" The silence held weight. Then Swift Wing spoke, her voice thick with emotion: "We'd be honored... big brother." "Family," Rose Petal agreed softly, her own eyes suspiciously bright. "That's better than any tradition." "Though," Swift Wing added with a hint of her earlier playfulness, "does this mean we have to stop deliberately falling into compromising positions during training?" "Swift Wing!" Rose Petal hissed, but she was fighting back a smile. "What? I'm just asking for clarity on the new protocols. As his sister, I should probably avoid accidentally pressing my marehood into his face..." "Oh gods," Twilight groaned, but she was laughing now too. "I'm going to have to put up with both of you teasing him now, aren't I?" "Don't worry, Lady Sparkle," Rose Petal said with newfound confidence. "As his sisters, it's our duty to make sure he doesn't get too full of himself. Even if he did look rather heroic swinging that sword..." "Rose!" Swift Wing's scandalized tone was somewhat undermined by her giggling. "That's our brother you're talking about!" "See what you've started?" Twilight nudged me gently. "Now I have to deal with two more mares appreciating my husband's heroics." "Hey, I'm the injured one here," I protested weakly. "Shouldn't you all be pampering me instead of plotting ways to tease me?" "Oh, big brother," Swift Wing said with dangerous sweetness, "you have no idea what you've just signed up for. Just wait until we tell the other guards about our new... family arrangements." "Twilight?" I appealed to my wife. "Help?" "Sorry, dear," she replied, not sounding sorry at all. "But you're the one who wanted sisters. I'm just going to enjoy watching them keep you in line." "And here I thought having sisters would be easier than having romantic rivals," I muttered. "Starting to think I had it backwards." As laughter filled the room - careful laughter, mindful of injuries but genuine nonetheless - I realized something profound about love. Sometimes it means letting go of what you think you want to embrace something better. Sometimes it means building a family from the strangest circumstances. And sometimes it means accepting that your guards-turned-sisters are going to tease you mercilessly about your heroics for the rest of your life. At least they weren't lifting their tails anymore. "Although," Swift Wing said thoughtfully, tapping her chin with a hoof, "Lady Velvet did give us this one novel called 'The Noble's Family Secret' where the guard and the noble were actually long-lost siblings, but that didn't stop them from—" "NO!" Twilight's horn sparked dangerously. "We are NOT using Mother's romance novels as guidance anymore!" "I'm just saying," Swift Wing continued innocently, "family relationships didn't seem to discourage anypony in chapter seven when—" Maybe I spoke too soon. If they want to flag their tails, they'll find a way to justify it... "Sister or not, I WILL teleport you into the fountain," Twilight threatened, though her twitching lips betrayed her amusement. "Now I'm curious," I couldn't help adding. "Does your mother have an entire subplot of novels about forbidden family romance? Because that would explain so much about her guard selection process..." "Tim!" Twilight swatted me with her tail. "Don't encourage them!" "What? As your husband, I feel I should be informed about all possible... traditional arrangements. For cultural understanding, of course." Rose Petal nodded seriously. "There's also 'The Captain's Sister's Mare' and 'Family Guard Duty'—" "All of you are impossible," Twilight groaned, burying her face in her hooves. "I'm going to have a very long talk with Mother about her literature choices..." "Bring back reading recommendations!" Swift Wing called after her cheerfully. "Preferably something with chapters about injured nobles being nursed back to health by their devoted guard-sisters!" * * * Tim After Twilight left to fetch books, a comfortable silence fell over the room. Then I voiced the question that had been nagging at me. "Does me making you both honorary sisters fix our... short term issues?" The guards exchanged glances, some unspoken communication passing between them. "Yes," Swift Wing said carefully, adjusting her bandaged wings. "It helps more than you know. Gives us a proper place in your life, a real connection that isn't just..." She trailed off, searching for the right words. "Based on traditional expectations or noble privilege," Rose Petal finished. "Though... we should mention it's not legally binding." "What does that mean exactly?" I asked, studying their expressions. Rose Petal shifted slightly. "It means... if Lady Sparkle ever changes her mind about not wanting to share..." She glanced at Swift Wing for support. "We hope you'd think of us first," Swift Wing finished softly. "We've seen how you love, how you protect. That's... rare. And in the meantime..." Her wings rustled nervously. "We'll work on building real friendship and trust. No more accidents or tactical demonstrations." "Come here, both of you," I said, holding out my arms. They approached carefully, mindful of everyone's injuries. I gave each of them a gentle hug and a kiss on the cheek, feeling them relax into the familial affection. "It's not perfect," I whispered, "but what family is?" Swift Wing nuzzled my shoulder while Rose Petal pressed her muzzle against my other side. The gesture was purely sisterly now - warm and affectionate without any of the earlier tension. "Besides," I added with a small smile, "I think Twilight secretly enjoys having more family to help her keep me in line. Even if she'd never admit it." The sound of hoofsteps in the hallway made us all straighten up, though the comfortable warmth remained. Whatever the future held, we'd face it together - as the strangest, most unexpected family Equestria had ever seen. Twilight returned to find all three of us cuddled together on the hospital bed, looking far too comfortable for ponies who'd nearly died a few hours ago. Her expression held more amusement than jealousy now. "Well," she said, levitating a stack of books, "Ponyville must have a new librarian because somehow they have Mother's entire collection. And look what I found!" Her magic held up a worn romance novel with a suspicious glint in her eye. "'Sister's Secret' - I thought it might be appropriate. You'll never guess who gets her pregnant." "Let me guess," I said dryly. "The knight who took in an honorary sister that isn't actually related to him?" Swift Wing and Rose Petal suddenly found the ceiling fascinating. Tim squinted at the cover. "Velvet has absolutely no imagination. This cover art looks like a family photo of you and Shining Armor." I paused, studying the image more closely. "Wait, did she actually use a family photo for her romance novel?" Swift Wing peered at the book. "Is that why Lady Velvet asked for those guard portraits last month? She said they were for 'official documentation'..." "She's getting dangerously efficient at her matchmaking schemes," Twilight said, shaking her head. "Next thing you know, she'll be commissioning cover art of Tim with his new sisters." "Should we start planning foal names?" I asked mildly. "Since your mother clearly isn't planning to stop until she has grandfoals from all available sources." "Tim!" Twilight's horn sparked, but she was fighting back laughter. "What? I'm just being practical. At the rate she's going, these romance novels are starting to look more like prophecies. Though I have to ask - does she write them herself or just commission them for specific situations?" "Both," all three mares answered, then broke into giggles. "Mother's getting more... creative with her plots lately," Twilight admitted. "Though I should confess something..." Her ears flattened slightly as she settled beside us on the bed. "Going to Earth wasn't just for the adventure. I was hoping to find a husband, though I'd never admit that to Mother. I found a good one..." Her hoof touched my bandages gently. "As long as he doesn't get himself killed playing hero." "Hey," I protested weakly, "I’m not playing hero… I am a hero. That filly owes me a kiss on the cheek for how I gallantly saved her. And hey, I survived my first Timberwolf attack. That's got to count for something." "Barely," all three mares chorused, then broke into fresh giggles at their synchronization. "I'm doomed," I sighed dramatically. "Surrounded by overprotective mares who are going to gang up on me. At least Velvet isn't here to take notes for her next novel: 'The Invalid Noble: A Tale of Three Nursemaids.'" "That's what family is for," Rose Petal said smugly, then quickly added, "In a completely appropriate, sisterly way, of course." "Though according to chapter three," Swift Wing had somehow already gotten hold of the book, "being sisters doesn't stop—" "NO READING MOTHER'S NOVELS!" Twilight's magic snatched the book away, though she was fighting back laughter. "I brought them as a joke!" "Sure, you did," I teased. "Just like your mother's guard selection was completely innocent. Should we be worried that she's already writing 'The Guard Sisters' Secret: A Tale of Shared Devotion'?" "Don't give her ideas!" Twilight groaned. "Though knowing Mother, she's probably already outlined the entire trilogy." The pillow that hit my face was probably deserved, but worth it for the sound of my family laughing together. Even if that family now included two guard-sisters who were probably taking mental notes for Velvet's next bestseller. * * * Author's Note This is my longest single chapter ever in any story. This is my masterpiece. I write Commissions. DM me with story ideas //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 3 - A Not So Normal Evening //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 3 - A Not So Normal Evening Twilight I was grateful to be able to walk out of the break room under my own power instead of being carried, even if I wouldn’t have minded being carried again by Tim. Seeing the other employees at a distance, I was more than just a little nervous to face my other co-workers at Pipeline Express. For all I had gotten done, I didn’t feel like today best showed my working potential. Fortunately for me, the other employees seemed more interested in chatting with each other, and they largely ignored me, other than quick glances. I’m sure that I would learn their names and work with all of them eventually, but given everything that had already happened, it felt like a low priority. Despite my usual sociable nature, I hadn't had a chance to interact with my other co-workers. The day had been spent either working closely with Tim or recovering under his watchful eye. It hadn’t been my choice, but I simply hadn’t had time to introduce myself, let alone interact with any of them. I had to hope that the situation would improve soon. I blushed again, thinking back to the joke that Joe had quipped earlier in the day. I had a feeling that Joe and Pinkie Pie would get along great by telling jokes to each other and teasing each other, if Joe could get around to finding a way to not take it too far. The way he had teased Tim earlier was shocking, and I didn’t say anything about it at the time due to not knowing how to respond, but looking back on it now, I was more defensive of Tim now than I was this morning, although, that was partly because we had established a strong bond in a very short time. Tim clocked out on the time clock in the coordinator’s office and grabbed a time sheet for me to fill out later. The time clock had a bio-metric process to clock in and out, normally requiring a fingerprint, but I didn’t have fingers, so I’d probably be forced to use a temp style timecard for my entire time with the company. Walking to the car was easy enough. Tim unlocked it and I climbed into the passenger seat. He started the car and blasted the air conditioner, not that it would do much good for at least a few minutes. He then leaned over me to grab the seat belt and fastened me in. His frown caught me off guard though. I tensed up. “What’s wrong?” He looked at me up and down. “That seat belt was made for humans and I’m not sure it properly secures you from injury in the event of an accident. I don’t like the idea of you not being safe.” I smiled as my cheeks filled with warmth, as another blush overtook me. “Your concern for my safety is touching but I don’t see what you can do about it?” To my surprise, he got out of the car and opened the truck, getting out a harness of sorts. He came around to the passenger side and dressed me in the harness and he secured the harness to the seat belt, as it appeared to have been designed to do. The act of him dressing me in anything, let alone these thin, indecent straps, threatened to make my face melt as I was blushing even deeper, though to my relief, he didn’t seem to notice, or he was good and pretending not to notice. He tested it to his satisfaction and got back into the driver’s seat. The harness fit perfectly, and I did feel more comfortable and safer while wearing it, even if some ponies might have felt a little naughty wearing such skimpy little thing. I would normally never entertain wearing anything immodest, and I wasn’t sure how I felt about this. With my fur, no clothing was better than something intentionally immodest. Curiosity getting the better of me, I asked the most innocent question I could about the harness. “What is this, exactly?” He looked nervous. “It’s an extra-large dog safety harness for travelling. It’s meant to prevent injury to an extra large dog in the event of a car accident. I wasn’t sure it would fit you and while I like the fact that you are a little safer while wearing it in the car, I’m not sure I like the idea of using items meant for pets on you. It’s demeaning and I’m sorry.” That was the closest thing to an apology that any human had said to me about not liking how the ponies were being treated on Earth during this worker and cultural exchange. I’ll admit that the worker exchange was still new, but humans seemed capable of innovating things very quickly, so the lack of pony-friendly items was a little troubling. While the harness served a practical purpose, its design left me feeling uncomfortably exposed. I wasn't used to wearing anything so revealing, even if it was just straps. At the deepest level of my rationale, I had to admit that Tim had no idea how this harness made me feel. He wasn’t trying to sexualize me and that made it both better and worse at the same time. Even worse for me, I wasn’t sure if I could explain it to him in a way that wouldn’t make it awkward for both of us. I tried to reassure him and myself. “It’s not your fault. I’m grateful that you own something like this and are willing to let me borrow it for my own safety. Your kindness is a welcome surprise.” Tim winced as he put the car into gear, and we left the parking lot heading in the general direction of where his home was. His voice carried a tone best described as wary or tired. “I hope you still think so when we get home. My house isn’t exactly as clean as I would like it to be. I try to tidy up before I have guests over, if I know that they are coming, but the truth is that I never seem to fully catch up on cleaning the house. This job is exhausting, and then I have a 4-year-old daughter to take care of also, and she can be a handful.” I nodded, happy that his concern was something normal and not some type of regret at extending the offer to let me stay with him and his family. I tried to brush it off. “I’d be happy to lend a hoof. As your roommate, it would be easy to justify helping you clean up. I’d rather you see me as your roommate and not just as a long-term guest. Splitting the chores and the finances would probably help us both. Ponies are social creatures, and I honestly wasn’t looking forward to trying to live alone, even though that was my original plan.” Tim’s voice held a touch of concern. “Just don't go using magic on all the chores. I'd hate for the neighbors to think I've got my very own fairy godmother.” I replied playfully, with a smile. “Fairy godmother? I thought I was more of a magical roommate with benefits.” Tim started choking on air as his breath seemed to hitch, and I was momentarily worried that he would wreck the car. “Benefits?” Tim spoke the word as if shocked to hear me suggest that we were now roommates with benefits and not just going to be roommates. I nodded, and innocently added, “You know, like cleaning and cooking!” He sighed, “That is not what ‘roommate with benefits’ means. If the wrong person heard you say that we’d be teased, or worse.” I cocked my head to the side. “Okay, I’ll bite. What’s the phrase ‘roommate with benefits’ or ‘friends with benefits’ mean in human culture?” He smirked at me. “Don’t bite me too hard, I’m just the messenger. In our case… a roommate with benefits would mean that we’re hooking up with no long-term attachments promised.” I raised my eyebrows. “Hooking up?” He mumbled an answer that I could barely hear… “Sex.” I blushed but dropped it. “So, um. What else?” As for him, he nodded, and he seemed happy that I was willing to help him and not judge him for not being able to do something better without help, the awkward explanation aside. His next statement shocked me as it revealed a personal depth that I knew couldn’t be easy for him to reveal to somepony he had just met. Tim's expression darkened, and he gripped the steering wheel tighter. “It’s just… I'm grateful for the help, in whatever form I can get it in,” he said, his voice barely above a whisper. He paused, seeming to wrestle with whether to continue. Finally, he added, “Since my wife died... it's been hard to keep up with everything.” I noticed his knuckles whitening on the wheel. “I do my best," he continued, "but sometimes I feel like my daughter deserves better. Like I'm not enough.” I felt a lump in my throat. “Tim, I…” He shook his head, cutting me off gently. “We should pick up my daughter. She'll be excited to meet you.” I gulped as I wasn’t expecting such a deep admission from him. My desire to try to make him feel better caused me to try to offer some extra support as best I could. Being a roommate or even a roommate with benefits no longer felt like to was going to be enough. I was going to have to up the ante, if I could. I needed this arrangement, and I would do anything to keep it. “I’ve never been a mother, but I have helped with my friends’ younger sisters. I would never, in any way, try to take the place of your wife, but from what you’ve said, it sounds like you could benefit from having a mare’s touch.” He glanced over at me and raised an eyebrow. “I could benefit from your touch?” I gasped as I considered the possible meaning of my statement in the context of the conversation we’ve been having since we got into the car. “The household! The household could benefit from having a mare’s touch!” Tim chuckled. “You may be more correct than you know on both points, however, despite the double entendre, I won’t tease you about it. I giggled, grateful that I hadn’t made a mistake yet. “As odd as this might sound, I do need to learn more about human humor, even the inappropriate humor. You can tease me all you want to; I have thick skin.” A smile played on his lips, and he continued speaking. “Well, we need to pick my daughter up from daycare and then we need to go grocery shopping. We need to make sure that you have everything that you need for your stay. Would it be easier for us to just assume that you will end up being my roommate, with or without benefits, for the next 6 months instead of planning on you moving out in 3 weeks when you get your first paycheck?” The question startled me, but it created a wonderful opening. “It would be easier for me, but I don’t want you to commit to it if you’re unsure.” Mirth teased his lips as he spoke softly. “I’m not sure I’m going to have a choice. My daughter is going to hug you, and squeeze you, and never let you go…” * * * Tim We played music on the radio, trying to find something that Twilight liked to listen to, but we couldn’t nail down a human musical genre that she liked. It didn’t seem to matter much, as Twilight was watching the trees as we drove down a country backroad, taking a shortcut away from the heavy traffic of Texas highways heading towards home. She whispered. “The trees and grass are beautiful. After seeing how big the city was… I was afraid that Earth didn’t have any nature left.” I chuckled. “We have plenty of nature left. Unfortunately, it is often at odds with human development. I don’t know how sensitive a stomach you have, but you are likely to see a few dead animals on the side of the road. Most of them get hit by cars while a few might have died from the heat created from the asphalt roads. I wish there was a way to stop it but there has been no innovation that currently seems to work. Or if there is, it’s too expensive for the government to pay extra to implement it.” She frowned, not liking that answer. “Your society seems wealthy. Why not spend some of it balancing civilization with nature?” I sighed. “Because then we wouldn’t be as wealthy. I believe that the environment needs to be protected, but the people who control the money don’t seem to agree.” The conversation fell back into silence, music that we were both ignoring playing softly in the background, watching the trees go by. Before we knew it, I was pulling up to the Rocking Horse Daycare. Twilight tilted her head at the building. “I know that you’ve mentioned daycare a couple of times, but what exactly is daycare?” I pursed my lips. “Daycare is a form of childcare for single parents who need a safe place for their children to go to after school while they are at work. It also works for married couples in situations where both parents have to work to make ends meet. Daycare provides educational activities, a chance to learn from other children of similar ages and to have a chance to play and socialize. It’s expensive but the cost is tax deductible and is often the only option for people who don’t have any family available to help with raising the children. My wife never wanted our daughter in daycare, but after her death… I didn’t have a choice.” Twilight seemed ecstatic about my explanation. “That sounds like a wonderful idea! Equestria doesn’t have anything like this! I’ll have to write the princess and inform her of this option!” It seemed surprising to me that Equestria didn’t have daycare or the pony equivalent. “How do ponies deal with raising… um, foals, if there is no daycare?” Twilight seemed to realize that her outburst about liking the concept of daycare overshadowed my own dislike of it. She also didn’t want to sound disrespectful of my wife’s passing. She paused, considering how to explain Equestrian family dynamics. “In Equestria, we have a different approach to childcare. Our society has more mares than stallions, which has led to some unique family structures, sometimes called herding. It's not uncommon to see multiple mares sharing responsibilities in a single household, including foal-rearing. This setup allows for a balance between work and family life without the need for external childcare services.” I accepted the explanation. “I’m glad you’re getting something out of this experience. I recommend that you stay in the car as this won’t take long.” She frowned. “I’d really like to see what the inside of the daycare looks like. I’d like to see how they do things so I can note them for the princess.” I smirked at her. “Suit yourself.” I got out of the car and took the harness off her and guided her into the building. Twilight looked around the large common room. It was brightly painted and seemed to have an assortment of toys and activities spread out amongst the room. The room also seemed to be segregated so that groups of similarly aged children of different age ranges could socialize and play without including children that were too young or too old for a certain area or activity. Twilight was quick to note that all the children were between the ages of 3 and 13 years old. Twilight smiled at the layout and took mental notes about all of it to write down later. Once we were in the common area, she stayed behind me, so the staff saw me first. Tina, the Child Care Director, saw me and smiled. “Good afternoon, Mr. Tim! Hey kids, it’s Mr. Tim. Say hi!” As one, the roomful of children turned to me and droned. “Hi, Mr. Tim.” Their lack of enthusiasm had to be from how over-the-top cheerful Tina was. I smiled back anyways. “Hi kids! I got a special surprise for you. Say hi to…” “PONY!!!” All the children ran towards us the second Twilight had stepped out from behind me. As expected, they mobbed her. They were petting her and pulling her mane and tail and trying to line up to ride her. Twilight glanced over at me, silently pleading for me to do something. I tensed, fighting the urge to step in and protect Twilight from the enthusiastic children, but daycare policy was clear: I couldn't intervene with other people's kids. Given the circumstances, I might be willing to disobey that policy anyway, but it would hard for me to find a new permanent daycare on short notice. I caught Tina's eye, silently urging her to regain control of the situation. As the swarm of excited children continued to mob Twilight, I could only watch and wait for the daycare staff to restore order. Twilight, for her part, was doing her absolute best not to use magic on the children, although her facial expression now showcased an understanding of my warning. She also seemed to understand that I was powerless to do anything about it, hence my original warning. Only my own daughter seemed to have not joined in, more shocked than excited. I was grateful for not having to restrain her. It only took a few moments for Tina to snap out of it and get the children under control. Once they were behaved, she turned to admonish me. “Now Mr. Tim. We both know that it’s not pet showcase day for the children. What do you have to say for yourself?” I shrugged and turned to Twilight. “I don’t know. What do I have to say for myself, Twilight?” Twilight cleared her throat. “I am not a pet. I am an Equestrian Unicorn on Earth for the Equestrian Worker Exchange program. I don’t recall Earth having any natural born unicorns…” The blood seemed to drain from Tina’s face as the gravity of what had just happened seemed to settle upon her. “I am so sorry, Ms. Twilight. I’ll make sure that I work to educate the children on the existence of ponies that are more like humans and that are not pets. I never thought I’d meet an Equestrian. Can I help you with anything?” Twilight opened a magic portal to pull out her pen and notepad, which caused the children to all stare, transfixed on the magic. “I’d like to ask you a few questions about how daycare works. Equestria doesn’t have anything quite like this and I’d like to get the highlights to send to my government.” Tina perked up. “Of course, Ms. Twilight! I’ll answer whatever questions you have!” Twilight asked her questions, mostly focused on costs, how many hours per day a child could be kept at daycare and other general questions while I gathered all my daughter’s stuff and put it in the car. I had everything ready to go by the time Twilight had finished writing down everything and I had managed to nudge my shy daughter over to meet her. “Twilight? This is my daughter, Sara. Sara… this is Twilight Sparkle. Say hi.” Sara walked forward to Twilight and wrapped her arms around Twilight’s neck, crying. “Pony.” Twilight smiled and wrapped a hoof around Sara, bringing her closer for a hug. “Human.” Sara giggled and then screamed when she started floating, levitating in Twilight’s magic. “I’m flying!” Twilight managed to place the wiggling girl onto her back. “Ready to go home?” Sara leaned forward and wrapped her arms around Twilight’s neck. “Yup. Giddy-up, pony.” Twilight giggled before rearing up on her hind legs like she had seen in at least one western she had watched the first week she had been on Earth, causing Sara to scream in delight. The other children seemed upset about being excluded but this wasn’t a normal situation for any of us. I opened the door for Twilight so she could trot out the door with Sara on her back. I unlocked the car and showed Twilight how to secure Sara in the car seat. I knew that Twilight would never drive my car, but I felt like it was important for Twilight to understand how other human safety devices worked. Every learning experience was important to Twilight, and I loved teaching her as much as she loved learning. We all climbed back into the car, and I sighed as I started the car and headed towards our next stop. “Next stop, Walmart. I hope you have an idea of what you want for dinner.” * * * Twilight The ride to Walmart from the daycare was very short, as it was less than a mile away. Tim looked worried in a way that I hadn’t seen previously, and I was forced to wonder if what happened at the daycare upset him in some way, other than him not being able to protect me from the excited children. We pulled into the parking lot of the giant store, and he got Sara out of her car seat. As expected, she turned to me. “Pony ride?” I nodded and went to place her on my back when Tim stopped me. “No Sara. It’ll have to wait until later. You can ride in the cart like normal.” Sara looked confused and pointed at me. “But… but… pony?” Tim sighed in a deeply conflicted way. I chimed in. “I don’t mind, Tim… she’s not hurting me.” He looked at me and spoke with the authority of a father. “I know she’s not hurting you and I’m very happy that you like her and that she likes you, but that’s not the point right now. Walmart has very strict policies on not letting pets into the store because they don’t want the hair and fur on the food. I know that Equestrian Ponies have been given an exemption from that at the federal level, but that doesn’t mean that some people won’t give us trouble; the daycare was proof of that. You are a very pretty, very intelligent mare and I want you to be treated with the dignity and respect that you’ve earned. If we walk into that store with my daughter riding you like a pet, you will lose some of that respect. As my roommate and my co-worker, I feel obligated to protect you. I already have failed to protect you at the daycare because I’m not allowed to mess with the other children. You and Sara can play at home if you really want to, okay?” I was gob smacked by the level of respect he was giving me while also using a level of authority that my own father wielded like the best father ever. I nodded in understanding. “I’ll keep all of that in mind. Thank you, Tim.” Tim then turned to his daughter. He took both of her hands into his and spoke gently. “Sara. I know that Twilight is pony-shaped, but she is a person. She is as smart as your mother was. You can play with her at home, but in public… I need you to treat her like you would treat a teacher or your mother. Can you do that?” Sara nodded, although a little sad. “Yes, daddy.” Tim carried Sara in his arms until we got into the store when he placed her into the child seat portion of the shopping cart. I was sure to make a note of that little option as well. Equestrian foals were generally well behaved, but some mares might like a place to have them sit while doing the shopping. The door greeter raised an eyebrow at me but didn’t stop us from entering the store. I walked beside Tim while he turned to go to the open section with the fruits and vegetables. He cleared his throat to speak. “Now, I eat meat, and I don’t plan to change my diet. Humans are omnivores and we need the protein from meat plus fruits and vegetables to have a healthy diet. As hard as my job is, I can’t afford to try a vegan lifestyle, so I hope that you won’t hold that against me.” I shrugged. “Equestrian farmers raise chickens and pigs to be eaten by dragons and griffons and other creatures that eat meat. Pegasi eat fish more than the other tribes because the fish oils help keep their feathers healthy. Pork, poultry and fish you can eat, and I’ll have no problems with, but Equestrian cows can talk just like ponies do, so beef might be hard for me to swallow. I’ll try not to judge you about it and I’ll try to get over it if I can.” Tim smirked at me playfully, and I knew he was about to crack another joke. “Beef might be hard for you to swallow, huh? Well, I guess we'll have to find something else you're willing to put in your mouth.” He winced, remembering that Sara was with us, and walked it back. “I mean, food-wise! Like, uh, veggie burgers or something.” I giggled, enjoying his attempt at making a lewd joke but I also greatly respected the boundaries he had around his daughter. I asked a question that I knew would let him get out of this without Sara asking awkward questions. I smiled at Tim warmly, “What do you and Sara normally eat?” Tim nodded to himself and hummed. “Hamburgers are a cheap meal for me and Sara. I can get a 32-pack of frozen beef hamburgers for 28 dollars. The buns and cheese aren’t expensive either. I guess with you helping with the bills and groceries, I could afford some of the more expensive options that I normally have to pass up.” I smiled. “You’re crazy if you think that I’m going to be eating good while you and your daughter are forced to stick to a budget. Of course I’ll help buy food for the entire household.” With that out of the way, Tim got Mac and Cheese for Sara, and we got all the fixings for a huge salad. Enough for tonight and to pack for the next day. Looking at the veggie-burgers, like Tim had suggested, the most popular pick, according to online reviews, was a brand that was 8 burgers for 8 dollars. 32 dollars for 32 burgers wasn’t much more than he had been paying for the beef burgers, and he admitted that the cost difference wasn’t as high as he thought it was, but he also wasn’t sure how it would taste. We also got all the snacks that all of us wanted and a few boxes of my preferred breakfast oatmeal. On impulse, Tim also got a 6-pack of Redd’s Apple Ale, and I was interested in seeing if a human-made Apple Ale was better than Applejack’s Hard Apple Cider, though we would likely have to wait until the weekend to try it. The process of checking out was interesting as usual, but with my magic, I got all the items scanned and bagged very quickly. The cashier that watched over the self-checkouts had to check Tim’s ID for the Apple Ale, but it gave me a chance to pay for the entire purchase while he was distracted. Tim wasn’t happy about not being able to pay for his half but accepted that I was trying to earn my keep as his new roommate. Loading the groceries and the passengers into the car was easy and our trip home resumed. As we left Walmart, the setting sun painted the sky in vibrant hues, reminding me how different Earth's sky looked compared to Equestria's. The drive home was short, only about a mile... Some people might have referred to the town as the suburbs, but the little town was far enough away from the main metropolitan part of the city to be considered rural. It’s cozy, small close-knit community reminded me of Ponyville, but with modern human conveniences. I was disturbed to see horses grazing in the fields not far from Tim’s home, but Earth’s horses were nothing like Equestria’s ponies. Bigger than Equestria Ponies, even the smallest adult horse was bigger than Big Mac and the larger ones were bigger than Princess Celestia. Tim's home, a 25-year-old single-wide trailer in one of the area's many trailer parks, showed its age but remained functional. Despite badly needed repairs, it boasted reliable air conditioning and heating, essential for the extreme Texas weather. Tim unlocked the front door and let us in. He seemed embarrassed by how messy the house was, but I was grateful by how cold the living room was. It needed high dusting, dishes needed to be done, and there was laundry waiting to be done. I turned to him and batted my eyes. “Shall I do the high dusting?” He shrugged. “If you want to. We should have all the clean dishes I need for Sara’s Mac and Cheese and our salads.” I nodded as my charged my horn. With a single sweep of the house, every speck of dust was gone. The air itself smelled cleaner and a lightness could be felt in breeze from the AC vents. Tim was stunned at how clean it was, and I just giggled at him. He snapped out of it and smiled at me. Clearing his throat, he turned to Sara. “Okay. Now that the dusting is done, you need a bath before we eat, and we get on with the rest of the night.” Sara frowned. “No bath, movie!” Tim sighed. “You can watch a movie after your bath, I promise.” Sara crossed her arms, very willing to throw a temper tantrum. “Movie, Movie, MOVIE!!!” I could see the weariness in Tim’s face. He was exhausted. How long had he been doing this alone? I didn’t recall him having told me how it had been since his wife had died. I felt the need to lend a hoof. “You look exhausted, Tim. I could help Sara with her bath if you'd like.” He smiled at me, a look I was growing to enjoy. “Oh, that's kind of you. Just make sure she uses soap and shampoo.” I nodded, as if that was the most natural thing in the world to remember. “Of course. I'll hop in with her to make sure she's thorough.” Tim’s eyes seemed to bulge out of his head at the idea. “Wait, what?” Sara looked at me, her eyes sparkling like she had stars in her eyes, as if my suggestion was the best idea ever and she proclaimed. “Bath time!” I giggled and Tim sighed in defeat despite the appearance of victory. He waved us over. “Follow me.” We went into the master bathroom, and he started to draw a hot bath for both of us. He got out all the soaps and body washes and shampoos and conditioners. The main bathtub in the master bathroom was a large jacuzzi-style tub large enough for two adult humans to bathe at the same time. I could tell that me and Sara would be able to fit with no problems. Tim turned to me. “Are you sure that you don’t mind bathing her? I could work on dinner while you wash up.” I nodded, happy to help. “I think I can handle it, but I’ll call you if I need anything.” With that, he went back into the kitchen. * * * Tim I unloaded the dishwasher from the previous day’s load of dishes and loaded the dishwasher with the next load that was going to be washed, but I didn’t turn it on while Twilight and Sara were bathing. I knew that the water heater couldn’t handle a bath and dishes at the same time without running out of hot water. I couldn’t be sure how long their bath would take, but I had the feeling that a pony would require a longer bath than a human. I then put on the Mac and Cheese for Sara and started mixing a large bowl of salad, hoping to create a mix of a Chef salad, without the meat, with a Caesar salad, for a salad with a large variety of ingredients that should taste good, if only I could decide on what type of salad dressing I wanted… I had the salad mixed and ready to be served by the time the Mac and Cheese was ready. I was lucky that my daughter liked simple meals, and Twilight would mostly be eating fruits and vegetables so making her a salad or a fruit bowl was also no problem. When Twilight called my name, I set aside our prepared meals and headed to the bathroom. Twilight’s coat was damp from head to tail, her mane hanging limply off to one side, fully enjoying in her bath. She was sitting up in the tub, her mare bits were completely underwater and obstructed from view, to my relief. With the water running down her face and her coat, she looked amazing. My heart did a little flutter when she smiled at me. Twilight spoke gently, “I need more shampoo. Can you bring me the bottle I got for myself, please?” I mumbled a quick ‘sure’, and went to where we had left the non-perishable items we had gotten earlier but hadn’t officially put away yet. I brought it back just as quickly and placed it as close to her as I could so she wouldn’t have to use much magic. With her having passed out once already today from using too much magic, I wasn’t too happy about how much magic she had used to clean the house when we got home, and I didn’t even want to know how much magic it took to bathe her. As she put more shampoo into her hair, I stood there transfixed watching her bathe. I felt like a voyeur but there was nothing naughty to see with her sitting down in the tub and she hadn’t told me to leave so I stayed. With the food done, I was just waiting for the baths to be over so the next part of the evening could start. She rinsed off her mane with a deluge of water. Twilight turned back to me, and she seemed happy that I was still in the room with them. She cleared her throat. “Did you want to join us?” Her offer sounded genuine and not teasing. I gulped. “Oh… um, no. I can take a quick shower later. Do you... need anything else?” Twilight cast a look of concern over me. “Is everything okay? You seem uncomfortable.” My blush was like a warning light. “It's just... in human culture, adults don't usually... I mean, we don't...” Her eyes widened as the meaning became clear. “Oh! Is this considered intimate for humans?” I sighed, happy to get past that awkward bit and even happier to explain what she clearly didn’t already know. While I didn’t like having this type of conversation in front of Sara, I also knew I could use words that she didn’t understand. “Human adults typically help bathe their children until they are about 6 to 7 years old, at which point the children can be trusted to bathe themselves without drowning. However, a parent of the opposite gender would never bathe with their children. It’s not considered appropriate.” Twilight frowned. “That makes sense. What about bathing with friends?” I shook my head. “Humans can swim with friends of the opposite gender if they wear swimsuits. But bathing naked or swimming naked with a person of the opposite gender is usually reserved for the person you want to be your partner. Maybe it’s not as big of a deal for ponies because the fur covers almost everything but for humans, being naked is very intimate.” If Twilight wasn’t blushing before, she was now. “O… Oh, I see. So… you like watching?” I was startled by the intimate sounding, non-specific question. “Watching what?” She batted her eyelashes in a cute and endearing way. “Watching me…” I knew I owed Twilight an explanation, even if part of me wanted to bolt from the room. I stayed put, feeling the heat rise in my cheeks as I tried to find the right words. “You asked me to bring you something, and I did. You didn’t ask me to leave, so I stayed on the off chance that you needed or wanted more help. Your coat is very pretty while wet and I guess I couldn’t help but watch. All your intimate parts are under the water so it doesn’t feel as naughty as it could be. I’ll leave if you want me to.” Twilight giggled, seemingly happy with how flustered I was. It looked like she had turned the tables on me about the ‘mare’s touch’ joke from earlier. “So, adult humans only bathe together if they're... trying to be intimate. That’s useful information and it’s no wonder you looked so flustered! And here I thought I was just being a good roommate! As it happens, I do need more help. We are done, can you get us some towels, please?” I nodded. “Sure.” I gave Twilight an extra-large beach towel and used a normal sized towel on Sara, getting her dry and helping her get dressed into her night gown like I had for the better part of a year. I spoke to Sara in a calm voice. “Okay, now that the bath is done, you can go to living room to put on a movie and I’ll bring you your food as soon as me and Twilight are done in here, okay?” Sara smiled at us both. “Okay!” * * * Twilight Sara left the bathroom and returned to the living room. She went to the couch and grabbed the remote, turning on the TV and going to the option for Disney+. Scrolling down the list of movies, she settled on “The Little Mermaid” and sat down to watch it. With Sara out of the room, Tim turned his attention back to me. I was still toweling off, getting all the water from myself. As I dried off, I found myself acting more boldly than usual. Was it the stress of the day finally wearing off, or something about Tim that brought out this playful side of me? Whatever it was, I decided to embrace it, if only for a moment. A brief glance at Tim showed that he was still watching me, so I thought I’d give him a show. A show as naughty as the one he claimed he wasn’t getting earlier. I dried myself deliberately, aware of Tim's gaze. The towel moved across my body in a way that was more suggestive than necessary, leaving nothing to the imagination. It was wrong, but I wanted him to look at me. I needed his eyes on me. When the back-and-forth motion of the towel slowed to the barest tease, I dropped the towel completely, revealing everything. I looked up at him, caught his eyes upon mine and I winked at him. Tim gulped and he started stammering as he backed out of the room. “I, uh... I think I left something in the oven.” I started giggling at the lame excuse. “The oven's not even on, Tim.” Tim was blushing harder. “Right. I meant the... refrigerator?” I raised my eyebrows at him in a playful rebuke. Tim sighed and slumped. He didn’t seem to have the energy to deny that he had been looking any longer. “I’m sorry. I don’t know what came over me.” Finally dry, I sauntered over to him. I wanted to kiss him, but I held back. “You don’t have to say anything… I know I’m cute. If I had a problem with what just happened, you would know. You think I didn’t know you were watching? I wanted you to look…” He shook his head, and playfully chastised me in return. “You are a naughty mare. I guess I asked for this by teasing you though.” I giggled, a sound that I knew he liked. “Is that such a bad thing?” He shrugged. “I guess we’ll find out. Let’s join Sara for the movie. I could count on one hand the ones she likely picked.” Agreeing with his suggestion, I joined Sara on the couch and Tim brought over a huge salad for me in an oversized bowl and some hot Mac and Cheese for Sara. Sara was more than happy to start the movie over so I could see it from the beginning, and we cuddled to watch the film. The music was incredible, with the song that had the lyrics of “wanting to be part of your world” having a deeper meaning for me. Tim joined us on the couch later after having finished taking a quick shower of his own. He ate like a starving man, and I realized that he probably didn’t eat lunch while taking care of me earlier. It made me feel guilty and I knew I’d have to make it up to him somehow at some point. I turned to Tim, whispering so as not to bother Sara. “I've got to say, human films are quite engaging. Although I'm not sure how accurate this depiction of mer-people is.” Tim chuckled quietly. “About as accurate as My Little Pony is to real unicorns, I'd imagine.” I feigned offense, but I couldn't keep the smile from my voice. “Are you calling me little, mister?” Tim's eyes widened slightly, realizing the implication. “No, no! I just meant... well, you know...” I giggled softly. “Relax, Tim. I'm just teasing. Though I have to say, being part of your world is turning out to be quite an adventure.” He smiled, now at ease with both the joke and the conversation, but I was starting to understand the stress he was under. The way he seemed to put his daughter, and now me, ahead of his own well-being also made me feel worse about the teasing I had done earlier in the bathroom. He didn’t need sexual tension if he didn’t want it, and even I would have to admit that it was very out of character for me, but I couldn’t afford for Tim to kick me out. I needed this roommate arrangement and maybe I was willing to do more than I thought I would to keep it. It was clear that I was moving too fast and that I didn’t know exactly what I was doing. The movie ended with the death of the villain and to a happy ever after for the main character, but I was shocked at the violence in a cartoon meant for young children. Fortunately, Sara had already fallen asleep on the couch by the end, so she missed that part. Tim turned to me, also looking tired. “Can you tuck Sara into bed while I put fresh sheets and blankets on the daybed for you?” I smiled at him. “Of course.” I levitated Sara in my magic and carried her to the end of the long hall where her bedroom was. Tucking in the small child into bed wasn’t hard and I kissed her on the forehead like my mother used to do for me. “Good night, Sara.” Sara moaned in her sleep, stirred by the kiss and she whispered back. “Good night, mommy.” I sucked in a breath, barely daring to breathe while tears came to my eyes unbidden and I retreated from the room quietly, closing the door behind me. Tim was looking over his handywork of making the bed when he caught my eye and frowned. “What’s wrong, Twilight? You’re crying…” I sniffled and went to give him a hug. All the sexual tension I had created earlier seemed moot compared to what had just happened. I couldn’t describe the emotion that welled up within me. Maybe panic mixed with apprehension and longing. I never knew that I wanted foals, or a husband. This revelation was poor timing, if there ever was good timing to this type of situation. With tears running down my face, my voice was hoarse with emotion, I whispered, “Sara called me mommy.” Tim stiffened in my embrace and then he sighed. “I... I'm not sure how to handle this. Sara's been missing her mother, and I don't want her to get confused...” I shook my head. "I understand. But maybe... maybe we could just let her have this comfort for now? It's... it's affecting me too; in ways I didn't expect." A wry smile crossed his lips as he found a chance to try to get me back. “A mare’s touch? Or is it a mother’s love, in this case.” I looked deeply into his eyes. “Whatever you need from me. Call it what you want to, but you are both hurting, and I can’t sit here and not help. Please let me do something for you.” The pain on Tim’s face was impossible to put into words but he was strong for his daughter even if he couldn’t be strong for himself. I thought I had said too much or the wrong thing, but he surprised me. He cleared his throat lightly. “I’m still a little unsettled by your display earlier and my reaction to it. I’ve always been cautious in dating, and I don’t want to move too fast, my jokes notwithstanding. However, I might could be persuaded to lay down beside you on the daybed and watch a movie with you before we go to sleep.” I agreed without hesitation and Tim let me pick the show. I chose a nature documentary to learn more about Earth’s wildlife and he didn’t object. Tim got into the daybed, under the covers, and lifted them up for me to join him. As I settled in, I couldn't help but notice he was still fully clothed. “I hope you don't mind sharing a blanket,” Tim said. “I have to keep the air conditioners cranked down to the lowest temperature, so it doesn’t get too hot during the day, but that also means that it gets very cold at night.” I grinned mischievously. “Oh? And here I thought humans generated their own heat. Or is that just when they're... embarrassed?” Tim's face flushed red. “I, uh... that's not... I mean...” “Relax, Tim,” I giggled. “I'm just horsing around. Though I have to say, I'm surprised you humans sleep with so many layers on. Aren't you worried about overheating?” Tim smirked, regaining his composure. “Well, considering how you reacted to the idea of bathing being intimate, I thought it best to keep things... contained. Unless you'd prefer a more ‘natural’ sleeping arrangement?” Now it was my turn to blush. “I... um... well...” Tim chuckled. “Now who's getting flustered? Don't worry, I'm just returning the favor. Now, how about that documentary?” I cuddled into him, and he wrapped an arm around me snugly, the blankets wrapped around us and keeping us warm. As we settled in to watch the documentary, Tim asked me curiously, "You mentioned earlier that Equestria doesn't have daycare. What do ponies do for entertainment in the evenings? Do you have movies like we do?" I shook my head. "We have stage plays, opera productions, and music concerts. When nothing else is going on, we read. Even with magic, we're quite a bit behind Earth in technology, especially when it comes to entertainment and media. I hope to see some advancements through our cultural exchange." He nodded thoughtfully. "It'll be interesting to see how that plays out. Just promise me you're not here to steal all our blockbuster secrets," he added with a playful wink. I giggled, but then grew more serious. "I don’t know… Maybe ponies can do it better? Hamlet with ponies sounds fun. However, I can't control what my government asks for, but I really hope this exchange stays focused on cultural and civilian technologies. A lot of villains have recently returned to Equestria or new ones have appeared or both. Human military technology might help us, but your weapons are terrifying. I don't want to lose what we're building here..." Tim squeezed my hoof gently. "Hey, don't worry. I was just joking. I'm sure it'll all work out fine. As a former soldier, I can say that war isn’t fun. Now, how about we start this documentary?" I blinked, processing this new information. "You were a soldier? My older brother is a soldier, and I worry for his safety. Given what I’ve learned about you, that makes sense… That must have been difficult." I hesitated, then added softly, "Thank you for sharing that with me, Tim." About halfway through the show, I whispered to him. “Do you like the show? Did I pick a good one?” I could feel him nod but I could also hear how tired he sounded. “My wife loved these nature documentaries. I think I’ve seen them all at least once, unless a new one has come out since she passed away.” The sadness in his voice broke my heart and I wondered why he didn’t say anything about the documentary sooner. I concluded that he knew that I was still learning about Earth and these documentaries would help me, even if they reminded him of happier times which left him sadder in the meantime. His willingness to put up with his own pain, for me, made me respect him even more. To my surprise, I also seemed to desire him more. I felt a warmth spreading through me, a mix of admiration and something more. It was confusing, these new feelings, but I couldn't deny their intensity. Pushing these thoughts aside for now, I focused back on our evening. As the documentary ended, I turned to him. “Any requests?” His eyes were closed, and he looked asleep, but he still managed to answer. “I normally use YouTube to have a thunderstorm playing in the background. The sound of rain helps me sleep. My wife couldn’t sleep without it. I learned to like it, and now I can’t sleep without it.” I used the remote to find the YouTube app on the TV and I found his preferred rainstorm on the list of ‘watch again’ options. I turned off the lights with my magic and the TV screen went blackout dark with the sounds of rain washing over the room. A tear fell from his face and rolled down my back, causing me to silently gasp. I felt my body tense, a shiver running down my spine. The wetness of his tear was a stark reminder of the pain he carried, and I found myself instinctively pressing closer to him, as if I could somehow absorb his sorrow. His whisper gave me hope for his shattered heart. “I miss my wife more than I think I should after a year of mourning. My daughter loves you. I need something, anything, more than being alone. Maybe I do need a mare’s touch. Lucky for you… you’re the only mare I know. If you want the job… I’m hiring. Good night, Twilight.” I was trying not to cry when I whispered back. “Good night, Tim.” * * * Author's Note This was an emotional chapter for me. All comments are welcome. I write commissions!. At 5 dollars per 1,000 words, I'm one of the cheaper writers on the site. If you have a story idea, E, T or M, please DM me and we'll work something out. //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 4 - Confessions and Complications //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 4 - Confessions and Complications Tim As morning started to creep up on me, my internal clock started to stir even before my alarm clock could go off. In recent months, sleep often eluded me, with wistful memories mixed with nightmares causing my mind to race in the quiet pre-dawn hours despite my body's protests for more rest. Nothing ever seemed to help, until now… Holding Twilight was like a breath of fresh air, or maybe it was how clean the house was after she used magic to do the high dusting. My usual allergies were nowhere to be found, which improved my sleep and my health. Between having someone to hold, being warm and being able to breathe, I got a good night’s sleep for the first time since my wife had died. It felt strange to not be tired. At some point in the night, Twilight had shifted in her sleep, and now she was facing me with her hooves wrapped around me while my arms were wrapped around her. It felt perfect, like we belonged exactly where we were. The simple bliss of feeling loved was enough to make a grown man cry, but this couldn’t be love, could it? Wishful thinking could create a lovely fantasy, just to be trampled by reality. She was just a roommate of the opposite sex that just so happened to like to cuddle, and we ended up falling asleep together after watching a nature documentary. Ponies clearly had looser boundaries about sharing affection than humans but that didn’t make it sexual, nor should it. Recalling parts of last night’s conversation stirred me emotionally. Even suggesting that I would ‘let her apply for the job of being my wife’ sounded both unromantic and painfully awkward. I had to hope I could play that off as just being tired, but I also had a hard time forgetting what I saw after she dropped her towel. She claimed she wanted me to look, and I got an eyeful. But… I was torn between feeling more attracted to her and feeling overwhelmed by the rapidness of our connection. I didn’t want to move too fast with her, but my wife had been gone for over a year and I was afraid that I wouldn’t turn down a good enough offer. Twilight certainly had a lot to offer… As I grappled with these conflicting emotions, the harsh reality of knowing that it was going to be a long day intruded on my thoughts. My alarm clock shattered what was left of the morning bliss and me and Twilight opened our eyes at the same time, allowing me to stare into her deep purple eyes. Her mane was trussed up and seemed adorably messy, but her coat was clean, soft, and she was so huggable. Twilight's horn glowed softly as she magically silenced the alarm, the ethereal light dancing across her face and reminding me just how breathtaking she truly was. I was transfixed on her, and I couldn’t seem to say anything or look away. She was looking as deeply into my eyes as I was into hers and she giggled lightly while stretching, as if simply happy to be near me. As Twilight stretched, her body pressed against mine in ways that made me acutely aware of our differences... and similarities. Her voice was light and airy, “Good morning, did you sleep well?” My throat was dry, but I replied, “Best sleep I’ve had in a long time. Did you sleep well?” Her smile captivated me as she replied. “I’ve never been held as tightly as I was last night. I wasn’t sure I’d be able to sleep at first, but I quickly grew to like the affection. I never thought that simply being held could feel so good. Thank you for the experience.” I nodded dumbly at her praise, not sure if it was an invitation to do more or a request to do less. I felt like I needed to push boundaries, much like she must have felt yesterday when she teased me while the drying off in the bathroom yesterday. I leaned closer, inch by inch, closer and closer to her lips. Her eyes went wide for just a moment before she also started to lean in for what had to be a magical first kiss. Just a little more… “I’m hungry, Daddy.” We pulled apart quickly and looked down. Fortunately, the daybed was so tall that Sara couldn’t possibly have seen us about to kiss. I sat up in bed. “Of course, Sara. Let me get you a bowl of cereal.” I disentangled myself from Twilight’s hooves, trying very hard not to touch her stomach or… lower, and trying equally hard not to look at the same places I was trying not to touch. Finally rolling away and landing on the floor, I went to the kitchen and got the bowls out to serve a cold breakfast. Turning on the lights, I glanced back at Twilight, and she seemed to be blushing about the whole encounter, even though it wasn’t followed through. She also seemed very aware of my efforts not to touch or look at something I shouldn’t have around young eyes. That blush confirmed for me the other times she had blushed yesterday, that I hadn’t been able to tell for sure if it was a blush or not… until now. Twilight made herself some oatmeal while I got a bowl of cereal for myself and Sara. We ate in silence, Sara simply enjoying her meal while I was at a loss of what to say. Twilight kept stealing glances at me, but she wasn’t as inconspicuous as she thought she was, and she ended up blushing even harder when she went to steal another glance at me just to see me watching her and smiling at her antics. The meal was finished quickly, due to not speaking, and getting Sara ready for school and myself ready for work also didn’t take very long. Getting into the car and leaving was faster than I assumed it would be with an extra person along, but Twilight was a no-nonsense pony when it came to work, just like myself. Sara’s school was on the same street as the trailer park and was less than half a mile from home. Some of the older students walked to school but Sara was too young, and I was protective enough to never want her to walk even when she was old enough. Sara was, after all, the only thing I had left of my wife. I dropped off Sara at school at the earliest possible time, 7:00 am on the dot, like I always did, and we started heading towards work. Heading to work would be the exact same commute as coming home had been yesterday, so there would be nothing of interest to point out on the way. I needed an icebreaker, but everything of a personal nature felt too awkward. It was like trying to saddle a unicorn – theoretically possible, but likely to end with someone getting bucked off. Twilight seemed just as reluctant to start a conversation, her posture stiff and her head faced forward, watching the road. Deciding to stick to safer topics, I found myself fidgeting with my seatbelt, stalling for time, and when I did finally speak, I focused on work-related matters. To my surprise and relief, she turned to me, giving me her full attention. I half-expected her ears to swivel like satellite dishes, ready to pick up every word. “The rest of guys get to work at 7 am to handle early morning customer pick-up orders for when we open at 8 am. I’m allowed to come in at 8 am because it’s not possible to drop off my daughter at school any earlier than I already do. Given that I’m your ride to and from work, I’m going to assume that they aren’t going to have a choice but to allow you to work the same schedule as me.” Twilight sighed. “Tim… do you want to talk about last night and this morning?” I shuddered but steeled my resolve. "I'm not sure I want to talk about it, but I also think I need to make a full confession to clear the air.” Words failed me as I grappled with how to broach such a delicate subject. “I wasn't expecting you to show me everything after your bath yesterday, which I'm guessing took a lot of trust and a lot of courage on your part to do. While it feels wrong of me to have looked, I'm not sure I could have stopped myself from looking even if doing so would have made me go blind afterwards. Being tactful is not my strong point so I'll settle for trying not to be crude as I could be. For the sake of sincerity, I won't make any jokes while I'm explaining my thoughts." I paused, carefully weighing my words to strike a balance between honesty and respect. "Your... equine features... are different from human women, but not in a negative way. I imagine we could find a way to make things work if we wanted to take things in that direction, but I don’t see why you would want to, given that I’m nothing special. We cuddled all night... which I liked, and it did honestly help me sleep better, for which I am very grateful. And I almost kissed you this morning. We were inches apart, close enough that I could feel your breath. If Sara had been a minute later, who knows what other parts we might have been touching. You've made me feel alive again for the first time since my wife died..." I tapered off, not sure what else to say. The uncertainty must have been clear on my face. Yesterday’s brief conversation about what being a 'roommate with benefits' entailed, followed by Twilight's bold display in the bathroom mere hours later, had left me more conflicted than ever. The way she had dried herself off, deliberately teasing me, was seared into my memory. And now, here we were, the tension between us thick enough to cut with a knife. Twilight nodded encouragingly. “I’m happy to hear all that, but you still look like you’re holding back. Tell me the truth about all of it, even if you think it would hurt my feelings.” I frowned. “I don’t want to hurt your feelings. Maybe if I think about this more, I can be honest about everything without hurting you.” Her smile seemed playful. “You served in your people’s military, right? Don’t your people have an expression about ripping the band-aide off quickly, so it hurts less? Maybe I need to be hurt by a careless but brutally honest statement. Let me have it.” I couldn’t tell if she was joking or not and I needed to get to the heart of this issue without making things worse. I sighed and expressed myself honestly. “We need to work out some kind of communication system, like a code word or phrase that lets me know when you’re being honest about this type of stuff. We’re both guilty of teasing each other, the only difference is that I’ve kept my teasing to verbal jokes while you put yourself on display. I don’t know what to think.” She furrowed her brows in thought. “Tim. Despite how you see yourself, you are very special to me. You make me feel safe. You’ve taken care of me in a way that I would expect from a special somepony, not simply a roommate or co-worker. Your kindness reminds me of the unconditional love of an Equestrian.” She gulped, getting into the more awkward parts of her explanation. “Yes, me dropping that towel and presenting myself was bold and playful of me, very out of character, and it was not something I would normally do. Tartarus, you are the first stallion I’ve ever done that for. However, I wanted you to look at me, to soak me up with your eyes in all my glory and I don’t regret showing you, at least from a purely physical standpoint. We’ve both seemed to have some mixed feelings and we’ve both sent a few mixed signals so far. Your daughter calling me mommy last night broke my heart because I know I can’t fill that void, but part of me also wants to try, and your offer to let me try fills me with great joy and dread. What If I get it wrong? What if I make it worse? The offer appeals to me but I don’t know how to court you.” Twilight bit her lip before continuing. “As last night dragged on… part of me regretted teasing you, from an emotional standpoint, because you’re so stoic that I can’t tell what you want or how you feel. I need to know if I’ve taken this too far. I need to know what you want and what you expect. The power here is all yours. Please, Tim! I’d rather have the ugly truth than a pretty lie. I need to know… if I’m going to have to move out when I get that first check or if you’re going to let me stay… I’ll do anything to be able to stay.” My hands trembled on the steering wheel, a mix of frustration and self-directed anger coursing through me. “I knew that it was wrong to make a half-assed joke about letting you take the job of being my new wife. Despite all the jokes, it’s not fair to you for me to suggest that a deeper relationship or being a roommate with benefits would be the only way you’d be able to stay with me long term, especially given that you probably have a lot of stallions waiting for you to come home. I’m sorry for the jokes, teasing, and mixed signals. Maybe I should just back off and be a normal roommate. A normal friend.” Twilight gasped and shook her head. “No! I like what we have, and I’d like to see it grow. The only stallions I have waiting for me is my brother and my father. I’ve never had a coltfriend, so you won’t have to deal with any Ex’s. I don’t care if I have to deal with any of your old Ex’s, they can kiss my flank. Just tell me how you feel. Please!” The road demanded my attention, and our looming work schedule left no time for the deep conversation we desperately needed. Each moment that the silence stretched on seemed to make her wilt, my silence was worse than hearing what she feared. “You want the truth? My innermost personal thoughts and feelings in all their brutal honesty? Can you handle the truth?” Twilight was shaking now, but probably in fear. Her whisper was gut wrenching. “Yes.” My voice held little emotion, but I was being honest. “The truth is that I loved my wife with all my heart. It was love at first sight with all the bells and whistles that only seem to happen in books or in a movie. We served together in the military, and we got married one month before we left service to start our family together. 4 years of perfect love. A perfect daughter. And then 1 year ago a drunk driver hit her car head on, and she died instantly. In my worst nightmares, I picture her suffering before she took her last breath. In my waking moments, I relive the moment of being called to identify her body since not much of her face was left. I am stoic because I can’t let my daughter see her father cry. My heart shattered that day, and I never thought I could love again. I would have died, maybe even killed myself - but Sara needs me. So, I live for her. And now there’s you…” Twilight gulped. “Me?” I nodded. “Who else? You came trotting into my life looking like the most beautiful creature to have ever walked the face of the Earth. You're cute, charming in a nerdy bookish way, far more intelligent than me, and let's not forget how good you look wet... I mean, after a bath. The fact that you like me at all blows my mind as I don’t feel deserving of your attraction. And the way you dropped your towel in the bathroom, teasing me with everything normally hidden under your tail? I’m not sure you would have stopped me if I tried to make love to you right then and there.” She looked down at the floorboards, her voice barely above a whisper. “I... I'm not sure I would have stopped you either. In that moment, I felt so bold, so... ready. Tartarus… for all intents and purposes… I did present myself to you without a second thought. I’m not sure if I am grateful that you didn’t act on it or upset that you didn’t act on it. Am I not pretty enough? Is it wrong that I wanted you to... to want me like that? It's all so confusing now, looking back.” I hesitated and then sighed. “No, you’re very pretty, and it's not wrong to have those feelings. But acting on them right now... that's complicated. The point I’m trying to make is that this is moving too fast. I still love my wife. I’m not completely over her death. I know that she would want me to find love again but is this love? Do you like me, or love me enough to make love to me, or are you just doing what you must to secure a place to live for the next 6 months? I don’t think my heart could bear to be broken again when you leave to go back to Equestria in 6 months. And don’t pretend that you’re going to stay for me and my daughter. I need the ugly truth and not a pretty lie also.” Twilight paused, gathering her courage. “If I'm being completely honest, Tim... I'd be willing to... to be intimate with you, even if it was just to secure my place here. Even if you don’t have any feelings for me, I’m willing to play by the rules we both agree to… like you said in your explanation yesterday; roommates ‘with benefits’. But… it feels like something more than that is developing between us, and I want to explore these feelings more, to see if they could grow into something deeper. I'm not trying to hurt you, and I really don't want to hurt Sara. I also don't know what to do…” I took a deep breath, considering her words carefully. "Twilight, I appreciate your honesty. And I'd be lying if I said I wasn't tempted by your offer. It is hard to admit, but I do have feelings for you, but I think we need to be careful here." She looked at me, a mix of hope and uncertainty in her eyes. "What are you suggesting?" I sighed, trying to find the right words. “Look, I can’t lie about this. I'm attracted to you, and it's clear you're attracted to me. But I don't want to rush into anything we might regret. How about this - we'll be friends and roommates, but with the understanding that there might be benefits, once we’re both more comfortable with the idea. I don’t want you to think you would, I want you to know you would. And I don’t want you to do it just to avoid being homeless. That would make me a bad roommate and a worse friend.” Twilight seemed to consider this carefully. “So, not quite friends, not quite lovers, but... potentially both, eventually?” I nodded. “Exactly. We can explore this attraction between us, but slowly. No pressure, no expectations. And more importantly, I want you to feel secure here, regardless of whether we become intimate or not.” Twilight's eyes showed a mix of relief and curiosity. “And if things get... heated?” I felt my cheeks warm. “Then we deal with it like adults. But I want you to know, this isn't just about physical release for me. I care about you, Twilight. I don't want to ruin what could be something real by rushing into bed. And I definitely don't want you to feel like you have to sleep with me to keep a roof over your head. Honestly, I don’t see how people accept Friends with Benefits type situations. There should be nothing ‘causal’ about something so intimate.” She looked out her passenger side window, then back at me, her expression softening. “I appreciate that, Tim. I care about you too, and Sara. I don't want to mess this up. And... thank you for making sure I feel secure, regardless of where this goes.” I reached over and squeezed her hoof gently. “We'll figure this out together. One day at a time. And who knows? Maybe by the weekend, we'll have a better idea of where this is going.” Twilight nodded, a small smile on her face. “I like the sound of that. Friends with potential benefits and potential romance, but no pressure either way. It's complicated, but... it feels right.” “It does,” I agreed. I liked the feel of her fur, so I rubbed my hand up and down her foreleg. “Now, let's get to work before we're late. We can continue this... exploration... later.” Twilight bit her lip, a blush creeping across her face. “So... does this mean no more towel drops or teasing? Because I might need to invest in a pony-sized cold shower if that's the case.” I chuckled, feeling some of the tension ease. “The bath can run cold water, but I've never been fond of cold baths or showers. I wouldn't mind having a larger shower installed, but I can't afford it with my salary. However, I won't stop you from making improvements to the house that makes you more comfortable.” I paused, considering my next words carefully. “As for the teasing... I won't stop you, even if it is sexually suggestive. But Sara needs to be asleep when it happens. I don't want her walking in on something I'm not ready to explain yet.” Twilight nodded, her eyes glinting with mischief. “Understood. But... what if you change your mind and tell me to assume the position and give you a real show?” I swallowed hard. “Would you even entertain the idea? Are you worried about me wanting you before you’re ready? Or are you hoping that I’ll just go ahead and take you, so we can bleed off all this sexual tension to make it easier to go slow afterwards? We’ve both done a good job of trying to be honest with each other and all jokes aside, I don’t think a quickie is going to fix this…” Twilight’s voice was husky with desire, though also still teasing. “I’m not asking for a quickie. I want to see how good of a stallion you can be.” I gripped the steering wheel tighter, my knuckles going white. The tension in the air was palpable. I took a deep breath, trying to gather my thoughts. “Twilight,” I began, my voice low and measured, “Once again… I appreciate your honesty, but your teasing is literally killing me. And believe me, the temptation is there. But this isn't something we should rush into, especially not while we're driving to work.” I continued, trying to be as bold as I was honest. “I’ve been thinking a lot about yesterday, and I realized that I do need a mare's touch. But I also need you to understand what you're getting into with me and Sara. Like I said, this isn't just about physical release. I desire a real relationship, preferably long term.” Swallowing hard, I continued, “When we get home tonight, after Sara's in bed, we can talk more. Really talk. About us, about what we both want and expect. No teasing, no jokes. Just honesty.” I glanced at her, my expression serious. “And if we both feel ready for something more after that conversation, then... well, we'll see where the night takes us. But only if you're absolutely sure. Because once we cross that line, there's no going back. I can't afford to have my heart broken again, and I won't risk hurting Sara.” I glanced at her, noticing the mix of anticipation and nervousness in her eyes. “Are you okay with that? Taking things slow, I mean.” She nodded, a soft smile on her face. “I think it's the right approach. I'm just... new to all this. I've never felt this way before. I’m sorry if I’m pushing this too fast, but… there are things happening that I’m not sure I can explain just yet. Please, be patient with me while I figure this out more.” I returned her smile, feeling a warmth spread through my chest. “We'll figure it out together.” Twilight's expression turned thoughtful, and she bit her lip before speaking again. “Tim... There is something else I've been wondering about. What about... um, foals?” My humor evaporated. This was serious territory we were entering. “That's... a big question. What are your thoughts?” “Me personally? I am not opposed to the idea,” she said softly. “Sara calling my mommy made me realize that I do want to be a mother someday and I just wanted to know if we were on the same page here. I want the kind of love my parents have. This is all so new and intense. I care for you and Sara deeply, and I want to be part of your lives. I don't think that not wanting foals right now should prevent us from trying for a more serious relationship in there here and now, but I’m not sure if my heart could take it if you didn’t want more children. If this goes all the way to marriage, we need the same goals. It doesn’t have to be right now… but I certainly want a few foals in the future.” I nodded, processing her words. “You're right. We do need to be on the same page on something this important. I don’t talk about it much, but my wife was pregnant with our second child when she died…” Twilight gasped in shock, a tear rolling down her face. “Oh, Tim…” I shook my head. “I do want more children, and I think it would be wonderful to consider the possibility of having some with you. It might surprise you to know that I asked my wife on our first date if she wanted kids, because I wasn’t going to waste her time if we didn’t agree on the big issues. As for us right now, we shouldn't rush into anything, especially not something as life changing as having a child together. Let's take this one step at a time. Tonight... let's just focus on us. On exploring these feelings that we have. Does that sound okay?” Twilight smiled, her tears still evident in her eyes. “That sounds perfect, Tim. One step at a time.” As we neared our destination, I couldn't help but feel a mix of excitement and nervousness about what the evening would bring. But one thing was certain - whatever happened, we'd face it together. * * * Twilight I needed to change the subject to something more practical. “Now that we've talked about... us, how are we going to handle work today? I'd feel terrible if I overwork myself and we can't follow through on our plans for tonight.” Tim seemed relieved at the shift to a less emotionally charged topic. “Right, work. I think the plan is for you to use your spell to transmute another trailer into spare parts to fix a few more trailers to use as empties today. Then, we'll take a break - maybe have an early lunch together as a date. After you've recovered, we'll do our normal thing of pulling drum orders. Hopefully, if you start running low on magic, most of the work will be done by then.” I blushed at the suggestion of a lunch date, but it made sense. He had joked with Joe that he couldn't call me his girlfriend until after a first date, and he seemed chivalrous enough to want to uphold social norms. A thought crossed my mind, and I frowned slightly. “Tim, should we tell Melvin that I'm living with you? Given our... developing situation?” Tim considered this for a moment before responding. “He doesn't strictly need to know you're living with me, but they will need your address for official company information and records. If they ever have reason to compare our files, they'd figure it out. We're not doing anything wrong, so we don't need to hide it, but we also don't need to volunteer the information. I'm not embarrassed about it, though.” I relaxed with the explanation. “I wasn't accusing you of being embarrassed about me living with you, but if Joe is any indication, there will be jokes about us being together.” Tim's smile was a welcome relief, but his humor was a little dry on the subject, though after the previous ups and downs of our earlier conversation, that might be expected. “Humans seem to go out of their way to be rude or crude in certain situations. I would bet anything that there will be a joke about us having sex the second anyone other than Melvin knows that we're living together, and those jokes would happen whether we were planning to really do it or not. Hell, Joe would joke about it even if we weren't living together.” We finally arrived at work, and Tim punched in on the time clock. We went to Melvin's office, and I filled out the rest of my new hire paperwork that I couldn't finish yesterday, now that I had an address to list. Tim took the opportunity to explain our living arrangements and how it would affect my schedule, having to show up at 8 am with him instead of earlier like the other employees, since he was my roommate and my ride. Melvin leaned back in his chair, a thoughtful expression on his face. “I hope you don't mind me asking, but are you two... involved? Pipeline Express has several married couples working together, so it wouldn't be against company policy if you were.” Tim and I exchanged a quick glance, both of us blushing slightly. Tim cleared his throat. “We're... roommates. Anything beyond that is still being figured out.” I nodded, adding, “We're taking things one day at a time.” Melvin raised an eyebrow, a hint of amusement in his voice. “I see. Well, as long as it doesn't affect your work, what you do in your personal time is your business. Just remember, if things do progress, you'll need to inform HR for the records.” Tim cleared his throat. “You’re not disgusted by the idea? Twilight, as an Equestrian, is just as much of a person as we are… but I still expect some jokes that push all limits. I’m not sure how I’m going to handle that…” Melvin's expression softened, a warm smile spreading across his face. “You know, when I first started dating my wife, we faced a lot of raised eyebrows too. It wasn’t easy being a white man dating a black woman, 40 years ago. People thought we were too different. But love... love finds a way.” He leaned forward, his voice gentle but firm. “What I'm trying to say is, don't let anyone else's opinions hold you back. If you two find happiness together, grab onto it with both hands. Life's too short for regrets.” Tim and I exchanged another glance, this time with small smiles. “Thank you, Melvin,” I said, feeling a warmth spread through my chest. “That means a lot.” Melvin's expression turned more serious. “Just remember, not everyone will be as understanding. Joe, for instance – he's a good worker, but he's got a mouth on him. He's going to tease you mercilessly about this.” He leaned back in his chair, folding his hands. “My advice? Don't let it get to you. Give as good as you get, if you can. Sometimes, the best way to handle folks like Joe is to beat them at their own game. But if it ever crosses a line, you come to me, understood?” Tim and I both nodded, grateful for both the warning and the offer of support. Melvin's face relaxed into a grin. “Good. Now, enough of this old man's ramblings. Let's get back to business.” Tim seemed grateful for permission and the advice, but I’m not sure it would have stopped us from exploring our feelings further in any event. Tim continued wrapping up the updates of what Melvin needed to know while I was putting the finishing touches on my new hire paperwork. “...So, that being said, the plan is to fix more trailers first thing this morning, then take an early lunch to rest, and then we should be able to handle the drums without a repeat of yesterday.” Melvin nodded. “That sounds reasonable. What happens if she uses too much magic again or gets hurt?” Tim shrugged but sounded confident. “She isn't on company insurance yet and doesn't have short-term or long-term disability options as a result. I'm going to do my best to limit any chances of her getting hurt or using too much magic, but this is still very trial and error. As a former Army medic, I did okay with treating her yesterday when she over-used magic, and I'll keep a close eye on her. Worst case... you might have to pay both of us a full 8 hours of labor even if we leave early or have to take ‘unofficial medical leave' to recover from a mishap to avoid liability or a lawsuit. Cheaper than the other options for sure, not completely legal though.” Melvin sighed. “We're already paying extra for magical miracles. Giving you both a few paid days off that don't count towards your sick time or vacation time is reasonable in the event of an incident... just try to be careful.” Tim smiled. “As long as nothing stupid happens and it's a normal day, we should be okay.” Tim’s own reassurances to Melvin notwithstanding, as we headed towards Joe's shop, I couldn't shake the feeling that today's 'normal day' was about to become anything but. I hated bad feelings like this, but it's not like I could just clock out early and leave. I would hate doing that more than Tim would, since I seemed to have something to prove... * * * Author's Note I write commissions!. At 5 dollars per 1,000 words, I'm one of the cheaper writers on the site. If you have a story idea, E, T or M, please DM me and we'll work something out. //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 5 - The Limits That Break You //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 5 - The Limits That Break You Tim A normal day being relative, Twilight and I made our way through the warehouse towards Joe's shop. The air was thick with the smell of oil and metal, the distant hum of machinery a constant backdrop to our footsteps. As we passed by the coordinator's office, Juan stepped out, a friendly smile on his face. “Hey, Twilight! I got something for you,” he said, fishing a carrot out of his pocket. Twilight's eyes lit up. “Oh, how thoughtful! Thank you, Juan,” she said, using her magic to accept the offering. I felt my jaw clench, a surge of anger rising in my chest. “Juan, a word?” I said, my voice tight. Confusion flickered across Twilight's face as I pulled Juan aside. “What the hell, man?” I hissed. “She's not a pet.” Juan's eyes widened. “I... I didn't mean anything by it. I thought she'd like it.” I took a deep breath, trying to calm myself. “Look, I know you meant well, but offering her carrots or apples like that... it's insulting. She's a person, not some animal you're trying to befriend.” Turning back to Twilight, I saw her looking at us with concern. “Is everything okay?” she asked. I sighed, realizing I needed to explain. “Twilight, I know Juan was trying to be nice, but... on Earth, offering carrots or apples to horses is something people do to treat them like pets. It's... well, it's not exactly polite to do that to a sentient being. I know you don’t understand why humans treat other differently based on skin tone, but the best example I could give would probably be the racial equivalent of giving fried chicken and watermelon to a black employee or bringing tacos for a Mexican employee. Some people might not mind, but it could be offensive to some people.” Juan mumbled. “I’d love some free tacos, but that’s just me.” Twilight's eyes widened in understanding as a blush crept across her cheeks. “Oh,” she said softly, looking at the carrot in her magical grasp. “I... I didn't realize.” Juan sighed and quickly apologized. “I'm so sorry, Twilight. I didn't mean to offend you.” Twilight offered him a kind smile. "It's okay, Juan. Cultural misunderstandings happen. Thank you for trying to be welcoming." As we continued on our way, I could feel the weight of Twilight's gaze on me. “Thank you for explaining,” she said quietly. “I guess there's still a lot for me to learn about how ponies are perceived here.” I nodded, feeling a mix of protectiveness and affection welling up inside me. “I think I might have overacted. I know he was trying to be nice, but I also felt the need to clarify how it looked before it became a habit. We're all learning,” I replied. “Now, let's go see Joe. After Melvin's advice this morning, we should be ready for whatever he throws at us.” We both knew to be ready for a few crude jokes directed towards both of us, and we weren't disappointed. Joe greeted us with his usual over-the-top personality. "Good morning, pony fucker," he said to me with a smirk, then he turned to Twilight. "Ready to fix some trailers, magic mare?" His greeting was cruder than I expected, and I tensed, ready to intervene, but Twilight surprised me. She replied sharply, “You're just jealous this flank isn't swishing your way, old timer.” Joe's face went slack, and I chuckled at the unexpected comeback. “Careful, Twilight. You might give the old man a heart attack.” Joe's roaring laughter echoed off the shop walls. “That was a good one! I think you're going to fit right in, little pony. Just wait 'til you really get comfortable with our brand of inappropriate humor.” I wanted to interject something to derail his train of thought, but I was too late. Joe wiped a tear from his eye, still laughing. “Oh, you're a feisty one! I was worried about your lack of reaction yesterday. Say, Tim, ever hear about the pony who worked in a glue factory?” I groaned, knowing where this was going. “Joe, don't…” “He always came to work feeling a little... horse!” Joe slapped his knee. “Get it? Because he was exhausted from all the…” “We get it, Joe,” I cut him off, glancing at Twilight apologetically. To my surprise, she winked at me, seemingly enjoying the off-brand humor. I sighed deeply, conflicted. Her growing comfort with our banter was a good sign, but I couldn't help remembering her boldness from the last night. That towel drop was still fresh in my mind, and I wasn't sure I could handle her becoming even more... uninhibited. Joe, oblivious to my internal struggle, cleared his throat and got back to business. His expression turned serious, reminding me of the gravity of our task. “Now… I stayed late yesterday to rearrange some trailers. I've grouped them so that the worst six trailers can be scrapped to fix the remaining 37 that need complete overhauls, plus the one that was only partially repaired yesterday. By not trying to fix the worst six and using them for parts instead, I'm hoping we can fix all of them.” I nodded, impressed by Joe's initiative but wary of the workload this implied. “That's a lot of trailers, Joe. Twilight can't handle that much work in one go…” Joe wiped his brow, his expression a mix of anticipation and concern. “Nah, it won't be in one go. The idea is to recycle one trailer per day and hopefully fix six trailers or more with each recycled trailer, and have all 38 fixed by the time the six recycled trailers are used up.” Twilight nodded, seeming unfazed by the quick shift from outrageous teasing to serious business. Her calm demeanor both impressed and worried me. “You seem to know what you're doing,” she said to Joe. “Assuming that the remaining 38 trailers that need work aren't that bad, six trailers recycled should fix all of them. But Tim is right - I can only recycle one trailer per day to avoid what happened yesterday.” Joe wiped his brow as a flicker of guilt crossed his face. “I get it. But just so you know, Allen is arranging to bring more trailers here from Oklahoma, Louisiana, and Dallas to do more of these recycling and repair tricks. We have a lot of out-of-service trailers at other locations. Enough to keep you busy for a while.” Twilight grinned, a hint of pride in her voice. “Keep paying me and I'll keep fixing them.” Her enthusiasm made me uneasy. I turned to Joe, voicing my concerns. “Are we going to be able to use these fixed trailers to avoid having to empty as many for outgoing orders? Or is Allen going to cancel the rentals once our fleet is up and running again?” Joe's face tightened, clearly not happy about the question. But true to form, he didn't mince words. “Allen is planning to cancel some of the rentals, but it depends on how many trailers magic mare over here can fix versus how many are being scrapped. I hope the goal is to keep some for shipping and not just keep dropping them for drum rotation. But you know corporate logic - we can't sell what we don't have in inventory, so they want as many drums as they can get.” I sighed, feeling the weight of corporate expectations. “Figures. What makes more sense then? Should Twilight fix the worst trailers you want to keep, even though there will be fewer of them? Or should she fix the ones that don't need as much work? We always need at least six empties and sometimes up to eight.” Joe shrugged, his casual gesture at odds with the gravity of the situation. “Not my call. Your girlfriend can do what she's comfortable with, and I'll work on fixing the other trailers that need normal repairs. The more trailers she fixes, the fewer you'll have to empty today.” He paused, his next words hitting me like a punch to the gut. “Melvin fired all the remaining temps, so it's just the core 10 employees plus Twilight now. It'll be a lot of drums to roll if you don't get at least 8 empties out of this. On a good day, I can't fix more than 3 in a day, and that's assuming I have all the parts for them. On a bad day, I can’t completely repair even one, either waiting for parts or needing help from one of the other guys. Man, I wish they’d give me one shop helper. It’s hard to call myself a manager without a crew.” I glanced at Twilight, worry gnawing at my insides. The pressure was mounting, and I could see the determination in her eyes. I just hoped her eagerness to prove herself wouldn't push her too far. I sighed, feeling the weight of the situation. “I knew that this was going to happen. Well Twilight, I guess it's your pony show. What do you think we should do?” She considered the question, her ears shining slightly as she thought. “The mass being recycled will be largely the same each time, but despite the same amount of material being used in the recycling, the more trailers I fix, the more magic it will require.” I frowned, trying to understand the mechanics of her magic. “I don't get that. How could doing more trailers require more magic if it's the same mass being transmuted?” Twilight's eyes lit up, clearly excited to explain. “Well, remember how I told you about my special talent being magic itself? That allows me to perform complex spells like this, but it doesn't make them effortless.” She paused, making sure I was following. “Now, not all the repairs I did yesterday were purely conjuration and transmutation. The cosmetic repairs like removing rust and repainting the trailers to add the company color scheme and decals to all the company-owned trailers doesn't necessarily use the mass from the recycled trailer, but it does require more magic by me adding in extra spells. It's like... imagine if you had to not only move heavy objects, but also paint and decorate them at the same time. Each additional task requires more energy.” “So,” she continued, “I'll be more tired from fixing 10 trailers than I will from fixing 6 trailers, even if it's done with the same 1 recycled trailer. It's not just about the mass being moved, but the complexity and number of magical operations being performed. Call it a value-added service.” I grumbled, still concerned. “A value-added service should cost them more. You're doing too much for the bare minimum, but I guess I do the same.” She shrugged, her mane bouncing slightly. “You worry too much. The worst case is that we tell Melvin that I have to go home early. He already agreed to conditions of pay for both of us on how to handle me over-using magic.” I wasn't happy with her reasoning. “Yeah, well. He might expect you to have to pass out like you did yesterday to prove that you need to go home early.” She stuck out her tongue at me, a playful glint in her eye. “I guess you'll just have to nurse me back to health, then.” I snorted, trying to hide my amusement. “Don't worry, you'll be doing plenty of nursing.” She blushed fiercely and Joe laughed at her reaction. The glare she shot at me was more cute than fierce, though I didn't want to tease her about it. She cleared her throat with force, her horn glowing slightly as she composed herself. “ANYWAYS, let's get started. We know I can handle one trailer, but multiple trailers in a day will be pushing my limits. I would love to try to recycle two trailers today… I won't be able to do drums afterwards, but it'll be interesting to see how far I can go.” I felt my stomach drop at her words. “Twilight, are you sure that's wise? We don't know how your magic will react to that kind of strain, especially in this environment.” Joe, who had been quietly observing our exchange, chimed in. “Two trailers would certainly help us get ahead of schedule. But Tim's right, we don't want you hurting yourself.” Determination gleamed in Twilight's eyes. “I appreciate the concern, but I need to know my limits. Like I said, we'll just leave early after I'm done if we have to.” I sighed, recognizing the stubborn set of her jaw. “Man… you really wanna leave early, huh. Alright, but we will stick to the plan. You do one trailer now, we rest and eat lunch, and then you can do a second trailer this afternoon if you think you can handle it, okay?” She nodded, but I could see the excitement in her eyes. As she prepared to begin the spell, I couldn't shake the feeling that we were about to venture into dangerous territory. Her eagerness to prove herself, while admirable, could lead her to push too far. I exchanged a worried glance with Joe before turning my attention back to Twilight. As her horn began to glow with magical energy, I steeled myself for whatever might come next. * * * Twilight As I prepared to cast the spell, I could feel Tim's worried gaze on me. But I knew what I was doing. Or at least, I thought I did. I decided to go for the trailers that needed lighter repairs. Given how this process worked, I knew we needed 8 empty trailers and potentially up to 15 trailers, if some got dropped, to avoid having to roll drums. I couldn't do that many in one day, but I wanted to get as many done as I could. This would reduce the workload for everyone, especially Tim. I also wanted to finish quickly so we could have that lunch date he had suggested during our drive to work. Tim needed a few light days to fully recover. One good night's sleep wasn't enough to overcome months of overwork and grief. I would do this for him, even over his objections. As the Element of Magic, I trusted my abilities. Having used almost no magic so far today, I felt confident I could handle this. I wouldn’t say that I lied to Tim, but I had simplified my explanation of the magic process to put Tim's mind at rest. In reality, every trailer would receive the same thorough treatment - fixing damage, removing rust, repainting, and adding logos. I couldn't omit any part of the process once it began. Trailers that needed less work would require less magic, that much was true, but I had omitted one critical detail… A transmutation spell was a magical loop that fed itself until its source was depleted. For better or worse, once I cast the spell, I would be committed to its completion. Walking to the end of the line with the trailers needing the least work, I focused on the one Joe had marked 'Recycle this one.' I started the transmutation process, but immediately my magic felt off balance. The trailer being recycled felt magically heavier, which didn't make sense. My brow furrowed with the increased focus I needed, and a cold dread washed over me as I remembered I couldn't stop the spell even if I wanted to. I was committed now, for better or worse, and could only hope to discover the cause of this unexpected strain before it overwhelmed me. I watched as the trailers I targeted underwent their makeovers, one by one. But once the fourth trailer had been completed, the recycled trailer dissolved enough to reveal its contents - 360 rusted out tight-head drums, also meant for recycling. My heart sank. In that moment, I knew I had made a terrible mistake. As the spell continued its relentless progress, I felt my magical reserves draining faster than I had ever experienced. I started to sweat, and my legs were shaking. I was biting my lip to avoid whimpering. I desperately hoped I could maintain control until the process was complete, but a creeping sense of dread told me this might be beyond even my considerable abilities. * * * Tim My jaw dropped when I saw a tight head drum fall out of the collapsing trailer. “The trailer was full of drums?” Joe rubbed the back of his neck. “Yeah, drums that also needed to be recycled. The heat and humidity can cause these drums to rust if they sit out here too long, completely separate from drums that were in trailers with a roof that had leaks. I don’t understand why corporate wants us to keep buying and storing more drums when they know that the ones with too much rust can’t be sold, if they sit out here too long. Allen decided that if we had to recycle them anyways, we might as well use the metal to fix trailers, if Twilight’s magic could do it.” I started to sweat despite the temperature only being 85 in the early Texas morning. “Even at the average weight of 40 pounds per drum, that’s like her doing two trailers at the same time! The thick wall drums are 65 pounds each, so I really hope it’s not 12 tons! First, I sure hope you plan to pay her for the extra 7 to 12 tons of drum recycling and second, I hope this doesn’t kill her!” Joe looked at me with a hint of worry. “I know nothing about her magic, but you clearly know something. Explain it to me like I’m an idiot so I’ll understand faster.” I ran a hand through my hair, my eyes darting between Joe and Twilight, who was visibly straining now, her coat glistening with sweat. I explained my theory as rapidly as possible. “You heard the same explanation that I did. Math is my weakest subject, but I'll try to make this make sense. Twilight rolled 1,000 drums yesterday before she ate lunch, some drums being lighter and others being heavier. You could say that the average weight was 50 pounds per drum, so she rolled and palletized about 25 tons worth of drums.” I took in a deep breath and continued. “And then, even with over an hour of rest and eating lunch in between finishing the drums and fixing the trailers, she passed out from the conjuration and transmutation spell that recycled 1 trailer to fix the other 6 trailers. But the transmutation of the trailer was only basically 7 or 8 tons.” I sighed as I remembered a key detail. “By her own admission, doing this transmutation requires more magic than simply levitating drums to put onto pallets. We are having her recycle roughly 15 to 19 tons of steel between the trailer and the drums. So, the real question would be this: Does transmuting 15 to 19 tons of steel require more magic than transmuting 7 tons of steel after simply physically moving 25 tons of steel. Think long and hard about that, Joe…” Joe's brow furrowed, a look of dawning realization crossing his face. “Shit, if transmuting steel takes more magic than just moving it around, she's in trouble, isn't she?” I nodded grimly, my eyes never leaving Twilight's straining form. “Yeah, she might be. And there's nothing we can do to stop it now. You need to call Melvin. He's going to hate this, but he should be out here if something happens, especially since you and Allen made this call.” Joe started to get defensive. “Hey now, I didn't force her to use her magic. I just made the offer with the extra pay the company authorized.” While I rarely lost my temper, I couldn't hold back this time. “You failed to disclose that the trailer was loaded with drums!” I shouted, my fists clenching at my sides. “She might have agreed to recycle the drums eventually, but not at the same time as a trailer. A lie of omission is still a lie, Joe. If she gets hurt, the company's liable, and that's on you and Allen.” Joe cursed as he pulled out his phone to call Melvin while I closed the distance and stood as close to Twilight as I could without getting into her magical backwash. The conversation I had been having with Joe didn’t take that long but Twilight was already almost done with the sixth trailer now. The next one in the line was one of the worst 6 trailers that were marked to be scrapped. I called out to Twilight. “Don’t skip the next trailer, fix it too.” She looked puzzled and managed to reply while her spell continued to run, “Isn’t that the next one supposed to be on the scrap list?” I nodded. “Yes, but it’s too late now. We need the transmutation to end before you drain all your magic. That trailer was deemed to need too much work to be worth fixing but I’m worried about what would happen if you fixed more than 10 trailers. We need to find a short cut to end the spell unless you have a better idea?” Twilight shook her head. “I could teleport to the far end and direct the repairs to the trailers that needed the most work without fixing the ones that they want to scrap. That would repair more trailers and end the spell faster without wasting resources.” Before I could tell her not to, she teleported from view and reappeared 30 trailers down the line at the opposite end of the line of trailers waiting for repairs or scrapping. Lucky to still be in great military shape, I ran down the line and rejoined her at the far end. Once I could see her face clearly, I winced. It was obvious that teleporting 250 feet used more magic than she had to spare under the onslaught of a spell she apparently no longer had control over. Her apparent lack of self-preservation was upsetting me a lot. “You’re worried about wasting resources? This could kill you!” She shook her head as the eighth trailer started repairs. “It won’t kill me. I will probably end up being unable to use magic for a few days after this though and I’ll probably pass out for longer than I did last time. I’m touched that you’re worried, but this is going to be okay, I promise.” I was on the verge of tears, my voice cracking as I pleaded, “Please end the spell. This wasn't supposed to happen like this.” Twilight sighed, her horn glowing brighter. Her coat was damp with sweat, and I could see her legs trembling with effort. As the spell continued, Twilight's coat began to lose its luster, her mane becoming limp and dull. The air around her horn seemed to shimmer with barely contained energy. “It won't stop until it's done. There is nothing I can do. This is one of the many dangers of magic. You're not supposed to use a spell unless you know exactly what is going to happen.” She paused, a look of realization crossing her face. “Given that these trailers aren't being used, I never thought to ask if it had drums in it. I guess we'll know for next time.” I wanted to kick myself. “I should have known though. It’s not uncommon for a trailer already earmarked to be scrapped to be loaded with scrap drums so it’s two loads in one trip, scrapping the trailer and the drums. I should have known to check. This is all my fault!” Twilight's eyes softened despite her obvious strain. She managed a weak smile, her voice gentle but firm. “Tim, this isn't your fault. You're not responsible for my magic or my decisions. As Princess Celestia always said, ‘We must each bear the consequences of our choices.’ I chose to cast this spell without fully understanding the situation. That’s on me.” She winced as another wave of magical exertion hit her, but continued, “In Equestria, I’m known for my checklists and over-preparation. I got overconfident here, thinking I understood enough about your world. This is a harsh reminder that I need to be more thorough, to ask more questions. We’re both learning, Tim. Let’s focus on getting through this, and then we can work together to make sure it doesn’t happen again.” I stayed by her side, walking the row of trailers as the spell continued to run its course. There was nothing I could do but stay close and offer comfort, hoping that maybe at least my presence might help in even the smallest way. Melvin drove out to the yard in his personal truck, since we had the golf cart, after Joe had called him and Joe brought Melvin up to speed. I couldn’t see Melvin’s face at this distance, but I’d bet good money that he was scowling. Neither Melvin nor Joe seemed interested in trying to talk to me and Twilight, as they both kept their distance out of earshot. That was both good and bad given that it gave me and Twilight some privacy to speak, but they’d also be too far away to help if something happened. As the count reached 12 trailers, my worry intensified. While I couldn't see the actual transmutation process of the scrapped trailer, the sheer number seemed excessive. Recalling yesterday's results, 5 fully repaired trailers and 1 partial, made today's progress seem almost miraculous. True, the first 6 only needed a handful of previously unobtainable parts to be road-worthy, but it was still impressive. Now, we were approaching the trailer that had been partially fixed yesterday, and I couldn't help but wonder how much further Twilight could push her magic. Concern tinged with a bit of mirth and colored my tone. “Lucky 13, eh?” She coughed, sounding hoarse. “I don't understand the reference.” I sighed, realizing this wasn't the best time for a history lesson. “It's an Earth superstition. The number 13 is considered unlucky, especially Friday the 13th. It comes from an event in the year 1307 involving the Knights Templar. Even today, some people avoid the 13th floors in buildings. I'm just worried this 13th trailer might be pushing our luck.” She smiled weakly. “I love how knowledgeable you are about your people's history. You're far more than just blue-collar in my eyes. Your intelligence is... incredibly attractive to me.” I winced. “My wife was a historian, and I've always loved history. But Twilight, I'm more concerned about you pushing yourself to unconsciousness again. Taking care of you yesterday was... difficult. Emotionally, I mean. You’re already cute… if you throw in vulnerable and helpless, that will be far worse for me than any accidental or intentional glimpse of your flank without a towel. I try to be moral but there are some situations that are just oddly arousing. I don’t want to lose control while you can’t consent.” Twilight's smile turned mischievous, though her exhaustion was evident. “I know I'm close to passing out. It's inevitable at this point but don't worry too much. I trust you completely, Tim. Even if I'm not... awake... for a while.” My jaw dropped. “Twilight! That's... We can't... That's not how this works!” She tiredly stuck out her tongue. “I'm just saying, you have my permission. For anything. I want you to know that.” Her statement was playful enough that I couldn't tell if she was trying to ease my worry with an outrageous offer. Although, it was possible that this was a genuine, if misguided and poorly timed, attempt to follow up on our conversation from this morning. The fact that her implied consent appealed to me also disturbed me. I should be focused on her safety, not her mare bits, which was hard to do after she showed me them while toweling off after her bath yesterday. God, was that less than 12 hours ago? It feels like that happened a lifetime ago… Either way, it left me more concerned than ever. I sighed, not wanting to distract her further but needing to respond. “I appreciate your trust, Twilight, but that's not how consent works. Let's focus on getting you through this safely.” The 13th trailer was a quick fix since it was already half done from yesterday and that brought was up to the next trailer that was earmarked to be scrapped. I turned back to Twilight. “This transmutation has repaired far more trailers than I thought it would, largely because I think we messed up by trying to fix the ones that needed the smallest number of repairs first. I really think you should target the next trailer that is marked to be scrapped just to bleed off the rest of the spell. You can still scrap it later if the company wants it to be scrapped but this is already too much. Scrapping one trailer yesterday fixed less than 6 and you’re about to be on 14. The next one must be the last one.” To my disappointment, she bypassed the scrap trailer and went to the next normal trailer that needed repairs. A single tear rolled down my cheek though a person wouldn’t have been able to see the tear with the steady stream of sweat also rolling down my face. I asked the only question that I could, “Why?” Her eyes were watery with tears from the exertion. She was drenched in sweat and veins were popping out of her forehead. I could tell that her magic was now causing her pain, and it broke my heart to see her in pain. Twilight’s voice was so raw that it was hard to understand her. “I... I have to finish this. The company needs these trailers. The others... they shouldn't have to suffer, or work harder, because I failed. I’ve seen what it’s done to you!” I saw something in her eyes then - a desperation that went beyond just doing a good job. It was as if she was trying to prove something, not just to the company, but to me. The realization hit me like a punch in the gut. Was she pushing herself this hard because of our conversation this morning? Did she think she needed to prove her worth to stay? To be... loved? “Twilight,” I said, my voice softer now, “you don't have to do this. Not for the company, not for me. You're already worth…” But she had already turned back to the next trailer, her horn glowing even brighter as she poured more of herself into the spell. I wanted to physically shake her to snap her out of this. “Twilight, you're pushing yourself too far. Your health is more important than any job!” She just grunted and kept working. I knew she couldn’t end the spell early, but I also didn’t like the feeling that she was ignoring me, not when I cared for her. I shook my head as anger threatened to overtake me. “To hell with them!” I threw my hands up into the air and paced in a small circle just to come back to her, face to muzzle. “What good is it to have a strong work ethic if it kills you!” Her magic enveloped the next trailer, and she tried to ground out her words, her magic straining her so badly that she could barely speak. “For the last time… it’s… not… going… to… kill… me…” The trailer, completely restored and ready for use, seemed to mock me. It wasn’t worth the pain that Twilight was putting herself through. To my joy, the light faded from Twilight’s horn as the spell finally wore off, having fixed exactly 14 trailers. Just as the spell finished, she smiled at me, and I started to smile back when Twilight’s eyes widened in panic. All the veins in her forehead bulged and it looked like even her horn might crack. I had never seen her eyes look so dull and colorless… She whispered, “Magic… stroke…” before her eyes rolled back and she started to fall. I swooped down and caught her again, just like yesterday. Only this time, when I looked at her, her tongue was hanging out of her mouth like a dead animal on the Wild Africa nature documentary we had watched together last night while I held her. My eyes widened in shock. “Twilight? Twilight! TWILIGHT!!!” I placed her on the ground and placed my ear to her chest. For better or worse, my outburst got the manager’s attention, and they finally came over. Melvin called out first. “What’s wrong with her?” Panic couldn’t describe my tone of voice when I shouted back. “She’s not breathing!” Military focus took over with tunnel vision of staying in the moment. Staying in the mission. The best part of having been an Army medic was knowing CPR. Staying certified was one of things I had maintained over the years as a civilian, though I had never had to use it on a pony. I prayed to whatever God there was that it would work the same. 100 to 120 chest compressions per minute plus opening her mouth to provide 2 or 3 breaths of air every few compressions. Her tongue was only briefly in the way as I got it positioned into a more natural place within her mouth. As I gave her the first life-saving breaths, I couldn't help but to reflect that her month tasted like the strawberry oatmeal she had eaten that morning. Pump, Pump, Pump, Pump, Pump. Air, Air, Air. Pump, Pump, Pump, Pump, Pump. Air, Air, Air. “Twilight, please... Sara needs you. I need you. Fight!” Pump, Pump, Pump, Pump, Pump. Air, Air, Air. Pump, Pump, Pump, Pump, Pump. Air, Air, Air. I didn’t care that I was crying in front of my boss. I keep going. I couldn’t stop. With each compression, memories of Twilight flashed through my mind - her smile, her giggle, the way her eyes lit up when she talked about magic. I couldn't lose her. Not like this. Not when we were just starting to really bond. It seemed so strange to be so attached to her already, but in depths of my soul, I knew that losing her would feel as bad as losing my wife had been. I might never recover. Pump, Pump, Pump, Pump, Pump. Air, Air, Air. Pump, Pump, Pump, Pump, Pump. Air, Air, Air… On the last breath she spasmed, coughed, and sucked in a breath and shuddered. She opened her eyes and looked deeply into mine. Her voice was barely a whisper. “Tim... cold. Stay... with me.” I looked into her eyes and nodded, my voice thick with emotion. “I won't leave you. I've got you. You're safe now.” With that, she passed out again, but at least this time when I checked, she was still alive. I held her closely to my chest, focusing on the feeling of her breathing, while I was rocking back and forth like I was holding a sleeping baby. “She’s breathing. She's okay. Thank God, she’s okay,” I murmured, my voice trembling with relief and residual fear. Joe looked down at me with newfound respect. “That’s the damnedest thing I’ve ever seen. You saved her, good job hero.” My voice was flat with how exhausted I was from the exertion to save her. “Before she passed out earlier, she said she probably wouldn’t be able to work the rest of the week. Narrowly escaping death, I don’t think I’m out of line to request the rest of the week off for both of us.” Melvin nodded. “I’ll fill out the paperwork. You will both get your full 40 hours, just no overtime. Joe will make sure she gets paid for the scrap.” I couldn’t give a shit about that right now, but I had to play nice. “Yeah. Next time, trailers and drums get recycled separately, and that’s assuming she consents to transmute more trailers. I know I wouldn’t do something that literally killed me a second time.” Joe sighed. “Damn, Tim. You really came through for her. She owes you big time.” I sighed and looked back down at her, holding her gently. What caught my attention was the smile on her face. I knew that she was unconscious but her last thought, knowing she was safe with me, left a smile on her face… “This isn’t the time to settle debts or to fulfil promises.” Melvin’s gruff voice snapped me out of my growing melancholy. “Well, this heat can’t be good for her. Let’s her on the golf cart and we’ll drive you as close to your car as we can get so you can take her home.” I nodded and picked up Twilight, carrying her effortlessly and sitting down on the rear facing back seat, still holding her and not letting her out of my arms. I whispered out loud to no one in particular… “It’s going to be okay…” * * * Author's Note I write commissions!. At 5 dollars per 1,000 words, I'm one of the cheaper writers on the site. If you have a story idea, E, T or M, please DM me and we'll work something out. //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 6 - Twilight's Slumber //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 6 - Twilight's Slumber Tim I was grateful to Melvin and the golf cart for getting me and Twilight most of the way to my car from the trailer yard. However, climbing down from the back of the golf cart and carrying Twilight in my arms to my car didn’t have the same feel as having carried her to the breakroom yesterday. A lot had happened in the last 24 hours, and I was far more emotionally attached to her than I felt any right being. Her extremely shallow breathing and complete dead weight haunted me as surely as if I had failed to save her life mere minutes ago, though I honestly was probably still in shock about the whole ordeal. I was hyper focused on the situation and would be until my adrenaline stopped pumping as hard, but I was also now worried about being exhausted from the use of all that adrenaline, especially since I don’t think I can justify sleeping while taking care of her. She would need me to be there in the slightest change of her condition. Loading Twilight into the backseat of my car felt like loading a sick animal to take home, or to take to the vet. Neither the physical nor emotional sensations felt right to me given the strong feelings I had for her, though I was hesitant to call it love. Her coat was damp from the extreme amount of sweat that she had experienced before passing out and her mane had lost its luster. Her breathing was swallow, but at least seemed even and not in distress. Saving her life was a miracle given my limited medical training, though part of me wished I could simply take her to a hospital, even though I knew they wouldn’t be able to do much for her other than maybe give her an I.V. Taking her to a veterinary clinic might help her more, but it would be demeaning to treat her like an animal. Equestria had yet to set up Pony Hospitals with Pony Medical Staff, which now, more than ever, felt like a mistake. I would have to try to feed her, give her water and take care of her other needs. Driving home was the longest 45 minutes of my life, and that was separate from having to tell Sara that Twilight was hurt, or sick. She would be very upset. No less upset than I was, I imagined. Carrying Twilight from the car felt heavier than before, not just physically but emotionally. The wheelchair ramp on my trailer, usually a reminder of past tenants, now seemed like a godsend. As I navigated up the incline, Twilight's unconscious form cradled against my chest, I couldn't shake the feeling of how fragile she seemed. Getting through the door was a challenge. For a split second, I considered slinging her over my shoulder like a sack of potatoes, but the thought of treating her so carelessly, even unconsciously, made my stomach turn. I managed to fumble with the lock, my arms straining to keep her secure. Once inside, I made a beeline for the daybed, laying her down as gently as if she were made of glass. The care I took surprised even me, and I had to take a steadying breath. Grabbing some towels, I placed them strategically under her, my mind already racing with the practicalities of what lay ahead. I knew what was coming - the unglamorous reality of caring for an unconscious patient. No catheter, no proper medical equipment, just me and my limited knowledge of pony physiology. The thought of dealing with her bodily functions made me wince, not out of disgust, but out of concern for her dignity. She'd be mortified if she knew, but it had to be done. This was my job now - medic, caretaker, friend. Maybe something more, a traitorous part of my mind whispered. I shoved that thought aside. I'd do this with all the respect and professionalism I could muster, even as her closeness and vulnerability stirred feelings I wasn't ready to confront. This whole situation was like a test I wasn’t ready to take. Under the right conditions, I could be a licensed practitioner nurse, but I had never challenged the test for it that Texas allowed Army medics to apply their practical experience for a competency placement based on experience. Being a nurse wouldn’t be an easier job, but perhaps more fulfilling since I liked helping people. It would pay more, but also required longer hours which would make it harder to take care of my daughter. It was one of those situations where having a wife would have greatly helped me. Thinking about it deeper, I think I could be a good nurse, but I wasn’t sure if I could be a good nurse for Twilight. Nurses aren’t supposed to love their patients. There are so many movies about why it’s a bad idea. Just looking at Twilight stirred my heart and brought back all those little moments, the teasing… and then, there was that other elephant in the room. Her ‘implied consent’ and ‘trusting me’, along with her ‘permission’ for me to do anything I wanted. That was dangerous power in the wrong hands. With all the prep work done, I knew I had to do my first check-up. It felt weird, given the circumstances. My mind kept returning to Twilight's permission about her implied consent while she was out. I used to enjoy initiating sex with my wife while she was asleep, and my wife loved being woken up that way. Twilight being asleep stirred long buried memories that were going to make this harder, not easier. Trying to stay professional, I carefully lifted her tail to check for any issues. What I saw threw me for a loop. Her mare bits were... pulsing? Like, almost spasming. It was as if just moving her tail had somehow turned her on. I'm no expert on horse anatomy, so I had to look it up. What I found hit me like a punch to the gut. A few quick searches and cross checking to make sure I wasn’t wrong, confirmed something I’m not sure helped me in any way. Twilight was in heat. I’m not a pony, so I’m not sure if I’d be able to smell it, if it had a smell. I wasn’t sure if pony pheromones would affect me, though it sure as hell explained why and how I was so attracted to her so quickly. I wouldn’t be able to bathe her while she was asleep, maybe a sponge bath… so that meant these pheromones were going to get stronger the longer she went without a bath. Between my desire, my loneliness, her permission and her pheromones… would I really be able to resist her? Did I even want to resist her? Blaming her heat, or her pheromones, would be an easy justification to using her implied consent, but it wouldn’t be true. Not entirely true? I couldn’t do it. No… well, physically, I probably could, but I’d hate myself afterwards. Implied consent or not… I’m not sure Twilight would ever forgive me. The daybed was the right height… I’d just have to pull her flank to edge, lift her tail… and it’s off to the races… Were her pheromones even a real consideration? I decided to look it up on my phone and discovered that scientifically speaking, pheromones had a scent, but humans couldn’t smell other humans’ pheromones, in most cases. Could I smell Twilight’s pheromones? Could I do a little test, just to see, um, for science? Needing to know for sure, I gently lifted her tail a second time, and I leaned in close. I could see her mare bits pulsing again with desire, even unconscious, and I leaned close and gently sniffed, seeing if maybe there was a smell I could pick up on. Her mare bits were moist and smelled sweet, perhaps the sweetest thing I had ever smelled… like the most beautiful flower to have ever existed. I felt my loins stir at the possibility of long withheld satisfaction and I stepped away, breathing hard. Okay, the pheromones are real… I better learn to like cold showers, and quick. That was too close for ethical comfort, God help me. What the hell is wrong with me… she needs my tender loving care, not my physical love. My thoughts turned a little darker as I considered the other half of that coin. She didn't really 'love me' - her body was just screaming at her to mate, and she probably didn't even get it herself. Maybe she hadn't been around stallions much during mating season back home. I mean, I knew she was an 'adult' for her kind, as all of the Equestrian Exchange Workers were adults, but now I was wondering if she was younger than I thought. I don’t recall her ever telling me her age and guys aren’t supposed to ask. What if this was her first heat? God, that made me feel even worse, like I was taking advantage of some confused kid going through puberty, no matter how old she actually was. The realization of how little I knew about Equestrian biology forced me to consider deeper implications. What if their maturity rates were completely different from humans? What if Twilight was younger - or older - than I'd assumed? The gaps in my knowledge suddenly felt dangerous, making my attraction to her even more complicated. I sighed, running a hand through my hair. Honor might be a poor reward for resisting temptation, but it was all I had to cling to right now. The memory of her scent lingered, threatening to overwhelm my resolve. The desire to lean down and partake again was almost impossible to resist, yet I knew that if I didn’t, I would eventually act on it. All that flirting, those sexy little moments - how much was really her, and how much was just biology? Worse still, how much of my teasing was also a reaction to pheromones that I didn’t know I was experiencing? Texas was hot… like 9 months out of the year, and a lot of male human pheromones are in sweat, which is why it’s described as musky. I also seemed to sweat more than average man, so it left me wondering if Twilight was also reacting to my pheromones? Could we forge a relationship that went past heat/mating season? I sure hoped so… however, it seemed self-evident that her being in season was confusing the issue of whether this was love, or simple lust. I'd come dangerously close to crossing a line I couldn't uncross. The fact that I'd even considered it, let alone could act on that curiosity, left me shaken. I stood by my experiment… I needed to know, and now I do. Harmless teasing suddenly felt like a slippery slope I was teetering on the edge of. But you know what? In the end, it didn't change much. She was still my roommate, still my friend, and right now, she needed me. So, I pushed down all those complicated feelings, gritted my teeth, and got to work. * * * Tim I didn’t like the idea of leaving Twilight alone, no more than I thought I’d be able to justify a nap, but I had to go pick up Sara. With me being home early today, there was no need for her to go to daycare, which would at least save me a little money. I went to the school 20 minutes early and explained to the staff that I would be picking up Sara at the end of class for the rest of the week, since I was off from work. Sara, herself, was confused to see me, but was happy to go straight home rather than go to daycare. I fastened her into her car seat and got back into the car. Sara looked at the front passenger seat and looked confused. “Can we go to the park? Where’s pony?” I sighed and rubbed my face. “Sara… Twilight got hurt today. She’s at home asleep. I’m going to have to take care of care for a few days so I’m going to need you on your best behavior, okay?” Sara teared up as only a 4-year-old could. “Let’s go home!” The drive home was less than 5 minutes, and we got inside the house. Sara went straight to the daybed and jumped up onto it. She gasped when she saw Twilight asleep on the bed. Sara looked up at me with wide eyes. “She’s like a princess. Sleeping Beauty. Maybe if you kiss her, she’ll wake up!” I frowned. “I don’t think it’s going to work like that, Sara…” Sara bit her lip. “Kiss her, kiss her, kiss her!” I shushed her, hoping not to overly disturb Twilight’s rest. “Okay, fine. I’ll kiss her.” Twilight had given me permission to do whatever I wanted, but given what I knew now, it didn’t make me feel any better. I leaned close, my heart racing. The memory of Twilight's pulsing mare bits and the undeniable scent of her pheromones flashed through my mind, making me hesitate. This wasn't just a fairy tale kiss – it was dangerously close to taking advantage. As my lips touched Twilight's, I felt a jolt of electricity run through me. Her lips were soft, inviting, and it took all my willpower to keep the kiss chaste in front my daughter, who seemed intent to make sure I was doing it correctly. I pulled back, my breath slightly ragged. For a moment, I understood why fairy tale princes always seemed so eager to kiss sleeping princesses. I had to remind myself that this was real life, with real consequences. Either way, I would have to take responsibility, as there was no way I’d be able to blame my daughter for this. Sara frowned when I pulled back and Twilight didn’t wake up. “That’s not a real kiss. Use tongue.” I was shocked by my daughter’s words. Sara's insistence on using tongue made me flush. If only she knew how tempting that idea was, and how dangerous. “Sara! Why would you say that!” Sara grumbled. “You used to use tongue with mommy. Only a real kiss can wake a princess!” I smirked. “I can’t believe you remember that. Did Prince Charming use tongue on Sleeping Beauty?” Sara looked away. “No…” I shook my head, “I’m sorry darling, but sometimes these things have to take their course. Humans don’t have the same magic as the ponies so I’ll just have to do the best I can.” Sara nodded. “Okay… I guess I’ll play in my room. I hope she gets better soon.” As Sara walked away, I whispered to myself, “I hope so too, kid.” My eyes lingered on Twilight's form, her chest rising and falling with each breath. The memory of our brief kiss tingled on my lips, a reminder of the fine line I was walking between caretaker and something more. I knew this was just the beginning. Caring for Twilight was going to test my resolve in ways I hadn't imagined. With her in heat, and me acutely aware of it, every interaction would be charged with unspoken tension. * * * Tim This was the longest Tuesday ever. The house was still. It carried a sadness that was hard to put into words. Sara played for a few hours while I was taking care of Twilight. To no surprise, Twilight did have a bowel movement that soiled the towels I had put down. Lifting her tail to clean her up with baby wipes proved to be very clinical for me, as it was easier to see her as a patient at this moment instead of as a friend or potential partner. It might not have been the correct mindset, but it certainly made it easier to deal with the emotional toil. I was worried about losing control of my emotions and becoming a crying mess. I cried for weeks after my wife died, though I managed to do so at night when Sara couldn’t see it. In a way, Twilight being alive made this worse. I had to take care of her, I could do no less. The close contact with her mare bits felt increasingly risky but at least the smell of cleaning her up masked the scent of her pheromones. The plans we made in the car this morning before the accident haunted me. God, was it really just this morning? It felt like a whole week had passed since this morning. She might still want to go through with it once she recovered but I was unsure if I should. If the accident hadn’t happened, I’d probably be balls deep in her right now… and the thought made me sick to my stomach. I barely knew her, and she would be leaving in 6 months. I didn’t understand how I could put myself through so much emotional turmoil. How could I fall in love with someone I knew was leaving? All those mare’s touch jokes gave way to a subconscious and lewd admission that I just needed a mare’s bits. I’d probably have to settle for a beer and a cold shower, except that I couldn’t drink while taking care of her. I tried to shake away both my morbid and displaced sexy thoughts, with limited success. I was pleased that I was able to trample down most of my sexy desires while taking care of her, though a few stray thoughts haunted me. After careful consideration, I decided that under no circumstances would I have sex with her while she was asleep, implied consent be damned. If there was going to be a first time, I wanted her to be an active player, anything less would be taking advantage of her, and I couldn’t do that. After replacing the towels and cleaning her up, I checked and was pleased that with triple layering, she didn’t soil the mattress. I kept up that practice of triple layering the towels and wondered if my washing machine could handle hospital style laundry… I knew that Twilight would have to eat something to recover, so I opted to heat up a pure liquid vegetable broth that was normally used in recipes for stews and spoon fed her. Heating up the broth took no time at all, and I sat beside her with the bowl and a spoon. Coaching her mouth open, I found it easy to position the spoon so that liquid went down her throat without choking her or making her gag and without spilling any of it. Watching her eat without her waking up had my heart in my throat. I watched her shallow breathing closely, knowing that it would be very easy for her to choke in these early stages of recovery. Finishing feeding her and looking at the empty bowl, I had to wonder if her suckling reflexes were still intact… No, bad, you must take care of her, remember? Oral wasn’t sex, according to Bill Clinton… No, bad, don’t try to justify it. This was going to a be long however many days… Sara came out of her room for dinner, looking over Twilight with a morbid sadness that no 4-year-old should have. I made her another bowl of Mac and Cheese, and she ate quietly. I made my rounds and did chores almost like I was just hoping that I could kill time until time to do the next task. Sara finished eating and asked me a question. “Can I watch a movie and sleep on the daybed with Twilight?” I nodded. “I don’t see why not, but you should know that she might have an accident near you. Why do you want sleep near her?” Sara nodded bravely. “I had accidents too. Twilight doesn't need to feel bad. And... I wanna give her lots of hugs. Hugs make everything better!” My eyes teared up at the thoughtfulness of my daughter. “Okay darling. We’ll both do our part to help Twilight, okay? Sara smiled as she climbed beside Twilight and hugged her. “Okay. Let’s watch Moana.” As the movie played, I felt the weight of exhaustion settling into my bones. My eyes burned, my muscles ached, and my stomach growled, reminding me I hadn't eaten since... when? This morning? I certainly didn’t eat lunch… Time blurred together. But I couldn't sleep. Not now. Not while Twilight needed constant care. I'd have to stay awake, vigilant, ready to respond to any change in her condition. I settled into the armchair next to the daybed, my body protesting every movement. From here, I could watch both Twilight's shallow breathing and Sara's eventual drift into sleep. My mind raced with worries about the coming days, even weeks. How long would Twilight be like this? What if she didn't wake up? What would I tell her family, her world? And if she did wake up, how would this change things between us? I shook my head, trying to clear these thoughts. My military training kicked in, reminding me to focus on the mission at hand. Focus on the now. You saved her and she needs you. It was both comforting that she needed me and terrified that I couldn’t afford to fail her. But this was going to be one hour at a time. One task at a time. That's how I'd get through this. As Moana's journey unfolded on the screen, I prepared myself for my own long night ahead, armed with coffee and determination. Twilight needed me, and I wouldn't let her down. * * * Wednesday Tim I stirred from my vigil in the armchair, realizing it was morning with my alarm clock going off at its standard time. I don’t think I fell asleep, but I was at least zoned out. Sara was still curled up next to Twilight on the daybed. I gently shook her shoulder. “Sara, sweetie, it's time to get ready for school.” Sara's eyes fluttered open, then immediately filled with worry as she looked at Twilight. “I'm not going,” she stated firmly. “Sara, honey, you have to…” “No!” she interrupted, her voice quivering. “What if Twilight wakes up and I'm not here? What if she... what if she doesn't wake up at all?” I sighed, perching on the edge of the daybed. “Sweetheart, Twilight's condition isn't going to change in just a few hours.” “You don't know that,” Sara mumbled, clinging to Twilight's mane. I rubbed my face, feeling the stubble of a missed shave. "Okay, how about this? You can stay home today, but tomorrow you're going back to school. Deal?" Sara nodded reluctantly. Throughout the day, Sara rarely left Twilight's side, occasionally reading to her or brushing her mane. I focused on Twilight's care, fighting waves of exhaustion. "Daddy, your eyes are all sleepy," Sara said, watching me change Twilight's towels again. "You look like a zombie." I managed a weak smile. “Thanks, kiddo. I'm just tired.” “Why don't you sleep? I can watch Twilight.” “That's sweet, but it's not your job. I need to be awake in case anything changes.” Sara frowned. “But what if you get sick too?” Her words hit hard. I knelt down, meeting her eyes. “I promise I'm being careful. Now, how about you draw Twilight a picture? I'm sure she'd love to see it when she wakes up.” As Sara busied herself with crayons, still sitting close to Twilight, I checked Twilight's vitals for the umpteenth time. “You've got to wake up soon,” I whispered. “I don't know how much longer I can do this.” Sara's voice piped up from her spot next to Twilight. “Daddy? Can we have pizza for dinner?” I glanced at the clock, surprised to see it was already late afternoon. “Sure, sweetie. Why don't you help me order?” As we scrolled through toppings on my phone, I felt a moment of normalcy. But Twilight's unconscious form right next to us was a constant reminder that nothing was normal anymore. “Daddy?” Sara asked as we finished our order. “Is Twilight going to be okay?” I pulled her into a hug, my own fears bubbling just beneath the surface. “I hope so, sweetheart. I really hope so.” * * * Thursday Tim Thursday morning arrived with a hazy, dreamlike quality. I hadn't slept in over 48 hours, and the world seemed to blur at the edges. I popped another caffeine pill, washing it down with lukewarm coffee. “Sara,” I called softly, gently shaking her awake. She was still curled up next to Twilight on the daybed. “Time for school, kiddo.” Sara's eyes opened, immediately filling with determination. “I'm staying home again.” I frowned, remembering our deal. “Sara, we agreed you'd go back to school today.” "I changed my mind," she said stubbornly, clutching Twilight's mane. “What if she needs me?” I sighed, running a hand through my unwashed hair. “Honey, we talked about this. Twilight's condition…” “You don't know!” Sara shouted, startling me. “You don't know anything! What if she wakes up and thinks we abandoned her?” I felt my patience wearing thin, lack of sleep fraying my nerves. I took a deep breath, falling back on my Army training to keep calm. “Okay, Sara. One more day. But tomorrow, you're going to school, no arguments. Understood?” Sara nodded, her lower lip trembling. The day unfolded differently than Wednesday. I focused on deep cleaning the house, hoping the physical activity would help keep me alert. Sara, perhaps sensing my mood, was quieter, alternating between coloring and reading softly to Twilight. Around midday, I was scrubbing the kitchen floor when Sara's voice broke through my fatigue-induced haze. “Daddy? Can I help?” I looked up, seeing her standing in the doorway, a determined look on her face. “Sure, sweetie. Want to dry the dishes?” As we worked side by side, Sara spoke up again. “I'm sorry I yelled earlier.” I paused, touched by her apology. “It's okay, honey. We're all a little stressed right now.” “Is that why you're not sleeping?” she asked, her eyes wide with concern. I nodded, choosing honesty. “Partly. But mainly, I need to stay awake to take care of Twilight. It's what soldiers do - we keep watch when others can't. I don’t want to lose her. You can’t possibly know how it feels to lose someone that you love.” Sara seemed to mull this over as she carefully dried a plate, but her eyes teared up. “You mean… like how when we lost mommy?” My breath caught in my throat while I pulled Sara close, trying very hard to hide my tears. “Oh Sara… I guess you do understand. I’m so sorry, baby.” She sniffled. “I love you, daddy. We will do our best! Can I be a soldier too? To help Twilight?” I smiled, feeling a surge of pride. “You already are, kiddo. You're being so brave.” As evening approached, I heated some soup for dinner. Sara insisted on helping feed Twilight, carefully holding the spoon as I guided her hand. “See?” she said triumphantly. “I can help take care of her too!” After dinner, as Sara settled in next to Twilight for the night, she looked up at me. “Daddy? Will you tell us a story? Maybe Twilight can hear it too.” Exhausted as I was, I couldn't refuse. I sat in the armchair, wracking my brain for a suitable tale. “Once upon a time,” I began, my voice rough with fatigue, “there was a brave little girl and her daddy, who were taking care of a magical pony princess...” As I wove the story, I watched Sara's eyes grow heavy. Even as she drifted off to sleep, I continued the tale, hoping that somehow, somewhere in her unconscious state, Twilight could hear us too. * * * Friday Tim Friday dawned, and I felt like I was moving through molasses. My vision blurred; my thoughts scattered. I'd been awake for 72 hours straight, sustained only by caffeine pills, coffee, and sheer willpower. I shuffled to the daybed, where Sara was already awake, stroking Twilight's mane. “Morning, sweetie. Ready for school?” To my surprise, Sara nodded. “I made a promise,” she said solemnly. Pride swelled in my chest, momentarily cutting through the fog of exhaustion. “That's my girl.” I moved to grab my keys, but as I reached for them, my hand trembled violently. The realization hit me like a bucket of cold water - I was in no condition to drive. “Sara,” I called, my voice hoarse. “Change of plans. We're both staying home today.” Sara's brow furrowed. “But you said…” “I know, honey. But Daddy's too tired to drive safely. We'll try again Monday, okay?” She nodded, looking relieved and concerned in equal measure. As I was deciding what to do first, my phone rang. I fished it from the bookshelf where I had placed it last night to charge and I was surprised to see Melvin calling me. “Hello, boss. What’s up?” Melvin’s gruff voice answered from the other end of the line. “Just calling to check up on Twilight. How is she?” I rubbed my face as I sighed. “She’s still sleeping. It’s been nearly 72 hours since the accident. She’s eating and drinking, with my help, and she doesn’t seem to be in pain, but she hasn’t woken up. I might have to call the EWE office and ask for advice in how to care for her or on where to take her if she doesn’t wake up soon. I don’t want to have to report the accident though. I’m not sure how it would affect the company.” I could hear Melvin’s frown. “Do the best you can for her. If she’s not awake by Monday, we’ll have no choice but to get her more professional help and report the accident. Keep me updated.” The line went dead before I could say ‘yes, boss’ but it didn’t matter. I had no idea if I could stay up another 3 days and I was afraid to try. Being too tired to take care of her properly might be worse than not taking care of her at all. The day unfolded in a haze. I focused on quiet, repetitive tasks – folding laundry, organizing drawers – anything to keep my hands busy and my mind alert. Sara, sensing my state, took on the role of little caretaker, bringing me water and reminding me to eat. In the late evening, after dinner and nearing Sara’s bedtime and getting closer to another sleepless night, I found myself staring blankly at Twilight, my thoughts a jumble. Sara's voice cut through the fog. “Daddy? Why don't you sing to Twilight? You always sing when you're happy.” I blinked, surprised by the suggestion. “I'm not sure I remember any songs right now, sweetie.” “That's okay,” Sara said, patting my hand. “I'll teach you one.” And with that, she launched into a slightly off-key rendition of “You Are My Sunshine.” Chuckling weakly, I joined in, our voices blending in the quiet room. As we sang, I felt a slight stirring beneath my hand where it rested on Twilight's flank. My heart leapt. “Sara,” I whispered, “go get me a glass of water, quick.” As Sara scampered off, I leaned closer to Twilight. “Come on,” I murmured. “Come back to us.” Sara returned with the water just as Twilight's eyes fluttered open. Relief washed over me, so powerful it nearly knocked me off my feet. “Hey,” I said softly, helping Twilight take a sip of water. “Welcome back.” Twilight blinked, her gaze focusing on me. “Tim?” she croaked. “What happened?” I smiled, exhaustion momentarily forgotten. “It's a long story. But you're okay now. You're safe.” Sara climbed onto the daybed, wrapping her arms around Twilight's neck. “We missed you so much!” As Twilight nuzzled Sara, her eyes met mine again. The gratitude and affection in her gaze made my heart swell. In that moment, despite my exhaustion, despite the challenges ahead, I knew everything would be alright. * * * Twilight The sound of off-key singing stirred something within me. In Equestria, we know music as the magic of the soul, born of the desire to spread joy. It's why my friend Pinkie Pie is always singing as she embodies the Element of Laughter. As Tim and Sara's voices reached me, I felt my body absorb that joyful energy, gently pushing me back to consciousness. I felt as if I had been asleep for longer than I intended, my limbs feeling heavy with disuse. Tim’s immediate offer of water was very appreciated for my parched throat and Sara’s hug was very welcome as I was very fond of the child. I felt warm and loved. Sara’s hug made me feel giddy. As the warmth of their love washed over me, a chilling memory suddenly surfaced. I panicked as I vaguely remembered thinking that I was having a magic stroke… Magic Strokes, caused by excessive overuse of magic, were the leading cause of death for unicorns. They primarily affected undertrained magicians attempting complex spells and war mages forced to use magic past normal limits in battle. Of course, neither case applied to my situation here, so what happened? I stretched stiffly, feeling like I haven’t moved in days, but smiled at Tim. I repeated my question. “What happened?” Tears streaked down Tim’s face and when he spoke, I found myself stunned by his answer. “You died. I had to use CPR on you to get you to start breathing again. We nearly lost you.” My throat went dry as the implications of what had happened sank in. I'd always been confident in my magical abilities, but this... this was different. “I didn't think the spell would kill me,” I muttered, more to myself than to Tim. “But maybe the density of human metals makes certain spells more dangerous here than in Equestria.” A chill ran down my spine. I'd have to include a warning about this in my next report home. That is, if I could even send one after depleting my magic so severely. A quick check showed that my magic was working… but how could that be if I depleted it to the point of a Magic Stroke? Unicorns almost never survived that… and yet, Tim saved me… I looked up at Tim, seeing the worry etched into every line of his face. Guilt washed over me. “I guess I owe you an apology and a very sincere thank you,” I said softly. “Thank you for saving me, Tim. I mean it.” Sara, who had been quietly observing, suddenly piped up, “We were so worried, Twilight! I helped take care of you too!” I smiled at her, touched by her concern. “Thank you, Sara. You're such a brave girl.” Tim's smile was a pale shadow of his usual grin, exhaustion clear in every movement. “Twilight...” he began, his voice rough with fatigue, “it's Friday. You've been asleep for 3 days.” My jaw dropped open, and I stared at him in disbelief. As I really looked at him, I noticed the dark circles under his eyes, the stubble on his chin, the rumpled clothes… “...And it doesn't look like you've slept in 3 days...” I breathed, realization dawning. His chuckle was dry, devoid of humor. “I haven't,” he confirmed, running a hand through his unkempt hair. “I had to take care of you, and I couldn't risk what might have happened to you while I was asleep. I was... I was so scared, Twilight. I didn’t want to lose you like I lost my wife.” My heart swelled at his admission, at the depth of his dedication. Despite my weakened state, I felt a warmth spreading through me that had nothing to do with magic. Aware of Sara's presence, I kept my tone gentle but meaningful. “You both have been so wonderful. I can't thank you enough.” Then, turning to Sara, I said, “Sweetie, you must be tired after all this excitement. How about you go to bed, and we can have a special day together tomorrow?” Sara looked hesitant, but Tim backed me up. “That's a great idea. It's past your bedtime, kiddo.” With a bit more coaxing, we managed to get Sara to her room. I used my magic to tuck her in, just like that first night in Tim's home. I couldn't help but smile at how much had changed since then. Coming back out into the living room, I felt a new energy coursing through me. My hips swayed as I walked, my tail swishing from side to side in a way I knew would catch Tim's attention. I was feeling frisky, yes, but more than that, I was filled with an overwhelming desire to show Tim just how much his care meant to me. Suddenly, being roommates with benefits was much more appealing and it was time for some serious thanking. I benefited from his care now he could benefit from mine… I giggled at the thought of being together. I knew I was in heat, and I could smell my own pheromones quite thickly, as it was clear that I hadn’t had a bath in days. To my surprise, I could also smell Tim’s pheromones, as it was likely that he hadn’t showered in as many days as it had been since he had last slept. The scent was musky and deep, like an old book just begging to be held, read and used. I needed that musk. I needed him. When I emerged from the hallway, my heart full of intentions and desires, I was met with an unexpected sight. Tim was slumped over on the bed, his body finally surrendering to the exhaustion of the past few days. His chest rose and fell with the deep, steady rhythm of sleep, a soft snore escaping his lips. My initial disappointment at not being able to show my appreciation melted away, replaced by a wave of affection so strong it nearly overwhelmed me. This was my hero, the one who had not only saved my life but had dedicated days to ensuring my recovery. The sight of him, vulnerable and exhausted, made my heart swell with emotions I was only beginning to understand. Quietly, careful not to wake him, I approached the bed. Using a combination of magic and gentle physical maneuvering, I managed to tuck Tim properly into bed. His face, even in sleep, showed signs of the stress he'd been under, but as I pulled the covers over him, I saw some of that tension ease. I stood there for a moment, watching him sleep, before making my decision. Gently, I climbed onto the bed and lay down beside him. The warmth of his body next to mine was comforting in a way I couldn't quite describe. I knew we wouldn't be working on Saturday, so there would be time tomorrow to properly thank him, to talk, to figure out what all of this meant for us. As I settled in, I found myself drawn to him. Leaning over, I placed a soft, chaste kiss on his lips. He stirred slightly but didn't wake. My heart racing, I brought my muzzle close to his ear and whispered words I had never said to anyone outside my family before: “I love you, Tim.” The words hung in the air, both thrilling and terrifying. Did I truly understand what I was feeling? Was it too soon? But as I lay there, listening to Tim's steady breathing, feeling the rise and fall of his chest, I knew that whatever this was, it was real and powerful. With these thoughts swirling in my mind, I closed my eyes, allowing myself to be lulled back to sleep by the rhythm of Tim's breathing and the warmth of his presence. Tomorrow would bring its own challenges, but for now, I was content to simply be here, next to the human who had come to mean so much to me. * * * Author's Note I write commissions!. At 5 dollars per 1,000 words, I'm one of the cheaper writers on the site. If you have a story idea, E, T or M, please DM me and we'll work something out. //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 7 - Bubbling Emotions //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 7 - Bubbling Emotions Tim I stirred slowly, my mind groggy and confused. The soft light filtering through the curtains felt alien after days of constant vigilance. Looking at the clock, I was surprised to see that it was already nearly afternoon. For a moment, panic gripped me: Had I really fallen asleep? But then, like a warm wave washing over me, I remembered: Twilight had woken up. She was okay. As I lay there, allowing relief to settle in my bones, two things cut through my foggy consciousness: the sound of giggling and the unmistakable aroma of... bacon? I frowned, bemused. Bacon? The scent was so normal, so domestic, it felt surreal after the stress of the past few days. Blinking away the last vestiges of sleep, I pushed myself up on my elbows and looked around. The sight that greeted me confirmed I wasn't dreaming. Twilight was at the stove, her magic manipulating pans and utensils, while Sara sat at the kitchen counter, swinging her legs as she munched on what looked like toast. I attempted to get up, my body protesting after days of minimal sleep and maximum movement in the form of chores. As I stretched, it felt like every joint in my body cracked at once. I winced, narrowly avoiding pulling something. The noise drew Twilight's attention, and she turned to me with a warm smile that made my heart skip a beat. "Good morning, sleepyhead," she said, her voice a mix of affection and amusement. "I was starting to wonder if you'd sleep for three days like I did." The normality of the scene - Twilight cooking, Sara eating breakfast, me waking up to their voices - hit me like a wave. After days of fear and uncertainty, this moment of domestic tranquility felt almost unreal. I found myself blinking back tears, overwhelmed by relief and a surge of affection for both of them. I rubbed my eyes, still somewhat disoriented. "It is Saturday, right? How long was I out?" Twilight's giggle was like music, making my heart do a little flip. "Yes, it's Saturday," she confirmed, her eyes twinkling. "You've been asleep for about 15 hours. I thought you could use a proper meal after everything, so I tried my hoof at cooking for you. Are you up for it?" Her eagerness was infectious. I hauled myself out of bed, my muscles protesting, and made my way to the kitchen. Exhaustion was nothing new for a soldier; adapt and overcome and all that. My civilian friends couldn’t keep up with me for very real reasons. Once in the kitchen, what I saw there was... well, it was something. Runny eggs pooled on the plate, the bacon was charred in places, and the toast looked sturdy enough to patch a roof. It was clear Twilight had no idea how to cook human food, and somehow, that made it even more endearing. Given what I knew about cooking, it appeared that she had cooked the eggs first when the skillet wasn’t fully warmed up yet and then then cooked the bacon for too long at a temperature too high. The toast… I couldn’t explain the toast. I settled at the kitchen counter, sitting down beside Sara with the plate Twilight had given me, acutely aware of her anxious gaze. Sara looked over at my plate with a frown. “Daddy, why does your food look funny?” I snorted and smiled at her. “It looks fine, Sara. Adults sometimes like food cooked a particular way that might go outside what is considered normal taste. You’ll understand when you’re older.” With as much nonchalance as I could muster, I doctored up the meal using Army training to make any meal edible - jam on the toast; ketchup, salt and black pepper on the eggs, and careful navigation around the bacon's more dangerous-looking edges. Then, under Twilight’s watchful eye, I ate every bite. Luckily, I didn’t chip a tooth. As I set down my fork, Twilight burst out, “Well? Did you like it?” Her eyes were wide, a mix of hope and apprehension, clearly remembering Sara’s words from earlier. I couldn't help but smile. “Honestly? It's better than some of the chow I had in the Army,” I said, and it wasn't entirely a lie. “I think you did great for your first try with foods I know you have never tried to cook. Maybe next time, we can cook something together and I could show you a few tricks?” Her bright smile faltered a bit. “You're not just saying that to make me feel better, are you?” The vulnerability in her voice tugged at my heart. I reached out and placed my hand on her hoof, ignoring how natural that gesture felt. “Twilight, after everything we've been through, do you really think I'd lie to you about breakfast?” Twilight ducked her head, her mane falling over her eyes in a gesture that was both shy and endearing. “It's the least I could do after you saved my life,” she murmured, then glanced up at me through her forelock. “And I... I hope to do more to show my gratitude.” The intensity in her gaze made me clear my throat, suddenly aware of the tension between us. “I did what anyone with a conscience would do,” I said, trying to downplay my actions. Then, seeking to lighten the mood, I suggested, “If you really want to thank me, how about we go to the park?” Twilight's brow furrowed in confusion. “The park?” she echoed, tilting her head. “What could we possibly do there that would be a suitable thank you?” I couldn't help but chuckle, a genuine smile spreading across my face. “Well, for one, it'll give Sara a chance to play. It's been a while since she's had the opportunity to really let loose and have fun. My little soldier needs the exercise.” I glanced at my daughter, who was now watching us with curious eyes. “And honestly, I think we could all use some fresh air and sunshine after the week we've had.” * * * Twilight The park was just a short drive from home, a sprawling green space dotted with modern playground equipment that made me think wistfully of the simpler structures back in Ponyville. Sara's excitement was palpable as she raced towards the playground, her energy seemingly inexhaustible as she conquered ladders and whooshed down slides. The set-up was impressive. The playset had a huge tower that mimicked a castle, complete with both stairs and ropes to get to the top. The slides were thick plastic, so as not to get too hot in the Texas summer heat. The monkey bars, as I was informed of the name, looked dangerous for a child so young, but the ground was covered in a soft matted material to reduce injuries in the event of a fall. Tim watched her with a mixture of pride and nostalgia, his smile softening the worry lines that had etched themselves on his face over the past few days. “She's got my energy,” he murmured, more to himself than to me. “It's good to see her like this again.” Sara tried her hands at the monkey bars and got about halfway across when she lost her grip and fell. I rushed forward to help her up, ashamed of myself for not catching her in my magic. “Are you okay, Sara?” To my surprise, Sara giggled. “Of course! Fall once, get up twice. Adapt and overcome. I will do this!” Sara ran off to try again and I returned to Tim’s side. His smile was twinged with tears. “Adapt and overcome is an old military expression. Both me and my wife used to say it a lot. Pain is weakness leaving the body… I’m so proud of her… if only her mother could see her now.” I could feel my own eyes filling with tears, overcome by the moment. This was so much deeper than just playing. This was training that would shape the rest of her life. The moment was shattered as my ears picked up on a distant conversation. “Is that man with that pony? Are they dating?” Another woman seemed to snort. “First, they take our jobs and now they are taking our men. I hope he gets arrested for bestiality. Sex with horses isn’t legal in Texas…” My ears turned down, but I wasn’t sure how to address this and I surely didn’t want to confront the two women about their narrow-minded and incorrect thinking. Equestrians weren’t horses… After about two hours of break-neck speed playing, Sara's pace began to slow, and Tim suggested we explore the walking trail that wound through the park. I smiled at Sara. “Would you like a pony ride? I think we can justify it in the park.” Without hesitation, Sara clambered onto my back, her small arms wrapping around my neck. The familiar weight was comforting, reminding me of Spike back home. For a moment, homesickness washed over me, quickly replaced by a warmth as I realized that, in a way, I was forming a new kind of family here. As we strolled along the path, Sara's presence kept our conversation light, but she had a knack for asking unexpectedly profound questions. “Hey, Twilight?” Sara piped up, tapping my head to get my attention. “Will you be my mommy?” The question hung in the air. Tim's face went carefully blank, clearly unsure how to respond. I felt a lump form in my throat. “Oh, sweetie,” I said softly, “I'd love to be your mommy, but that's... complicated. It would mean marrying your dad, and we're not quite there yet.” Sara's frown was audible in her voice. “Well, work faster. I'm not getting any younger, you know.” The sheer precociousness of her statement broke the tension. Tim's face flushed red, and I couldn't help but giggle. Despite the complexities of our situation, at that moment, it felt like we were a real family, with all the ups and downs that came with it. I twisted my neck to place a gentle kiss on Sara's cheek. “I'll see what I can do,” I said, my tone playful but with an undercurrent of sincerity. Then I turned to Tim, my gaze meeting his. I could feel the heat in my own eyes, the desire that had been building since I woke up. Tim rubbed the back of his neck, clearly flustered. I remembered his words from before my accident, his admission of attraction. But now, after everything that had happened, I wasn't sure where we stood. Had his feelings changed? I knew that mine hadn’t… The only way to find out was to take a chance... * * * Tim The drive home was tense, the air thick with unspoken words and Twilight's barely concealed desire, which thanks to knowing what her pheromones smelled like, I could literally smell her desire. It was more than distracting as I had to fight to keep my own desires from showing. At home, Sara's exhaustion from the park was evident, and Twilight volunteered to give her a bath while I prepared an early dinner. “I can handle bath time,” Twilight insisted with a warm smile. “You've done so much already.” I nodded, grateful for the momentary reprieve. “Thanks, Twilight. I'll whip up something we can all enjoy.” Sara ran towards the bathroom to get ready for another bath, but Twilight lingered. When Sara was out of sight, Twilight leaned in close and inhaled deeply, taking in my scent. She giggled. "You smell wonderful... I love your musk." She grinned mischievously and then licked my arm playfully. "Such delicious salt... if you're not careful, I might mistake you for a salt lick and follow you around all day!" She sundered away towards the bathroom but flicked her tail back and forth, teasing me and giving me a good look at what lay ahead… and behind. I looked down at the stove… now unsure of what to cook, but blushing hot enough to not need the stove to cook anything. I exhaled in a puff of frustration… “Oh, boy… what have I gotten myself into…” As I started to cook, I could hear Sara's giggles and splashes mingling with Twilight's gentle instructions. It didn’t sound like Twilight was in the bath with Sara this time, which was different from Monday. The domesticity of it all both warmed my heart and complicated my feelings further. Twilight might have tried to do me a favor by bathing my daughter, but performing the duties of a wife and mother was no favor to my emotional state, especially post-accident where I barely managed to not lose her. During dinner, I watched as Twilight mirrored my earlier determination, eating every bite of the meal I'd prepared without comment. As she finished, she caught my eye. “That was delicious, Tim. Thank you,” she said softly. "I'm glad you liked it," I replied, relieved. "I wasn't sure if I'd got the flavors right for you." Sara, barely keeping her eyes open, mumbled, “Can we watch a movie?” I chuckled, shaking my head. It was still early but it was clear that she had worn herself out. “Not tonight, sweetheart. It's bedtime for you.” After tucking Sara in, I returned to find Twilight waiting for me, her body language unmistakably inviting. She sauntered towards me, her hips swaying in a way that made my mouth go dry. “Can I reward you now?” she purred, her voice low and sultry. “Sara's asleep, and this might be our best chance...” I sighed, steeling myself. “Twilight, I think you should sit down. We need to talk.” She complied, her expression shifting from seductive to concerned. “This sounds ominous. Are you breaking up with me? Because I hope you'll let me try to change your mind first...” I winced at her words. “I'm not kicking you out, Twilight. But... there's something we need to discuss. You're in heat. And I... I can't take advantage of that. It wouldn't be right.” To my surprise, Twilight grinned and giggled. “Of course I'm in heat! It's summer! But don't mistake me for some mindless animal. I know exactly what I want, Tim. What I need. And that need is you. All of you.” My eyes widened in shock. “You knew? All this time?” She nodded, her expression softening. “I didn’t know how to tell you. It’s kinda weird to explain to creatures that don’t experience it. I've been experiencing heat since I was 12 and I’m 22 now, so I know what I’m doing, kinda. But you... you're the first male I've ever truly desired. We Equestrian ponies can control our urges. This isn't lust, Tim. I... I love you. I've just never been in love before, so I didn't know how to express it.” I took a deep breath, my mind reeling. “So... where do we go from here?” Twilight stood up and approached me slowly. “How about we start with a bath? We're both sweaty from the park. It's innocent enough, but also... not quite. You mentioned it's intimate for humans. Maybe we can take things slow, but still explore this... connection between us?” Despite my reservations, I found myself smiling. “A bath, huh? Well... I suppose you've got yourself a date.” As we headed towards the bathroom, Twilight added softly, “Tim? Thank you for being so considerate. It means more than you know.” I squeezed her hoof gently. “That's what you do when you care about someone, Twilight. I still think that we should have a nice long conversation about where we are and what we want before we push things further… but if a bath is the ice breaker you want… I can meet you halfway. Now, let's see where this leads us.” * * * Twilight Tim ran a hot bath for us, and I could barely contain my excitement. Despite having lived here for a week, I had yet to see Tim without his curious human attire. The concept of constant clothing still puzzled me. As the tub filled, Tim disrobed with casual ease. I couldn't help but stare, taken aback by the differences in human anatomy from pony anatomy, the lack of a sheath for the male organ being the most telling. My cheeks flushed as I quickly averted my gaze and climbed into the bath, unsure how to react. Tim joined me in the tub, and I realized that while bathing with Sara back on Monday had been spacious enough, Tim's larger frame made things considerably tighter. He must have noticed my uncertainty. With a gentle chuckle, he said, “Here, let me help.” Before I could respond, he grasped me gently by the withers. His strength, though not unexpected from years of rolling drums and doing other physical work at Pipeline Express, still surprised me as he effortlessly lifted and settled me onto his lap. The intimate contact sent a shiver through me, igniting feelings I'd never experienced before. I found myself simultaneously thrilled and overwhelmed by our closeness. “Is this, okay?” Tim asked softly, his tone laced with concern and affection. I nodded, not trusting my voice. As we sat there, enveloped in warm water and newfound intimacy, I realized we had crossed a threshold. Whatever came next, there was no going back - and I found I didn't want to. Tim reached for the shampoo; his movements deliberate. “Let's get you cleaned up,” he said, his voice lower than usual, husky with a desire that seemed to match my own. As he worked the lather into my mane, his fingers sent shivers down my spine. Each touch felt electric, charged with unspoken desire. I couldn't help but lean into his hands, savoring the contact. “Close your eyes,” Tim murmured. As he rinsed my mane, I felt his breath, warm against my ear. My heart raced at our proximity. When he picked up the soap, his eyes met mine, seeking permission. I nodded, unable to speak, afraid that a moan would come out instead of words. Tim's touch, while gentle, was far from clinical. His hands moved slowly, almost reverently, across my shoulders and back. As Tim's hands moved gently across my body, I found myself overwhelmed by a mix of desire and vulnerability. This level of intimacy was new to me, and while part of me wanted to dive in headfirst, another part trembled with uncertainty. He washed my chest and my stomach, pausing just above my teats and my sex below them. His whisper came into my ear, causing me to shudder and wilt. “May I?” His gesture towards my teats left nothing to the imagination. I nodded, barely whispering back, “You may… but be gentle. They are sensitive while I’m in heat.” He whispered back, his honest sincerity causing me to melt in his hands. “I would never hurt you. If at any point you want me to stop, I will.” My breath hitched as he rubbed soap on my most intimate parts. He managed to get me clean without making it overly sexual, but I couldn’t help but admit that it was the best bath I had ever had. I wanted more, but I accepted what he had been willing to give. He had wanted to take it slow, and it was me that was pushing this. I had to hope that he also wanted this and wasn’t just indulging me. The casual conversation he attempted couldn't mask the tension between us. His voice had a slight tremor, betraying his own nervousness. As he helped me rinse, his hands lingered a moment longer than necessary. “There,” he said softly, “all clean.” Our eyes locked, and for a moment, I thought he might kiss me. Instead, he handed me the cloth, his fingers brushing my hoof. “Your turn,” he said with a small smile. The air felt thick with anticipation as I began to wash him, both of us acutely aware of every touch, every shared breath. This wasn't just a bath - it was a dance on the edge of something much more profound. It was a test that I couldn’t afford to fail. I wouldn’t fail… this was all or nothing… pass or fail. The stakes couldn’t be higher. I washed him as gently as he had just washed me, and I looked for signs of if I was doing too much or doing it the wrong way. Washing his intimate parts caused a reaction and I was shocked by how large his organ was able to grow. I blushed, not sure if such a thing could fit inside me, but I was eager to find out. Getting him clean made me feel good, like I was returning the favor. Having him completely washed up, I sat down in his lap, facing him. My legs were wrapped around him, and I was very aware of where I was sitting. His member was playing on my outer lips. One wrong move, and bath time would become lovemaking, but I needed his permission as much as I had given him mine. I leaned in. “Kiss me…” He leaned in slowly and met my lips. The kiss went deep as I parted my lips and let him explore my mouth. We stopped only for the need to breathe, and we both seemed to sigh. For me, it was breathless anticipation for more, but for him, I could sense a sense of longing and hesitation. I frowned. “What’s wrong?” He looked at me deeply in the eyes, with a tear running down his face. “I remember doing this with my wife. Everything is screaming at me to stop. There are things we haven’t considered, things we haven’t talked about… and I think we need to talk it about like rational adults before you allow yourself to go all the way and sink yourself on top of me. I need some closure first. Let’s towel off and get dry… please.” * * * Tim The warmth of the bath faded quickly, replaced by a chill that had nothing to do with the air temperature. I had shattered the moment, but I knew it was necessary. As we stepped out of the tub, the silence between us was palpable, heavy with unspoken words and unfulfilled desires. Twilight's earlier confidence seemed to have evaporated. She avoided my gaze as she toweled off, her movements mechanical and devoid of the playful teasing from days before. I could almost see the gears turning in her head, likely replaying every moment, wondering where she had mis-stepped. Telling her that ‘It’s not you, it me’ felt too cliché, but it was true in this case. As I dried myself, my mind raced. Had I done the right thing? The look of hurt and confusion in Twilight's eyes made my chest ache, but the memory of my late wife's touch still lingered on my skin. I was caught between two worlds, two loves, and the weight of it all threatened to crush me. "Twilight," I started, my voice hoarse. She looked up, her eyes a mix of hope and fear. "We need to talk. There's so much we haven't considered." She nodded; her usual eloquence abandoned. "Of course," she whispered. I dressed in silence, the rustle of fabric unnaturally loud in the quiet bathroom. As we made our way to the living room, the short walk felt like miles. The conversation ahead loomed large, promising to change everything between us, for better or worse. I sat down on the couch while she sat down on the daybed. The height of the bed made me look up at her which made it seem like she was looking down at me. Judging me. That felt appropriate since I was the one being judged here. “Twilight. Despite my hesitation, I think I love you. I know my wife would want me to move on and find love again, but there are laws to consider.” Twilight frowned. “What laws?” I sighed and rubbed my face. “Sex with horses, specifically. Given Earth’s normal laws, I’m not sure it’s legal for me to have sex with you. The idea of being arrested and losing my daughter is soul-shattering. I can’t choose you over my daughter but I’m not sure I’m allowed to have both.” Twilight’s breath seemed to catch, as if she had no idea that such a concern could have crossed my mind. Remembering the ladies at the park, she smiled warmly and tried to reassure me. “Tim, I can see you're worried about the implications of our relationship. But I need you to understand something important. As part of the agreement between Equestria and Earth, I have the same rights as any human citizen here.” I frowned, uncertain that I understood what she was saying. “I understand that, but... aren’t their limits to rights? It seems to vary by nation, at least on Earth…” She shook her head rapidly, “No, listen. This isn't just about work rights or property ownership. The treaty specifically addresses personal relationships. Equestrians are recognized as sentient beings with full autonomy and rights. Any relationship between us is legally protected.” I gasped. “Are you sure? I can't risk losing Sara...” She smiled at me in equal parts lust and certainty. “Tim, the treaty between our worlds was carefully crafted to address these exact concerns. Our leaders recognized that meaningful romantic connections might form between humans and ponies, and they wanted to ensure those relationships would be protected.” I looked down at the floor, ashamed of my lack of knowledge. “I had no idea the treaty was so comprehensive.” She looked at me, full of love and forgiveness. “It had to be. Our worlds are so different, but our capacity for love and companionship is the same. The treaty acknowledges that. You probably can’t have sex with a horse, but you can have sex with an Equestrian, and there is a difference.” I sighed. “I guess I should be happy that the opportunity exists for something more to happen between us, but we still have one more major point to work through before I can allow this to go further.” Twilight’s lust filled eyes seemed to also smirk as she appeared to enjoy solving the problems preventing her from jumping me. “And that last point of contention is?” I met her gaze. “Foals. You said that you weren’t sure you wanted foals right now but that it shouldn’t stop us from exploring a relationship. However, you are in heat. So, unless you have a birth control spell or potion, us having sex will likely lead to pregnancy, if it’s possible for me to breed you. I’ll have you know that despite your consent, I didn’t do anything to you sexually while you were asleep.” Twilight’s lust fell as a frown crossed her face. “Hm. Ponies generally don’t use birth control and most the species on my world can crossbreed, so that is something we need to consider. I suppose if you did use my consent, and it took, I wouldn’t still be in heat…” I rubbed the back of my neck, unsure about how to ask the next question. “How does that work anyway. Cross-species breeding?” The academic in Twilight forced her to smile at the question. “On my world, most males of any species can get most females of any species pregnant, however, the offspring is 100% the same species as the mother. If we can have foals, the children I’ll give you will be ponies. So, you won’t have to worry about some weird half-human, half-pony child. At least… if it works the same way. Humans are a low-magic, no-magic species.” Her explanation made sense, with magic as a factor, but I also felt the need to defend my perspective on love and life. “I think I would love any child you gave me, no matter what they looked like.” Twilight placed her hooves over her heart, as if overwhelmed with emotion. “Tell me more about how much you’d love our children.” Her question sounded sincere without what I would normally refer to as artificial drama, which made the whole exchange more endearing to me. I smiled, “I believe I’d love them at least as much, if not more, than the love I’m developing for you. However, Earth isn’t equipped to raise a pony foal like a human child. I would hate to see our foals in a human daycare. I think that if we wanted to get married, and have foals together, we’d have to move to Equestria and live there. Which also forces me to ask about how well would Sara be treated in Equestria?” Twilight’s eyes seemed to twinkle in the light of the room. “Sara is young enough to be able to easily adapt to how ponies live and work. As a human, she’d probably grow up to do Earth Pony style work. She might get teased about not having a cutie mark, but that would fade as she got older, not that any of the foals would be able to see a blank flank while she’s wearing clothes. By the time she’s an adult, ponies will have accepted human differences within our society, which was the whole point of the worker exchange program in the first place.” I cleared my throat. “And your parents? Would they accept a human as their son-in-law? Would they accept a human granddaughter and treat her as well as they would the pony grandchildren?” Twilight could see how important this was, and she nodded. “I’m going to have to keep you away from my mom, for more than one reason. Her cooking will make you fat and I like you nice and lean like you are now.” I had to keep my laugh quiet to avoid waking up Sara, but the mirth of her statement brought happy tears to my eyes. I was still grounded in reality and needed more answers. This conversation about the future of our relationship was a huge step forward. “I’m sure I could find work with the connections of your family, but would being married to a human hurt your career?” She shook her head. “I’ll likely be joining my monarch’s royal court as a civil servant, serving the government alongside my father. I am supposed to be sending reports home weekly to update my father and the Princess on my progress here. Marrying a human might even enhance my career, since it would prove that the Worker Exchange Program was successful. If it makes you feel any better, I could seek my father’s and my Princess’ permission to court you, so you have their permission also, and not just mine?” I smiled and offered a playful accusation. “Huh. You’re not trying to marry me just to enhance your career, are you?” The look of shock on her face was priceless as she tried to walk it back. “No! I’d never do such a thing… Please…” I stood up, walked towards her and hushed her with a kiss. “I’m joking, Twilight. Getting your father’s blessing would be nice but he’s never met me so…” Twilight kissed me back. “It doesn’t hurt to ask. So… where do we stand now?” I smiled at her, love and warmth spreading in my chest. “Well, we can’t have sex until either you’re not in heat any longer or we know that I can’t get you pregnant. So… I guess we get to cuddle and watch a movie.” Twilight groaned and hung her head. Under her breath, she mumbled. “I’m going to need that pony-sized cold shower…” * * * Twilight Lying down with Tim on the daybed as a repeat of Monday night while watching a movie was both good and bad. I practically crushed him; I was cuddling him so hard. I really wanted him to just flip me over and… He kissed me on the cheek. “Hey now, if you crush me too badly, I won’t be able to mount you at all.” I whimpered like a puppy. “How dare you tease me like that… I need you so bad…” Tim tensed. “How are we going to tell Sara? I don’t want this to be awkward.” I perked up, sensing an opportunity. “She wants me to be her mommy, so I guess we just tell her that we’re dating. Surely there is a way to meet both of our needs?” He stilled, likely considering his answer. “I could wear a condom, but it won’t feel as good for me, and it won’t sate your heat. We’ll both still be dealing with it in our own way. How long are we going to be in heat?” I was happy to explain more about how this worked. “I’ll be in heat for 5-7 days at a time, or a little longer in rare cases, once every 3 weeks, for the next 5 months. While I’m not in heat, I can’t get pregnant; while I am in heat, a single encounter might be enough to put a foal in me if your species can do it. Poorly timed as ever, my heat started last Sunday night, the day before I started at Pipeline. It is Friday, so it should stop no later than Sunday night and then I’ll have 2 weeks of relief before the next cycle starts again on the third week from now.” Tim sighed. “You said ponies don’t normally use birth control. How do mares that don’t have a partner normally handle heat?” I leaned into him again, gently this time. “Mares can take a potion that forces the physical effects of being in heat to be controlled… but it still leaves them fertile. The potions are expensive so it’s an option only for the wealthy of my society. Most mares just masturbate… we have a device called a ‘cooler’ that provides a cooling sensation while mimicking sex. It supposedly helps a lot.” Tim gulped. “Do you have a cooler with you? Do you need some privacy?” I shook my head. “I’ve ever used a cooler… I am a true virgin. One of the benefits of being Princess Celestia’s personal student was that I got the heat potions for free.” He rubbed my withers, causing me to flutter. “Can you get the potions you need?” I grunted, not very ladylike on my part but I was still frustrated. “No… the potions could be dangerous to humans, so they aren’t allowed on this side of the portal until your FDA has time to test them. You mentioned a condom? What are those and how do they work?” I could hear him gulp. “Condoms are a thin latex wrapper that fits around the male organ, allowing sex without the semen from entering your womb. Consider it a cooler but with a living person at the other end. It will deaden the sensation for me, but that might be a good thing, because it’ll let me last longer before my climax. It would let us make love, with no risk of pregnancy, and if climaxing helps your heat in any way… it could, in theory, help both of us.” My eyes widened with fresh hope. “Any drawbacks?” I could feel Tim wince, but when he spoke, he sounded honest. “They can break sometimes. I haven’t made love since my wife died, so the condoms I have in the house are over a year old. I need to throw them away and replace them. New ones are less likely to break but it’s never 100% promised not to. It would be a risk. I would like to gauge Sara’s reaction to our starting to date before we go all the way. I’d also like to know why she wants you as her mother.” I frowned. “What reason could she have other than wanting a mother?” He snorted and rubbed his face on my back. “For all I know, she just wants free pony rides for the rest of her life. She’s 4, kids don’t think things through all the time.” I giggled. “Well, she’s not the only one that would be getting free pony rides…” His snort sounded playful, but he also surprised me. My flank was nestled at his hips, so it wasn’t hard for him to reach out and caress my most intimate parts. I gasped at the unexpected, but very welcome touch, and shuddered as he traced my outer lips. I couldn’t push back into him without forcing his hand inside me, so I stayed stock still. His whisper caused my heart to ignite. “We are both consenting adults. We have a 50/50 chance of me not being able to get you pregnant at all. So… wanna risk it? Shall we throw away all these carefully laid plans and just… go for it?” I whimpered with need. “Tim… I need you so badly… but… I know why you are careful. I can’t do this to you until you’re sure too. You’ve made all these statements about wanting me to be sure. But your heart matters too. I want your heart, not just your body. Please understand that when I say I love you, I’m not exaggerating. Don’t force yourself to do this just for me. Please.” He withdrew his hand, which left me feeling empty, but then I heard him inhale deeply and I realized that he was smelling my pheromones on his fingers. I turned to look at him and I gulped loudly when I saw him lick my juices off his fingers. His smile broke me. “It tastes as good as it smells.” I turned to face him, nearly crying. “I need you, but… I can’t force you to love me.” With me now facing him, it was easy for his hand to cup my sex. When his hand sought my permission, my legs parted for him without a second thought, and his thumb played on the outside of my tight slit, causing me to gasp. His next words caused my eyes to bulge out of my head, but I could both see and hear the sincerity. “Twilight… I do love you. I was afraid to admit it, but I have never loved anyone this deeply other than my wife, before I met her nor after her loss. I am very afraid of hurting you and very afraid of hurting myself. We need to wait… but your heat is driving me as crazy as it’s driving you. I am also afraid that my being affected by your pheromones is proof that I can put a foal in you. You think you need a pony-sized shower… I might need to sleep in my own room to avoid mounting you. Your consent means everything, but we are both about to fall off a cliff here.” I reached out and pulled him in close. “Please don’t leave me. If you want to go to the bedroom for more privacy, or for a room that can lock, then so be it, but let me sleep with you.” His bemused smile tugged at my heartstrings. “So, sex? Or just sleeping beside each other like we have been?” I was giggling at the question but also facehooved. “I think we should take a page out of your book and sleep on it. Let’s tell Sara that we’ve decided to date and tomorrow I will send my weekly report to the Princess as well as a separate, private letter asking for permission to court you and for advice. Does that sound okay?” His hand leaving my sex felt just as bad the second time but watching him lick my juices off his fingers was the sexiest thing I had ever witnessed. He kissed me, and I could taste myself. “We can sleep out here if we aren’t taking this further… remember, we can’t allow Sara to walk in on us. If you want to get permission first, I have no problems with that, but remember, if they say no… we will have to wait until you’re not in heat to do more. I can’t risk getting you pregnant if your Princess or father say no.” I nuzzled into him. “That’s painfully fair. Good night, Tim.” He nuzzled me back. “Good night, beloved.” * * * Author's Note I write commissions!. At 5 dollars per 1,000 words, I'm one of the cheaper writers on the site. If you have a story idea, E, T or M, please DM me and we'll work something out. //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 8 - Crossroads and Concerns //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 8 - Crossroads and Concerns Tim Sunday morning seemed to come too fast. We ended up sleeping later than we had planned to, but I think our conversation yesterday had taken an emotional toll on both of us. I mean seriously… how much teasing could two people do without jumping each other? Still, I was finally well rested from the 3 days of taking care of Twilight and today promised to be a slower day, one of rest and writing letters. I knew that Twilight had several letters to write and send and I figured that I would write at least two letters of my own. I still didn’t quite know what to say, but I wanted to ask Twilight’s parents for permission to court her separately from the letters she planned to send herself. With Twilight beside me, it was hard to want to get up and start the day, but I knew we’d have to get out of bed eventually… I heard a whisper. “Daddy…” I moaned. “Yes, Sara? What’s wrong?” She giggled. “I don’t think you’re supposed to be touching her there…” My eyes bolted open as I looked down at where my hands were. At some point in the night, Twilight had managed to pull my hands back in between her legs. I dislodged them quickly and beat down a blush. “It’s not what it looks like…” Twilight stirred beside me, blinking sleepily. The act of having my hands pulled out from under her, plus my panicked denial, clearly having woken her up. As she realized Sara was in the room, she quickly composed herself. "Good morning, Sara," Twilight said warmly, though I could hear a hint of nervousness in her voice. “Um. I was just trying to warm up your daddy’s hands. It gets cold at night, you know.” Deep down, Twilight knew she had messed up, how badly… we didn’t know yet. Sara giggled and rolled her eyes. “I’m not a kid… I’m 4!” I cleared my throat, sitting up carefully. "Right… you’re so mature… Sara, sweetheart, Twilight and I need to talk to you about something important." Sara climbed onto the daybed, looking between us curiously. "Are you and Daddy together now? Like, together-together?" I exchanged a glance with Twilight before answering. "Well, that's what we wanted to talk to you about. Twilight and I care about each other very much, and we've decided to start dating." Sara's eyes lit up. "Really? Does this mean Twilight can be my mommy?" I felt a pang in my chest, remembering my late wife. I chose my words carefully. "Sweetie, remember how we talked about your mom always being your mom, even though she's not here with us anymore?" Sara nodded solemnly. "Well," I continued, "Twilight isn't trying to replace your mom. But she does care about both of us very much. We're going to take things slowly and see how it goes. Is that okay with you?" Sara seemed to consider this for a moment before breaking into a wide smile. "Does this mean more pony rides?" Twilight laughed, the tension in the room easing. "I think we can arrange that." As Sara hugged us both, I felt a mix of emotions - hope for the future, lingering grief for my wife, and a deep affection for both Sara and Twilight. I knew we had a long road ahead, but in that moment, surrounded by warmth and love, I felt truly at peace for the first time in over a year. I think that I was finally in a place where I could heal and move on. With a wry smile, I snorted. “I knew she just wanted more pony rides.” Twilight winked at me. “Plenty of pony rides for both of you, I promise.” * * * Twilight I couldn't help but blush at my own comment about the pony rides. The double entendre wasn't lost on Tim, whose eyes widened slightly before he cleared his throat. "Alright, munchkin," Tim said to Sara, ruffling her hair. "How about you go get dressed while Twilight and I make breakfast?" Sara nodded eagerly and scampered off to her room. As soon as she was out of earshot, I turned to Tim, my ears drooping slightly. "I'm so sorry about... well, you know," I whispered, nodding towards where his hands had been. "I must have done that in my sleep. My heat... it's making me act in ways I'm not used to." Tim's expression softened. "It's okay, Twilight. We're both adults here. But we do need to be more careful, especially with Sara around. At least Sara seems to accept us." I nodded, grateful for his understanding. "You're right. I'll try to control myself better. It's just... being near you makes it hard to think straight sometimes." Tim chuckled, a warm sound that made my heart flutter. "The feeling's mutual, believe me. Now, let's get that breakfast started before Sara comes back and catches us in another compromising position." As we made our way to the kitchen, I couldn't help but feel a mix of excitement and nervousness about the letters I’d be writing later. "Tim," I said, measuring out oats for my breakfast, "what do you plan to do today while I’m writing my letters?" He smiled at me. “Well. I plan to write some letters of my own, but I’ll need you to send them.” I looked up, a little surprised. “Oh? And who are you writing?” He paused, considering. "Your parents. I know that you planned to write them, but I also want to formally ask their permission to court you. I know it might seem old-fashioned, but it feels right. Plus, I want them to know how serious I am about this... about us." His words made my heart swell. "That means a lot to me, Tim. And I think my parents will appreciate it too. Just... be prepared for a lot of questions from my mom. She can be a bit... enthusiastic." Tim laughed. "I look forward to it. Now. Let me teach you how to cook eggs." As we continued preparing breakfast, discussing our plans for the day and stealing the occasional kiss, I felt a sense of contentment wash over me. Despite the challenges ahead - my heat, the cultural differences, the long-distance nature of our families - I knew that with Tim by my side, we could face anything. I just hoped my parents and Princess Celestia would see it the same way. * * * Tim Writing letters had never been my strong point. I certainly never wrote poems or love letters. Asking for permission to date Twilight from her parents who I had never met felt more than awkward… more like impossible. Still, I had to give it a try. It was better to try and fail than to never try at all. If you don’t ask, the answer is always no. I decided to write two letters, one to her father and another to her mother. I figured that I could strike a respectful and logical tone with her father and a more emotional tone with her mother. ‘Dear Night Light, I hope this letter finds you well. My name is Timothy, and I am writing to you regarding your daughter, Twilight Sparkle. Twilight and I met through the Equestrian Worker Exchange program. She has been working alongside me at Pipeline Express and has been staying at my home as a roommate. Over the past week, we have grown close, and I have developed deep feelings for her. I am writing to formally ask for your permission to court your daughter. I understand this may seem sudden, and that there are significant cultural differences to consider. However, I want you to know that my intentions are honorable, and I have nothing but the utmost respect for Twilight. A bit about myself: I am a 28-year-old single father to a 4-year-old daughter named Sara. I am a former U.S. Army medic, now working in logistics. I lost my wife a year ago, and I never expected to find love again so soon. However, Twilight has brought light back into my life in a way I never thought possible. I know that an interspecies relationship may be concerning, but I assure you that I am committed to understanding and respecting Equestrian culture. Twilight's happiness and well-being are my highest priority. I would be honored to have the opportunity to speak with you further about this matter. Please feel free to ask me any questions you may have. Thank you for your consideration. Respectfully, Timothy’ Wiping my brow, I sighed. That was harder than I thought it would be. It’s hard for a piece of paper to make a good first impression. Now for her mother… ‘Dear Twilight Velvet, I hope this letter finds you in good spirits. My name is Tim, and I've had the pleasure of getting to know your daughter, Twilight Sparkle, through the Equestrian Worker Exchange program. I'm writing to you today because Twilight has become very special to me, and I wanted to reach out to you personally. Your daughter is an extraordinary mare - brilliant, kind, and with a zest for learning that never fails to amaze me. In the short time we've known each other, she's brought so much joy and light into my life and my daughter Sara's. I understand that the idea of your daughter dating a human might be unexpected, perhaps even concerning. I want to assure you that I have nothing but the deepest respect and admiration for Twilight. My intentions are sincere, and I'm committed to learning about and honoring Equestrian culture and traditions. A little about me: I'm a 28-year-old single father to a wonderful 4-year-old girl. I work in logistics and was previously a medic in the U.S. Army. I lost my wife a year ago and never expected to find love again, especially not with someone as remarkable as Twilight. I know you must have many questions and concerns. I would love the opportunity to speak with you, to learn more about your family and to share more about myself. Twilight often speaks fondly of you, and I can see where she gets her warmth and intelligence. I hope that, with your blessing, I can continue to get to know Twilight better. Your daughter's happiness is of utmost importance to me, and I promise to always treat her with the love and respect she deserves. Thank you for taking the time to read this letter. I look forward to the possibility of meeting you someday. Warmest regards, Tim’ With that done, I placed both letters in envelopes for Twilight to send to Equestria. Waiting for a reply was going to be torture. * * * Twilight With Tim writing his letters, I needed to write mine. Princess Celestia needed to know about my accident, but I also wanted to ask for her permission to court Tim. As Princess Celestia’s personal student, I was the closest thing to an ambassador that Equestria had on Earth. ‘Dear Princess Celestia, I hope this letter finds you well. I'm writing to update you on my experiences here on Earth and to seek your guidance on a personal matter. First, I must report a serious incident that occurred during my work at Pipeline Express. While attempting to repair multiple trailers using my magic, I encountered an unexpected complication. The trailer I was transmuting contained a large number of metal drums, significantly increasing the magical strain. This led to a severe magical overexertion, resulting in what I believe was a magic stroke. I lost consciousness and stopped breathing. Thanks to the quick action of my co-worker and friend, Tim, who performed CPR, I was revived. However, I remained unconscious for three days. This experience has highlighted the potential dangers of using complex magic in an unfamiliar environment. I recommend we issue a warning to other unicorns participating in the exchange program about the possible risks of magical overexertion on Earth. Not everypony is likely to have a co-worker that knows how to use CPR. Now, I must address a more personal matter. During my time here, I've grown close to Tim, the human who saved my life. He's a kind, intelligent, and caring individual who has shown great respect for Equestrian culture. We've developed strong feelings for each other, and I'm writing to formally request your permission to court him. I know that I should probably be asking my parents, but as your student, I understand that my actions are also a reflection of you and I would greatly appreciate your permission. I understand this may be unexpected, given the interspecies nature of our relationship. However, I believe Tim and I could build something meaningful together. He's a single father to a lovely young girl named Sara, and I've grown fond of them both. I would be grateful for your guidance and blessing in this matter. Your wisdom has always been a guiding light for me, and I value your opinion greatly. Thank you for your time and consideration. I eagerly await your response. Your faithful student, Twilight Sparkle’ With the three letters written, I turned to Tim. “Would you like me to send the letters now?” He smiled at me. “Yes, please.” I took the letters within my magic and teleported them to Equestria with a spell that was a variation of the dragon fire spell that Spike used, and technically the same spell Princess Celestia used to send me letters. The letters gone; I knew we’d have the rest of the day for whatever we were going to do. My smile at Tim was playful. “So… we went to the park yesterday and the letters are done and sent. So, now what?” Tim was considering our options when there was a knock on the door. He answered the door with a frown only to find a tow truck driver on the porch. “Can I help you?” The driver nodded. “The accident investigation into your wife’s car accident concluded a few months ago and now that the drunk driver has been found guilty and sentenced, the county instructed me to return the remains of her car to you. Sign here.” Tim read the forms carefully and signed them. He left the living room to go outside in a daze and both me and Sara followed him out. The silver two-door coup was unrecognizable, as it was clear that nobody could have survived a wreck that severe. The tow truck basically dumped the remains of the car in front of the house and left. I looked at Tim, less than shocked to see him crying. He whispered. “I never wanted to see this car again… what am I supposed to do with it?” I gulped. “Could you take it to a scrapyard like Pipeline was going to take the trailers?” Tim shook his head. “This car is 3,000 lbs. Scrap steel ranges from 80 dollars to 230 dollars per ton, and while Pipeline is being generous with what they are paying you to recycle the trailers, as the actual going rate of scrap steel is 170 dollars per ton as of today. I would only get 250 dollars for the car, and it’ll cost 150 dollars to haul it to the scrap yard unless they offer to do it for free. Bottomline… I do need to get rid of the car before the landlord bitches at me for having this garbage here… but I won’t really get anything out of it.” I hit on an idea. “Tim… lets go inside for a minute.” He nodded and followed me inside. He sat on the couch in a daze, and I sat beside him. I hugged him as he started to cry into my withers, finally letting it out. Sara had a fragile smile on her face as she walked away to return to her room, mature far beyond her age to give her dad some much-needed privacy. I cleared my throat… “Tim. Let’s get you calmed down. I know you don’t want to cry in front of Sara.” He sniffled but nodded. “What should I do?” I kissed him on the lips and then gave him a weak smile. “Let’s play 20 questions. Just something random to help you unpack the arrival of the car.” His smile tugged at the corners of his mouth. “I’ve heard worse suggestions.” I kissed him again and started. “Okay, the trailer is blue and white. If you could repaint the outside, what colors would you want?” He looked thoughtful about the idea. “Well, trailers are kept ‘light colors’ because darker colored paint tends to absorb heat, which makes it harder to keep the house cool. I’d really like the house to be pure white with light green trim and shutters. The house needs work but repainting it has always been a low priority.” I wrote that down on a list that was floating behind him. “What other improvements would you like to make to the house?” He pursed his lips. “Like… everything?” I nodded with a smile. “If this could be your dream home, what would you like to see changed?” I could see the wheels turning as he really gave it a thought. I was happy to see that he had stopped crying and that this mental exercise would help him in more than one way. “Well… the roof is metal, and it leaks on some places. I’d love to get a new roof, but with shingles so it wouldn’t absorb as much heat and would last longer and not leak. Also… I’d like the kitchen sink to be deeper and one large sink instead of two smaller sinks to make it easier to pre-wash the dishes before putting them in the dishwasher. Hm. I’d love to upgrade the hot water heater to an 80-gallon model instead of the standard 40-gallon model that most trailers have so I could do laundry and dishes at the same time or dishes and a bath at the same time without running out of hot water. Also… I don’t know if you’ve seen the master bedroom, but it’s mostly empty. If I’m being honest, I haven’t slept back there since my wife died… The master bathroom is too small, and the bedroom is kinda too big. I’d love to make the bedroom about 3 feet smaller and the bathroom 3 feet larger, with a larger bathtub that could fit both of us comfortably and your pony-sized shower, along with a his and hers vanity mirrors and twin sinks. Then, of course, I’d love a concrete trailer slab foundation under the house, so it would be level again with no chance of ‘settling’ in the future. I’d like a larger central air conditioning and heating system, with better insulation, so the house could be cooled and heated more efficiently without wasting electricity, and not having the air conditioning on full blast all day while we're not here. Finally, the walls and floors need to be fixed. The walls and floors are weak in some places, and I’d love a new hardwood floor in the bedrooms and living room with new tile in the bathrooms and kitchen. It’s like 25,000 dollars’ worth of upgrades. I could afford it, technically, but I’ve been saving my money for a rainy day. Doing all those repairs would be like a dream that will never come true.” I nodded as I finished taking notes. “Hm. A larger bathtub, huh? You plan on inviting more mares over for a pony bath party? Is my plot not enough for you?” I teased lightly. He snorted. “Your plot is very pretty. No, I was thinking back to our first Monday together when you asked if I wanted to join you and Sara for a bath. Realistically… the tub is barely large enough for the two of us and would never hold all three of us at the same time.” I pursed my lips and nodded. “After our bath together yesterday, I can agree with that analysis, but why is it important? You already said it would be inappropriate to bathe with your daughter.” Tim’s uncertainty seemed to underscore his point. “It would be inappropriate if I was naked. But there is nothing stopping us from taking a bath together, as a family, if I was wearing swimming trunks so that I wasn’t exposed in front of my daughter, almost like just going swimming. We could still get clean, wash each other, and bond deeper as a family. We would just have to keep the bath as a bath and have nothing sexual in it. Your invitation for me to join you on Monday didn't bother you before I explained that humans don't normally do stuff like that, but it seems obvious to me that Equestrians do, so I wanted you to be more comfortable. We would need a much larger tub for it to ever be an option.” I snorted, amused. “I happened to like the bath we had yesterday, and you're right - bathing as a family is something that Equestrians sometimes do. I’m happy that you are willing to embrace Equestrian traditions, and I would love to share the experience with you, but I respect the boundaries you have as a partner and as a father. Human morals will play a large part in our family dynamic with us on Earth so I think we should go for the larger tub even if it’s only us sharing it. As to everything else in this heat cycle, the only person stopping you from mounting me is you. Anyway, if you can afford to make all these upgrades, why haven't you done so?” He shrugged. “My reasons are kinda stupid and also very honestly paranoid, but for good reason.” I frowned at that answer. “Tim, you are very intelligent. In the limited time I’ve spent with you, you have been honest, thoughtful and considerate. I would never describe anything you’ve said or done as paranoia. So… what’s wrong?” He took a deep breath and exhaled. “I live in a ‘rent to own’ type of situation. I have all the homeowner expenses of owning a home with all the rules of renting. The landlord that owns this trailer park has a bad habit of harassing her tenants, demanding they pay for expensive upgrades, and then evicting them, only to resell the trailers to the next victim for more money, at a profit. It’s highly illegal, but none of us can’t afford a lawyer to sue her. I’m afraid of making any significant upgrades because I’m afraid she’ll try to kick me out afterwards. I’d have to be able to pay off the trailer to avoid being evicted. She can’t evict me once the trailer is paid for in full.” I huffed. “That’s worse than the apartments wanting to charge me a pet deposit simply for being a pony. How much do you owe on the house?” He thought about it. “The mortgage is 465 a month for 120 months, with the lot rent charged separately. Being in a trailer park… I’ll never own the land. I’ve lived here for 4 years, so… 72 months left… where’s my phone. Ah, 72 months times 465 a month is… 33,480 dollars to pay the trailer off early. Losing my wife’s income when she died hurt the family as badly as her physical loss. Human college is expensive. If I don’t start saving up for Sara’s education now, she’ll have debts that she’ll likely never be able to pay off. I don’t care if I never finish my education, Sara will need hers.” I was filled with warmth at the admission that Tim’s goals were to give Sara a better future than he had been given. I leaned in and kissed him deeply. “Tim… will you let me help you?” He pulled back and searched my eyes. “Help me? How?” I took a deep breath and exhaled slowly. This was going to be a hard sell. “I want to recycle your wife’s car in the same way that I’ve been recycling the trailers at work. I want to do as many of these home upgrades on this list as possible, to make this a home you can be proud of. It solves all our short-term problems. The car will be gone… the trailer will be fixed… and whatever money you had set aside to repair it, could go to paying it off faster if you’re not wrong about your landlord. I’ll even commit to helping you pay if off faster if you’re worried about it.” A tear rolled down his face. “You would do that for me?” I shook my head. “No… I would do that for us.” Tim's eyes glistened with a mix of emotions - gratitude, love, and a hint of hesitation. He reached out, gently cupping my face with his hand. "Twilight," he began, his voice thick with emotion, "I... I don't know what to say. Your offer means more to me than you could possibly know." He paused, taking a deep breath to steady himself. "But I have to ask - are you sure about this? Using your magic on my wife's car, it's... it's a big step. And I know how dangerous overexertion can be for you." I leaned into his touch, my eyes full of determination. "I'm sure, Tim. I've learned from my mistake at work. I'll be much more careful this time, I promise. This isn't just about fixing a house - it's about building a future. Our future." Tim nodded slowly, processing my words. "Our future," he repeated softly, a small smile tugging at his lips. "I like the sound of that." He stood up, pacing the small living room as he thought aloud. "If we do this, we'll need to be smart about it. We can't risk alerting the landlord to sudden, drastic changes. We'll have to pace ourselves, maybe spread the improvements out over time." My horn glowed faintly as I levitated my notepad, reviewing our list. "That makes sense. We could start with the less noticeable changes - the insulation, the water heater. Things that wouldn't immediately catch someone's eye from the outside." Tim shook his head, suddenly remembering a key point. “No, that won’t work. The car needs to be gone. I have no place to store it long-term and it can’t stay in front of the house. This is going to have to be in one go. I’m sorry for putting the strain on you… I stopped him from apologizing, as there was no need. “This will be a lot easier than recycling a 53-foot trailer or 360 drums. Besides, the more I use my magic, the stronger it gets. Think of this as… playing at the park. The more Sara runs, the faster she gets. The more I do this spell, the easier and less dangerous the spell will be.” Tim suddenly stopped, turning back to me with a serious expression. "There's something else we need to consider, Twilight. My wife's car... it's more than just metal. It's... it's the last physical connection I have to her, other than my daughter. Are you sure you're okay with being part of that transformation?" I stood, moving to Tim's side and nuzzling gently against him. "Tim, I understand how significant this is. I would never want to erase your wife's memory. But maybe... maybe we can think of this as a way of honoring her. Taking something tragic and using it to build a better life for you and Sara - isn't that what she would have wanted?" Tim's eyes welled up again, but this time, a smile accompanied the tears. He wrapped an arm around me, pulling me close. "You're right. She would have loved that idea. And... I think she would have liked you, Twilight. Your kindness, your intelligence, your willingness to help others - those are all things she valued." I blushed at the compliment, my heart swelling with affection. "Thank you, Tim. That means a lot to me. I can’t help but feel conflicted though. If she was still alive, I wouldn’t be here as your roommate." Tim snorted. “You’d still be my roommate, but I’d be sleeping in the bedroom with my wife. And she’d swat both of us with newspapers if she caught us cuddling or taking baths together.” We stood there for a moment, embracing and laughing at the mental image of an angry wife with a rolled-up newspaper, before Tim spoke again. "Alright, let's do this. But we'll take it slow, be careful. And Twilight? If at any point you feel like the magic is too much, you stop immediately. Promise me?" Twilight nodded solemnly. "I can’t stop the transmutation spell once it starts, but that car is less than half the weight of an empty trailer… I swear that this will be okay.” Tim eyed me with concern. “With all due respect, I’ve heard that before.” My eyes twinkled with barely contained love. “Well, if I pass out again, this time you will be more comfortable while taking care of me. And maybe I can sleep until I’m no longer in heat. That could be an unusual blessing.” Tim chuckled softly, shaking his head in amazement. "Oh no. I’m not going to explain to Melvin how I nursed you back to health just to have to pass out for another 2 or 3 days while fixing my house. You know, when I signed up as a mentor for the EWE program, I didn't expect 'mare management' to be part of my duties.” I smirked. “Oh? And here I thought you were enjoying your... extra duties.” Tim was holding back laughter, mixed with tears, which caused me to ask him a question. “I know I’m trying to be playful, but I don’t see what’s so funny about the quip?” He sighed, wiping a tear from his eyes. “Not all ‘duties’ are enjoyable. Do you know how many times you used the bathroom while unconscious from your accident?” I stiffened. “No… how many?” He shook his head, “Once or twice a day. I had towels under you to contain the mess, but I still had to clean you up. Under your tail and everything. Most of the towels got clean in the wash, but I had to throw three of them away that got too stained to be used again for regular use. I love you, Twilight, and I’d do anything for you, but I never want to have to lift your tail to clean you up after a bedwetting accident due to you being sick or hurt. My heart could barely bear it the first time.” I nuzzled into him. “I guess I should have realized that this was harder on you than it was on me. You had the burden of nursing me back to health, and I still haven’t rewarded you with any nursing…” His face was beet red. “Our relationship will get there in due time. In the meantime, I never imagined that when I signed up to be a mentor for the Equestrian Worker Exchange that I’d fall in love with the pony I was mentoring. Home renovations with a magical pony girlfriend is even more unexpected." I giggled, my eyes twinkling. "And I never thought I'd be using transmutation magic on Earth to help remodel a human home. I guess we're both full of surprises." As we continued our planning, the wrecked car outside no longer seemed like a painful reminder of loss, but rather a symbol of new beginnings. We went outside together as a family, and I recycled the car. The repairs to the house took less than 5 minutes and the results were amazing, even better than Tim had hoped. To my surprise, there was still some of the car left when all the trailer upgrades were completed, so I shifted my focus to Tim’s car and proceeded to fully repair his 4-year-old car, making it as good as new. Fortunately, the spell ended without the need to direct it anywhere else, and we were able to go back inside to watch a movie as a family while I rested from the exertion. For once, I was happy for things to go exactly as planned, especially since I still had a lot to make up for. * * * Tim Sara picked the movie again, and I was happy to see the older cartoon Disney adaptation of Robin Hood. I remembered watching it as a kid and I was enjoying watching Twilight’s face at the antics of the characters. With a burst of light and magic, three scrolls appeared. Twilight grabbed them excitingly in her magic and gave me the two letters that were addressed to me while she started reading the one addressed to her. The first one I opened was from Night Light. As I unfolded the parchment, my eyes were drawn to the elegant script. ‘Dear Timothy, I hope this letter finds you well. I am Night Light, Twilight Sparkle's father and a civil servant in Princess Celestia's court. I must say, your letter came as quite a surprise. It's not every day one receives a courtship request from another world, let alone from a different species. I appreciate your honesty and directness in seeking our permission to court our daughter. It speaks to your character and respect for our customs. Twilight has always been an exceptional mare, and it seems she has found an equally exceptional human. Your background as a former Army medic and your dedication as a single father are commendable. It's clear you understand responsibility and sacrifice, qualities we value highly in Equestria. While the concept of an interspecies relationship is not unfamiliar to Equestrians, it has never before happened in my family. We trust Twilight's judgment. She has always been wise beyond her years, even if sometimes a bit naive in matters of the heart. Therefore, after much consideration, we are willing to grant our cautious approval for you to court our daughter. However, I feel compelled to offer a word of caution. As a civil servant in Princess Celestia's court, I have access to magic and resources beyond what you might imagine. Should any harm come to Twilight - be it physical, emotional, or otherwise - know that the full might of Equestria's magical prowess could be brought to bear. I don't say this as a threat, but as a father's promise. Twilight's happiness and well-being are paramount to us. I trust you understand. We look forward to potentially meeting you in the future and learning more about the human who has captured our daughter's interest. Respectfully, Night Light P.S. My wife, Twilight Velvet, sends her regards. Expect a much longer, more... enthusiastic letter from her shortly.’ Twilight was reading her letter with great enthusiasm but paused to ask me a question. “That one was from my father, right? What did he say?” I snorted. “He threatened to kill me if I hurt you in any way. Perhaps I neglected to mention that I’ve already saved your life once.” Twilight’s shock and panic were paramount. “WHAT! Let me see that!” She scanned the letter with growing dread. “I’m going to have to write him a letter of my own. I appreciate his permission, but this is unacceptable.” I nodded with a smirk, “I hope your mother likes the idea more.” I opened the next letter while Twilight returned to her own. 'Dearest Tim, Oh, how delightful to receive your letter! I'm Twilight Velvet, Twilight's mother, and I simply cannot express how excited I am to hear from you. A human courting our Twilight? How wonderfully unexpected! First things first - thank you for taking such good care of our little filly. When we heard about her accident from Princess Celestia, we were beside ourselves with worry. But knowing she had someone like you looking out for her... well, it put our hearts at ease. You're a hero in my book, young man! Now, tell me everything about little Sara! How old is she exactly? 4 years old? What a precious age! What's her favorite color? Does she like to read like our Twilight? Oh, I bet she's just the sweetest little thing. I always wanted grandfoals, you know. Speaking of which - have you and Twilight discussed foals? I know it's early, but a mother can dream, can't she? I'm sure any little ones you two have would be absolutely adorable! I must say, I'm thoroughly impressed by your dedication as a single father. It can't be easy, but it speaks volumes about your character. Twilight has always needed someone who can keep up with her intellectually and match her passion for learning. It sounds like you fit the bill perfectly! Oh, and don't you worry about Night Light. He's a big softie once you get to know him. He's just protective of our little girl. I'm sure once he meets you, he'll see what a wonderful stallion - er, man - you are! We'd love to visit Earth sometime and meet you and Sara in person. Perhaps you could all come to Equestria for Hearth's Warming? It would be simply magical! Do write back soon, dear. I want to hear all about how you and Twilight met, your first date, everything! And please, send pictures of Sara if you can. I'm already picking out matching scarves to knit for all of you! Sending all my love and warmest wishes, Twilight Velvet P.S. What's your favorite pie? I make a mean apple pie, but I'm always eager to try new recipes! Perhaps you can send me an Earth recipe for a cream pie! P.P.S. Give our Twilight a big hug from me, would you? And one for Sara too!' I folded the letter, a mix of amusement and warmth spreading through me. Twilight's mother was certainly... enthusiastic, as Twilight had warned me earlier. I couldn't help but chuckle at her not-so-subtle hints about grandfoals, cream pies, and future visits. Despite the slight overwhelming feeling, there was something comforting about her immediate acceptance and excitement. I looked over at Twilight, who was still engrossed in her own letter. “Your mom seems nice. Should I be worried about being smothered with affection... or just regular smothered?” Twilight’s eyes were glued to her own letter, her response was inadvertently lewd. “Both, probably. My mom’s teats are large enough to smother anypony, yet somehow my dad learned how to survive. Like I said earlier, I’ll have to keep you away from my mother. My mom writes romance novels that border on pornographic, and as such, she doesn’t have boundaries, a filter, or a sense of personal space. Only my friend Pinkie Pie is worse about that. Worse still… my mom is prettier than me.” She sounded bitter. I rubbed the back of my neck, very uncomfortable about those admissions, and a bit grateful that Sara was watching the movie and not listening to us at all. "I don’t believe that for a second. No one could be prettier than you. As to the rest… Um… Well, let’s just say that your mother certainly has a way with words," I said with a forced smile. "I hope you know that I would never cheat on you… which should be reassuring since I think she's already planning our Hearth's Warming visit. Um. What is Hearth’s Warming?” Twilight snorted. “It’s like human Christmas. I’m due to return shortly after New Year’s unless I can get permission to stay longer. Taking you and Sara back with me to Equestria would be ideal.” I nodded but was also a little sad. “Fixing the house and paying it off would be a waste of money if I don’t use it.” Twilight bit her lip. “Maybe you have a family member that needs it? I’m sure we can find a way to make sure that everything we’ve done was worth it.” I nodded slowly. “I’m sure we will.” * * * Twilight As Tim finished reading his letter from my mother, I returned my attention to the lengthy scroll from Princess Celestia. Her elegant hornwriting flowed across the parchment: 'My Most Faithful Student, I hope this letter finds you well and fully recovered. Your report about the magical incident at Pipeline Express has left me deeply concerned. While I admire your dedication to your work, I must stress the importance of your safety. Magic behaves differently on Earth, and we cannot afford to lose you to such dangers. Please, exercise the utmost caution in your future magical endeavors. Now, onto the matter of your request to court this human, Tim. I must admit, I find myself conflicted. On one hoof, I am pleased to see you opening your heart to new experiences and relationships. Your time on Earth was meant to broaden your horizons, and in this respect, you've certainly succeeded. However, I cannot help but question the wisdom of pursuing a romantic relationship with a being from another world. The cultural differences alone present significant challenges, not to mention the potential magical and biological complications of an interspecies relationship. That being said, I trust your judgment, Twilight. You have always been one of my most thoughtful and diligent students. If you believe this relationship is worth pursuing, then you have my permission to court Tim. But I must caution you, my faithful student. Guard your heart carefully. Do not allow yourself to fall too deeply in love, for we cannot predict what the future may hold. The portal between our worlds is a complex magical construct, and we cannot guarantee its permanence. For better or worse… one day you may have to choose where you will live and who you will love for the rest of your life. Most importantly, I must insist that you take all necessary precautions to avoid pregnancy. The magical and physiological implications of a human-pony hybrid are unknown and potentially dangerous. There have been no reports yet of mares getting pregnant with human foals but that doesn’t mean that it’s not possible! We cannot risk such an outcome, no matter how strong your feelings may be. Remember, Twilight, you are not just my student, but a representative of Equestria on Earth. Your actions have far-reaching consequences. Mares will follow in your hoofsteps, if given permission. I implore you to approach this situation with the utmost care and consideration. Please keep me informed of any developments. Your safety and well-being are of paramount importance to me and to all of Equestria. With love and concern, Princess Celestia' I lowered the scroll, my emotions a tangled mess. Princess Celestia's words weighed heavily on my heart. Her concerns were valid, of course, but the caution against falling in love felt like a dam trying to hold back a river already in full flow. I glanced at Tim, who was smiling at something in my mother's letter, as he was now re-reading the letter for a second time. How could I not fall in love with him? He'd saved my life, opened his home to me, and shown me a depth of caring I'd never experienced before. And as for pregnancy... I blushed, remembering our recent conversations about my heat. We hadn’t even been intimate yet but then, we had been waiting to get the blessings from the necessary ponies before taking that last step. Hearing the Princess's stern warning made the situation feel even more serious. "Everything okay?" Tim's voice broke through my thoughts. "You look worried." I forced a smile. "Just... a lot to process. Princess Celestia has some concerns about our relationship." Tim's brow furrowed. "Concerns? Is she going to send you back to Equestria?" "No, nothing like that," I reassured him quickly. "She's given her permission for us to court. She's just... cautioning me to be careful." I didn't have the heart to tell him about her warnings against falling in love or getting pregnant. How could I explain that it might already be too late for the former, and that we were actively trying to avoid the latter? Tim smirked at me. “Well… now that we have permission… I guess we can try for foals.” My heart shattered. There was no way I could tell him… I hedged around his joke. “Um, sure! We can try… but I’d like to wait until next weekend.” Tim’s eyes shined in the light of the room. “Next weekend, eh? Doesn’t you heat end today or maybe tomorrow?” I nodded. “Yes, but mares ovulate near the end of the heat week. If we want to 100% avoid pregnancy the first time we go all the way, we need to wait a full week after my heat ends. It’ll also give us time to make the preparations to avoid accidents and give us more time to bond deeper and hopefully gleam the knowledge to know for sure if this is what we both really want.” Tim snorted. “I guess now that you have your pony-sized shower, you don’t need me…” I leaned over and kissed him. “I’ll always need you… but that doesn’t mean that we don’t still have to wait.” He kissed me back. “Fair enough.” As we settled back to finish the movie, I couldn't shake the feeling that our path forward had just become much more complicated. But looking at Tim and Sara, I knew in my heart that whatever challenges lay ahead, they were worth facing. * * * Author's Note I write commissions!. At 5 dollars per 1,000 words, I'm one of the cheaper writers on the site. If you have a story idea, E, T or M, please DM me and we'll work something out. //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 9 - Defying Expectations //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 9 - Defying Expectations Tim Monday morning came far too quickly. The emotional rollercoaster of the past week had taken its toll, leaving both Twilight and me feeling drained. We'd slept later than planned, again, but given everything that had happened, I figured we'd earned it. At least we weren’t at risk of being late. I groaned internally. Another day, another set of challenges to face. The morning routine felt both familiar and strange - breakfast, getting Sara ready for school, the drive. Nothing had changed and yet everything felt different. But there was a new tension in the air, a heaviness that settled between Twilight and me. I could see it in the way her ears drooped slightly, in the faraway look in her eyes. Something in Celestia's letter was clearly bothering her. I cleared my throat to speak. “The plan today will be the same as it was last Tuesday. We will recycle one trailer, take an early lunch, and then figure out what’s next. I know that you’re supposed to be moving to sales in another 3 weeks and I’m afraid that I’ve done a bad job of teaching you what you need to sell these products.” Twilight sighed, wistful of past mistakes. “Well… the first week barely counts given that I missed most of the week. I’ll probably put in a full 4 more weeks on the floor before moving to a sales job. At the very least… I want to finish recycling the trailers, so you have more usable trailers available so there’s less need to make empties daily. It would greatly distress me to see you exhausted from rolling drums all day while I work in an air-conditioned office.” I smiled at her concern and patted her foreleg, causing her to lean into me, pulling against her seat belt to do so. “I guess you’ll just have to do more cooking and cleaning at home to make up for the less physical nature of an office job… unless you can think of other ways to make it up to me?” I raised my brows suggestively. She blushed at the statement, her eyes meeting mine with a mix of love and apprehension. She braced herself before continuing. "Tim... I love you... you know that, right?" Her voice wavered slightly, betraying her inner turmoil. I gulped, my heart racing. "I do. And I love you too, Twilight. But something's eating at you. Is this about Celestia's letter? What did she say?" I tried to keep my voice steady, but the fear of losing what we'd built crept in. Twilight slumped back into her seat, her ears drooping. "It's... complicated. Celestia gave us permission to date on paper… but it's more like a reluctant approval with a ton of conditions. My father's threats towards you feels more neutral and accepting than what Celestia put on my back." I winced, remembering Night Light's not-so-subtle warnings. "Wow, that bad, huh? What kind of conditions are we talking about here?" She took a deep breath before continuing. "She claims that she trusts my judgment, but she's worried about the consequences of a serious relationship. There's no record of human-pony pregnancies, but that doesn't mean it can't happen. And since I'm her student, she's afraid other mares might follow my lead." She turned to face me, her eyes glistening. "She warned me not to fall too deeply in love with you or risk getting pregnant, under any circumstances. We could ignore her advice, but... I've never defied my Princess before. I'm torn, Tim. Between my duty to Equestria and what my heart wants." That explained a lot. I can’t blame her for being torn… she is the ‘most faithful student’. I shook my head, trying to wrap my mind around it. A princess telling her subject not to fall in love or get pregnant? It was like something out of a bizarre fairy tale. If the President tried pulling that crap here, there'd be riots in the streets. I rubbed the back of my neck, feeling the tension building there. "Look, Twilight, I get that Celestia's important to you, but this seems... extreme. In the Army, we always had a chain of command. If you didn't like an order, you could appeal to someone higher up." I paused, an idea forming. "Doesn't Celestia have, I don't know, an equal or something? Another princess maybe?" Twilight's ears perked up, her eyes widening. "Tim, you're a genius! Princess Luna - Celestia's sister. She's the Princess of the Night and deals with nightmares. She’s fond of foals so I’m hoping that she’ll be inclined to help us achieve our long-term dreams, I'm not as close to her, but... she might see things differently." I couldn't help but grin at Twilight's enthusiasm. "Sounds like our kind of princess. Why don't you write to her? Worst case, she agrees with Celestia and we're no worse off. Best case..." I let the sentence hang, not wanting to get my hopes up too high. * * * Twilight As Tim continued to drive, I pulled a parchment and a pen out of my magical storage and wrote a letter to Princess Luna. 'Dear Princess Luna, I hope this letter finds you well. I am writing to seek your guidance on a matter of great personal importance that has arisen during my stay on Earth. As you know, I am here as part of the Equestrian Worker Exchange program. During my time here, I have developed strong feelings for a human named Tim. We have grown close, and I believe I truly love him. Tim reciprocates these feelings. However, I find myself in a difficult position. Princess Celestia, while granting permission for us to court, has strongly cautioned against falling too deeply in love or risking pregnancy. She cites concerns about the uncertain future of the portal between our worlds and the unknown implications of potential human-pony offspring. While I deeply respect Princess Celestia's wisdom, I find myself torn between my duty to Equestria and my personal feelings. As Celestia's student and a representative of Equestria on Earth, I understand the weight of my actions. However, I also believe that fostering understanding and connection between our species is part of my mission here. I am seeking clarification on several points: To what extent does my authority as an ambassador of Equestria on Earth allow me to make personal decisions? Given the legal protections for interspecies relationships in the treaty between Earth and Equestria, am I within my rights to pursue a romantic relationship as an individual mare? How should I balance my personal desires with my responsibilities to Equestria? Your insight on these matters would be invaluable to me. As the Princess of the Night, you often deal with the deeper, more complex emotions of ponies. I would greatly appreciate your perspective on this situation. Thank you for your time and wisdom. Your faithful subject, Twilight Sparkle' I sent the letter with a burst of magic and turned back to Tim. “Princess Luna is logical and fair. She isn’t as emotional as a normal mare and is just as wise as Princess Celestia. However, I also don’t know how long it’s going to take to get a reply.” Tim snorted. “"You know, if this whole exchange program doesn't work out, you could always start a magical postal service. Instant delivery across worlds? You'd put FedEx out of business. And not a moment too soon given that you’ll need a way to take care of yourself, since for all the world, our relationship sounds doomed.” My mind whirled at the blunt statement. His jokes eased the tension, but his concerns were valid. “I can’t answer sarcasm with sarcasm or a joke with a joke. Maybe if you asked a question, we could work out an answer.” He shrugged; his moments showed nervousness. “I would never ask you to disobey your Princess, so you’re left having to make your own choices. You said that Celestia claims to trust your judgement and you’ve shown a lot of intelligence since you’ve been with me. So… would she forgive you for dating me, marrying me, and then being the first mare to get pregnant from a human relationship? If it’s even possible. We still don’t know if it’s possible.” I stiffened at the very pointed questions. “Celestia is over 1,000 years old. She probably considers me to be a foal still, despite being an adult. Princess Cadance married my brother, which technically didn’t benefit the nation from a political standpoint. Court Officials get married and have foals all the time, so me having a husband or a foal shouldn’t matter much in the normal day-to-day operations of the Royal Court. I don’t think that Celestia would pick an arranged marriage for me… I don’t believe that I have a noble title from being her personal student, but I could be wrong. Celestia would probably be disappointed in me, but I don’t think she would stop us.” Tim shook his head, a little bewildered by the situation. “So… This very well could affect your career, depending on how forgiving Celestia is. Are arranged marriages common?” I bit my lip, as I hadn’t considered that. “I guess it could affect my career… but I hope not. Arranged marriages aren’t common but they do happen under the right circumstances. Noble families will arrange marriages between heirs to combine businesses or old family wealth. Some political marriages occur for peace or trade treaties. Celestia doesn’t have any foals of her own and I always felt like she treated me like the daughter she never had. I don’t think she’d arrange a marriage for me, but I guess I can’t discount the possibility.” Tim glanced at me; his brow furrowed with concern. "You okay there, Twilight?" he asked, his eyes darting between me and the road. I nodded, trying to steady my breathing. "Just nervous. I’ve never considered even half of these things until now. Her telling me not to fall in love or have foals makes sense if I have husband waiting for me in Equestria that I haven’t been told about! I've never gone against Celestia's wishes before. What if Luna agrees with her? What if -" My words were cut short as the car swerved suddenly. Tim cursed under his breath, straightening the wheel. "Sorry," he muttered. "Stupid pothole. But hey, look at it this way - if we can survive Texas roads, we can survive anything, right?" Despite my anxiety, I couldn't help but laugh. It was a welcome moment of levity before Luna's reply materialized in a swirl of starry magic, landing in Twilight’s lap. I gasped at the quick reply, but then remembered that Texas was about 4 hours ahead of Equestria, time-zone wise, so Luna would have still been tending to her royal duties before her own dinner, or breakfast depending on how you looked at it. 'Dear Twilight Sparkle, Thank you for reaching out to me on this delicate matter. I appreciate the trust you've placed in me by seeking my counsel. To address your questions: As an ambassador of Equestria on Earth, you have considerable autonomy in your personal decisions. However, this autonomy comes with the responsibility to consider the broader implications of your actions. You are indeed within your legal rights to pursue a romantic relationship as an individual mare. The treaty between our worlds protects such relationships. Balancing personal desires with responsibilities to Equestria is a challenge faced by many in positions of influence. It requires careful consideration and often difficult choices. While I understand your feelings, I must caution you against rushing into such a significant decision. A week is a very short time in which to develop the kind of bond that leads to thoughts of marriage and foals. Such haste could be seen as foolish, particularly given your position. My concerns differ from those of my sister. I worry not about the portal's stability or potential offspring, but about the cultural differences and potential misunderstandings that could arise. Humans and ponies have vastly different lifespans, social structures, and magical capabilities. These differences could lead to significant challenges in a long-term relationship. Furthermore, as Celestia's student and a prominent figure in Equestria, your actions will be closely scrutinized. A relationship with a human could potentially undermine your credibility or be seen as a distraction from your duties. That said, my sister and I do not always agree on all matters. While I share her caution, I also believe in the power of love to overcome obstacles. If you truly believe this relationship is worth pursuing, I advise you to proceed with caution and mindfulness. Take time to truly know this human. Understand the challenges you may face. Consider how this relationship might impact your future in Equestria. And above all, be honest with yourself about your motivations and expectations. Remember, Twilight, wisdom often comes from making difficult choices and learning from their consequences. Whatever you decide, know that you have the strength to face the outcome. May the night guide your path, Princess Luna' I lowered the scroll, my ears drooping as Luna's words settled like lead in my stomach. A lump formed in my throat, threatening to choke me. Tim, his eyes darting between me and the road, caught my change in demeanor. We stopped at a red light, and I felt the full weight of his gaze. His jaw tightened, the muscles in his neck tensing as he fought to maintain composure. The air in the car grew thick, suffocating, as if all our hopes were being slowly crushed by an invisible force. I opened my mouth to speak, but no words came out. What could I say? That another princess had effectively told us our relationship was a bad idea? That my dreams of a future with him were crumbling before my eyes? The light turned green, and Tim accelerated perhaps a bit more forcefully than necessary. The tension was palpable, and I knew that whatever came next would change everything. Tim's voice, when he finally spoke, was controlled, but I could hear the strain beneath it. "Let me guess," he said, his eyes fixed firmly on the road ahead, "it's not good." I blinked back tears. "Princess Luna says I can date you as an independent mare, but she thinks it's foolish to consider marriage and foals after just a week. She advises caution, like Celestia, but for different reasons. She's worried about scrutiny and my credibility being undermined." Tim ran a hand down his face, and I caught a glimpse of moisture in his eyes. "So, two princesses are telling us we can date, but not fall in love, not be seen together too much, and definitely no foals. Did I get that right?" I nodded, feeling defeated. "That's the gist of it. Now I have to figure out what to do." "I know exactly what to do," Tim said, his voice cracking like thin ice. The words seemed to physically pain him, each one a shard of glass in his throat. "We stop. Everything." His knuckles turned white as he gripped the steering wheel, as if it were the only thing anchoring him to reality. "No more sharing a bed, no kissing, no cuddling. No dating." He swallowed hard, his next words barely a whisper. "Definitely no sex." The finality in his tone sent a chill through me, like a winter wind extinguishing a fragile flame. "What?" I gasped, my heart sinking. "Just like that?" Tim's glare was filled with hurt and frustration. "What choice do we have, Twilight? You can’t disobey your princesses, and I won't risk your father's wrath. I love you enough to let you go. You've already done more than enough by fixing my house. You can stay as my roommate, but that's it." He paused, his voice softening slightly. "I should've known this fairy tale wouldn't last. You're not a princess, and I'm definitely no prince. God, how am I going to explain this to Sara? We just told her yesterday that we were going to start dating…" I couldn't speak through my tears. As much as it hurt, I couldn't argue with his logic. We were trapped, and I had no idea how to fix it. * * * Twilight We arrived at work and Tim clocked in. We went straight to Joe's shop to tell him that we were here. As we entered, Joe's face lit up with a mixture of relief and excitement. "Well, well! Look who's back from the dead!" Joe exclaimed, his booming voice filling the shop. "How you feeling, magic mare?" I offered a small smile. "Much better, thank you. Ready to get back to work." Joe nodded approvingly. "That's what I like to hear. You gave us quite a scare there." Tim cleared his throat. "So, what's the plan for today, Joe?" "Ah, right," Joe said, his expression turning more serious. "First off, you two should know that those 19 trailers you fixed before your little nap, Twilight? They've already been sent out to other locations that were short on good trailers. Allen was mighty impressed." I felt a surge of pride at that, but Tim looked concerned. "That's great, but what about us?" Tim asked. "We still need empties here." Joe winced. "Do you remember Allen's plan to bring more trailers here from Oklahoma, Louisiana, and Dallas? Well, over the last 5 days we’ve gotten about 40 bad trailers back from various places. Whether they were stored on our locations, client locations or off-site storage yards, the thing that corporate doesn’t get is that a trailer not being used will still rot from disuse. They want our magic mare here to work her wonders on 'em. She’ll get paid the same premium, but slow and steady will do more in the long run than a whole bunch at one time followed by a vacation." Tim frowned. "Is that safe? After what happened last time?" "Don't worry, pony fucker," Joe said, ignoring Tim's wince at the crude nickname. "We'll be more careful this time. No more surprise drum-filled trailers, I promise." I stepped forward, trying to diffuse the tension. "I appreciate the concern, but I'm ready for the challenge. Just... maybe we start with one trailer at a time?" Joe nodded. "Sounds like a plan. Now, why don't you two head out to the yard and get started? And Twilight?" He paused, his expression softening slightly. "It's good to have you back. Just... take it easy, alright?" As we left Joe's shop and headed to the trailer yard, I could feel the weight of expectations on my shoulders. Despite Joe's crude humor, his concern was evident. I was determined to prove myself, but I couldn't shake the nagging feeling that today might not go as smoothly as I hoped. I had to change Tim’s mind about breaking up with me. It would be impossible to live with him if I couldn’t be with him. Tim opened the rear doors of the trailer to be recycled and verified that it had no drums in it. He turned to me. "This one looks safe, if you want to get started." I nodded, taking a deep breath to center myself. As I prepared to cast the spell, I could feel Tim's worried gaze on me. But I knew what I was doing. Or at least, I thought I did. Casting the spell silently, I noticed that Tim had his arms crossed. He wasn't interfering with me doing my job. I didn't know if that meant he finally trusted me or if he no longer cared. The spell ran its course in 35 minutes, fixing exactly 7 trailers. I was out of breath from the exertion but otherwise fine. Tim walked over to me and placed his hand on my forehead, in between my horn and my eyes, holding it there for a moment with his eyes closed. I stood still, unsure of what he was doing. After a moment, he spoke. "You have a slight fever. You will need to rest before you do anything else." I nodded, trying to hide my disappointment. I wanted to prove I could handle more, but I also didn't want to push too far and ruin any chance of reconciling with Tim. "Okay... so. Lunch?" He nodded, his expression unreadable. "Yeah, let's get some food in you. We'll fill out the paperwork for the trailers you fixed, then head out." As we walked back to the warehouse, I couldn't help but feel a mix of accomplishment and frustration. I had successfully fixed seven trailers without incident, but Tim's cautious approach reminded me of how fragile our situation was. I needed to find a way to show him that I was both capable and careful, that he could trust me both professionally and personally. The weight of our unresolved relationship hung between us as we headed towards the office to complete the necessary documentation. I knew that lunch would be more than just a meal - it would be an opportunity to address the tension between us and hopefully find a way forward. It didn’t take long to fill out the paperwork and with that bit of necessary documentation done, we checked out with Juan and Tim drove me to a little Mexican restaurant called Mama Juanita’s. They were open very early but had their full menu available. Tim ordered a cheese enchilada plate with Spanish rice and refried beans, ordered with extra queso on the rice and beans, so I ordered the same. We sat there in silence until I couldn’t take it anymore. “Are you mad at me, Tim?” He shook his head. “No.” I bit my lip. “You sound mad. You’re not speaking to me much.” He sighed. “I’ve poured my entire heart into you over the last 8 days. I told you last Tuesday to love me completely or not at all. The accident changed a lot of things. I saved you because it was the right thing to do but I also took care of you. I nursed you back to health. I tended to every little thing with no concern for my own health. The emotional toil of tending to you with no outward appearance that you were recovering nearly broke me. And then, it all came together. Everything we could have wanted… and just like that, it’s gone?” Tim’s eyes filled with tears as he poured his heart and soul out to me. “We’ve become so close that the fact that a simple letter, or two letters I guess, could end everything, just like that, is more than simply heart breaking. Maybe you’re meant to disobey this order. Could this be a test of your maturity? Maybe you’re supposed to step out of Celestia’s shadow and be your own mare. But what do I know? I’m just the dumb human that you live with. Too wrapped up in my own past and my own loss to have taken you by the hooves and seized the moment. I know that holding on to the memory of my wife has slowed down our courtship, but it shouldn’t have led to this type of dead end.” He took in a few calming breaths, but then snorted and scoffed. “And now I’ve lost you to a letter? A letter! We can date as long as it doesn’t get too serious? That’s like Celestia ordered you to be my friends with benefits instead of my girlfriend. It’s fun while it lasts but it will end someday. How is that fair, to either of us? It’s not courting if we’re not allowed to explore the entire depth of a relationship, Twilight. I’m not sure it matters, anyways. You’re not going to stay with me on Earth and it doesn’t sound like Celestia is going to let me live in Equestria, not with my unnatural, legal but frowned upon, romantic interest in her most faithful student. I expected humans to be racist towards ponies dating humans. I never expected to see the loving, caring, accepting ponies to also be racist towards the idea also.” I gasped and hung my head in shame. He wasn’t wrong. “Tim. Please. This feels so wrong to just give up now. I swear that I love you and Sara. Will you allow me to write another couple of letters this evening and set my father straight and try to get some advice from a love expert in Equestria? Maybe she can help me?” He snorted. “You can do whatever you want. You can write the letters now, during lunch, if you want to. It won’t bother me at all, and we have time. They won’t dock us for going over an hour lunch break since you’re resting after your magical miracle.” It wasn’t a bad idea…. I pulled out some parchment and a pen from my magical storage portal and composed a letter to the only mare I trusted to give me love advice. ‘Dear Princess Cadance, I hope this letter finds you well. I'm writing to you in a state of distress, seeking your guidance as the Princess of Love. As you may or may not yet know, I've developed strong feelings for a human named Tim during my time on Earth. We've grown close, and I believe I truly love him. However, recent events have complicated our relationship. Princess Celestia and Princess Luna has given me permission to court Tim, but with strong cautions against pregnancy and falling too deeply in love due to the uncertain future of the portal between our worlds and other concerns. While I understand their concerns, I find myself torn between my loyalty to them and my feelings for Tim. Tim, upon hearing these cautions, has decided to end our romantic relationship entirely to protect me from potential consequences. His reaction, while noble, has left me heartbroken. I don't know how to proceed. How can I balance my duty to Equestria with my love for Tim? Is there a way to reassure him without disobeying Celestia? And how can I mend the damage my uncertainty has caused to our relationship? Your insight on love and relationships would be invaluable to me right now. I feel lost and in need of guidance from somepony who understands the power of love. Thank you for your time and wisdom. Your friend, Twilight Sparkle’ I sent the letter with a zap of purple magic just in time for the food to be brought out. The cheese enchiladas were gooey with melted cheese and the rice and beans complimented each other perfectly. As I ate, I was impressed by the quality of the food and was pleased that there was no meat in it. I ate faster than Tim, hungry after my use of magic, and took the extra time to write the second letter to my father. ‘Dear Father, I am writing to you with a mixture of disappointment and anger. I have read the threatening letter you sent to Tim regarding our relationship. Your behavior is unacceptable and goes against everything our family stands for. Tim is an honorable, kind, and loving individual who has shown me nothing but respect and care. He could have expected a great deal more from me than he had asked of me. He saved my life when I overexerted myself magically, and not only has he asked for nothing in return, but he has also been a pillar of support during my time on Earth. Your threats against him are not only unjustified but also deeply hurtful to me. I am an adult mare capable of making my own decisions. Your attempt to control my personal life through intimidation is both insulting and damaging to our relationship as father and daughter. I expected better from you, especially considering your position in Princess Celestia's court. Let me be clear: if forced to choose between my family and Tim, I will choose Tim. He has shown me what true love and acceptance look like, without conditions or threats. I sincerely hope it doesn't come to that, as I wish to maintain my relationship with you and mother. However, I will not tolerate any further attempts to interfere with or threaten my relationship. I urge you to reconsider your stance and apologize to Tim. If you cannot accept my choices and treat Tim with the respect he deserves, I will have no choice but to distance myself from the family. I love you, father, but I also love Tim. I shouldn't have to choose between the two, and I'm disappointed that you're trying to force me into such a position. Your daughter, Twilight Sparkle P.S. Remember, father, that as Celestia's personal student, I have connections of my own. I would hate for the Princess to hear about how one of her courtiers is threatening an innocent human and interfering with interspecies diplomacy.' As I sent off the letter to my father, I felt a mix of emotions swirling inside me - anger, disappointment, and a twinge of guilt. I must have been scowling, because Tim glanced at me with a raised eyebrow. "What did you do? What did you say?" he asked, his tone more curious than accusatory. I took a deep breath. "I... I sent a strongly worded letter to my father. I told him his behavior was unacceptable and that if I had to choose between him and you, I'd choose you." Tim's eyes widened slightly, surprise breaking through his carefully maintained neutral expression. "Twilight, that's... are you sure that was wise?" I felt a flare of anger. "What else am I supposed to do, Tim? Just sit back and let him threaten you? Let him ruin what we have?" Tim was quiet for a moment, his face unreadable. When he spoke, his voice was soft but firm. "You know this doesn't change anything, right? We still can't-" "I know," I interrupted, my voice cracking slightly. "But I had to do something. I couldn't just... I couldn't let it stand. If I can’t defend you, then how can I ever deserve you?" Tim nodded slowly, a hint of respect in his eyes despite his reserved demeanor. "Twilight… you deserve better than me. But I get it, and I’m grateful. It's not easy standing up to family." His words, though not exactly comforting, gave me a small measure of validation. I pulled out another piece of parchment, my jaw set with determination. "And I'm not done yet. I need to write to my mother." I pulled out another parchment and set to work. 'Dear Best Mom, I hope this letter finds you well, though I'm afraid I don't bring good news. I'm writing to inform you of a distressing situation involving dad and my relationship with Tim. I recently learned that dad sent a threatening letter to Tim regarding our relationship. His words were harsh and intimidating, going far beyond the realm of fatherly concern. This action has not only hurt Tim deeply but has also put a significant strain on our blossoming relationship. Tim is an exceptional human who has shown me nothing but kindness, respect, and love. He even saved my life when I overexerted myself magically, asking for nothing in return. Yet, despite his honorable actions and intentions, Father saw fit to threaten him. Mom, I'm devastated. Tim, upon reading dad's threats and learning of the concerns raised by Princess Celestia and Princess Luna about our relationship, has decided to end our romantic involvement to protect me from potential consequences. His decision, while noble, has left me heartbroken. I find myself at a crossroads. My feelings for Tim are genuine and deep, but I'm torn between my love for him and my duty to Equestria and our family. Tim believes our relationship is doomed, and I fear he may be right if things don't change. I've always valued your wisdom and understanding, mom. I'm hoping you can help me navigate this difficult situation. Perhaps you could speak with dad and help him understand the gravity of his actions? I don't want to choose between my family and the stallion – or in this case, the man – I love, but dad's actions are pushing me towards that impossible choice. Mom, I know you're excited about the prospect of me finding love, and I appreciate your enthusiasm. But please remember that Tim is my partner. While I value your support, I need you to respect our relationship's boundaries. Your help in navigating this situation with dad would mean the world to me, but Tim and I need to face our challenges as a couple. I love you both dearly, but I also love Tim. I need your support now more than ever. Please help me find a way to mend this situation before it's too late. Best daughter, Twilight Sparkle P.S. I've enclosed a copy of the letter I sent to dad. I hope it helps you understand the full extent of the situation.' By the time I had finished and sent this third letter, Tim was finished eating but before he could tell us that it was time to go, I got a scroll back from Equestria wrapped in pink magic that could only be from one pony. ‘Dearest Twilight, My heart goes out to you in this difficult situation. Love is never simple, but it's always worth fighting for. While I respect Aunty Celestia's wisdom and Aunty Luna’s pragmatism, I believe that in matters of the heart, you must follow your own path. True love is rare and precious - don't let fear or uncertainty hold you back from experiencing its full depth. Tim sounds like a wonderful stallion (or should I say man?). His willingness to step back out of respect for you shows his depth of character. But don't let his noble gesture become a barrier between you. Be honest with Tim about your feelings. Show him that your love is stronger than any obstacles you may face. Actions speak louder than words - perhaps it's time to demonstrate your commitment in a way that leaves no doubt. As for Celestia's concerns, while caution is wise, don't let it paralyze you. Love often requires a leap of faith. Trust in yourself and in the strength of your bond with Tim. Remember, Twilight, you're not just Celestia's student anymore. You're a grown mare capable of making your own choices. It's okay to respectfully disagree with her sometimes. To the best of my knowledge, Celestia nor Luna has ever been in love. Follow your heart, Twilight. Embrace love in all its forms. Tim is clearly special to you - don't let him slip away because of fear or doubt. Don’t forget to invite me to the wedding! Wishing you all the love and happiness you deserve, Cadance P.S. A little romantic gesture can go a long way. Don't be afraid to show Tim just how much he means to you!’ As I read Cadance's words, a warmth blossomed in my chest, spreading through my body like liquid sunlight. Tears spilled from my eyes, each one carrying away a fraction of the fear and doubt that had plagued me. A sob of relief escaped my lips, half-laugh and half-cry. Tim's eyes met mine, a storm of emotions swirling in their depths. He moved towards me, his steps hesitant yet purposeful. As he pulled his chair closer, I could see his own eyes glistening. When he folded me into his arms, it felt like coming home after a long, treacherous journey. His embrace was gentle yet fierce, as if he feared I might disappear if he let go. We cried together, our tears mingling, washing away the pain and uncertainty of the past hours. No matter how cross he was with me, he wouldn’t allow me to suffer, and it made me realize even more how much of a fool I had been to blindly accept Celestia’s orders. He whispered in my ear. “More bad news? I’m not sure my heart can take more bad news…” I shook my head. “No… the best news ever. The Princess of Love told me that I can respectfully disagree with Celestia and Luna, and I’m going to do just that. I won’t let anyone, not anypony, stand between us. I sent an angry letter to my dad, and I told my mom what was going on too. I love you, Tim, and I’m sorry that I let a letter shake that love. Can you forgive me?” He nodded slowly as he gazed into my eyes. “I can try, but ponies are so emotional. How am I to trust that you won’t change your mind again? I need proof of your commitment. I can’t keep letting my heart get kicked around like a soccer ball.” His words and his request radiated with me. “Let’s make love… tonight. We’ll do what we have to make it safe, but I need you. I can’t wait any longer.” He bit his lip. “Don’t use sex to apologize. We can still go slow. Just yesterday you wanted to wait until the weekend.” I sighed. “I said that because of the stupid letter. Estrus is making everything harder than it should be, but this current cycle of heat is over. I can think clearly now, and I still want you. I think we would have already made love by now if I didn’t spend 3 days asleep.” Tim raised an eyebrow, a mischievous glint in his eye. "So, you're saying you’re no longer in heat? Guess I'll have to work harder to keep you interested then." I snorted and kissed him, to the amusement of the restaurant staff. “I’ve been interested since the first day I met you. We just haven’t had the opportunity, permission or simply been on the same page until now. Don’t go inventing a new reason not to flip me on my back when we’re so close.” Tim looked thoughtful while analyzing everything I said. "You're sure you want this, no matter the consequences?" I nodded my head firmly. "I can deal with my parents. I can use Cadance's letter as the permission that Celestia wouldn't give me, given that Cadance is a princess too. My mom will probably be very happy. If I am an ambassador for my people and mares will follow in my hoofsteps, then it is up to me to make this okay. This stigma of Equestrians and humans dating will end today. It's already legal in the treaty, now it's time to use it." Tim's eyes sparkled with a mix of affection and mischief. "Well, in that case, I guess we're officially back on. Should we order champagne? Or would you prefer a salt lick to celebrate?" I playfully swatted his arm but couldn't help grinning. "Very funny. You know, in Equestria, couples usually celebrate new relationships with a traditional dessert called 'Sweet Harmony.' It's a layered confection with each layer representing a different aspect of the relationship." "Oh?" Tim leaned in, intrigued. "What kind of aspects are we talking about here?" I felt my cheeks warm as I explained. "Well, there's usually a layer for friendship, one for passion, one for trust... and, um, one for physical compatibility." Tim's eyebrows shot up. "Physical compatibility, huh? And how exactly is that represented in pastry form?" "Let's just say it involves a lot of whipped cream and cherry filling," I muttered, my blush deepening. Tim shot me a grin filled with lust and a hint of playful banter. "So, this 'physical compatibility' layer... does it come with instructions?" I blushed, redder than the hot sauce on the table. "Tim! It's metaphorical!" Tim grinned at me. “Shame. I was hoping for a tasty guide to pony anatomy.” My own blush took on deeper tones as I whispered into his ears. “I’ll teach you everything you need to know.” Tim chuckled, his voice low. "Sounds delicious. Feels like we will be making our own version of 'Sweet Harmony' in the near future. For cultural exchange purposes, of course." "Of course," I agreed, my tail swishing with anticipation. "Purely for diplomatic reasons." * * * Author's Note I write commissions!. At 5 dollars per 1,000 words, I'm one of the cheaper writers on the site. If you have a story idea, E, T or M, please DM me and we'll work something out. //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 10 - Royal Interventions and Magical Solutions //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 10 - Royal Interventions and Magical Solutions Meanwhile, in Equestria… Twilight Velvet It was still early morning in Equestria, the time difference between where Twilight was on Earth being a little different than Equestria. As such, Night Light was still home, getting ready to go to work, when Twilight's next letter showed up. The scroll materialized in a burst of purple magic, startling me from my morning tea. My heart leapt with excitement - another letter from my darling daughter! I couldn't help but giggle, imagining all the romantic updates Twilight might be sharing. Perhaps tales of moonlit walks with Tim, or adorable misunderstandings due to their cultural differences? As I unfurled it, my eyes widened with each line of Twilight's script. This was not at all what I had expected. Her normally elegant script was messy, as if written in great haste, with a few smudges from tears. By the time I finished, my hooves were shaking with a mixture of anger and disappointment. "Night Light!" I called out, my voice sharp enough to cut through steel. "What in Celestia's name have you done!?!" My husband poked his head into the room, confusion etched on his face. "Velvet? What's wrong?" I thrust the letter at him. "Read this. Now." Then I noticed a second piece of parchment that had fallen to the floor - a copy of the letter Twilight had sent to her father. I snatched it up, my eyes racing over the words. Oh, dear Celestia, this was even worse than I thought. As Night Light's eyes scanned the parchment I'd given him, I saw the color drain from his face. He hadn't even seen the angry letter addressed directly to him yet. At least he had the good sense to look ashamed. "I... I was just trying to protect her," he stammered. "Protect her?" I snapped, waving both letters in the air. "By threatening the stallion - no, the man - she loves? The one who saved her life? Night Light, she's not our little filly anymore. She's a grown mare capable of making her own decisions." "But Velvet, he's a human. We don't know anything about him!" I rolled my eyes, my voice dripping with sarcasm. "And whose fault is that? Instead of threatening him, you could have asked to meet him, to get to know him. Now you might have ruined Twilight's chance at happiness... and my chance at grandfoals!" Night Light winced at my words. "What do you want me to do?" "We're going to the Castle," I said, my tone brooking no argument. "Right now. We're going to sort this out with Princess Celestia herself if we have to." As we made our way to the castle, my mind raced. I'd always dreamed of Twilight finding somepony special, but I never imagined it would be under these circumstances. Still, love was love, and if this Tim made her happy, who were we to stand in the way? The guards at the castle recognized us immediately, their eyes widening slightly at our unscheduled arrival. They ushered us into the throne room where Princess Celestia was preparing to start Day Court. As we approached the dais, I could see Princess Luna chatting with Celestia and I could feel the weight of curious gazes from courtiers and Royal Guards alike. Night Light, usually composed in his role as Royal Advisor, fidgeted nervously beside me. "Night Light, Twilight Velvet," Celestia greeted us, her voice warm but tinged with curiosity. "To what do I owe the pleasure of this unexpected visit?" I stepped forward, not bowing, my head held high, eyes filled with steel, Twilight's letters clutched tightly in my hoof. "Your Highness, we need to discuss an urgent matter concerning our daughter, Twilight Sparkle, and her relationship with her human, Tim." Celestia's expression shifted, a flicker of concern crossing her face. "I see. Perhaps we should discuss this in private?" "No," I said firmly, my voice carrying across the throne room. "With all due respect, Your Highness, this needs to be addressed openly. You've given Twilight permission to court Tim, but with so many restrictions that it's hardly permission at all. And my husband," I shot Night Light a pointed glare, "has threatened the poor man." Murmurs rippled through the court like a wave. Celestia raised an eyebrow, her composure slipping ever so slightly. "Twilight Velvet, these are complex matters-" "They're matters of the heart," I interrupted, ignoring the gasps from the assembled ponies. "Twilight loves this man. He saved her life, for pony's sake! He's been nothing but kind and respectful. Yet we're treating him like some kind of threat to Equestria itself." Celestia was silent for a moment, her gaze moving between us and the assembled court. The air in the throne room felt thick with tension. "Twilight Velvet," Celestia began, her voice measured, "while I understand your passion, we must consider the broader implications. The portal's stability-" "With all due respect, Your Highness," I interrupted, my voice firm but respectful, "the portal has been stable for years now. Are we to let fear of what might happen prevent us from embracing the very purpose of this exchange program? If we can't accept the possibility of real relationships forming, then what in Tartarus are we doing? Wasting everyponies time! I’m not getting any younger here, you know." Night Light stepped forward, his voice quiet but firm. "Your Highness, I... I was wrong to threaten Tim. I let my fears cloud my judgment. But Velvet is right. We should be embracing this opportunity, not cowering from it. If ponies never got with griffons, or dragons or any other creature, would we be as accepting and culturally advanced as we currently are? Humans can barely accept other skin tones amongst their own people, despite all being human. Are we going to learn the wrong lessons from the humans?" Celestia was silent for a longer moment, deeply troubled by the implications. The air in the throne room was now downright oppressive with heavy tension. "Night Light... you make a valid point about learning the wrong lessons. But as to everything else… is that the voice of a father, or the voice of my royal advisor?" Celestia asked, her tone unreadable. With a timid smile, he replied. "The voice of a terrified husband." He gestured towards me with a nervous chuckle. "She can be scarier than a changeling invasion when she's mad... but yes, both father and advisor speak the same truth here." I snorted, shooting him a glare that was equal parts exasperation and affection, before turning my determined gaze back to Celestia. The alicorn shifted ever so slightly on her throne, a rare display of discomfort. Finally, Celestia spoke, her voice measured. "You've given me much to consider. Perhaps... perhaps I have been overly cautious in this matter. Night Light, I trust you'll make proper amends with Tim?" Night Light nodded solemnly. "I will write an apology letter tonight... or perhaps today if we can steal a moment amidst our duties." Celestia nodded, a small smile gracing her features. "You may write the letter immediately after we are finished here and before you join me on the dais for morning court, if it pleases your wife.” Celestia finished with a smirk. I spoke up, but with a bowed head. “Yes, that pleases me greatly, thank you.” Celestia continued. “And as for Twilight and Tim's relationship, while I still advise caution, especially regarding foals-" "Foals?" I interrupted, unable to contain myself. "Your Highness, with all due respect, foals are the point! How can there be true love without a next generation to rear? To nurture? To pass on our values and strengths?" My eyes sparkled with excitement. "Just imagine the potential of such a union - the magic of Equestria combined with the ingenuity of humanity!" Celestia blinked, clearly taken aback by my enthusiasm. "Twilight Velvet, I understand your excitement, but we must consider-" "Consider the possibilities, yes!" I pressed on, my voice filled with passion. "This could be the start of a whole new era of understanding between our worlds. And just think of how adorable those grandfoals would be! My grandfoals. My precious…" Night Light placed a hoof on my shoulder, trying to calm me. "Dear, perhaps we should-" I shook him off gently. "No, Night Light. If we're going to embrace this relationship, we should embrace all aspects of it. Including the possibility - no, the hope - for foals." Celestia sighed, a mix of amusement and resignation in her voice. "Very well, Twilight Velvet. While I still urge caution, I will not stand in the way of love... or the possibility of its fruits." As we turned to leave, a thought struck me. I spun back to face Celestia, my expression stern. "Your Highness, one more thing. You will write to Twilight immediately, or at least by the end of the day, won't you? She needs to know about these updated permissions straight from you. We can't have her thinking she's still under those restrictive conditions." Celestia nodded, a hint of amusement in her eyes. "Of course, Twilight Velvet. I'll send a letter to Twilight before nightfall on Earth." "Good," I said, satisfied. "Make sure it's clear. No more ambiguity or hidden warnings. My daughter deserves to pursue her happiness without fear." With that, Night Light and I finally left the throne room, leaving behind a slightly bewildered Princess and a court full of gossiping ponies. Night Light turned to walk to his office to prepare for his day and I left the castle to go home. I had sweaters to start knitting. * * * Celestia and Luna Celestia turned to her sister, who hadn’t left yet. "I fear we've created a monster." Luna snorted and deadpanned: "A grandmother monster. The most terrifying kind. I can’t tell you how many older mares have nightmares about never having grandfoals.” As the throne room emptied to put the final touches on the opening of Morning Court, Celestia let out a long sigh, her regal posture slumping slightly. Luna approached closer, a mix of amusement and concern on her face. "Well, sister," Luna said, her voice low, "that was certainly an interesting morning court." Celestia nodded, a wry smile playing at her lips. "Indeed, and this was just the beginning. The main morning court doesn’t start for half an hour. I don't think I've been so thoroughly outmaneuvered since Discord's last visit." Luna chuckled softly. "Twilight Velvet is a force to be reckoned with. Though I must say, I agree with her on many points." "As do I," Celestia admitted, her brow furrowing. "And yet, I can't help but worry. Are we opening a door we won't be able to close?" Luna considered this for a moment. "Perhaps. But would we want to close it? Isn't that the nature of progress? Of love? We cannot control the hearts of our little ponies, Tia. We can only guide them and trust in the wisdom we've imparted." Celestia nodded slowly. "You're right, of course. Still, the implications of human-pony relationships... the potential for foals... it's uncharted territory." "Exciting, isn't it?" Luna's eyes twinkled with mischief. "Just think of the diplomatic advantages. Nothing brings two worlds together quite like love and family." Despite her concerns, Celestia found herself smiling. "I suppose you're right. And if anypony can navigate these waters, it's our Twilight." "Indeed," Luna agreed. "Though I do pity the poor human. I'm not sure Tim knows what he's gotten himself into with the Sparkle family." The sisters shared a laugh, the tension of the morning finally dissipating. Celestia sighed. “I’ll have to write my letter to Twilight during lunch, after morning court ends for the day. I wish you good rest, sister. Luna smiled. “I’ll take it. Maybe I can find a human of my own if this goes well for Twilight. Good morning, sister.” * * * Twilight Velvet I trotted home with a spring in my step, my mind buzzing with excitement. As I entered my house, I headed straight for my craft room, pulling out yarn and knitting needles, and a recently obtained book on making clothes for humans. "Now, let's see," she muttered to herself, sorting through colors. "Earth tones for Tim, perhaps? And for the foals... oh, the possibilities!" She began knitting furiously, a small sweater taking shape. As she worked, she imagined the future. "I wonder if they'll have magic? Or maybe they'll be more human-like? Oh, what if they have both hands and hooves?" She giggled at the thought. "They'll be the most adorable little creatures in two worlds!" Her knitting needles clicked faster as her excitement grew. "We'll need to baby-proof the house, of course. And maybe set up a nursery... just in case they visit." She paused, a mischievous glint in her eye. "Or in case we need to foal-sit while Twilight and Tim have some alone time." As the afternoon wore on, a pile of tiny sweaters grew beside her, each one a different color and size. "Better to be prepared," she reasoned. "After all, we don't know how fast they'll grow!" * * * Night Light Settling into my office, I quickly started to write the letter to Tim, hoping not to take too long or keep Princess Celestia waiting. ‘Dear Tim, I hope this letter finds you well. I am writing to you with a heavy heart and sincere regret for my previous communication. My earlier letter to you was born out of fear and misunderstanding, not a true reflection of who you are or the nature of your relationship with my daughter. I realize now that my words were harsh, unfair, and unbecoming of a father who should prioritize his daughter's happiness above all else. Twilight has always been an exceptional mare, and it's clear that she has found an equally exceptional partner in you. Your actions in saving her life, which I wish you had mentioned in your first letter and supporting her during her time on Earth speak volumes about your character. I was wrong to judge you based on preconceived notions and fears about interspecies relationships. I want you to know that I fully support your relationship with Twilight. Love knows no boundaries, and it was shortsighted of me to try to impose any. Your kindness, bravery, and dedication to my daughter are qualities any father would hope for in a partner for his child. Furthermore, I want to assure you that any threats or intimidation in my previous letter are hereby retracted. You have nothing to fear from me or from Equestria. Instead, I hope that we can move forward and build a positive relationship as a family. I understand that words alone cannot undo the harm I may have caused, but I hope this is a start. I would very much like the opportunity to meet you in person, to apologize face-to-face, and to get to know the stallion – or rather, the man – who has captured my daughter's heart. Please accept my deepest apologies and my heartfelt wishes for your happiness with Twilight. Sincerely, Night Light P.S. My wife, Twilight Velvet, sends her warmest regards. She's quite excited about the prospect of grandfoals, so consider yourself warned. If you thought my letter was overwhelming, wait until you experience her enthusiasm in person!’ I set down my quill, reading over the letter one last time. I sighed, a mixture of relief and lingering regret washing over me. The apology felt sincere, but would it be enough? Would this Tim, this human who had stolen my little filly's heart, be willing to forgive me? I glanced at the clock on my office wall. Morning court had already started, as expected of the length of time it took to write a sincere letter, and Princess Celestia would be expecting me on the dais. With a flick of my magic, I sealed the letter and sent it off to Earth. As I stood to leave my office, I caught a glimpse of a family photo on my desk. Twilight smiled back at me, her eyes full of the same joy I’d seen many times in my life. Maybe, I thought, it was time to add a new photo to my collection – one that included a certain human. Straightening my bow tie, I left my office, ready to face the day's duties and whatever the future might bring for my expanding family. I trotted briskly through the castle hallways, my hooves echoing off the marble floors. Despite my best efforts to be quick with the letter, I knew I was late for morning court. As I approached the throne room, I could hear the murmur of voices within. Slipping in as quietly as possible, I made my way to the dais where Princess Celestia sat. She glanced at me with a raised eyebrow as I took my place beside her, but there was a hint of amusement in her eyes. "My apologies for the delay, Your Highness," I whispered, bowing my head slightly. Celestia leaned towards me, her voice low. "No need to apologize, Night Light. I trust the letter is completed?" I nodded. "Yes, Your Highness. Sent and on its way to Earth." "Excellent," she murmured. Then, with a mischievous twinkle in her eye, she added, "You didn't miss much, I assure you. Although, there was one very serious request that required my immediate attention." My ears perked up. "Oh? What was it?" Celestia's lips twitched, suppressing a smile. "A most urgent matter indeed. It seems a young colt from Ponyville has petitioned the crown to officially declare cupcakes as a breakfast food option." I blinked, unsure if I had heard correctly. "Cupcakes... as breakfast?" "Oh yes," Celestia continued, her voice dripping with mock seriousness. "He made a very compelling argument. Something about the nutritional benefits of frosting and the importance of starting the day with sprinkles." I had to stifle a laugh. "And how did you rule on this matter of great importance, Your Highness?" Celestia's eyes danced with amusement. "I told him I would take it under advisement. Perhaps we should form a royal commission to study the matter further? I'm thinking a year-long investigation, at least." I shook my head, chuckling softly. "Of course, Your Highness. Shall I draft a proposal for the commission?" "That won't be necessary," Celestia replied with a wink. "I believe we have more pressing matters to attend to. Like your daughter's impending nuptials, perhaps?" I felt my cheeks warm, but I decided to respond with a rare joke of my own. "Oh, absolutely! We’ll need to commission Rarity, who made Cadance’s dress, for Twilight’s dress. Rarity should already have Twilight’s measurements… unless she’s already pregnant when she comes home in 6 months, in which case adjustments must be made. Also, as your personal student, we’ll need to make Twilight a Countess at the very least and her human, as former military, must be made a Knight in your service. And they will need an estate… or maybe a castle, large enough for more than 2 foals… hmm… how many foals would Twilight want? At least 10, maybe more… Velvet never quite forgave me for only letting her have 2 foals…" Celestia’s expression was blank with the possibilities of all that running through her head, and only seemed to reset to a working mode when I winked at her to let her know I was joking. Well mostly. As obsessive as Twilight could be when she was focused, 10 foals weren’t a bad guess. Twilight had no idea how much she took after her mother… She smiled knowingly. "Of course. Now, shall we continue with court? I believe the next petitioner wishes to discuss the alarming shortage of rubber ducks in Canterlot's public baths." As we turned our attention back to the throne room, I couldn't help but smile. Despite the momentous changes in my personal life, it was comforting to know that some things – like the often-amusing trivialities of the royal court – remained constant. As I recalled… Celestia had refused to put in a screening process to avoid frivolous matters. Was it a waste of time? Sometimes… but it was also a very necessary break to truly serious matters. * * * Back on Earth… Tim I paid for lunch, and we returned to work a lot happier and feeling like we had overcome the biggest obstacle to our relationship, I couldn’t help but to be giddy about moving forward. Or maybe that was anticipation for tonight. Pulling back into the gates, it was only 11 am. I turned to her. “So… how are you feeling? You ready to roll some drums?” She shook her head. “Let’s go back to the shop. I wanna ask Joe a question.” We made our way back to Joe's shop, Twilight's determined stride hinting at a plan forming in her mind. As we entered, Joe looked up from his workbench, a smile of approval on his face. "Welcome back, you two," Joe greeted us. "I've just finished inspecting all seven trailers you fixed this morning, Twilight. I've got to say, I'm continually impressed by your magic. It's damn near miraculous." He wiped his hands on a rag and leaned against his workbench. "So, what's the plan for the afternoon? You going to fix more trailers, or are you and Tim gonna start picking orders and loading trucks?" Twilight shook her head, a small smile playing on her lips. "Actually, Joe, I have a question for you. Do you have any plastic drums or pails that need recycling?" Joe's brow furrowed. "Plastic recycling? That's a touchy subject around here. We can't seem to find a place willing to pay us for the value per pound take it out of our hands. Most of the plastic pails and drums that are damaged, too old to sell, or returned obviously used for frivolous reasons, just end up getting thrown away. As a profit-sharing company, it hurts the bonuses of every full-time employee here. We don’t keep what we can’t sell for long, it takes up too much inventory space." I watched as Twilight's ears drooped slightly at this news. Joe, noticing her reaction, scratched his chin thoughtfully. "Although," he continued, "now that you mention it, we do have a list of items earmarked for disposal. A new list comes out every month… we just haven't ordered a dumpster yet. It’s too expensive unless we can fill it up." Twilight's eyes lit up. "Really? Do you think I could try recycling some of that product? It seems a shame to just throw it all away." I felt a knot of worry form in my stomach. "Twilight, are you sure about this? I don't want you pushing yourself too hard again." Joe chimed in before Twilight could respond. "Now, Tim, let's not be too hasty. Most plastic pails are 500 pounds per pallet, and some are lighter. A full truckload of 26 pallets of plastic pails is only about 6 1/2 tons. That's lighter than even one of our light dry van trailers." I blinked, surprised by this information. "Really? I had no idea. The forklifts don’t tell me how heavy the pallets are." Twilight nodded enthusiastically. "See, Tim? It should be much easier on me than the trailers, especially if I’m not doing a full truck load. Plus, it would help the company reduce waste and improve your bonus. It's a win-win situation." I shook my head. “It’s only a win-win if they also pay you for it. You won’t be here long enough to get the employee annual bonus.” Joe, ever mindful, was happy to interject. “I’d be willing to pay her the same rate per ton for the plastic recycling as we are the steel. We are losing tens of thousands of dollars throwing this stuff away, and if she can fix trailers with it, it’ll give us even more useable trailers because we won’t be scrapping older trailers to fix new ones.” I sighed, knowing I was outnumbered. "Alright but promise me you'll be careful. No more magical strokes, okay?" Twilight nuzzled against me affectionately. "I promise, Tim. I've learned my lesson." Joe clapped his hands together. "Well then, let's see what we can do about getting those plastics moved to a place where Twilight can work her magic. And who knows? If this works out, we might just have found ourselves a solution to our plastic waste problem." As we followed Joe out of the shop, I couldn’t help but feel a mix of pride and concern. Twilight’s determination to help and innovate was admirable, but I just hoped it wouldn’t come at the cost of her health. Still, as I watched her eagerly discuss the details with Joe, I felt a warmth in my chest. Whatever challenges lay ahead, we’d face them together. * * * Twilight Tim got the list of plastic items slated to be thrown from Melvin and then Tim used a forklift to clear out 16 pallets of pails that were officially too old to sell. The 16 pallets, at an average weight of 500 pounds each, weighed a total of 4 tons. Meanwhile, Joe pulled 2 trailers from the yard up to empty dock doors. If repaired, that would give us 9 empty trailers to load orders into for tomorrow’s shipping. These trailers appeared to be two of the worst remaining trailers to repair, that weren’t previously earmarked for recycling. I was concerned that 4 tons of plastic would repair more than just those two trailers, given that a 7-to-8-ton trailer has fixed 5 to 7 trailers both times I had recycled one. The 14 trailers fixed from recycling a trailer full of 360 steel tight head drums, which nearly killed me, was the extreme upper limit. I had to plan on where to redirect the magical focus if there was left over magical material from the transmutation. I was left with two choices. I could either do minor repairs on company-owned trailers still in service at the dock doors or I could repair the stake bed truck that the employees used to pull small orders of drums from the yard in situations where it was an order of 40 drums or less, when moving the trailer with the drums to the door wasn’t worth the time to move the trailer, unless the trailer was being emptied anyway. From Tim’s criticisms he had made during small talk either at work or about work, the stake bed truck was important, but the air conditioning didn’t work and because of other maintenance issues, it couldn’t be used to deliver small orders to local customers because the truck couldn’t leave the property. As I considered my options, I turned to Joe, who was overseeing the placement of the plastic pallets. "Joe," I called out, catching his attention. "I'm a bit concerned about having excess magical material after fixing the two trailers. What's your opinion on whether I should repair the stake bed truck or do lighter repairs on the other trailers?" Joe rubbed his chin thoughtfully, considering the question. "You know, Twilight, I think fixing the stake bed truck might be your best bet. All those extra 'add value' services you do to the trailers - repainting them in company colors and adding logos - might overexert you if you're right about two trailers not being enough to use up all the material. The stake bed would also probably help the company more in the short run, if it was fully repaired." Intrigued, I pressed further. "How so? I mean, I know it's important, but how would it help more than having additional functional trailers?" Joe leaned against a nearby pallet, his expression turning serious. "Well, if we could get that stake bed running properly again and use it for local deliveries, it'd save us a trip for the bobtail trucks sometimes, which would let the bobtails do other deliveries. That would, in turn, potentially reduce the number of empty trailers we need each day. It helps the whole crew." He paused, a wry smile crossing his face. "Course, it might mean more work for yours truly. Back when that truck could leave the property, I was usually the one making those small local deliveries. Of course... we all remember that Melvin fired all the temps when you started. Maybe having the stake bed truck fixed would allow one current warehouse guy to transfer positions and become a driver." I nodded, processing this information. The stake bed did seem like it could make a significant impact on daily operations. I was concerned about anyone potentially losing their job because of me. "That makes sense. It sounds like fixing the stake bed could streamline things quite a bit." "That it could," Joe agreed. "It's been a real pain not having it available for off-site use. Melvin's been talking about replacing it, but at $20,000 for repairs or even more for a new one, it just hasn't been in the budget." I felt a surge of excitement. If I could fix the stake bed, it would not only help the company but also showcase the practical applications of my magic in ways beyond just repairing trailers. "Alright," I said, my decision made. "I'll focus on the two trailers first, and then direct any excess magic to fixing the stake bed. Does that sound good to you, Joe?" Joe grinned, clapping me on my withers. "Sounds like a plan, Twilight. Let's see what that magic of yours can do." With that conversation finished, I was ready to start. As I prepared to cast the spell on the plastic pails, I could feel the eyes of every employee on me. The air seemed to crackle with anticipation. It occurred to me that only Tim, Joe and Melvin had seen me do this so far, so it was both educational and a magic show all in one. "Here goes," I muttered, my horn beginning to glow. The spell enveloped the plastic pails, and I could feel the molecular structure shifting under my magic. It was different from metal – more pliable, but also more resistant to change due to the fact that it was a purely artificial substance created as a refined oil byproduct. I had to adjust my spell on the fly, tweaking the magical frequencies to match the unique properties of the plastic. The plastic was just as difficult to transmute as steel and it was clear that I wouldn’t be able to save any magic with these transmutations. As the first trailer began to repair itself, I heard gasps from the onlookers. The torn metal mended seamlessly, rust flaking away to reveal shiny new surfaces. Even the paint seemed to refresh itself, the company logo appearing crisp and clear. The second trailer was the exact same. Moving on to the stake bed truck, I encountered new challenges. The engine components were more complex than anything I'd worked with before. I had to visualize each part while my magic had to analyze each part and understand its function before I could repair it. It was like solving an intricate puzzle with my magic. It also required more magic to pull off… threatening to break my promise to Tim. "Fascinating," I heard Tim murmur beside me. "It's like watching a time-lapse of a complete restoration. More satisfying than watching the trailers too.” As I worked, I could feel the strain building. The complexity of the repairs, combined with the unfamiliar materials, was pushing my limits. But I pressed on, determined to finish what I'd started. Each trailer took 5 minutes and as expected, and the Stake Bed Truck took the same 5 minutes. In 5 minutes, it was good as new, and I added the updated company colors and logo to it as well. To my surprise, that still didn’t use all the materials, so I had to look towards the next trailer at a door and was grateful that it was a company trailer and not a rental. Doing the repairs to that trailer wasn’t that bad but I could start to feel the strain. The trailer didn’t need much but it needed repainting and logos like all the other trailers that I hadn’t touched yet. I could feel the materials get completely used up and was grateful to put the finishing touches on the trailer without overexerting myself, but it was very close. I trotted over to Tim and collapsed into his waiting arms, at not all embarrassed by the public display of affection. "Sorry, didn't mean to make a scene. Just practicing my damsel in distress routine. My friend Rarity would be proud…" Tim chuckled at the playful banter. "Well, you nailed it. Maybe tone it down next time? I think Joe's writing a romance novel based on us now. I can picture it now… 'pony fucker reaches out and lift’s up her tail… ready to give the spectators a show'…” Melvin ran over, unable to hear our conversation, called out in distress. “Is she okay?” Tim nodded. “She’s just tired. She fixed 10 trailers and the stake bed truck. But she’s at her limit. She won’t be able to use anymore magic today.” Melvin nodded. “Well, I hate to lose your capable work ethic, but Twilight needs to rest in a climate-controlled environment, so I guess you can both leave early. These other guys won’t have to empty trailers at least, so it’s just pulling normal orders and most of the easy ones are already done.” Tim thanked Melvin for both of us and led me to his car. We left work just after 1 pm. Tim smiled at me. “I guess we pick up Sara and go home.” I nuzzled into him. “Sounds like a plan.” * * * Twilight Almost immediately after leaving the company parking lot, I received yet another letter, this time wrapped in golden magic. I unrolled it with trepidation in my eyes. Had Celestia learned of Cadance's supportive advice? Did something else go wrong? I read the letter carefully, not letting the car's motion distract me. ‘My Most Faithful Student, I hope this letter finds you well. I'm writing to update you on our previous discussion regarding your relationship with Tim. After a rather... illuminating conversation with your parents (and by that, I primarily mean your mother), I've come to realize that perhaps I was overly cautious in my initial advice to you. While I still urge you to proceed with care, especially regarding the potential for foals, I want you to know that you have my full support in pursuing your relationship with Tim. The love you share is not something to be feared but celebrated. Your mother made some compelling arguments about the importance of cultural exchange and the power of love. She also made some rather enthusiastic points about grandfoals, but I'll leave those discussions for the two of you. Twilight, you've always shown wisdom beyond your years. Trust in that wisdom, and in your heart. You have my blessing to explore this relationship fully, without the restrictions I previously imposed. This letter also contains written permission in more than one way. You were always implied to be an Ambassador of Equestria, due to being my student, but now I’m making it official. You have been officially appointed as the Equestrian Ambassador to Houston, and the American Federal Bureau on Equestria Affairs has been informed of your new status. They will also inform your EWE handler of your new status. However, only nobles can be Ambassadors to foreign powers. Therefore… I am naming you Countess Twilight Sparkle, of House Sparkle, First Countess of Ponyville. Tim, will be named as your husband, at least on paper, until you make it official or break it off, and I will name Tim as a Knight of Equestria, and Military Governor of Ponyville, separate from him also being First Count of Ponyville from his marriage to you (Understand that only married mares may hold ruling Equestrian titles, except for Alicorns). He will work with Mayor Mare and yourself to govern your little province. You may rule from the abandoned Castle of the Two Sisters if you can renovate it. Consider it a wedding present. These official papers give you and your husband diplomatic immunity and I’m including a copy of the treaty in case you run into problems. If you have any questions, please ask. And a word of advice, my faithful student - perhaps consider visiting your parents soon. Your mother is rather excited about the prospect of grandfoals, and I fear she might attempt to overthrow the diarchy if you don't produce some foals in a timely manner. (That's a joke, of course... I hope. Actually… I might need more guards.) Remember, love is one of the most powerful forms of magic we know. Cherish it, nurture it, and let it guide you. With all my love and support, Princess Celestia P.S. Your father will be sending an apology to Tim. Please assure Tim that despite initial misunderstandings, your family fully supports your relationship, and your mother would kill for grandfoals.’ The letter included the noble title appointments for me and Tim, a copy of the treaty, a marriage license, the official paperwork appointing me as an ambassador, and phone numbers of people to call if I need help, starting with the Bureau on Equestria Affairs and going all the way to the President of the United States. I facehooved, barely believing what just happened. Tim glanced over, concerned. "Problems?" I giggled, the sound building into uncontrolled laughter mixed with tears. Tim couldn't pull over, but I saw the worry in his eyes. Finally catching my breath, I smiled. "My father's sending you an apology. And my mother..." I shook my head in disbelief. "She convinced Celestia to lift all conditions on us dating. She's now actively encouraging foals." I paused. "Celestia even joked that my mom might overthrow the diarchy if we don't give her grandfoals soon." Tim's smile was both amused and incredulous. "A coup for grandfoals? Remind me never to be late with Mother's Day gifts. Welp, for the good of Equestria, I guess we need to stop this potential coup with some unbelievably cute foals." I was grateful for his light-hearted acceptance of this sudden change, attributing it to his military background - making quick decisions with limited information. Tim jarred me with a follow-up comment. "You know, if your mom's this excited, imagine how she'll react to the actual foals. We might need to invest in earplugs." I questioned the joke. "Earplugs? We'll need a soundproof room!" Tim snorted. “A soundproof room wouldn’t work if we’re in the room with her. The only squealing I want to damage my hearing is what I can get out of you…” "So," I ventured, blushing fiercely, "how many foals did you want?" He thought for a moment. "My late wife and I wanted five kids. We have Sara already, so I'd be okay with four more." My jaw dropped. "Four? Most mares only have two. You're going to turn me into a brood mare!" Tim smirked. "And you're going to love every minute of it." I couldn't help but smile at his confidence. "And why is that?" He gave me a knowing look. "The more foals we have, the more time your mom will spend with them. We'll have a free babysitter, still be able to enjoy a full love life, and it'll give your mom less time to try to seduce me. Unless you were just teasing about that?" I shook my head. "I wasn't teasing. We might need closer to ten foals at that rate." Tim gasped in mock surprise. "Ten foals? We might need to buy a bigger house. Or maybe get our own school. Is there a house large enough to also be a school? Could you be a head mare, wife and mother?" I gently teased him. "Don't worry, Princess Celestia is giving us the Castle of the Two Sisters within the Everfree Forest. It needs a lot of repairs, but it can be home after we renovate it, if we can tame the Timberwolves.” Tim's laugh was loud and genuine. “Maybe we can bring some Earth trash to recycle, thereby repairing the castle with magic. I’ve always wanted a pet wolf! How big do they get?" I snorted. “Equestria Timberwolves get bigger than your house.” Tim’s mouth hung open for a moment before he closed it with a snap. “Damn. I better stock up on industrial size dog treats.” I laughed at his light-hearted reaction, although I couldn’t honestly say that anypony had ever tried to befriend a Timberwolf, not even Fluttershy. "Just wait until you meet the hydra. It's basically a very angry, scaly game of whack-a-mole. Except… you get eaten if you lose." Tim sighed, finally understanding how dangerous Equestria could be. "...I'm going to need a bigger stick. One with a pointed tip. Or a spear… Fuck it, I’ll just bring my guns with me. As a member of the Army reserves, I still have my M4A1, and I can request unlimited ammo to ‘practice’." I playfully swatted at him. “You can bring what you want to Equestria, but you don’t want to scare the other ponies, they frighten easily.” "Twilight," he said, glancing at her, "I know we're joking about this, but... are you really okay with all of this? It's happening so fast." I considered his question carefully. "It is fast," I admitted. "But you know, in Equestria, some ponies get married after knowing each other for just a few months. When you know, you know. Celestia has given me and you titles. You are already my husband on paper, at least in Equestria." Tim froze, shocked at the turn of events but still able to focus on driving. "Really? We’re married now? But we didn’t get a cake! What about your career? Your studies? I don't want you to give up your dreams for me." I reached out and placed a hoof on his arm. "Tim, you're not asking me to give up anything. If anything, you're adding to my dreams. I can still pursue my studies and my career. We'll figure it out together. As my husband, we can do anything now.” He smiled, but I could see a hint of worry in his eyes. "And what about Sara? Are you sure you're ready to be a stepmom?" "I adore Sara," I said firmly. "But I’ll never be her stepmom. I’ll be her mom. That’s not to say that I’m replacing her mother, but I refuse to treat her differently than my own foals with you. She's part of the package, and I wouldn't have it any other way. Besides, I think she'll make an excellent big sister." Tim chuckled. "She'll probably try to teach the foals how to get into trouble." "And I'll teach them how to get out of it," I countered with a grin. * * * Tim We called the daycare staff so they would be ready for us, not wanting a repeat of Twilight walking in last Monday. As we pulled up to Sara's daycare, I could see her bouncing with excitement. She raced to the car, her backpack almost as big as she was. My heart swelled with love for my little girl. "Daddy! Twilight!" she exclaimed as she climbed in. "Guess what we did today?" I smiled, catching her eye in the rearview mirror. "What did you do, sweetheart?" "We learned about families!" Sara announced proudly. "And I told everyone about my new pony mom!" I nearly choked, coughing in surprise. Twilight, I noticed, seemed touched by Sara's words. I tried to keep my voice neutral as I asked, "Oh? And what did your teacher say about that?" Sara giggled, oblivious to my discomfort. "She thought I was using my 'magination. But I told her it was real! Can Twilight come for show and tell? Please?" Twilight and I exchanged a look. I could see the mixture of joy and uncertainty in her eyes, mirroring my own feelings. "We'll... have to think about that, honey," I managed to say. "Okay!" Sara said cheerfully, already moving on to her next thought. "Twilight, can you do magic to make my vegetables taste like candy?" Twilight laughed, and I felt a warmth spread through me at the sound. "I'm afraid that's not how my magic works, Sara. But maybe we can find a way to make vegetables fun without magic." "Aww," Sara pouted, but then brightened. "Can you at least make my homework disappear?" I couldn't help but snort at that. "Nice try, kiddo. How about we all work on your homework together after dinner? You want to be as smart as Twilight, right?" "Okay," Sara agreed, then turned back to Twilight. "But can you read me a bedtime story with magic pictures?" Twilight smiled, her eyes twinkling. "That, I think I can manage." As we drove home, listening to Sara chatter about her day, I found myself stealing glances at Twilight. The way she listened intently to Sara, the gentle smile on her face... it all felt so right. A sense of completeness washed over me, something I hadn't felt since losing my wife. This, I realized, was what family felt like. And despite the complications, the cultural differences, and the uncertain future, I couldn't wait to see where this new chapter of our lives would lead us. Tonight though… tonight was going to be something… * * * Author's Note I write commissions!. At 5 dollars per 1,000 words, I'm one of the cheaper writers on the site. If you have a story idea, E, T or M, please DM me and we'll work something out. //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 11 - An Arresting Development //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 11 - An Arresting Development Tim The drive home from Pipeline Express was quiet, a stark contrast to the emotional rollercoaster we'd been on all day. Twilight sat beside me, her eyes fixed on the passing scenery, while Sara continued to talk about her day. I was paying attention, but just barely. The events at work - from our heated conversation in the morning to the newest near-disaster with the trailer recycling - felt like a lifetime ago. As we pulled into the driveway, I couldn't help but steal a glance at Twilight. Her lavender coat still showed signs of the day's strain, but there was a newfound determination in her eyes. I knew we had a lot to discuss once Sara was in bed. "Home sweet home," I said, trying to inject some lightness into my voice. "Sara, sweetie, we're here." Sara smiled, happy to be home. "Can we have pizza for dinner, Daddy?" I chuckled, grateful for the normalcy of her request. "Sure thing, kiddo. How about you go inside and pick out a movie while I order?" As Sara scampered into the house, Twilight and I exchanged a look. There was so much unspoken between us - the weight of our morning conversation, the intensity of our feelings, and the looming conversation we needed to have. "Tim," Twilight began, her voice soft. "About tonight..." I held up a hand, gently cutting her off. "Let's get through dinner first, okay? We've got all night to talk. And to do more, sweetheart.” She nodded, a mix of relief and anticipation crossing her face. "You're right. One step at a time." As we walked into the house, I couldn't shake the feeling that tonight would change everything. For better or worse, we were at a crossroads, and the path we chose would define our relationship moving forward. * * * Twilight The smell of pizza filled the air as we settled into our evening routine. Sara, full of energy from her lack of play at the daycare, bounced excitedly on the couch as she scrolled through movie options. I watched Tim move around the kitchen, his movements betraying a nervous energy that mirrored my own. My mind wandered to the letters from Celestia and Luna, their warnings about falling too deeply in love warring with Cadance's encouragement. Then there was my father's threat, and my mother's enthusiasm for grandfoals. And then the complete reversal on the limited courting permission and foals from Princess Celestia complete with the titles, appointments, and proof of marriage felt overwhelming. I never knew that my mom was a force of nature, but the proof was in the paperwork. It was a good feeling though. Despite the ups and downs, in the end we are recognized as married in Equestria with all the permissions to have foals. At least it felt like I’d be able to take Tim back to Equestria with me when the time came. "Twilight?" Tim's voice broke through my reverie. "Pizza's here. You okay?" I nodded, forcing a smile. "Just lost in thought. It's been quite a day." Tim's eyes softened with understanding. "That it has. Come on, let's eat before it gets cold." As we gathered around the coffee table, Sara between us, I couldn't help but feel a sense of belonging. This felt right, like family. But doubt nagged at me - was I moving too fast? Was I ready for this level of commitment? Celestia declaring us married was fast even for me. Sara's voice cut through my thoughts. "Can we watch 'Frozen' again?" Tim groaned good-naturedly. "Again? Don't you want to try something new?" I giggled, grateful for the distraction. "Oh, come on, Tim. Let it go." He shot me a playful glare. "Et tu, Twilight?" As the movie started and Sara sang along, I found myself sneaking glances at Tim. The way he laughed at the silly parts, how he absently stroked Sara's hair - it all made my heart swell. I knew then that whatever came next, whatever challenges we faced, I wanted to face them with him. During quiet moments, I noticed that he was reading the paperwork that Celestia had sent us, and I guess it made sense for him to want to understand the new expectations for him. The evening passed in a blur of animation, laughter, and stolen glances. Before I knew it, the pizza was gone and Tim was tucking Sara into bed, leaving us alone with the weight of our impending conversation. As Tim rejoined me on the couch, I took a deep breath. This was it - the moment of truth. Whatever happened next would shape our future, and I was both terrified and exhilarated by the possibilities. "So," Tim began, his voice low and serious. "I believe we have some things to discuss..." I agreed and sat down. Just as Tim and I settled in for our conversation, a sharp knock at the door startled us both. Tim rose, his brow furrowed with concern. I followed, my heart racing with apprehension. As Tim opened the door, I saw a stern-faced woman standing there, a thick folder tucked under her arm. Recognition flickered across Tim's face, followed quickly by dread. "Ms. Hartley," Tim said, his voice tight. "What brings you here so late?" The woman - clearly the landlord Tim had mentioned before - pushed past him into the living room. Her eyes narrowed when she saw me. "I see the rumors are true," she said coldly. "You've got yourself an Equestrian subtenant. Against the terms of your lease, I might add." I stepped forward, determined to defend our situation. "Ma'am, I can assure you-" She cut me off with a wave of her hand. "Save it. I'm not here about you, pony. I'm here about this." She slapped the folder down on the coffee table. Tim picked it up, his face paling as he read. "Thirty days? But we had an agreement-" "That was before you fixed up this place," Ms. Hartley sneered. "Funny how you suddenly found the money for all those repairs. Now you've got 30 days to pay off the trailer in full, or you're out." I felt a surge of anger. This was my fault - my magic had improved Tim's home far better than it had been when he first moved in 4 years ago, and now it was being used against him. I summoned the paperwork Celestia had sent, levitating it before Ms. Hartley's startled face. "I am not a subtenant. I believe you'll find," I said, my voice steady despite my racing heart, "that as an official ambassador of Equestria and Tim's legal wife, we have certain protections. Including against unfair eviction." Ms. Hartley sputtered, her eyes darting between the floating documents and me. "This- this can't be legal!" "I assure you, it is," I replied, allowing a hint of ‘Countess Twilight’ to enter my voice. I had never wielded noble authority before, but I had seen it done countless times in Celestia’s court. It seemed to come naturally to me. "Now, I suggest we discuss this like reasonable adults. Perhaps over tea?" As Ms. Hartley reluctantly sat down, looking thoroughly wrong-footed, I caught Tim's eye. He gave me a small, grateful smile. Whatever challenges lay ahead, we'd face them together. * * * Tim I watched in awe as Twilight effortlessly took control of the situation. Her transformation from my shy, bookish roommate to a confident, regal figure was stunning. As Ms. Hartley sank into the armchair, still looking shell-shocked, I found myself falling even deeper for Twilight. "I'll, uh, go make that tea," I said, needing a moment to collect myself. In the kitchen, I leaned against the counter, taking deep breaths. The threat of eviction had sent a jolt of panic through me - memories of struggling to keep a roof over Sara's head after my wife died came flooding back. But Twilight's intervention had changed everything. As I waited for the kettle to boil, I could hear Twilight's calm, measured voice explaining our situation to Ms. Hartley. The occasional gasp or exclamation from the landlord told me it wasn't going smoothly, but Twilight seemed to have it under control. I returned with a tray of tea, setting it down on the coffee table. Ms. Hartley was staring at Twilight, her mouth slightly agape. "So you're telling me," she said slowly, "that not only are you two legally married, but you're also some kind of... pony nobility?" Twilight nodded, a small smile playing on her lips. "Countess of Ponyville, to be precise. And Tim here is the Military Governor of Ponyville, due to his Earth military experience and his recent appointment as a Knight of Equestria." I nearly choked on my tea. "I'm what now? I don’t remember seeing that in the paperwork I read." Twilight shot me an apologetic look. "Sorry, I didn't have a chance to tell you earlier. Princess Celestia thought it would help with our... diplomatic status." Ms. Hartley looked between us, her earlier bravado completely deflated. "I... I see. Well, this certainly changes things." I set down my cup, fixing her with a steady gaze. "Ms. Hartley, I've always been a good tenant. I've never missed a payment, even when times were tough. All we're asking for is a fair chance to make this work." She sighed, rubbing her temples. "Fine. I'll need to review these documents with my lawyer, but... for now, consider the eviction notice suspended. It would still be in your best interest to pay the trailer off early, if you can. If my lawyer tells me that I can proceed, paying the place off in full is the only way to avoid eviction." As she gathered her things to leave, I felt a wave of relief wash over me. Once the door closed behind her, I turned to Twilight, pulling her into a tight embrace. "You handled that better than I could have," I whispered into her mane. "Thank you." Twilight nuzzled into my chest, her voice muffled. "We're in this together, remember? Besides, I think I rather like being a Countess." I chuckled, pulling back to look into her eyes. "It looks like we’re going to have to pay this place off early after all, but I’d rather not dip into Sara’s college fund to do it. Do you think all the trailers you’ve fixed will pay our place off?” Twilight nodded. “Maybe not with the first check, but certainly within 3 checks. It’ll take her a while to get a lawyer to review the paperwork and I get my first check next Friday. We might have to work Saturday and Sunday to squeeze in a few more trailer repairs.” I smiled at her dedication. “Well, Your Ladyship, shall we get back to that conversation we were about to have?" Twilight's eyes sparkled with a mix of mischief and desire. "Actually, I was thinking we might... skip the talking for now." My breath caught in my throat. "Are you sure?" She nodded, rising up on her hind legs to press her lips against mine. As I melted into the kiss, I knew that whatever challenges lay ahead, we'd face them together - as equals, as spouses, as family. * * * Tim As the heat of our kiss faded, reality began to set in. I pulled back slightly, looking into Twilight's eyes. "Twilight, before we go any further, we need to talk about all this. Countess? Military Governor? That's a lot to process." She nodded, her ears drooping slightly. "You're right. I'm sorry I didn't tell you sooner. It's been a whirlwind." We settled back on the couch, our bodies still close. I took a deep breath. "Okay, let's start from the beginning. What exactly did Princess Celestia's letter say?" Twilight's horn glowed as she summoned the documents. "Well, essentially, she's made our marriage official in Equestria. She appointed me as Countess of Ponyville and you as its Military Governor. It's mostly ceremonial, but it gives us diplomatic status here on Earth." I ran a hand through my hair, trying to wrap my head around it all. "And what does that mean for us? For Sara?" "It means we're protected," Twilight explained. "We have certain rights and immunities. But it also means responsibilities. We're representing Equestria now, in a way. Sara, by marriage and as the oldest child of our blended family, would be Second Countess of Ponyville when she grows up, unless she doesn’t want the responsibility, in which case the title will pass to our next foal." I nodded slowly, thinking it over. "I see. And... what about us? This marriage... is it just on paper, or...?" Twilight's cheeks flushed. "That's up to us, Tim. I... I want it to be real. But only if you do too." I cupped her face gently, my heart pounding. "Twilight, I-" Suddenly, a soft whimper came from Sara's room. We both froze, listening. "Daddy?" Sara's voice called out, sounding scared. I sighed, offering Twilight an apologetic smile. "Hold that thought. Duty calls." As I went to comfort Sara, I couldn't help but think about how our lives had changed so drastically in such a short time. Countess, Governor, married... it was a lot. But looking at Twilight, seeing the love and concern in her eyes as she watched me with Sara, I knew we'd figure it out together. * * * Twilight As Tim went to comfort Sara, I found myself alone with my thoughts. The weight of our new titles and responsibilities settled over me like a heavy cloak. I'd spent my life studying friendship and magic, but politics and diplomacy? This was new territory. I levitated Princess Celestia's letter once more, re-reading the words that had changed everything. Countess of Ponyville. It sounded strange, almost comical. And Tim, a Military Governor? The absurdity of it all nearly made me laugh. There hadn’t been a Military Governor of a small town in over 1,000 years. But beneath the titles lay something more profound - a commitment. To each other, to Sara, to two worlds now inexorably linked. I thought of my friends back in Equestria. What would they think of all this? Rarity would be ecstatic about the noble title, no doubt. Applejack would probably tell me to keep my hooves on the ground. Rainbow Dash might be worried that me having a human husband made me cooler than her. And Pinkie Pie... well, she'd throw a party, of course. The sound of Tim's gentle voice drifted from Sara's room, soothing her back to sleep. My heart swelled with affection. This wasn't how I'd imagined finding love, but now I couldn't picture my life any other way. As Tim returned, his face soft with paternal care, I made a decision. Whatever challenges lay ahead - cultural differences, diplomatic responsibilities, or just the day-to-day struggles of family life - we'd face them together. "Is she okay?" I asked as Tim settled back beside me. He nodded, a tired smile on his face. "Just a bad dream. She's asleep again now." I leaned against him, drawing comfort from his warmth. "Tim, about what I said earlier... about wanting this marriage to be real..." He turned to face me, his eyes serious. "I want that too, Twilight. But we need to be sure. This isn't just about us anymore. We've got Sara to think about, and apparently two worlds watching us now." I nodded, understanding the gravity of our situation. "You're right. But I think... I think we can do this. Together." Tim's smile widened, and he leaned in, pressing his forehead against mine. "Together," he agreed. As we sat there, the quiet of the night settling around us, I felt a sense of peace I hadn't known in a long time. Tomorrow would bring new challenges, new adjustments to our sudden elevation in status. But for now, in this moment, everything felt right. "So," Tim said, breaking the comfortable silence. "Countess Twilight Sparkle. Should I bow when addressing you now?" I couldn't help but giggle, playfully swatting at him with my hoof. "Only if you want me to order you around, Military Governor." Tim’s eyebrows raised. “In military situations, the Military Governor would be ordering around the civilians, my lady.” As our laughter filled the room, I knew that whatever came next, we'd face it with humor, love, and understanding. Our story was just beginning, and I couldn't wait to see where it would lead us. * * * Tim I didn’t want anything more than I wanted Twilight in this moment. I leaned in for another kiss, and she stood on her hind legs again to meet me halfway. My hands snaked out to caress her small, yet ample teats and she moaned through the kiss. The kiss ended only to come up for air and I leaned down further to murmur into her ears. “Let’s go to the master bedroom. At least the door locks.” Nodding in agreement, Twilight turned to go deeper into the house when there was yet another loud knock on the door. I cursed loudly. “For fucks sake. Can’t a man consummate his marriage?” Crossing the room seemed like it was taking too long, but I knew I had to get this over with. I stood there, gripping the doorknob, my frustration mounting. "Who the hell is it now?" I muttered under my breath. Twilight shot me a sympathetic glance, her own exasperation evident. The knock came again, louder this time, with a sense of urgency that suggested this wasn’t something that could be ignored. Sighing heavily, I opened the door, already expecting the worst. Standing in the dim porch light was a woman, her long brown hair pulled into a no-nonsense bun. She wore a neat blazer, holding a clipboard in one hand. My eyes widened as recognition struck me like a brick to the face. Christina. My heart dropped into my stomach. Christina Hartwell. My ex-girlfriend from what seemed like a lifetime ago. A flurry of memories rushed in - late nights, tangled sheets, and fights that always seemed to end in passion and bitterness. But there was something different about her now. The determined glint in her eye wasn’t just from seeing me again. This wasn’t the first time in the last year she had showed up at my doorstep, but this time seemed even more ominous. “Tim,” she said, her voice professional but with an edge that I recognized all too well, she flashed her ID which wasn’t completely necessary but was part of the job. “Child Protective Services. We’ve received a report about some... concerning activity here.” Her eyes flicked over my shoulder and into the house. I swallowed, my throat dry. “Concerning? Like what?” Christina's lips pressed into a thin line. “There’s been a report that you might have... a pony living with you.” I blinked, my mind stalling. This? Really? I glanced back toward Twilight, who had frozen in the living room, her eyes wide with both shock and apprehension. “There’s more to it than you’ve been told…” I started, but Christina cut me off. “There always is,” she said, her tone both familiar and distant. “But I have to do my job, Tim. I’m here to investigate, and whether you like it or not, this involves Sara’s welfare.” My hands balled into fists at my sides. “Sara? This has nothing to do with Sara. She’s safe, happy, and healthy - this is ridiculous, Christina.” Christina’s eyes softened for a moment, but her professionalism didn’t waver. “Let me in, Tim. Let’s talk about this calmly. The sooner we get through this, the sooner I can leave.” I hesitated, glancing back at Twilight, who was slowly stepping forward, trying to hide her nerves behind a mask of calm. "Tim... let her in," Twilight murmured, her voice low but filled with determination. Reluctantly, I stepped aside. “Fine. But this is bullshit.” Christina stepped inside, her eyes scanning the space. The tension in the air was palpable. “I need to speak with you and Twilight... separately,” she said, her voice cool and detached. “Sara is asleep?” I nodded. “Yeah. She’s in bed.” Christina glanced around once more before nodding to Twilight. “Twilight, right?” Her tone was polite but guarded. “Can we have a word?” Twilight, swallowing her nerves, gave a small nod and stepped toward the kitchen with Christina. I could hear their hushed voices but couldn’t make out what was being said. My hands clenched and unclenched as I fought to maintain calm. I had known Christina for years. I knew how persistent she could be when she was on a mission. But this? Investigating me for some absurd accusation about living with or dating a pony? If it weren't so serious, I might have laughed at the absurdity of it all. Then it hit me, it had to have been Sara’s teacher. Sara did say she had a pony mom now. Minutes passed like hours before Christina finally emerged from the kitchen, Twilight following close behind. Twilight's expression was unreadable, but she seemed calmer, more in control. Christina cleared her throat. “I’ve spoken with Twilight, and I’ll need to conduct a quick look around the house. After that, Tim, I’ll need to speak with you.” I scowled but gestured to the house. “Knock yourself out.” As Christina moved through the house, Twilight approached me, her voice a soft whisper. “She’s... thorough. But I think it’s going okay. She’s just doing her job.” My jaw clenched. “Her job or not, this is a fucking invasion.” “I know,” Twilight said, gently placing a hoof on his arm. “But we have nothing to hide.” I exhaled slowly, leaning into her touch. I wasn’t sure how we’d gotten here, but if there was one thing I knew, it was that they would get through it - together. Christina returned after what felt like an eternity, her face a mask of professional detachment. “Everything seems in order, in fact… the trailer is nicer now than the last time I was here,” she said, glancing between the two of them. “But Tim, we still need to talk.” I nodded, his frustration simmering just below the surface. “Fine. Let’s get this over with.” Christina sighed, and for a moment, the professional mask slipped. There was a flicker of something - regret, perhaps? - before she continued. “Look, Tim... I don’t want to be here any more than you want me here. But the report came in, and I had to follow up.” My brow furrowed. “Bullshit. This isn’t the first time you’ve showed up since my wife died. Report from who?” Christina’s lips tightened. “I can’t disclose that.” Tim snorted. “That’s also bullshit. In Texas, I have the legal right to know my accuser and I’ll file a request with the court to get the information if I have to. There will be legal repercussions to this harassment, and you can write that in your report if you want to. I’m tired of this nonsense and it’s going to stop one way or another.” Christina sighed, a little upset about the nature of the confrontation. “What matters is, I didn’t find anything concerning about Sara’s safety. However... this situation is unusual. I’m going to have to file a report, but for now, there won’t be any further action unless something else comes up.” I released a breath I didn’t realize I’d been holding. “Thank you,” I muttered, though it felt bitter in my mouth. Christina hesitated for a moment, then said, “Take care of yourself, Tim. And Sara.” With that, she turned and left, the door closing behind her with a soft click. The tension that had filled the house slowly began to dissipate, leaving behind a heavy silence. Twilight was the first to speak. “That was... intense.” I ran a hand through my hair, exhaling deeply. “Yeah. And the worst part? It had to be Christina.” Twilight frowned. “You know her well, don’t you?” “Yeah,” I said, his voice quieter now. “She’s my ex.” Twilight’s eyes widened slightly. “Oh... I see.” “You once said that you’d be willing to tolerate my ex’s, but Christina is hard to swallow,” I said, shaking my head. “My relationship with her is long over. But still... this is going to be a fucking mess, Twilight.” Twilight leaned against him, her warmth grounding him in the moment. “Whatever happens, we’ll handle it. Together.” I nodded, pulling her closer. “Yeah... together.” * * * Twilight Christina. His ex-girlfriend. A CPS agent investigating him for dating a pony. The sheer absurdity of it made my stomach churn. But this wasn’t about the strangeness of the situation - it was about the fact that this woman, who clearly still had feelings for Tim, was standing between us and our future, not to mention our family. I sat beside him, the soft cushion sinking slightly under my weight. Tim rubbed his face with both hands, like he was trying to scrub the frustration away. “So,” I began cautiously, “You and Christina... you dated?” Tim let out a long, deep sigh. “Yeah. We were together in high school. First real relationship for both of us.” He leaned his head back, staring at the ceiling like he was reliving some far-off memory. “We had plans, you know? Typical young love. Thought we’d be together forever.” I nodded slowly, understanding the weight behind his words. “What happened?” Tim sat up, resting his elbows on his knees, his hands clasped tightly. “I enlisted in the Army right after graduation. She didn’t want a long-distance relationship, and I didn’t blame her. I was going to be gone for four years, maybe longer. So, we broke up before I left. It was her idea.” I could hear the lingering sadness in his voice, but also the acceptance. It wasn’t the kind of heartbreak that leaves you shattered - it was the kind that leaves a bruise you learn to live with. “When I came home four years later,” he continued, his voice quieter now, “I wasn’t alone. I had already met Sara’s mom overseas on the base we were stationed at, and by the time I got back, we were married. Christina... well, she didn’t take it well. I guess she thought there was a chance we’d reconnect, pick things back up. I never agreed to wait for her, and she never agreed to wait for me. In fact, I’m shocked that she never got married… as I’m sure she had lots of hook-ups while I was gone.” I frowned, piecing it all together. “So, when you came back married...” “She was pissed,” Tim finished, his voice tinged with frustration. “She never said it directly, but it was clear. She felt like I’d betrayed her by moving on, even though we hadn’t been together in years. She tried to rekindle the relationship again after my wife died and I told her I needed time to heal. I wasn’t ready to get married again, not immediately after my wife’s death. It’s been a little over a year… and now, seeing me with you...” He trailed off, shaking his head. I winced, feeling the sting of the situation. Christina wasn’t just doing her job. This was personal. She was dragging her old feelings into an investigation about whether dating a pony was harmful to a child. It was ridiculous. “And now she’s investigating you because of me,” I said softly, the weight of guilt settling on my chest. Tim shook his head, turning to me with a soft look in his eyes. “No. This isn’t your fault, Twilight. She would have found something to try to pin on me. This is the fourth time in a year she’s done this. She seems to feel that a man can’t be trusted raise a daughter alone. That Sara would never be safe in a single man’s care. Christina is doing this because of her own baggage. But we’re not going to let her - or anyone else - tear us apart.” I frowned. “Tim… you’re the best father I’ve ever seen. What do you mean by a single man can’t be trusted to raise a daughter alone? There are lots of single fathers in Equestria…” He reached out and allowed his hand to drift in between my legs, caressing my tight slit, and my breath hitched, his meaning now clear. I knew that he would never do that to Sara and the fact that Christina would even consider the possibly that he would or could made my blood boil. I swallowed, angry. “How? How could she even want to be with you if she thought you’d be capable of doing that to Sara? So... what do we do now?” Tim leaned back into the couch, a small, almost relieved smile crossing his face. “She’s crazy… Here’s the thing, Twilight. You’re the Equestrian Ambassador of Houston now, officially. That comes with certain protections - diplomatic protections. As your husband and as a dual citizen, by Equestrian law, I’m covered too. We’ve got diplomatic immunity.” My eyes widened as the realization settled in. “So, that means...?” Tim nodded, his smile growing. “That means as long as we file the right paperwork with the Federal Bureau of Equestrian Affairs, Christina can’t touch us. Neither can CPS. Neither can any law enforcement agency. We’re under Equestrian law, not theirs, Madam Ambassador.” I blinked, the gears in my head turning. Diplomatic immunity. I’d been so focused on the personal side of things, I hadn’t even considered the legal ramifications of our situation. “So, the Equestrian Accords... you think they really protect us in this situation?” “I certainly hope so, or at least you said so yourself when we first really talked about becoming a couple.” Tim confirmed, his voice steady and confident now. “Those Accords were set up to deal with stuff like this. Equestrian citizens and their partners, even human partners, get equal rights while on Earth. Dating or being married to a pony falls under that. We’re protected. I read the entire treaty while Sara was watching the movie earlier. I didn’t know about our titles until you told the landlord.” I let out a breath I hadn’t realized I was holding. The tension that had coiled in my chest loosened, replaced by a sense of relief. “That’s... that’s amazing, Tim. I had completely forgotten about that in the heat and tension of the moment.” Tim chuckled softly. “We just have to get the paperwork in order. Once it’s filed, Christina can knock on that door all she wants, but there’s not a damn thing she can do. Of course, we need to get it done before she tries to move forward with anything.” A grin spread across my face as the weight of the situation lifted. We weren’t just waiting for things to happen to us. We had power here, and we could use it to protect ourselves. “So, what do we need to do next?” Tim smirked, the tension in his shoulders finally relaxing. “First, we get that paperwork filed with the Federal Bureau of Equestrian Affairs. I would venture to say that we should do that literally first thing tomorrow morning. Once that’s done, we’re golden. Christina can huff and puff all she wants, but she won’t have any jurisdiction over us.” I leaned against him, feeling a sense of warmth and comfort settle in. “Then let’s do it. It’s time to enforce the treaty.” Tim wrapped an arm around me, his voice soft but filled with determination. “Damn right. We’re not letting anyone get between us, Twilight. Not Christina, not CPS. Nobody.” I rested my head on his shoulder, feeling the steady beat of his heart beneath my ear. “We’ll protect our family,” I murmured, my voice resolute. “Together,” Tim whispered back, pulling me closer. * * * Tim The close moment faded, and I sat there, staring at the door long after Christina had left, the weight of everything crashing down on me. The landlord, the CPS visit, Christina dredging up the past - it had all spiraled out of control so quickly. The evening that was supposed to be ours, where I could finally be with Twilight without interruptions, had been shattered by drama and memories I’d rather forget. I leaned back into the couch, letting out a long breath, feeling the tension in my shoulders. My body was exhausted, my mind was running on fumes, and my heart... well, it was torn between what I wanted and what I felt capable of right now. Twilight was next to me, silent, probably feeling the weight of it all too. I glanced over at her, seeing the flicker of worry in her eyes, the way her ears drooped just a little. She was trying to hold it together, just like I was, and for some reason, that made me feel even worse. I rubbed my hands over my face, trying to clear my thoughts. “Twilight...” My voice was hoarse, the words barely above a whisper. “I’m sorry.” Her eyes widened slightly, her concern deepening. “Sorry? What for?” I looked at her, feeling the guilt welling up inside me. “For tonight. For... everything. I wanted this evening to be special, for us to finally have a moment. We were this close to... making love for the first time.” I paused, letting the disappointment sink in. “But I’m not sure I’m in the mood anymore.” Twilight’s expression softened, and she shifted closer, her hoof resting gently on my arm. “Tim, you don’t have to apologize. Tonight’s been... intense. No one could blame you for feeling the way you do.” I let out a bitter chuckle. “It’s just... I wanted everything to be perfect. For us. And now it feels like everything’s gone to shit.” Twilight leaned her head against my shoulder, her warmth grounding me. “Things don’t always go the way we plan. But that doesn’t mean everything’s ruined.” Her voice was soft, soothing in a way that made me feel like maybe it wasn’t as bad as I thought. “We don’t have to rush anything. There’s no pressure, Tim. Not from me. There’s no time limit to consummate the marriage.” I swallowed hard, feeling the lump in my throat start to ease. “I know, Twilight. It’s just... I’ve been thinking about this for a few days. I’ve wanted to be with you. Like, really be with you. But tonight...” Her eyes met mine, and there was nothing but understanding in them. “Tonight wasn’t what we expected. But it doesn’t change how I feel about you, or how much I want this, too. We’ll get there, Tim. When the time is right.” I sighed, the tension in my chest starting to ease as her words sank in. She was right, of course. We didn’t need to rush. What we had was special, and it would still be special whether it happened tonight, tomorrow, or whenever we both felt ready. “I’m lucky to have you,” I muttered, wrapping an arm around her and pulling her closer. “I don’t know how you stay so calm through all this.” Twilight smiled, nuzzling into my side. “I’m not always calm. But being with you... it helps.” I chuckled softly, kissing the top of her head. “You’re wonderful, you know that?” She giggled; her breath warm against my skin. “I try.” We sat there in silence for a while, just holding each other, letting the stress of the night melt away. It wasn’t the evening I had planned, but in a strange way, it was still perfect. Being with Twilight, just like this, reminded me that what we had was more than just physical. It was a connection that reminded me of my late wife. I had to hope that she would approve of this. “I’ll be ready soon,” I said after a while, my voice low. “But for now, maybe we just... relax?” Twilight looked up at me, her eyes soft and filled with affection. “That sounds perfect.” We curled up together on the couch, the weight of the day finally lifting as we let go of the expectations and just enjoyed the simple comfort of being close. I didn’t need anything more tonight than this - holding her, feeling her warmth, knowing that whatever happened, we’d face it together. Tomorrow would bring new challenges, more paperwork, and maybe another unexpected knock on the door. But for tonight, for this moment, everything was exactly as it should be. * * * Author's Note I write commissions!. At 5 dollars per 1,000 words, I'm one of the cheaper writers on the site. If you have a story idea, E, T or M, please DM me and we'll work something out. //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 12 - Diplomatic Maneuvers //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 12 - Diplomatic Maneuvers Tim The morning sun streamed through the kitchen window as I hurriedly packed Sara's lunch. Twilight was helping Sara tie her shoes, their quiet giggles a stark contrast to the tension of the previous night. Despite the looming tasks ahead, I couldn't help but smile at the domestic scene. "Alright, munchkin," I called out, zipping up the lunch bag. "Time to hit the road. We don't want to be late for school." Sara bounced up; her backpack nearly as big as she was. "Can Twilight come too? Please, Daddy?" I exchanged a quick glance with Twilight, who nodded with a smile. "You know what? That's a great idea. Twilight can meet your teacher." Sara's eyes lit up with excitement as she cheered, "Yay! Now everyone will believe me!" As we piled into the car, I couldn't help but feel a mix of pride and nervousness. This would be Twilight's first official appearance as part of our family, and as an Equestrian diplomat. I fired off a quick text to Melvin: "Running late today. Twilight and I have some urgent business to take care of. Will explain later. Might not make it in until after lunch." The drive to school was filled with Sara's excited chatter, praising the chance to be believed. As we pulled into the parking lot, I took a deep breath, steeling myself for what was to come. "Ready for this?" I asked Twilight as we got out of the car. She nodded, her expression a mix of determination and excitement. "Let's do it." We walked into the school, Sara proudly leading the way to her classroom. Heads turned as we passed, whispers and wide-eyed stares following in our wake. Twilight held her head high, every bit the diplomat she now was. As we approached Sara's classroom, her teacher, Ms. Johnson, stepped out into the hallway. Her eyes widened in shock as she saw Twilight. "Mr. Tim…" she began, her voice tight with forced politeness, "I see you've brought a... guest." I nodded, putting on my most charming smile. "Ms. Johnson, I'd like you to meet Twilight Sparkle. She's my wife and Sara's new mother. We thought it was important for you to meet her officially." Ms. Johnson's mouth opened and closed a few times, clearly at a loss for words. Twilight stepped forward, extending a hoof in greeting. "It's a pleasure to meet you, Ms. Johnson," Twilight said warmly. "I've heard so much about you from Sara. I want you to know that Tim and I are committed to Sara's education and well-being. If you have any questions or concerns, please don't hesitate to ask." As Ms. Johnson hesitantly shook Twilight's hoof, I could see the wheels turning in her head. This wasn't just some unusual family arrangement – this was something far more official than she had anticipated. "I... see," Ms. Johnson finally managed. "Well, this is certainly... unexpected. Perhaps we should schedule a parent-teacher conference to discuss Sara's... unique family situation?" I nodded, keeping my tone light but firm. "That sounds like a great idea. We'll be in touch to set that up. For now, though, we need to get going. We have some important business at the Bureau of Equestrian Affairs to take care of. Twilight was just appointed as the Equestrian Ambassador to Houston… so, we need to sort out the details of our diplomatic immunity." At the mention of the official federal agency, Ms. Johnson's eyebrows shot up. It was clear she was beginning to realize the gravity of the situation. From her reaction, I also knew that it was her that had called CPS. I don’t take threats to my family lightly. We said our goodbyes to Sara, who happily trotted into her classroom, completely oblivious to the tension around her. As Twilight and I walked back to the car, I couldn't help but feel a sense of satisfaction. We'd made our presence known, and hopefully, this would put an end to any misguided reports to Child Protective Services. As we drove away from the school, heading towards the Bureau of Equestrian Affairs, I reached over and squeezed Twilight's hoof. "You were amazing in there," I said softly. Twilight smiled, a mix of pride and determination in her eyes. "This is just the beginning, Tim. We've got a lot more to do today." I nodded, feeling a surge of confidence. Whatever challenges lay ahead, we'd face them together – as a family, and as diplomats. * * * Twilight The bustling streets of Houston stretched before us, a sea of cars and concrete that still felt alien to me. Tim navigated the traffic with practiced ease, but I could sense the tension in his shoulders as we inched forward. "Is it always this congested?" I asked, watching as a particularly aggressive driver cut across three lanes. Tim chuckled, though it sounded a bit strained. "Welcome to Houston rush hour. Makes Canterlot during the Summer Sun Celebration look peaceful, as I can only imagine.” As we crawled through the city, my mind raced with all we needed to accomplish. The weight of my new title - Countess of Ponyville and Equestrian Ambassador to Houston - settled on my withers. It wasn't just about us anymore; we were setting precedents for future human-pony relations. Finally, after what felt like hours, Tim pulled into a parking garage near a sleek, modern building. The sign read "Federal Bureau of Equestrian Affairs" in both English and Equestrian. "Here goes nothing… You, okay?" Tim asked, giving my hoof a gentle squeeze. I nodded, taking a deep breath. "With you at my side, I can do anything, my love." As we entered the building, I couldn't help but feel a swell of pride. The lobby was decorated with a blend of human and Equestrian art, a visual representation of our two worlds coming together. At the reception desk, a young woman's eyes widened as she saw us approach. Despite the importance of the Bureau, it was clear that not many ponies have visited yet. "Good morning," I said, summoning every ounce of diplomatic poise I could muster. "I'm Countess Twilight Sparkle, recently appointed Equestrian Ambassador to Houston. We have some urgent matters to discuss with one of your agents." The receptionist blinked rapidly before scrambling for her phone. Within minutes, we were ushered into a private office where a tall, distinguished-looking man in a crisp suit waited for us. "Countess Sparkle, Sir Tim," he greeted us, extending his hand. "I'm Special Agent Carter. We received word from Princess Celestia about your appointment only yesterday. I must say, this is quite unprecedented." I nodded, my horn glowing as I produced the official documents. "Indeed, it is, Agent Carter. We're here to officially register our status and... discuss a few rather delicate matters." As Agent Carter reviewed the paperwork, his eyebrows rose higher and higher. "This is... quite extraordinary," he murmured. "A human appointed as Military Governor of an Equestrian town? And you two are legally married under Equestrian law?" "That's correct, our marriage is legally binding in Equestria, and I plan to take Twilight as a common-law wife by Texas standards as well so it’s valid on both sides." Tim confirmed. "As to the military appointment, being a Knight is a rare honor and as I understand it… Ponyville is on the edge of the Everfree Forest, which is considered to be one of the most dangerous places in all of Equestria. With my Earth military experience… Princess Celestia must feel safe with me protecting her ponies. However, our statuses notwithstanding, we have another urgent matter to discuss which brings us to our current situation. Twilight? Would you like to explain it?” I took a deep breath before continuing. "There's been a misunderstanding with the local Child Protective Services. They've opened an investigation based on... well, based on our relationship." Agent Carter's expression turned serious. "I see. And given your diplomatic status, you're seeking our intervention?" "Even before our new status… this would have been borderline in violation of our treaty." I said, leaning forward slightly. "We understand this is a sensitive issue. We're not looking to cause any diplomatic incidents… or war, if the treaty was to be broken… We simply want to ensure that our family, and other pony families, are protected under the terms of the Equestrian Accords." Agent Carter nodded thoughtfully. "You're right to bring this to our attention, Countess. This falls squarely within our jurisdiction." He turned to his computer, typing rapidly. "I'm going to contact the local CPS office directly. We'll get this sorted out immediately." As Agent Carter made his calls, I exchanged a relieved glance with Tim. This was going better than we'd hoped. After several minutes of hushed conversation, Agent Carter turned back to us. "Alright, I've spoken with the CPS director. They've agreed to close the investigation immediately. However," he added, his tone cautious, "they've requested a formal meeting to discuss protocols for future cases involving Equestrian citizens. Would you be willing to participate in such a meeting, Countess? It could go a long way in preventing similar misunderstandings in the future." I frowned. “There should be no need. Equestrians have the same rights as humans within the bounds of the treaty. The protocols should be the exact same – only in the case of real suspected abuse. Nothing more and nothing less. Anything else is a violation of the treaty.” Agent Carter gulped, looking very uncomfortable. "I see… I’ll make sure that CPS is aware of this. As it stands… I think you're going to do great things in this role, Countess Sparkle." Tim cleared his throat, catching Agent Carter's attention. "There's one more issue we need to address, if you don't mind." Agent Carter nodded, his expression attentive. "Of course, what else can I help you with?" I glanced at Tim, encouraging him to continue. He took a deep breath before speaking. "Our landlord, Ms. Hartley, she's been... difficult. She tried to evict us shortly after Twilight improved our home with her magic. We believe it's an illegal eviction attempt, possibly motivated by discrimination against our relationship." Agent Carter's brow furrowed. "I see. That's certainly concerning. Can you provide more details?" Tim nodded, explaining the situation in full - how Ms. Hartley had shown up unexpectedly, demanding we pay off the trailer in full or face eviction, despite his previous agreement before our marriage. Agent Carter listened intently, occasionally typing notes into his computer. When Tim finished, the agent leaned back in his chair, a thoughtful expression on his face. "A most concerning situation," he said. "Under the Equestrian Accords, any attempt at discrimination against Equestrian citizens or their immediate family members is strictly prohibited. This includes housing discrimination." I leaned forward, my ears perked with interest. "So, what can we do about it?" Agent Carter smiled reassuringly. "First, I'm going to issue you an official document stating your protected status under the Accords. This should be sufficient to ward off any further eviction attempts. Additionally, I'll have our legal team draft a cease-and-desist letter to Ms. Hartley, reminding her of the legal implications of discriminating against an Equestrian diplomat and her family." Tim's shoulders visibly relaxed. "That's... that's a huge relief. Thank you." "There's more," Agent Carter continued. "If Ms. Hartley persists in her attempts to evict you or discriminates against you in any way, you have the right to file a formal complaint with our office. We can then initiate an investigation and, if necessary, take legal action on your behalf." I nodded, feeling a surge of gratitude. "We appreciate this more than you know, Agent Carter." "It's my pleasure," he replied, already starting to type up the necessary documents. "We take the protection of Equestrian citizens and their families very seriously. You shouldn't have to worry about losing your home simply because of who you are or who you love." Agent Carter began to draft the letters and Tim leaned in close to me, whispering with a mischievous grin, "You know, all this talk of 'diplomatic relations' is giving me ideas for improving our own international affairs later." I blushed but couldn't help giggling. "Tim! Not in front of the agent!" As we left the office a short while later, official documents in hand, I couldn't help but feel a renewed sense of security. We weren't just protected from CPS investigations now - our home, our family's foundation, was secure as well. Tim squeezed my hoof as we walked to the car. "Feeling better about everything now?" he asked softly. I nodded, a smile spreading across my face. "Much better. It's like a weight has been lifted off my withers." Tim wrapped an arm around me as we walked back to the car. "You are amazing in everything that you do, my love," he said softly. I leaned into him, feeling a surge of affection. "We did this together," I replied. "And this is just the beginning." As we drove away from the Federal building, I felt more confident than ever about our future together. We had the law on our side, and more importantly, we had each other. Whatever challenges lay ahead, I knew we were ready to face them head-on. * * * Tim As we left the Federal Bureau of Equestrian Affairs, I couldn't help but feel a mixture of pride and concern. Twilight had handled herself beautifully, asserting her authority with a finesse I'd never seen before. But I also knew that this was just the beginning of our challenges. "Are you okay?" I asked as we got into the car. "That was pretty intense back there." Twilight nodded, a determined glint in her eye. "I'm fine. We did what we came to do. Now, let's get to work and show them what we're really capable of." The drive to Pipeline Express was quieter than usual, both of us lost in our thoughts. As we pulled into the parking lot, I spotted Joe waving us over urgently. "About time you two showed up," he called out, a grin splitting his face. "We've got a surprise for you, magic mare." Twilight and I exchanged glances before following Joe behind the warehouse. As we rounded the corner, my jaw dropped. The entire concrete area of the rear parking lot was covered in pallets of plastic scrap - drums, pails, you name it. It looked like they'd cleared out every bit of recyclable plastic in the place and out of trailers, as needed. Melvin approached us, clipboard in hand. "We figured since you two were running late, we'd get everything ready. This is all the plastic waste we've accumulated over the past few months. Should be about 10 tons total, more or less. Think you can handle it, Twilight?" I saw the spark of challenge in Twilight's eyes and felt a twinge of worry. "Twilight, maybe we should-" But she was already moving forward, her horn beginning to glow. "I've got this, Tim. Stand back, everyone!" Me, Melvin and Joe fell silent as Twilight's magic enveloped the mountain of plastic. The air crackled with energy, and I could see the strain on her face as she worked. Pallets began to disappear, their material flowing towards the dock doors where Joe had our damaged trailers waiting for Twilight’s magic. The warehouse had 24 dock doors, but not every trailer was empty, some had drums in it waiting for orders to be pulled or waiting for unload if me and Twilight didn’t show up that day. One by one, trailers began to repair themselves. Torn metal mended, rust vanished, and paint refreshed. It was a mesmerizing sight, but I couldn't take my eyes off Twilight. Her brow was furrowed in concentration, sweat beading on her forehead. "Five trailers... six... seven..." Joe counted in awe. As the eighth trailer began to repair, I noticed Twilight's legs beginning to shake. By the ninth, her breathing was labored. "Twilight," I called out, taking a step forward. "That's enough. You need to stop!" But she pressed on, her horn glowing even brighter as she tackled the tenth trailer. As the last of the plastic disappeared and the final trailer gleamed like new, Twilight's magic flickered out. I lunged forward, catching her just as her legs gave out. "I've got you," I murmured, cradling her against my chest. "Did I... did I do it?" she asked weakly, her eyes struggling to focus. I nodded, unable to keep the worry from my voice. "You did it. Ten trailers, good as new. But Twilight, you pushed yourself too hard again. I swear I’m going to put you on a leash." Twilight grinned like an idiot. “Just dress me in the harness you have for the car… I’ll let you lead me around by the reins…” I blushed at the provocative image my mind produced but couldn’t find it in me to reply. Melvin and Joe rushed over, concern etched on their faces. "Is she okay?" Melvin asked, already reaching for his phone to call an ambulance. I shook my head. "No ambulance. She just needs rest. This has happened before." As I scooped Twilight into my arms, I couldn't help but feel a mix of awe and frustration. Her power was incredible, but her determination to prove herself was going to get her hurt one of these days. "I'm taking her home," I announced to Melvin and Joe. "She needs to recover. Again." They nodded, still looking shocked by what they'd witnessed. As I carried Twilight to the car, I could hear the excited murmurs of our coworkers, marveling at the newly repaired trailers. Settling Twilight into the passenger seat, I brushed a hoof away from her face. "You never cease to amaze me, you know that? But we need to talk about limits when you're feeling better." She managed a weak smile. "Worth it," she mumbled before her eyes fluttered closed. As I drove us home, my mind raced. We'd achieved so much today - asserting our rights, protecting our family, and now this incredible feat at work. But at what cost? I glanced at Twilight's sleeping form and made a silent promise. We'd figure this out together, finding a balance between her incredible abilities and her well-being. For now, though, she needed rest. And frankly, after the day we'd had, so did I. Tomorrow would bring new challenges, but we'd face them together - as a family, as partners, and as a team bridging two worlds. * * * Twilight The world swam in and out of focus as I drifted between consciousness and sleep. I was vaguely aware of the car stopping, of Tim's gentle voice, and then the higher pitch of Sara's worried tones. "Is Twilight sick again, Daddy?" Sara's voice cut through the fog in my mind, filled with concern that tugged at my heart. I tried to open my eyes, to reassure her, but my body refused to cooperate. I felt Tim's strong arms lift me, heard him murmur reassurances to Sara as the child sat beside me, hugging me with all the love she could provide. "She's just very tired, sweetheart. Remember how Twilight can do amazing magic? Well, sometimes it makes her super sleepy afterwards. She just needs to rest." "But… she'll be okay, right?" Sara's voice wavered, and I wanted nothing more than to hug her back, to tell her everything would be fine. "Of course she will," Tim said, his voice warm and confident. "Twilight's tough. She just needs a good nap, that's all." I felt the car slow to a stop, my foggy mind barely registering the change. Through half-closed eyes, I saw Tim get out of the car. "Sara, stay with Twilight for a minute, okay? I need to take care of something quickly," Tim's voice drifted to me, sounding far away. I heard Sara's small voice pipe up from the backseat. "Okay, Daddy. I'll watch over her." In my semi-conscious state, I was vaguely aware of Tim's figure moving towards a building. Time seemed to blur, and before I knew it, he was back in the car. "It's done," I heard him say softly. "Ms. Hartley won't be bothering us about eviction anymore." I tried to respond, to ask what had happened, but all I could manage was a weak nod before exhaustion pulled me under again. I felt myself being laid on a soft surface - our bed, I assumed - and then everything faded to black again. When I finally clawed my way back to full consciousness, the room was dark, lit only by the soft glow of a bedside lamp. I blinked, trying to orient myself. The clock on the nightstand read 9:30 PM. “Tim?” I called out, my voice hoarse. Almost immediately, the bedroom door opened, and Tim appeared, relief evident on his face. “Hey there, sleeping beauty,” he said softly, sitting on the edge of the bed. “How are you feeling?” I took a moment to assess myself. My head ached dully, and my limbs felt heavy, but overall, I felt much better than I had earlier. “I’m okay,” I said, managing a small smile. “Still a bit tired, but okay. Is Sara...?” “She’s asleep,” Tim assured me. “She was pretty worried about you, though. Took some convincing to get her to go to bed without seeing you first.” Guilt washed over me. “I’m sorry,” I murmured. “I didn’t mean to scare her. Or you.” Tim’s expression softened, but I could see the concern still lingering in his eyes. “Twilight, we need to talk about this. You can’t keep pushing yourself like this. It’s not just about you anymore. We’re a family now, and Sara... she needs you. We both do.” I nodded, feeling a lump form in my throat. “I know. I just... I want to prove myself. To show everyone what I’m capable of.” “You don’t have to prove anything,” Tim said gently, taking my hoof in his hand. “We know how amazing you are. But your health and safety matter more than any number of repaired trailers.” I leaned into his touch, feeling a mix of emotions – gratitude for his understanding, shame for worrying my new family, and a lingering determination to master my abilities in this world. “I’ll be more careful,” I promised. “I’ll work on finding my limits without crossing them. Maybe... maybe we could work on it together?” Tim smiled, leaning in to place a soft kiss on my forehead. “Together. That’s what we do best, right?” I nodded, feeling a warmth spread through me that had nothing to do with magic. “Right. Together.” As Tim helped me sit up, bringing me a glass of water and some food, I couldn’t help but reflect on the day’s events. We’d faced diplomatic challenges, workplace pressures, and now this. But through it all, we were growing stronger as a family. “Tim,” I said as he sat back down beside me, “thank you. For everything. For catching me when I fall – literally and figuratively.” He chuckled, wrapping an arm around me. “Always, Twilight. That’s what partners do.” As we sat there in the quiet of the evening, I knew we still had challenges ahead. Learning to balance my abilities, navigating our unique family situation, and facing whatever diplomatic hurdles came our way. But with Tim by my side, and Sara in our hearts, I felt ready to face anything. Tomorrow would be a new day, a chance to do better, to be better. And I was determined to make the most of it – for myself, for Tim, and for our little filly sleeping just down the hall. * * * Tim As Twilight finished her water, I couldn’t help but study her face. Even exhausted, she was beautiful, her determination shining through despite her fatigue. I felt a mix of emotions – pride at her incredible abilities, worry for her well-being, and a deep, abiding love that seemed to grow stronger with each passing day. “You know,” I began, keeping my tone light, “when I said I wanted to take things slow, this wasn’t exactly what I had in mind.” Twilight looked up at me, confusion flickering across her face. “What do you mean?” I chuckled, gently brushing a strand of her mane away from her face. “Well, between diplomatic showdowns and magical marathons, we haven’t exactly had time for... other activities. You know, the kind that usually come with being newlyweds.” Realization dawned in her eyes, followed quickly by a blush. “Oh! I... I’m sorry, Tim. I didn’t think-” “Hey, no apologies necessary,” I said, holding up a hand. “I’m just saying, maybe next time you decide to push your magical limits, you could save a little energy for your husband? I mean, I know I can’t compete with trailer repair, but I like to think I might have some magic of my own.” Twilight giggled, then winced slightly at the movement. “I’ll keep that in mind. Though I have to say, your kind of magic sounds much more appealing right now.” I leaned in, placing a soft kiss on her lips. “Well, consider it something to look forward to. Once you’re feeling better, of course. I don’t want you passing out on me for the wrong reasons.” She smiled, nuzzling into my chest. “You’re not mad at me, are you? For overdoing it again?” I sighed, wrapping my arms around her. “Mad? No. Worried? Absolutely. But I’m starting to think that’s just part of the package deal with you, Countess Sparkle. Just... try to take it easy for a while, okay? I’d like to keep my wife in one piece.” “I promise,” she murmured, her eyes already starting to droop again. As I helped her settle back into bed, I couldn’t help but marvel at the turn my life had taken. A few weeks ago, I was a single dad just trying to get by. Now, I was married to a magical pony countess who could reshape matter with her mind. Life was certainly never going to be boring. “Get some rest,” I whispered, placing one last kiss on her forehead. “We’ve got a lifetime ahead of us for everything else.” As I turned off the light and headed out of the room, I made a mental note to stock up on energy drinks and maybe look into some magical safety gear. Something told me I was going to need all the help I could get to keep up with my incredible, exhausting, wonderful wife. * * * Twilight The next four days passed in a blur of activity and careful magical management. After my overexertion, Tim and I had come to an agreement: I would limit myself to recycling one trailer and a controlled amount of damaged drums each day. It was a compromise that allowed me to continue contributing significantly while keeping my magical reserves in check. Tuesday: I approached the day’s work with renewed focus. One trailer and a pallet of damaged drums disappeared under my magic, transforming into the raw material needed to repair ten trailers. The strain was there, but manageable. Tim’s proud smile at the end of the day was worth every ounce of effort. Wednesday: The routine started to feel natural. Another trailer, more drums, ten more repaired trailers gleaming in the yard. Melvin’s enthusiastic thumbs-up boosted my confidence. We were making a real difference. Thursday: As I worked my magic, I overheard Joe explaining to a visitor how much money the company was saving thanks to our recycling program. The sense of accomplishment was palpable. Friday: By the time I finished the last trailer of the week, there was a small crowd gathered to watch. The transformation never seemed to get old for our coworkers. As the final trailer shone like new, a cheer went up from the onlookers. As we were preparing to leave for the day, Joe called us into his office, a broad grin on his face. “Twilight, Tim,” he began, leaning back in his chair, “I’ve got some news you’re going to like.” I exchanged a glance with Tim, curiosity piqued. Joe continued, “So, we’ve been crunching the numbers. Twilight, for your first paycheck next week, you’re going to get credit for 75 tons of recycled material – that’s both steel and plastic. Plus, of course, your full 80 hours.” My eyes widened. “Seventy-five tons? That’s... that’s incredible!” Tim let out a low whistle. “That’s going to be some paycheck.” Joe nodded, his grin widening. “You bet it is. Twilight, you’ve single-hoofedly turned our waste management problem into a profit center. The big bosses in Cleveland are over the moon. Too bad they’re not going to give you a raise.” I felt a warmth spread through my chest, a mixture of pride and gratitude. “Thank you, Joe. I’m just glad I can help.” As we left Joe’s office, Tim wrapped an arm around my withers. “You know what this means, right?” he asked, a twinkle in his eye. I looked up at him, curious. “What?” “We can pay off the trailer,” he said softly. “We’re going to own our home, Twilight. Thanks to you.” The realization hit me, and I felt my eyes well up with happy tears. This wasn’t just about repairing trailers or recycling materials. This was about building our future, securing a home for our family. As we walked to the car, I couldn’t help but feel a sense of accomplishment. We’d faced diplomatic challenges, overcome physical limitations, and now, we were on the verge of a major personal milestone. “Tim,” I said as we got into the car, “I think we should celebrate tonight, or tomorrow, as a family.” He smiled, starting the engine. “I couldn’t agree more. What did you have in mind?” As we drove home, discussing celebration plans, I realized how far we’d come in such a short time. From uncertain beginnings to a strong, loving family with a bright future ahead. Whatever challenges lay ahead, I knew we’d face them together, growing stronger with each obstacle overcome. The weekend stretched before us, full of promise and potential. And for once, I was looking forward to rest just as much as the magic that awaited us in the days to come. * * * Tim As Saturday morning dawned, I found myself grinning at the breakfast table. Twilight, fully recovered from her magical exertion, was helping Sara with her cereal while I flipped pancakes. "So," I began, sliding a stack of pancakes onto a plate, "I think we have something to celebrate today." Twilight looked up, a questioning smile on her face. "Oh?" I nodded, bringing the pancakes to the table. "Well, it's been two weeks since you started at Pipeline. Two weeks since our little family came together. And after everything we've accomplished, I think that calls for a celebration." Sara's eyes lit up. "Can we go to the zoo? Please, Daddy? I want to show Twilight all the animals!" I chuckled, exchanging a glance with Twilight. "What do you think, hon? Up for a day at the zoo?" Twilight's smile widened. "That sounds perfect. I'd love to see Earth wildlife up close." The day at the zoo was filled with laughter and wonder. Sara excitedly led us from exhibit to exhibit, her enthusiasm infectious. Twilight's fascination with each new animal was adorable, her eyes wide with curiosity as she compared them to their Equestrian counterparts. "You mean your lions don't talk?" she asked in disbelief as we watched the big cats lounge in the sun. I couldn't help but laugh. "Nope, just big kitties here. No diplomatic skills whatsoever." Moving on, Twilight gazed at the Earth horses, a bemused expression on her face. "They seem so... simple." I smirked, nudging her gently. "Well, not every horse can be a magical, world-hopping countess. Though I have to say, I prefer my mares a little more... sophisticated." Twilight rolled her eyes but smiled. "Careful, Sir Tim. This mare might just leave you in the stables tonight." As we approached the butterfly garden, Sara's excitement reached new heights. She tugged on both my hand and Twilight's hoof, practically bouncing with anticipation. "Come on, come on!" she urged, pulling us forward. Twilight and I exchanged amused glances before allowing ourselves to be led into the lush, enclosed space. Colorful butterflies fluttered all around us, landing on flowers and occasionally on visitors. Suddenly, a large blue morpho butterfly drifted down, landing gracefully on Twilight's nose. She went cross-eyed trying to look at it, causing Sara to burst into giggles. "Look, Daddy!" Sara exclaimed. "Twilight's got a butterfly kiss!" I couldn't help but chuckle. "Well, why should Twilight have all the fun?" I said, leaning down to plant a soft kiss on Sara's cheek. "There's your butterfly kiss." Sara's eyes lit up with joy. She turned to Twilight, who was still adorned with her living ornament. "Twilight, can I have a butterfly kiss from you too?" Twilight's eyes softened with affection. She leaned down carefully, trying not to disturb her new friend, and gently nuzzled Sara's cheek. The butterfly, apparently deciding it was time to move on, fluttered off Twilight's nose and landed on Sara's head, causing another round of laughter. As I watched my daughter and my wife share this tender moment, I felt a warmth spread through my chest. This was what family was all about - these small, perfect moments of joy and connection. I wrapped an arm around Twilight's withers, pulling both her and Sara close. "My two favorite girls," I murmured, planting a kiss on Twilight's cheek. We stood there for a moment, the three of us huddled together in a bubble of happiness, surrounded by the gentle flutter of butterfly wings. It was a simple moment, but one I knew I'd cherish forever - a snapshot of our new life together, full of love, laughter, and little everyday miracles. As the day wound down, we found ourselves at the petting zoo. Watching Twilight interact with the goats and sheep, gently explaining to them that she couldn't understand their 'language', was both hilarious and heartwarming. On the drive home, Sara dozed in the backseat, clutching a stuffed elephant we'd bought her in the gift shop. Twilight leaned against me, a contented smile on her face. "Thank you for today," she said softly. "It was wonderful." I squeezed her hoof gently. "It was. And you know what? This is just the beginning. We have so many more family adventures ahead of us." As we pulled into our driveway, I couldn't help but feel a surge of excitement for what the future held. We put Sara to bed, her dreams surely filled with the day's adventures. Tim stretched, his back popping audibly. "Man, I'm beat. Who knew a day at the zoo could be so exhausting?" Twilight raised an eyebrow. "Oh? I hope you're not too tired. I was rather looking forward to exploring some 'exotic wildlife' of our own tonight." Tim's eyes widened, a grin spreading across his face. "Suddenly, I'm feeling very energetic." As I followed her, I couldn't help but marvel at how perfectly she fit into our lives. Work, family outings, and now this - every day with Twilight was an adventure, and I couldn't wait to see what would happen next. * * * Author's Note I write commissions. If you like my writing style, please contact me with story requests. 5 dollars per 1,000 words. //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 13 - Guardianship and Heartfelt Promises //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 13 - Guardianship and Heartfelt Promises The day had started like any other, the sun rising over the vast Texas horizon, casting its golden light across their quiet home on the outskirts of Houston. The smell of fresh coffee and pancakes filled the kitchen as Tim, Twilight, and Sara shared their morning together. The warmth between them was undeniable - a family, bound not just by love but by the delicate balance they had built in their new life together. But beneath the gentle routine, something else simmered. Every glance, every fleeting touch between Tim and Twilight carried a charge, a subtle undercurrent of longing that had been building for weeks, made worse after they were declared married two days ago. They had been patient, both knowing that the right moment would come. Between work, caring for Sara, and adjusting to their new roles, there had always been something in the way. But today was different. The outing to the Houston Zoo, watching Sara marvel at the animals, the laughter and ease of the afternoon - it had only served to deepen the desire that had lingered just beneath the surface. Now, as the sun had long since set and the house lay in peaceful silence, the weight of the day slipped away. Sara had been tucked into bed, her innocent giggles fading into the soft rhythm of sleep, leaving Twilight and Tim alone at last. The air felt thick with anticipation, the kind of tension that crackled between two souls who had been holding back for too long. The night outside their Texas home was still, a quiet hum of crickets vibrating through the thick air. The heat of the Houston day clung to the streets outside, but inside the master bedroom, the air was cool and charged with something far more electric. Twilight Sparkle, her purple coat catching the dim light of the bedside lamp, stood at the edge of the bed, her eyes locked onto Tim’s as he slowly undressed. They had waited for this, both knowing it was coming ever since their wedding. The family outing had been sweet, wholesome even - a perfect day spent with Tim’s daughter. But now, with the house silent and the little one finally asleep, the tension that had brewed between them all day rose like a tide they couldn’t ignore any longer. Twilight’s tail flicked anxiously, her breathing uneven. Her large, violet eyes traced every movement Tim made, watching as he slipped his shirt over his head, the light catching the taut muscles of his chest. A shiver ran down her spine, her heart racing faster as his fingers moved to undo his belt. She swallowed hard, her pulse quickening. "Tim," she breathed, her voice soft but heavy with anticipation, "I've been waiting for this for so long." He smiled at her, that same gentle warmth in his eyes that had drawn her to him in the first place. But there was something else there too - something darker, a hunger they had both been holding back. "Twilight..." His voice was thick with desire, the kind of lust that only came after a year of celibacy, weeks of waiting for her, and recent nights of frustrated longing. He stepped closer, his hand brushing through her mane, his fingers tracing down her neck, sending a shiver of pleasure coursing through her. Her breath hitched, and she leaned into his touch, her body instinctively responding. Her eyes fluttered shut for a moment, soaking in the warmth of his skin. He smelled like sweat, the sun, and something uniquely him - a scent that made her stomach tighten and her thoughts scatter. She wanted this. She needed this. Tim's hands moved lower, his fingers grazing along her side, sliding over the curve of her flank. He paused, looking at her. "Are you ready for me, Twi?" She nodded, her voice caught in her throat as she met his gaze again. "Yes," she whispered, her tail instinctively lifting, exposing her slick, aching need to him. The room was warm, but the fire between them burned hotter, consuming. With a quiet groan, Tim stepped behind her, his hands resting on her hips, pulling her closer. Twilight's breath hitched, her heart racing as she felt his hardened length press against her, teasing her folds, slick with anticipation. "Please, Tim," she whispered, her voice trembling. "I need you." Tim’s breath was hot against her neck as his hands tightened on her hips. The weight of him behind her sent a thrill down Twilight's spine, her tail flicking again, this time brushing against his bare skin. She could feel the heat of his body, the tension coiling between them like a live wire. His fingers dug into her soft fur as he guided her, positioning her just right, her rear arching up in front of him. She trembled, a low, needy whimper escaping her lips. “I’ve wanted this for so long,” she whispered, barely able to keep her voice steady. Every part of her felt alive, buzzing with anticipation, desire pooling deep in her belly. Tim’s cock was thick and hard, sliding against her folds, teasing her entrance but not yet pressing in. The sensation made her squirm, her hind legs shifting restlessly, desperate for more. "You feel so good," he murmured, his voice rough with lust. His hands gripped her tighter, the tip of his length now nudging her slick, sensitive lips. With a slow, deliberate thrust, he pushed forward, the head of his cock parting her wetness, stretching her open. Twilight gasped, her eyes squeezing shut as he entered her, inch by agonizing inch. The sensation of him inside her, filling her, was overwhelming - every nerve in her body sparking with pleasure. “Tim…” she moaned, her voice barely a breath, as her body adjusted to the fullness. The stretch, the heat - it was everything she had craved, and now that he was finally inside her, it felt almost too intense. She shifted, her hooves digging into the bed as she pushed back against him, urging him deeper. Tim groaned low in his throat, his hips driving forward as he sank into her completely. He held still for a moment, savoring the feel of her tightness wrapped around him. Twilight’s body pulsed, her tail flicking wildly as she let out a shuddering breath. He began to move, slow at first, each thrust measured, controlled, as if he was trying to hold himself back. But Twilight was ready for more. Her hips bucked against him, meeting his thrusts, her breath coming in ragged gasps. "Faster," she urged, her voice hoarse, desperate. "I want you to fuck me, Tim." Her words seemed to break something in him. He never thought he’d hear her speak so dirty… With a guttural growl, Tim’s grip on her hips tightened, and he began to pound into her, the sound of their bodies slapping together filling the room. Twilight’s head dropped, her mane falling around her face as she moaned louder, her body rocking with each thrust. His pace quickened, and the force of his thrusts sent shocks of pleasure through her, building inside her, overwhelming her senses. Twilight's moans grew higher, more frantic, her body trembling as she teetered on the edge. "Tim, I'm close," she panted, barely able to form the words between gasps. Tim responded with another growl, his own breath ragged as he fucked her harder, his cock slamming into her with relentless speed. "Come for me, Twilight," he groaned, his voice tight, strained with the effort of holding himself back. It was all she needed. With a strangled cry, Twilight’s body convulsed, her walls clenching tightly around him as her orgasm crashed through her. Her legs trembled, her tail twitching wildly as wave after wave of pleasure rolled over her, leaving her gasping, trembling beneath him. Tim groaned, feeling her body pulse around him, her tightness drawing him deeper. His movements became erratic, each thrust harder, more desperate, until finally, with a sharp gasp, he buried himself deep inside her, spilling his warmth into her trembling body. They stayed like that for a moment, both panting, their bodies still connected as they came down from the high of their release. Tim’s hands loosened their grip on her hips, and he leaned forward, pressing a soft kiss to the back of her neck. Twilight let out a long, contented sigh, her body still quivering with the aftershocks of her climax. "That was... incredible," she murmured, her voice barely above a whisper. “I’m glad I saved myself for you…” Tim chuckled softly, pulling out of her slowly, leaving her feeling empty but deeply satisfied. "You’re incredible, Twilight," he whispered back, his hand gently stroking her mane as they both collapsed onto the bed, tangled together in the afterglow of their consummation. Twilight lay beside Tim, her body still warm and tingling from their first round of passion, but even after just a few minutes, she felt that familiar ache start to rise again. She shifted slightly, her body brushing against Tim’s, her tail flicking playfully over his legs. Tim glanced down at her, noticing the subtle way her rear was raised just a little, her tail swaying back and forth in silent invitation. His heart skipped a beat, and without a word, he smiled, rolling onto his side, his hand slipping down to caress her flank. “Already?” he whispered, his voice thick with renewed desire. Twilight didn’t answer with words, just a quiet, eager whimper as she pressed her body closer to him, her need obvious. Tim groaned, his arousal already returning as he shifted onto his knees, positioning himself behind her once more. His cock was hard again, sliding easily between her slick folds as he teased her, his hands gripping her hips. “You’re insatiable,” he murmured, leaning over her slightly as he guided himself into her again, the head of his cock pressing against her opening. Twilight moaned softly, her hips pushing back as he slowly filled her again, her walls stretching to accommodate him. But just as he was about to pick up the rhythm, a soft knock came at the door. "Daddy?" It was Sara’s voice, muffled through the wood but unmistakable. "I’m thirsty… why is the door locked?" Tim froze mid-thrust, groaning in frustration. Twilight bit her lip, her body tense with the sudden interruption. They exchanged a quick, panicked look, unsure of what to do for a moment. Without thinking, Tim called out, his voice half-laughing, half-grumbling, "I'm trying to make you a little sister!" There was a pause, and then the sound of Sara giggling on the other side of the door. "Do it doggy-style, Daddy! I want a puppy!" Twilight’s eyes widened in shock, and for a moment, both she and Tim were frozen, staring at each other in disbelief. Then, the absurdity of the situation hit them, and they both burst into laughter, the tension in the room evaporating in an instant. Tim quickly pulled out of Twilight, still chuckling as he grabbed his pants from the floor and hurriedly dressed. "Hold on, sweetie," he called through the door. "I’ll be there in a second!" Twilight was still shaking with laughter as she watched him zip up his pants and head for the door. "A puppy?" she whispered through giggles, her face flushed with amusement and lingering arousal. Tim just shook his head, grinning as he unlocked the door and stepped out to get his daughter a glass of water. As the door clicked shut behind him, Twilight couldn’t help but smile to herself. * * * Tim returned to the bedroom with a sigh, the weight of the interruption still lingering in his mind as he closed the door behind him. His face was soft with affection, but there was a hint of concern in his voice. "She's 4… I’m not sure she’s old enough to take care of a puppy properly. And honestly, with everything going on, I’m not sure I want to add that level of responsibility to our plates. We’re both working and now trying to tackle all these new noble duties." He ran a hand through his hair, glancing at Twilight as he settled back onto the bed beside her. "What do you think, Twily?" Twilight, who had been lying comfortably with a soft smile, lifted her head thoughtfully. Her violet eyes reflected the dim light of the room as she considered his words. "It’s a lot," she agreed, her voice gentle but serious. She rolled onto her side, facing him, her hooves resting softly against his arm. "Between our jobs, my ambassadorial responsibilities, which we haven’t been told yet what all that will entail… and Sara... a puppy might just be too much right now." Tim nodded, looking down at her with a sigh of relief. "Yeah, that's what I was thinking. It’s one thing to bring a new pet into the family, but another to manage the chaos when we’re still finding our rhythm with everything else." Twilight tilted her head, her tail flicking softly behind her. "Plus," she added with a little smile, "We still need time for each other. Having a puppy around might cut into... moments like these." Tim chuckled at her playful tone, reaching over to gently stroke her mane. "Good point," he said, his voice low. "Can’t let a dog come between us when we’ve just gotten started." His hand drifted down, brushing against her flank, and the look in his eyes shifted once more. Twilight smirked, her gaze catching his, the warmth between them beginning to rise again. “Exactly,” she murmured, her tone teasing as she leaned in closer. "I think we’ve got our hooves full already... with more important things." Tim’s grin grew, his fingers trailing down her side, the weight of their earlier concerns already melting away as the moment started to heat up again. "Very important things," he whispered, pressing his body against hers, eager to pick up where they’d left off. Tim's hand lingered on Twilight’s flank, the warmth between them intensifying as his fingers traced slow, deliberate circles over her soft coat. The weight of the day, the playful exchange about puppies, and the concerns of parenthood all seemed to fade into the background as they locked eyes once more, the pull between them impossible to resist. Twilight shifted beneath his touch, her body responding to the familiar tension building in the room. Her tail flicked again, brushing lightly against Tim’s thigh, an unspoken invitation in the way she arched her back just slightly. “I think you’re right,” she whispered, her voice low, breathy, as she leaned into him, her muzzle nuzzling against his neck. “We’ve got more than enough to handle right now.” Tim chuckled softly, the sound turning into a low groan as his hands slid down her body, exploring her curves with renewed hunger. His fingers grazed her flank, down to the base of her tail, and then lower, teasing the sensitive spot where her thighs met. Twilight gasped softly, her eyes half-lidded as she pressed herself against him, her body already aching for more. “Still insatiable, huh?” he murmured, his voice thick with lust as he leaned over her, his lips brushing against her ear. Twilight’s breath hitched, her tail lifting higher, exposing her readiness. "Only for you," she whispered back, her tone dripping with desire as she pushed back against his hand, eager for his touch. Tim growled low in his throat, his cock hardening again as he felt her slick warmth beneath his fingers. With a quick motion, he positioned himself behind her once more, his hands gripping her hips, pulling her closer as he aligned himself. He could feel her trembling with anticipation, her breath coming in soft, uneven pants as she waited for him. Without any further teasing, Tim pushed into her, sliding his length deep inside with a slow, deliberate thrust. Twilight moaned, her voice high and breathless as he filled her again, the sensation just as intense as before. Her body tightened around him, her walls pulsing with every inch, her head dropping low as she let out a shuddering sigh. Tim didn’t hold back this time. He set a steady, rhythmic pace, his hips driving forward, each thrust met with a soft, eager sound from Twilight. Her body rocked beneath him, her hooves gripping the sheets as she pushed back, desperate for more. “Oh, Tim…” she gasped, her voice trembling as he pounded into her, the pleasure building quickly between them. She could feel herself getting lost in the sensation, her mind fogging with nothing but the heat of his body and the way he filled her so perfectly. Tim groaned, his grip on her hips tightening as he picked up the pace, each thrust harder, deeper, sending shockwaves of pleasure through them both. “You feel so good, Twi,” he breathed, his voice rough and strained. He leaned over her, his chest pressing against her back as he pounded into her, the sound of their bodies slapping together filling the room once again. Twilight’s breath came in sharp, ragged gasps, her body trembling as she felt herself climbing toward the edge. “I… I’m close,” she moaned, her voice barely audible between the sounds of their frantic movements. Every nerve in her body was on fire, the pleasure building, swirling, until it was almost unbearable. Tim grunted, his own release approaching fast, his cock throbbing inside her as he thrust harder, faster, his body demanding release. "Come for me, Twilight," he growled, his voice tight with need. "I want to feel you come around me." With a sharp cry, Twilight’s body tensed, her walls clenching tightly around him as her orgasm ripped through her. She shuddered beneath him, her tail twitching wildly, her entire body convulsing with the force of her release. "Oh, Tim…!" she gasped, her voice breaking as the waves of pleasure washed over her, leaving her trembling and weak. The feel of her tightening around him was enough to push Tim over the edge. With one last, deep thrust, he groaned loudly, his body jerking as he came, spilling his warmth inside her. His hands gripped her hips hard, holding her in place as he rode out the final waves of his climax, both of them panting heavily, their bodies slick with sweat. For a moment, they stayed like that, locked together, the intensity of their release leaving them both breathless. Tim’s hands slowly loosened their grip, and with a deep, satisfied sigh, he gently pulled out of her, collapsing onto the bed beside her. Twilight’s body still trembled with the aftershocks of her orgasm, her breath coming in short, uneven gasps as she curled up beside him, her head resting on his chest. “That… was just as good the second time… if not better,” she whispered, her voice still shaky but filled with contentment. Tim chuckled, his arm wrapping around her, pulling her close. "You’re a perfect fit for me," he murmured back, pressing a soft kiss to her forehead. "And we didn’t even need a puppy to make things interesting." Twilight giggled softly, nuzzling against him as the warmth of the moment slowly settled around them. * * * As they lay together, the heat of their shared passion slowly fading, the room around them grew quiet, the soft hum of the night settling in. Twilight snuggled closer to Tim, her head resting on his chest, the steady rhythm of his heartbeat soothing in the silence. His arm wrapped around her, holding her tightly as if he never wanted to let go. Tim’s voice broke the quiet, low and reflective, a hint of something deeper lingering in his tone. "I haven’t slept back here since…" He paused, swallowing hard, as if the words themselves were difficult to get out. "Since my first wife died. This room was our room… her room. After she was gone, it just didn’t feel right being here. I couldn't bring myself to sleep in this bed, not without her." Twilight’s ears perked up slightly at the vulnerability in his voice, and she pressed herself closer, offering silent comfort. She could feel the weight of his past in the words he wasn’t saying, the grief and the loneliness that had lingered in this room for far too long. It made her heart ache for him. Tim let out a long breath, his hand gently stroking her mane. "But tonight… with you here, Twily, it’s different. I don’t feel that emptiness anymore. You have no idea how alive I feel right now." His voice softened, and there was a depth of emotion in it that took her breath away. "You saved me… in more ways than you know." Twilight’s heart swelled, and for a moment, she didn’t know what to say. She had always known there was a part of Tim’s heart that was scarred, a part of him that held onto a deep sorrow from his past. But hearing him open up like this, sharing a piece of himself that he had kept buried for so long, made her feel closer to him than ever. "Tim…" she whispered, her voice thick with emotion. She nuzzled his chest, her muzzle brushing softly against his skin. "You don’t have to thank me. I love you, and I’ll always be here for you. We’ll make new memories, together." Her voice faltered slightly, but she smiled, knowing that she meant every word. Tim’s arm tightened around her, and he kissed the top of her head, his lips lingering there for a moment. "I love you too, Twily," he murmured, his voice heavy with gratitude. "You’ve brought something back into my life that I thought I’d lost forever." He paused. “Do you think we made a foal tonight?” She shook her head. “It’s exactly in the middle in-between heat cycles. I probably won’t conceive unless human sperm lives longer than 7 days.” He sighed. “Nope. Only 5 days. I guess if we really want to try… we’ll have to do it next weekend.” Twilight giggled. “I hope I can have you more often than that…” Tim kissed her. “That’s the downside of being a parent. The little one comes first.” They lay together in the dark, the weight of the past slowly lifting as the promise of their future settled around them. Tim’s breathing slowed, the rise and fall of his chest becoming more even as he began to drift off, his body finally relaxing in the room that had once been filled with so much pain. Twilight closed her eyes, feeling the warmth of his body against hers, and for the first time, she felt like they were both truly at peace, wrapped in each other’s presence. The night outside was still, and the future felt wide open, filled with the quiet hope of what was to come. * * * The soft glow of the Sunday morning sun filtered through the kitchen windows, casting warm light over the cozy space. Tim stood at the stove, flipping pancakes with ease, the smell of sizzling bacon filling the air. Twilight sat at the kitchen table, sipping her coffee as she watched him, the simple domesticity of the moment making her smile. Sara, still in her pajamas, sat next to her, her legs swinging beneath her chair as she patiently waited for breakfast. "Daddy, can I have extra syrup on mine?" Sara asked, her eyes wide with excitement as Tim placed the first stack of pancakes on the table. "Sure thing, sweetheart," Tim replied with a chuckle, reaching for the bottle of syrup and drizzling a generous amount over her plate. "But you’ll need to eat it all if I do." "I will!" Sara promised, already digging in with gusto. Twilight smiled as she watched the two of them. Moments like this made her heart swell with love for her little family. But there was something more in the air this morning - Sara had been buzzing with excitement since she woke up, and Twilight had a feeling she knew why. Today, they were going to have that conversation. Once the plates were filled and everyone was seated, Twilight glanced at Tim, who gave her a small nod, signaling that it was time to address the subject that had been on their minds since the previous night’s playful interruption. "So, Sara," Twilight began, her voice gentle but serious, "We know you asked about getting a puppy." She smiled at the little girl, who was watching her with wide, eager eyes. "And we thought we should talk about it together." Sara’s face lit up, her fork pausing halfway to her mouth. "Yes! Please, Mommy, Daddy, I really want a puppy!" She bounced in her seat, her enthusiasm bubbling over. Tim leaned forward, his expression soft but firm. "I know you want one, Sara, and we want to make sure you understand what it means to have a pet. Taking care of a puppy is a big responsibility. You’ll have to feed it, make sure it gets plenty of exercise, clean up after it, and train it. It’s not just playing with it when you feel like it." "I can do it!" Sara said quickly, nodding with conviction. "I promise I’ll take care of it! And I’ll walk it every day and feed it and give it water and everything!" Twilight exchanged a glance with Tim, a small smile playing on her lips. "It's a lot to handle, especially for someone your age," she added gently. "But if you really want this, we need to be sure you’re ready." Sara looked between them, her expression growing more thoughtful as she realized this wasn’t just an automatic yes. "But I can do it," she insisted, her voice quieter now, but just as determined. "If I take care of a puppy, I’ll be practicing for when we have the baby, right?" Both Twilight and Tim froze for a second, surprised by the shift in Sara’s reasoning. "Practice for the baby?" Twilight asked, raising an eyebrow, curious to see where her daughter was going with this. Sara nodded vigorously, her eyes lighting up again. "Yeah! I know you and Daddy are going to have a baby someday. And I can help take care of the puppy, so I’ll know how to help when the baby comes! I’ll learn how to be responsible, and I’ll be really good at helping with the baby too!" Her little face was filled with earnest hope, as if she had figured out the perfect solution. Twilight felt a flutter in her chest at Sara’s words. She glanced at Tim, who seemed just as taken aback. The sincerity in their daughter’s voice, coupled with her eagerness to contribute, tugged at something deep inside them both. Tim leaned back in his chair, rubbing his chin thoughtfully. "Well, that’s a pretty convincing argument, Sara," he said, his tone softer now. "But there’s one more thing we need to think about. Our lease agreement doesn’t allow big dogs, so if we do get a puppy, it would have to be a smaller breed. Something like a chihuahua." Sara’s eyes went wide. "A chihuahua?! Those are so cute!" she squealed, practically bouncing in her seat again. "Yes, yes, yes! I want a chihuahua! They’re small and I can carry it around and take care of it, I promise!" Twilight laughed softly, her heart melting at Sara’s excitement. "It sounds like you’ve really thought this through," she said, her voice warm with affection. Tim sighed, shaking his head slightly but smiling. "Well, looks like you’ve convinced us, kiddo. A chihuahua it is. But remember, it’s your responsibility to take care of it." Sara’s face lit up like the sun, and she jumped out of her chair, running over to hug both Tim and Twilight. "Thank you, thank you, thank you! I’ll be the best puppy mommy ever, I promise!" Twilight wrapped her hooves around Sara, exchanging a knowing glance with Tim. They both smiled, the decision made, and the room filled with the excitement of what was to come. As breakfast continued, Sara chattered endlessly about names for the puppy and what kind of toys she’d get, while Tim and Twilight exchanged soft, contented smiles. Their family was growing, in more ways than one. * * * After breakfast, the three of them packed up and headed out to the local animal shelter, Sara practically bouncing in her booster seat with excitement the entire drive. Twilight sat in the front, casting glances back at Sara, her own smile growing as she saw how thrilled her daughter was. Tim drove, a relaxed grin on his face, enjoying the rare, carefree morning with his family. When they arrived at the shelter, the smell of hay, pet food, and warm fur greeted them as they walked in through the front doors. The sounds of dogs barking, and the occasional meow filled the air. Sara’s eyes went wide as she looked around, tugging eagerly at Tim’s hand. “Let’s go find Precious, Daddy!” she chirped, already having decided on a name before even meeting the dogs. They approached the check-in counter, where a friendly woman greeted them. “Good morning! How can we help you today?” Tim leaned on the counter with a playful grin. “We’re looking to adopt a small dog, maybe a chihuahua,” he said, and then added with a smirk, “And, you know, if you guys take drop-offs, I’ve got a pony here with me.” He tilted his head toward Twilight, who immediately flushed, her eyes narrowing playfully. “Oh, ha ha," Twilight said with mock exasperation, giving him a light swat with her hoof. “Very funny, Tim.” The woman behind the counter blinked for a moment, clearly processing the joke, before laughing. “Well, as tempting as that sounds, we’ll stick with dogs for today,” she said, still chuckling as she handed them a clipboard to fill out. "But I think we can help you find the perfect pup." As they filled out the necessary paperwork, Sara’s excitement continued to bubble over. She peppered the woman with questions about the dogs in the shelter, her bright eyes wide with anticipation. Soon enough, they were led to the back where the dogs were kept, rows of kennels lined with wagging tails and hopeful eyes. Tim kept a watchful eye on Sara as she looked at each dog, her little hand reaching out to wave at them through the cages. Twilight stayed close, her heart warming as she watched their daughter’s enthusiasm. "This is going to be good for her," Twilight murmured to Tim, leaning in close. “I know,” he replied softly, smiling. “She’s ready.” After a few minutes of looking, one of the shelter workers brought them to a kennel where a small chihuahua was sitting calmly, its large, expressive eyes watching them with quiet curiosity. The little dog was tan with white markings, its ears perked up at the sound of Sara’s voice. “This is Precious,” the worker introduced, with a knowing smile. “She’s five years old, fully potty trained, and knows a few simple tricks. She’s been with us for a little while now, and she’s looking for a forever home.” Sara’s face lit up like a Christmas tree. “Her name is already Precious? That’s perfect!” she exclaimed, crouching down to the dog’s level. “Hi, Precious. Do you want to come home with us?” The chihuahua cautiously approached the edge of the kennel, sniffing Sara’s outstretched hand before giving her fingers a tentative lick. Sara giggled, her eyes full of love already. "She likes me!" Tim knelt beside Sara, scratching behind Precious’ ears. “She seems like a sweet girl,” he said, glancing up at Twilight, who was watching with a soft, approving smile. “Yeah, I think she’d be perfect for us,” Twilight agreed, nodding at Tim. “Plus, it sounds like she’s already trained, which will make things a lot easier.” Sara’s face was full of hope as she looked between her parents. "Can we take her home? Please?" Tim chuckled and ruffled Sara’s hair. “Looks like we found our new family member,” he said with a grin. "Precious it is." After finalizing the adoption paperwork, they loaded Precious into the car, the little dog sitting quietly in Sara’s lap, already seeming to bond with her new family. Sara kept stroking Precious’ fur, whispering softly to her, “I’m gonna take care of you, Precious. You’re gonna be my best friend.” Twilight glanced back at the two of them, her heart swelling. Tim reached over and squeezed her hoof as they drove home, the morning sun shining brightly on the road ahead. Their family had grown just a little bit more, and as Sara continued to giggle softly, Twilight knew they’d made the right choice. * * * Once they brought Precious home, the little chihuahua quickly settled into the house. She explored the living room with curious sniffs, her tiny paws padding softly against the hardwood floors. Sara followed close behind, watching Precious’ every move with wide, excited eyes, while Twilight and Tim exchanged amused glances. “She’s already making herself at home,” Twilight said, her voice soft with affection as she watched Sara crouch down to pet the dog. Tim nodded, rubbing the back of his neck. “Looks like we’re gonna need to head out and grab everything she needs. Food, a bed, some toys-” “And a leash, and bowls!” Twilight added, chuckling as she mentally started to list off all the essentials. “We don’t have anything for a dog yet.” Sara looked up, her face glowing with excitement. “Can I come to the store too, Mommy? I want to pick out her toys!” She reached out to hug Precious, who wagged her tail in response, already warming up to her new little human. Twilight smiled but shook her head gently. “Why don’t you stay here with Precious and get to know her better? Daddy and I will be quick, and you can show her around the house while we’re gone.” Sara pouted for a moment but then brightened at the thought of spending more time with her new friend. “Okay! I’ll show her my room. She’s gonna love it!” Tim grinned and ruffled Sara’s hair. “Good plan, sweetheart. We’ll be back soon.” Leaving Sara with a promise to hurry, Twilight and Tim headed out to the nearest pet store. The drive was short, but they spent the entire time discussing everything they would need. Twilight pulled out a pen and some paper, drawing up a checklist to make sure they wouldn’t forget anything. As they walked into the pet store, the familiar smell of kibble and treats filled the air. The shelves were stocked with everything from squeaky toys to doggie sweaters, and Twilight felt a bit overwhelmed by all the choices. “Okay,” Tim said, grabbing a cart. “Let’s make this quick. We’ll need a bed for her first.” They wandered over to the aisle full of pet beds, trying to choose the perfect size. Twilight knelt down, testing the softness of one of the smaller beds, while Tim held up a fluffy one with paw prints on it. “What do you think, Twily? This one looks cozy,” Tim said, squeezing the bed to check its cushion. Twilight laughed softly, shaking her head. “You’re picking out a bed like it’s a mattress for us. I’m sure Precious won’t mind as long as it’s soft. Let’s go with that one.” They added the bed to the cart, then headed over to the food aisle. Twilight checked the ingredients on a few different bags of dog food, wanting to make sure they chose something healthy. After a brief discussion, they picked out a high-quality brand that would be gentle on Precious’ small frame. They grabbed a few cans of wet food as well, just to see what the dog would prefer. Next came the fun part - picking out toys. Tim immediately gravitated toward a squeaky bone, grinning like a kid in a candy store. “You think she’ll like this?” he asked, squeezing it and making the toy let out a sharp squeak. Twilight chuckled. “I think Sara’s going to like that more than Precious will. But we should get her a variety of toys - something to chew on, maybe a plush toy.” They filled the cart with chew toys, a plush animal, a small ball for fetch, and a small stuffed animal shaped like a taco that made Twilight laugh. "It’s only fitting she has a taco toy - this is Texas after all," she joked. Finally, they found the essentials: a leash, collar, food and water bowls, and a few treats for training. As they headed to the checkout, Twilight glanced at the cart, now piled high with everything Precious could possibly need to be comfortable in her new home. “I think we’re set,” Tim said, looking satisfied as they paid for the items and headed back to the car. On the drive home, Twilight felt a warm sense of happiness settle over her. This day had turned out to be so much more than they’d planned. They had a new family member, and even though it was just a small dog, it felt like their family had taken another step forward. When they arrived back home, Sara was sitting on the floor with Precious, the little dog curled up in her lap. She looked up as they came through the door, her face beaming with joy. “Precious is so happy here!” she announced. Twilight smiled and set the bags down. “Well, she’s going to be even happier now. We’ve got everything she needs.” Tim pulled out the dog bed first, setting it down in a cozy corner of the living room. Precious sniffed at it curiously before climbing in and curling up, clearly approving of her new bed. As they unpacked the toys, Sara squealed with delight, picking up the squeaky bone and showing it to Precious. The chihuahua’s tail wagged in response, and she gave a tentative bite, testing the toy. Twilight stood back, watching Sara play with her new dog, and felt an overwhelming sense of contentment. They had everything they needed, and their family felt a little more complete today. * * * As they settled into bed that night, the room dimly lit by the soft glow of the bedside lamp, Twilight rolled over to snuggle up next to Tim. But something about his demeanor felt off. His body was tense, and he hadn’t said much since they got home. She could sense the weight of whatever was on his mind. “Tim?” she asked quietly, her voice soft in the darkness. “What’s wrong?” Tim sighed deeply, his shoulders sinking as if the burden of his thoughts was too much to hold up anymore. He turned his head slightly to look at her, knowing there was no point in trying to hide his feelings from her. Twilight always knew when something was bothering him. "It’s just... today. Leaving Sara at home while we went to the store," he began, his voice heavy with concern. "She’s only 4, Twily. That could have been seen as neglect. Maybe even abuse." Twilight blinked, her ears perking up with surprise. She hadn’t expected that. "Abuse? But we were only gone for a little while, and she was perfectly fine-" "I know," Tim interrupted gently, rubbing his forehead with one hand. "But it doesn’t matter how short the time was. Legally, it’s wrong. We’re lucky nothing happened, but leaving a child that young home alone, even for a few minutes, is dangerous. And we’ve had run-ins with CPS before." He paused, his face clouding with worry. "Sure, they backed off because of our status, but that doesn’t mean they won’t take action if they think there’s a real problem. We can’t take risks like this again." Twilight’s heart sank as she listened to him. The mention of CPS made her stomach twist. She hadn’t thought about it that way earlier - it had seemed so harmless, just a quick trip to the store while Sara stayed with the new dog. But now, hearing Tim’s fears, she understood the gravity of the situation. "I guess you’re right. I’m honestly not accustomed to how rigid the laws are here. Nothing like this would happen in Equestria…" Twilight said softly, her hoof resting on his arm. "We will take steps to make sure that something like this won’t happen again. I completely forgot… but you’re right, she’s too young to be left alone. What does the law say about it?” Tim nodded; his expression still tense. “Well, there is no ‘official’ minimum age in Texas for leaving a child alone, but the Texas Department of Public Safety recommends not leaving children younger than 12 alone. With Christina still on my ass, we can’t risk her trying to make a big deal out of nothing. It’s not just about the law, though. It’s about keeping her safe. Anything could have happened while we were gone. What if there had been an accident? What if she’d gotten hurt and no one was there to help?” Twilight sighed, her eyes lowering as she took in the weight of his words. "I understand," she murmured. "We’ll be more careful from now on. We’ll always make sure someone’s with her. Either one of us stays home, or we bring her with us, no matter what." Tim relaxed a little, the tension in his shoulders easing slightly as he turned to face her more fully. “I know it’s just… I worry about her, Twi. I love Sara more than anything. I don’t want to do something stupid that could hurt her, or worse, lose her.” Twilight leaned in, her forehead resting against his. "I love her too," she whispered. "We’re in this together, Tim. We’ll make sure she’s safe. Always." Her voice was steady, firm with the reassurance that he wasn’t alone in his worry. He closed his eyes for a moment, letting her words wash over him, calming the storm of anxiety that had been swirling in his mind all evening. "Thank you," he murmured, his voice low and filled with gratitude. "For always being there." Twilight smiled, giving him a gentle nuzzle. "That’s what I’m here for. We’ll figure everything out together. No more leaving Sara alone, and no more worrying ourselves sick. We’ve got this." Tim exhaled a long breath, his body finally relaxing as he wrapped his arms around her, pulling her close. Twilight rested her head on his chest, listening to the steady beat of his heart. The tension of the day melted away, leaving only the comfort of being in each other’s arms. The promise of tomorrow felt lighter, safer, as they drifted off to sleep, knowing they would always protect what mattered most. * * * //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 14 - Diplomatic Uncertainties //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 14 - Diplomatic Uncertainties Tim I yawned as I poured coffee into our travel mugs, the rich aroma helping to shake off the last vestiges of sleep. Across the kitchen, Twilight's horn glowed softly as she used her magic to pack Sara's lunch. It was our usual Monday morning routine, but even after weeks of this, seeing Twilight's casual use of magic still amazed me. Sara's excited chatter filled the air as she told Twilight about her plans for show-and-tell, while Precious' tiny paws pattered across the kitchen floor. I couldn't help but smile at the domestic scene. Despite all the recent changes, this felt right. "Come on, sweetie," I called out, grabbing my keys. "Time to head to school." Sara bounced down the hallway, her backpack nearly as big as she was. "Coming, Daddy!" The drive to school was filled with Sara's animated descriptions of what she planned to tell her friends about Precious. I glanced in the rearview mirror, catching Twilight's fond smile as she listened to our daughter. My heart swelled at the sight. After dropping Sara off, Twilight and I began our commute to Pipeline. As I merged onto the highway, a question that had been nagging at me for days finally bubbled to the surface. "Hey, Twi," I began, keeping my eyes on the road, "I've been wondering... do you have any idea what being an Ambassador of Equestria on Earth is actually going to require from us?" I saw Twilight's ears perk up in my peripheral vision. "Honestly, Tim, I'm not entirely sure," she admitted. "It's all happened so fast, and we haven't received any specific instructions yet." I nodded, my brow furrowing. "Yeah, that's what I was afraid of. Do you think we'll be given an office to work out of? Or will we have to quit our jobs at Pipeline?" The thought of leaving Pipeline so soon after starting there didn't sit well with me. We'd just begun to make a real difference, and the extra income was a godsend. "I hope we don't have to quit Pipeline," Twilight said, echoing my thoughts. "We've only just started making a difference there. But you're right, we might need a separate space for diplomatic work." "And what about compensation?" I added, voicing another concern. "Will Celestia pay us for our public service? I mean, being an ambassador sounds like a full-time job in itself." Twilight sighed, and I could feel her frustration. "I wish I had more answers, Tim. I'm as much in the dark as you are. Maybe we should write to Celestia and ask for more details? Or contact the Bureau of Equestrian Affairs? They might have more information about how this is supposed to work." I nodded, keeping my eyes fixed on the road ahead. "That's probably a good idea. We need to know what we're getting into, especially with Sara to consider. We can't just upend our lives without a clear plan." As we continued our drive, the questions hung in the air between us. Our new roles as diplomats added another layer of complexity to our already unique situation. But as I glanced at Twilight, I felt a surge of confidence. Whatever challenges lay ahead, we would face them together. "We'll figure it out," Twilight said softly, placing a hoof on my arm. "One step at a time, right?" I smiled, feeling some of the tension ease from my shoulders. "Right. Together." As we pulled into the Pipeline parking lot, I knew that today might bring more than just our usual work responsibilities. It was time to start seeking answers and planning for our diplomatic future. Whatever came next, I was grateful to have Twilight by my side. As we walked into Pipeline, the familiar scent of industrial cleaner and metal greeted us. We'd barely clocked in when Joe's booming voice caught our attention. "There's my favorite couple!" he called out, striding towards us with his usual enthusiasm. "Boy, do I have news for you two." I exchanged a glance with Twilight, noting the mix of curiosity and apprehension in her eyes. "Morning, Joe," I said. "What's going on?" Joe's grin widened as he reached us. "Well, you're not gonna believe this. Over the weekend, we shipped out 30 of those newly fixed trailers you worked your magic on, Twilight." He gestured broadly with his hands, clearly excited. "Sent 'em off to Dallas, Oklahoma, and Louisiana. Those locations were hurting for good trailers." I felt a swell of pride at that. It was good to know our hard work was making a real difference across multiple locations. But I could sense there was more to Joe's news. "That's great," Twilight said, her tone cautiously optimistic. "But I'm guessing there's more?" Joe nodded, his expression turning a bit sheepish. "Yeah, well... thing is, we also got 30 more broken ones shipped back here. Corporate figures since we've got our own magical repair shop," he winked at Twilight, "we might as well centralize all the repairs here." I felt a knot form in my stomach. Thirty trailers was a lot, even for Twilight's impressive abilities. "Let me guess," I said, trying to keep the tension out of my voice, "you're hoping Twilight can fix them?" "That's the long and short of it," Joe confirmed, looking between us. "I know it's a big ask, but corporate's real impressed with what you've been doing, Twilight. They're talking about making Houston the main repair hub for the whole company, nation-wide." I glanced at Twilight, trying to gauge her reaction. Her expression was a mix of determination and concern. I knew she wanted to help, but I also remembered all too well what happened when she pushed herself too hard. "We'll need to discuss this," I said to Joe, placing a supportive hand on Twilight's withers. "30 trailers is a lot to tackle all at once." Joe held up his hands in a placating gesture. "Of course, of course. No rush. Just... let me know what you decide, alright? And remember, we've still got that premium pay for recycling in place." As Joe walked away, I turned to Twilight. "What do you think, Twi? This is a pretty big job they're asking of you." Twilight's brow furrowed in thought. "It is," she agreed. "But... I think I can handle it. We'll just need to be smart about how we approach it. Maybe spread it out over the week?" I nodded, still feeling a bit uneasy but trusting in Twilight's judgment. "Alright. But promise me you'll take breaks and not push yourself too hard. We've got other things to figure out too, remember?" Twilight smiled, nuzzling against me briefly. "I promise. We'll make this work, Tim. Both the trailer repairs and our new diplomatic responsibilities." As we headed out to the yard to start our day, I couldn't shake the feeling that balancing all of this was going to be quite the challenge. But with Twilight by my side, I felt ready to face whatever came our way. * * * Twilight As Tim and I made our way out to the yard, I could feel the weight of the task ahead settling on my withers. 30 trailers was no small feat, even with my magic. The morning sun beat down on us as we approached the lineup of damaged trailers, their worn and battered exteriors a stark contrast to the gleaming, newly repaired ones nearby. I examined the first trailer closely, my horn glowing softly as I used my magic to assess its condition. To my relief, it wasn't as dire as I'd initially feared. "These aren't as bad as the ones from our first week," I said to Tim, who was inspecting another trailer nearby. "They're in good enough shape to have made the trip here, but I wouldn't trust them loaded. They'd definitely risk tickets off company property." Tim nodded, running a hand along a rusty seam. "Yeah, I see what you mean. So, what are you thinking? How many can you handle per day?" I did some quick calculations in my head. "Given their condition, I think we could safely manage 6 to 10 per day without overexerting myself. Maybe 10 per day for the ones that need lighter repairs That would have us finishing within the week." Just then, Joe approached us, clipboard in hand. "So, what's the verdict, magic mare?" I turned to him, a question forming in my mind. "Joe, do we have more recycling material to cover these repairs? Or are we going to need to scrap an old trailer to get the raw materials?" Joe's face lit up with a grin. "Ah, I'm glad you asked! We've actually got a bit of both for you. At least three of these trailers have drums in them we can use for recycling. The drums are too rusted to sell, but they should work just fine for your magic fix-it trick." I felt a surge of excitement at this news. Using the rusted drums would be perfect - we'd be solving two problems at once. "That's excellent, Joe. We can start with those trailers and see how far that gets us." Tim chimed in, his voice tinged with concern. "And you're sure about this, Twi? You're not going to push yourself too hard?" I gave him a reassuring nuzzle. "I promise, Tim. We'll take it slow and steady. 6 to 10 trailers a day, no more. And we'll reassess at the end of each day to make sure I'm not overdoing it." Joe clapped his hands together, looking pleased. "Sounds like a plan to me! I'll have the boys start unloading those drums for you. Just let me know when you're ready to begin." As Joe walked away, I turned back to the trailers, my mind already working through the magical equations I'd need for the repairs. Despite the challenge ahead, I felt a sense of purpose. This was something tangible I could do, a way to make a real difference while we figured out our new diplomatic roles. "Ready to get started?" I asked Tim, a determined smile on my face. He nodded, returning my smile with one of his own. "Let's do this. Just remember, we're in this together. If you need a break or feel like it's too much, you tell me, okay?" "I will," I promised, my heart swelling with affection for his constant care and concern. As the thought occurred to me, I called out to Joe before he could get too far away. "Joe, wait a moment!" He turned back, eyebrows raised in question. "What's up, Twilight?" "I can unload the drums myself," I explained, my horn glowing softly in anticipation. "It'll be quicker with my magic, and that way the other employees can focus on pulling orders and loading trucks." Joe's face lit up with a broad grin. "Well, ain't that something! That's mighty thoughtful of you, Twilight. I'll make sure the boys know you did it to make their jobs easier. They'll appreciate that." I felt a warm sense of satisfaction at his words. It was important to me that our coworkers knew we were all part of the same team, despite my unique abilities. Tim, who had been listening to our exchange, suddenly piped up with a question of his own. "Hey Joe, I've been meaning to ask - have you noticed if local sales are increasing because of the new company decals on the trailers? It's like free advertising rolling down the highways." Joe scratched his chin thoughtfully. "You know, it's funny you should mention that. Sales do seem to be on the uptick lately, but I can't say for certain if it's because of the trailers." He paused, considering for a moment before continuing. "Could be the trailers, could be word of mouth about our improved service since we've got more working units now. Hard to pin down exactly, but something's definitely working in our favor." Tim nodded, looking pleased. "That's great to hear. Every little bit helps, right?" "You got that right," Joe agreed enthusiastically. "Keep up the good work, you two. I'll check in with you later to see how things are progressing." As Joe headed back towards the warehouse, I turned to Tim with a smile. "Ready to start unloading those drums?" Tim returned my smile, a hint of pride in his eyes. "Lead the way, Ambassador. Let's show them what a little Equestrian magic can do." With a playful flick of my tail, I trotted towards the first trailer, my horn already glowing as I prepared to begin the day's work. Despite the challenges ahead, I felt a sense of purpose and belonging. We were making a difference here, and that felt good, no matter what our future diplomatic duties might entail. * * * Tim As Twilight began unloading the drums with her magic, I noticed a slight frown creasing her brow. It wasn't her usual look of concentration, but something different, almost puzzled. "Hey, Twi," I said, moving closer to her. "Everything okay? You look a bit concerned." Twilight paused, the drums hovering in mid-air surrounded by her purple magical aura. "It's strange, Tim," she replied, her voice thoughtful. "The metal... it feels different in my magic. Easier to move around, and possibly easier to recycle too." I raised an eyebrow, intrigued. "Easier? How so?" She seemed to consider her words carefully. "Well, if I were to put it in terms of those video games you've shown me... it's like my magic has leveled up. The same effort is yielding better results. I feel… stronger. These trailers used to be a boss fight… now it’s a mini-boss?" As she said this, a memory clicked in my mind. Twilight had mentioned before that the more she used her magic, the stronger it would get and the easier it would become to use. It made sense - like building a muscle through exercise. "That's fascinating," I said, chuckling at her use of gamer terms, watching as she effortlessly maneuvered the drums into neat stacks. "Do you think this 'level up' applies to all aspects of your magic? Like, would it include the added-value services you do, such as putting the new company decals on the company-owned trailers?" Twilight's eyes lit up at the question, her horn glowing a bit brighter. "You know, I hadn't thought about that, but it's certainly possible. The principles are similar, even if the applications are different." She set down the last of the drums and turned to face me fully, her expression excited. "This could be really beneficial, Tim. If my magic is indeed getting stronger and more efficient, we might be able to do even more than we initially thought." I nodded, feeling a mix of excitement and caution. "That's great news, Twi. But let's still be careful, okay? Even if it's easier, I don't want you overexerting yourself." Twilight nuzzled against me affectionately. "Of course. I promise I'll be careful. But this could really help us meet the increased demands without putting too much strain on me." As we turned back to the task at hand, I couldn't help but feel a sense of awe. Twilight's magic never ceased to amaze me, and the thought of what she might be capable of as her powers grew was both thrilling and a little intimidating. "Well then, Ambassador," I said with a grin, "shall we put your leveled-up magic to the test?" Twilight's answering smile was bright and determined. "Let's do it." As we set to work, I found myself wondering how we could test Twilight's growing magical abilities without putting her at risk. I knew her well by now. She would want to push the limits to find her new limit, but there had to be a way to do so safely… * * * Twilight Eager to test the limits of my apparently enhanced magical abilities, I decided to start with a 'test trailer' - one of the company-owned trailers that wasn't part of the 30 brought back from other locations. I figured it would be a good way to gauge how much easier the repairs and decal application had become without potentially compromising our main workload. "I'm going to try something," I told Tim, my horn already beginning to glow. "Just a quick test on this trailer here." Tim nodded, a mix of curiosity and caution in his eyes. "Alright, but take it easy, okay?" I smiled reassuringly at him before turning my attention to the task at hand. Focusing my magic on a few of the drums we'd just unloaded, I began the recycling process. To my shock, the metal seemed to flow like water under my magical influence, effortlessly morphing and reshaping itself to repair the worn areas of the trailer. What would have taken considerable concentration and effort before now felt as natural as breathing. The metal moved precisely where I wanted it, filling in dents, reinforcing weak spots, and even smoothing out the surface in preparation for the decals. Speaking of decals, I decided to push a bit further. Channeling my magic, I created the vibrant company logo and information, applying it to the newly repaired surface of the trailer. The process was so smooth, so effortless, that for a moment I thought I might have imagined it. But there it was - a perfectly repaired and branded trailer, gleaming in the morning sun as if it had just rolled off the assembly line. "Tim," I gasped, my eyes wide with disbelief. "Did you see that?" Tim was staring at the trailer, his jaw slightly slack. "I... yeah, I saw it, but I'm not sure I believe it. Twilight, that was incredible. How do you feel?" I took a moment to assess myself. Despite the work I'd just done, I felt... fine. Better than fine, actually. There was none of the usual drain I associated with this level of magical exertion. "I feel great," I said, my voice filled with wonder. "It was almost effortless, Tim. Like... like I was just thinking about what I wanted to happen, and it did." Tim approached the trailer, running his hand along the newly repaired surface. "This is amazing, Twi. Do you think you could handle the rest of the trailers like this?" I nodded slowly, still processing the implications of this development. "I think so. In fact, I'm pretty sure I could do more than we initially planned. Maybe even all 30 in one day, if we needed to." As soon as the words left my mouth, I saw Tim's expression shift to one of concern. I quickly added, "But we won't do that. I promise I'll still pace myself, even if it feels easier now." Tim relaxed a bit at that, offering me a smile. "Good. This is incredible, Twilight, but let's not get carried away. We'll stick to our original plan for now, okay?" I nodded in agreement, but my mind was already racing with possibilities. If my magic had indeed 'leveled up' this much, what else might I be capable of? As we turned our attention to the rest of the day's work, I couldn't help but feel a mixture of excitement and apprehension. This new development was thrilling, but it also meant we'd have even more to discuss when we finally got in touch with Celestia or the Bureau of Equestrian Affairs. I noticed Tim's distant look, his eyes scanning the row of company-owned trailers. His brow was furrowed in that way it always did when he was deep in thought. "Tim?" I asked, gently nudging him with my hoof. "What's on your mind?" He turned to me, his expression a mix of concern and curiosity. "I've been thinking, Twi. You're feeling pretty confident about these new abilities, right?" I nodded, still amazed by how effortless the magic had felt. "Yes, it's quite remarkable." Tim sighed, running a hand through his hair. "I want to test these new limits of yours. But the thing is, there's no truly 'safe' way to do it. To find out the limit, you have to reach it." My ears perked up, both excited and a little nervous about where this was going. "What did you have in mind?" He gestured down the line of trailers. "I was thinking we could try to recycle the established limit of about 10 tons - that's about 400 drums. But instead of focusing on the 30 trailers that need major repairs, why don't you start with the 50 'good' in-service trailers that only need light repairs and new company decals?" I considered this, seeing the logic in his plan. It would allow me to work on a larger number of trailers without the strain of major repairs, pushing myself in a safer way. Tim continued, "Any leftover material after those 50 could go to however many of the 30 trailers that need more extensive repairs. We keep going until all 400 drums are used up or until you need to stop." I felt a mix of excitement and apprehension. This would indeed push my limits, but in a controlled way. "That's... actually a really good idea, Tim. It allows me to test my enhanced abilities without immediately jumping into the most difficult tasks." Tim nodded, looking relieved that I agreed. "Exactly. And if at any point you feel overwhelmed or tired, we stop immediately. No questions asked." I nuzzled against him, grateful for his constant concern for my well-being. "Deal. Shall we run this by Joe first?" "Absolutely," Tim agreed. "Let's go find him and get this plan in motion." As we walked back towards the warehouse to find Joe, I couldn't help but feel a thrill of anticipation. This would be a true test of my new magical prowess, and I was eager to see just how much I could accomplish. At the same time, a small part of me wondered if this enhanced magic was somehow related to our new diplomatic status. There was still so much we didn't understand about my role as an ambassador. But for now, I pushed those thoughts aside. We had work to do, and I was ready to show Pipeline - and myself - just what I was capable of. * * * Tim Twilight and I found Joe near the loading docks, overseeing a shipment. When we explained our plan, his eyes lit up with interest. "Now that's thinking outside the box," Joe said, nodding approvingly. "If nothing else, it'll be interesting to see if we can boost sales with all those newly decaled trailers rolling down the highways. Free advertising, right?" I couldn't help but grin at his enthusiasm. "Exactly. So, you're on board?" "You bet," Joe replied. "Let me head back to the yard and mark all 80-remaining company-owned trailers. We don't want Twilight accidentally repairing or repainting any of the rentals." As Joe hurried off, clipboard in hand, I turned to Twilight. Her eyes were bright with excitement, but I could see a hint of nervousness there too. I placed a hand on her withers, offering a reassuring smile. "Alright, Twi. Before we start, let's break this down into manageable chunks," I suggested. "How about you separate the drums into groups of 50? That way, if this takes more magic than we anticipate, you're not committed to all 400 at once." Twilight nodded, her horn already beginning to glow. "Good thinking, Tim. It'll give us clear stopping points if needed." I watched in awe as she effortlessly levitated the drums, arranging them into neat groups of 50. It never ceased to amaze me how gracefully she wielded her magic, even for such mundane tasks. "Remember," I said softly, "if at any point you feel tired or overwhelmed, we stop. No questions asked, no feeling bad about it. Okay?" Twilight nuzzled against me affectionately. "I promise, Tim. I'll be careful." As Joe returned, giving us a thumbs up to indicate the trailers were marked and ready, I felt a mixture of excitement and apprehension. This was a big task, potentially game-changing for both Twilight and Pipeline. But as I looked at Twilight, her face set with determination, I knew we were ready for whatever came next. "Alright, Ambassador," I said with a playful wink, "show us what you can do." Twilight's horn began to glow brighter, and I stepped back, ready to witness what I was sure would be an impressive display of magical prowess. As the first group of drums began to disintegrate under her magical influence, I couldn't help but wonder how this enhanced magic might impact our future with the company. If they didn’t want us to quit before, they certainly couldn’t afford for us to quit now. * * * Twilight As I began working on the first group of 50 drums, I couldn't help but feel a twinge of embarrassment. Tim's idea to break the work into smaller chunks was so practical, so logical - I should have thought of it myself. After all, wasn't I supposed to be the problem solver? The organized one? I made a mental note to thank him later for his foresight. We were clearly better together than we ever could be apart. Pushing aside my self-criticism, I focused on the task at hand. My horn glowed brightly as I channeled my magic into the drums, feeling the metal yield easily to my will. It was still astonishing how much easier this process had become. The raw materials flowed like water, weaving seamlessly into the trailers' structures, repairing dents, reinforcing weak spots, and applying fresh paint and decals. To my amazement, each group of 50 drums seemed to completely refurbish about 20 trailers. The efficiency was staggering. As I worked through the second group, then the third, and finally the fourth, I watched with a mixture of pride and disbelief as trailer after trailer emerged looking brand new, gleaming in the sunlight with fresh paint and crisp company logos. By the time I finished the fourth group - 200 drums in total - all 80 of the company-owned 'in-service' trailers stood before us, looking as if they had just rolled off the assembly line. The transformation was remarkable, far exceeding what I had initially thought possible. But as I admired our handiwork, I suddenly realized how drained I felt. The exhilaration of pushing my magical limits gave way to a bone-deep weariness. My legs felt wobbly, and my head was starting to ache. Despite the increased ease of using my magic, the sheer volume of work had taken its toll. I turned to Tim, who had been watching nearby with a mixture of awe and concern. "Tim," I called out, my voice sounding more tired than I'd expected, "I think... I think I need to stop." Tim was at my side in an instant, his arm wrapping around me supportively. "You've done more than enough, Twi. Let's get you sitting down." As he guided me to a bench that was in place for the employees to rest in-between unloading drums into customer trucks, I couldn't help but feel a conflicting mix of pride and frustration. We'd accomplished so much - far more than we'd initially planned - but I was exhausted after only half of what we'd set out to do. "I'm sorry," I murmured as Tim helped me sit. "I thought I could do more..." Tim shook his head, his expression gentle but firm. "Don't apologize, Twilight. Look at what you've achieved. It's incredible." As I caught my breath, looking out at the rows of perfectly refurbished trailers, I had to admit he was right. We'd made significant progress, even if we hadn't completed the full 400 drums. And more importantly, we'd learned valuable information about my new magical limits. Still, as the fatigue settled into my bones, I couldn't help but wonder: how would this enhanced but still limited magic affect our future diplomatic duties? And how could we balance those duties with our work here at Pipeline? For now, though, I was content to rest, leaning against Tim as we admired the fruits of our labor. We'd figure out the rest later, together. After resting long enough to be able to walk to the car, Tim insisted on taking me out for an early lunch, claiming I needed to replenish my energy after such an intense magical workout. As we settled into a cozy booth at a nearby diner, the aroma of coffee and comfort food filling the air, I felt my exhaustion begin to lift slightly. "You really outdid yourself today, Twi," Tim said as he passed me a menu. "I think you've earned a break and a hearty meal." I smiled gratefully, both for the food and his unwavering support. As we waited for our orders to arrive, I realized this was the perfect opportunity to address the questions that had been nagging at us all morning. "Tim," I began, "I think now's a good time to write to Celestia about our ambassador duties. Do you mind if I do that while we wait for our food?" Tim nodded encouragingly. "Go for it. The sooner we get some clarity on this, the better." I summoned a quill and parchment from my magical storage, and began to write: ‘Dear Princess Celestia, I hope this letter finds you well. Tim and I are honored by the appointment as Ambassadors of Equestria to Houston, but we find ourselves in need of some clarification regarding our new roles. Specifically, we have several questions: 1. What exactly will our duties as Ambassadors entail? 2. Will we be provided with an office or workspace to conduct our diplomatic affairs? 3. Are we expected to leave our current jobs at Pipeline Express, or can we balance both roles? 4. Will there be compensation for our services as Ambassadors, particularly if it requires us to reduce our hours at our current employment? 5. How much time are we expected to dedicate to our diplomatic duties each week? 6. Will we receive any formal training or guidance for our roles? Additionally, I've noticed a significant increase in my magical abilities recently. Is this related to our new diplomatic status? If so, how might this affect our duties? We are eager to serve Equestria to the best of our abilities, but we also need to ensure we can manage these new responsibilities alongside our family life and current work commitments. Your guidance in this matter would be greatly appreciated. Your faithful student, Twilight Sparkle’ As I finished writing, our food arrived. I sent the letter off with a burst of magic, then turned my attention to the hearty meal before me. "Do you think that covers everything?" I asked Tim between bites of my veggie burger. He nodded, swallowing a mouthful of his club sandwich. "I think so. You hit all the main points we were concerned about. Now we just have to wait for her response." As we continued our lunch, discussing the events of the morning and speculating about what Celestia's response might be, I felt a mix of excitement and apprehension. Our lives had already changed so much in such a short time, and it seemed we were on the brink of even more changes. But looking across the table at Tim, seeing the love and support in his eyes, I knew that whatever came next, we'd face it together. Ambassador or not, that was the most important thing. As we finished our lunch, I felt a familiar tingle of magic. A scroll materialized in front of me, wrapped in Celestia's signature golden aura. Tim's eyes widened, clearly surprised by the quick response. "That was fast," he remarked as I unrolled the parchment. I nodded, my eyes quickly scanning the contents. "Celestia always was prompt with her replies," I said, a mix of emotions washing over me as I read. "Well?" Tim asked, leaning forward with anticipation. "What does she say?" I took a deep breath, organizing my thoughts before responding. "It looks like we're in for some changes, Tim. According to Celestia, we should expect to spend about 20 hours a week on our ambassador duties." Tim's eyebrows shot up. "20 hours? That's... that's half a work week." I nodded, continuing, "She says we'll likely need to go part-time at Pipeline to accommodate this. Equestria is in the process of renting an office for us in downtown Houston where we'll conduct our diplomatic affairs." Tim leaned back in his seat, processing this information. "I see. And what about compensation? Did she address that?" A small smile tugged at my lips. "Yes, she did. We'll be paid for our work as ambassadors. In fact..." I gestured to a small, hefty pouch that had appeared alongside the scroll. "She's sent our first months pay in bits." Tim's eyes widened at the sight of the bag. "Wow. That's... very tangible." I couldn't help but chuckle at his reaction before continuing, "As for my increased magical abilities, Celestia says that's all my own doing. Apparently, she doesn't have the power to make a unicorn more magically powerful. It's just a result of all the practice I've been getting at Pipeline." Tim nodded slowly, a proud smile spreading across his face. "I always knew you were something special, Twi. Looks like all that hard work is paying off in more ways than one." I felt a warm glow at his words, but couldn't shake a lingering concern. "This is going to change things quite a bit, isn't it? Going part-time at Pipeline, splitting our focus..." Tim reached across the table, taking my hoof in his hand. "Change isn't always bad, Twilight. We'll figure it out together, just like we always do." I squeezed his hand, grateful for his unwavering support. "You're right. We've faced bigger challenges than this." As we paid for our lunch and prepared to head back to Pipeline, my mind was already racing with plans and possibilities. We'd need to talk to Melvin about reducing our hours, figure out childcare for Sara during our ambassador duties, and so much more. But looking at Tim, seeing the determination and love in his eyes, I felt a surge of confidence. Whatever challenges lay ahead in our new roles as ambassadors, I knew we'd face them head-on, together. "Ready to go break the news to Joe and Melvin?" I asked as we stepped out of the diner. Tim nodded, a hint of excitement in his voice. "Let's do it. Time to start our next big adventure, Ambassador Sparkle." With a smile, we headed back to Pipeline, ready to embark on this new chapter of our lives. * * * Tim As we settled back into the car, I couldn't help but reach into the bag Celestia had sent, pulling out one of the golden coins. The weight of it in my hand was substantial, and I found myself staring at it, a mixture of disbelief and awe washing over me. Twilight must have noticed my expression because she asked, "Tim? What's wrong?" Without answering, I brought the coin to my mouth and bit down gently. The soft metal gave way slightly under the pressure of my teeth. My eyes widened as the realization hit me. "This is gold," I said, my voice barely above a whisper. "Pure gold." I turned to Twilight, my heart racing. "How many bits did she send us?" Twilight replied casually, "It should be 1,000 bits. That's the standard diplomatic stipend for a month, I believe." I felt like I couldn't breathe. "And these are... these are one ounce each?" Twilight nodded, looking slightly confused by my reaction. "Yes, that's correct. Why? What's so special about that?" I sputtered, trying to find the words. "Twilight... Celestia just sent us 1,000 ounces of gold." She nodded again, still not grasping the significance. "Yes, that's what I said. Is there something wrong with that?" I took a deep breath, trying to calm myself. "Twi, on Earth, gold is incredibly valuable. Right now, it's worth about $2,624 per ounce." I watched as understanding slowly dawned on her face. "So that means..." "If we exchanged this for American dollars," I said, my voice shaking slightly, "Celestia just gave us 2.6 million dollars. Twilight... we're rich." Twilight's jaw dropped, her eyes widening in shock. "2.6 million... Tim, that's... that's more money than I've ever even thought about!" I nodded, still struggling to process it myself. "It's more than I ever dreamed of having. And this is per month!? This changes... well, everything. From blue collar to 31 million dollars per year in wages…" As the magnitude of our newfound wealth sank in, my mind started racing. We could pay off the trailer immediately. We could buy a house - a real house, not just a mobile home. We could set up a college fund for Sara, maybe even think about having more kids without worrying about the financial strain. But with these thoughts came a wave of responsibility. This was a lot of money, and we'd need to be smart about how we used it. I turned to Twilight, seeing the same mix of excitement and apprehension in her eyes that I felt. "We need to think carefully about this, Twi. We can't just go spending it all at once." She nodded, her practical nature asserting itself. "You're right. We should talk to a financial advisor, maybe invest some of it. And we definitely shouldn't tell anyone about this. At least, not until we can no longer hide it." I agreed, feeling a surge of affection for her level-headedness. Even in the face of sudden wealth, she was thinking clearly. As we sat there in the car, the bag of gold bits between us, I couldn't help but laugh. "You know," I said, shaking my head in disbelief, "when I woke up this morning, I never thought I'd end the day a millionaire." Twilight giggled, the sound breaking some of the tension. "I guess being an ambassador comes with more perks than we realized." I started the car, still grinning. "Better than winning the lottery. Now, let's get back to Pipeline. We've got some news to break to Joe and Melvin - and I don't just mean about going part-time." As we drove back to work, I couldn't shake the feeling that our lives had just changed dramatically once again. But with Twilight by my side, I felt ready for whatever this new chapter might bring. Back at Pipeline, Twilight and I made our way to Melvin's office. The weight of the gold bits in my pocket served as a constant reminder of how much our lives had changed in just a few short hours. As we entered Melvin's office, I could see the surprise on his face at our unscheduled visit. "Tim, Twilight," he greeted us, gesturing to the chairs in front of his desk. "What can I do for you?" We sat down, and I took a deep breath before speaking. "Melvin, we've got some news. Twilight has been appointed as the Equestrian Ambassador to Houston." Melvin's eyebrows shot up. "Ambassador? Well, congratulations, Twilight. That's quite an honor." Twilight nodded, a mix of pride and nervousness in her voice. "Thank you, Melvin. But this new role comes with some... complications." I picked up where she left off. "We're going to need to drop to part-time status. We'd be working 8 am to noon, Monday through Friday." Melvin's expression shifted from surprise to concern. "I see. Well, that's going to be a problem. Pipeline doesn't have any part-time employees." I had anticipated this response, and I was ready. "Melvin, Twilight's ambassadorial duties are more important than any paycheck Pipeline could pay either of us. If you can't accommodate our part-time status, we'll both have to quit." I saw Melvin's eyes widen slightly at the firmness in my tone. He leaned back in his chair, considering our words. "I'll have to ask HR if they're willing to make an exception," he said after a moment. I couldn't help but smile a little. "Actually, Melvin, we've both been part-time since Twilight started. The only difference now is that you won't be paying us for 40 hours a week anymore." Melvin looked confused for a moment, then understanding dawned on his face. He chuckled, shaking his head. "You've got me there, Tim. You two have certainly been producing full-time results in part-time hours." He was quiet for a moment, clearly weighing his options. Finally, he spoke. "Alright, here's what we'll do. I'll approve your part-time status on a trial basis. We'll reassess after a month to see how it's working out. But I have to warn you, if productivity drops significantly, we might have to revisit this arrangement." I nodded, feeling a wave of relief. "That's fair, Melvin. Thank you." Twilight spoke up, her voice filled with determination. "We'll make sure our work doesn't suffer, Melvin. You have my word." Melvin smiled. "I believe you, Twilight. You two have been nothing short of miraculous for this company. Now, is there anything else?" I glanced at Twilight, and we shared a silent agreement. Now wasn't the time to mention our sudden wealth, but there was one more thing we needed to address. "Actually, Melvin, there is one more thing," I said, turning back to face him. "Twilight and I are now officially married under Equestrian law. We'll need to update our HR records to reflect that." Melvin's eyebrows raised in surprise, but a smile quickly spread across his face. "Well, congratulations to you both! That's wonderful news. I'll make sure HR gets that information right away." Twilight beamed, her hoof finding my hand. "Thank you, Melvin. We're very happy." As we left his office, I felt a mix of emotions. Relief that we'd secured our part-time status and updated our marital status, excitement about our new roles and financial situation, and a touch of nervousness about the changes ahead. "Well," I said to Twilight as we walked back to the yard, "that went even better than I expected." Twilight nodded, a warm smile on her face. "It did. I'm glad we remembered to tell him about our marriage. Now we just have to live up to our promise of maintaining productivity." I chuckled, wrapping an arm around her shoulders. "With your magic and our teamwork? I'm not worried." As we returned to our work, I couldn't help but feel a sense of anticipation. Our lives were changing in ways I never could have imagined, but with Twilight by my side - now officially my wife in both worlds - I was ready for whatever came next. * * * Twilight As we returned to the yard, the late morning sun beating down on us, I felt a nagging concern about my magical capabilities after the early morning's exertion. Despite the rest and the hearty lunch, I wasn't sure how much more I could manage today. "Tim," I said, my voice tinged with uncertainty, "I think I should test my magic before we commit to any more work." He nodded, understanding in his eyes. "Good idea, Twi. Take it easy, okay?" I focused on a single drum nearby, my horn glowing as I attempted to lift it. The magic came, but it felt sluggish, like trying to run through waist-deep water. With more effort than it should have taken, I managed to lift the drum a few feet off the ground before gently setting it back down. Sighing, I turned to Tim. "It's no good. I might be able to unload some trailers of drums or pull a few drum orders, but I can't do any more recycling today." Tim's hand found my withers, giving a comforting squeeze. "That's okay, Twilight. You've already done more than enough today. We don't want to push you too hard." I nodded, grateful for his understanding but still feeling a twinge of frustration. "I know. It's just... I hate feeling limited like this." "Hey," Tim said softly, crouching down to meet my eyes, "you're not limited. You're just recharging after doing something amazing. Remember how many trailers you fixed this morning? That's not something to take lightly." His words helped ease some of my disappointment. "You're right. I guess I'm still adjusting to these new magical limits." Tim smiled, standing back up. "We both are. But that's okay. We'll figure it out together, just like everything else." As we walked towards the warehouse to see what non-magical tasks we could help with, I couldn't help but reflect on how much had changed in just one day. New jobs, new wealth, and new insights into my magical abilities. It was a lot to process. But looking at Tim, seeing the love and support in his eyes, I felt a renewed sense of confidence. Whatever challenges lay ahead - magical, diplomatic, or otherwise - we would face them as a team. "So," I said, a hint of playfulness in my voice, "ready to show me how to pull orders the old-fashioned way, Sir Tim?" Tim laughed, the sound warming my heart. "Lead the way, Madam Ambassador. Let's show Pipeline what a good old-fashioned work ethic looks like." As we entered the warehouse, ready to tackle whatever tasks awaited us, I felt a surge of affection for my husband and partner. He got the orders we needed and we got started. As the afternoon wore on, Tim and I found ourselves working side by side, pulling drum orders the "human" way. It was physically demanding work, especially compared to my usual magical methods, but there was something satisfying about it too. I could feel the strain in my muscles, the sweat on my brow, and it gave me a new appreciation for the effort Tim and our coworkers put in every day. Tim showed me the ropes, explaining the most efficient ways to stack and move the drums without magic. His patience and expertise reminded me once again why he was such a valuable employee here at Pipeline, magic or no magic. "You're getting the hang of it," Tim said with a grin as I successfully maneuvered a particularly stubborn drum onto a pallet. I couldn't help but beam with pride. "Well, I have a good teacher." As we worked, we chatted about our new roles as ambassadors, speculating about what our duties might entail and how we'd balance them with our work at Pipeline. It was nice to know that our part-time status wouldn't kick in until we had an office to work out of. It gave us time to adjust and plan. The hours ticked by, and before I knew it, Melvin was calling out that it was time to clock out. I blinked in surprise, realizing we'd managed to put in a full eight-hour day despite everything that had happened. As we made our way to clock out, I felt a sense of accomplishment wash over me. "You know," I said to Tim, "it feels good to have put in a full day for once. No magical exhaustion, no early departures." Tim nodded, a hint of pride in his eyes. "You did great, Twi. I know it's not what you're used to, but you really stepped up." "We both did," I replied, nuzzling against him affectionately. "I think we make a pretty good team, good Sir." He chuckled, wrapping an arm around me. "That we do, Ambassador Sparkle. That we do." As we left Pipeline and headed to pick up Sara, I couldn't help but feel optimistic about our future. Yes, there were big changes ahead, and yes, there would be challenges to face. But today had shown me that Tim and I could adapt and thrive, no matter what came our way. Our lives were transforming in ways I never could have imagined when I first arrived on Earth, but with Tim by my side, I was excited to see where this new chapter would lead us. Ambassador, wife, mother, and now a newly minted manual laborer - I was adding new roles every day, it seemed. But as long as I had Tim and our little family, I knew I could handle anything. The future was bright, and I was ready to embrace it with open hooves. * * * Author's Note I Write Commissions! As a matter of fact, I have several commissions in progress right now. I don't want to slow down on this story but the paying customers have to come first. If anyone wants to sponsor The Warehouse, to keep it going with regular updates, I'm open to offers. As to everyone else, if you have a story idea that your willing to pay 5 dollars per 1,000 words as a commission, DM me and we'll work out the details. //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 15 - Plans for the Future //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 15 - Plans for the Future Twilight Leaving work felt like the usual routine - the hum of traffic, the glow of the city lights, the way the setting sun painted the Houston skyline in deep reds and purples. I settled into my seat, expecting the familiar drive home. But after a few minutes, I noticed Tim had taken a different turn, heading away from our usual route. I frowned slightly, glancing at him. "Hey, this isn't the way home. Where are we going?" He kept his eyes on the road, a small, determined smile playing on his lips. “We’re heading to the Houston Gold Exchange. Figured it’s time to sell those Equestrian Bits we got today.” The explanation made sense, but it still caught me off guard. I knew the bits wouldn’t get us far as they were - most shops around here wouldn’t even know what to do with Equestrian currency. Sure, they were made of gold, but unless we converted them to dollars, we couldn’t actually use them for groceries or rent. “Yeah, that makes sense,” I admitted, thinking it over. “The bits won’t do much good just sitting around. But why today?” Tim shot me a quick glance, then focused back on the road, his expression turning serious. “Daycare called earlier. Said they might need to close early tomorrow. Figured I’d take care of this now while we don’t have Sara with us. Don’t want her getting bored while we haggle over exchange rates.” I couldn’t argue with that. Sara had already spent more time at the daycare than I would like, but I understood that humans had different ways of handling families than Equestrians, and with all the disruptions, a long stop at a gold exchange would be the last thing she’d have patience for. “You’re right,” I said, shifting in my seat. “Besides, it’s better to turn the bits into something we can actually use. But are you sure we’re ready to sell? What if-” “Hey,” he cut in gently, glancing at me with a reassuring smile. “We’ve got this, Twi. It’s just a little safety net, turning one kind of gold into another. And it’s time we use it.” I nodded slowly, feeling the weight of the decision. Equestrian Bits, with their rich gold, held value back home, but here? They needed to be converted into something people understood. And it wasn’t pocket change either - 1,000 ounces of gold, something that could fetch close to 2.6 million dollars. My ears twitched back at the thought. “That’s a lot of money, Tim. What are you planning to do with all that money?” Tim kept his eyes on the road, his expression thoughtful, serious. “Well, I’ve been thinking it through,” he began. “First thing, I want to max out the contributions to our 401(k)s. Both yours and mine. Secure our retirement, make sure we’re prepared for the future.” I tilted my head, trying to understand the plan he had in mind. Money wasn’t something I’d had to think much about back in Equestria—bits were simple, and saving wasn’t as complicated. But I trusted Tim. He always seemed to know how to navigate these human financial mazes. “And... that’s like a savings account for the long run, right? For when we’re older?” “Exactly,” he said, glancing at me with a small, approving smile. “And after that, I want to max out our Roth IRAs, too. One for you, one for me, and one for Sara. It’s more retirement savings, but it grows tax-free, so it’ll be worth even more down the line.” I nodded, following along. “That’s a lot to put into saving. What about now? What about... us?” Tim’s smile softened as he turned back to the road. “I’m getting to that, Twi. After we’ve got the savings squared away, I want to pay off the trailer. We’ve been good tenants, but owning it outright would mean we could give it to Jerry—an old friend of mine you haven’t met yet. He’s been living in this beat-up old place that really should be condemned. He helped me out a lot when I was younger, and it feels like the right thing to do.” My ears perked at the thought, the gesture hitting close to home. “That’s... really generous, Tim. I’m sure he’d appreciate that. But... after that?” He reached over, resting a warm hand on my hoof. “After that, we start looking for something real, Twi. A proper house. A place we can call our own. Something with enough space for Sara to run around, maybe even room for you to have a study or a workshop.” My heart leapt at the thought—somewhere we could truly put down roots. A home that wasn’t just a roof over our heads, but a place where we could watch Sara grow up, where we could build a future together. It felt... big. Bigger than I’d let myself imagine before. I squeezed his hand, my tail swishing softly against the seat. “You’ve thought this all through, haven’t you?” Tim’s smile was a little sheepish, a little proud. “Yeah, I have. It’s not going to be easy, but... it’s a start. And I think it’s time we start building something for real.” I leaned back, letting the thought settle into my mind, feeling the weight of it and the hope it carried. We had been living day by day for so long—making ends meet, figuring out how to balance two worlds. But now? Now it felt like we were starting to build something more. As the car slowed near the exchange, I glanced at him again, my heart warm with the possibilities. “I think you’re right, Tim. It’s time.” * * * Tim The Houston Gold Exchange was a sleek, modern building nestled between glassy high-rises, the kind of place that seemed to buzz with quiet efficiency. When we walked in, the atmosphere was all business—security guards by the entrance, a row of polished counters with people waiting to weigh, measure, and assess the value of every piece of precious metal that came through the door. Turns out, there wasn’t much need for negotiation. The moment they saw our Equestrian Bits, their eyes widened, but the staff quickly fell into their routine. They knew the weight, knew the worth. It took less time than I’d expected for them to verify the gold's purity and cut us a check for 2.6 million dollars—no questions, no hassle, no back-and-forth. Just the cold, precise click of their machinery and the swipe of a pen. I turned to Twilight as we walked out, the check folded neatly in my wallet. “Well, that was easier than I thought it’d be,” I remarked, slipping my arm around her withers. “Guess they really wanted those bits.” She gave a small, amused snort, her ears flicking. “You seem disappointed you didn’t get to argue with them over the price.” I laughed, the sound mixing with the hum of city noise as we crossed the parking lot back to the car. “Yeah, maybe I was looking forward to a little haggling. But I’ll take a smooth transaction over a headache any day.” From there, things moved quickly. We drove straight to the bank, depositing the check without much fanfare. The teller’s eyes went wide when she saw the amount, but she kept it professional, pushing through the paperwork with practiced precision. It felt surreal watching those numbers flash across the screen—more money than I’d ever seen in my life, all of it flowing into our account with a few clicks and keystrokes. When it was done, I let out a long breath, feeling like we’d crossed some invisible threshold. “All right, now let’s go get our little girl.” Twilight smiled up at me, a warm, grateful look in her eyes. “Yes, let’s.” By the time we pulled up outside Sara’s daycare, the afternoon sun had dipped lower, casting long shadows across the playground where a few kids still ran around, their laughter carrying on the breeze. I spotted Sara right away - she was sitting cross-legged in the grass, showing a few other kids her collection of colorful pebbles, her face alight with enthusiasm. The moment she saw us, she jumped to her feet, bounding over with her little backpack bouncing against her shoulders. “Daddy! Mommy! You’re here earlier than they told me!” she called out, practically leaping into my arms when I crouched down to catch her. “Hey, munchkin!” I said, lifting her up and giving her a spin that made her squeal with delight. “Yeah, our errands didn’t take as long as we thought.” Twilight stepped closer, nuzzling Sara’s cheek affectionately. “Were you a good filly today?” she asked, and Sara nodded vigorously, still beaming. “I showed my pebbles to everyone, and Ms. Reyes says I’m a great storyteller!” she chirped, her face flushed with pride. Twilight and I exchanged a fond look - every day with Sara felt like a new adventure, and she brought such life to even the smallest moments. “Well, I think that deserves a treat after dinner,” I said, buckling her into the backseat as she rambled on about her day. “How about ice cream?” Sara’s eyes widened, and she clapped her hands. “Yes! Please!” Twilight settled into her seat beside me, shooting me a conspiratorial smile. “I think you just made her entire week, Tim.” I shrugged, chuckling. “What can I say? She deserves it.” The drive home was peaceful, Sara’s chatter filling the car, but as soon as we stepped through the door, the usual evening rush caught up with us. The kitchen felt too quiet, too normal, after the whirlwind of the day’s events. But that normalcy had its own comfort - something to hold onto amidst all the changes. I glanced at the clock. “Well, looks like we’ve got about half an hour before we’ll have a hungry little monster on our hands. What do you think, Twi? Spaghetti or stir-fry?” Twilight hummed, considering. “Stir-fry might be quicker. Plus, we’ve got those veggies from the market.” “Stir-fry it is,” I said, rolling up my sleeves. Twilight’s magic flared to life beside me, pulling out the ingredients, knives and cutting board ready in seconds. Even after all these months, watching her work with such effortless precision still amazed me. She caught me staring and gave a knowing look. “Are you going to help, or just watch me chop vegetables with your mouth hanging open?” I grinned, grabbing the wok from its hook. “Hey, I’m on rice duty, remember?” With the sizzle of oil in the pan and the comforting rhythm of chopping, the weight of the day slowly melted away. The smell of garlic and ginger filled the kitchen, and we fell into our familiar routine, working side by side, building our new life one meal at a time. * * * Twilight After dinner, the house fell into a comfortable quiet. Sara was playing in the living room, her toys spread out in a colorful mess that filled the air with her delighted hums and giggles. I stood at the kitchen sink, washing up the last of the dishes, while Tim dried them beside me. Even in these small, mundane moments, there was a sense of peace—a feeling of rightness that settled over our little family. But there was still a lot on my mind, lingering questions from earlier. I glanced over at Tim, his focus on stacking the plates back into the cupboard. “Hey, how long do you think that check will take to clear?” I asked, keeping my voice low enough so it wouldn’t carry to the other room. He shrugged, a thoughtful look crossing his face. “It should hit our account by Thursday, maybe Friday at the latest. Banks usually hold larger checks for a few days to make sure everything’s legit.” I nodded, considering that. It felt like a rush to get things done, but Tim had a way of grounding everything, even big decisions like these. Still, there were more questions, and the practical side of me needed answers. “And... the 401(k) and Roth IRA stuff you were talking about earlier? What are the limits on those?” Tim leaned back against the counter, crossing his arms as he thought it through. “For the 401(k), the annual contribution limit is $22,500 per person. If you’re over 50, you can put in more, but we don’t have to worry about that yet. For Roth IRAs, it’s $6,500 per person, and the same for Sara. So that’s about $75,000 altogether for the three of us. The rest, we can save for the house.” The numbers spun through my mind, each one feeling like a step in the plan he’d laid out. A plan that was taking us somewhere new—somewhere more stable. I dried my hooves with a dish towel, turning fully to face him. “Where do you think we should start looking for a house, then? I mean, we have to move soon, don’t we?” Tim’s expression grew more serious, the lines of worry showing through. He ran a hand through his hair, looking out through the window where the last of the sunset painted the sky in deep purples and pinks. “Yeah, we can’t stay in the trailer much longer. The media... they’re gonna come sniffing around once the Bureau of Equestrian Affairs sets up shop officially, and the last thing we need is headlines about ‘the Equestrian Ambassador living in a trailer park.’” I winced at the thought. Tim had explained to me how human media could turn something simple into a spectacle, and we both knew that our little family could easily become a target. “Yeah, that would be... bad. So, where do you think we should look?” He let out a slow breath, crossing his arms again. “I’ve been thinking Kingwood might be a good option. It’s north of Houston, and the homes there are nice—big enough for the kind of image you’ll need as an ambassador. They range from half a million to around a million dollars, depending on the size. It’s close enough that I can still manage the drive to work, but it’s far enough that we’d have some space, some privacy.” My ears twitched as I processed his words. A million dollars sounded like an impossible amount, even with the gold money in our account. But Tim had done his research - he always did - and I knew he wouldn’t suggest something unless he thought we could make it work. “So, you’re thinking a place that’s... presentable, right? For when the Bureau starts holding meetings?” He nodded, his jaw tight with the tension that came with talking about this new reality. “Yeah. Most of the meetings will be in the office but we will be expected to entertain guests at home, throw some parties, mingle, etc. You need a home where you can meet with officials if it comes to that, where the house isn’t the story they write about. And somewhere Sara can grow up without a hundred cameras trying to catch a glimpse of her playing outside. We need to move quickly, Twi - before things start getting too official. Before the spotlight turns on us.” I swallowed, feeling a knot of worry tighten in my chest. “Do you really think the media will come after us like that?” Tim’s gaze softened, and he reached out, resting a hand on my shoulder. “I hope not, but I’d rather be prepared. We’ve already been through enough with CPS, with the complications of your status here. The last thing I want is to give anyone more reason to poke around in our lives.” I nodded, leaning into his touch. He was right, and I could see the urgency in his eyes. The life we were building was fragile, a balance between two worlds, and the last thing we needed was for it to be shattered by a headline. A real house - a real home - could be a way to anchor ourselves, to give us a place to breathe. “All right,” I said softly, meeting his gaze with determination. “Let’s start looking tomorrow. The sooner we find something, the sooner we can take that next step.” He gave me a small, relieved smile, pulling me into a hug. “Thank you, Twi. I know this is a lot, but we’ll get through it. Together.” I leaned into his warmth, closing my eyes for a moment as the promise of a new future settled between us. The gold had been a step. The house would be another. And even if the road ahead was uncertain, we’d face it side by side. * * * Twilight The house was quiet, the kind of deep, still silence that only settles in the middle of the night. Tim had drifted off a while ago, his breathing slow and steady beside me, but sleep refused to come for me. I lay there, staring at the ceiling, listening to the soft hum of the fan overhead. My thoughts swirled around everything he had said earlier - about the media, about needing a better place to live, about the weight of our new roles. Finally, I couldn’t stand lying there anymore. Carefully, I slipped out of bed, making sure not to wake him, and made my way to the small desk we had set up in the corner of the bedroom. My horn glowed softly, casting a gentle purple light as I pulled out parchment and a quill. Tim’s voice echoed in my mind, the urgency in his tone, the way he spoke about the risks of staying in the trailer too long, and how quickly things could spiral if the media caught wind of it. I took a deep breath, focusing on the task at hand, and began to write. ‘Dear Princess Celestia, I hope this letter finds you well. So much has changed in the past month, and while I am still adapting to this new role, I feel a sense of purpose that I haven’t felt in a long time. Yet, with these new responsibilities come challenges I hadn’t fully anticipated. Today, Tim and I had a long conversation about our situation here, especially about the scrutiny we might face as my role as Equestrian Ambassador becomes more public. He explained to me that, in this world, the media can be quite relentless, and our current living situation - a trailer - is not suitable for the public image of an ambassador. It may sound trivial, but he fears, and I agree, that our position could be undermined or ridiculed if it becomes known that an ambassador lives in such conditions. Tim and I have been trying to use the resources available to us wisely. We’ve even converted a substantial portion of the Equestrian Bits you sent into local currency, which will help us secure a home. But despite the large amount of money, more than I ever thought I’d have, it is quickly being spoken for in ways that feel less like luxury and more like necessity. Tim wants to ensure our future with retirement accounts and savings for Sara’s education, and while I support these goals, it means that the funds needed to relocate immediately are tighter than I had hoped. And so, I humbly request your assistance, not as your student seeking charity, but as your appointed representative in this world. If it is within your power, I am asking for a ‘housing allowance’ - something to help us move to a home that will be safer and more suitable for the duties I am expected to perform here. A place where I can meet with officials when necessary, and where we can protect Sara from the unwanted attention that is sure to come. I know that you have already been generous with the funds you’ve provided us, and I do not make this request lightly. But I believe that a proper residence is critical for the stability and respectability of our diplomatic mission. I ask this not just for my sake, but for the well-being of my family, who has become my strength and my reason to succeed in this role. I trust your wisdom and your understanding in this matter. Thank you for your continued support and for the faith you have placed in me. I will await your guidance. Your faithful student always, Twilight Sparkle’ I set the quill down, reading over the words again, feeling a knot of tension slowly loosen in my chest. It felt strange - almost selfish - to ask for more, but I knew that this was no longer just about me. It was about the life we were building here, about protecting my family in a world that could be so unpredictable. If Celestia could help us bridge this gap, maybe we could find our footing in a way that felt secure. With a deep breath, I rolled up the parchment, sealing it with a bit of wax. My magic flared, sending the letter away in a burst of purple light, the glow fading quickly into the shadows. I watched the spot where it had vanished, hoping that Celestia would understand the urgency of our situation. Then, as I turned back to the bed, I paused for a moment, looking at Tim, sound asleep, one arm draped over my pillow where I’d been lying. He looked so peaceful, the worry lines on his face smoothed away in sleep. I brushed my muzzle softly against his shoulder, taking comfort in his warmth, his steady presence. “Please let this work out,” I whispered to the empty room, as if my words could somehow bridge the distance between Equestria and here, between a princess and her faithful student. Then, with a quiet sigh, I slipped back into bed beside him, hoping that come morning, we’d be a little closer to the peace we were searching for. * * * Tim The house was still dark when I rolled out of bed, the clock barely reading 5:30 AM. Twilight was still fast asleep, her chest rising and falling slowly, exhaustion from yesterday’s events weighing on her. I tucked the blanket a little closer around her and kissed her on the forehead before slipping out of the bedroom. She needed the rest. The air was cool and quiet as I made my way to the kitchen, and I let the routine of breakfast-making pull me into focus. It had been a while since I’d cooked a full spread—something more than quick toast or scrambled eggs on a busy morning. But today felt like a day for a real breakfast. Something special, a small comfort for all the stress we’d been dealing with. I put on a pot of coffee, its rich aroma slowly filling the kitchen, then got to work. Bacon sizzled in the pan while I cracked eggs into a bowl, whisking them up for omelets. Sara’s favorite—blueberry pancakes - were next, the batter coming together with a few quick motions before I poured it onto the hot griddle. The sounds and smells of cooking filled the small kitchen, a rhythm I found calming. As I flipped the last of the pancakes, I fished my phone out of my pocket, typing a quick message to Melvin. ‘Hey, Melvin. Twilight and I are going to be out today. Some urgent stuff came up at home - gonna need to take care of it together. Sorry for the short notice. Let me know if anything pressing comes up.’ A moment later, my phone buzzed with a reply. ‘No problem, man. Take care of what you need to. We’ll hold down the fort. Give Twilight my best.’ I tucked the phone away with a sigh of relief. Melvin could be a tough boss sometimes, but he understood when it mattered. It was one less thing to worry about. Just as I was plating the last of the food, I heard soft hoofsteps behind me. I turned to see Twilight standing in the doorway, her mane slightly tousled from sleep, but her eyes were brighter than they’d been yesterday. She took a deep breath, smiling as she caught the smell of the breakfast spread. “You cooked all of this?” she asked, her voice still husky with sleep. “Yeah, figured we could all use a real meal this morning. Come on, sit down. I’ll get you a cup of coffee.” She settled into a chair at the kitchen table, and I poured her a steaming mug, setting it down in front of her. “Thank you, Tim,” she murmured, wrapping her hooves around the cup, the warmth chasing away the last traces of sleep. “I don’t think I realized how hungry I was until just now.” I grinned, setting a plate in front of her piled high with pancakes, eggs, and bacon. “Well, dig in. There’s plenty to go around.” As she took her first bite, a small, contented hum escaped her, and I couldn’t help but smile. Seeing her relax like this, even for a moment, made everything worth it. Sara joined us soon after, her eyes lighting up when she saw the blueberry pancakes. Her excitement was infectious, and before long, we were all laughing around the table, the weight of yesterday’s worries held at bay. It was almost easy to forget everything else - the urgency of our plans, the uncertainty about the future. For a little while, it was just us, sharing a meal and being together. But as we finished up, clearing plates and stacking them in the sink, a sudden burst of magic filled the room, a warm glow that made me freeze in place. Twilight’s ears perked, and she turned towards the kitchen counter where the light gathered, swirling into the familiar shape of a scroll and a small, heavily stuffed bag. It shimmered with an otherworldly aura, hovering for a moment before settling softly on the counter. I glanced at Twilight, my heart thudding in my chest. She reached out with her magic, gently unrolling the letter as I stepped closer, my arm brushing against her side. Her eyes scanned the parchment quickly, her expression shifting from curiosity to relief, and then to something deeper - something like hope. “What does it say?” I asked, my voice barely more than a whisper. She glanced up at me, a small, grateful smile touching her lips. “It’s from Celestia. She says she understands the difficulties we’re facing and... she’s providing a housing allowance to help us relocate. She wants us to be somewhere safe, somewhere that fits the needs of my role here. And...” She lifted the small bag with her magic, her horn glowing softly as she untied the string. A flood of gold spilled out onto the table, glinting in the morning light - 500 more Equestrian Bits, their weight and shine undeniable. “She sent this as a start,” Twilight continued, her voice barely containing her emotion. “She says there will be more if needed, to ensure we have what we need to build a secure home for ourselves.” I let out a long breath, my shoulders sagging with relief as the tension of the past days melted away. The gold itself would be enough to help us secure a new place, even while we waited for the check to clear. It was a lifeline, a chance to move forward before the world caught up to us. I wrapped an arm around Twilight’s shoulders, pulling her into a gentle embrace. “This... this changes everything,” I said, my voice thick with emotion. “We can start looking for a place today. We don’t have to wait.” She leaned into me, her body warm against mine, her muzzle pressing softly against my chest. “I know,” she whispered. “I wasn’t sure she’d understand, but she did. It means we can make this work, Tim. We can find somewhere that’s truly ours.” I nodded, my mind already racing through the possibilities, through everything we needed to do next. But for the first time in a long while, it felt like we were truly moving forward - not just surviving but building something real. “We’ll make this happen, Twi,” I said, my voice steady. “For you, for Sara, for us. Let’s find a place we can call home.” * * * Tim The morning light streamed through the window as Sara got ready for school, the sounds of her animated chatter filling the small living room. I leaned back against the counter, watching Twilight as she packed Sara's lunch with her magic—her horn glowing softly as peanut butter and jelly floated together onto slices of bread. She was getting pretty good at these simple tasks now, though I could still see the effort in the furrow of her brow, the slight concentration it took. I shot her a playful grin, leaning in closer. “You know, Twi, maybe we should send your mom a letter. Tell her that we need more bits to afford her grandfoal. Raising foals—or kids, for that matter—is expensive on Earth.” Twilight blinked, then a smirk curled at the edges of her mouth, her eyes glinting with amusement. “Oh, you think so, huh? You think my mother’s going to fund our parenting endeavors?” I shrugged, keeping the teasing light in my voice. “Hey, she sent enough back when you were a foal, right? Maybe she’s got a grandfoal allowance stashed somewhere.” She chuckled, shaking her head. “You’re terrible, you know that?” But despite the banter, I saw a flicker of mischief in her expression, her tail swishing behind her. “You know what? I think I will send that letter—just for a laugh.” I raised my eyebrows, surprised but grinning. “Go for it. What’s the worst that could happen?” Twilight turned to the desk in the corner, pulling out another piece of parchment with her magic. Sara finished tying her shoes, giving us a curious look as Twilight scrawled out a quick message, her quill scratching across the paper. ‘Dear Mom, I hope this letter finds you well! Things have been busy here in the human world, and I have to say, Tim and I have had a lot to adjust to. The diplomatic duties are one thing, but it turns out raising a foal—well, a human child—is no small feat. Sara is wonderful, but she keeps us on our hooves! And, well... raising foals is a lot more expensive here than I expected. Food, school supplies, ice cream... it all adds up so quickly! If you have any spare bits lying around, I’m sure your adorable grandfoal could use them. I’m kidding, of course. (Mostly!) Love, Twilight’ She rolled up the parchment, and with a wink in my direction, sent it off with a burst of purple magic. It swirled and shimmered, then vanished into thin air, headed straight for Equestria. “I’m sure she’ll get a kick out of that,” Twilight said, her laughter bubbling up. “It’s about time I made her smile instead of sending reports and status updates.” “Yeah, it’s nice to keep it light sometimes,” I agreed, ruffling Sara’s hair as she bounded over, ready for school. But as I walked her out to the car, a small part of me wondered how Twilight Velvet might actually respond. * * * Twilight Velvet The morning in Canterlot was peaceful, the air crisp and cool as sunlight streamed through the window of my study. I sipped a cup of tea, letting the warmth seep into me as I took a moment for myself before starting the day. My quill was poised over my planner, ready to jot down notes and reminders, when a familiar purple light flickered in the corner of the room. I turned just in time to see a rolled parchment materialize before me, Twilight’s magic still clinging to it. A smile tugged at my lips as I reached out with my own magic, unrolling the scroll. It had been weeks since her last letter - longer than I’d expected, though I understood she was busy. But I always felt a rush of relief when I saw her writing, knowing that my little filly was safe, even so far away in a world unlike our own. I settled into my chair, reading the letter with curiosity. The corners of my mouth twitched as I reached the part about Sara, and I couldn’t help but laugh aloud at Twilight’s playful request for extra bits. Oh, my clever daughter, trying to make light of things, even when I could read between the lines. “More bits for the grandfoal, hmm?” I murmured to myself, shaking my head with a chuckle. My mind wandered back to Twilight’s foalhood, remembering how she had always been so serious, so focused on her studies, but with a streak of humor that came out when she was comfortable. And now, it seemed she was still that way, even in a world that must be so strange to her. But there was something else beneath her words - something that tugged at the strings of my heart. A quiet strain, perhaps, hidden behind her attempt at humor. I could imagine the weight on her shoulders, balancing her role as an ambassador, as a mother, and as a partner in a place so different from the life she had known. It made me proud of her strength... but also a little worried. Setting the letter aside, I took a deep breath, my thoughts shifting between the playful request and the reality she must be facing. My hooves carried me to a small chest I kept in the study - a simple, unassuming box, but one that held small treasures. I opened it, revealing a modest stack of bits and a few gemstones. It wasn’t much by royal standards, but it could mean a great deal more when sent with care. “Maybe a little care package wouldn’t hurt,” I mused, a plan already forming in my mind. I knew she was joking, but a little extra help - just enough to let her breathe easier, to make sure my grandfoal had what she needed - would be a mother’s privilege, after all. Besides, who could resist the chance to spoil a grandfoal, even from worlds apart? * * * With Sara safely dropped off at school, we headed back through the morning traffic towards the Houston Gold Exchange. The sun was starting to warm the streets, glinting off the skyscrapers, and for a moment, everything felt almost normal, like any other family’s morning routine. But the weight of the bag of bits from Celestia sat heavy between us - a reminder of the urgency we still carried. I glanced over at Tim as he navigated the traffic, his expression focused but relaxed, the early morning rush not fazing him. “It’s strange, isn’t it?” I mused aloud. “Just a few months ago, I couldn’t imagine having to worry about something like this. Now I’m worrying about exchange rates and whether or not a trailer makes us a ‘scandal.’” Tim chuckled, giving me a quick, reassuring smile. “Hey, it’s all part of the adventure, right? Besides, you never know what’ll happen-” He didn’t get to finish, because at that moment, a flash of magic crackled in the backseat, filling the car with a soft, lavender glow. I turned quickly, my heart skipping a beat as another scroll and a small, sturdy-looking bag appeared, shimmering with a faint magical aura. “Oh, no,” I murmured, feeling a mix of anticipation and embarrassment wash over me. “I think my mom actually took that joke seriously.” Tim raised an eyebrow, his curiosity piqued. “Seriously? She sent something already?” I untied the string with my magic, letting the scroll unfurl. Inside the bag, there were 342 Equestrian bits and a small assortment of gemstones - sparkling sapphires, a handful of modest-sized rubies, and a single large amethyst that caught the sunlight streaming through the window. My chest tightened as I saw the familiar, careful hoofwriting on the parchment. I read the letter aloud for Tim as we cruised down the freeway. ‘My Dearest Twilight, Your letter made me laugh, but I could sense there’s a bit of truth behind the joke, too. I know you always try to carry so much on your shoulders, even when you don’t have to. Raising a foal - or a human child, I suppose - is never easy, and doing it in a world so different from ours must be even harder. So, I’m sending a little something to help. Think of it as a gift, a care package from a very eager grandmother. The bits might not be as much as what Celestia can provide, but they come with a mother’s love. And the gems... well, I’m sure you and Tim can find some use for them. Maybe they’ll fetch a little extra value over there. Take care of yourself, my little star. And give Sara a kiss for me - I hope I’ll get to meet her someday. And remember, you’re never alone in this, no matter how far away you are. Love always, Mom’ As I finished reading, my voice softened, a lump rising in my throat that I hadn’t expected. The words hit me harder than I thought they would, that reminder that even here, even with all the distance between our worlds, my mother was still thinking of me, still ready to support me however she could. Tim’s hand reached over, resting gently on my withers as he kept his eyes on the road. “She sounds like a good mom,” he said softly. “And hey, those gems might just make a difference too.” I smiled, leaning into his touch. “Yeah, she is. I just hope she didn’t think I was actually in dire straits.” I glanced back at the bag, letting the warmth of the gesture settle into my heart. “But... I think it’s going to help more than she knows.” Tim nodded, his voice steady with that familiar determination. “Well, let’s go find out just how much. Between what Celestia sent and this, we might be able to speed things up even more.” The car rumbled beneath us, taking us closer to our next stop. As we merged back into the flow of the city, I held the bag tightly with my magic, my thoughts drifting back to Canterlot and my mother’s careful, loving hoofwriting. It was a reminder that even when it felt like the world around us was shifting too quickly, some things - some connections – were still constant. With a deep breath, I turned my focus back to the road ahead, ready to face whatever came next. * * * Tim The Houston Gold Exchange loomed ahead as I navigated the car into the parking lot, the morning sun reflecting off the glass facade. It felt strangely familiar walking back inside—like we’d been here a hundred times already, though it had only been yesterday. But today we had a little more in our pockets than just the original bag from Celestia. I could see Twilight still clutching her mother’s bag of bits and gems with her magic as we stepped through the sliding doors. Inside, the clerk at the counter looked up, clearly surprised to see us again so soon. “Morning,” I said, keeping my tone friendly. “We’ve got another batch to exchange.” The clerk’s eyes widened as Twilight set the bags on the counter, bits clinking gently as they settled. “That’s... quite a bit more gold,” he remarked, blinking as he weighed the coins one by one. “842 ounces. Well, you know the drill. Today’s rate is $2,736 per ounce. That’ll bring you to about 2.3 million dollars, once we get the paperwork in order.” I nodded, already feeling the relief starting to settle in. It was going to be a long day, but knowing we had that kind of financial backing behind us made it all feel a little more manageable. Just as he was finishing up the paperwork for the gold, the clerk’s attention shifted to the bag of gems. He pulled out the large amethyst first, holding it up to the light. “Now, these are something else... You don’t see stones this size around here much.” Twilight glanced at me, her ears twitching with a little bit of nervous energy. I squeezed her hoof under the counter, giving her a reassuring smile. “Think they’re worth anything?” I asked the clerk, though I had a good idea that these weren’t the kind of gems you’d find at the local jewelry store. He examined each one with a jeweler’s loupe, muttering to himself as he weighed and measured them. After about ten minutes of fussing over them, he finally looked up. “Well, these are pretty extraordinary. We’ve got a few sizable rubies, some sapphires... but this amethyst, and the quality of these cuts—yeah, I can make you an offer. You’re looking at around $750,000 for the whole set. That’s my best rate, considering the unique nature of these gems.” Twilight’s mouth opened slightly, and I could tell she was trying to keep her composure, but I could see the spark of surprise in her eyes. I kept my expression neutral, glancing at her for confirmation before turning back to the clerk. “We’ll take it,” I said, doing my best to sound casual even as my mind spun with the possibilities of what that extra amount could mean for us. He nodded, pulling out a fresh set of paperwork and cutting two checks - one for the 842 ounces of gold, totaling about 2.3 million dollars, and another for the gemstones, valued at 750,000 dollars. I slipped both checks into my wallet, feeling their weight more than I probably should have. “Thank you,” I said, shaking the clerk’s hand firmly. “Hey, pleasure doing business with you,” the clerk replied, clearly pleased to have made a sale like this. As we left the building, I caught Twilight’s eye, and the corner of my mouth tugged up into a grin. “Ready to make a deposit, Ambassador?” She rolled her eyes but smiled back, and we headed straight for the bank. The teller recognized us this time, her eyes widening as I slid the checks across the counter. After a few minutes of entering information, her fingers paused over the keyboard. “Mr. Tim, Ms. Twilight, both checks should be available in your account by Friday,” she said with a polite smile, but I could see the curiosity in her expression. “Thank you, ma’am,” I replied, my hand resting on Twilight’s withers as we walked back out into the daylight, the air feeling lighter than it had in weeks. “Well, that’s one more step down. Now let’s find ourselves a house.” She nodded, and we climbed back into the car, the GPS set for a real estate office I’d looked up earlier. The drive was short, but the conversation lingered on the possibilities—on Sara’s new room, on a yard where she could run and play, and on the space Twilight would need for the inevitable guests that would come with her new role. By the time we reached the real estate office, my mind was buzzing with plans and possibilities, but I kept my focus sharp. We needed to move quickly, before anyone caught on to where we’d been living. I held the door open for Twilight, the chime of a bell announcing our entrance as we stepped inside. A young woman behind the desk looked up, offering a professional smile. “Good morning, how can I help you today?” “We’re looking to buy a house,” I said, glancing at Twilight. “And we’re hoping to do it as quickly as possible. We’ve got a budget in mind, and... well, time is of the essence.” Her eyebrows rose slightly, and she nodded, motioning for us to sit down. “I can help with that. Let’s get you started.” * * * Twilight The real estate office was sleek and modern, with tall windows that let in the morning sunlight, illuminating rows of framed photos of homes for sale. A young woman sat behind the desk, her professional smile widening as she noticed us enter. I took a deep breath, feeling the gravity of the moment settle over me. It wasn’t just about finding a new home - it was about finding a place where we could build the life we needed, where I could fulfill my duties and give Sara the best future possible. I stepped forward, catching her curious gaze. “Good morning,” I said, trying to summon that diplomatic confidence I knew I’d need more of in the days to come. “We’re looking for a home - something... suitable for an Equestrian Ambassador.” She tilted her head slightly, clearly trying to piece together what that meant, but she recovered quickly, giving a polite nod. “Of course. We’d be happy to help. What sort of home are you looking for, Ms...?” “Twilight,” I said, glancing at Tim beside me before turning my focus back to her. “Lady Twilight Sparkle. And I need a property with size and space - somewhere large enough to host formal events with political officials if needed. It needs to have a sense of... ambiance, something that feels fitting for an official residence. But it’s not just about that.” I felt my voice soften as I thought of Sara, the excitement in her eyes every time she talked about her friends at school. “We also need to be in a good school district, somewhere my daughter can grow up safely and have the best opportunities.” The agent’s eyes lit up with understanding as she took in my words, nodding thoughtfully. “I think I know exactly what you might be looking for, Lady Sparkle. If you’re considering an area with both prestige and strong community values, I’d highly recommend The Woodlands.” She tapped a few keys on her computer, pulling up a listing with a flourish. “It’s one of the most sought-after areas north of Houston, known for its excellent schools and private, executive-style communities. And in terms of homes that would match your needs, there’s one property in particular that stands out.” Her screen flashed with images of a sprawling estate, each photo showcasing immaculate grounds, thickly wooded surroundings, and a home that looked more like a manor than a house. Tall windows framed the front, giving a sense of elegance, while the backyard held a large pool, a patio area, and even a guesthouse tucked into a grove of trees. “This property is in Carlton Woods, a gated executive community within The Woodlands,” she explained, glancing back at us to gauge our reactions. “It’s one of the largest homes currently on the market - over 10,000 square feet, with multiple reception rooms, a grand foyer, and seven bedrooms. The estate sits on five acres of private land, offering both the space for hosting events and the privacy you’d need for your family.” She paused, then added, “The school district here is one of the best in Texas, with highly rated elementary and high schools nearby. I think it would provide a safe and nurturing environment for your daughter.” I exchanged a look with Tim, who seemed as taken aback as I was by the sheer scale of the property. But I could see the calculation in his eyes too - the way he was weighing the practicality against the necessity. He caught my gaze, his brow raised slightly, as if to ask, Is this really what we need? I took a deep breath, my thoughts swirling. This wasn’t what I’d imagined when I thought of ‘home’ - not something so grand, so imposing. But maybe that was the point. We were stepping into a new role, a new life, and perhaps we needed a place that would match the part. A place that could offer Sara the stability and future she deserved, and provide a secure foundation for the diplomatic responsibilities that came with my title. “I think... I think that sounds like a good fit,” I said slowly, turning back to the agent. “Can you show us the property today? We’re in a bit of a rush.” The agent’s smile widened, professional but tinged with excitement. “Absolutely. I can have us there within the hour. Let me just make a call to the listing agent to arrange a private tour.” As she picked up the phone, I let out a breath I hadn’t realized I’d been holding, turning to Tim. “Do you think we’re ready for this?” I whispered, the enormity of the decision catching up with me. He reached out, taking my hoof in his hand, giving it a gentle squeeze. “Yeah, Twi. We’re ready. It’s time to make a place for ourselves.” I managed a small, hopeful smile, feeling the tension start to loosen in my chest. This wasn’t just about finding a house - it was about creating a home that could keep us safe, keep us together. And as the agent made the final arrangements, I allowed myself to imagine, just for a moment, what it would be like to live in a place like that. To start fresh, with a home that reflected the life we were building - here, in this strange and wonderful world. * * * Tim The drive to the property was quiet, our minds turning over the possibilities as the city gave way to the lush greenery of The Woodlands. Twilight gazed out the window, her expression a mix of nerves and hope. I could almost see the gears turning in her mind - balancing the needs of her diplomatic role, the well-being of Sara, and the weight of what a decision like this meant for all of us. The gated community of Carlton Woods loomed ahead, a security guard waving us through after a quick check of our agent’s credentials. It felt like entering another world - the streets lined with towering oaks and pine trees, each house hidden behind its own stretch of manicured lawn and winding driveways. We pulled up in front of the estate, and I couldn’t help but let out a low whistle. It was even more impressive in person. The house rose before us like something out of a movie - three stories of white stone and tall windows that gleamed in the sunlight. A curved driveway led to a grand entrance with heavy oak doors, the kind that practically begged for a red carpet to be rolled out in front of them. Our real estate agent, Jenna, led the way up the front steps, turning back to us with a smile as she pushed open the door. “Welcome to your potential new home,” she said, her voice carrying a hint of pride as she gestured for us to step inside. The air inside was cool, filled with the faint scent of polish and fresh paint. The foyer was enormous, with high ceilings and a chandelier that looked like it had been plucked straight out of a palace. A sweeping staircase curled up to the second floor, and to the left, double doors opened into what Jenna called the “formal living room” - all polished wood floors and tall windows that overlooked the front garden. “This space is perfect for hosting,” she explained, walking us through the layout. “And there are additional rooms that can be converted into offices or studies. There’s a formal dining room just off the kitchen, and the master suite has its own sitting area with a fireplace.” Twilight trailed behind her, taking it all in with wide eyes. I could see her imagining what it would be like to hold a meeting here, to welcome guests or diplomats into this space. As we wandered through the house, I couldn’t help but imagine it too - Sara running down the halls, Twilight curled up with a book in one of the sun-drenched reading nooks. We passed through the kitchen, which was a chef’s dream - marble countertops, stainless steel appliances, a double oven that practically gleamed. And outside, the backyard stretched out like a private park, complete with a large pool, a stone patio, and a guesthouse nestled beneath the trees. “Now, let’s talk price,” Jenna said, leading us back to the living room, where we sank into plush chairs. She flipped open a folder, revealing the listing sheet. “The asking price for this property is 3.8 million dollars. I know it’s a significant investment, but with the location, the privacy, and the amenities, it’s one of the best in the area. And it’s a rare find, especially with the market being what it is right now.” She paused, glancing between us with a more serious expression. “Have you considered how you’d like to finance the purchase? We can work with several banks to arrange a mortgage, and I can connect you with lenders who specialize in high-value properties.” Twilight looked to me, her ears twitching slightly as she tried to read my expression. I squeezed her hoof gently before turning my focus back to Jenna, shaking my head. “No need for financing. We’ll be able to pay in full by Friday.” Jenna blinked, clearly taken aback by the directness of my response. “Oh... well, that’s certainly a unique position to be in.” She recovered quickly, professionalism smoothing over her surprise as she closed the folder. “In that case, we can move forward with the process right away. I’ll draw up the paperwork, and we can finalize everything once the funds clear.” Twilight exhaled softly beside me, the tension in her shoulders easing as she looked around the room one last time, as if trying to picture it filled with the life we were building. “Thank you,” she said, giving Jenna a small but sincere smile. “We appreciate how quickly you’ve made this process.” “It’s my pleasure,” Jenna replied, standing up and extending her hand. I shook it firmly, sealing the deal that would change our lives. As we walked back to the car, Twilight leaned into me slightly, her expression thoughtful, the corners of her mouth just beginning to curve into a smile. “I can’t believe we just bought a house like this,” she murmured, almost as if speaking the words made them real. I wrapped my arm around her shoulders, pulling her in close. “Believe it, Twi. We’re doing this. We’re making a home. And it’s going to be everything we need it to be.” As we made our way back to the car, the reality of what we’d just done started to settle in. The towering house, the sprawling yard, the sheer size of the investment - it was a lot to take in. I could sense Twilight’s tension as she walked beside me, her eyes darting back towards the estate as if it might disappear if she looked away too long. She bit her lip, finally voicing the thought that had clearly been gnawing at her. “Tim, are we... sure about this? 3.8 million dollars is so much, and we’re already talking about maxing out the retirement investments. What if we’re overextending ourselves?” I paused, turning to face her, gently cupping her cheek in my hand. “Hey, Twi, I’ve run the numbers. Trust me, even after we max out our retirement accounts - both of ours and the Roth IRAs for you, me, and Sara - we’ll still have plenty left. After buying the house, we’ll have about 1.7 million left in the bank.” Her ears perked slightly, but the worry didn’t completely fade from her eyes. “That sounds like a lot, but... what about Sara’s future? Should we set aside more for her college fund? If she decides to go to a human university, I want her to have the best opportunities.” I smiled, pulling out my phone and doing a quick search. It took just a few moments to find the information I needed. “Let’s see... Ivy League schools like Harvard, Yale - yeah, they’re pretty pricey. With tuition, room, board, books, and everything else, it looks like it’s around $80,000 a year. And if we plan for four years, that’s about $320,000.” Twilight’s eyes widened slightly at the number, and I couldn’t help but chuckle softly as I pocketed my phone. “Don’t worry, I’ll make sure we set that aside for her. We’ll put it into a college savings fund and lock it down so it grows over time. It’ll be there when she needs it.” She let out a slow breath, some of the tension finally easing from her shoulders. “That sounds... really good, actually. I just don’t want her to feel like she has to sacrifice anything because we didn’t plan well.” I wrapped my arm around her shoulders, pulling her close as we walked back towards the car. “Twi, we’re going to make sure she’s got everything she needs. And hey, we might have to ‘rough it’ a little bit until that next Equestrian paycheck comes in, but we’ll manage.” I gave her a playful nudge. “Think you can survive on a tighter budget for a month?” Twilight laughed softly, the sound warming my chest. “I think I can handle it, but I’m not sure if I can convince Sara to cut back on her ice cream allowance.” “Fair point,” I said, grinning. “Maybe she’ll have to take on a few extra chores around the house to make up for it.” Twilight leaned into me as we reached the car, her head resting against my shoulder for a moment. “Thank you, Tim,” she murmured, her voice softer, more serious. “For thinking everything through. For making sure we’re going to be okay.” I kissed the top of her head, letting her warmth and trust settle into my bones. “That’s what we’re doing here, Twi. Building something solid. For us, for her, for whatever comes next. And we’ve got this.” With a final glance back at the house that would soon be ours, we climbed into the car, ready to take on whatever challenges lay ahead. And for the first time in a long time, I felt like the future was something I could reach out and touch - a little uncertain, sure, but full of hope. * * * Author's Note I Write Commissions! Have a story idea, DM me. //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 16 - Foundations and Futures //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 16 - Foundations and Futures Tim The rest of the week fell into a steady rhythm, each morning starting with Sara's cheerful chatter over breakfast and ending with Twilight's increasingly confident magic at Pipeline. Wednesday dawned bright and clear, the Houston humidity already thick in the air as we pulled into the company lot. "Ready for another round?" I asked, watching Twilight eye the row of damaged trailers waiting for her attention. She nodded, a determined smile playing across her lips. "Ten trailers, just like we agreed. Though I have to admit, it's getting easier each time." Her horn lit up with that familiar purple glow, and I watched in amazement as she began the process. The metal seemed to flow like water under her influence now, each repair more precise than the last. What had once left her exhausted now appeared almost effortless, though I knew she was still carefully monitoring her limits. "You're getting faster," I remarked as the third trailer's surface smoothed out, fresh paint and company logos materializing with practiced ease. Twilight's eyes sparkled with pride, though her concentration never wavered. "Practice makes perfect, as they say here on Earth. Besides," she added with a playful flick of her tail, "the sooner we finish here, the sooner we can start looking at furniture for the new house." I couldn't help but grin at her enthusiasm. We'd spent Tuesday evening poring over furniture websites, with Twilight making detailed lists of everything we'd need. The house might not be officially ours until Friday, but that wasn't stopping her from planning every detail. By mid-morning, all ten trailers gleamed in the sunlight, looking factory-fresh. Twilight stepped back to admire her work, barely winded. "Well," she said, satisfaction evident in her voice, "I think that's enough magic for one morning. Ready to go look at some sofas?" I wrapped an arm around her withers, pulling her close. "Lead the way, Ambassador. Though I have to warn you – furniture shopping with me might test that diplomatic patience of yours." She laughed, the sound warm and free. "Please. After dealing with Discord, I think I can handle your opinions on throw pillows." * * * Twilight The furniture showroom sprawled before us, a maze of perfectly arranged living rooms and bedrooms that seemed to stretch endlessly. The air conditioning was a welcome relief from the Houston heat, and the soft music playing overhead created an almost dreamlike atmosphere. "Where should we start?" Tim asked, his hand resting casually on my withers as we took in the displays. I pulled out my carefully organized list with my magic. "Well, we need everything for the formal living room first. That's where we'll be entertaining officials and diplomats." I couldn't help but add, "Though I still can't believe we're really doing this." Tim chuckled, guiding me toward a section of elegant sofas. "Believe it, Twi. Though I have to say, some of these prices make those Equestrian bits look reasonable." We stopped in front of a massive sectional sofa, its deep blue fabric looking both inviting and sophisticated. The price tag made my ears flatten slightly – $12,000 seemed excessive for somewhere to sit. "It's... nice," I ventured, trying to sound diplomatic. "But maybe we should look at some other options?" Tim was already shaking his head, a knowing smile on his face. "Twilight, honey, we're buying furniture for a 3.8-million-dollar house. We can't exactly fill it with discount store pieces." He ran his hand along the sofa's arm. "Besides, this is where you'll be meeting with other ambassadors. It needs to look the part." I sighed, knowing he was right. "I know. It's just... adjusting to spending money like this is harder than I expected." I paused, then added with a small smile, "Even if we can afford it." "Tell you what," Tim said, settling onto the sofa and patting the spot beside him. "Come sit. If we're going to spend this much on a couch, we should at least make sure it's comfortable." I hopped up next to him, and I had to admit – it was incredibly comfortable. The fabric was soft but seemed durable, and the depth was perfect for both human and pony comfort. "Okay," I conceded, "maybe it is worth it." A sales associate approached, her professional smile widening only slightly at the sight of me. I appreciated how quickly humans were adapting to seeing ponies in their everyday lives. "Can I help you find anything specific today?" she asked, tablet in hand. Tim sat up straighter, slipping into what I'd come to think of as his 'business mode.' "Yes, actually. We're furnishing a new home and need quite a bit. Starting with this sofa..." "...and of course, the matching armchairs would complement the sectional perfectly," the sales associate said, tapping at her tablet. "Now, with our current supply chain issues, we're looking at about eight to twelve weeks for delivery on most of these pieces." I felt my ears droop. "Weeks?" The thought of our new home sitting empty that long made my stomach twist. We needed to be ready for diplomatic duties soon, and an unfurnished house wouldn't exactly project the right image. "I understand that's quite a wait," the associate continued, "but that's fairly standard for our luxury line-" "Excuse us for just a moment," Tim interrupted politely, guiding me a few steps away with a gentle touch to my withers. Once we were out of earshot, he leaned down close to my ear. "Hey, I've got a better idea," he murmured. "Let's try Gallery Furniture instead. It's a Houston institution – everything's American-made, which would probably look good to local politicians anyway. Plus," he added with a knowing smile, "they're famous for same-day delivery. We could pick everything out today and have it delivered Friday right after we close on the house." I perked up immediately. "Really? And it's good quality?" Tim nodded. "Definitely. Might even be cheaper than this place, actually. Mack – the owner – he's kind of a local legend. Built his whole business on quality furniture at fair prices, quick delivery, and taking care of the community." The more he spoke, the more sense it made. Supporting a local business that cared about the community aligned perfectly with my diplomatic role, and the practical benefits were undeniable. "That sounds perfect," I said, already turning back toward the sales associate. "Thank you for your help, but I think we're going to explore some other options." As we walked back to the car, I couldn't help but smile at Tim. "You know, you're getting pretty good at this diplomatic thinking yourself." He grinned, opening the car door for me. "Well, I figured American-made furniture from a beloved local business would play better than imported pieces that take three months to arrive. Besides," he added as he slid into the driver's seat, "I've always wanted to meet Mack anyway." * * * Tim The drive to Gallery Furniture took us through a different part of Houston, away from the high-end shopping districts and into an area that felt more real, more lived-in. I glanced at Twilight as we pulled into the massive parking lot, watching her eyes widen at the sheer size of the showroom. "This is... bigger than I expected," she said, taking in the sprawling building with its bold "Gallery Furniture" sign. I chuckled, finding a spot near the entrance. "Wait until you see inside. Mack doesn't do anything small." As we walked through the doors, we were immediately greeted by the controlled chaos that was Gallery Furniture. The space buzzed with energy – salespeople chatting with customers, the distant sound of forklifts moving furniture in the warehouse section, and everywhere you looked, room displays that somehow managed to feel both upscale and approachable. A sales associate spotted us and headed our way, but before she could reach us, a booming voice cut through the showroom. "Well, isn't this something special!" I turned to see Mack himself striding toward us, his signature smile as big as ever. He was dressed casually in jeans and a Gallery Furniture polo, but there was no mistaking the presence he commanded. He stopped in front of us, looking between me and Twilight with genuine interest. "Don't get many ponies in here," he said warmly, extending his hand to me first. "Mack McIngvale, but everyone just calls me Mattress Mack. Welcome to Gallery Furniture." "Tim," I replied, shaking his hand. "And this is my wife, Twilight Sparkle. We're actually closing on a house in Carlton Woods on Friday, and we're going to need quite a bit of furniture." Twilight stepped forward with a polite smile. "We've heard wonderful things about your business, Mr. McIngvale, especially about your same-day delivery service. We were hoping you might be able to help us furnish the house by Saturday?" Mack's grin widened. "Carlton Woods? That's quite a neighborhood. And same-day delivery is our specialty – though in your case, we'll need to work around the closing date, of course. But don't you worry about that – we'll make sure everything's ready when you need it." I told him more about the house and asked in what ways he could help us plan for our future needs. "Ten thousand square feet?" Mack let out a low whistle, leading us to a desk with multiple computer screens. "That's going to take some planning. Here, let me show you our design software - it'll help us make sure we get everything scaled right for those big rooms." He pulled up a program that looked professional grade, quickly inputting the dimensions we remembered from our walk-through. The rooms appeared in 3D on the screen, empty and waiting to be filled. Twilight's eyes lit up at the technological approach to furniture planning - I could practically see her mind working as she watched Mack manipulate the space. "Now, for that formal living room - what are we looking at, thirty by forty feet?" Mack asked, his fingers flying over the keyboard. "That sounds about right," I nodded, watching as he started placing furniture in the virtual space. "We're thinking we'll need multiple seating areas, since we'll be entertaining groups." "Smart thinking," Mack agreed. He turned to Twilight with a knowing smile. "And we'll want to make sure the seating is comfortable for both humans and ponies, right? Let me show you some options we've actually been developing since Equestrians started settling here." He pulled up several furniture combinations, showing how different groupings would work in the space. Two distinct seating areas emerged - one centered around a massive fireplace, another oriented toward the French doors leading to the back patio. The software even showed traffic patterns, making sure there was plenty of room for people - and ponies - to move comfortably between groups. "What about the formal dining room?" Twilight asked, her horn glowing softly as she made notes on her ever-present list. Mack switched views, bringing up another room. "That's going to be fun to plan. We're looking at what, seating for twenty?" I nodded, thinking about the diplomatic dinners Twilight would eventually need to host. "At least. And again, we'll need to accommodate both humans and ponies." "No problem at all," Mack assured us, pulling up different table configurations. "We can do custom height adjustments on some of these pieces - make sure everyone's comfortable without it looking like a kids' table, if you know what I mean." As we worked our way through each room - family room, library, seven bedrooms, two offices and multiple sitting areas - I couldn't help but be impressed by both the software and Mack's expertise. He seemed to anticipate needs we hadn't even considered yet, suggesting pieces that would work for both formal functions and family life. "The real challenge," he said with a grin, "is going to be getting everything delivered and set up properly. But don't you worry about that - we've handled bigger jobs. Though," he added with a chuckle, "maybe not for such a unique couple." * * * Twilight I watched Mack tally up the figures on his computer, my ears twitching slightly as the numbers grew. Seven bedrooms' worth of furniture, multiple living spaces, dining rooms, office furnishings - it all added up quickly. Still, everything we'd picked was beautiful, durable, and perfectly suited to both our diplomatic needs and family life. "Alright folks," Mack said, swiveling his screen so we could see it. "With everything we've picked out, including delivery and setup, we're looking at about $287,000." I felt my ears flatten slightly at the number, even though I knew we'd been picking high-end pieces. Tim must have noticed my reaction because he pulled out his phone, presumably to check our account balance. I watched his eyes widen suddenly, his expression shifting from concern to surprise. "Well, would you look at that," he said, showing me his phone screen. "The first check already cleared. I thought we'd have to wait until Friday, but..." He turned to Mack with a growing smile. "Looks like we can take care of this today, if you're willing to hold everything for Saturday delivery?" Mack's eyebrows rose slightly. "You want to pay for everything right now? The full amount?" "If that works for you," Tim nodded. "We'd just need your guarantee that it can all be delivered Saturday, after we close on the house Friday afternoon." "Son," Mack said with a broad grin, "for a customer paying in full up front, I'll personally oversee the delivery myself. We'll have our best teams on it - get everything set up exactly like we planned in the software." I couldn't help but smile at his enthusiasm. There was something refreshingly honest about Mack, a straightforwardness that reminded me of Applejack. "That would be wonderful," I said, feeling more confident about the purchase. "Though I have to admit, this is the most money I've ever spent in one day. Well, aside from the house itself." Mack chuckled warmly. "Don't you worry about that. Every piece we picked is built to last - American-made quality. Your grandfoals will be fighting over this furniture someday." I caught Tim's eye at that comment, and we shared a small, private smile. The thought of grandfoals seemed so distant, yet here we were, building a future that could last generations. Leaving the store, we headed to the bank. The bank lobby felt cool and quiet after the energetic atmosphere of Gallery Furniture. As we sat down with the financial advisor, a well-dressed woman named Patricia, I watched Tim take charge with the same confidence he'd shown at the furniture store. "First," he said, pulling out the paperwork he'd prepared, "we want to set up a college fund for our daughter. We're looking at $320,000 - enough to cover four years at an Ivy League school." Patricia nodded, typing efficiently at her computer. "I'd recommend a 529 plan for that. It's specifically designed for educational expenses, and it grows tax-free." I listened intently as she explained the details, my analytical mind catching the important points. It felt surreal, planning for Sara's college years when she was still so young, but I loved how Tim thought ahead. "Next," Tim continued, "we want to set up Roth IRAs for all three of us. Maximum contribution of $7,000 each." "That's $21,000 total," I added, earning an approving smile from Patricia. As she processed that request, Tim pulled up his phone again. "And finally, we need to adjust our 401(k) contributions at work to max them out for the year. That's $22,500 each for me and Twilight." "Another $45,000," I murmured, my head spinning slightly at the numbers. Back in Equestria, retirement planning hadn't been quite so... complex. Patricia worked efficiently, setting up each account with practiced ease. "There we go," she said finally. "The college fund is established, Roth IRAs are set up and funded, and I've got the 401(k) adjustments processed. You're all set." As we left the bank, I leaned against Tim slightly. "That was... a lot of money we just moved around." He wrapped an arm around my withers, pulling me close. "Yeah, but it's all going to good places. Sara's future, our retirement... we're building something solid here, Twi." I nodded, feeling strangely proud of how responsible we were being with our sudden wealth. "I just hope the next bag of bits from Celestia comes through as promised." Tim chuckled. "Well, if it doesn't, at least we've already got the furniture paid for." * * * Tim Friday afternoon felt surreal as we sat in the title company's office, signing document after document. Twilight's magic held the pen steady as she signed her name dozens of times, while I worked through my own stack of papers. The closing agent maintained remarkable composure, though I caught her watching with fascination each time Twilight's horn glowed. "And... that's it," the agent finally announced, organizing the last of the paperwork. "Congratulations, you're now officially homeowners." I felt Twilight's tail brush against my leg as she practically vibrated with excitement. The moment we got back to the car, she pulled out my phone with her magic. "I'll call Gallery Furniture to confirm everything for tomorrow," she said, already dialing. "We need to make sure they have the gate code and-" "Hey," I interrupted gently, catching her hoof in my hand. "Take a breath, Twi. We've got this." She nodded, but I could see the nervous energy in her eyes as she waited for someone to answer. Mack himself picked up, his booming voice audible even without speakerphone. "Mrs. Sparkle! I was just about to call you folks. We're all set for tomorrow - got three teams ready to go. What time works best for you?" Twilight's professional diplomat voice kicked in. "Would 9 AM be too early? We'd like to get everything set up before it gets too hot." "Perfect timing," Mack replied. "I'll be there personally to oversee everything, just like I promised. Got your gate code right here, and the crews are already prepping the trucks." After finishing the call, Twilight sat back with a relieved sigh. "It's really happening, isn't it?" "Sure is," I said, starting the car. "Now let's go get our daughter and figure out how to tell her she's getting a new room tomorrow." "And a pool," Twilight added with a small smile. "Though I still think we should wait a few days before filling it..." I laughed, pulling out of the parking lot. Same old Twilight - even with a mansion waiting for us, she was still trying to be practical about everything. The drive to Sara's school was filled with nervous excitement. Twilight kept checking her lists - she'd made about five different ones for the move - while I tried to focus on traffic instead of the weight of the house keys in my pocket. "Should we tell her right away?" Twilight asked, shuffling her papers for the hundredth time. "Or wait until after dinner?" I glanced at her, catching the mix of worry and anticipation in her expression. "Maybe during dinner? Give her a chance to tell us about her day first, then break the big news?" "Good idea," she nodded, then added softly, "I hope she'll be okay with such a big change. The trailer's been her home her whole life..." "Hey," I reached over, squeezing her hoof. "Sara's tough. And she's got us. Besides," I grinned, "once she sees her new room and the pool, I don't think we'll hear many complaints." As we pulled into the school parking lot, I could see Sara already waiting with her teacher, Precious's new collar tag glinting in her backpack where she kept a photo of her beloved pet. Her face lit up when she spotted us, and she came running over. "Daddy! Mommy!" she called out as she climbed into the car. "Ms. Johnson says I got an A on my math test!" "That's wonderful, sweetie!" Twilight turned in her seat, beaming with pride. "Tell us all about it." I caught Twilight's eye as Sara launched into her story, and we shared a knowing smile. In a few hours, we'd tell her about the house, about the new adventure we were about to begin. But for now, we'd just enjoy this moment - our little family, together, on the edge of something big. Sara was still chattering away about her day when we pulled into the trailer park, Precious already yapping excitedly from behind the screen door, having heard our car pull up. One more night in our modest home before everything changed. * * * Twilight The smell of baked chicken and roasted vegetables filled our small kitchen as I set the table, trying to keep my nerves in check. Sara sat at her usual spot, swinging her legs as she watched me work, while Tim finished up with the gravy. "Can Precious have some chicken too?" Sara asked, reaching down to pet the tiny dog at her feet. "After dinner," Tim answered, bringing the food to the table. "Right now, it's family dinner time." We settled into our spots, and I watched Sara dig in enthusiastically. The routine felt so normal, so comfortable - it was hard to believe everything was about to change. I caught Tim's eye across the table, and he gave me a slight nod. "Sara, sweetie," I began, my voice gentle. "Your father and I have something important to tell you." She looked up, a piece of chicken halfway to her mouth. "Is it about the new house you were talking about in the car?" I nodded, amazed as always by how perceptive she was. "Yes. Actually, we bought a very big house today. We're moving there tomorrow morning." "Tomorrow?" Her eyes widened. "Really?" "Really," Tim confirmed. "And here's the exciting part - you're getting a brand new room, with new furniture and everything. We're having it all delivered tomorrow." "New everything?" Sara asked, looking around at our familiar surroundings. "What about my bed? And my dresser?" "Well," I explained carefully, "we're giving this trailer and all its furniture to Daddy's friend Jerry. He needs it more than we do. We're only taking our clothes, your toys, and personal things. Everything else will be new." "Even the TV?" Tim chuckled. "Even the TV. And wait until you see what else the new house has." Sara leaned forward, curiosity overtaking any concern about leaving her old furniture behind. "What? What does it have?" "Well," I said, unable to keep from smiling, "it has a swimming pool." "A POOL?" Sara nearly jumped out of her chair with excitement. "Really? Our very own pool?" "Really," Tim confirmed. "Though we'll need to wait a few days before we can swim in it," he added, throwing me an amused look. He knew my cautious nature well. "Can Precious come too?" Sara asked, suddenly serious. "Of course!" I assured her quickly. "Precious is family. She's coming with us, and she'll have plenty of space to run around in our new backyard." Sara's expression turned thoughtful. "What about school? Will I still see my friends?" Tim and I exchanged a quick glance before he spoke gently. "Actually, sweetie, you'll be going to a new school. It's a really good one, and you'll make lots of new friends there. Plus, we can arrange playdates with your old friends sometimes too." Sara's face fell slightly. "But... I like my school now." "I know you do," I said softly, reaching out to stroke her hair with my hoof. "But this new school is wonderful. They have an amazing art program, and the nicest playground you've ever seen. Sometimes change can be scary, but it can also be exciting." "And hey," Tim added, "this means you get to be the cool new kid who has a pool. Maybe you can invite your new classmates over sometimes." That seemed to brighten her mood. "Really? I can have friends over to swim?" "Once the pool is ready," I confirmed, throwing Tim a grateful look for his quick thinking. "Okay!" Sara said, her enthusiasm returning. "Can we pack my toys tonight?" I let out a relieved breath. "Of course we can. We'll pack everything up after dinner." "And tomorrow," Tim added, "you can help decide where all your new furniture goes in your room." As Sara launched into an excited discussion about how she wanted to arrange her new room, I caught Tim's eye again. He winked at me, and I felt the last of my worry fade away. We were ready for this next step, all of us together. I looked around our small kitchen, taking in the familiar space we'd soon leave behind. It might have been modest, but it had been our first home together, the place where we'd become a family. Tomorrow would bring new adventures, but tonight, we'd enjoy one last dinner in the place where it all began. * * * Tim Late Friday night, after we'd finally gotten Sara to bed - a challenge given her excitement about the move - I sat on our old couch with my phone, checking our account. Twilight was in the bedroom, still organizing and packing with that methodical precision of hers. The Pipeline Express direct deposit notification caught my eye. I hadn't expected it to come through so quickly - usually new employees had to wait for paper checks their first few weeks. But there it was: my regular paycheck, a familiar $1,100 after taxes, and right below it, Twilight's first check. I let out a low whistle at the number. $16,000 after taxes. The recycling bonus had really added up - 75 tons at the premium rate they'd promised. Still, it was sobering to think how long it would have taken us to save up enough to pay off the trailer at that rate, let alone buy the new house. "Everything okay?" Twilight asked, poking her head out of the bedroom. "Yeah," I said, holding up my phone. "Our checks came through. You're officially the breadwinner of the family now." She trotted over, peering at the screen. "Sixteen thousand dollars... that seemed like so much money a few weeks ago." "It is a lot of money," I assured her. "Just... not compared to Equestrian gold, apparently." I chuckled, pulling her close as she settled next to me on the couch. "You know, without your mom and Celestia's help, we'd still be trying to figure out how to pay off this trailer. Funny how things work out." Twilight nuzzled against my shoulder. "I still can't believe how generous they were. Though knowing my mother, she's probably already planning to send more 'care packages' for her grandfilly." "Speaking of care packages," I said, scrolling through our account activity, "what do you think the odds are of Celestia's next diplomatic payment coming through as promised?" "With Celestia? Pretty good. She's nothing if not reliable." Twilight paused, then added with a small laugh, "Though maybe we should wait to see it before we spend any more money." I hugged her closer, kissing the top of her head. "Says the mare who just helped pick out nearly three hundred thousand dollars worth of furniture." "Don't remind me," she groaned, but I could hear the smile in her voice. "Come on, we should finish packing. Tomorrow's going to be a big day." As she headed back to the bedroom, I took one last look at our account balance. Even after everything we'd spent, we were more secure than I'd ever dreamed possible. Yet here was Twilight, still worrying about being careful with money, still making sure we packed everything properly instead of just buying all new stuff. I couldn't help but smile. Sometimes I wondered who was luckier - us, for having such generous help from Equestria, or Celestia, for having such a responsible ambassador. * * * Tim Saturday morning dawned bright and early, the Houston heat already building as we loaded the first batch of boxes into the car. Sara was practically bouncing with excitement, clutching her favorite stuffed animal while Precious watched curiously from her carrier. "Ready for the big move?" I asked, helping Twilight secure the last box with a bungee cord. We pulled up to our new home just before 8:30 AM, and I couldn't help but grin at Sara's gasp of amazement. The house looked even more impressive in the morning light, its white stone façade gleaming. Before we could even get all our boxes out of the car, the first Gallery Furniture truck rolled through the gates, followed by two more. Mack himself stepped out of the lead vehicle, clipboard in hand. "Morning, folks! Hope you don't mind we're a bit early - thought we'd get started before the heat really kicks in." What happened next was like watching a well-choreographed dance. Teams of workers moved with practiced efficiency, bringing in piece after piece of furniture. Mack coordinated everything, consulting the computer layouts we'd planned, making sure every item went exactly where it belonged. "The formal living room setup looks perfect," Twilight commented, watching as the massive blue sectional was positioned just right. "And the dining room..." "Just wait till you see the library," Mack called out, directing another team up the stairs with bedroom furniture. Sara flitted from room to room, her eyes wide with wonder as her new home took shape. When they brought in her bedroom set - a princess-worthy collection in soft pink and white - she squealed with delight. "Daddy, look at my bed! It's so pretty!" The workers seemed to feed off her enthusiasm, smiling as they assembled her furniture with extra care. By noon, the last truck was pulling away, and Mack did a final walkthrough with us. "Everything's set up exactly like we planned," he said proudly. "Just need your signature here, and she's all yours." As Mack drove away, we stood in our fully furnished foyer, almost stunned by how quickly it had all come together. Precious was already exploring, her tiny paws clicking on the hardwood floors, while Sara ran from room to room, still discovering new details. "We should get the rest of our things," Twilight said practically, though I could see how pleased she was with everything. "Maybe two more trips should do it?" I nodded, still taking in the transformed space. "Maybe three trips since we only have one car. Though honestly, looking at all this, it's hard to believe we ever fit everything in that trailer." "Let's take Sara with us," Twilight suggested, watching our daughter peer into yet another room. "She might want to make sure we don't forget anything important." "Good idea," I agreed. "Hey princess," I called out to Sara, "ready to help us get the rest of your toys?" She came running back, her face flushed with excitement. "Can we come right back after? I want to play in my new room!" "Of course," Twilight assured her. "This is home now." Home. Looking around at our new reality - the elegant furniture, the soaring ceilings, the perfect spaces for both diplomatic duties and family life - it was almost overwhelming. But watching Sara's joy and seeing Twilight's quiet pride, I knew we'd made the right choice. "Alright, crew," I said, heading for the door. "Let's go get the rest of our stuff. The sooner we finish, the sooner we can really settle in." * * * Twilight We took three trips to get everything out the trailer, including the food, and only left the furniture and appliances. That night, while Tim was laying in our new bed he mused. "I wonder if we should replace the furniture and appliances in the trailer before we give it to Jerry?" I was organizing our closet - still amazed by its sheer size - when Tim's question made me pause. I turned to look at him, sprawled across our enormous new bed. The master suite was bigger than half our old trailer, and the California King mattress Mack had recommended was so large I had to use my magic to make the bed properly. "Replace the furniture?" I asked, trotting over to join him. "You mean buy new things for Jerry?" Tim nodded, propping himself up on one elbow. "Yeah. I mean, the stuff in there is pretty worn out. Jerry's been through some rough times, and if we're helping him out anyway..." I climbed onto the bed beside him, considering the idea. After three trips back and forth today, I'd gotten a good look at just how shabby some of the trailer's furniture had become. The couch had definitely seen better days, and the refrigerator made concerning noises sometimes. "We could," I said slowly, my practical side warring with my generous nature. "We certainly have the means to do it. But wouldn't that be a lot of money to spend right after buying all this?" I gestured at our luxurious surroundings. Tim chuckled, pulling me close. "Says the mare who just arranged for her mother's gemstones to be sold for three-quarters of a million dollars." His expression grew more serious. "Besides, Jerry's had my back since I was a kid. He looked out for me when things were rough, always had a couch for me to crash on when I needed it. Maybe it's time I returned the favor." I nuzzled against him, and Tim's expression grew thoughtful. "You know," he said, "we could actually do something really nice with that trailer for Jerry. He lives alone, never has overnight guests... we could set up a master bedroom suite, a proper living room, maybe convert the second bedroom into a game room and Sara's old room into a home gym." "A home gym?" I asked, intrigued by how Tim was reimagining the space. "Yeah, Jerry's always wanted to get back in shape, but he hates public gyms. Having his own setup might actually motivate him." Tim sat up, clearly warming to the idea. "And honestly, even if we went back to Gallery Furniture for everything, it would still be a fraction of what we spent here. We're talking maybe $50,000 to completely transform the place into his perfect bachelor pad." I smiled at Tim's enthusiasm. This wasn't just about replacing old furniture - he was thinking about how to give his friend a home that would truly improve his life. "You really want to do this right, don't you?" "Jerry's always been there for me," Tim said softly. "When things were rough, when I needed someone to talk to... he deserves something good in his life. And now we can actually make that happen." "Then let's do it," I agreed, stifling another yawn. "We can go back to Gallery Furniture tomorrow. I'm sure Mack would be happy to help us design the perfect setup." "Get some sleep, Twi," Tim murmured, kissing my forehead. "We can make plans in the morning." As I drifted off, I couldn't help but smile at how eager Tim was to help his friend. Through the open bedroom door, I could hear Sara's quiet giggles as she played in her new room, and Precious's happy yapping as she explored her new territory. In just one day, this huge house was already starting to feel like home - and soon, Jerry would have a proper home of his own too. * * * Twilight The next morning, we dropped Sara off at her grandmothers house before returning to Gallery Furniture. "Welcome back!" Mack's enthusiastic greeting carried across the showroom as we walked in Sunday morning. "How's the new house working out?" "Actually, we're here for a different project today," Tim explained, pulling out the measurements he'd made of the trailer. "We're setting up a friend's place." Mack's eyes lit up at the challenge as Tim laid out his vision - a bachelor pad with specific spaces for living, gaming, exercising, and sleeping. I watched in fascination as Mack pulled up the design software again, this time configuring it for the trailer's more modest dimensions. "Now, for a game room, you'll want something comfortable but durable," Mack said, showing us a sleek leather sectional with built-in recliners. "And for the gym space - we've got some great storage solutions that'll keep everything organized." The master bedroom suite he suggested included a California King bed similar to ours, though in darker, more masculine tones. By the time we finished selecting everything - from the entertainment center to the gym storage units - I was prepared for another substantial bill. "Alright, let's see," Mack tallied everything up. "With delivery and setup, we're looking at $37,500. That includes hauling away the old furniture too." Tim and I exchanged surprised looks. "That's... actually less than we expected," I admitted. "Well, we try to keep things reasonable," Mack grinned. "Now, when would you like delivery?" "What's your earliest available time?" Tim asked. Mack checked his computer. "Well, the trucks from yesterday's deliveries are already loaded for their next runs, but I could have a team out there within the hour if you'd like." "Really?" I couldn't keep the surprise from my voice. "That fast?" "Same day delivery isn't just a slogan, ma'am," Mack winked. "We'll have your friend's place set up before lunch." True to his word, we barely had time to drive back to the trailer before the trucks arrived. The transformation was incredible to watch - the old furniture disappeared, and in its place, each room took on new life. The game room looked like something out of a movie, the gym was professional quality, and the living room exuded comfortable sophistication. "I can't believe how fast they work," I murmured to Tim as we watched the last pieces being arranged. "Save you the best part for last," one of the workers called out, wheeling in what looked like a massage chair for the living room. "Mack threw this in as a bonus - said any bachelor pad needs one." Less than an hour after they'd arrived, the trucks were pulling away, leaving behind a completely transformed space. The trailer looked nothing like it had that morning - every room perfectly arranged, every piece carefully placed. Tim stood in the middle of the living room, looking around with satisfaction. "Jerry's going to lose his mind when he sees this." I leaned against him, sharing his happiness. "You should call him now," I suggested. "Let him see it while everything's fresh." Tim pulled out his phone, grinning as he dialed. "Hey Jerry! You busy?... Great, can you meet me at the trailer? Yeah, I know it's Sunday... Trust me, it's important... Okay, see you in thirty." He hung up, looking both excited and nervous. "He's on his way. Should we wait here or come back?" "We should definitely stay," I said, settling onto one of the new recliners. "I want to see his face when he walks in." The next half hour passed slowly as we waited, Tim pacing the transformed living room while I admired how perfectly everything had come together. The massage chair hummed softly in the corner - I had to admit, Mack's bonus addition was a nice touch. Finally, we heard a car pull up outside. Tim's eyes met mine, and I could see the anticipation building. This wasn't just about giving away a trailer anymore - this was about changing his friend's life completely. As we locked up the trailer, I couldn't help but feel proud of how we were using our good fortune. In just two days, we'd not only set up our new home but also transformed a friend's life. It felt right, like we were balancing our prosperity with generosity. Through the window, I saw a beat-up Ford pickup truck park next to our car. Jerry stepped out - a tall, lean man around thirty, wearing worn jeans and a faded t-shirt. I'd never met him before, but Tim had told me stories about their teenage years, how Jerry had taken him under his wing when they were both kids in a rough neighborhood. "Tim?" Jerry called out as he approached the door. "What's so important you had to drag me out here on a Sun-" His words cut off as Tim opened the door, revealing the transformed interior. Jerry stood frozen in the doorway, his eyes wide as he took in the sleek new furniture, the massive TV, the gaming setup. "What... what the hell?" he managed, stepping inside slowly. "Tim, what did you do?" "Well," Tim said, trying to keep his voice casual but barely containing his excitement, "remember how I mentioned Twilight and I bought a house? We decided the trailer needed some upgrades before we gave it to you." Jerry's head snapped toward Tim. "Gave it to... what?" "It's yours," Tim said simply, pulling out the papers we'd prepared. "Fully paid off, newly furnished. The second bedroom's a game room now, and we turned Sara's old room into a home gym." Jerry stood there, mouth slightly open, as Tim led him through each room. When they reached the gym, set up with professional-grade equipment, Jerry ran a hand through his short dark hair in disbelief. "The massage chair was Mack's idea," I added softly, speaking up for the first time. "He said every bachelor pad needs one." Jerry turned to look at me, seeming to really notice me for the first time. "You're Twilight," he said, his voice thick with emotion. "Tim's told me about you." He looked back at Tim. "But this... this is too much. I can't..." "Yes, you can," Tim interrupted firmly. "Jerry, you were the only one who gave a damn about me after my parents divorced. You looked out for me when we were just kids yourself. This?" He gestured around the trailer. "This is just me returning the favor." I watched as Jerry blinked hard, trying to maintain his composure as he examined the nearest piece of furniture. "All this must have cost a fortune," he mumbled. "Well," Tim grinned, wrapping an arm around my withers, "it helps having a rich, hot wife. Though I'd like to think my charming personality had something to do with landing her." I felt my cheeks flush at his comment, but I couldn't help smiling. Jerry let out a surprised laugh, some of the tension leaving his shoulders. "Only you, man," Jerry shook his head, grinning. "Only you could end up married to an actual magical pony." Jerry laughed, the sound a bit shaky. "You're such an ass," he said, but his voice was full of affection. He pulled Tim into a tight hug, then turned to me. "Thank you," he said simply. "For helping him do this." I smiled warmly. "Thank you for being there for him when he needed you. That means you're family now, and family takes care of each other." As Tim handed over the keys and paperwork, I could see the moment it really hit Jerry - this was his home now. Everything in it was his. The worn-down look he'd carried when he arrived seemed to lift, replaced by something that looked a lot like hope. Family takes care of family. Looking at Tim and Jerry together, I knew we'd done the right thing. Sometimes prosperity wasn't just about what you could buy, but about who you could help along the way. * * * Tim The drive back from Sara's grandmother's was filled with her excited chatter about spending the day with Grandma, mixed with eager questions about seeing her new room again. We'd barely made it through the front door of our new home when a familiar golden flash lit up the foyer, a scroll and hefty pouch materializing in front of Twilight. "Another letter from Celestia?" I asked, helping Sara take off her shoes. Twilight's horn glowed as she unrolled the parchment, her eyes scanning quickly. "Yes... they've found us an office space downtown for the embassy." She looked up at me, a mix of excitement and apprehension in her expression. "But we need to furnish it ourselves." "Of course we do," I chuckled, picking up the pouch. The weight felt familiar now - another 500 bits of pure gold. "Good thing Celestia thought ahead. This should cover it." "She says the office is in one of the high-rises downtown," Twilight continued reading. "We'll have the entire floor to ourselves - reception area, conference rooms, private offices..." "Sounds like another trip to see Mack tomorrow," I grinned, already imagining his enthusiasm for another big project. "Though this time we might need to go even more upscale than what we got for the house. Can't have foreign diplomats sitting on anything less than the best." Twilight nodded, but I could see her mind already working on lists and plans. "We'll need to think about security features too, and proper filing systems, and..." "Hey," I interrupted gently, pulling her close. "One thing at a time. Let's get settled in here first, then we can tackle turning you into a proper ambassador tomorrow." Sara tugged at my sleeve. "Daddy, can I go play in my room?" "Of course, princess. Just don't let Precious jump on the new furniture, okay?" As Sara ran upstairs, Precious trotting behind her, I turned back to Twilight. "You know, at this rate, Mack's going to name a showroom after us." Twilight laughed, some of the tension leaving her shoulders. "As long as he doesn't expect me to make a speech at the dedication ceremony." I settled onto our new couch, the pouch of gold bits still heavy in my hand. The thought that had been nagging at me finally bubbled up. "Hey Twi, do you think Celestia actually knows how much these bits are worth here? I mean, really understands it?" Twilight curled up next to me, her expression thoughtful. "She's probably been told the conversion rate," she said slowly. "But understanding what that means? That's different." She paused, searching for the right words. "Back in Equestria, bits are... well, they're just currency. A bit might buy you a few apples or a cupcake. The concept of them being worth thousands of dollars each... it's hard to grasp without living here." "That's why ponies are moving here, isn't it?" I mused, letting the bits run through my fingers. "You can read about Earth economics all day, but until you actually buy something..." "Exactly," Twilight nodded. "It's like trying to explain color to someone who's never seen it. Celestia knows the numbers, but experiencing what those numbers mean - paying for a house, furnishing it, seeing the actual value of things here - that's different." She let out a small laugh. "I mean, look at me. Even after living here and seeing it firsthand, I still get nervous about spending money on take-out." "Meanwhile, Celestia's casually sending us millions of dollars in gold like she's tipping a waiter," I chuckled, but then grew more serious. "Though I guess when you're an immortal princess, maybe money just hits different." "Or maybe," Twilight added softly, "she trusts us to use it wisely, even if she doesn't fully understand its value here." I pulled her closer, kissing the top of her head. "Well, between your careful planning and my brilliant furniture shopping skills, I'd say we're doing okay with it." I pulled Twilight into a kiss, feeling her melt against me. The past few days had been a whirlwind of activity - moving, furnishing, helping Jerry - but right now, with Sara happily playing in her room, all I could think about was my wife. "You know," I murmured against her ear, "we haven't properly christened our new bed yet." Twilight's ears twitched, a small smile playing across her lips. "That's true. And it would be a shame to let such an expensive mattress go untested." I scooped her up in my arms, earning a surprised squeak that turned into a giggle. "Then let's conduct a thorough evaluation, shall we?" * * * As Tim’s lips found Twilight’s, he felt her respond instantly, her body melting into his, the tension of the last few days spent waiting unraveling between them. His hands trailed down her sides, over the soft contours of her body, making her shudder beneath him, every inch of her taut with anticipation. The moonlight filtering through the curtains cast a soft glow across her coat, turning her lavender fur to silver in the cool light. Her eyes, half-lidded with desire, met his, drawing him deeper, stoking the fire that smoldered between them. “Tim,” she whispered, her voice low and breathless as she leaned up, her muzzle brushing the sensitive skin of his neck. "I want you… I need you.” Her tail flicked, curling around his thigh as she pressed herself closer, her hooves resting on his shoulders, pulling him down to her. His hand slid down her back, fingers tracing over her sensitive flanks, making her shiver, her breathing quickening with each touch. Her violet eyes shone with a fiery, longing gaze, her cheeks flushed as his fingers continued their slow descent, leaving a trail of warmth that set her nerves alight. As he moved above her, his lips found the sensitive spot just beneath her jaw, drawing a gasp from her that was somewhere between a moan and a plea. Her head tipped back, eyes closing as he kissed along her neck, feeling her heartbeat flutter beneath his lips. His hands caressed her sides, exploring every curve, every soft dip, lingering over her flanks as he felt her hips shift, her legs parting just enough to guide him. His touch grew bolder, sliding down her belly, fingers grazing the delicate skin below, teasing her until her breath came in shallow, desperate gasps. Twilight’s legs wrapped around him, urging him closer, pressing her need against him. His body aligned with hers, feeling her warmth, the slickness that betrayed just how ready she was, how much she ached for him. He moved slowly, savoring the closeness, feeling the tremble in her body as he finally pressed into her, her walls yielding, tight and warm, embracing him fully. “Oh… Tim,” she gasped, her voice trembling with both pleasure and surprise as he filled her, stretching her open, every inch sliding deeper, sending shudders through her. Her hooves clutched at his shoulders, her back arching beneath him, hips rolling to meet his, urging him deeper. Each thrust was slow, deliberate, his body grinding against hers in a rhythm that had her gasping, her moans growing louder with each stroke. Their movements built with an unrestrained fervor, every touch, every gasp urging them deeper into each other, taking them both somewhere far past control, past the point of holding back. Twilight’s body tightened around him, slick and needy, her gasps mingling with his ragged breath as they moved in a rhythm so perfect, so consuming, it felt as though nothing else existed. Every inch of her body burned with desire, her pulse racing as his hips ground into hers, each thrust sending a surge of pleasure up her spine. Her moans grew louder, more desperate, rising with each relentless stroke. “Oh, Tim… yes, like that, right there…” she moaned, her voice a heady whisper, her hooves clutching at his shoulders, her back arching to meet him. She was utterly, deliciously lost to him, their bodies entwined, her need pushing her closer and closer to that exquisite edge. The friction between them was electric, her heat flaring hotter with each thrust, sending shivers through her that only drew her deeper into the intoxicating spiral of lust. The tension coiled tighter inside her, until she felt she might snap, her body clinging to him, pulling him in, her breaths mingling with his in a fevered, desperate rhythm. And then, all at once, it broke. She gasped, her back arching, hips bucking as her climax tore through her, leaving her trembling, gasping, utterly undone. Her walls clenched tight around him, each pulse drawing him in deeper, pulling him over the edge with her. He groaned, hips grinding hard into her, his release mingling with hers in a heated shudder that left them both gasping, wrapped in the thick, sultry air of their shared pleasure. They lay together, bodies slick, hearts racing as they breathed each other in, the raw intimacy binding them in the warmth of the aftermath. Tim’s arm stayed wrapped around her, his fingers trailing absently along her back, grounding her in the hazy glow of the moment. But as her breath began to slow, she felt something else - a stillness within her that she hadn’t realized she’d been craving, a peace so complete it almost startled her. It was only then that Twilight became aware of the hollow relief filling her, a strange, almost cooling sensation where, just moments before, she’d felt an unbearable heat. Her eyes widened, her breath catching as the realization washed over her, her pulse stuttering in shock. “Oh… Celestia…” she murmured, voice breaking with the sudden, unexpected awareness. “I was in… heat…” A raw flush bloomed across her cheeks as the full weight of her need, her craving, all fell into place, suddenly clear. As she looked over at her sleeping husband, a smile tugged at her lips. She whispered to herself. "Worth it." * * * Author's Note I write Commissions. Have a story idea? Send me a DM. And for anyone who's wondering, Gallery Furniture is a real Houston-area store. //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 17 - New Beginnings //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 17 - New Beginnings Tim The morning sun filtered through our new bedroom windows, casting long shadows across the California King bed. Twilight lay curled against me, her breathing still soft with sleep, but my mind was already racing with everything we needed to accomplish today. The massive house felt different in the early morning light - more real somehow, like we were finally settling into our new reality. I glanced at the clock: 6:15 AM. We'd called Melvin yesterday to let him know we'd be out today, handling "official business." It wasn't entirely a lie - getting Sara registered at her new school and setting up proper childcare were essential parts of establishing ourselves here. Still, part of me felt guilty about missing work, especially with how understanding Pipeline had been about our situation. "Twi," I murmured, gently stroking her mane. "Time to wake up, honey. Big day ahead." She stirred, pressing closer against me before her eyes fluttered open. "Mmm... what time is it?" "Early enough," I said, dropping a kiss on her forehead. "But we need to get moving if we want to get Sara registered before the school day starts." Twilight's eyes opened fully as she remembered our plans for the day. Her horn glowed softly as she began organizing clothes for the day. Even after just two nights, she'd arranged our massive walk-in closet with military precision. "I made a list of everything we need," she said, because of course she had. "Medical records, proof of residence, immunization records..." "Already packed them in my briefcase last night," I assured her. The sound of tiny paws clicking on hardwood reached us - Precious, making her morning rounds of our new territory. "Sounds like someone's up. Want to get Sara while I start breakfast?" Twilight nodded, stretching as she climbed out of bed. "We should probably dress a bit more formally than usual," she mused. "First impressions at the new school and all that." I couldn't help but smile at her attention to detail. Even this early, she was thinking like a diplomat. "Good point. Though I draw the line at wearing a tie to drop off our daughter." She shot me a playful look. "No tie necessary. But maybe that navy blazer you wore to the Bureau?" As Twilight headed toward Sara's room, I couldn't help but marvel at how quickly our lives had changed. A week ago, we were living in a trailer, worried about CPS and eviction notices. Now we were in a mansion, dealing with diplomatic duties and school registrations. Life had certainly gotten more complicated - but watching Twilight's tail swish as she walked away, I couldn't say I minded the complications. The kitchen still felt massive compared to our old trailer, but I'd already found a rhythm in it. I pulled out eggs, bacon, and the ingredients for pancakes - Sara would need her favorite breakfast today. The professional-grade appliances made everything easier, though I still caught myself reaching for things in places they used to be. Upstairs, I could hear Twilight's gentle voice coaxing Sara awake, followed by the inevitable "five more minutes" negotiation. I smiled, measuring out coffee grounds. Some things hadn't changed, even if everything around us had. "Daddy!" Sara's voice carried down the sweeping staircase. "Do I have to wear my new clothes today?" "Yes, princess," I called back, flipping the first batch of pancakes. "We want to look nice for your new school." Precious trotted into the kitchen, her tiny nails clicking against the hardwood. She sat expectantly by her new food bowl - another adjustment we were all making. I'd barely filled it when Twilight appeared, levitating a sleepy but dressed Sara behind her. "Someone didn't want to get out of her princess bed," Twilight said, setting Sara gently in one of the kitchen chairs. She was wearing a neat blue dress that made her look older somehow, more like a proper student than my little girl. "Can't blame her," I said, sliding a plate of pancakes in front of Sara. "That bed is pretty comfortable." After making sure she was settled with her breakfast, I turned to Twilight. "Did you remember to pack her old school records?" Twilight nodded, her horn glowing as she poured herself coffee. "Everything's in order. Though I'm a bit nervous about the registration process. Do you think they'll have any concerns about... well, about me?" I caught the worry in her voice. After everything with CPS, it was understandable. "Hey," I said softly, wrapping an arm around her withers, "you're an ambassador now, remember? And this school is used to dealing with international families. It'll be fine." Sara looked up from her pancakes, syrup already somehow on her cheek. "Will there be other ponies at my new school, Mommy?" "I'm not sure, sweetie," Twilight answered honestly. "But I know there will be lots of nice children for you to make friends with." The drive to The Woodlands Preparatory School felt longer than it probably was, my mind racing with all the details we needed to handle. The campus appeared ahead of us, all pristine brick buildings and manicured lawns. Several other cars were already in the parking lot - apparently we weren't the only parents handling early morning business. "Remember," I said as we walked toward the administration building, Sara between us, "let me handle the paperwork first. Then we can discuss the diplomatic status if we need to." Twilight nodded, but I could see her scanning everything, taking in details with that sharp mind of hers. The secretary looked up as we entered, her professional smile only faltering slightly at the sight of Twilight. "Good morning," she said, recovering quickly. "How can I help you today?" I stepped forward, briefcase in hand. "We're here to register our daughter, Sara. We spoke on the phone last week?" "Ah, yes, Sir Tim, if I recall." She pulled out a stack of forms. "And this must be Sara. Welcome to Woodlands Prep." As I began filling out paperwork, I could feel the weight of this moment. It wasn't just about changing schools - it was about giving Sara the opportunities that came with our new status. Watching her sit quietly beside Twilight, both of them taking in their surroundings, I knew we were doing the right thing. Even if part of me still couldn't believe this was our new reality. "Everything seems to be in order, Sir Tim," the secretary said, organizing the completed forms into a neat folder. "We'll need today to process everything and find the best classroom placement for Sara. She can start first thing tomorrow morning - drop-off begins at 7:45." I nodded, feeling Twilight shift beside me. I knew she wanted to ask more questions about the curriculum, but we had other pressing matters to handle. "Thank you," I said, standing. "We appreciate how quickly you're able to get her started." The secretary smiled, then pulled out a glossy brochure from her desk. "Since you mentioned needing after-school care, I'd highly recommend Little Scholars Academy. Most of our families use them - they're just down the road, and they provide transportation from our campus." She paused, glancing at Twilight. "They're very... progressive in their approach to diverse families." I took the brochure, catching the subtle meaning in her words. The front cover showed children of various backgrounds playing together, including what looked like a young griffin. At least we wouldn't be the only non-human family in the mix. "Come on, sweetie," Twilight said to Sara, who was examining a wall of student artwork with intense concentration. "We need to get you registered at your new after-school program." Once back in the car, Sara's excitement began bubbling over. "Did you see all the art supplies in that classroom we passed? And they have a science lab! And-" "I saw," Twilight laughed, her own enthusiasm matching Sara's. "Though I'm a bit concerned about the lack of magical theory in their curriculum..." I couldn't help but chuckle. "Pretty sure that's not standard in Earth schools, Twi. Even fancy private ones." The drive to Little Scholars Academy was short, the building appearing around a curve in the road. It looked more like a small private school than a daycare - all brick and large windows, with a playground that would put most parks to shame. "Wow," Sara breathed from the backseat. "Is that where I'm going after school?" "If they have space for you," I said, trying not to think about what this place must cost. Though given our new financial situation, that wasn't really a concern anymore. The interior was just as impressive - clean and bright, with educational displays everywhere and what looked like separate wings for different age groups. A woman in a crisp blazer approached us, her smile warm and genuine. "Welcome to Little Scholars! I'm Rebecca Thorne, the director. How can I help you today?" "I'm Sir Tim, and this is my wife, Lady Twilight Sparkle," I said, still getting used to using our formal titles. "We're looking to enroll our daughter Sara in your after-school program." Rebecca's eyes lit up with recognition. "Lady Sparkle! Sir Tim! Yes, we received a call from the Bureau of Equestrian Affairs last week, mentioning you might be visiting us. We'd be honored to have Sara join our program. Our normal hours are 6:30 AM to 7:00 PM," Rebecca explained. "We understand diplomatic schedules can be demanding, so we're flexible with early drop-offs and late pickups."" Twilight and I exchanged surprised looks. Apparently Celestia's organization extended further than we'd realized. "You... handle diplomatic families often?" Twilight asked carefully. Rebecca nodded. "Several of our children have parents in the diplomatic corps. We understand the unique needs and security considerations involved." She turned to Sara with a bright smile. "Would you like to see where you'll be spending your afternoons? We have an amazing art studio I think you'll love." As Sara followed Rebecca on a tour, practically bouncing with excitement, I felt Twilight lean against me slightly. "The Bureau called ahead," she murmured. "They're really looking out for us, aren't they?" I squeezed her hoof. "Looks like it. Though I have to admit, it's a little unnerving how thorough they are." "Welcome to diplomatic life," she replied with a small smile. "At least we know Sara will be well taken care of." Watching our daughter explore her new after-school home, her eyes wide with wonder at each new discovery, I had to agree. This might all be new and sometimes overwhelming, but we were giving her opportunities we'd never dreamed possible just a few weeks ago. Now we just had to figure out how to be diplomatic parents without losing ourselves in the process. * * * Twilight I signed the $2,800 tuition check with my magic, remembering how such a sum would have once sent me into a panic. Now it felt like nothing more than a reasonable investment in Sara's future. Little Scholars had everything we could want in an after-school program, from advanced educational activities to stringent security protocols. Watching Sara immediately dive into an art project with some other children, I pushed down the flutter of morning sickness I'd been fighting all day. She didn't need to see me worried. "She'll be fine," Tim assured me as we headed back to the car. "Did you see how quickly she made friends with that little girl at the painting station?" I nodded, wondering how he'd react when I finally told him my suspicions. Last night's revelation about being in heat had quickly given way to the realization that I was already too late - my body's signals were unmistakable to any mare who knew what to look for. "I know. It's just... everything's changing so fast." Tim squeezed my hoof as we got into the car. "That's not always a bad thing. Now, we should head downtown to check out this embassy space. Can't exactly order furniture without knowing what we're working with." The drive into Houston proper gave me time to organize my thoughts. How do you tell your husband you're carrying his foal when you're not even sure how cross-species pregnancy works? I'd need to contact Celestia, maybe arrange for an Equestrian doctor... My stomach lurched at a sudden wave of nausea, and I quickly cracked the window. The high-rise that would house our embassy loomed ahead of us, its glass exterior reflecting the late morning sun. According to Celestia's letter, we had the entire forty-second floor. A security guard waved us through as soon as we gave our names - clearly, the Bureau had been busy setting things up. "Sir Tim, Lady Sparkle," a suited man greeted us as we stepped off the elevator. "I'm David Chen from the Bureau of Equestrian Affairs. Welcome to your new embassy space." He paused, looking slightly embarrassed. "Though I should warn you - someone in Planning thought 'hay delivery elevator' was a joke request. We're still trying to figure out how to explain that one to Accounting." Twilight's ears flicked in agreement. "Though I suppose it's better than the griffin embassy's request for a 'live prey delivery system.'" Tim cracked a smile. “I’m sure the cargo elevator will be just fine for the hay deliveries. Just… maybe assign people to keep it clean. I don’t need my non-human staff, or my wife, getting sick eating contaminated food.” The floors were bare except for some basic office infrastructure - power outlets, network connections, and what looked like freshly installed security systems. The views of downtown Houston through the floor-to-ceiling windows were breathtaking. And thankfully, the height didn't seem to be making my nausea worse. "The floor plan should be exactly as requested by Princess Celestia," David explained, handing me a thick folder. "We've installed all the necessary security and communication systems, but furnishing and decorating will be up to you. Though I understand you've already found a reliable supplier?" I caught Tim's slight smirk. "You could say that," he replied. "Mack's probably already designing the perfect diplomatic furniture setup in his head." As we walked through the space, I began mentally adding "nursery" to the list of rooms we'd need to plan for at the office. One of the rooms at home was already a nursey out of an abundance of caution when we got the original furniture. A grand reception area here, conference rooms there, private offices overlooking the city... But my thoughts kept drifting to the tiny life growing inside me. I needed to tell Tim soon - he deserved to know he was going to be a father again. I just needed to figure out how. "Twi?" Tim's voice broke through my distraction. "You okay? You look a bit flushed." "I'm fine," I said quickly, perhaps too quickly. "Just... excited about getting everything set up." But as we continued our tour, I couldn't stop thinking about how much our lives were about to change. Again. I just hoped Tim would be as excited about this particular change as I was starting to feel. * * * Twilight Gallery Furniture's familiar storefront was a welcome sight after the imposing downtown high-rise. My stomach had finally settled, though the morning sickness lingered in the back of my mind like a warning. As we walked through the doors, Mack's booming voice carried across the showroom. "Well, if it isn't my favorite diplomatic couple! How's the new house treating you?" "Wonderfully," Tim replied, shaking Mack's hand. "But we've got an even bigger project for you today." Mack's eyebrows rose. "Bigger than a ten-thousand-square-foot house? Now this I've got to hear." "We need to furnish the Equestrian Embassy," I said, my horn glowing as I levitated the floor plans from my saddlebag. "The entire forty-second floor of-" "Hold up," Mack interrupted, his expression shifting from excitement to something more calculating. "An embassy? As in, an official diplomatic mission of a foreign nation?" Tim nodded. "That's right. We were hoping you could-" "Let me stop you right there," Mack said, his signature grin spreading across his face. "I want to furnish it. All of it. For free." I nearly dropped the floor plans in surprise. "Free? But... why?" "Tax write-off," Mack explained, leading us to his computer station. "Donation to a foreign government for diplomatic purposes? My accountant's gonna love this. Plus," he added with a wink, "imagine the publicity. 'Gallery Furniture: Official Supplier to the Equestrian Embassy.' Can't buy that kind of advertising." Tim and I exchanged looks. "That's... incredibly generous," Tim said carefully. "But we're talking about a lot of furniture here. Conference tables, executive desks, reception area seating..." "Even better," Mack said, already pulling up his design software. "Give me those floor plans. We're gonna do this right - custom everything, top-of-the-line materials. When diplomats walk into your embassy, they're gonna know they're somewhere special." As Mack began working on the design, I felt another wave of nausea hit. I swallowed hard, trying to focus on the computer screen. "You okay there, Lady Sparkle?" Mack asked, noticing my discomfort. "Looking a little green around the gills, if you don't mind me saying." "I'm fine," I said quickly, catching Tim's concerned glance. "Just... excited about the project." Mack nodded, though I could tell he wasn't entirely convinced. "Well, let's get started then. For the main reception area, I'm thinking something that combines Earth and Equestrian aesthetics. Maybe some custom pieces that accommodate both human and pony visitors..." I let his enthusiastic planning wash over me, grateful for the distraction from my churning stomach and the secret I was still carrying. One thing at a time, I told myself. First the embassy, then... then I'd figure out how to tell Tim about the foal. For now, I focused on Mack's designs, which were growing more impressive by the minute. He really did have a gift for this, and his generosity was overwhelming. Though I couldn't help but wonder if morning sickness was going to become a regular feature of our furniture shopping adventures. * * * Tim Watching Mack work was like seeing an artist at his craft. His fingers flew over the keyboard, bringing each room of the embassy to life on the screen. Custom conference tables with adjustable heights for different species, executive desks designed to accommodate both human and pony ergonomics, plush seating areas that somehow managed to look both regal and welcoming. "Now, for Lady Sparkle's office," Mack said, pulling up a new design, "I'm thinking something special. Custom desk with a built-in magic-friendly interface - my team's been developing these since Equestrians started settling here. And the view of downtown will be perfect from this placement." I glanced at Twilight, noticing how she seemed paler than usual. She'd been off all morning, though she kept insisting she was fine. Before I could ask again, Mack's voice drew my attention back to the screen. "Total retail value would've been around $1,000,000…" he said, finalizing the order. "But like I said, this one's on Gallery Furniture. Consider it our contribution to international relations." He grinned, picking up his phone. "Now, let me get my teams moving. How fast do you need this set up?" "We were hoping to have the embassy functional by the end of the week," I started, but Mack was already shaking his head. "End of the week? Nah, we can do better than that. I've got three teams on standby and priority access to the freight elevators. Give me till sunset." "Today?" Twilight's voice squeaked slightly. "But the logistics of moving everything through downtown-" "Lady Sparkle," Mack interrupted with a knowing smile, "I've been planning this since you mentioned embassy. Already got the permits, scheduled the police escort for the trucks, everything. Gallery Furniture doesn't just deliver - we make the impossible happen." True to his word, by the time we made it back downtown, three Gallery Furniture trucks were already pulling up to the loading dock. We watched from the forty-second floor as an army of workers coordinated through headsets began bringing up pieces with military precision. "I can't believe how fast they work," Twilight murmured, watching a massive conference table being expertly maneuvered through the door. I wrapped an arm around her withers. "That's Mack for you. When he commits to something..." The transformation was incredible to witness. Within the first hour, the reception area took shape - elegant but welcoming, with subtle touches that echoed Equestrian design elements. The conference rooms followed, each one perfectly balanced between Earth and Equestrian aesthetics. Twilight's office was particularly impressive. The custom desk looked like something out of a sci-fi movie, but somehow still managed to feel classic and diplomatic. When she tested the magic interface, her eyes lit up with genuine joy - the first time all day I'd seen her look truly herself. "Sir Tim," one of the workers called out, "where would you like your office set up?" I blinked in surprise. "My office?" "Of course," the worker nodded. "Mr. McIngvale was very clear - as Military Governor of Ponyville, you need your own diplomatic space too." I caught Twilight trying to hide a smile. Sometimes I forgot that I had an official title now too. "Right. Um, maybe next to Lady Sparkle's office?" By the three-hour mark, the entire embassy was taking shape. The furniture looked like it had always been there, each piece perfectly placed to create an atmosphere of diplomatic sophistication. Mack's team had thought of everything - from built-in charging stations to magical enhancement crystals embedded in key pieces. By the time the sun began to set, the team leader called out to us. "Ten minutes to finish cleanup and then we'll be out of your hair." "He actually did it," I muttered, watching the setting sun paint downtown Houston in golden light. "The view is even more beautiful at sunset." "The Mare of Friendship table is my favorite," Twilight said softly, gesturing to the stunning piece in the main conference room. The table's surface bore subtle patterns that reminded me of her cutie mark, worked into a design that somehow wasn't out of place in a formal diplomatic setting. As the last workers filed out, right on Mack's four-hour schedule, Twilight and I stood in our newly furnished embassy. The afternoon sun streamed through the windows, making everything glow with possibility. "We should probably head back to pick up Sara," I said, checking the time. "But first... want to try out that fancy new desk of yours?" Twilight nodded, though something in her expression seemed distant. "Yes, but... Tim? There's something I need to tell you..." * * * Tim The afternoon sun cast long shadows through the embassy windows as Twilight led me to her new office. Something in her demeanor had shifted - the slight tremor in her voice, the way her ears twitched nervously. She closed the door behind us with her magic, then turned to face me. "Tim, I... I need to tell you something about last night," she began, her voice soft but certain. "You know how we weren't sure if ponies and humans were... compatible?" I settled into one of the visitor chairs, my heart starting to race as I caught her meaning. "Wait, are you saying...?" She nodded, a small smile playing at her lips despite her obvious nervousness. "Being a unicorn means I can sense certain types of magic, including... life magic." She took a deep breath. "I'm pregnant, Tim. The magic signature is unmistakable." The world seemed to stop for a moment. We'd discussed the possibility during her heat cycle, but the reality of it actually happening... "Already? Celestia warned about this possibility, didn't she?" "Any mare trained in magic can sense it almost immediately," she explained, her hoof resting on her belly. "It's like... a spark of new magic taking hold. I felt it this morning, but I wanted to be sure before I told you." She paused, biting her lip. "I know we said we'd be careful, but with my heat cycle... well, I guess we're the first documented case of human-pony compatibility." The scientific detachment in her tone made me smile - trust Twilight to think about documentation at a moment like this. But beneath her analytical approach, I could see the mix of joy and uncertainty in her eyes. I stood up, my legs feeling slightly unsteady. "A foal," I said softly, moving closer to her. "Our little pony." I remembered her explanation about cross-species offspring always matching their mother's race, but somehow the reality of it hit differently now. She looked up at me, her violet eyes shimmering with unshed tears. "Are you... are you happy about this? I know it's incredibly sudden, and with everything else going on..." I pulled her into my arms, then let out a low chuckle that made her ears flatten with worry. "You know, we barely agreed to let Sara have a puppy, and now your baby-trapping me with a magical pony pregnancy? Did you think it would make me love you more?" Twilight's eyes went wide with horror, tears spilling down her cheeks as she started to pull away. "Tim, I didn't... I would never..." I pulled her closer, kissing her forehead as she trembled against me. "Well," I whispered, my voice thick with emotion, "it worked. I love you more than ever, you scheming little mare." She hiccupped, somewhere between a laugh and a sob, swatting at me with her hoof. "That wasn't funny! I thought... I was so scared you'd..." "I know," I said softly, stroking her mane. "But we're in this together. Though I do have about a million questions. Do we need special doctors? Will Celestia help arrange medical care? And most importantly - how are we going to explain to Sara that her new sibling might have hooves?" Twilight nuzzled against my chest, her tears subsiding. "I'll need to contact Celestia, arrange for an Equestrian doctor to monitor things. Though I have to admit, explaining this to Sara might be easier than telling my mother. She's probably already knitting baby booties just in case." "I can't believe you can tell so soon," I whispered, my hand moving to rest beside her hoof on her belly. "Though I guess after everything else, magical pregnancy detection is pretty tame." "Magic makes some things easier," she said with a small laugh. "Though the next eleven months might not be." "Eleven months?" I blinked in surprise. "At least we already set up that nursery at home. One of those seven bedrooms finally has a purpose beyond my paranoid planning." "About that..." Twilight shifted slightly, looking thoughtful. "We should probably set up a nursery here at the embassy too." I nodded, already thinking ahead. "Not just for our foal, but for any of the mares who'll be working here. Regular human daycare centers aren't equipped to handle young foals, and we need to make sure our staff has proper support. Maybe convert one of these extra offices?" Twilight's eyes lit up, and she nuzzled closer to me. "You've thought about this already? About making accommodations for other ponies?" "Hey, I'm not just a pretty face," I grinned. "Besides, you're going to need staff you can trust, and nothing builds loyalty like showing you care about their families. Mack gave us a lot of free stuff but only what absolutely needed to open the embassy. All these extra little things will come out of own pocket… or maybe the embassy budget, if we have an embassy budget.” Her ears perked forward, and I could practically see her making mental notes. "That's... that's brilliant actually. And so thoughtful! Though," she added with a small smirk, "you're still a pretty face." "Tim?" She grew more serious again. "Are you really okay with this happening so soon? I know we talked about having foals eventually, but this wasn't exactly planned..." I kissed her forehead, feeling a smile spread across my face. "You know, normally unplanned pregnancies are a cause for panic, not celebration. But between your mom's inevitable mountain of baby supplies, Celestia's support, and our new financial situation... I'd say we're better prepared than most." She relaxed against me, and I could feel the tension leaving her body. "I love you," she murmured. "And I can't wait to see what kind of father you'll be to our foal. You're already such an amazing daddy to Sara..." "Speaking of studying and preparation," I added with a thoughtful smile, "maybe it's time I went back to school myself. We can certainly afford it now, and having a better education would help me be a proper consort for an ambassador. Plus, I'd like to be able to help our foal with their homework someday - assuming they don't inherit your genius-level intellect." Twilight's eyes lit up. "You'd really go back to college? Tim, that's wonderful! Though," she added with a playful nuzzle, "I hope you know this means we'll be competing for study space in the library." "Competing? Have you seen the size of our library?" I chuckled, pulling her closer. "That room's bigger than our old trailer. Pretty sure we could fit the three of us in there - you with your diplomatic papers, me with my college work, and Sara doing her homework. Maybe even add a fourth study spot in a few years when this little one starts school." I gently patted her belly. "Our own little family study group," she said, her eyes growing misty at the thought. "Come on, let's go pick up Sara. Though maybe we should stop by a bookstore first - I think both of us have some research to do." As we left the embassy, my arm around her withers, I couldn't stop smiling. A foal, college, a new life - all of it felt possible now. Whatever challenges lay ahead, whatever surprises this pregnancy might bring, we'd face them together. And somehow, standing in our newly furnished embassy with this incredible news, everything else - the diplomatic duties, the social obligations, all of it - felt secondary to the miracle that had begun inside my wife and the future we were building together. * * * Twilight The Houston traffic flowed around us as we headed back to Little Scholars to pick up Sara. I checked my watch, made specifically for a pony - just past six. Little Scholars was open until seven, but we'd promised Sara we wouldn't leave her too late on her first day. My main worry now was getting there late. I didn’t want her standing outside waiting for us. My hoof rested instinctively on my belly, still amazed at the tiny spark of life I could sense there. Tim glanced over at me, a thoughtful expression on his face. "So," he began, his tone casual but curious, "how do you think your mom's going to react to the news about the foal? Based on that letter she sent back when we first started dating, I'm guessing she'll be... enthusiastic?" I couldn't help but laugh, remembering my mother's not-so-subtle hints about grandfoals in that first letter. "Oh, she'll be beyond excited. She's probably already knitting baby booties just on the chance we might have a foal someday." I paused, my ears flicking back slightly. "Though I should probably warn you again about when we eventually visit. My mother really doesn't have any boundaries, and she's still quite... forward." Tim cleared his throat, clearly remembering my earlier warnings about my mother's behavior. "Yeah, about that... is that whole 'might jump me' thing still a possibility? Because I've got to admit, after reading her letter, I'm a little concerned about meeting her in person." I felt my cheeks flush hot. "She won't actually try anything inappropriate - she loves my father too much for that. She just... lacks a filter. And writes those romance novels..." I trailed off, then added quickly, "But don't worry, I'll protect you from her enthusiasm. Besides, once she finds out about the foal, she'll probably be too busy planning the nursery to cause trouble." Tim chuckled, though I could hear a hint of nervousness in it. "Good to know. Though maybe we should wait a bit before telling her? At least until we've had time to process it ourselves?" I nodded, grateful for his pragmatic approach. "Agreed. I'd like to contact an Equestrian doctor first anyway, make sure everything's progressing normally. Then we can deal with my mother's... excitement." "And your father's protective instincts," Tim added with a slight grimace. "Though I guess getting you pregnant might be slightly better than letting you almost die from magical exhaustion?" I swatted him playfully with my tail. "Don't joke about that. Though... you might have a point. At least this time you're taking responsibility for your actions." "Taking responsibility? Last time I checked, we were already married," Tim replied with a playful grin. "Though I have to admit, your dad's threats make more sense now that we've actually given him a reason." My ears flattened slightly. "My mother's reaction will probably overshadow any threats from my father. She once wrote an entire novel series about noble unicorns seducing their servants to ensure proper bloodlines." "Should I be worried?" Tim asked, his tone caught between amusement and concern. I felt my cheeks burning. "Mom's... enthusiastic about family, but she'd never cross that line. Though I should warn you - she once wrote an entire theoretical thesis on proper breeding techniques and tried to make it required reading for nobility." Tim's eyes widened. "Please tell me you're joking." "Father had to convince her that perhaps some things were better left to personal discovery," I muttered, then caught his expression. "Don't worry, I made her promise - no surprise educational materials." Tim cleared his throat. "Maybe we should wait to tell them about the foal until after I've met them in person. Just to be safe." I couldn't help but laugh at his obvious discomfort. "Probably wise. Though I'm not sure meeting her first will make it any easier. She tends to be... hands-on with her advice." "Hooves-on, you mean?" Tim quipped, though I could hear the nervous edge in his voice. I snorted. "Just... stay close to me when we visit. I'll protect you from her 'helpful' suggestions about proper breeding techniques." "Shall I expect a demonstration with audience participation?" Tim asked dryly. I buried my face in my hooves again, mortified. "Please don't even joke about that. The last thing I need is my mother trying to give us 'practical advice.' Let's just... tell them about the foal in a letter. From very far away. Maybe we can visit after the baby is born." "And risk her showing up here unannounced?" Tim raised an eyebrow. "At least in Equestria we'd have warning." I couldn't argue with that logic. "Fine. But you've been warned. And don't encourage her - she once tried to write an educational guide for proper..." I stopped myself, remembering we were headed to pick up Sara. "Well, let's just say my father had to hide the manuscript." "Now I'm genuinely terrified," Tim laughed, though his grip on the steering wheel tightened slightly. "Should we bring the diplomatic immunity paperwork when we visit, just in case?" I nudged him playfully. "Don't worry, I won't let her corrupt my husband. You're mine to corrupt." "I'm already corrupt," Tim replied with a knowing smirk. "It'd be a fair argument to say I corrupted you, my little pregnant mare." He paused, and though his tone stayed playful, I caught a hint of vulnerability in his voice. "Though... please tell me you love me, and this wasn't just some biological need to reproduce during your heat cycle?" A shiver ran through me at his words, remembering our earlier conversation at the embassy. "Tim! After that cruel joke about baby-trapping you..." I nuzzled against him as much as the seatbelt would allow. "Of course I love you. The heat just... helped speed things along. Though I have to point out, I was the one crawling into your bed long before this." "Only after I saved your life," he countered, relaxing at my reassurance. "We also didn't actually have sex until we were married under Equestrian law. Though I have to admit, having a magical pony wife who can't keep her hooves off me isn't exactly a hardship - heat cycle or no heat cycle." I felt my cheeks flush hot. "We should probably have this conversation later. We're almost at Sara's school." "Probably wise," Tim agreed, though his grin hadn't faded. "Though we should definitely finish this discussion tonight. I believe you mentioned something about being very attentive?" "You're right, you are the corrupt one," I muttered, though I couldn't help smiling. "Just remember - you're responsible for this foal, planned or not." "Proudly so," he replied, his voice softening with genuine emotion. "Though maybe we should focus on having this foal before planning on making any more." I nodded, grateful for the shift in topic as we pulled into Little Scholars' parking lot. After all his teasing about baby-trapping him, it was touching to see how quickly he'd embraced becoming a father again. Perhaps my mother's enthusiasm for family wasn't entirely misplaced after all. * * * Twilight Sara bounded out to meet us, her backpack bouncing with each step, clutching a colorful painting in her hands. "Mommy! Daddy! Look what I made!" My heart swelled at her enthusiasm, and I found myself wondering how she'd react to having a little brother or sister. Not yet though - the news was still too fresh, too precious to share just yet. We needed time to process it ourselves first. "It's beautiful, sweetie," I said, examining the artwork with my magic as she climbed into the car. "Why don't you tell us about your first day?" The drive home was filled with Sara's animated descriptions of her new friends, the art supplies, and something called a "science corner" that had particularly captured her interest. Tim caught my eye in the rearview mirror, sharing a knowing smile. Our little family was growing in more ways than one. Back at the house, Sara immediately wanted to show Precious her artwork, racing inside with the tiny dog yapping excitedly at her heels. I lingered in the doorway, watching her disappear upstairs to her room. "When should we tell her?" I whispered to Tim as he locked the car. He wrapped an arm around my withers, pulling me close. "Let's give it a few days. Make sure everything's settled with the school and daycare first. Maybe this weekend? We can make it special." I nodded, leaning into his warmth. "That sounds perfect. Though I have to admit, keeping this secret is harder than I thought it would be." "Says the mare who just spent the whole car ride discussing her mother's romantic novels," Tim teased. Before I could respond, Sara's voice called down from upstairs: "Daddy! Can we have pizza for dinner? To celebrate my new school?" Tim chuckled. "See? Some secrets are worth keeping, if only to make the reveal more special." As we headed inside, I couldn't help but smile. Our house might be grand, but it was moments like these - Sara's excitement, Tim's gentle teasing, the simple joy of being together - that made it truly feel like home. While Tim and Sara were occupied with their pepperoni pizza (I'd opted for a hay and daisy variety that the local pizzeria had started offering for their Equestrian customers), I found myself pulling out parchment and quill. My magic wavered slightly as I began writing, knowing I might regret this decision, but unable to contain the news any longer. 'Dear Mom, I know it's been a few days since my last letter, but something wonderful has happened, and you're the first pony I want to tell (after Tim, of course). Mom... I'm pregnant. It just happened last night, and before you ask - yes, I'm absolutely certain. The magic signature is unmistakable. Tim and I are both thrilled, though we're keeping it quiet for now. Sara doesn't even know yet. I know you're probably already jumping up and down and planning to knit an entire wardrobe for your grandfoal, but please, PLEASE keep this quiet for now. We haven't even arranged for an Equestrian doctor yet and given that this is a cross-species pregnancy, we want to be cautious. And Mom? While I know you'll be excited to visit, perhaps we could wait until we've had time to adjust? And when you do visit, please remember what we discussed about boundaries. Tim is still a bit nervous about meeting you, especially after those letters you sent him. Give my love to Dad (but maybe don't tell him just yet - let us handle that news). Your daughter, Twilight P.S. If you've written any "helpful" guides about cross-species relationships, please keep them to yourself. I'm begging you.’ I sealed the letter quickly before I could change my mind, sending it off with a burst of magic. Tim looked up from his pizza just in time to see the purple flash fade. "Did you just..." he started, his eyes widening in realization. I nodded sheepishly. "I told my mom. I'm sorry! I know we said we'd wait, but she's my mom, and I just..." Tim set down his pizza, wiping his hands before pulling me into a hug. "It's okay, Twi. Though maybe we should prepare for an enthusiastic response?" As if on cue, a purple flash filled the room, and a scroll materialized in front of us. Tim's face paled slightly. "That was... fast," he muttered. I caught the scroll with my magic, already dreading its contents. A wrapped package accompanied the scroll, its book-like shape making me nervous. "Perhaps we should wait until Sara's in bed before opening that one?" Tim nodded emphatically. "Definitely after Sara goes to bed." The scroll seemed to pulse with barely contained maternal excitement as I set it aside, making me wonder if I'd just made a terrible mistake. But watching Sara happily munching her pizza, completely unaware she was about to become a big sister, I couldn't bring myself to regret sharing our joy - even if it meant dealing with my mother's enthusiasm sooner rather than later. * * * Twilight The rest of dinner seemed to drag on endlessly, the scroll practically vibrating with my mother's excitement beside me. Sara, oblivious to our tension, chatted happily about her plans to decorate her new locker at school tomorrow. Finally, after what felt like hours, Sara was tucked into bed with Precious curled up beside her. Tim and I retreated to our bedroom, closing the door quietly behind us. "Ready?" I asked, levitating the scroll. Tim sat on the edge of our bed, bracing himself. "As I'll ever be. Though maybe we should have a drink first?" "Not while I'm pregnant," I replied automatically, then blushed at how natural that already felt to say. Taking a deep breath, I unrolled the scroll. 'MY DEAREST TWILIGHT! A GRANDFOAL! Oh my stars, I can hardly write this, I'm so excited! Your father is asking why I'm crying and jumping around the study, but don't worry - I haven't told him yet. Though he might guess from all my squealing. A cross-species pregnancy! How fascinating! I've already started researching - did you know there are exactly three documented cases of pony-griffin hybrid births in the Royal Archives? Of course, a human-pony foal would be completely unprecedented, but that just makes it more exciting! I've already started knitting, of course. I'm making everything in neutral colors since we don't know if it will be a colt or filly or... well, whatever the human equivalent would be. Do you think the foal will have hooves or hands? Or maybe both? Oh, the possibilities! And don't you worry about visiting - I completely understand wanting time to adjust. Though perhaps Tim wouldn't mind if I sent along some of my more... educational writing? I have several chapters about ensuring maximum fertility and proper breeding techniques that might be helpful for future foals... I'm just so happy for you both! And don't worry about your father - I'll break the news to him gently. Perhaps after a nice bottle of wine. All my love (and so many hugs!), Mom *P.S. I've already started knitting Tim a collection of sweaters in traditional fertility blessing patterns. (Don't worry, they look completely normal to humans!) *P.P.S. I may have already commissioned a family tree tapestry with space for future additions... *P.P.P.S. I've already started a betting pool with the other noble mares about whether the foal will have your coat color or Tim's skin tone. The odds are... interesting. Princess Celestia may or may not have placed a wager. *P.P.P.P.S. Princess Luna wants to know if Tim has any cute friends. No pressure!’ I looked up from the letter to find Tim had buried his face in his hands. "It's... not as bad as I expected?" I offered weakly. He peeked through his fingers. "She wants to send me a knitted sweater to help with breeding attempts? Did I read that correctly? And Luna? Should I... try to hook her up with Jerry?" "At least she didn't offer to demonstrate proper technique in pony?" I tried to joke, but Tim just groaned louder. I felt my ears flatten as I considered Luna's request. "I don't think Jerry's ready to learn that his potential date can literally raise the moon. Besides, can you imagine trying to explain to him why he's being set up with an immortal alicorn princess?" Tim's groan turned into a chuckle. "Yeah, that might be a bit much. 'Hey buddy, remember that magical pony ambassador I married? Well, her boss's sister wanted to know if I had any cute friends…' Though," he added with a slight smirk, "at least Luna's being direct about it instead of writing educational manuals." "Don't remind me," I muttered, magically moving the scroll far away from us. "The last thing we need is my mother giving Luna relationship advice. She'd probably write an entire series on cross-species dating etiquette." “Speaking of which, there’s no point in putting this off any longer.” Tim unwrapped the book. "The Pony Sutra. 64 ways to achieve sexual intimacy. For fuck's sake... Wait... there's a bookmark." He opened it to the page. "When intimacy can't be achieved with your spouse, never be afraid to seek out her mother. Your wife will mature to become more like her mother and learning sexual pleasure from an older mare can help you in the long run..." I snatched the book with my magic so fast it practically left scorch marks on his hands. "Oh, sweet Celestia, NO! It does not say that! Oh… it does say that. First of all, I am NOTHING like my mother. Second... just... NO!" I shuddered, my ears pinned flat against my head. “I probably shouldn’t have told her that I'm pregnant. Though, she’d probably sense it across dimensional boundaries with her grandfoal-radar even if I didn’t tell her." "There's an illustrated edition too, isn't there?" Tim asked, looking resigned. "With detailed annotations," I muttered darkly. A small, resigned smile broke across his face. “Well, I might need to read it. You know, if understanding your mom’s mindset saves me from any surprises.” “Or inspires new ones,” I shot back, raising a brow. "You’d really think of taking her up on her advice?” Tim’s grin grew as his hand slid along my withers, fingers tracing gentle circles. “You mean seeking her out? Sleeping with her? No. But the whole book can’t be that bad… as some of it should help me ensure that I’m meeting your needs. Ponies must have some different needs that a human doesn’t, and I might never know if I don’t read the book because… let’s face facts, you might be too shy to tell me you want me to do something. And… If you’re right about everything else, as long as your dad’s doing his job and you’re doing yours, I’d say there’s no reason to worry. But I’ll admit,” he added with a glance, “it does worry me a little that you’re so worried.” I held my breath, trying not to show how deeply it cut. I hated the comparison, but it was true - my mom, with her refined beauty and years of romantic experience, could easily draw him in if she wanted. And the idea of losing Tim to her, of him wanting her over me… it would crush me. Tim's hand found my chin, gently lifting my gaze to meet his. "There's only one mare who keeps me up at night," he said softly, "and I wouldn't have it any other way." I tried to shake off my unease, forcing a smirk. “You’re impossible.” “And you’re gorgeous,” he countered, wrapping his arms around me. His lips found my forehead as he whispered, “Twilight, your mom’s excited. Yes, she’s a little much and more than a little inappropriate. But if letting her send me a green sweater or a red one will keep more of these books out of your hooves, I’m all in. Besides, I look good in green or red, as long it’s one color at a time.” I stared at him, bemused. “You… actually want to encourage her? Despite my warnings?” He pulled me close, kissing my forehead. “Twilight, your mother loves you, and if knitting sweaters and sending advice makes her feel valued and involved, well, I can handle some awkward literature. Just so long as she never gets me alone in a locked room.” I nuzzled into his chest, feeling a rush of relief. “You’re incredible, you know that?” I murmured. “Though I’m still burning that book.” He chuckled, running his fingers through my mane. “We both know you’d never burn a book. But maybe we could write her a nice letter? Together? Just… maybe leave out any personal details that might inspire her to send more ‘educational materials.’” “Good idea,” I sighed, shuddering at the thought. But then he paused, a curious glint in his eyes. “Twi, is your mom really that pretty? So pretty that you’re insecure about being compared to her?” I felt a pang, looking away. “Well, yeah… she’s gorgeous. Everypony says so - big eyes, long mane, perfect smile.” I lowered my voice, hoping it’d sound nonchalant. “She’s got that experience too, you know. She knows things. As horny as stallions can be, my dad has never cheated… never had to. That says a lot about my mom right there.” Tim chuckled softly, holding me tighter. “Twilight, I don’t care about experience or age. Look at you - you’re six years younger than me, and no offense, but I’ve never been one for MILF’s.” He raised an eyebrow, smirking. “I’ve got a thing for smart, younger mares who keep me on my toes. You’re the one I fell in love with.” I wanted to believe him, but I sighed. “It’s easy to say that now, but what if you did have a flagged tail right in front of you and a very willing mare? A mare so pretty she takes your breath away with just a coy smile.” Without warning, he reached back and gave my tail a playful tug, making me gasp. “You mean… like this tail?” he teased, his hand sliding down my flank until his fingers brushed my heat. I tensed under his touch, feeling a shiver as he let his fingers trace along my entrance. “And you talk about willing,” he murmured, the mischief in his eyes making my pulse race. “Feels like somepony’s eager.” “Tim…” I managed, my voice a little breathless, caught between wanting to smack him and wanting him to keep going. He leaned close, his lips brushing my ear. “And your smile, the way you look at me when you think no one is looking? The way you gasp like I’m the best thing that’s ever happened to you. You’re the one I want, Twilight. Always. Your mother doesn’t stand a chance. Even if she was that pretty, she can’t give me what you already have.” With a whisper so soft I could barely hear myself; I asked him… “What did I give you…?” “Hope… A future to look forward to. A life worth living.” Warmth bloomed in my chest, and whatever doubts I had melted away as I leaned into him, pressing close, drawn to the electric thrill of his touch. Tim's lips brushed my ear, his voice low and earnest. “I hope… I really hope that if any mare or stallion ever came into our lives and threatened what we have, that we could talk about it. Work through it together. Help each other without either of us ever cheating.” His fingers traced gentle patterns on my side, grounding his words with that steady touch. “I know ponies are affectionate by nature, but I’ve got more self-control than that. I hope you don’t really think I’d rut just any mare who flagged me. Just like I hope that you wouldn’t allow just any stallion to mount you.” I turned to face him, meeting his gaze. “It’s not that I think you would, Tim, and I hope you know that I never would… you are my first partner, after all…” I murmured, feeling a sense of relief settle over me. “It’s just… sometimes, I don’t know how you handle it all so well. Ponies are naturally affectionate, and I don’t always know what would feel normal for a human.” His hand slid gently up my back, and he kissed my forehead. “Maybe it’s that I know how lucky I am to have you.” His thumb traced small, soothing circles along my spine. “You’re all I want, Twilight. I love you.” I smiled, nuzzling into him, a contented warmth filling my chest. “I love you too, Tim. I’ll do my best to remember that.” “And if anything, ever feels off… you’ll tell me, right?” I nodded, feeling his arms tighten around me, promising everything we needed - openness, trust, and a shared strength to face whatever came our way. * * * Tim I woke around 2 AM, my mind too restless for sleep. Twilight was curled against me, her breathing soft and steady. We didn’t make love tonight, the conversation earlier being too raw. Having to reassure her in so many different ways left me doubting myself. Carefully, I slipped out of bed and made my way downstairs to the kitchen. Before I could talk myself out of it, I pulled out my phone and dialed a number I rarely used. It rang three times before a gruff voice answered. "Tim? It's the middle of the night, son. Everything okay?" "Hey Dad," I said softly, settling onto one of the kitchen stools. "Sorry to call so late, but... I need some advice." There was a pause, then the sound of movement. "Hold on, let me get my coffee going. Must be important if you're calling me." I heard the familiar sounds of my father's morning routine - the ancient coffee maker sputtering to life, the creak of his favorite chair. Billy Talbert wasn't a man of many words, but he'd always been there when it really mattered. He himself would admit that he wasn’t smart in a conventional sense, but he was world-wise and had a lot of common sense and street smarts. "Alright," he said finally. "What's going on?" "I got my unicorn wife pregnant," I blurted out, then winced at how absurd that sounded. The silence stretched for what felt like an eternity before Billy let out a low whistle. "Well shit, son. Guess that makes me a grandpa again. Though I gotta admit, wasn't expecting that kind of news when I picked up the phone. I haven’t even met her yet." "Yeah," I chuckled nervously. "It's... complicated." "Life usually is," Billy replied, and I could hear the smile in his voice. "But that's not why you called at 2 AM, is it?" I took a deep breath. "No. It's... I don't know if I'm doing any of this right, Dad. The marriage, the diplomatic stuff, and now a baby - or foal, I guess. Sometimes I feel like I'm just stumbling through it all, hoping I don't mess up too badly." "There's more," I said, rubbing my neck. "Princess Celestia made me a knight - gave me this title, 'Military Governor of Ponyville.' It's this little town on the edge of some dangerous forest. Guess my combat medic experience impressed them." "A knight?" Billy's coffee mug clinked against something. "Like Sir Lancelot?" "Yeah, except I'm protecting magical ponies instead of Camelot." I couldn't help but laugh at how ridiculous it sounded. "And Twilight... Dad, she's not just any pony. She's the personal student of Princess Celestia - their immortal monarch. Has been since she was a filly." "Sounds like you married into royalty, son." "Sort of. They made her Countess of Ponyville and Ambassador of Equestria to Houston. We just got this massive house in The Woodlands - had to, for diplomatic reasons. Ten thousand square feet, pool, the works. It's... it's a lot different from the trailer." Billy was quiet for a moment. "You always did aim high, even as a kid. Remember when you told me you were joining the Army? Your mother threw a fit, but I knew you'd do well." He paused. "She'd be proud of you, Tim. Taking care of Sara, finding love again, making something of yourself." I felt my throat tighten. "Thanks, Dad. I just... sometimes I wonder if I'm good enough for all this. Twilight's basically magical royalty, and I'm just..." "Just the man she chose to marry," Billy interrupted. "The man she's having a baby with. Son, I may not know much about magical ponies or diplomacy, but I know about love. If she chose you, there's a reason." "Yeah," I said softly, glancing toward the stairs where my wife slept. "I just hope I don't let her down." "Let me tell you something, son," Billy's voice grew softer, more serious. "Marriage isn't about titles or houses or being good enough. Hell, I wasn't good enough for your mother - high school dropout working two jobs, living in that old house that we could barely afford. But she loved me anyway." I heard him shift in his chair, the familiar creak bringing back childhood memories. "You know how we stayed together for 23 years? Because every morning, I woke up determined to be the man she believed I was. Not the man I thought I should be, but the man she already saw in me. I lost sight of that eventually, but maybe you can learn from my mistakes." "Dad..." I started, but he continued. "Now listen close, because I don't get philosophical often. Your Twilight - she chose you. Not some fancy noble, not some magical unicorn prince. You. And I'm betting it's because she sees something in you that you're too busy doubting yourself to notice." I heard him take another sip of coffee. "You want to know the secret to a good marriage? Stop trying to be good enough. Just be present. I lost your mother because I worked too much. I was never there for her. Just be there. Love her the way only you can. And for God's sake, son, stop comparing yourself to whatever standard you think you should meet and don’t think for a second that you’re going to end up like me." "But what if I mess up?" I asked, feeling like a kid again. Billy chuckled. "Oh, you will. Guaranteed. Marriage is just two people taking turns forgiving each other for being human - or pony, in your case. The trick is to mess up together, learn together, grow together, talk to each other and love each other." His voice softened again. "You've got a good heart, Tim. Always did. That's why Sara adores you, why your Twilight married you. Don't lose sight of that just because life got bigger than you expected." I felt tears prickling at my eyes. "Thanks, Dad. I needed to hear that." "That's what fathers are for," he said gruffly. "Now go back to bed. Your pregnant wife is probably wondering where you disappeared to." "Yeah," I smiled. "Love you, Dad." "Love you too, son. And Tim? I expect to meet this magical daughter-in-law of mine soon. Seems like I've got some catching up to do as a grandfather." As I hung up, I felt lighter somehow. Dad was right - I needed to stop trying to be good enough and just be myself. After all, that was who Twilight fell in love with in the first place. * * * Tim I slipped back into bed as quietly as I could, but Twilight stirred anyway, her violet eyes blinking open in the darkness. Her horn glowed softly, casting a gentle light across our room. "Tim?" she murmured sleepily. "What's wrong?" I pulled her close, breathing in her familiar scent. "Nothing's wrong. I was talking to my dad on the phone, and I realized something." She nuzzled against my chest, more awake now. "Realized what?" "How much I love you," I said softly. "Not just because of who you are or what marrying you has brought into my life. But because you're you. Because somehow, out of all the beings in two worlds, you chose me. A warehouse worker with a daughter and a trailer home." Twilight lifted her head, studying my face in the dim light of her horn. "You had to call your father in the middle of the night to realize that?" I chuckled. "Yeah, well. Sometimes you need your dad to remind you what really matters." I stroked her mane gently. "He wants to meet you, by the way. Says he has some catching up to do as a grandfather." "You told him about the foal?" Her eyes widened slightly. "Among other things. The marriage, the diplomatic post, this house." I kissed her forehead. "He said I always did aim high, even as a kid." Twilight was quiet for a moment, then asked softly, "Did talking to him help?" "More than I expected," I admitted. "He reminded me that I don't have to try so hard to be worthy of all this - of you. I just need to be here, loving you the way only I can." "Tim," she whispered, her voice thick with emotion, "you've always been worthy. I fell in love with you long before any titles or positions. Just you." I held her closer, one hand resting protectively over her belly where our foal was growing. "I know that now. And I plan to spend the rest of my life being exactly who you need me to be - myself." She smiled up at me, her eyes shining with unshed tears. "That's all I've ever wanted. Though meeting your father would be nice too." "He'll love you," I assured her. "Though probably not as much as your mother seems to love me." Twilight groaned, burying her face in my chest. "Can we not talk about my mother right now?" I laughed, the sound full of joy and relief. "Deal. Let's just focus on us. On our family." As we drifted back to sleep, I felt truly at peace for the first time since learning about the pregnancy. Tomorrow would bring new challenges - telling Sara, dealing with diplomatic duties, preparing for a cross-species foal - but right now, holding my wife in our bed, everything was perfect. And that was enough. * * * Author's Note I write commissions. If you have a story request, let me know. //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 18 - Building Something Real //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 18 - Building Something Real Twilight The morning routine felt different somehow, more precious, as I helped pack Sara's lunch with my magic. Every mundane moment seemed to glow with new significance now that I was carrying Tim's foal. Still, we managed to get through breakfast and drop Sara off at her new school without incident, though my stomach was a bit queasy from morning sickness. As we pulled into Pipeline's parking lot, Tim glanced over at me. "You okay? You've barely touched your coffee." "Just a little nauseous," I admitted. "I read that it's normal in early pregnancy, though I didn't expect it to start so soon." He reached over, squeezing my hoof gently. "We can tell Melvin you're not feeling well if you need to rest." "I'm fine," I insisted, though I appreciated his concern. "Besides, we only have until lunch. After that..." I trailed off, realizing we hadn't discussed our new schedule. "Yeah, about that," Tim said as we walked toward the warehouse. "Do we need to head to the embassy after lunch? Now that it's all set up and everything?" I considered this, my diplomatic training kicking in. "We probably should. Celestia will expect regular office hours, or at least afternoon hours, and we might have visitors now that word is spreading about the embassy's opening." "Not to mention keeping Mack's furniture investment worthwhile," Tim added with a grin. I nodded, then immediately regretted the motion as another wave of nausea hit. "Though maybe we should stop by a pharmacy first. I have a feeling I'm going to need something for this morning sickness if I'm going to be a proper ambassador." Tim wrapped an arm around my withers supportively. "Whatever you need, honey. Though maybe we should look into Equestrian prenatal care too? I'm not sure human remedies are the best option." The concern in his voice made my heart swell. Before I could respond, we heard Joe calling out across the yard. "There's my favorite magical couple! Ready to fix some more trailers?" I exchanged a quick look with Tim. We had a lot to figure out - balancing work, diplomatic duties, and now a pregnancy - but at least we were in it together. "Just a few today, Joe," I called back, my horn already starting to glow. "We've got diplomatic duties this afternoon." And hopefully, I added silently, I can keep my breakfast down long enough to handle both jobs. * * * Tim Watching Twilight repair the trailers had become almost routine by now, but something felt off today. Her magic seemed to take more effort, and I noticed her breathing was heavier than usual. By the tenth trailer, she was actually sweating - something I'd rarely seen since she'd mastered the recycling process. "Alright, that's enough," I said firmly, stepping between her and the next trailer in line. "What's going on, Twi? And don't tell me it's just morning sickness." She wiped her brow with a hoof, looking slightly guilty. "I... may have forgotten to mention that pregnant mares are supposed to limit their magic use. The foal draws on our magical reserves naturally, so complex spells become more taxing." I felt my heart skip a beat. "And you were going to tell me this when? Before or after you exhausted yourself?" "I didn't think it would affect me this quickly," she admitted, leaning against me slightly. "Usually it doesn't become noticeable until a few weeks in, but maybe because it's a cross-species pregnancy..." "That's it," I declared, wrapping an arm around her withers. "We're done for today. Joe can handle the rest of the trailers later." I looked toward where our supervisor was checking inventory. "Hey Joe! We need to head out early!" Joe looked up, concern crossing his face when he saw Twilight's exhausted state. "Everything okay?" I hesitated, but Twilight spoke up before I could respond. "Just some magical fatigue. Nothing serious, but we should probably start limiting how many trailers I repair each day." "Of course, of course," Joe nodded quickly. "Take care of yourself, Twilight. The trailers aren't going anywhere." As we walked to the car, I couldn't help but feel protective. "We need to set some ground rules about magic use during your pregnancy. I'm not having you risk yourself or the foal trying to maintain your usual workload." Twilight nuzzled against me. "I know. You're right. Though we should probably research cross-species pregnancies first. I've never heard of a human-pony foal before..." "Well then," I said, opening her car door, "I guess that's our first order of business at the embassy this afternoon. After we get you something for the morning sickness." She smiled up at me, her eyes tired but happy. "What would I do without you looking out for me?" "Probably try to repair twenty trailers while pregnant," I teased, though we both knew there was truth behind the joke. As we drove toward the pharmacy, I couldn't help but wonder what other surprises this pregnancy would bring. At least this time, I was determined to catch any signs of magical exhaustion before they became serious. Once was more than enough for that particular scare. The pharmacy visit had been interesting - thankfully the pharmacist had experience with Equestrian customers and recommended several safe options for morning sickness. Twilight had been particularly relieved to find some ginger-based supplements that were approved for both ponies and humans. Sara bounced with excitement as we pulled into the embassy parking garage. "Is this where you work now? It's so tall!" "Part of the time," Twilight explained, her horn glowing softly as she levitated her newly acquired medicine bag. "Daddy and I still work at Pipeline in the mornings, but afternoons are for diplomatic duties." "What's dip-lo-matic mean?" Sara asked, carefully sounding out the word. I chuckled, helping her out of the car. "It means Twilight and I help ponies and humans understand each other better. Remember how confused you were when you first met Twilight? Our job is to make sure other people and ponies don't get confused." The security guard recognized us immediately, waving us through with a friendly smile. Sara's eyes went wide as we entered the elevator, watching the numbers climb higher and higher. "Floor forty-two," Twilight announced as we stepped out into our newly furnished space. "What do you think, Sara?" "It's so pretty!" Sara gasped, turning in circles to take it all in. The early afternoon sun streamed through the floor-to-ceiling windows, making Mack's furniture choices look even more impressive. "Can I explore?" "Stay where we can see you," I cautioned, but Sara was already running toward the reception area. Twilight leaned against me, watching Sara's excitement. "We should set up a play area for her in one of the smaller offices. Something tells me we'll be bringing her here often." "Good idea," I agreed. "Though right now, I think we need to get you settled in your office. Those supplements won't work if you don't actually take them." She nodded, letting me guide her toward her impressive diplomatic suite. "You know," she said softly as we walked, "I'm glad we brought her. This is part of her life too - all of it. The diplomatic stuff, the pregnancy... she should be included." I squeezed her hoof gently. "Speaking of the pregnancy..." "Not yet," Twilight interrupted, watching Sara examine the Mare of Friendship table with wonder. "Let's give her time to adjust to all this first. The baby news can wait a few more days." Looking at our daughter's joy as she discovered each new room, I had to agree. Some moments were perfect just as they were. "Daddy! Mommy!" Sara called out. "Can I have a desk like yours when I grow up?" "Maybe," I laughed. "But first, how about we set up somewhere for you to do your homework while we work?" Sara's face lit up even more, if that was possible. "Can it be near your offices? Please?" Twilight and I exchanged fond looks. Yes, some moments were absolutely perfect just as they were. * * * Tim I settled into my new office chair, pulling out official letterhead with the Equestrian seal. Through the open door, I could hear Sara's delighted giggles as Twilight showed her around. The sound made me smile, even as I focused on the serious task at hand. Writing to Celestia still felt surreal, but recent events had made it clear we needed proper security. I picked up my pen, choosing my words carefully: 'Your Royal Highness Princess Celestia, I hope this letter finds you well. I am writing to request your assistance with a matter of embassy security. While the building's general security is excellent, recent developments have made me realize we may need additional protection specific to our unique situation. As you know, Twilight's status as Ambassador has already drawn considerable attention. However, there are some sensitive matters that make proper security even more crucial: First, Twilight is with foal. We just learned of this yesterday, and while we're overjoyed, I find myself concerned about her safety during this vulnerable time. Cross-species pregnancies being rare, I worry she might draw unwanted attention or scrutiny. Second, our daughter Sara has begun attending a prestigious private school, and we've arranged proper after-school care. However, she'll often need to spend time here at the embassy while Twilight and I attend to diplomatic duties. Her safety, along with Twilight's, is my highest priority. Therefore, I formally request the assignment of Royal Guards to the embassy. Their presence would not only provide necessary security but also help establish the embassy's legitimacy in the eyes of visiting dignitaries. Their experience with magical threats would be particularly valuable, as Earth's security forces, while excellent, are not trained for such situations. If you approve this request, I would also ask for guidance regarding their compensation. Should we expect to provide housing and wages from embassy funds? If so, would it be possible to receive additional bits to cover these expenses? I want to ensure any guards assigned to us are well provided for during their service here on Earth. I understand this is a significant request, but as Military Governor of Ponyville and Twilight's husband, I feel compelled to ensure every possible protection for my family and this embassy. Additionally, any guidance regarding cross-species pregnancies would be greatly appreciated. Twilight is already experiencing increased magical fatigue, and we're uncertain what to expect as the pregnancy progresses. Thank you for your consideration of these matters. Respectfully, Sir Timothy Talbert Military Governor of Ponyville' I read over the letter twice, making sure I'd struck the right tone between formal and personal. Through the window, I could see the Houston skyline stretching out before me, the late afternoon sun casting long shadows between the buildings. This view, this office, this life - sometimes it still felt like a dream. "Twilight?" I called out. "Could you come here for a moment?" She appeared in the doorway, looking tired but curious. "What is it?" I held up the letter. "Could you send this to Celestia? It's about embassy security and..." I lowered my voice, glancing to make sure Sara wasn't within earshot, "some other concerns." Twilight's horn glowed softly as she levitated the letter, quickly scanning its contents. Her eyes softened at the mentions of her pregnancy and our need for protection. With a gentle flash of purple magic, the letter vanished. "Thank you," she said quietly. "For thinking of everything." A soft patter of hooves announced Sara's arrival. "Can we go home now? I'm hungry!" I stood up, gathering our things. "Perfect timing, princess. I think we're all ready for dinner." As we headed toward the elevator, I kept a supportive arm around Twilight's withers. She leaned into me gratefully, and I knew I'd made the right decision requesting the guards. Our family was growing in unexpected ways, and I'd do everything in my power to keep them safe. Even if that meant asking an immortal princess for help. * * * Tim The valet took our car as we stepped out in front of Morton's The Steakhouse. I could feel Twilight tense beside me as she caught sight of the menu posted outside, her eyes widening at the prices. A simple steak started at $65, with specialty cuts running well over $100. "Tim," she whispered, her ears flattening slightly, "this is... a lot. We could feed the whole family for a week on what one meal costs here." I squeezed her hoof gently. "I know, but we need to get used to this. The families in Carlton Woods, the diplomats we'll be meeting - this is normal for them. If we want to be taken seriously..." "But $100 for a steak?" Her voice had that tone that meant she was doing calculations in her head. "That's almost what we used to make in a day at Pipeline." Sara, oblivious to the tension, was bouncing on her toes. "Look, Mommy! They have fancy dresses!" She pointed to some of the other diners visible through the windows. "That's right, princess," I said, grateful for the distraction. "That's why we dressed up tonight." We'd made a point of changing after work - me into a suit, Sara into her best dress, and Twilight wearing the elegant pearl necklace we'd bought for diplomatic functions. "But..." Twilight started again. "Honey," I interrupted gently, "we made more in interest today than this dinner will cost. Remember what my dad said about being who we are now? This is part of it." She sighed, but I could see her diplomatic training kicking in as she straightened her posture. "You're right. I just... it feels strange." The maître d' greeted us warmly, not batting an eye at seating a unicorn in the main dining room. "Sir Tim, Lady Sparkle, welcome to Morton's. We have your regular table ready." Twilight shot me a look at the words 'regular table' - clearly realizing I'd been here before to make arrangements. I just smiled, following the maître d' to a corner table with an excellent view of the restaurant. A booster seat was already waiting for Sara. As we settled in and the waiter began describing the wine list, I watched Twilight's expression shift from discomfort to careful observation. She was studying how other diners behaved, noting the subtle social cues that marked this world we were now part of. "When did you have time to arrange all this?" she asked quietly as the waiter left to fetch our drinks - sparkling water for her, given the pregnancy, and a glass of their best cabernet for me. "Yesterday, during lunch. I wanted tonight to be special." I reached across the table, taking her hoof. "And before you worry about the cost - this is an investment in our future. We need to be comfortable in places like this, with people like this. It's part of the role we've accepted." Sara was already engrossed in her children's menu, though I noticed she was being extra careful with her crayons - another sign she understood this place was different from our usual dinner spots. "I suppose you're right," Twilight finally conceded, managing a small smile. "Though I hope you don't expect me to stop comparing prices to hay fries." I chuckled, squeezing her hoof. "Never. Just maybe keep those comparisons quieter in public?" As our waiter returned to take our order, I watched Twilight slip into her diplomatic persona - poised, graceful, every inch the ambassador she was meant to be. Maybe that was the real purpose of this dinner: not just getting used to spending money but practicing the role we'd need to play in our new life. Even if that role came with a side of $100 steaks. * * * Twilight The wedge salad arrived at our table, a fairly simple arrangement of iceberg lettuce, tomatoes, and blue cheese that somehow cost $19. I couldn't help calculating how many whole heads of lettuce that could buy at the grocery store - probably enough to feed all of Ponyville's rabbits for a day. Still, I kept my diplomatic smile in place, remembering Tim's words about appearances. "Is everything to your liking, Lady Sparkle?" the waiter asked, his practiced politeness never wavering despite having to adjust his serving technique for my magic. "Yes, thank you," I replied, using my horn to delicately manage the oversized fork they'd provided. At least they'd been thoughtful enough to bring pony-suitable utensils without being asked. "Though I admit, I'm still getting used to Earth cuisine." Sara giggled as she watched me navigate the salad. "Mommy, you got some blue cheese on your nose!" I quickly dabbed at my muzzle with a napkin, grateful for the distraction from my internal price calculations. Tim caught my eye from across the table, his expression knowing. He'd ordered some elaborate appetizer called "Lobster Escargot" that cost more than we used to spend on groceries for a whole day. The couple at the next table kept stealing glances our way, though whether it was because I was a unicorn or because of the pearl necklace that cost more than their meal, I couldn't tell. Tim had insisted I wear it, saying we needed to "dress the part." Looking around the restaurant, I was beginning to understand why. Every table seemed to be having power discussions over power meals - business deals, political connections, social arrangements. Even their children sat perfectly behaved, using the right forks without being reminded. Sara, bless her heart, was doing her best to copy them, though she'd already dropped her napkin twice. When the main courses arrived, I had to admit the presentation was impressive. My roasted vegetable plate (a mere $45, which I was trying very hard not to convert into hay bales) was arranged like an art piece. Tim's steak could have fed a small family, and Sara's petit filet looked bigger than any "petit" item I'd ever seen. "How is everything?" Tim asked, clearly enjoying his meal despite - or perhaps because of - its astronomical cost. "It's..." I searched for the right diplomatic phrase, "certainly different from daisy sandwiches." He laughed softly. "That's one way to put it. Try not to think about the prices, Twi. Think of it as research - learning how the other half lives." "The other half must not know about grocery stores," I muttered under my breath, but kept smiling. He was right, after all. This was our world now, whether my practical pony sensibilities liked it or not. Besides, watching Sara carefully cut her steak into perfect little squares, obviously copying the wealthy children around us, I had to admit there were some benefits to this exposure. She was learning, adapting, just like we all were. Even if part of me still couldn't believe I'd just paid more for dinner than Princess Celestia charged for a week's worth of magic lessons. "And for dessert?" The waiter presented elaborate menus that looked more like art portfolios than food listings. Sara's eyes went wide at the pictures, and I felt my resolve crumbling before she even asked. "Please, Mommy? May I have the chocolate soufflé?" I glanced at the price - $24 for what was essentially a fancy chocolate cake - and had to suppress a small choking sound. But Sara was being so well-behaved, carefully maintaining her posture and using all the right forks... "Of course, sweetie," I managed, noting how the nearby tables nodded approvingly at her polite request, better behaved than most of the other 4 year olds in attendance, "Though it says here it takes twenty minutes to prepare." "That's quite all right," Tim said smoothly. "We'll have the soufflé for our daughter, the crème brûlée for my wife, and I'll take the chocolate lava cake." Three desserts at these prices... I could feel my practical pony instincts screaming in protest. Later, as we waited for the valet to bring our car around, Tim turned to me. "So, what did you learn tonight?" I glanced around to make sure nopony - nobody - was within earshot. "I learned that rich people are crazy!" I whispered emphatically. "24 dollars for a chocolate cake? That's... that's..." Tim nodded, a knowing smile playing at his lips. "Yes. That's exactly the point. Blue collar, white collar, and the political elite - they're worlds apart here on Earth. As ambassadors, we need to understand that. You'll have to learn how to be a... well, how to be a bitch, at least for tough opponents." I blinked in surprise at his blunt language, but I understood what he meant. The casual way some of those diners had dropped hundreds of dollars on a single meal while discussing million-dollar deals... it was a different mindset entirely. "A firm hoof," I murmured, watching Sara yawn in the cool evening air. "Like dealing with dragons, but with credit cards instead of claws." Tim laughed softly. "Exactly. Though maybe don't mention that comparison to our future dinner guests." As we drove home, Sara already half-asleep in her booster seat, I found myself thinking about the evening differently. Maybe it wasn't just about getting used to spending money. It was about learning to navigate this new world of power and privilege - a world where a $24 soufflé was just another move in a much bigger game. I just hoped I could learn to play it without losing my mind over salad prices. * * * Tim The drive back to Carlton Woods was quiet except for Sara's soft breathing from the backseat and what I could only describe as aggressive pouting from Twilight. Her ears were still flattened, and every few minutes she'd make a tiny huffing sound that I was pretty sure meant she was still doing math in her head. "I can hear you pouting," I said finally, unable to keep the amusement from my voice. "I am not pouting," she replied with what was definitely a pout. "I'm just... processing. Do you know how many books the Ponyville library could buy for what we spent on dinner?" "Probably best not to think about it that way," I suggested, turning onto our street. "Think of it as an investment in your diplomatic training. Learning to keep your composure while someone casually orders a hundred-dollar glass of wine is a valuable skill." Another huff. "The wine list alone could have funded Cheerilee's classroom supplies for a year." "And that family at the next table probably spent more on their daughter's birthday party than I paid for this car," I added. "That's the world we're part of now, Twi. The sooner you get comfortable with it..." "I know, I know," she sighed, glancing back at Sara. "I just hope we can teach her the value of bits... dollars... whatever. I don't want her thinking this is normal." I reached over to squeeze her hoof. "Says the mare who used to live in a castle." "That was different! That was..." she paused, then gave me a rueful smile. "Actually, maybe it wasn't so different. I just never thought about the cost back then." "Exactly. And now you're learning to do it again, just..." I grinned, "with more righteous indignation about salad prices." Her tail swished in mock annoyance, but I could see her starting to relax. "Just wait until I have to host diplomatic dinners. I'll probably faint when I see the catering bills." "That's my girl," I laughed softly as we pulled into our driveway. "Already planning ways to scandalize the political elite. Though maybe save the fainting for after dessert? Those soufflés take time to prepare." Her only response was another huff, but this time I could hear the smile in it. After tucking Sara in and making sure Precious had fresh water, we retreated to our bedroom. Twilight was still muttering about prices under her breath as she used her magic to remove her pearl necklace. "You know," I said, loosening my tie, "if you're this worried about costs, maybe we should ask Celestia about Equestria's entertainment budget. Surely she doesn't expect the Ambassador to pay for official events out of our own pocket, just like I hope we don't have to pay for guards out of our own pocket." Twilight's ears perked up as she turned to face me. "That's... actually a really good point. In Canterlot, there was always a royal budget for diplomatic functions." She settled onto our bed, her expression thoughtful. "Though I never had to think about it back then - I just attended the events, I didn't plan them." "Exactly. And I can't imagine Earth ambassadors pay for state dinners themselves." I sat beside her, kicking off my dress shoes. "The whole point of tonight was getting comfortable in those settings, not bankrupting ourselves hosting them." "I could write to Celestia now," she said, her horn already starting to glow. I caught her hoof gently. "Maybe wait until morning? You've already sent one official letter today, and after all that rich food..." I patted my stomach meaningfully. She smiled, relaxing against me. "You're right. Though I'm making a list. Entertainment budget, guard salary and housing, diplomatic expense accounts..." Her eyes narrowed suddenly. "Is that why you took us to Morton's? To show me what diplomatic entertaining might cost?" "Partly," I admitted. "That, and I wanted you to see how the other half lives without the pressure of actually hosting them. Baby steps, Ambassador Sparkle. Baby steps." "Speaking of babies," she murmured, resting a hoof on her belly. "I suppose we should get used to this lifestyle before the foal comes. I don't want to be stressing about dinner prices while dealing with morning sickness and magical fatigue." I pulled her close, kissing the top of her head. "See? You're already thinking like a diplomat. Now, how about we get some rest? Between pregnancy, magic use, and astronomical salad prices, you've had quite a day." Her only response was to nuzzle closer, but I could feel her finally truly relaxing. Sometimes the best diplomatic victories were the small ones - like getting your ambassador wife to stop calculating the cost-per-leaf of a steakhouse salad. At least until tomorrow's letter to Celestia. * * * Twilight The morning sun streamed through our bedroom windows as I settled at my desk, the sounds of Tim making pancakes and Sara's cheerful chatter drifting up from the kitchen. I pulled out fresh parchment, trying to ignore another wave of morning sickness as I began to write. 'Dear Princess Celestia, I hope this letter finds you well. After our first evening of what humans call "diplomatic reconnaissance" (Tim took us to an upscale restaurant to observe Earth's political elite), I find myself with several questions about the practical aspects of my role as Ambassador. First, regarding entertainment and hosting: Is there an established budget for diplomatic functions? Last night's dinner for just the three of us cost more than a week's worth of meals in Ponyville, and I imagine hosting foreign dignitaries would be considerably more expensive. While Tim and I are grateful for your generous support, we want to ensure we're handling official entertainment expenses appropriately. Additionally, I'm curious about standard diplomatic expense accounts. Are there guidelines for what should be covered personally versus officially? Tim pointed out that Earth ambassadors typically have budgets for such things, and I remember how Canterlot handled visiting diplomats. I'm also wondering about staff beyond the guards Tim requested. Will we need to hire assistants? A chef for diplomatic functions? If so, should we plan to cover these expenses from our current stipend, or is there a separate allocation for embassy operations? Finally, and I hope you'll forgive my forthrightness, but pregnancy is making me more practical than usual - is there an established healthcare fund for embassy staff? Given my condition and the unique nature of this pregnancy, we anticipate needing specialized medical care. I know these questions might seem mundane, but after spending 24 bits on a single dessert last night (Tim says I need to stop converting Earth prices to bits, but I can't help it), I find myself wanting to ensure we're managing both our personal and diplomatic resources appropriately. Your faithful student, Twilight Sparkle P.S. The morning sickness has started already. Is that normal for cross-species pregnancies? My books don't cover this particular situation.' "Mommy! Daddy made pancakes with chocolate chips!" Sara's voice carried up the stairs. "Coming, sweetie!" I called back, quickly sealing the letter with my magic and sending it off. The smell of pancakes hit me as I descended the stairs, and for once, my stomach didn't rebel. Tim looked up from the stove, still in his pajamas but somehow managing to look coordinated as he flipped pancakes and packed Sara's lunch simultaneously. "Letter sent?" I nodded, settling at the kitchen island. "Though I may have mentioned the $24 soufflé." He chuckled, sliding a plate of pancakes toward me. "Of course you did. Did you ask about healthcare coverage too?" "And entertainment budgets, staff funding, and expense accounts," I admitted, taking a careful bite. The chocolate chips were helping settle my stomach - I'd have to remember that. "Look at you, thinking like a proper administrator," Tim teased, helping Sara cut her pancakes into neat triangles. "Though maybe don't mention last night's wine prices to Celestia. We don't want her thinking we're spending the royal treasury on cabernet." I was about to retort when another flash of golden light announced Celestia's reply. The scroll landed neatly beside my plate, making Sara giggle. "That was fast!" she said around a mouthful of pancakes. "Does the princess never sleep?" Tim and I exchanged looks. Sometimes our daughter asked very good questions. I unrolled the scroll, levitating it carefully above my breakfast to avoid getting maple syrup on the royal seal. 'My Dearest Twilight, I must admit, your letter brought both amusement and embarrassment - amusement at your continued dedication to practical matters even in the face of morning sickness, and embarrassment that I hadn't thought to address these essential details sooner. Of course there are budgets for diplomatic functions! I apologize for not making this clear from the start. Your personal stipend was never meant to cover official embassy operations. I have instructed the Royal Treasury to establish the following: 1. An entertainment fund of 5,000 bits monthly for diplomatic functions 2. An operational budget of 10,000 bits monthly for embassy staff and supplies 3. A dedicated healthcare fund of 25,000 bits, replenished as needed, specifically for you and any staff (including guards) 4. A discretionary fund of 3,000 bits monthly for miscellaneous diplomatic expenses All of these will be separate from your personal stipend. The Royal Guards that Sir Tim requested will be paid directly from Canterlot's military budget - please don't concern yourself with their compensation. *Regarding staff - yes, you should absolutely hire assistants and a chef for diplomatic functions. I recommend at least: Two administrative assistants (one for you, one for Tim) A chef experienced in both Earth and Equestrian cuisine A social secretary to manage diplomatic events Any additional support staff you deem necessary* As for your pregnancy (congratulations again!), early morning sickness is indeed common in cross-species pregnancies, though usually not quite this soon. I've taken the liberty of arranging for Doctor Stable to visit next week. He has experience with unusual pregnancies and can better advise you on what to expect. And Twilight? While your attention to fiscal responsibility is commendable, please don't worry about converting Earth prices to bits. You're an ambassador now - sometimes a $24 dessert (yes, I did the conversion) is simply the cost of diplomacy. With great affection, Celestia P.S. I've also arranged for a shipment of Equestrian ginger tea - it should help with the morning sickness better than Earth remedies.' I looked up from the letter to find Tim watching me expectantly. "Well?" he asked, wiping syrup from Sara's chin. "What's the damage?" "We, um, may have been worrying unnecessarily about expenses," I admitted, passing him the scroll. "And apparently we need to hire staff." Tim scanned the letter, his eyebrows rising. "That's... quite a budget. Though I'm more interested in this Doctor Stable visit. Should we be concerned that she's sending him so soon?" I shook my head, taking another bite of pancakes. "Celestia's just being thorough. Though I won't say no to that ginger tea." "Does this mean we can go back to the restaurant with the fancy chocolate cake?" Sara asked hopefully. Tim laughed, folding the letter carefully. "Maybe for special occasions, princess. Just because we have a budget doesn't mean we need to spend it all on soufflés." I nodded in agreement, though privately, I was already calculating how many diplomatic dinners we might need to host. At least now I wouldn't have to convert the prices to bits. Well, not officially anyway. * * * Tim A thunderous crash in our foyer made me jump, nearly dropping the pancake flipper. Sara squealed in surprise while Precious started barking frantically. There, in a pile that looked like something out of a pirate movie, sat what had to be close to 43,000 gold bits. "Holy hell..." I breathed, staring at the mountain of gold. "I'm going to need a wheelbarrow to get this to the car to convert at the Houston Gold Exchange." Twilight poked her head around the stack, her eyes wide. "I think Celestia might have sent all the budgets at once. That's... that's a lot of bits." "No kidding." I crouched down to examine the pile. "At current rates, this is worth... hang on..." I did some quick math in my head. "Over $117 million dollars. I really hope the security system is working because we can't take this to the bank until they open." "Is that real gold?" Sara asked in wonder, reaching toward the pile. "Yes, and we need to be very careful with it," Twilight said quickly, using her magic to gather the bits into neat stacks. "Tim, do you think the Gold Exchange can handle this much at once?" I ran a hand through my hair, mind racing. "We might need to split it up between several locations. Or call ahead. I'm pretty sure showing up with $117 million in gold needs some kind of advance warning." "Look on the bright side," Twilight offered, still organizing bits with her magic, "at least we won't have to worry about operating costs for a while." "Yeah, but first we need to figure out how to get several thousand pounds of gold safely to..." I trailed off as another thought hit me. "We're going to need a security detail just to transport this. Should we wait for those Royal Guards?" Twilight paused her sorting. "Maybe we should call Mack? He might have some ideas about secure transport. He must deal with valuable deliveries all the time." "Good thinking." I pulled out my phone, then glanced at the clock. "Though first, we need to get Sara to school. Speaking of which..." I turned to our daughter, who was still staring at the gold in fascination. "This has to stay our secret, okay princess? No telling anyone at school about the gold." Sara nodded solemnly, though her eyes still sparkled with excitement. "Can I help count it?" Twilight and I exchanged looks. "Maybe after school," I said diplomatically. "Right now, we need to finish getting ready. And..." I looked at the massive pile of gold, "figure out where to temporarily store the wealth of a small nation." "The vault in your office?" Twilight suggested. "The one Mack insisted on installing?" I grinned. "See? He thinks of everything. Though we might need a bigger vault if Celestia keeps sending payments like this." As I helped Sara finish her breakfast and gather her school things, I couldn't help but shake my head at the absurdity of our situation. Most people worried about paying their mortgage; we were worried about how to transport enough gold to buy a small island. Just another normal morning in the life of an ambassador's family. * * * Tim "Loomis-Fargo was surprisingly calm about the whole thing," I remarked to Twilight as we watched the armored truck being loaded. The guards were professional and efficient, treating our small fortune in Equestrian bits like any other valuable cargo. "Though their eyes did get a bit wide when they weighed it," Twilight noted, her horn glowing as she helped secure the last container. "I don't think they transport pure gold very often." The drive to the Houston Gold Exchange felt almost anticlimactic with our precious cargo following safely behind us in the armored vehicle. Our previous visits had been more nerve-wracking with just a bag of bits in the car. Inside, the same clerk who had helped us before maintained his composure admirably, though his hands shook slightly as he processed the sheer volume of gold. "So you'd like this split into four separate checks?" "Yes," I confirmed, pulling out my notes. "The first for 5,000 bits - approximately $13.7 million - marked as 'Entertainment Fund'. The second for 10,000 bits - about $27.4 million - as 'Operational Budget'. The third for 25,000 bits - roughly $68.5 million - designated as 'Healthcare Fund'." Twilight continued, her diplomatic training evident in her calm demeanor, "The fourth for 3,000 bits - around $8.2 million - marked as 'Discretionary Fund'. The clerk nodded, his fingers flying over his calculator. "That comes to approximately $117.8 million total. Today's gold price is up slightly from your last visit." As he processed the paperwork, I leaned close to Twilight. "We're going to need separate accounts for each fund." "Already planned," she whispered back. "We can't mix diplomatic funds with personal money. Celestia would never approve." An hour later, we left with four certified checks and a receipt that would probably make history in the gold exchange's records. The armored car guards gave us a respectful nod as they departed. "Well," I said as we headed to the bank, "that was probably the sanest way to handle several tons of magical gold coins." Twilight's ears twitched in amusement. "Certainly better than trying to fit it all in the car. Though I still can't believe how casual everyone was about it." "Professional courtesy," I grinned. "Though I'm pretty sure we're going to be their favorite clients from now on. Not every day someone brings in over a hundred million in pure gold." "Let's just hope Celestia sends smaller installments next time," Twilight sighed. "I don't think my nerves can handle moving this much gold regularly." "Agreed. Though you have to admit - hiring an armored car was a much better solution than my wheelbarrow idea." Her only response was an eye roll, but I could see her fighting back a smile. Sometimes the simplest solutions were the best, even when dealing with magical currency from another dimension. * * * Twilight I never thought I'd miss the simplicity of Equestrian banking. At least there, being the personal student of Princess Celestia meant things happened quickly. Here, even with Tim's careful preparation and calls ahead, we'd been sitting in the bank manager's office for over two hours. "So, just to confirm," the manager said for what felt like the hundredth time, "you need four separate diplomatic accounts, and these funds are from... Equestria?" She pronounced it carefully, like she was still getting used to the word. "Yes," I replied, fighting to keep my diplomatic smile in place. "The entertainment fund, operational budget, healthcare fund, and discretionary fund all need to be separate to maintain proper accounting for the embassy." "And these are official diplomatic funds?" She glanced at the checks again, clearly struggling with the amounts. Tim shifted in his chair beside me. "Yes, as we explained, these are operational funds for the Equestrian Embassy in Houston. We have our documentation from the Bureau of Equestrian Affairs confirming our diplomatic status." Another twenty minutes of paperwork followed. My horn was starting to ache from magically signing so many forms. Just as I thought we were finished, the manager pulled out another stack of documents. "Now, about the source of these funds..." "The source is the Royal Treasury of Equestria," I interrupted, my patience finally wearing thin. "As stated in the official documentation we provided. Twice." Tim squeezed my hoof under the desk, a gentle reminder to stay diplomatic. I took a deep breath, reminding myself that this was probably the first time this bank had handled embassy accounts for a magical pony kingdom. "Of course, Lady Sparkle," the manager said quickly, perhaps sensing my frustration. "We just need to ensure everything is properly documented for regulatory compliance." Another hour passed before all four diplomatic accounts were finally set up, each with its own set of protocols and reporting requirements. By the time we got done with this I was seriously considering writing to Celestia about establishing an Equestrian bank branch on Earth. "Well," Tim said as we finally left the bank, the afternoon sun much lower than I'd hoped it would be, "that was..." "Unnecessarily complicated?" I suggested, my ears still flat with annoyance. "Time-consuming? Frustrating?" "I was going to say 'thorough'," he chuckled. "But yes, all of those too. At least now we have proper accounts for embassy operations." I nodded, checking the time with alarm. "We need to hurry if we're going to pick up Sara on time. Though I suppose we could pay any fees for additional contracted daycare hours out of the discretionary fund now of we are delayed due to embassy business." "That's my practical mare," Tim grinned, opening the car door for me. "Already thinking about appropriate fund allocation." "Don't tease," I warned, though I could feel my mood lifting. "I just spent three hours convincing a bank that magical gold from another dimension is legitimate currency. I deserve a treat." "Morton's?" he suggested innocently. The look I gave him could have frozen a dragon's flame. "Don't push your luck, Sir Tim. Not even the entertainment fund could justify those salad prices twice in one week." “What about the Discretionary Fund?” He teased. “It’s for… our discretion, yes?” I could only glare. His laughter followed me into the car, and despite my exhaustion, I had to smile. At least we'd never have to explain to that bank manager where the gold came from again. Probably. * * * Twilight "So," Tim asked as we navigated through Houston traffic, "can we move money between these accounts if we need to? The balance seems off - $68.5 million for healthcare but only $13.7 million for entertainment? We might host more diplomatic functions than medical emergencies." I considered this, grateful for his practical mindset. "I should probably write to Celestia about fund flexibility. You're right - some expenses might exceed account limits while others might go untouched. Though..." I paused, thinking it through, "the healthcare fund might need to be that large if we're hiring staff. We'll need to provide coverage for everyone at the embassy. And Celestia did say the Medical fund would be replenished as needed while the other three accounts are monthly." "Speaking of hiring," Tim merged onto the highway, "how exactly do we find qualified people for these positions? LinkedIn? I mean, where do you even post a job listing for 'Ambassador's Assistant - must be comfortable with magical ponies'?" I couldn't help but laugh. "I don't think 'Experience with dimensional diplomacy preferred' would get many serious applicants." "Actually," Tim said thoughtfully, "we should probably contact the Bureau of Equestrian Affairs first. They might have a pool of pre-screened candidates who already have security clearance and experience with cross-cultural relations." "That's... surprisingly sensible," I admitted. "Though we should also consider hiring some Equestrian staff. Having ponies working at the embassy would help visiting diplomats feel more comfortable." "Good point. Though that raises more questions - do we need to provide housing for Equestrian staff? Will they need help adapting to Earth? And how do we handle payroll with two different currencies?" I pulled out my notebook with my magic, already making a list. "We should probably set up a meeting with the Bureau. They must have protocols for this sort of thing. Other embassies manage it somehow." "True," Tim nodded. "And about those fund transfers - maybe we could ask Celestia to adjust the initial allocations? The entertainment fund might need to be larger, especially at first. We'll probably need to host several diplomatic functions to establish relationships." "Not to mention the cost of setting up proper facilities for those functions," I added. "The embassy has that beautiful conference room, but we'll need proper dining facilities, catering equipment..." "And don't forget security," Tim reminded me. "Once the Royal Guards arrive, we'll need to set up their stations, maybe install magical detection systems..." I jotted everything down, my list growing rapidly. "This is getting complicated. Maybe we should hire the administrative staff first, let them help organize everything else?" "Agreed. Though let's wait until after we pick up Sara to draft those job listings. Something tells me 'Must be comfortable with interdimensional politics' isn't going to fit on LinkedIn's standard template." I smirked, remembering our previous hiring experiences. "At least this time we don't have to worry about CPS questioning our family structure." "No," Tim laughed, "just the federal government, international diplomatic corps, and whoever handles magical embassy security clearances on Earth." "Simple by comparison," I agreed, adding 'Contact Bureau re: security clearance protocols' to my growing list. Being an ambassador was proving to be much more complicated than just having fancy dinners and making polite conversation. Though at least now we had the budget to handle those complications - even if we might need to shuffle it around a bit. * * * Twilight Sara was contentedly drawing at her new homework station near our offices while I organized another stack of diplomatic forms. The afternoon sun cast long shadows through the embassy windows when a troubling thought struck me. "Tim," I called out, poking my head into his office, "did either of us call Pipeline today?" He looked up from his computer where he'd been drafting potential job descriptions, and I saw the realization hit him. "Oh hell... no, we didn't." "Language," I reminded him, glancing toward Sara, though she seemed absorbed in her artwork. "But you're right - we should have called." Tim leaned back in his chair, running a hand through his hair. "Honestly, Twi... I think we need to face facts. This," he gestured around the embassy, "is a full-time job. Setting up accounts, hiring staff, organizing security, managing diplomatic relations - we're not going to be at Pipeline much longer." My ears drooped slightly. "I know. It's just... Pipeline gave us a chance when we really needed it. It feels wrong to just abandon them." "We're not abandoning them," Tim said gently. "We're moving on to something else. Something that, let's be honest, requires our full attention. Look at today - we spent hours dealing with just the basic financial setup. Once we start having actual diplomatic visitors..." "And staff to manage," I added. "And events to host," he continued. "And my pregnancy to monitor," I placed a hoof on my belly. "Exactly." Tim stood up and walked over to me. "We can't keep doing both. It's not fair to Pipeline, and it's not fair to our diplomatic duties. Plus," he glanced meaningfully at my midsection, "you need to be careful with your magic now." I sighed, knowing he was right. "Should we tell Melvin tomorrow?" "I think we should. Give them proper notice, help train replacements if they need us to. Though," he chuckled, "finding someone to replace magical trailer repair might be challenging." "They managed before me," I pointed out. "Though maybe we could set up some kind of consulting arrangement? Help out occasionally if they really need it?" "That's not a bad idea," Tim nodded. "Shows good faith, maintains relationships. Very diplomatic of you, Ambassador Sparkle." "Daddy!" Sara's voice interrupted us. "Can we order pizza for dinner? Drawing makes me hungry!" Tim and I shared a smile. "What do you think, Ambassador? Should we utilize the discretionary fund for diplomatic sustenance?" I rolled my eyes at his formal tone. "I think we can manage pizza without dipping into embassy accounts. Though we should probably start looking for that chef Celestia recommended..." "One thing at a time," Tim said, pulling out his phone to order dinner. "First Pipeline, then staffing, then fancy diplomatic dinners. For tonight, pizza is perfect." Looking at Sara happily coloring in her makeshift office space, I had to agree. We had a lot of changes ahead - leaving Pipeline, building an embassy staff, preparing for a foal - but somehow, it all felt right. Even if we did forget to call in to work today. "Should we call Melvin now?" I asked, watching Tim pull up the pizza delivery app. "Nah, let's wait until tomorrow. Do it properly, in person. Tonight, we're just a family having dinner in their brand-new embassy office." I couldn't help but laugh at how absurd that sentence would have sounded just a few months ago. "Just another normal evening for the Talbert’s?" "Exactly," Tim grinned. "Though maybe don't mention the hundred million in gold we transported today when we tell Melvin we're leaving. Might make the transition a bit awkward." * * * Tim After getting Sara settled into bed with her nightly story, I found Twilight on our bedroom balcony, staring at the stars with that particular furrowed brow that meant she was deep in thought. The evening breeze ruffled her mane as I joined her. "Something wrong?" I asked, resting a hand on her withers. She didn't answer immediately, still gazing upward. "The human custom of taking the husband's last name... it's been bothering me." "Twilight Sparkle Talbert versus just Twilight Talbert?" I guessed, but she shook her head. "It's more complicated than that. I don't have to adopt human customs, I know, but..." She turned to face me, her expression troubled. "In my family, there's a tradition. When a mare named Twilight has a filly, she names her Twilight, and her original last name becomes her new first name." I blinked, trying to follow. "So..." "So, my mother was Twilight Velvet," she explained. "When I was born, she became just Velvet, and I became Twilight Sparkle. If we have a filly..." She placed a hoof on her belly. "I would become Sparkle, and she would be Twilight something." "But now you're also a Talbert," I said slowly, beginning to understand her dilemma. "Exactly. Would she be Twilight Talbert? But then what happens to the Sparkle line or the Velvet line? Or would she be Twilight Sparkle-Talbert? But that breaks both traditions." She sighed heavily. "And what about my name? Should I be keeping Sparkle? Taking Talbert? Using both?" I wrapped an arm around her, pulling her close. "Hey, we're already breaking new ground here. First human-pony marriage, first cross-species pregnancy... maybe we get to make our own traditions?" She leaned into me. "But traditions are important in Equestria, especially for noble families. And now that I'm an ambassador..." "Now that you're an ambassador," I interrupted gently, "you're literally building bridges between two worlds. Maybe this is just another bridge to build." Twilight was quiet for a moment, considering this. "So what do you think we should do?" "What feels right to you?" I asked. "Forget about traditions and protocols for a minute. What name makes you feel like yourself?" "I've always been Twilight Sparkle," she said softly. "It's who I am. But I knew that someday I’d be Sparkle. But I'm also proud to be your wife, to be part of your family..." "Then be both," I suggested. "Be Twilight Sparkle Talbert. And if we have a filly, we'll figure out her name when the time comes. Maybe she'll be the first of a new tradition." She looked up at me, a small smile finally breaking through her worry. "The first of many new traditions, it seems." "That's the spirit," I grinned. "Though maybe we should wait to tell your mother about any tradition-breaking until after she finishes knitting all those baby clothes?" Twilight groaned, burying her face in my chest. "Don't remind me. She's probably already planning the naming ceremony." "Speaking of ceremonies," I said thoughtfully, "do we need to do anything official about your name for diplomatic purposes?" "Probably," she sighed. "Add it to tomorrow's list?" I kissed the top of her head. "Right after quitting Pipeline and before hiring staff. Just another normal day in the life of the Talbert’s... and Sparkle-Talbert." Her only response was a content nuzzle, but I could feel her relaxing. Sometimes the best solutions were the ones that made room for both worlds - just like our family had. * * * Twilight As I stepped out of the bathroom, levitating my brush through my mane, Tim's voice struck like a firecracker in the quiet. From somewhere downstairs, I could hear the faint sound of country music playing - probably Sara's new radio. "Think the discretionary fund would cover… a hired mare for the night?" The brush nearly fell from my magic, and I turned to him, mouth agape. "What?!" He lay sprawled on the bed, grinning like a fox who'd just raided the henhouse. "Well, you're pregnant," he said, so casually it was infuriating. "Can't expect you to keep up all your… diplomatic duties." He shrugged, a picture of innocent mischief. "But hey, if you're really that keen to save us a few hundred dollars…" My cheeks flamed hot. "How in Equestria do you even know what a… companion would charge?" He just smirked wider, crossing his arms behind his head as he watched me, completely unrepentant. "Internet research," he said with a wink, clearly enjoying every second. "And this new app, Ponyfinder. You know, a guy likes to have his options… Ohh, look at this. Golden Maple, Earth pony… she looks delicious. Cheap too… Prostitution is illegal in Texas, but we also have to honor Equestria's laws. Native Americans having casinos in a state where it's otherwise illegal was always controversial, but… nothing says transspecies acceptance like a night of passionate fornication." The strains of "Save a Horse (Ride a Cowboy)" drifted over from Sara's room, and his grin widened as he raised a brow. "So, what do you think, Countess? Save a pony… ride a human?" The pillow whipped toward his face before he could blink, a snap of magic sending it into him just hard enough to make him splutter. I strolled closer, letting my tail flick back and forth, savoring his gaze dropping to follow every sway. "Oh, I'll show you passionate fornication, all right," I murmured, recognizing his quote from that inappropriate show he'd tried to convince me wasn't as bad as it seemed. "And I thought I told you that Helluva Boss isn't for kids." "I swear I'm not letting Sara watch it," he said, but his cocky smile was already slipping into something deeper, hotter - the look of a man who absolutely loved his wife, all previous teasing aside. Then uncertainty flickered in his eyes. "Wait... is it safe? I mean, with human pregnancies, the first three months are really delicate. I don't want to... I couldn't bear it if something happened to the foal." I felt my heart melt at his concern, even as I smiled reassuringly. "Magic makes some things easier to know," I said softly, stepping closer. "The foal's magic signature is strong and stable. Besides, Equestrian pregnancies are different - more resilient once they take hold. That's why we can tell so quickly." I nuzzled against him. "Trust me, if anything felt wrong, I'd know." He pulled me closer, his touch gentle despite the desire I could feel thrumming through him. "Promise you'll tell me if anything feels off?" "I promise," I whispered, touched by his protective instinct. "Now, about that passionate fornication..." He smirked, though I could still see the tender care in his eyes. "Have I told you today how much I love you?" "No," I murmured, leaning in close, "but actions speak louder than words." As his arms wrapped around me, drawing me into his warmth, I couldn't help but marvel at how perfectly we fit together - human and pony, husband and wife, soon-to-be parents. Whatever challenges the pregnancy might bring, we'd face them together. And right now, that was all that mattered. * * * Author's Note In honor of Halloween, I'll give you all a treat. I published the chapter a day early for all my loyal followers. Stay Safe. //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 19 - Moving Forward //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 19 - Moving Forward Tim The drive to Pipeline felt different Thursday morning, heavy with the weight of what we needed to do. Twilight sat quietly beside me, her ears drooping slightly despite her attempts to maintain a diplomatic posture. We'd dropped Sara off at the daycare earlier than usual, knowing that they would take her to school, both of us wanting to have this conversation with Melvin before the day really started. "Are you really ready to leave?" Twilight asked softly as we pulled into the familiar parking lot. "You've been here over two years..." I parked in my usual spot, the one I'd used since long before a magical purple unicorn had appeared in our repair yard and changed everything. "It's strange," I admitted. "Pipeline was more than just a job for me. It was stability when I needed it most, a comforting routine to maintain after I lost my wife, a chance to still take care of Sara…" I trailed off, then smiled at my wife. "And then it brought me you." She nuzzled against my shoulder. "I've only been here a month, but it already feels like home. Maybe because it's where we met, where everything started." "Where you nearly gave Joe a heart attack by magically repairing that first trailer," I teased, trying to lighten the mood. But we both knew this wasn't just about leaving a job – it was about closing a chapter of our lives that had brought us together. Melvin was already in his office when we knocked, a cup of coffee steaming on his desk as he reviewed the morning reports. He looked up with his usual friendly smile, though it faltered slightly when he saw our expressions. "Tim, Twilight," he gestured to the chairs across from his desk. "Everything okay? You missed yesterday without so much as a call and now today you're in early." I shared a look with Twilight before sitting down. "We need to talk about our future here at Pipeline, Melvin." His face settled into something more serious as he leaned back in his chair. "I had a feeling this conversation was coming. The diplomatic post, right?" "Yes," I said, feeling the weight of my two years under his leadership. "We've been trying to balance both, but with the embassy opening and... other developments, we can't maintain even part-time status here anymore. It wouldn't be fair to Pipeline." Melvin nodded slowly, taking a thoughtful sip of his coffee. "I've got to admit, Tim, when you first started here, I never imagined I'd be losing you to international diplomacy." He smiled warmly. "Though after seeing how you handled that CPS situation and everything that came after, maybe I should have." "We want to do this right," Twilight added quickly. "Give proper notice, maybe even set up some kind of consulting arrangement if you ever need emergency magical repairs?" "Always thinking of solutions," Melvin chuckled. "You two really are perfect for each other." He set down his coffee cup. "Look, Tim, you've given Pipeline two solid years of dedication. And Twilight, even in your short time here, you've revolutionized our repair process. I won't pretend losing you both won't impact us, but that's not what matters right now." "It's not?" Twilight's ears perked up slightly. "No," Melvin said firmly. "What matters is that you're moving forward, building something important. And hey," he grinned, "how many employers can say their trailer repair specialist and senior warehouseman became international diplomats?" I felt something tight in my chest begin to loosen. "So about that consulting arrangement..." "Let's work out the details next week," Melvin said, waving a hand. "For now, why don't you two take today to say your goodbyes, help Joe organize the repair schedules moving forward? We can handle the paperwork later." As we stood to leave, Melvin added, "And Tim? These past two years – you've done us proud. Both of you have. Don't be strangers just because you're fancy diplomats now. You'll always be part of the Pipeline family." Twilight's eyes were suspiciously bright as we headed toward the door. "Thank you, Melvin. For everything." "Just make us proud," he called after us. "And maybe put in a good word for Pipeline with any magical unicorns looking for work!" Walking back into the morning sunlight, Twilight leaned against me slightly. "That went better than I expected." "Melvin's good people," I agreed, wrapping an arm around her withers. "Always has been. Gave me a chance when I was struggling with depression after my wife’s death, and then he gave us a chance and some much needed courage when anyone else might have balked at a human-pony relationship." I glanced toward the repair yard where Joe would be starting his morning checks. "Ready to break the news to everyone else?" She straightened, her diplomatic training visible in her posture. "As ready as I'll ever be. Though..." she added with a small smile, "maybe we don't mention the hundred million in gold we transported yesterday?" "Probably wise," I chuckled. "Come on, Ambassador Sparkle. Let's say goodbye to the place where we fell in love." Together, we walked toward the repair yard, ready to close one chapter of our lives and fully embrace the next. Pipeline would always hold a special place in our hearts – not just as a workplace, but as the place where our story began. Even if moving forward meant leaving behind the safety of the familiar for the unknown challenges ahead. Joe was doing his usual morning walk-through when we found him, clipboard in hand as he assessed the day's repairs. His face lit up when he saw us, then quickly shifted to concern when he caught our expressions. "Why do I get the feeling this isn't a normal morning?" he asked, tucking his pen behind his ear. "Because it's not," I admitted. "We need to talk, Joe." He nodded slowly, leading us to his small office at the edge of the repair yard. The space was cluttered with repair manuals and parts catalogs, with a wall of photos showing various Pipeline celebrations over the years. I spotted myself in several of them, including last year's company picnic with Sara. "It's about the embassy, isn't it?" Joe asked once we were settled. Twilight stepped forward, her ears perked with sudden enthusiasm. "Actually, I have a proposal." She glanced at me before continuing. "The embassy is only open Monday through Friday, which means weekends are free. What if I came in on Saturdays and Sundays to handle some repairs?" Joe's eyebrows rose. "You'd do that?" "No hourly wage," Twilight clarified quickly. "Just the tonnage scrap values like we've been doing. All you'd need to do is mark which trailers need repairs and make sure there's recycling material available. I could maintain the same quality standards, just... on a different schedule." I watched Joe consider this, seeing the gears turn in his head as he thought through the logistics. "You'd really want to spend your weekends here? Even with all your diplomatic duties?" Twilight's smile was genuine. "It would only be a few hours a day, 2 days a week. Pipeline gave us something special, Joe. I might not have been here long, but this place... it's where Tim and I found each other. I'd like to maintain that connection, even if it's just a couple days a week." Joe scratched his chin thoughtfully. "Well, I suppose having guaranteed weekend repairs would help with scheduling. And the scrap metal arrangement's been working well..." He broke into a grin. "Hell, why not? Might even help with our weekend overtime costs." "Really?" Twilight's tail swished with excitement. "On one condition," Joe held up a finger. "You two come to the company barbecues. Can't have our favorite diplomatic couple getting too fancy for Pipeline cookouts." I laughed, feeling some of the morning's tension dissolve. "Deal. Though maybe don't mention the diplomatic part too much? We're trying to keep things low-key." "Right," Joe snorted. "Because a magical unicorn doing trailer repairs is the definition of low-key." He stood up, extending his hand to me and then offering a gentle pat to Twilight's withers. "You two take care of each other, alright? And Twilight? I'll make sure we keep plenty of scrap metal sorted for your weekend visits." "Thank you, Joe," Twilight said softly. "For everything. For not freaking out that first day when I started repairing trailers with magic, for giving us a chance..." "Hey now," Joe's voice was gruff with emotion. "None of that. This isn't goodbye – it's just a schedule change. Besides," he added with a wink, "someone's got to keep an eye on you two. Make sure all that diplomatic power doesn't go to your heads." As we left Joe's office, I pulled Twilight close. "You really want to spend your weekends doing trailer repairs?" She nuzzled against me. "I want to maintain our connection to this place. Besides," she added with a practical tone, "the scrap metal values will help supplement our personal savings. Just because we have embassy funds doesn't mean we should ignore good business opportunities. Besides… we need a way to afford Morton’s…" She stuck her tongue out at me. I couldn't help but laugh. "Look at you, thinking like a proper businessmare. Though maybe we should wait to mention the weekend work to Celestia until after Doctor Stable's visit? Just to make sure it's safe with the pregnancy?" Twilight nodded, her expression softening. "Agreed. But for now... should we tell the rest of the crew?" Looking around at the familiar faces starting to arrive for their shifts, I felt a surge of gratitude for this place and these people who had been part of my life for over two years. "Yeah," I said softly. "Let's tell them together." After saying our goodbyes to the rest of the crew – a bittersweet mix of congratulations, jokes about not forgetting the "little people," and genuine well-wishes – Twilight's horn began to glow before I could suggest leaving. "Just a few more," she said, already moving toward the repair yard. "One last time, as a proper Pipeline employee." I shared a knowing look with Joe as she approached the first damaged trailer. Her magic lit up the morning air, the familiar purple glow reflecting off the metal as she began the recycling process. The other workers paused to watch, some still not quite used to the sight even after a month. "Show-off," Joe muttered good-naturedly, but I could see the appreciation in his eyes as Twilight methodically repaired three trailers in quick succession, her magic weaving metal and memories into one final gesture of goodwill. When she finished, she was slightly out of breath – probably from trying to hide the extra strain the pregnancy put on her magic – but looking satisfied. "There," she declared. "That should help with today's schedule at least." "You didn't have to do that," Joe said, though his smile said otherwise. "I wanted to," Twilight replied, her ears perked despite her obvious fatigue. "Consider it a thank you. For everything." "Well then," Joe scratched his head, "guess we'll see you Saturday? I'll make sure to mark the priority repairs and set aside plenty of recycling material." "About that," I added, throwing an arm around Twilight's withers, "since it's off the clock, you better bring the beer, Joe. None of that cheap stuff either – we're diplomats now, remember?" Joe's laugh echoed across the yard. "Diplomats who still work for scrap metal values! But yeah, I think I can manage that. Though," he glanced at Twilight with sudden concern, "you sure you want to commit to weekends? Diplomatic life might be busier than you expect." "I'm sure," Twilight said firmly. "Pipeline is special to us. Besides," she added with a small smile, "someone has to keep these trailers in shape. Your regular repair crews take twice as long." "And cost three times as much," Joe chuckled. "Alright then, Saturday it is. Just... maybe pace yourself? Don't want you getting too tired." I caught the knowing look in his eye – Joe had been around enough pregnant workers to recognize the signs, even if we hadn't announced it yet. "Don't worry," I assured him. "I'll make sure she takes breaks. Diplomatic orders." "Since when do you give the diplomatic orders?" Twilight teased, but she was leaning against me more heavily now, the morning's magic use clearly taking its toll. "Since I married the ambassador," I shot back. "Come on, honey. Let's get you to the embassy before you decide to repair the entire fleet." With final waves to Joe and the crew, we headed back to our car. Looking back at Pipeline – at the place where our story began, where a chance encounter had changed everything – I felt a profound sense of gratitude. We might be moving on to bigger things, but this would always be where we found each other. "Ready?" I asked Twilight as we got in the car. She nodded, glancing back at the repair yard one last time. "Ready. Though you better not forget about that beer on Saturday. I may not be able to drink it, but I expect Joe to have something decent waiting for you." "Yes, dear," I laughed, starting the car. "Whatever the ambassador commands." As we pulled away from Pipeline, I couldn't help but feel we'd managed to find the perfect balance – moving forward while keeping our connection to the place that had brought us together. Even if that connection now came with strictly diplomatic beer requirements. * * * Twilight Walking into Gallery Furniture for the fourth time felt almost routine now, though the slight flutter in my stomach (morning sickness or nerves, I couldn't quite tell) reminded me that nothing about our life was routine anymore. Mack's booming voice carried across the showroom before we even reached the main desk. "If it isn't my favorite diplomatic power couple! Back for more embassy furnishing?" "Actually, yes," I said, pulling out my carefully organized list with my magic. "We need to set up the parts of the embassy that weren't covered in the initial diplomatic spaces." Mack's eyes lit up with interest. "Oh? What kind of spaces are we talking about?" "First," Tim stepped in, "we need a proper daycare room. Not just for our daughter and future foal," he gave me a subtle wink, "but for any staff members with young children or foals. Something that works for both species." "Multi-species daycare furniture?" Mack rubbed his hands together eagerly. "Now that's a challenge I can sink my teeth into. What age ranges are we thinking?" I consulted my list. "Newborn through elementary school age. We'll need changing stations that work for both babies and foals, play areas with appropriate safety features for both species, and study spaces for older children." "And speaking of study spaces," Tim added, "we need to set up a proper office for Sara. Something close to our offices but her own space. She's already claimed one of the smaller rooms as her territory." Mack was already pulling up his design software. "I'm thinking adjustable-height furniture for the daycare, rounded corners everywhere, maybe some of those modular play structures that can be configured different ways..." He paused, glancing at us. "This order isn't part of the diplomatic donation, you know. Though I'll still give you the friends and family discount." "We know," I assured him, trying not to think too hard about the prices. At least we had the embassy operational budget now. "We also need a full kitchen that can double as an employee breakroom. Something that can handle both human and pony dietary needs." "Commercial grade appliances," Tim specified. "We'll be doing diplomatic functions eventually, and we need the kitchen to be ready for that. Plus, with pregnancy cravings coming..." He dodged my playful swat with practiced ease. Mack's eyebrows shot up at the word 'pregnancy' but he tactfully focused on his computer. "Commercial kitchen with dual-species considerations... that's going to need some custom work. Special height considerations for pony staff, maybe some magic-friendly interfaces like we did for your office..." I nodded, adding, "And we'll need storage for both human food and pony items that humans just can’t eat, like hay. Separate preparations areas to avoid cross-contamination." "Health codes," Tim explained at Mack's questioning look. "We checked the regulations for embassy kitchens. Everything needs to be properly separated." "Always thinking ahead," Mack grinned. "Alright, let me show you what I'm thinking for the daycare space first. We've been developing some new lines for mixed-species families..." As he led us through various displays, modifying designs on his tablet as we went, I found myself actually enjoying the process. Maybe it was because this time we were spending embassy funds rather than our personal money, or maybe I was just getting used to Earth prices. Either way, watching the spaces take shape in Mack's designs – spaces that would serve not just our family but our future staff and their families – felt right. "Now, for Sara's office," Mack pulled up a new design, "I'm thinking something that can grow with her. Adjustable desk, plenty of storage for books and art supplies, maybe a comfortable reading nook..." "With a view of downtown," Tim suggested. "The room she picked has amazing light in the afternoon." I smiled, remembering Sara's excitement when she first claimed that space. "And maybe some display areas for her artwork? She's been talking about decorating her office like ours." "Following in her parents' diplomatic hoofsteps already," Mack chuckled. "Or footsteps, in Tim's case." He added some finishing touches to the design. "Now, about that kitchen..." "For the kitchen," Mack began, pulling up a new design screen, "we're looking at Wolf commercial-grade everything. Double ovens, six-burner range with griddle, and a separate hay steaming station for pony staff." His fingers flew across the tablet as he spoke. "Three prep areas – one human-height, one pony-height, and one flexible for shared tasks." "We'll need separate refrigeration units," Tim pointed out. "One for human food, one for pony items and vegetation." "Already on it," Mack nodded. "Commercial-grade refrigerators with clear labeling systems. Plus, a walk-in cool storage area for hay and larger quantities of fresh produce. I'm thinking stainless steel everything for easy cleaning and maintenance." I studied the design taking shape on his screen. "What about the breakroom portion? We need it to feel welcoming for both species." "I've got just the thing," Mack swiped to a new page. "Custom-designed break tables with adjustable heights and special cutouts for comfortable pony seating. Plus, these new lounge chairs we've been developing – they work for both humans and ponies. Memory foam that adapts to different body shapes." Tim leaned in closer. "And the daycare room? What's the final design on that?" "Ah, you're gonna love this," Mack switched views again. "Modular play structures that can be reconfigured for different age groups. Special padding on all surfaces rated for both hooves and feet. Changing stations at multiple heights with built-in safety features. Study areas with adjustable furniture for older kids. Plus," he added with a proud grin, "a nap area with these new hybrid mattresses we've developed – perfect for foals or human children." I was impressed despite myself. "You've really thought this through." "Had to," Mack shrugged. "Mixed-species families are becoming more common. Might as well be ahead of the curve." He pulled up a final summary page. "Now, for Sara's office – custom desk with plenty of growth room, art supply storage, that reading nook with a view, display walls for artwork, and some cozy seating for when she has friends visit." "Total cost?" Tim asked, and I braced myself. Mack did some quick calculations. "For everything – commercial kitchen with all appliances, breakroom furniture, complete daycare setup, and Sara's office... $387,000. But!" he held up a hand before I could react, "That includes delivery, installation, all custom work, and our friends and family discount. Plus, the commercial kitchen equipment alone is about $180,000 of that." I did some quick conversion in my head – significantly less than what we'd received in embassy funds, but still more money than I'd ever spent at once before marrying Tim. "That's... actually reasonable," Tim said, glancing at me. "Especially for commercial-grade everything. The operational budget can handle it easily." I nodded, my diplomatic training helping me maintain composure. "When can you install everything?" "Give me three days," Mack said confidently. "We'll do the kitchen first since that needs the most work, then the daycare room, then Sara's office. Should have everything ready by Monday." "Perfect timing," Tim smiled. "Sara will love coming to the embassy after school to see her finished office." "Speaking of Sara," I added, "maybe we don't mention the cost to her just yet? We're still trying to teach her the value of money." Mack laughed. "Your secret's safe with me. Though I've got to say, you two are handling all this a lot better than when you first came in for house furniture." "Practice," Tim said dryly. "Lots of practice." As Mack finalized the paperwork and I authorized the payment from our embassy operational account, I had to admit he was right. A month ago, spending this much would have sent me into a panic. Now it felt... well, not exactly normal, but at least manageable. "Don't forget," Mack called as we headed out, "you've got lifetime warranties on everything! Even if some young diplomat-in-training decides to redecorate her office with finger paint!" Walking back to our car, Tim squeezed my hoof. "You okay? That was a big purchase." "I'm okay," I said, surprised to find it was true. "It's for the embassy, for our staff, for our family. It feels right." I paused, then added with a small smile, "Though maybe we don't tell my mother how much we spent? She still converts everything to bits." "Deal," Tim laughed. "Now, should we head to the embassy to mark out where everything will go? We should probably warn the security desk about the incoming deliveries." I nodded, already making a mental list of preparations. Being an ambassador was expensive, but at least we were building something real – something that would serve not just us, but all the ponies and humans who would work together in our embassy. Even if the price tags still occasionally made me want to faint. * * * Twilight The Bureau of Equestrian Affairs occupied several floors of a government building downtown, its presence marked by a simple plaque that somehow managed to look both official and hastily installed. Tim held the door for me as we entered the lobby, where a security guard who clearly recognized us immediately waved us through. "I still can't believe how quickly they put this bureau together," I murmured as we rode the elevator to the fourth floor. "The paperwork to create a new government agency usually takes years in Equestria." "Nothing motivates bureaucracy like first contact with a magical kingdom," Tim replied dryly. "Though I suspect Celestia might have helped speed things along." The elevator opened to reveal a bustling office space where humans in suits moved purposefully between cubicles, many carrying folders stamped with the Equestrian seal. A young woman at the reception desk looked up as we approached, her eyes widening slightly. "Lady Sparkle, Sir Tim! We weren't expecting you today. Do you have an appointment?" "No," I admitted, trying to project diplomatic confidence rather than awkward uncertainty. "We were hoping to speak with someone about staffing recommendations for the embassy. Pre-approved candidates, security clearances, that sort of thing." "Oh!" She brightened. "You'll want to speak with Ms. Chen in Human Resources. She's been compiling a database of qualified candidates since we first established diplomatic relations." She reached for her phone. "Let me see if she's available." A few minutes later, we were ushered into a corner office where a sharp-dressed woman in her fifties was already pulling files from a cabinet. "I was wondering when you'd come by," she said, gesturing for us to sit. "We've been vetting potential embassy staff for months." "Months?" Tim asked, raising an eyebrow. "Before we were even appointed?" Ms. Chen smiled knowingly. "The Bureau likes to be prepared. Now," she settled behind her desk, "what positions are you looking to fill?" I pulled out my list with my magic. "We need quite a few positions filled. Two administrative assistants – one for each of us – a social secretary for managing diplomatic functions, and a chef experienced in both human and Equestrian cuisine. We also need a qualified daycare worker who can handle both foals and human children." "And a nanny for our daughter," Tim added. "Someone who can keep her occupied and safe at the embassy or at home after school while we're handling diplomatic duties. Preferably with experience in both education and childcare." "The daycare position is particularly important," I continued. "We're expecting some of our staff to have young children or foals, and we want to provide proper care facilities. Plus..." I hesitated, then decided to be direct, "I'm expecting myself, so we'll need someone experienced with newborn foals eventually." Ms. Chen's eyes lit up at this news, but she maintained her professional demeanor. "Congratulations. And yes, we actually have several candidates with cross-species childcare experience. The Griffin Embassy's daycare program has provided excellent training opportunities." She pulled up some files on her computer. "For your daughter's nanny position, I'd recommend someone with both educational and diplomatic background. Perhaps..." She trailed off, scanning through files before turning her screen to show us a resume. "Mia Thompson. Former elementary school teacher who recently completed her master's in international relations. She's been working as a tutor for diplomatic families and has experience with non-human species through the Griffin Embassy's education program." "For the daycare position," she continued, pulling up another file, "Lisa Rodriguez has been running the Griffin Embassy's childcare center for two years. She's actually expressed interest in helping set up other embassy daycares, especially ones focused on cross-species care." Tim leaned forward, interested. "The Griffin Embassy seems to come up a lot in these recommendations." "They were our first non-human diplomatic mission," Ms. Chen explained. "They've provided invaluable experience in handling cross-species staffing needs. Ponies are easier to work with by comparison. Maria Gonzalez would be a great pick as your social secretary.” She pressed her intercom. "Sarah, could you ask Ms. Gonzalez to join us? And see if Ms. Thompson is still in the building?" The next hour was filled with interviews and file reviews. Maria Gonzalez impressed us with her knowledge of Equestrian diplomatic protocols, while Mia Thompson showed a genuine enthusiasm for working with Sara and helping her navigate life as a diplomatic child. Both seemed completely at ease interacting with a pony, which was crucial. By the time we left, we had a solid list of candidates for most positions, though the chef position remained a challenge. "We might need to look at culinary schools," I mused as we headed to our car. "Find someone willing to learn Equestrian cuisine. Or perhaps bring in a pony chef who could train human sous chefs while learning Earth cooking." "Good thinking," Tim agreed. "Though I'm more relieved about finding potential childcare staff. Especially with the baby coming." His hand rested briefly on my belly. "Having someone experienced with both species will be invaluable." I nodded, already making notes in my head. "We should probably ask if Ms. Rodriguez can start in the daycare position next week, after the daycare is installed. And maybe see if Ms. Thomason could start with Sara as immediately as possible? The sooner we get her settled with a routine at the embassy, the better. Also, we should work with Ms. Gonzalez to plan the first party, properly introducing ourselves to the top officials in the city. "One step at a time," Tim reminded me gently. "Though I have to admit, it's starting to feel real now. Building our staff, setting up proper facilities... we're really doing this." "We are," I agreed, feeling both excited and slightly overwhelmed. "Though finding a chef who can properly prepare both hay fries and human food might still prove to be our biggest challenge." "That," Tim grinned, "or explaining to Sara why she needs a nanny when she's already decided she's grown up enough to run her own diplomatic office." I groaned softly. "One interdimensional challenge at a time, please." * * * Tim We were barely through the front door of our house when a familiar purple flash announced the arrival of a scroll. Twilight caught it with her magic, then immediately dropped it like it was on fire. "It's from my mother," she said, her ears pinning back. "And it's... vibrating with magical excitement." I picked up the scroll, trying not to show my apprehension. Ever since Twilight had told her mother about the pregnancy, Velvet's letters had been arriving with increasing frequency and enthusiasm. "Want me to read it?" Twilight nodded, already looking slightly queasy – though whether from morning sickness or maternal anxiety, I couldn't tell. "Dearest Twilight (and Tim!)," I read aloud, "I hope this letter finds you well and not too troubled by morning sickness. I remember when I was carrying you, ginger tea and fresh-baked oat scones were the only things that helped..." I paused, catching where this was going. "Ah. Um." "What?" Twilight asked, her ears perking up with worry. "What does she say?" "Which brings me to my proposal," I continued carefully. "Your father and I have been discussing your embassy situation, particularly your need for staff who understand both Earth and Equestrian needs. As you know, I've always had a passion for cooking, and my noble education included extensive culinary training..." "No," Twilight whispered in horror. "She's not..." "Therefore, I would like to formally offer my services as the Equestrian Embassy's head chef. Not only am I well-versed in both traditional and modern Equestrian cuisine, but I've been studying Earth cooking techniques with great interest. Plus," I couldn't help but grin, "who better to ensure my pregnant daughter and future grandfoal receive proper nutrition?" Twilight had collapsed onto our couch, a hoof over her eyes. "Please tell me there's not more." "I've already spoken with Princess Celestia about the possibility, and she thinks it's an excellent idea. She mentioned something about 'strengthening family bonds across dimensions' and 'ensuring proper diplomatic hospitality.' I've attached my formal culinary credentials and references..." "Of course she has," Twilight groaned. "Just think of it, darling – I could make all your favorite dishes, help you through the pregnancy with proper nutrition, and ensure any diplomatic functions have authentic Equestrian cuisine. Your father supports the idea completely, though I suspect he's partly motivated by wanting to visit his grandfoal regularly..." "Keep reading," Twilight said resignedly. "Let's hear the rest of it." "I promise to maintain completely professional boundaries at work," I read, trying not to laugh. "Though of course, as family, we would naturally spend time together outside of embassy hours. I've already started collecting Earth cookbooks and experimenting with cross-cultural fusion dishes. Did you know humans have something called 'fusion cuisine'? It's fascinating!" "Tim," Twilight said slowly, "please tell me you're not actually considering this." I set down the letter, choosing my words carefully. "Well... we do need a chef. Someone who understands Equestrian cuisine. And she does have the noble background that would help with diplomatic functions..." "She's my mother!" Twilight exclaimed. "My very... enthusiastic mother. Who writes those books. And who would be here. All the time." "Who also," I pointed out gently, "is an experienced cook from a noble family, already has security clearance as your mother, and genuinely wants to help with the pregnancy. Plus, she'd be a live-in babysitter for any future foals..." Twilight's eyes narrowed. "You're actually considering this." "I'm looking at it diplomatically," I said, sitting beside her. "We need a chef. We need someone who understands Equestrian cuisine and noble protocols. We need someone we can trust with both diplomatic functions and family matters. And," I added softly, "you might appreciate having your mom around during the pregnancy." "But..." Twilight started, then stopped, her practical nature clearly warring with her concerns. "She'd be here. All the time. Writing those books. Probably trying to give you more... educational materials." I couldn't help but laugh. "Honey, she's going to do that anyway. At least this way we get excellent cooking out of it." "You don't understand," Twilight said desperately. "She'll probably write a whole new series about cross-species embassy romance! 'The Ambassador's Forbidden Love' or something equally mortifying!" "Probably," I agreed cheerfully. "But think about the hay fries. And comfort food during your pregnancy. And having someone we absolutely trust in charge of diplomatic catering..." Twilight was quiet for a long moment, her ears slowly rising from their flattened position. "She is an amazing cook," she admitted reluctantly. "And she does know all the noble protocols for formal dinners..." "And," I added, "she'd be officially employed, which means professional boundaries would be required. During work hours, at least." "You really think she'd maintain professional boundaries?" "I think she'd try, if it meant being close to you and the baby." I pulled her closer. "Plus, can you imagine trying to explain Earth cuisine to a pony chef with no experience? At least your mother is already trying to learn how to cook human food. Or teaching a human chef about Equestrian noble dining protocols? A human chef will burn hay; I can sadly admit that you’ll never get hay fries on Earth without your mother or some other pony chef. Your mother may be the only pony alive willing to cook meat for the humans at the parties. I don’t want to hire a griffon. Too much of a risk of inviting spies. Honestly, I’d like to limit how many humans we end up hiring. It’s the Equestrian Embassy, after all.” Twilight sighed heavily. "We're really considering this, aren't we?" "We're at least thinking about it," I corrected. "Maybe we sleep on it? See how it feels in the morning?" Another scroll appeared with a golden flash. This one bore Celestia's royal seal. "Oh no," Twilight muttered. "If Celestia's writing about this..." I opened the scroll. "Dear Twilight and Tim, I understand Velvet has offered her services as embassy chef. I think it's an excellent solution to your staffing needs, though of course the decision is yours. However, I feel compelled to mention that she's already submitted several sample menu plans for diplomatic functions, and her fusion cuisine ideas are quite impressive. Also, she's promised to stop sending those 'educational materials' if you accept her offer..." "That's blackmail!" Twilight exclaimed. "That's diplomacy," I corrected, grinning. "So... should I tell your mother we'll consider her application?" Twilight's only response was to bury her face in a throw pillow and let out a muffled scream. Watching Twilight's internal struggle play out through her ear movements, I was struck by a sudden idea. "You know," I said carefully, setting down Celestia's letter, "we do have five acres here." Twilight emerged from the pillow, looking suspicious. "And?" "And humans have something called mother-in-law cabins – small separate houses on the same property. We could build one for your mother. That way she'd be close enough for embassy duties and family time, but not actually living in our house." Her ears perked up slightly. "A separate house?" "Complete with her own kitchen for recipe experimentation, bedroom for your father's visits, maybe a writing studio..." I grinned as Twilight's expression shifted from horror to consideration. "She'd have her independence, we'd have our privacy, but she'd still be close enough to help with everything." I hesitated, then added, "And speaking of family housing... we could build a second one for my dad." Twilight's eyes softened. "Your father? Is he okay?" "He's..." I searched for the right words. "When Mom died last year, it hit him hard. Even though they'd been divorced for years, she was still... you know. They were married for twenty-three years before the divorce. He never really stopped loving her." "Oh, Tim," Twilight nuzzled against me. "I didn't realize..." "He's been rattling around in that old house alone, and our phone call the other night got me thinking. He gave good advice about marriage and family, about not making the same mistakes he did. Maybe it's time we helped him start a new chapter too." Twilight was quiet for a moment, then asked hesitantly, "Are you sure it wouldn't be... complicated? With my mother here too? I know how she can be, and if you're worried about your father being vulnerable..." I couldn't help but laugh. "Honey, are you worried your mom might try to seduce my grieving father?" "No!" she exclaimed, then wilted slightly. "Maybe? I don't know. She's very... forward. And you know how I worry about her behavior sometimes..." "Twilight," I said gently, "your mother loves your father. Those romance novels and flirty comments? That's just her personality. She'd never actually act on it – with me or my dad or anyone else. You said it yourself – she's completely devoted to Night Light." "You're right," she sighed. "I just... I worry. About everything lately." "Pregnancy hormones," I teased, pulling her closer. "Making you even more anxious than usual." She swatted at me with her tail. "Be serious. You really think we could have both of them here? Living on the property?" "Two small houses, one on each side of the property. Your mother could have her writing studio with a view of the sunrise, my dad could have a workshop for his woodworking..." "He does woodworking?" "Used to, before everything with Mom. Made Sara's first crib himself." I smiled at the memory. "He might pick it up again, with a proper workshop. And having him around for the new baby... he's really good with kids. It's one thing he and Mom always agreed on, even after the divorce." Twilight was quiet, clearly thinking it through. "We'd need to get permits, hire architects who understand both human and pony needs... but it could work. And having both grandparents around for the foal..." "And for Sara," I added. "She's going through a lot of changes too. Having her grandparents around might help. Plus, can you imagine my dad's face when he realizes his daughter-in-law's mother is a famous romance novelist?" "Tim!" But she was laughing now. "We are not encouraging any literary collaborations." "Spoilsport." I pulled out my phone. "So... should I call him? See if he'd be interested?" "Yes," Twilight said, her horn already glowing as she summoned parchment. "I'll write to Mother and Celestia about the housing plan and her job offer. Just... promise me one thing?" "What's that?" "If my mother starts trying to give your father 'cooking lessons,' we intervene immediately." I couldn't help but laugh. "Deal. Though I think once they meet, they'll either become best friends or drive each other crazy. No in-between." "That's what I'm afraid of," Twilight muttered, but she was smiling as she began her letters. As I dialed my father's number, I felt more certain than ever about our decision. Our family was growing in unexpected ways, and maybe having both grandparents around – even with their very different personalities – was exactly what we all needed. Though we definitely needed to build those houses with thick, soundproof walls. Just in case Velvet decided to do public readings of her latest romance novel. * * * Twilight Two days later, I found myself facing my mother's image in a magical communication mirror Celestia had provided for the occasion. Velvet's mane was perfectly styled as always, and her eyes sparkled with barely contained excitement. "Ground rules," I said firmly, before she could launch into whatever speech she'd prepared. "If you're going to be our embassy chef and live on the property, we need to establish clear boundaries." "Of course, darling," she practically purred. "I would never dream of interfering with your domestic bliss-" "Rule number one," I interrupted, fighting to maintain my diplomatic composure. "No seducing my husband. Or my father-in-law. Or any diplomatic visitors. Or anyone else. Period." "Twilight!" Velvet pressed a hoof to her chest in mock offense. "I would never! I'm happily married to your father!" "Rule number two," I continued, ignoring her theatrical protest. "No romance novels about the embassy that could be mistaken for real events. I don't need the diplomatic corps thinking we're running some kind of... of... cross-species dating service!" Behind me, I heard Tim trying to suppress a laugh. He was supposedly reviewing architect proposals, but I knew he was listening to every word. "But darling," Velvet pouted, "you can't expect me to ignore such rich creative material! The possibilities for diplomatic intrigue, forbidden love across species boundaries..." "Mother," I said through gritted teeth, "I am trying to establish a legitimate diplomatic mission here. I don't need your next book series causing an international incident." "Interdimensional incident," Tim helpfully corrected from his desk. I shot him a glare. "Fine," Velvet sighed dramatically. "No embassy romance novels that could be mistaken for real events. But you can't stop me from being inspired by the general concept!" "Rule three," I forged ahead. "During embassy hours, you are our chef. Professional boundaries must be maintained. That means no embarrassing stories about my foalhood, no surprise 'cooking lessons' that turn into romantic advice sessions, and absolutely no attempts to set up any staff members with each other." "You're taking all the fun out of it," Velvet complained, but I could see her fighting a smile. "Though I suppose I could save the matchmaking for after hours..." "Mother!" "I'm teasing, dear." Her expression softened into something more sincere. "I promise to maintain proper professional conduct during work hours. Though you can't stop me from fussing over my pregnant daughter during family time." "Speaking of work hours," I said, trying to steer the conversation back to practical matters, "Princess Celestia mentioned you'd be arriving with the Royal Guards?" "Oh yes!" Velvet brightened. "She's arranged everything. I'll be paid directly from the Royal Treasury, just like the guards. Something about maintaining proper Equestrian oversight of key embassy personnel. She's even assigned me an official title – 'Royal Chef to the Equestrian Embassy.'" I blinked in surprise. "Royal Chef?" "Well, we can't have just anyone handling diplomatic functions, dear. And given my noble background and culinary training..." She preened slightly. "Besides, this way there's no confusion about chain of command. I report directly to Canterlot for my overall duties, although I will follow your instructions for day to day business at the embassy itself. However, the guards will be under Tim’s command. As a knight, he is also automatically a General in the Royal Guard, and they will follow his orders accordingly." That... actually made sense. Having my mother officially employed by Celestia rather than us would help maintain professional boundaries. Plus, it solved any awkward questions about paying a family member from embassy funds. "Now, about the house plans," Velvet continued cheerfully. "I've been reviewing the architect's proposals, and I think the eastern position would be perfect. The morning light would be wonderful for my writing studio..." As she launched into a detailed analysis of the proposed building plans, I felt Tim's hand on my withers. "See?" he murmured. "Having her employed directly by Celestia might make this easier. Clear chain of command, professional distance..." "Until she starts trying to give cooking lessons to your father," I muttered back. "Actually," Velvet interrupted, clearly having heard us, "I was thinking something more traditional for official functions. Though perhaps with some Earth-inspired fusion elements. Did you know humans have something called 'molecular gastronomy'? The possibilities for cross-cultural cuisine are fascinating!" I had to admit, when she focused on her actual duties, my mother could be surprisingly professional. Maybe this arrangement could work after all. As long as she kept her romantic imagination confined to her writing studio. And stayed far, far away from Tim's father's workshop. "One last thing," I added when she paused for breath. "No more sending Tim those 'educational materials.' I mean it, Mother." "Oh darling," she smiled innocently, "why would I need to send books when I'll be right there to give advice in person?" The sound of my head hitting the desk was drowned out by Tim's laughter and my mother's enthusiastic kitchen plans. At least Celestia would be paying her salary. That was something, right? Though somehow, I suspected no amount of royal oversight would completely contain Velvet's... creative energy. * * * Tim "Actually, Velvet," I said, moving closer to the mirror as Twilight recovered from her desk-head collision, "could we talk for a moment? Just the two of us?" Twilight's head shot up so fast I heard her neck crack. "Tim, no..." "Tim, yes!" Velvet beamed. "Twilight dear, give us a moment?" "This is how disasters start," Twilight muttered, but she reluctantly moved away from the mirror, though I noticed she didn't leave the room entirely. "Now then," Velvet's expression turned surprisingly serious once Twilight was out of immediate earshot. "You had something to discuss?" "I do." I glanced back at Twilight, who was pretending to organize papers while obviously straining to hear every word. "I understand why Twilight's worried about your... romantic nature overshadowing everything else. But I actually have a special project that might be perfect for someone with your particular talents, perhaps… If you're willing to have some fun with it." "I'm all ears, dear son-in-law." Velvet's eyes sparkled with interest. "NO!" Twilight yelped from across the room. "Whatever you're thinking, no!" "Sara," I said simply, and watched both mares freeze. "She's technically Lady Sara now, isn't she? A noble in the Equestrian court?" Velvet's expression shifted from playful to thoughtful. "Yes, through your title and marriage to Twilight... Oh!" Her eyes widened as she caught my meaning. "Are you suggesting..." "Back in the day, on Earth…" I continued carefully, "noble families often arranged marriages years in advance, didn't they? Setting up connections, establishing relationships between families..." "Tim!" Twilight galloped over. "She's four!" "Exactly," I said calmly. "Old enough to start making friends, young enough that nothing's serious for years. And who better to help navigate noble social circles than someone who grew up in them?" Velvet was nodding slowly, her earlier playfulness replaced by genuine consideration. "It would give her options when she's older. And proper introductions to noble culture now would help her understand her position better..." She paused. "Of course, any potential matches would need your and Twilight's approval before anything was finalized." "Naturally," I agreed. "We'd have final say. This would just be... laying groundwork. Making connections. Friendships. Ensuring she has choices when she's old enough to make them." "You're both insane," Twilight declared. "Completely insane." But Velvet was already in full planning mode. "I could make inquiries among the better families, ones with colts around her age or a few years older. Perhaps arrange some chaperoned visits once we're settled at the embassy. Nothing formal, just... social connections." "Mother!" Twilight looked horrified. "You can't possibly be considering this!" "Why not?" I asked, turning to my wife. "Sara's going to be part of noble society whether we planned for it or not. Wouldn't you rather have someone who knows the system helping guide her through it? Someone who can protect her from the wrong sort of attention while introducing her to the right sort?" Twilight opened her mouth to argue, then closed it again as she actually considered my words. "Besides," Velvet added gently, "arranged marriages aren't what they used to be, dear. These days it's more about creating opportunities for young nobles to meet naturally, in proper settings. Sara would always have the final choice." "But..." Twilight's ears flattened. "She's so young..." "Which is exactly why now is the perfect time to start," I said. "No pressure, no rush, just... opening doors for her future. And who better to guide her than her grandmother? Who happens to have extensive experience with noble social circles?" "And romance," Velvet added with a wink. "Mother!" "I'm teasing, dear. Mostly." Velvet's expression turned serious again. "Tim's right, you know. Sara's position as a human noble in Equestrian society is unique. She'll need guidance navigating those waters. Better it comes from family who love her than from social climbers looking to take advantage." I watched Twilight process this, seeing her diplomatic training war with her protective instincts. "You'd be careful?" she finally asked her mother. "No pushing, no pressure? Just... introductions and guidance?" "On my honor as a noble mare," Velvet promised solemnly. Then she grinned. "Though I can't promise not to take notes for future novels..." "And there it is," Twilight groaned, but I could tell she was weakening. "Think of it this way," I suggested. "Better your mother's romantic novels than some other writer getting ideas about the first human noble in Equestrian society. Besides, based on human age of consent, there would be no actual romance or marriage for at least 14 years. I’m sure that if Velvet can arrange for colts aged 3 to 7 to spend time with her and they form friendships, a proper arrangement can be made without a scandal.” "Oh!" Velvet's eyes lit up. "I could write a proper guide to cross-species noble etiquette! Something tasteful and educational..." "One thing at a time," I laughed. "First, let's focus on setting up your house and the embassy kitchen. Then we can talk about Sara's future social calendar." "And educational guides," Velvet added cheerfully. "No educational guides!" Twilight interjected. "We'll see, dear," Velvet said with a maternal smile that made me struggle not to laugh. "Now, about those kitchen plans..." As Velvet launched back into a discussion of equipment specifications, I caught Twilight's eye. She was trying to look annoyed, but I could see the thoughtful consideration beneath it. "You're either brilliant or insane," she muttered, coming to stand beside me. "Why not both?" I whispered back. "Besides, wouldn't you rather have your mother's romantic energy focused on proper noble matchmaking than on writing about embassy affairs… or interfering with us?" Twilight's only response was a quiet groan, but she didn't argue further. Sometimes, I reflected, the best diplomatic solutions were the ones that gave everyone what they wanted – even if what they wanted was the chance to arrange a proper noble marriage for their four-year-old granddaughter. At least we had years before anything got serious. Probably. * * * Twilight That night, after Sara was tucked into bed, I found myself unable to let go of the day's events. Tim was reading through some embassy paperwork in bed while I pretended to study architectural plans, but my mind kept circling back to one question. "Tim?" I finally asked, setting aside the plans. "Would you really be okay with it? With Sara potentially marrying a pony someday?" He looked up from his papers, his expression thoughtful rather than surprised by the question. "Honestly? If that's what would make her happy, yes. Though I suspect that's not really what you're worried about." I shifted closer to him, grateful as always for his ability to read between the lines. "It's just... suggesting arranged marriages, getting my mother involved... are you sure this isn't too much? Sara's still so young, and she's already dealing with so many changes..." Tim set his papers aside and pulled me against him. "You know what I've learned since meeting you? That love doesn't care about species. Look at us – a human and a pony, married with a foal on the way. Why should Sara have fewer options just because it might make others uncomfortable?" "But it's different for her," I pressed. "She's growing up in both worlds, and now with noble responsibilities..." I placed a hoof on my belly, thinking of our future foal. "I just want her to have a normal childhood." "Normal went out the window when her dad married a magical unicorn," Tim said with a gentle laugh. "But think about it – what your mother suggested isn't really about arranged marriages. It's about making sure Sara understands her place in both worlds and has the support she needs to navigate them." "You've really thought about this, haven't you?" "Since the day you adopted her," he admitted. "I knew then that her life would never be completely 'normal.' But maybe that's okay. Maybe instead of worrying about normal, we should focus on giving her every opportunity to find her own path – whether that leads to a human partner, a pony partner, or no partner at all." I nuzzled against him, feeling some of my anxiety ease. "When did you get so wise about these things?" "Probably around the time I fell in love with a mare who could magically recycle trailer parts," he teased. Then, more seriously, "Look, all your mother would really be doing is introducing Sara to proper noble society and helping her understand that world. Any actual relationships are years away, and ultimately, it would be Sara's choice." "But you'd really be okay with a pony son-in-law? Or daughter-in-law?" "Twilight," he said softly, tilting my chin up to meet his eyes, "I'd be okay with anyone who loves our daughter and treats her well. Human, pony, doesn't matter. Besides," he added with a grin, "can you imagine trying to tell Sara she couldn't marry somepony just because they had hooves? That would make me quite a hypocrite, wouldn’t it? She'd probably write a diplomatic protest to Celestia herself." I couldn't help but laugh at that. "She would, wouldn't she? She's already talking about having her own ambassador office..." "Exactly. So maybe instead of worrying about who she might marry someday, we focus on making sure she has the tools and support to make good choices when the time comes. Even if that support includes your mother's somewhat... enthusiastic guidance." "You're managing my mother better than I do," I accused, but without heat. "Nah, I just figured out how to channel her energy productively. Better she focus on proper noble matchmaking than on writing embassy romance novels, right?" I groaned, burying my face in his chest. "Don't remind me. Though... you really don't mind? About any of it? The noble traditions, the possibility of cross-species relationships, my mother's involvement?" "Honey," Tim said softly, stroking my mane, "our daughter has a magical unicorn for a mother and a human military Knight and General for a father. She's about to have a pony sibling. Her life was never going to be conventional. All we can do is love her, support her, and make sure she knows she has choices. If those choices happen to come with some noble connections and a grandmother who's a little too invested in romance... well, there are worse things." I felt tears prickling at my eyes – probably pregnancy hormones again. "I love you, you know that? Even if you did just give my mother permission to play matchmaker for our daughter." "Love you too," he chuckled. "Though maybe we don't mention the matchmaking part to Sara just yet? Let her enjoy being four for a while longer." "Deal," I agreed, snuggling closer. "Though we should probably warn your father about my mother before she arrives. Just in case." "Nah," Tim grinned. "Let him discover the joys of having a romance novelist for an in-law on his own. Consider it revenge for all those inappropriate jokes he tells." As I drifted off to sleep in my husband's arms, I found myself feeling more peaceful about the whole situation. Whatever the future held for Sara – human spouse, pony spouse, or something else entirely – she would face it with parents who loved her unconditionally and a rather unusual but completely devoted extended family. "Though I'm still worried about my mother," I murmured sleepily. "She's definitely going to flag you at some point..." "If she does," Tim said with drowsy mischief, "I'll just have to spank her for being a naughty mare." "She might like that..." I sighed, then caught myself. "Oh sweet Celestia, I did not just say that about my mother." Tim's quiet laughter followed me into sleep, along with the mental reminder to never, ever tell my mother about that particular conversation. Even a romance novelist had to have some limits. Right? * * * Author's Note I write Commissions! DM me with story ideas. 5 dollars per 1,000 words. //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 21 - The Meaning of Courtship //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 21 - The Meaning of Courtship Twilight A week had passed since Tim faced down the Timberwolf in Ponyville's town square. Seven days of watching my husband transform from an unknown human noble into something of a local legend. The story of how he'd saved Sweetie Belle had spread through town like wildfire, growing more elaborate with each retelling. By day three, ponies were claiming he'd wrestled the wolf bare-hoofed - or rather, bare-handed. By day five, some versions had him fighting off an entire pack single-handedly while reciting the Equestrian oath of knighthood. The truth was impressive enough without embellishment: a human Military Governor putting himself between a magical predator and an innocent filly, working in perfect sync with his guards to save not one but two lives that day. Though I noticed the stories rarely mentioned how close we'd come to losing him, how his own injuries had been hidden while he fought to save Swift Wing. From my seat on the library balcony, I could see the construction crews hard at work on the new defensive perimeter. Even with broken ribs and doctor's orders for bed rest, Tim had refused to stay idle. He'd turned our hotel room into a secondary command center, coordinating guard rotations and construction plans from his recovery bed. The fact that his "sisters" took turns enforcing his rest periods - sometimes physically blocking the door when he tried to sneak out to inspect the work - only added to his growing reputation. "The noble who treats his guards like family," I'd overheard one mare whisper in the market. "Did you hear he calls them sisters now? After they saved each other from the Timberwolf?" What they didn't know was how that arrangement had started - with mother's romance novels and "traditional" expectations transformed into something far more meaningful through shared danger and mutual respect. Though I had to admit, watching Swift Wing and Rose Petal shift from attempted seduction to fierce protectiveness was rather heartwarming. Even if they did still occasionally tease Tim about "tactical demonstrations" and "training accidents." The sound of hammering drew my attention to the schoolhouse construction site. The new guard towers were taking shape, their designs a perfect blend of Earth and Equestrian architecture. Tim had insisted on incorporating elements from both worlds, creating something unique that would serve as both protection and symbol of our growing cooperation. "Those towers look almost finished," Swift Wing's voice came from behind me as she landed on the balcony, her injuries mostly healed thanks to unicorn magic. "Though your husband is going to hurt himself if he keeps trying to sneak out to 'supervise' the construction." "Let me guess," I said dryly, "he tried the 'I just need five minutes to check the foundation work' excuse again?" "Worse," Rose Petal added, climbing the stairs to join us. "This time he claimed he needed to 'demonstrate proper sword techniques' to the construction crew. Because apparently, that's essential knowledge for building guard towers." I couldn't help but smile. "And how did you handle it this time?" "Oh, you know," Swift Wing's wings shuffled with barely contained amusement, "just reminded him that as his sisters, we're honor-bound to keep him from doing anything stupid. Then we may have threatened to tell you about the time he tried to convince us that testing the new guard rotation patterns counted as 'light exercise.'" "At least he's stopped trying to sneak out in his guard armor," I said, watching another support beam rise into place. "Though I'm still not sure which was funnier - him attempting to pass as an 'unusually tall earth pony' or you two pretending not to recognize him." Rose Petal's crimson coat darkened with suppressed laughter. "The look on his face when Swift Wing asked him to 'identify himself' was priceless. Especially since he was trying so hard to disguise his voice." "'Just a regular guard doing regular guard things,'" Swift Wing mimicked Tim's terrible attempt at a Manehattan accent. "Like we wouldn't recognize our own brother, bandages and all." I shook my head, remembering how quickly their "traditional" flirting had transformed into this kind of playful familial teasing. "Mother's going to be so disappointed when she finds out her carefully selected guards have gone from potential mistresses to overprotective sisters." "Oh, I wouldn't be too sure about that," Swift Wing said with a knowing smile. "Lady Velvet sent us an advance copy of her newest novel yesterday. 'The Knight's Sister Guard' - apparently it's about a noble who adopts his guards as sisters after they save each other in battle..." "She didn't!" I groaned, my horn sparking slightly. "Please tell me you haven't shown it to Tim." Rose Petal's innocent expression wasn't fooling anyone. "Well... he did say he wanted to understand Equestrian noble traditions better..." "Besides," Swift Wing added helpfully, "chapter three has some excellent tips about proper wound care. Though I'm not sure why it required the nurse-guard to be wearing such a revealing uniform..." My groan was interrupted by the sound of voices from below. Tim was apparently making another escape attempt, this time supported by Morning Dew and Sky Whisper. "See?" I heard him arguing, "I have escorts! Perfectly safe to check the construction progress!" "Sir," Captain Dawn Star's voice carried clearly, heavy with exasperation, "having two more guards help you sneak out doesn't make it doctor-approved activity." "I'm not sneaking! I'm... conducting an official inspection. Very important military governor duties." "While wearing your pajamas?" The Captain's tone suggested she was fighting back laughter. "Sir, with all due respect, if you don't return to bed immediately, I'll be forced to inform Lady Sparkle about yesterday's attempted 'tactical survey' of the marketplace." "You wouldn't dare," Tim's voice carried a note of betrayal. "What happened to guard solidarity?" "What happened to 'sisters don't let brothers do stupid things'?" Swift Wing called down from our vantage point, making Tim jump guiltily. "Traitors, all of you," he muttered, though I could hear the affection in his voice. "Can't a man check his own construction project without an intervention?" "Not when he's supposed to be on bed rest," I replied, unable to keep from smiling as twelve guards somehow managed to look simultaneously innocent and smugly satisfied. "Though I have to ask - what exactly happened in the marketplace yesterday?" "Nothing!" Tim said quickly. Too quickly. "Sir insisted on personally inspecting the new guard rotation patterns," Morning Dew supplied helpfully. "He made it halfway through the east patrol route before Captain Dawn Star caught him demonstrating 'proper sword techniques' to the newer guards." "I was just trying to ensure consistent training standards!" Tim protested as they herded him back toward the hotel. "Besides, my ribs are mostly healed now-" "Mostly healed is not fully healed," Captain Dawn Star cut in firmly. "Even with unicorn healing magic, you need to complete the full recovery period." Before Tim could argue further, a familiar voice called out across the square. "Sir Tim! Oh, darling, I simply must speak with you!" Rarity trotted toward us, her purple mane bouncing perfectly despite the construction dust in the air. Sweetie Belle followed close behind, looking significantly more subdued than her usual energetic self. "Miss Rarity," Tim straightened, somehow managing to look dignified despite being caught sneaking out in his pajamas. "How can I help you?" "I wanted to thank you properly for saving my dear sister," Rarity said, her eyes bright with emotion. "What you did was simply the most gallant thing I've ever witnessed! Taking on a Timberwolf with nothing but a sword and your bare hands..." "Just doing my duty as Military Governor," Tim replied modestly, though I caught Swift Wing and Rose Petal exchanging proud looks behind him. "How are you feeling, Sweetie Belle? I'm sorry about your ice cream." The little filly shuffled her hooves. "I'm okay. Just... still a little scared sometimes." Tim's expression softened. "Tell you what - once I'm officially cleared for walking around town, how about we go get you a replacement ice cream? My treat. Maybe we can even convince your sister to join us?" Sweetie Belle's eyes lit up. "Really? You'd do that?" "Of course," Tim smiled. "Though I might need my sisters here to help convince the doctor it counts as approved activity..." Swift Wing and Rose Petal stepped forward immediately. "We'll ensure his safe transport to and from the ice cream parlor," Rose Petal declared with mock seriousness. "Complete tactical oversight of frozen treat acquisition," Swift Wing added, maintaining an admirably straight face. "Oh my," Rarity's eyes darted between Tim and his guard-sisters with barely concealed curiosity. "I simply must hear how this charming arrangement came about. Perhaps over ice cream?" I caught the slight twitch in Tim's expression - he recognized that tone from my mother's matchmaking attempts. But before he could respond, Captain Dawn Star intervened smoothly: "Perhaps we should schedule the outing for after Sir Tim completes his doctor-mandated rest period?" She suggested firmly. "Which he was just returning to. Weren't you, sir?" Tim sighed in defeat. "Yes, Captain. Though I maintain that my ribs are perfectly fine now..." "Back to bed," Swift Wing and Rose Petal chorused, gently but firmly steering him toward the hotel. "We'll work out the ice cream logistics once you're properly recovered," Rose added with a meaningful look at his pajama-clad state. "Traitors," Tim muttered affectionately. "All of you." I watched them escort my husband back inside, noting how the other guards maintained their professional distance while still radiating protective affection. They might not share Swift Wing and Rose Petal's "sister" status, but a week of watching Tim put Ponyville's safety above his own had clearly earned their genuine loyalty. * * * Tim Another week of enforced bed rest had given me plenty of time to meet Twilight's Ponyville friends, though not quite how I'd imagined. Instead of proper introductions around town, they'd taken to visiting my makeshift command center, each bringing their own particular brand of chaos to my recovery. Rainbow Dash had burst through the window on day one, declaring that any pony - or human - who could take on a Timberwolf deserved her personal attention. She'd spent hours describing aerial combat maneuvers while Swift Wing took notes, the two pegasi getting increasingly animated about tactical flight patterns until Captain Dawn Star had to remind them that my "recovery room" wasn't an appropriate place for live demonstrations. Pinkie Pie's visits were... memorable. She'd somehow managed to throw me a "Congratulations On Not Dying And Becoming An Honorary Big Brother To Your Guards" party, complete with a cake that depicted the entire battle scene in frosting. How she'd known about the sister arrangement before we'd officially announced it remained a mystery, though her ability to produce party cannons from seemingly nowhere was equally baffling. Applejack brought homemade apple-based remedies and solid common sense. Her natural pragmatism made discussing the town's defenses remarkably productive, even if she did tend to give Swift Wing and Rose Petal knowing looks whenever they fussed over my pillows or insisted on "proper brotherly care." Fluttershy's quiet visits were actually the most challenging - not because of her, but because her ability to communicate with animals meant she kept bringing "friends" who wanted to thank me for protecting the town. Trying to maintain military dignity while a family of grateful bunnies insisted on using me as a pillow fort was... interesting. Though not as interesting as watching my guards try to maintain their professional demeanor while cooing over baby animals. And then there was Rarity, who'd taken to visiting with architectural suggestions for the guard towers. "They simply must coordinate with the town's existing aesthetic, darling," she'd insisted, producing elaborate sketches of what she called 'defensively fashionable' designs. The fact that some of her ideas about arrow slit placement and patrol walkways were tactically brilliant only added to my growing respect for Twilight's friends. "Your friends are... unique," I commented to Twilight one evening as she reviewed patrol reports beside my bed. "Though I'm starting to understand why you love this town so much." "Just wait until you're cleared for walking around," she replied with a knowing smile. "Pinkie's already planning your 'Official First Steps As Our New Favorite Human-Who-Is-Also-A-Knight-And-Big-Brother-To-Guards' party." "That's... oddly specific." "That's Pinkie," Twilight shrugged. "Though you might want to prepare yourself - I think she's planning to invite the whole town." I groaned, though not entirely from the healing ribs. "Please tell me she's not going to do the thing with the cannons again. Rose Petal nearly had a heart attack last time, and I'm pretty sure Captain Dawn Star is still finding confetti in her armor." "No promises," Twilight grinned. "Though I notice you haven't complained about having visitors. Even with all the chaos they bring." "They make the mandatory bed rest more bearable," I admitted. "Though I could do with fewer of Rainbow Dash's impromptu tactical demonstrations. I'm not sure the ceiling can take much more of her enthusiasm." I caught Twilight's slight ear twitch at the mention of Rainbow's demonstrations. Her horn sparked faintly as she remembered how the athletic pegasus had hovered over my bed, showing off aerial maneuvers that gave quite the view of her athletic build. Rainbow probably hadn't even thought about how her natural pegasus grace - and complete lack of clothing - might appear to a human still adjusting to pony customs. "Yes, well," Twilight's voice carried a familiar edge of controlled jealousy, "perhaps future tactical discussions should happen somewhere more... appropriate. With less aerial acrobatics directly above my husband's bed." Swift Wing and Rose Petal exchanged knowing looks. They'd noticed Rainbow's unconsciously suggestive poses too - probably because they'd done similar "demonstrations" themselves before our sibling arrangement. "Don't worry, honey," I said quickly, reaching for her hoof. "Rainbow was just excited about combat techniques. Besides, I already have more than enough sisters to keep me in line." "Mmhmm," Twilight muttered, though her expression softened at my touch. "And I suppose Rarity's daily visits to discuss 'defensive fashion' are purely professional too? I noticed she keeps finding reasons to demonstrate proper unicorn horn positioning..." I winced slightly. I hadn't thought about how Rarity's elegant poses and graceful magic demonstrations might remind Twilight of her earlier fears about attractive mares around her husband. "To be fair," Rose Petal offered diplomatically, "Miss Rarity's tower designs are actually quite innovative. Even if she does tend to... emphasize certain aspects of unicorn grace while presenting them." "She does seem to find a lot of reasons to bend over the blueprints," Swift Wing added thoughtfully, then caught Twilight's expression. "Though as your sisters, we naturally ensure all presentations maintain proper professional distance!" I couldn't resist teasing, despite knowing better. "Though if we're discussing your friends' various charms, I have to say Fluttershy is probably the cutest. You know, that classic 'mare next door' vibe. Something about her shy demeanor..." The temperature in the room seemed to drop several degrees. Swift Wing and Rose Petal immediately found the ceiling fascinating while slowly backing toward the door. Twilight's horn sparked dangerously. "Oh really? The 'mare next door,' is she? Would that be the same Fluttershy who spent an hour yesterday brushing your mane while cooing about how brave you were?" "Um," I realized perhaps I'd miscalculated. "I was just joking?" "Joking?" Twilight's voice carried that dangerous sweetness I was starting to recognize. "Like how you were 'just joking' about Rainbow's aerial demonstrations? Or Rarity's 'defensive fashion' consultations?" "We'll just... patrol the hallway," Swift Wing announced quickly. "Very important security protocols to review. Outside. Far outside." "Absolutely vital hallway inspection required," Rose Petal agreed, both guards making a strategic retreat. "Proper sisterly duty and all that." "Traitors," I called after them, then turned back to my increasingly annoyed wife. "Honey, you know I was only teasing. Besides, aren't you the one who's always saying I need to better appreciate pony culture?" "Appreciate pony culture?" Twilight's horn sparked again. "Is that what we're calling it now? Should I ask Mother to write a guide about properly 'appreciating' my unmarried friends?" I realized I'd definitely miscalculated. "Would this be a bad time to mention that Pinkie Pie's planning another party?" "Timothy Talbert," Twilight's voice could have frozen a dragon's flame, "if you say one word about finding Pinkie's energy 'adorable,' you're sleeping in the fountain. Again." From the hallway, I heard Swift Wing whisper to Rose Petal: "Should we intervene?" "And risk getting between an angry unicorn and her husband? After he just called another mare cute?" Rose Petal whispered back. "I love our brother, but he brought this on himself." They weren't wrong. Though in my defense, seeing Twilight get jealous was kind of adorable... "Actually," I said thoughtfully, tapping my chin, "having your mother write a guide might not be a bad idea. I mean, if humans going to properly appreciate Equestrian culture, we should probably understand all the traditions. Maybe she could do a whole series?" Twilight's eye twitched. "A series?" "Sure! 'The Human's Guide to Herd Formation' could be volume one. Though I'd also need something about first date etiquette with unicorn fillies – you know, for my upcoming ice cream date with Sweetie Belle." The flower vase beside the bed exploded. "Though I suppose," I continued innocently, "I should wait until she's older. What's the traditional age for adding new herd members in Equestria? Should I ask Rarity for her sister's hoof now or...?" "YOU ARE NOT DATING SWEETIE BELLE!" Twilight's horn was practically throwing sparks now. "Of course not right now," I agreed reasonably. "She's far too young. But in a few years... I mean, Rainbow Dash did say I'd make a good Wonderbolt. That's pretty impressive, right? And Fluttershy already likes grooming my mane..." "I will teleport you INTO THE SUN!" "Honey, that seems excessive. Besides, shouldn't we consult your mother's guide first? I'm sure she has a chapter about proper herd expansion protocols. Though we might need separate volumes for each of your friends. Maybe organized by tribe? The pegasus edition could have diagrams for optimal aerial viewing angles..." From the hallway came the distinct sound of guard-sisters trying desperately not to laugh. "Though if we're being traditional," I pressed on, fighting to keep my expression serious, "shouldn't we start with Pinkie Pie? She did throw me that lovely 'Not Dead' party. That has to count for something in herd courtship customs." Twilight's horn was crackling with barely contained magic. "Timothy. Talbert." "Yes, dear? I'm just trying to be culturally sensitive. Maybe we should ask Fluttershy what she thinks about it. You know, get that sweet, shy perspective on proper herd dynamics..." The remaining intact vases in the room shattered simultaneously. "Or we could start with Rarity? I mean, she's already helping design our guard towers. That's practically like building a house together, right? Very traditional..." "I am going to MURDER you," Twilight announced with deadly calm. "And then I'm going to bring you back just so I can murder you again." My smirk was lethal. “Ah. A wedding and a funeral. Pinkie would love to plan that party.” Twilight’s blank expression seemed to indicate that she was picturing how that might look. Pinkie was clearly the only pony alive that could pull off such a party, which was, of course, part of the joke. "Now darling," I mimicked Rarity's elegant tone, "violence hardly seems the proper way to begin herd negotiations. What would your mother say? Actually, maybe we should write to her for advice..." The look Twilight gave me could have melted steel. "Are you quite finished?" "I don't know, should I talk about Rainbow's aerobatic displays again? Because I have to say, those loop-de-loops were pretty impress—" The pillow that hit my face was probably deserved. Though maybe not the second one. Or the third... * * * Twilight I wasn't sure whether to murder my husband or kiss him. As my magic lobbed another pillow at his smirking face, I caught a glimpse of my reflection in the window – horn sparking, mane frazzled, looking exactly like the jealous, hormonal mare I was afraid of becoming. And here was Tim, deliberately provoking me with increasingly outrageous suggestions until I had to see how absurd I was being. "You," I announced, trying to maintain my glare despite the laughter threatening to bubble up, "are impossible." "I prefer 'culturally inquisitive,'" Tim replied, still dodging pillows. "Though I suppose we should table the herd discussion until after I've had ice cream with Sweetie Belle. Wouldn't want to be improper about the courtship order-" The next pillow hit him squarely in the face, but I was fighting back giggles now. "Stop talking about courting Sweetie Belle! She's just a filly!" "Exactly why we should wait," he agreed solemnly. "Give me time to properly study your mother's guides. Though maybe we should start with Rainbow Dash instead? Those aerial maneuvers really were quite-" "If you finish that sentence," I warned, though my horn's sparking had subsided to occasional flickers, "I really will teleport you into the fountain." "The fountain? But honey, what would Fluttershy say? She just got my mane perfectly groomed—" From the hallway, I heard Swift Wing stage-whisper to Rose Petal: "Should we be taking notes for Lady Velvet's next novel? 'The Human's Guide to Provoking Unicorn Wives' could be a bestseller..." "I heard that!" I called out, making both guards dissolve into barely-stifled laughter. Tim's expression was far too innocent. "You know, your mother would probably love to write that one too. Maybe with a special chapter about jealousy management through strategic fountain dunking-" "I hate you," I muttered, but I was smiling now. "And I hate that you know exactly how to make me laugh at myself when I'm being ridiculous." "You love me," Tim corrected, holding out his arms. "Even when I'm deliberately provoking you into destroying all our vases. Though maybe we should invest in plastic ones? More fountain-dunk resistant." I settled onto the bed beside him, careful of his healing ribs. "I do know I'm being silly. It's just... they're all so pretty, and confident, and their bodies aren't changing shape every day because of pregnancy hormones..." "Honey," Tim's voice softened as he pulled me close, "you do remember why Swift Wing and Rose Petal are my sisters now, right? I turned down professional seductresses for you. Do you really think Rainbow's aerial shows or Rarity's 'elegant demonstrations' are going to tempt me?" "No," I admitted, nuzzling into his chest. "Though you didn't have to escalate it quite so dramatically. Sweetie Belle? Really?" "Got you to laugh, didn't it?" He kissed my horn gently. "Besides, I had to go completely ridiculous, or you might have actually murdered me over the Fluttershy comments." "I still might," I threatened without heat. "Especially if you ever call her 'the mare next door' again." "What about 'the shy, adorable one'?" The pillow I hit him with was purely telekinetic this time. "You're sleeping in the fountain tonight." "Worth it," he grinned, then added more seriously, "You know none of them hold a candle to you, right? Even with pregnancy hormones and magical fluctuations. You're perfect exactly as you are." I felt tears welling up – definitely pregnancy hormones – but before I could respond, Swift Wing poked her head around the door. "Sorry to interrupt the romantic moment," she said, not looking sorry at all, "but Miss Pinkie Pie is here with party planning questions. Something about whether the 'Getting Out of Bed Finally' celebration should include aerial acrobatics from Rainbow Dash..." "Absolutely not," I said firmly, just as Tim asked, "Will there be cake?" The look I gave him could have melted steel. "What?" he asked innocently. "I'm just showing cultural appreciation. Though maybe we should ask Fluttershy to help with the decorations? She has such a gentle touch with-" The splash from the fountain was particularly satisfying that evening. * * * Tim The fountain water was still dripping from my hair as Swift Wing and Rose Petal helped me into fresh clothes for the party. Their barely contained amusement wasn't helping. "You know," Swift Wing observed, helping me with my tie, "most stallions try to avoid making their pregnant wives jealous. You seem to have developed it into an art form." "Though dunking you in the fountain was probably gentler than what she initially planned," Rose Petal added, smoothing my jacket. "Remember how her horn sparked when you mentioned Sweetie Belle?" "Worth it to get her laughing again," I said, then winced as they both smacked me with their tails. "What? Sometimes you have to push past the jealousy until it becomes ridiculous." "Just try not to get murdered at the party," Swift Wing suggested. "We'd hate to have to find a new brother." The party itself was pure Pinkie Pie chaos – streamers everywhere, impossibly physics-defying decorations, and enough cake to feed half of Canterlot. Though I had to admit, the "Congratulations On Getting Out Of Bed And Not Dying From Being A Hero" banner was a nice touch. What I hadn't counted on was Rarity's... enthusiasm. "Oh darling," she practically purred, somehow materializing beside me the moment Twilight stepped away to talk to Applejack. "You simply must tell me more about Earth fashion. These human formal clothes are absolutely fascinating..." Her horn glowed as she adjusted my tie, standing much closer than strictly necessary. "The fabric, the cut, the way it accentuates your form... simply divine." I caught Twilight's eye across the room, her horn starting to spark again. Time for a strategic retreat. "Actually," I said quickly, "I promised Sweetie Belle that ice cream. Swift Wing, Rose Petal – a little help with escort duty?" My guard-sisters materialized instantly, clearly recognizing a rescue situation. We made our way to the refreshment table where Sweetie Belle was eyeing the ice cream selection. "One replacement ice cream as promised," I said, grateful for the excuse to escape Rarity's attention. "Though this time without any Timberwolves." Sweetie Belle's face lit up as she selected her flavors. "Thank you for saving me," she said softly, then stood on her hind legs to give me a quick peck on the cheek. "Aww," Swift Wing cooed. "Our brother's first proper thank you kiss." "Though maybe don't mention the 'first kiss' part to Lady Sparkle," Rose Petal suggested wisely. "Given earlier discussions..." Before I could respond, a gentle voice interrupted: "Oh! Are you enjoying the party?" Fluttershy had approached so quietly even my guards hadn't noticed. Her natural grace was amplified by the soft music playing. "I love these traditional pegasus melodies," she said softly. "Would you... would you like to see how we dance to them? If you don't mind, that is..." Her demonstration was beautiful – all flowing movements and subtle wing gestures that somehow told a story without words. Even Swift Wing seemed impressed. Later, after Fluttershy had drifted away to tend to some small woodland creatures that had wandered in, Swift Wing pulled me aside. "Sir... brother... you do realize what she just showed you, right?" "A traditional pegasus dance?" I asked, noting her suddenly serious expression. "That wasn't just any dance," she explained carefully. "That was the Dawn Flight – it's traditionally performed during pegasus courtship rituals. It's... well, it's basically a proposal dance." I felt the blood drain from my face. "She... what?" "Oh yes," Swift Wing nodded sagely. "Very traditional. Very romantic. The gentle wing sweeps represent building a cloud nest together, and that final spiral? That's about eternal devotion and producing many fine foals..." I glanced frantically around the room, but Twilight was deep in conversation with Pinkie Pie. "Please tell me my wife didn't recognize that dance." "Probably not," Swift Wing assured me. "Most unicorns aren't familiar with pegasus courtship traditions. Though Rarity seemed quite interested in your reaction to it..." "Speaking of Rarity," Rose Petal added helpfully, "did you notice how she kept finding reasons to demonstrate her horn control? That's a traditional unicorn courtship display too. Shows precision and magical prowess – very important qualities in potential mates..." I groaned. "You're both making this up to torture me, aren't you?" Their perfectly innocent expressions weren't fooling anyone. "Would we do that to our beloved brother?" Swift Wing asked sweetly. "Though you might want to avoid any more traditional pegasus dances tonight. Unless you're planning to add to your proposal collection..." "Just tell me – was that really a courtship dance or are you messing with me?" I asked quietly, watching Fluttershy chat with some newly arrived songbirds. "Oh, it was definitely a courtship dance," Swift Wing confirmed, her wings twitching with barely suppressed amusement. "Though I doubt she meant it that way. Fluttershy's so naturally graceful, she probably didn't even think about how it might look to an uninformed human." "Unlike Rarity," Rose Petal added dryly, "who knew exactly what she was doing with those horn demonstrations. Very deliberate form there. I particularly enjoyed how she managed to position herself between you and Lady Sparkle seven different times..." "Eight," Swift Wing corrected. "You missed the 'accidental' bump that let her showoff her mane control." I groaned. "You're enjoying this far too much." "Of course we are," Rose Petal grinned. "It's our sisterly duty to point out when mares are flirting with you. Though maybe we should take notes for Lady Velvet? 'The Human's Guide to Recognizing Unicorn Courtship Signals' could be her next bestseller." "Speaking of signals," Swift Wing's voice dropped conspiratorially, "you might want to redirect Rainbow Dash. She's setting up for what looks like a traditional Wonderbolt courtship formation..." "There's no such thing," I protested weakly. "You're definitely making that up." "Are we though?" Rose Petal's innocent expression wasn't fooling anyone. "Those loop-de-loops are looking awfully romantic..." "I hate you both." "Love you too, big brother," they chorused. Across the room, I caught Twilight's eye. She was watching Rarity's latest "accidental" proximity with increasing agitation. Time for some strategic intervention before more vases suffered. "If you'll excuse me," I said, already moving toward my wife, "I need to go remind someone why I chose her over professional seductresses." "Aww," Swift Wing cooed. "Our brother's actually learning!" "They grow up so fast," Rose Petal agreed. "Though maybe stay away from Fluttershy's special butterfly ballet. That one's traditionally performed at the wedding ceremony..." "Still making things up!" I called back. "Are we though?" Their laughter followed me across the room. I reached Twilight just as Rarity was preparing another "demonstration" of unicorn grace. Wrapping an arm around my wife's withers, I pulled her close. "Dance with me?" I asked softly. "Show these amateurs how it's really done?" The smile she gave me could have lit up Canterlot. "Amateurs?" "Well," I grinned, "I did turn down professionally trained seductresses for you. These casual courtship displays are hardly competition." Her horn's sparking subsided as she pressed closer. "You noticed those were courtship displays?" "My sisters have been providing very detailed cultural commentary," I admitted. "Though they might be making half of it up just to mess with me." Twilight pressed closer as we swayed to the music, her voice dropping to a whisper. "Actually... your sisters weren't making anything up. Fluttershy really did perform the Dawn Flight. It's one of the most intimate pegasus courtship rituals – normally only shared with a potential lifelong mate." I nearly missed a step. "Wait, what?" "And Rarity's horn demonstrations?" She continued, a hint of irritation creeping into her voice. "Pure unicorn nobility courtship. Every precise movement was meant to showcase her magical control and grace. She might as well have been writing 'marry me' in giant letters." "You're kidding." "I wish." Her tail swished in annoyance. "Though Rainbow's aerial routine is less... marriage-minded. That particular flight pattern is more of a, um, casual invitation. For... activities." I felt my face heat. "You mean she's basically asking..." "For a quick roll in the hay? Yes." Twilight's horn sparked slightly. "Very quick, given her speed records." "At least Sweetie Belle's kiss was innocent," I offered weakly. "Oh yes, completely innocent," Twilight agreed. "Though you might want to avoid any more cheek kisses from fillies. In unicorn culture, it's traditionally how young mares show interest in older stallions they'd like to court when they come of age." "You're definitely making that last part up," I accused, though her expression remained serious. "Maybe," she admitted with a small smile. "But can you be sure? After all, you didn't believe the guards about the other traditions..." * * * Twilight I couldn't help but enjoy Tim's increasingly panicked expression as he processed the implications of the various courtship displays he'd inadvertently encouraged. The way his eyes kept darting between Fluttershy's gentle smiles, Rarity's "casual" horn demonstrations, and Rainbow's warming-up wing stretches was rather adorable. "So," he said carefully, still holding me close as we danced, "just to be clear – I accidentally got proposed to twice, propositioned once, and may or may not have accidentally promised to court a filly when she's older?" "More like three proposals," I corrected, watching Rarity prepare for another 'accidental' display of magical prowess. "She's about to do the Spiral Ascension – that's traditionally performed at the end of formal courtship, right before asking for marriage rights." "Oh, sweet God," Tim muttered. "No wonder Swift Wing and Rose Petal looked so amused. They knew exactly what was happening." "Of course they did. Though I notice they waited until after everything to explain the cultural significance." I couldn't quite keep the smugness from my voice. "Almost like they wanted their brother to squirm a bit." "Traitors," he grumbled affectionately. "Though I guess I deserved it after all those jokes about forming a herd." I felt his body tense as Rainbow Dash started her "warm-up" routine, her athletic form executing moves that were definitely not standard flight patterns. "Should I be worried that she's basically performing the pegasus equivalent of a strip tease?" he whispered. "Only if you're planning to take her up on it," I replied sweetly, my horn sparking just enough to remind him of the fountain. "Though I have to admit, watching you panic about accidental courtship signals is rather satisfying after all your teasing." "I take it back," he groaned. "Your mother doesn't need to write any cultural guides. I don't want to know any more pony courtship traditions. Ever." "Oh really?" I batted my eyes innocently. "So you don't want to know what it means when Fluttershy keeps offering to groom your mane? Or why Rarity insisted on adjusting your tie seven times? Or why Rainbow's current loop-de-loop is called the 'Passionate Plunge'?" Tim's face was now an interesting shade of red. "Please tell me you're making up at least some of this." "Maybe," I smiled, enjoying his discomfort far too much. "But like you said earlier – can you really be sure? After all, you didn't believe your sisters about the other traditions..." "You know," Tim said thoughtfully as we danced, "even if I was interested in a traditional Equestrian herd arrangement - which I'm not - your friends wouldn't be my type." My ears perked forward despite myself. "Oh?" "Well, theoretically speaking, a proper herd would want balance, right? One mare from each tribe?" He smiled as I tensed slightly. "But you're the only unicorn I'd ever want. You're brilliant and beautiful and just the right mix of proper and playful." I felt myself relaxing slightly. "And the others?" "Fluttershy's sweet, but too shy. I need someone who can challenge me sometimes. And Rainbow Dash?" He chuckled. "Too much of a tomboy. If I wanted a pegasus - which I don't - I'd want someone like Swift Wing. Athletic but still feminine, confident without being brash, but bold enough to meet me halfway without me having to lead all the time, like the balance I have with you, my love." "You've thought about this," I accused, though without heat. "Only academically," he assured me. "Like your mother's cultural guides. Though I notice you're not asking about earth ponies..." "Because Rose Petal would be your obvious choice," I finished. "Strong but graceful, dutiful but playful. Considering my earth pony friends… Applejack is hard working, but she’ll never leave her farm, and Pinkie Pie is too much for anypony that’s not already also a party animal. You enjoyed your time at Morton’s, but our diplomatic parties will be toned down and respectful, Pinkie would never understand that.” "I think you understand my mind more than I gave you credit for, so I’m baffled as to why you’re still jealous. As to Rose and Swift… that’s exactly why they're sisters now instead of potential herd members," he said softly. "Because I don't want a herd. I just want you." I felt my earlier jealousy fading. "Though you have to admit, Mother would write an amazing guide about proper herd selection criteria..." "Don't you dare give her ideas," Tim warned. "Though maybe we should tell Rainbow Dash that particular aerial maneuver she's about to attempt is traditionally reserved for proposing threesomes..." "TIM!" Tim glanced meaningfully at Rainbow's increasingly suggestive aerial display. "You know, all this talk about traditional signals and courtship displays... it has been two weeks since I've had any intimate cultural exchanges." I felt my face heat. "You were injured!" "And now I'm healed," he pointed out reasonably. "Though I have to say, for a stallion who hasn't had a proper roll in the hay for fourteen days, I think I'm showing remarkable restraint. Especially with all these... traditional demonstrations happening around me." I swatted him with my tail. "Is that your subtle way of suggesting we leave the party early?" "Well," he grinned, "I do need to practice proper Equestrian customs. What kind of Military Governor would I be if I didn't maintain cultural relations with my wife?" "Cultural relations?" I couldn't help but laugh. "Is that what we're calling it now?" "Would you prefer 'diplomatic negotiations'? 'Cross-cultural exchange'? Though maybe we should consult your mother's guides first... I'm sure she has some suggestions about proper position protocols-" The look I gave him could have melted steel. "If you mention my mother's books one more time..." "You'll what? Dunk me in the fountain again?" His smile turned mischievous. "Because I'm pretty sure getting me all wet isn't going to discourage anything..." * * * Twilight We made our excuses and slipped away from the party, though I caught Swift Wing and Rose Petal exchanging knowing smiles as they took up discrete positions to ensure we weren't followed. The night air was cool against our skin as we hurried through the empty streets, my heart pounding in sync with the hurried rhythm of his steps. Tim’s hand was firm around mine, his grip possessive, sending a thrill through me as he led me away from the lights and laughter of the party. Every so often, I glanced back, catching those sly, knowing looks from Swift Wing and Rose Petal, smirking and turning away as they pretended not to notice our retreat. "Cultural relations?" I murmured, feeling the shiver of anticipation lacing my voice. "Very important diplomatic duty," Tim replied, pulling me close, his arm wrapping around my waist, his breath hot against my ear. "Can't leave our nations' ties unattended..." He pulled me close, pressing his body into mine, his words rumbling low and thick in his throat. The little gasp I made was lost in his kiss as he claimed my mouth, a taste of everything we'd held back these last two weeks, a raw promise of what he intended to do to me. The door closed behind us, and suddenly the world outside didn’t exist. I barely felt the room around us; it was all him - the heat of his body, the demanding press of his lips against mine. His hands slipped down to my back, rough and eager, as if he were holding onto something precious and unruly. The touch of his fingertips alone sent waves of magic surging through me, my horn sparking with raw, untamed energy. "I missed you," he whispered against my horn, the warmth of his breath igniting every nerve in my body. His words were like a brand, grounding me yet setting every part of me alight. "Missed this. Missed you. Only you." The space between us vanished as he pulled me close, his fingers tracing the line of my spine, down lower, until his hand pressed possessively at the small of my back, drawing me flush against him. My pulse fluttered wild as his lips found my neck, leaving a trail of heat that sent my magic crackling. I could barely stand the way he touched me, how his lips, his hands, every brush of his fingertips seemed to ignite a firestorm deep in my chest, each kiss an answer to every lonely night and aching thought we’d held apart. His clothes hit the floor piece by piece, a trail of promises broken and now fulfilled. The last barrier gone, I felt the full warmth of him against me, a heavy need echoing in every glance, every breath. My hooves trembled as he lay me down, his hands rough and gentle all at once as they traced every inch of me, mapping me out as if he needed to memorize every curve, every response. His mouth traveled lower, sending waves of heat through me, coaxing my body to open for him, aching and unguarded beneath his touch. "Twilight," he murmured, his voice thick with need, a hint of reverence as his hands gripped my hips, steadying me, readying me for him. And when he finally pressed into me, it felt like everything we’d held back, every ache, every longing came rushing out. The two weeks of restraint, of wanting each other from a distance, melted away as he filled me, moving in a way that left me helpless to anything but him. Our rhythm built, our bodies moving as if in a dance, as if we’d known each other for lifetimes, every thrust sending sparks from my horn, every moan blending with the murmured words we barely remembered but couldn’t stop whispering. Time faded as he drove deeper, my hips lifting to meet his every motion, chasing the storm building between us. It was only us, lost to the world, bodies tangled in sheets, our skin glistening, breaths growing wild as he drove me closer, higher. And as he whispered those words again, against my neck, into my ear, his hands tightening around me, I shattered, magic flashing wild and untamed, body and magic one with his, spiraling into a blissful release that left me breathless, clinging to him as he too let go, the world dissolving around us in heat and whispered words, in the promise of love held close and sacred - no boundaries, no hesitation, just him and me. Our bodies collapsed together, still trembling from the aftershocks of our release, breaths mingling, heartbeats syncing as if we were one. He held me close, his arms a comforting weight around me, our bodies tangled beneath the sheets, skin still hot from the fierce rhythm we’d just shared. I rested my head on his chest, feeling his pulse steady beneath my cheek, grounding me in the warmth and scent of him. He brushed a stray lock of my mane away, his thumb caressing the line of my jaw as we lay in silence, both basking in the quiet glow that had settled over us, a peace that felt almost too perfect to disturb. I closed my eyes, letting myself melt into him, the last moments of warmth and bliss still swirling through me - until, suddenly, an electric surge of awareness jolted through my body, sparking from deep within. My eyes flew open as the realization struck me, a pulse of something undeniable. "Twilight?" Tim’s voice was gentle but laced with concern as he felt my sudden stillness. He sat up slightly, searching my face, brow furrowed. "What’s wrong?" My magic flared instinctively, reaching inward, confirming what I felt - what I knew. It was a knowledge older than any spell, ancient and instinctual, as if every part of me recognized this truth. His seed hadn’t only taken root three weeks ago; but now it had found a second spark of life, another possibility blooming inside me. "Tim…" My voice was a whisper, almost awed as the truth settled into me, reverberating through every fiber of my being. "I - I think… we’re going to have twins." A beat passed, the silence thickening between us as his gaze searched mine, understanding dawning slowly, a kind of stunned wonder spreading over his face. His fingers tightened on my waist as he pulled me even closer, his breath catching as if he too felt the magnitude of what had just unfolded. "Twins," he echoed, almost reverent, his voice cracking as a smile broke over his face, soft yet radiant. He looked at me as if seeing me for the first time, something raw and tender in his eyes. "Twilight… we’re going to have twins." I loved the idea until I didn’t… I’m going to be as big as a house… Celestia help me. * * * Tim Morning light filtered through the curtains as I held Twilight close, still processing her revelation from last night. Twins. We were having twins. Every protective instinct in me surged at the thought, even as wonder and joy mixed with mild panic. "Stop thinking so loud," Twilight mumbled against my chest, her horn giving a sleepy spark. "You're making the blankets vibrate with all that worrying." "I'm not worrying," I protested, running a hand through her mane. "Just... planning. Twins means double everything - cribs, diapers, midnight feedings..." "Double the size too," she groaned, pressing closer. "I'm going to be enormous." "You'll be beautiful," I assured her, kissing her horn. "Though maybe we should wait to tell everyone? Give us time to adjust to the idea ourselves first?" A knock at the door interrupted her response. "Brother dear?" Swift Wing's voice carried far too much amusement. "Your presence is requested for morning patrol review. Though given the magical light show from your room last night, perhaps you need more rest?" "The entire town saw those sparks," Rose Petal added helpfully. "Rainbow Dash said they rivaled her sonic rainboom for impressive displays." I felt Twilight's face heat against my chest. "Please tell me they're exaggerating..." "Well," Swift Wing called through the door, "let's just say nopony needed lanterns to find their way home from the party. Though we did have to explain to several concerned citizens that no, the library wasn't under magical attack..." "Just very thorough cultural relations," Rose Petal supplied with obvious glee. "Very, very thorough..." "We need to tell them," I said softly, still holding Twilight close despite our guards' continued teasing through the door. "Not just about the twins – Sara deserves to know she's going to be a big sister, and your friends have been supporting us through everything. Only Spike knows besides the guards, and he's been keeping your secret even while watching you deal with all the changes." "I heard that!" Spike's voice joined the guards'. "Do you know how hard it's been watching Pinkie plan parties without being able to tell her about the biggest celebration of all? She's going to explode when she finds out there's TWO babies!" "Speaking of explosions," Swift Wing called through the door, her voice carrying obvious amusement, "that magical display last night makes a lot more sense now. Double the foals, double the magical feedback?" "Though we have to ask," Rose Petal added, barely containing her laughter, "does this mean we're getting twice as many nieces or nephews to spoil?" I felt Twilight groan against my chest. "Our guard-sisters are never going to let us live this down, are they?" "Never," both mares confirmed cheerfully through the door. "Though we've maintained our discretion about the pregnancy so far. The twins, however..." "Are going to require a whole new level of protective detail," Captain Dawn Star's voice joined in, her professional tone somewhat undermined by obvious joy. "Congratulations, sir, my lady. Though perhaps next time you could warn us before releasing enough magical energy to light up half of Ponyville?" "Half of Ponyville?" Twilight squeaked. "It wasn't that noticeable..." "Oh darling," Rarity's voice suddenly joined the hallway chorus, "it was rather spectacular. Though I must say, the colors were absolutely divine – all those purples and golds intermingling..." "Rarity?!" Twilight bolted upright, nearly headbutting me with her horn. "What are you doing here?" "Well, after such a magnificent magical display, we simply had to check on you," Rarity replied. "Though your guards have been most discreet about the cause. Even if Swift Wing and Rose Petal's knowing smirks are rather telling..." "Um... if you don't mind me saying," Fluttershy's gentle voice added, "some of the woodland creatures were a bit startled by all the magical energy. But they say it felt... happy? Like celebration magic?" "CELEBRATION?!" Pinkie's voice exploded through the door. "Did someone say CELEBRATION? Is there going to be a party? Oh my gosh, is it finally time to plan the—" "Pinkie!" several voices chorused, cutting her off. "What?" Rainbow Dash's distinctive rasp joined in. "We all know Twilight's been hiding something. Those weren't just regular magic sparks last night. That was like, next-level magical feedback. Almost like-" "ENOUGH!" Twilight's horn sparked, though whether from embarrassment or hormones was anyone's guess. "Tim, a little help here?" I couldn't help but laugh at the absurdity of our situation – trapped in bed while what seemed like all of Ponyville gathered outside our door. "Well, you did say we should tell your friends..." "Yes, but not while we're still in bed! And not about... last night's activities!" "If it helps," Swift Wing offered helpfully, "we've been maintaining a proper security perimeter. Nopony unauthorized has gotten close enough to-" "Though we may have let a few close friends through," Rose Petal admitted. "For purely security-related reasons, of course." "Of course," Captain Dawn Star agreed with suspicious promptness. "Can't be too careful with the Military Governor's family. Especially now that it's growing so... exponentially." "Fine!" Twilight announced, her horn glowing as she levitated our clothes over. "Everypony go wait in the library's main room. We'll be down in fifteen minutes to explain everything." "Ooh, should I get refreshments?" Pinkie asked excitedly. "Maybe some 'Congratulations On Your Magical Light Show That Totally Wasn't About Making Foals' cupcakes?" "Twenty minutes," Twilight amended, burying her face in my chest. "And Pinkie? Just... regular cupcakes are fine." As the sound of hooves retreated, accompanied by excited chatter and barely suppressed giggles, Swift Wing and Rose Petal remained at their posts. "You know," I called out to my guard-sisters, "this could have been handled more... diplomatically." "Oh please," Rose Petal scoffed. "After what you put us through with all that herd teasing last night? Consider this sisterly revenge." "Besides," Swift Wing added cheerfully, "somepony had to start spreading the joy. Though maybe next time you could conceive twins without alerting the entire town's magical sensors?" Twilight groaned again. "I hate all of you." "No you don't," they chorused. "Though you might want to hurry up. Rainbow Dash is taking bets on whether there'll be wings or horns. Or both." "Both?" I asked, suddenly curious despite myself. "Is that even possible with human-pony genetics?" The look Twilight gave me could have melted steel. "Not. Helping." "Just asking for clarity," I defended, helping her with her mane. "Though maybe we should send someone to get Sara? If we're telling everyone, she should hear it first." "Already done," Captain Dawn Star called. "Forest Shadow and Moonbeam are escorting her here now. Though they may have promised her a 'special surprise' to get her moving this early..." I caught Twilight's eye as we finished dressing. "Ready for this?" She pressed close, her earlier embarrassment fading to something softer. "Ready to tell everyone we're having twins? That you're going to be an even more overprotective father than you already are? That I'm going to be as big as a house?" "That we're building something amazing," I corrected gently, kissing her horn. "Together." "Together," she agreed. "Though if Pinkie brings those 'magical light show' cupcakes, I'm teleporting you into the fountain again." "Worth it," I grinned, opening the door to face our waiting family – both blood and chosen. * * * Twilight The library's main room was packed with familiar faces, all trying (and failing) to look innocent. Pinkie had somehow managed to decorate in the time it took us to dress – streamers in suspiciously foal-themed colors hung everywhere, though she'd at least avoided putting up any obviously baby-related banners. Yet. Sara bounded over the moment we appeared, practically vibrating with excitement. "Daddy! Mommy! The guards said there's a surprise! Is it a good surprise? Can I have it now?" Tim knelt down to her level, and I felt my heart swell watching him gather our daughter close. "Actually, princess, we do have some pretty big news. How would you feel about being a big sister?" The room went silent – well, except for Pinkie's barely contained squeal. Sara's eyes went wide. "A baby? Really?" She looked between us, then at my still-flat belly. "When? Where is it? How did it get there?" "Well," Tim started, then caught himself as several of our friends suddenly developed suspicious coughing fits. "That's... a conversation for another time. But yes, you're going to be a big sister. Actually..." He glanced up at me, smiling. "You're going to be a big sister twice over." "TWINS?!" Pinkie finally exploded, confetti cannons appearing from nowhere. "Oh my gosh oh my gosh oh my gosh! Two babies! Double the fun! Double the parties! Double the—" "Double the everything," I finished weakly, though I couldn't help smiling at her enthusiasm. "Including my size, apparently." "Don't worry, darling," Rarity stepped forward, her horn already glowing with measuring magic. "I'll design you the most fabulous maternity wear. Though I must say, last night's magical display makes so much more sense now. Double the foals, double the magical feedback-" "Can we please stop talking about last night?" I felt my face heating again. "Why?" Rainbow Dash grinned. "It was pretty impressive. Almost like your own version of a sonic rainboom, if you know what I mean-" "RAINBOW!" I watched as Tim pulled Rainbow Dash aside, speaking softly but firmly. "Hey, we try to keep those kinds of comments away from Sara, alright? She's still trying to process becoming a big sister – let's not complicate things with adult humor." Rainbow's brash demeanor softened immediately – something I rarely saw. "Geez, I... I wasn't thinking. Sorry, Tim. Won't happen again." He nodded, then addressed my friends more broadly, though still keeping his voice low enough that Sara couldn't hear as she excitedly told Fluttershy about being a big sister. "Look, about last night at the party... I recognize and respect your cultural traditions, but Twilight is more than enough for me. She's carrying our foals, dealing with morning sickness and magical fluctuations, and probably going to start worrying about every little change in her body soon." His expression grew serious. "If you want to help, help her. She's going to need her friends more than ever – not competing for my attention but supporting her through this." The change in their expressions was immediate. Rarity's flirtatious posture shifted to something more genuinely concerned. "Oh darling, of course we'll help! I'll start designing comfortable maternity wear immediately!" "I can help with any morning sickness," Fluttershy offered quietly. "I know some wonderful herbal remedies..." "And I'll make sure she stays active!" Rainbow declared. "Well, you know, appropriately active. For twins." "Plus all the vitamin-rich treats she'll need!" Pinkie bounced. "Oh! And two of everything for the baby shower! Double the presents!" I felt tears welling up – definitely pregnancy hormones – as my friends rallied around me. Tim caught my eye across the room, his expression soft with love and pride. Swift Wing and Rose Petal, still at their posts by the door, exchanged knowing looks. "Our brother's getting pretty good at handling delicate situations," Rose Petal observed quietly. "Almost like he's had practice dealing with mares who get a bit... overenthusiastic," Swift Wing agreed with a small smile. * * * Tim Watching her friends rally around Twilight, I stepped back toward my guard-sisters. "A moment?" Swift Wing and Rose Petal followed me to a quiet corner, their expressions growing serious despite the celebration around us. "You know," I said softly, "when Velvet arranged for you two to be my personal guards, I don't think even she anticipated this situation. Twins are going to complicate everything – security, schedules, protocols..." "Brother," Swift Wing interrupted gently, "are you trying to say you need us?" "More than ever," I admitted. "Twilight's magic is going to be unreliable, she'll need more protection as she gets further along, and I can't be everywhere at once. I need guards I can trust absolutely – not just with my life, but with my family's." Rose Petal's crimson coat darkened with emotion. "We may have started as Velvet's carefully selected seductresses, but we're family now. Those foals are our nieces or nephews." "And we protect family," Swift Wing added firmly. "No matter what." "Even if it means dealing with an increasingly hormonal unicorn wife who might still occasionally get jealous?" I asked with a small smile. "Even then," they chorused, then Rose Petal added with a grin, "Though maybe we'll save the 'tactical demonstrations' for actual combat situations from now on." "And perhaps fewer 'training accidents' involving compromising positions," Swift Wing agreed, her wings shuffling with amusement. "At least until after the foals are born and your wife's magic is more stable." "Thank you," I said sincerely, pulling them both into a hug. "For everything. For being the sisters I never knew I needed." "Just remember that feeling when we spoil our nieces or nephews rotten," Rose Petal teased. "And when we teach them all about their daddy's heroic Timberwolf battle," Swift Wing added. "Though maybe we'll leave out the part about you hiding your own injuries to save me..." "And definitely skip the part about you originally being selected as potential mistresses," I agreed dryly. "Oh no," they grinned in unison. "That's definitely going in the story. How else will they learn about proper cultural appreciation?" Before I could respond, Pinkie's voice cut through the room: "WHO WANTS 'CONGRATULATIONS ON THE MAGICAL TWIN FOALS THAT DEFINITELY WEREN'T CONCEIVED DURING LAST NIGHT'S LIGHT SHOW' CUPCAKES?" "PINKIE!" several voices chorused as Sara looked up curiously. "What? I made them before I knew about the twins! Though I guess that explains why the batter split into two different flavors..." Watching Twilight bury her face in her hooves while our friends alternated between laughter and trying to distract Sara from asking questions, I felt a profound sense of rightness. This was my family – all of it. My wife, our daughter, the twins on the way, my guard-sisters, and all these wonderful, crazy ponies who'd accepted a human into their lives. "You're getting sappy again," Swift Wing observed, nudging me with a wing. "Can't help it," I admitted. "I'm just... happy." "Good," Rose Petal said firmly. "Though you might want to rescue your wife before Pinkie starts planning the 'Magical Light Show: The Sequel' party." As I moved to intervene, I heard Swift Wing mutter to Rose Petal: "Ten bits says the twins end up with their father's talent for getting into trouble." "Twenty says they inherit their mother's magical ability to accidentally blow things up when embarrassed," Rose countered. "You're both wrong," I called back. "They'll clearly take after their aunts' talent for causing chaos while maintaining plausible deniability." Their laughter followed me across the room as I wrapped my arms around Twilight, ready to face whatever came next – together, as a family. Even if that family included guard-sisters who were definitely going to teach our foals all the wrong lessons about "traditional protocols." * * * Author's Note In honor of American Election Day, I vote for Twilight. I write commissions, DM with story ideas. //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 22 - A Matter of Perception //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 22 - A Matter of Perception Twilight "Do I look like the kind of mare that goes to spas?" Swift Wing's wings fluffed up in indignation as she paced my library balcony. "I'm a Royal Guard! Combat trained! Not some... some..." She waved a hoof vaguely, "...pampered noble mare!" I tried not to smile as I shifted position, my growing belly making my usual reading posture uncomfortable. Two weeks of carrying twins had already started showing, though thankfully most ponies just assumed I was getting plump from stress-eating during the Timberwolf crisis. "Tim thought you could use the relaxation," I pointed out, watching her agitated pacing. "After everything that happened with the wolf attack..." "But a spa day?" Swift Wing's midnight-blue coat practically bristled. "With Rose Petal and the others? What am I supposed to do, get my hooves painted? Let some earth pony massage my wings while gossiping about stallions?" "Actually..." I couldn't help the slight smirk, "The wing massage is quite nice. Very... thorough." Swift Wing froze mid-pace, her ears pinning back. "Lady Sparkle! You can't possibly suggest... I mean... with another mare's hooves all over my..." She coughed awkwardly. "It wouldn't be proper!" "Why not? You seemed perfectly comfortable having your marehood in my husband's face during 'training,'" I pointed out dryly. "Though I suppose if you're that desperate to avoid the spa, you could always try to arrange another 'training accident'..." Swift Wing's coat darkened to nearly black as her wings clamped tight against her sides. "Lady Sparkle! You shouldn't even joke about such things! Not unless..." She caught herself, ears pinning back in mortification. "I mean... I would never! I'm committed to being a proper guard and sister now. Your marriage to Tim is sacred to me." "Oh? So you're saying if I wasn't joking about allowing another 'training accident'..." "That's not... I didn't..." Swift Wing looked like she might spontaneously combust. "Please don't tease about such things, my lady. Even if part of me still..." She swallowed hard. "I've accepted my role as Tim's guard-sister. Your trust means everything to me." I softened slightly, though I couldn't quite resist one more prod. "Mmm, I suppose I should stop teasing. Though watching your wings flutter every time Tim gives you an order is rather entertaining..." "LADY SPARKLE!" Swift Wing looked scandalized, though her wings gave another telling flutter. "That's not... I mean, the massage is different! I would never... not with another mare... not while following his orders to..." She stopped, realizing she was only making it worse. "Following his orders to thoroughly enjoy yourself?" I suggested innocently. "Though I have to ask – are you more worried about enjoying the massage, or about having to report back to your 'brother' afterwards about how well you followed his commands?" "I... that's... you..." Swift Wing sputtered, her wings now pressed so tight against her sides they practically vibrated. "He's my brother now! I couldn't possibly think about him while... during..." "Though..." I said thoughtfully, watching Swift Wing's wings flutter with barely contained hope, "I suppose there might be certain... circumstances... where I could understand the appeal of having a loyal guard provide additional support." Swift Wing froze, her ears perking forward despite her attempt to maintain composure. "My lady?" "These twins are already making me so tired," I mused, running a hoof over my slightly swollen belly. "And Tim can be quite... demanding. Especially after combat training. All that adrenaline..." I let my voice trail off suggestively. "Lady Sparkle," Swift Wing's voice cracked slightly, her wings now trembling with barely suppressed excitement. "Are you suggesting..." "I'm not suggesting anything," I said primly, though I couldn't help smirking at her obvious reaction. "I'm simply thinking aloud about potential solutions to future challenges. After all, pregnancy can be quite... draining. And having a loyal sister-in-law who's already demonstrated her willingness to take certain positions..." Swift Wing's coat darkened further, but her wings gave another telling flutter. "Even if... hypothetically... such arrangements were considered... I wouldn't want to overstep..." "Of course not," I agreed sweetly. "You're far too proper for that. Though I notice you're not exactly rejecting the possibility..." I studied her carefully. "Tell me honestly - if I ever did give permission, would you still want him? Even knowing he sees you as a sister now?" "I..." Swift Wing swallowed hard, her professional mask cracking completely. "Lady Sparkle, please don't tease me with impossible dreams. Your trust means everything to me, and I'd never betray that trust without your explicit blessing. But if you're asking honestly..." Her wings shuffled nervously. "Yes. Even as his sister, even knowing it can never happen... yes. Though I'd want your permission first. Real permission, not just pregnancy-induced temporary insanity." I laughed softly. "At least you're honest about it. Though for now, let's focus on getting you that wing massage. After all..." I couldn't resist one final tease, "If you're going to dream about my husband's hands all over you, you might as well practice appropriate reactions with a professional first." "LADY SPARKLE!" Swift Wing looked mortified, her wings clamped so tight they trembled. "I can't believe you'd suggest... that I should... while thinking about..." "Well, you'll have plenty of time to think about whatever you want during your massage," I said sweetly. "Or should I say, whoever you want? After all, you'll be following his direct orders to relax and enjoy yourself..." "I... that's... you..." Swift Wing sputtered, her entire body practically vibrating with conflicted emotions. "He's my brother now! I couldn't possibly..." "Couldn't possibly what?" Tim's voice came from the doorway, making Swift Wing actually jump. "Are you still arguing about the spa day? Because it wasn't a suggestion, soldier. Consider it a direct order." I watched with growing amusement as Swift Wing snapped to attention, though her wings gave another telling flutter. "Sir! I was just explaining to Lady Sparkle that as your personal guard, such... activities... wouldn't be appropriate..." "Activities?" Tim raised an eyebrow. "It's a massage, Swift Wing, not a seduction. Though from your reaction, I'm starting to wonder if I should be concerned about what exactly you think happens at spas..." The look of pure panic on Swift Wing's face was priceless. "No sir! I would never... that is... I'm not..." She shot me a desperate look. "Lady Sparkle, please..." I probably shouldn't have enjoyed her distress quite so much, but after two weeks of pregnancy hormones and watching her perfect athletic form prancing around my husband... "What's wrong, Swift? Worried about getting too... relaxed during your massage? I'm sure Tim would understand. After all, he did order you to enjoy yourself..." "I'm leaving now!" Swift Wing declared, her voice slightly higher than normal. "To... prepare for my... spa appointment. Which will be completely professional and proper!" She practically fled the balcony, her wings still twitching tellingly. Tim watched her go with obvious confusion. "What was that about? I just thought after the wolf attack and all the construction work, they could use some relaxation..." I couldn't help but laugh. "Oh Tim... you really don't know what you just did, do you?" "Apparently not," he said, sitting beside me. "Care to explain why ordering my guard to get a massage sent her into a panic?" I leaned against him, still chuckling. "Well... remember how you told them to be more sisterly? Less seductive?" "Yes..." "And you know how pegasus wings are... sensitive?" "Yes..." His eyes widened slightly. "Oh. OH." "And you just ordered her to let another mare massage those sensitive wings..." Tim groaned, dropping his head into his hands. "Please tell me I didn't just accidentally order my guard-sister to..." "Get thoroughly worked over by a professional masseuse?" I finished sweetly. "While following your direct orders to enjoy herself? Why yes, yes you did." "Twilight!" "What? I'm just saying, those wing massages can be very... stimulating. Not that I'd know personally, being a unicorn and all. Though I'm sure Swift Wing will give you a full report..." The look of horror on Tim's face was almost as good as Swift Wing's had been. "I did NOT need that mental image!" "Too late now," I sang, enjoying his discomfort far too much. "Though I have to wonder – do you think she'll be more embarrassed about enjoying it, or about having to admit to her 'brother' that she did?" "I hate you so much right now," Tim muttered, but I could see him fighting back a smile. "No you don't," I replied cheerfully. "You love me. Even if I am getting as big as a house with your twins." His expression softened immediately. "You're beautiful," he said, pulling me closer. "Though maybe we should talk about something else? Like literally anything other than my guard-sister's potential spa adventures?" "Too late," I grinned wickedly. "Rose Petal just arrived to collect her. Want to go watch Swift Wing try to explain to her fellow guard why she's blushing already?" "You," Tim declared, standing up, "are evil. Pregnancy has made you evil." "Maybe," I admitted. "But you have to admit, it's kind of funny. The big tough guard, terrified of a little wing massage..." "I'm going to check the new defensive perimeter," Tim announced, then paused. "Actually... what are your plans while they're all at the spa?" "I thought I might rest," I said, rubbing my slightly swollen belly. "The twins make me tired these days. Why?" "Well, I was thinking of taking Sara and the guards' fillies to the park," Tim said, his expression softening. "Maple Leaf's eight-year-old and Summer Breeze's little four-year-old have been asking about playing with Sara. Seems like a good opportunity while their mothers are getting pampered." My heart melted a little watching him plan what was essentially a daddy playdate. "Practicing your foal-handling skills?" "Maybe," he admitted with a gentle smile. "Figure I should get some experience managing multiple little ones before these two arrive." His hand rested briefly on my belly. "Besides, the least I can do is foalsit while the mares get some relaxation. They've more than earned it after everything that's happened." "You're going to be an amazing father," I said softly, watching him plan what was essentially a daddy playdate. "The way you are with Sara, and how excited you are about the twins..." "I have good motivation," he replied, kissing my horn. "Speaking of practice with little ones, what do you think about bringing the fillies back here after the park? Give you some experience juggling multiple foals?" "Actually," Tim said, his expression thoughtful, "you should come to the spa with the others. Having their commander's wife there might help them actually relax instead of worrying about abandoning their posts. Besides," his hand found my swollen belly, "you deserve some pampering too. Growing twins isn't exactly easy work." I hesitated for a moment, but the idea of watching Swift Wing navigate her upcoming wing massage was too entertaining to pass up. Between my aching hooves and the prospect of such prime entertainment... "Well, if it's for the good of the guard..." Which is how I found myself at the Ponyville spa an hour later, hiding my smirk as Lotus Blossom approached Swift Wing's trembling wings with practiced hooves. The way my fellow guards pretended not to notice their sister's nervous wing flutters only made it better. Rose Petal was already melting into her massage, her usual professional demeanor softening under Aloe's expert touch. The other guards had scattered throughout the spa's various treatment rooms, though I occasionally heard telling sighs of relaxation echoing through the halls. "Lady Sparkle," Swift Wing asked suddenly, her voice slightly strained as Lotus began working on her right wing, "what exactly is Sir Tim doing while his entire guard detail is... occupied?" "Foalsitting," I replied, enjoying my own hooficure. "He took Sara and the guards' fillies to the park. Said something about needing practice with multiple little ones before the twins arrive." The tension in Swift Wing's shoulders eased slightly, though whether from my answer or Lotus's ministrations was unclear. "That's... surprisingly sweet actually. Though are you sure he'll be okay with three energetic fillies?" "Tim's good with foals," Rose Petal murmured dreamily from her massage table. "Remember how he handled that school group during the defensive wall construction? Had them all playing 'guard training' while we actually got work done..." "True," Swift Wing admitted, then let out a small squeak as Lotus found a particularly sensitive spot. "Though maybe we should... check on them... after this..." "Absolutely not," I said firmly. "Tim ordered you all to relax, remember? Besides," I added with a small smirk, "you seem to be enjoying your wing massage just fine..." Swift Wing's coat darkened with embarrassment, but she couldn't quite suppress a content sigh as Lotus worked out another knot. "I still can't believe he ordered us to... to..." "Get pampered?" Rose Petal suggested innocently. "Though you have to admit, it's kind of nice having a commander who cares about our wellbeing. Most nobles wouldn't even think about..." "Most nobles wouldn't even think about what?" I asked, noticing how Rose Petal had suddenly gone quiet. Maple Leaf's head snapped up from her hooficure, her autumn-brown coat paling visibly. "Sir Tim is alone with my filly? Right now?" Something in her tone made my stomach clench. "Yes, at the park with Sara and Summer Breeze's little one. Why? What's wrong?" The mare was already standing, her half-finished treatment forgotten. "No no no... I can't... I thought she'd be safe here..." Her voice cracked with barely contained panic. "I have to go. Now." "Maple!" Swift Wing tried to rise, but Lotus's hooves on her wings kept her in place. "Lady Sparkle doesn't know about... Tim's not like that! He would never..." "Like what?" I demanded, my heart starting to pound as I watched genuine fear spread across Maple Leaf's face. "What don't I know?" Rose Petal spoke carefully, her professional mask back in place despite her prone position. "My lady... remember how we told Tim we chose Earth duty because it seemed safer? That some nobles..." She swallowed hard. "That they sometimes take advantage of guards with foals?" The implications hit me like a physical blow. "Oh sweet Celestia... you mean they..." "Eight is about the right age," Swift Wing said quietly, her wings trembling under Lotus's now-frozen hooves. "We thought Tim understood when we told him... that's why he's been so careful about maintaining proper distance, being a brother instead of..." But Maple Leaf wasn't listening. Her eyes had gone wild with maternal panic. "My daughter... I have to... I can't let..." Before anypony could stop her, Maple Leaf bolted from the spa, her half-finished hooficure forgotten. I struggled to keep up, my pregnant state making running difficult, while the other guards fell into protective formation around me despite their various states of interrupted pampering. "Maple, wait!" Swift Wing called, her wings still damp from the massage oils. "You don't understand—" But the panicked mother was already galloping toward the park, her autumn-brown coat dark with sweat. We rounded the corner just as she let out a strangled cry— And froze. Tim lay sprawled on his back in the grass, laughing as three fillies used him as their personal jungle gym. Maple's daughter had her flank in the air, tail wagging playfully as she prepared to pounce again, her stick "sword" held carefully in her teeth. "You'll never defeat us!" Sara declared from her perch on Tim's chest. "We're Royal Guards!" "Oh no," Tim gasped dramatically, trying not to laugh as Maple's filly charged and headbutted him back down just as he tried to sit up. "I surrender to your superior tactics!" Summer Breeze's little one pranced around them, her own stick carefully pointed. "Do you yield to the Royal Guard, sir?" "I yield! I yield!" Tim raised his hands in defeat while the fillies giggled. "Truly, I am no match for such skilled warriors. Though," he added with a grin, "your stance needs work. Remember what I showed you about keeping your back hoof planted?" Maple's filly immediately adjusted her position, demonstrating the proper guard stance even while maintaining her playful attack position. "Like this?" "Perfect! You're a natural—" Tim finally spotted us watching and his smile faltered slightly. "Oh! You're back early from the... Maple? Are you okay?" The brown mare swayed on her hooves, tears streaming down her face. But these weren't the terrified tears from earlier. "She's... they're just playing?" "Guard training!" her daughter announced proudly, still in perfect stance despite her wagging tail. "Mr. Tim's teaching us how to protect princesses! Look what I learned!" Maple Leaf stood frozen for a moment longer, watching her daughter demonstrate a perfect defensive stance with her stick sword, completely safe and happy. Something in her seemed to break – not from fear this time, but from relief so profound it brought her to her knees. Tim gently disentangled himself from the playing fillies. "Sara, why don't you show your friends that special guard formation we practiced? The one for protecting VIPs?" Sara immediately took charge, gathering the other fillies. "Okay! Remember, we make a triangle, just like daddy showed us..." As the little ones focused on their "training," Tim approached Maple Leaf carefully. Before he could speak, she launched herself at him, wrapping her forelegs around him in a desperate embrace as tears soaked into his shirt. "I'm sorry," she choked out between sobs. "I thought... when they said you were alone with her... I remembered how other nobles..." "Shhh," Tim's arms encircled her gently, one hand stroking her mane as she wept. "It's okay. She's safe. You're safe. I understand why you were scared, but I swear to you – no one will ever hurt her here. Or you." I watched through my own tears as my husband held the trembling guard, letting her release years of fear and trauma. The other guards moved closer, forming a protective circle around their sister and their commander. Even Swift Wing and Rose Petal, still damp from their spa treatments, stood guard to give Maple this moment of vulnerability. "I keep expecting..." Maple's voice cracked. "Every time a noble shows kindness, there's always a price. Always. But you... you're just... teaching them guard stances?" Tim's laugh was gentle but fierce. "Well, Sara wanted to learn, and what kind of Military Governor would I be if I didn't ensure my guards' foals understood proper defensive techniques? Besides," he added softly, "every filly deserves the chance to chase her dreams without fear." Swift Wing and Rose Petal exchanged knowing looks – they understood the special nature of their brother-sister bond with Tim. But watching him comfort Maple Leaf, they could see why he'd earned the entire squad's unwavering loyalty. He didn't need familial bonds to show respect and kindness. "Your daughter is brilliant, by the way," Tim continued, still holding the trembling mare. "Natural talent for defensive positions. You should be proud." A wobbly smile broke through Maple's tears. "She always wanted to be a Royal Guard, like me. But I was so afraid... after what happened at the last post..." "That's not happening here," Tim said firmly. "Ever. I may not be your brother like I am to Swift Wing and Rose Petal, but you're still under my command. That means your foals are under my protection. All of you deserve to serve without fear." The sound Maple made was somewhere between a laugh and a sob. "Even if it means getting tackled by enthusiastic fillies?" "Especially then," Tim grinned. "Though your daughter's form really is impressive. That last takedown was textbook perfect." Still clinging to Tim, Maple Leaf suddenly pressed her muzzle to his lips in desperate offering. "If you ever want... I'll do anything... just please don't hurt my filly..." Tim pulled back immediately but gently, his expression pained but understanding. "Maple, no. Listen to me very carefully – I have no interest in your daughter. Not now, not ever. She's a child. The only thing I want is for her to grow up safe and strong, chasing her dreams without fear." I felt my magic spark slightly but held it in check, remembering Doctor Stable's warnings about magical surges during pregnancy. Besides, I could see the trauma behind Maple's actions – this wasn't about seduction but desperate maternal protection. "Well," I said, trying to lighten the mood after such an emotional moment, "since we're all being honest about feelings..." I cast a mischievous look around at the assembled guards. "Raise a hoof if you'd still like a 'private training session' with my husband before this foal crisis gets any bigger." "LADY SPARKLE!" Several voices chorused in horror, but I couldn't help noticing how Swift Wing's wings snapped tight against her sides and Rose Petal suddenly found the grass fascinating. "What? We're all friends here," I said innocently. "Just a simple show of hooves. Completely anonymous... though those wing flutters are rather telling, Swift." Tim looked like he wanted the ground to swallow him whole. "Twilight, maybe this isn't the best time..." "Oh, I think it's the perfect time. Nothing like a emotional breakthrough to inspire honesty." I grinned at the mortified guards. "Come on, who's brave enough to admit it? Even Maple here was bold enough to go for a kiss..." "That was different!" Maple protested, her autumn-brown coat darkening. "That was about fear, not... not..." "Not like certain guards who still get wing flutters during training?" I suggested sweetly. The resulting chaos was delightful - Swift Wing actually took flight in embarrassment, Rose Petal tripped over her own hooves trying to back away, and several other guards suddenly remembered urgent duties on the far side of Ponyville. "I hate all of you," Tim muttered, but I caught his slight smile. Sometimes laughter was the best way to heal from heavy moments. "No you don't," I replied cheerfully. "Besides, I notice nopony actually denied wanting that training session..." "Back to foal supervision!" Tim announced loudly, practically fleeing toward the playing fillies. "Very important guard duties! No more discussions about training or feelings or... anything!" "You know," I said to the remaining guards as we watched him retreat, "for a stallion who commands such loyalty, he can be adorably oblivious sometimes." "Lady Sparkle," Swift Wing said with as much dignity as she could muster while her wings still betrayed her embarrassment, "you are an evil, evil mare." "Pregnancy does that," I agreed cheerfully. "Now, shall we return to watching the fillies? Unless anyone wants to finally raise that honest hoof..." The speed with which the guards suddenly remembered their protective duties around the playground was answer enough. From the playground, we heard Sara's voice: "Daddy! Come see! We perfected the triangle formation!" "Duty calls," Tim smiled gently. "Why don't you watch your daughter be a proper guard-in-training? I think you'll be impressed with her stance work." As Tim walked back to the playing fillies, I caught Maple wiping away the last of her tears. "I have a good commander," she whispered, more to herself than anyone else. "A real commander." "Yes," I agreed, watching my husband demonstrate proper sword techniques using a stick. "Yes, you do." * * * Twilight We settled into the soft grass, watching Tim and the fillies play their guard games. The spring breeze carried the scent of wildflowers, and I found myself relaxing as Maple's tension gradually eased beside me. "Left hoof forward!" Sara commanded importantly. "Like daddy showed us!" "Perfect form," Tim praised as all three fillies adjusted their stances. "Now remember, a good guard always keeps their primary hoof ready to—oof!" He dramatically fell back as Summer Breeze's little one caught him with a surprise flank-check. "Ambush tactics!" she declared proudly. "Just like her mother," Summer Breeze murmured, settling into the grass beside us. Her white mane still had traces of the spa's treatment oils. "Always attacking from unexpected angles." Maple managed a small laugh, watching her own daughter execute a perfect defensive spin. "They really are learning proper techniques, aren't they?" "As much as you can teach four and eight-year-olds," Swift Wing confirmed, her wings finally relaxing in the warm sun. "Though I have to admit, his teaching methods are... unconventional." We watched as Tim let himself be "captured" again, the fillies using pieces of grass as makeshift rope to tie him up. "I don't suppose," Rose Petal suggested carefully, "we could finish our spa treatments? The massage table is still waiting..." Maple hesitated, glancing at her playing daughter. "Go," Tim called, somehow having heard despite being 'imprisoned' by three giggling fillies. "That's an order. We've got at least another hour of guard training to complete here." He winked at Maple. "Can't let their combat skills get rusty, right?" "And you're sure...?" Maple started to ask. "We're sure," I assured her, leveraging myself up from the grass with only minor difficulty. "Besides, I never did get to finish my hooficure. These pregnancy-swollen hooves could use the attention." The walk back to the spa was quiet but peaceful, punctuated by the distant sound of playing fillies and Tim's theatrical proclamations of defeat. "Your husband," Maple said softly as we approached the spa, "is a good stallion." "The best," I agreed, then added with a small smile, "Though don't tell him I said that. His ego's big enough already." The spa staff welcomed us back without comment, though I noticed they'd kept our treatment rooms ready. As we settled back into our interrupted pampering, I caught Swift Wing trying not to look too pleased as Lotus approached her wings again. "Not a word," she warned when she caught my knowing smirk. "Not. One. Word." "I didn't say anything," I replied innocently. "Though you seem much more... relaxed... about the wing massage now." "Lady Sparkle!" "What? I'm just following my husband's orders to make sure everyone enjoys themselves..." The sound of Swift Wing's mortified groan mixed with the other guards' laughter, creating a symphony of genuine joy that felt like healing. Sometimes, I reflected as I finally got my hooficure, the best medicine wasn't magic or medicine at all. Sometimes it was just having a commander who understood that strength meant protecting others, not exploiting them. And if that same commander happened to let himself be "captured" by playing fillies while his guards got pampered... Well, that was just Tim being Tim. "Though we should probably warn Lotus about pegasus wing sensitivity," Rose Petal suggested with barely suppressed mirth. "Before Swift Wing melts completely..." "I hate all of you," Swift Wing declared, but her blissful expression as Lotus worked on her wings told a different story. * * * Tim After watching Sara teach the other fillies a particularly complex guard stance she'd invented (which seemed to involve a lot of spinning), I called Maple's daughter over while the others practiced. "Hey, can we talk for a minute? Soldier to soldier?" She trotted over proudly, still holding her stick sword. "Yes sir!" I knelt down to her level, keeping my voice gentle but serious. "I need to ask you something important, and I want you to know you can tell me anything, okay?" Her ears perked forward attentively. "Has any stallion ever... touched you in ways that made you uncomfortable? Or tried to get you alone? Made you keep secrets?" Her eyes widened slightly, but there was no fear in them – only confusion. "No sir. Mommy always keeps me close. Says some nobles are bad stallions, but I've never met one." She tilted her head. "Are you a bad noble, sir?" "No," I said firmly, relief flooding through me at her innocent response. "I'm here to protect you from bad stallions. You, your mom, all of my guards – keeping you safe is my job. My most important job." "Like a Royal Guard!" she said excitedly. "Exactly like that. Which is why I need you to promise me something." I met her eyes seriously. "If anyone ever tries to hurt you, or touches you in ways that feel wrong, or asks you to keep scary secrets – you tell me immediately. I don't care who it is. Noble, guard, anyone. You come straight to me or your mom." "What will you do?" she asked, her stick sword lowering slightly. "I'll protect you. Always. Bad stallions don't get to hurt fillies, not ever. Not while I'm Military Governor." I managed a small smile. "Besides, with those guard moves you're learning, you'll probably take them down before I even get there." She brightened at that. "I'm getting really good at the defensive spin!" "Yes you are. Now, one more thing – this is very important." I waited until I had her full attention. "You're safe here. With me, with your mom, with all of us. No one will ever hurt you like that. I promise." "I know," she said with such simple trust it made my throat tight. "Mommy says you're different. A good noble. That's why she cried earlier – happy tears, she said." "Your mom's a very brave mare," I said softly. "Just like her daughter." "Can I go show Sara my spin move now?" "Absolutely. Go get 'em, soldier." I watched her gallop back to the others, tail streaming behind her, revealing the tender innocence of her fillyhood for a fleeting moment. She was safe, untouched by the shadows that had loomed over her mother’s past. The carefree nature of her movements spoke of trust, an untainted belief in the good intentions of those watching her, including me. The weight of that trust settled heavily on my shoulders. It was only then that I felt the depth of Maple’s earlier panic reverberate through me, more than just a mother’s instinct but a visceral fear rooted in lived experience. It hit me like a blow—how many times had such scenes unfolded under the watchful eyes of those who wielded power, their positions allowing them to twist innocence into something unspeakable? A noble’s word could turn training into a trap, and even unthinkable acts would go unquestioned behind closed doors, cloaked in authority and silence. The thought turned my stomach, leaving me cold with understanding. Maple’s desperate offer of herself made sense now; it wasn’t just protection, it was the act of a mare who had seen exactly what power unchecked could do, who knew how fragile that boundary was. She had learned that sometimes the only way to save what mattered was to step forward as the shield, to be the barrier between innocence and the hungry eyes that would seek to strip it away. And now, as I watched the filly play, carefree and trusting, I understood how that power could be abused, how easily trust could be twisted, and how crucial it was to ensure that such innocence remained untainted. The realization seared into me—a vow unspoken, a promise carved deep. No harm would come to her, not while I was here. Not here. Not ever. I would earn the trust these mares had given me, prove that authority could protect instead of exploit. Their faith in letting their fillies play under my watch would be sacred. "Alright, troops!" I called out as the afternoon sun began to soften. "One last mission before we return to base." Three fillies snapped to attention with varying degrees of wobbly success, Sara managing to look almost serious despite her grin. "Ice cream reconnaissance!" I announced. "Every good guard needs to understand the tactical importance of proper refreshment after training." "Ice cream!" Summer Breeze's little one bounced excitedly. "Can I get sprinkles? For... um... tactical reasons?" "The best guards always get sprinkles," I confirmed solemnly. "Helps with camouflage. Very important for stealth operations." Maple's daughter considered this with adorable seriousness. "What about chocolate sauce? Is that regulation?" "Absolutely essential," I nodded. "For... emergency energy reserves. Can't protect princesses without proper fuel." "Daddy," Sara rolled her eyes in that way only a four-year-old could manage, "you're being silly. Ice cream isn't really for guard stuff." "Oh no?" I raised an eyebrow. "Then how do you explain the fact that the Royal Guard manual specifically mentions..." I made a show of checking my pockets, "...double scoops for exceptional service?" "There's no such thing!" she giggled. "Well, there should be. And as Military Governor, I hereby declare it official policy." I gestured toward the ice cream parlor. "Now then, guards – advance formation to the tactical refreshment station!" They charged forward with delighted squeals, all pretense of military bearing forgotten in the face of promised treats. I followed more sedately, watching them press their muzzles against the display case while debating the relative merits of various flavors. "Chocolate has better coverage potential," Maple's daughter explained seriously to the others. "For... guard things." "But strawberry matches our armor!" Sara countered, clearly taking her role as lead guard-in-training seriously. "Why not both?" Summer Breeze's filly suggested pragmatically. "For... um... tactical diversity!" "Now that's strategic thinking," I praised, stepping up to the counter. "Three double-scoop specials with all the tactical enhancements, please. Extra sprinkles – they've earned it." The server, a young mare who'd clearly seen her share of parents indulging foals, managed to keep a straight face as she prepared their orders. "Will the guards require whipped cream for their mission?" "Standard issue," I confirmed gravely. "Can't have our troops operating without full equipment." Watching them demolish their ice cream with typical foal enthusiasm, I couldn't help but smile. This was what childhood should be – sticky faces, silly giggles, and complete safety to just be young. No fear, no trauma, just three little ones arguing about whether rainbow sprinkles were more tactically advantageous than chocolate ones. "Sir Tim?" Maple's daughter looked up from her rapidly disappearing treat. "Is this really guard training?" "The most important kind," I told her. "Because good guards know how to have fun too. Makes them stronger." "Like mommy at the spa?" "Exactly like that." I handed her another napkin as ice cream dripped down her chin. "Though maybe don't tell her I let you have extra sprinkles. That's classified information." "Guard secret!" she agreed solemnly, then dissolved into giggles as Sara demonstrated proper ice cream cone defensive techniques. * * * Tim The spa's tranquil atmosphere shattered the moment we walked in. Three sugar-charged fillies bounced through the door, practically vibrating with energy as they spotted their mothers. "Mommy! Mommy! We did guard training and ice cream training and Mr. Tim says sprinkles are tactical equipment and I did THREE WHOLE SPINS without falling and—" Summer Breeze emerged from her massage, taking in her daughter's chocolate-stained face and manic energy. "Tim... what exactly did you give them?" "Standard guard rations," I said innocently. "Just, um, with extra tactical enhancements." "He means sprinkles!" Sara announced proudly, practically bouncing off the walls. "LOTS of sprinkles! And whipped cream! For camouflage!" Maple Leaf studied her daughter's rapid-fire prancing. "This isn't a normal sugar rush. Not after all that playing..." "Double scoops might have been involved," I admitted. "And possibly some bonus chocolate sauce. For... emergency energy reserves?" "CHOCOLATE MAKES US STRONGER!" three little voices chorused before dissolving into sugar-fueled giggles. Twilight emerged from her hooficure, raising an eyebrow at the chaos. "I thought you were teaching them guard techniques." "I was! Ice cream cone defensive maneuvers are very important training..." I backed toward the door as several recently-pampered mares fixed me with increasingly unamused looks. "Though perhaps I should have consulted the actual guard manual about proper sprinkle ratios..." "You're going to pay for this," Swift Wing warned, watching the fillies ricochet around the formerly peaceful spa. "They'll be bouncing off the walls for hours." "Which is why I'm implementing a strategic retreat," I grinned. "Emergency withdrawal in the face of superior forces. Very important tactical lesson." "Timothy Talbert!" Twilight called after me. "Don't you dare leave us with—" "Sorry honey! Urgent Military Governor business! Very classified! Can't wait!" The last thing I heard as I fled was Rose Petal's resigned sigh: "And this is the stallion we trust to command our forces..." "Best! Commander! Ever!" Maple's daughter declared between sugar-fueled spins. I might pay for this later, but seeing those fillies just being happy, carefree foals? Worth every sprinkle. * * * Twilight "And then Daddy said guard towers are like ice cream cones but BIGGER and we need to protect them from bad guys trying to steal the sprinkles and—" I watched my husband's hasty retreat as Sara continued her sugar-fueled explanation of tactical ice cream deployment strategies. The spa's peaceful atmosphere had been thoroughly shattered, replaced by the chaos of three fillies demonstrating their new "guard techniques" at approximately triple normal speed. "Did he really let them have double scoops?" Summer Breeze asked weakly as her daughter executed a series of increasingly wobbly spins. "With tactical enhancement sprinkles!" her filly confirmed, bouncing past. "AND whipped cream camouflage!" Maple Leaf was fighting back laughter as her daughter explained the strategic importance of chocolate sauce positioning to an increasingly bemused Lotus Blossom. The earlier tension had completely melted away, replaced by the simple joy of watching her filly just being a filly. "I have to admit," Swift Wing muttered, her wings still relaxed from her massage, "he knows what he's doing. Even if his methods are... unconventional." "Unconventional?" Rose Petal snorted. "He turned guard training into an ice cream mission briefing." "A successful mission," I pointed out, watching Sara attempt to teach the others something she called the 'Triple Scoop Defense Maneuver.' "Look at them – happy, safe, completely unconcerned about anything except whether rainbow sprinkles are superior to chocolate ones." "That's because rainbow sprinkles provide better tactical coverage!" Maple's daughter insisted, her earlier military bearing somewhat undermined by the ice cream stains on her coat. "Nuh-uh!" Sara countered. "Chocolate ones are better camouflage for night operations!" "Actually," Summer Breeze's little one interjected seriously, "we should use BOTH. Sir Tim says... says... tactitical diversity is important!" "Tactical," I corrected automatically, then caught myself. "Though I suppose that's technically accurate, even if he was talking about ice cream strategy..." The other guards exchanged knowing looks as their fillies continued their enthusiastic debate about proper sprinkle deployment protocols. Whatever fears Maple had harbored earlier had been thoroughly buried under the simple reality of Tim being... well, Tim. "We should probably get them home," Summer Breeze suggested. "Before the sugar rush hits full force." "Too late," Swift Wing observed as the fillies started their fourteenth demonstration of "emergency ice cream evasion techniques." I levitated my saddlebags, already planning how to handle my own sugar-charged daughter. "Though we might want to discuss appropriate consequences for a certain Military Governor who thought extra sprinkles were standard guard equipment..." "He's probably halfway to Canterlot by now," Rose Petal smirked. "Strategic retreat and all that." "Oh no," I smiled sweetly, my horn sparking with just a hint of magic. "He has to come home eventually. And when he does..." "FOUNTAIN!" Sara announced cheerfully, recognizing my expression. "Daddy's gonna get dunked in the fountain again!" "Smart filly," I praised. "Though this time, maybe we'll add some tactical sprinkles first..." * * * Twilight Tim finally slunk home well after sunset, trying to sneak in through the back door like he hadn't spent all afternoon evading responsibility for three sugar-charged fillies. I was waiting in our bedroom, pretending to read while actually counting down his inevitable appearance. "So," I said mildly as he tried to casually stroll in, "tactical sprinkles?" He froze mid-step. "In my defense, every filly deserves ice cream after proper guard training..." "Lotus Blossom had to close the spa early," I informed him. "Something about sugar-fueled fillies attempting to demonstrate 'emergency ice cream evasion techniques' in the massage room." "Ah." He rubbed the back of his neck. "I suppose this would be a bad time to mention I might have also taught them the 'Double Scoop Defense Roll'..." "Tim!" "What? It's an important maneuver! Besides," his expression softened, "did you see Maple's daughter? Actually playing, actually happy, without any fear? That's worth all the sprinkles in Equestria." My mock annoyance melted. "You did that on purpose, didn't you? The silly guard games, the ice cream tactics..." "She needed to feel safe," he said quietly, sitting beside me on the bed. "They all did. Sometimes the best way to handle trauma is to replace it with better memories. Though," he added with a slight grin, "I might have miscalculated the proper sprinkle-to-filly ratio..." "Might have?" I raised an eyebrow. "Sara was still bouncing off the walls an hour ago. She tried to explain the tactical significance of whipped cream deployment patterns to Spike." "Did she remember the part about proper cherry positioning? That's crucial for advanced ice cream operations—" I swatted him with my tail. "You're impossible." "You love me anyway." "Somehow," I agreed, snuggling against him. "Though I have to admit – seeing Maple Leaf actually relaxed, actually laughing at her daughter's sugar-charged antics... you did good, Tim. Really good." He wrapped an arm around me, his hand finding its way to my swollen belly. "Just doing my job. Making sure my guards and their families feel safe." He paused. "Though maybe next time I'll stick to single scoops. Pretty sure Summer Breeze's little one was vibrating at subsonic frequencies by the end..." "Next time?" "Well, they did graduate from basic ice cream tactical training. Clearly they need advanced courses in proper sundae strategy..." "Tim!" His laughter was warm and genuine. "Okay, okay! No more tactical sprinkles. Though I make no promises about whipped cream maneuvers. That's essential guard training equipment." I groaned, but couldn't help smiling. "You're going to turn the entire next generation of Royal Guards into ice cream tacticians, aren't you?" "Hey, happy fillies make better guards," he said seriously. "Besides, can you think of a better way to ensure they feel safe than making guard training into something fun?" Looking up at my husband – this wonderful, impossible stallion who could turn a traumatized guard's fears into an afternoon of silly ice cream adventures – I felt my heart swell with love. "No," I admitted softly. "I really can't." Tim's expression grew serious. "About earlier, with Maple Leaf..." He shifted uncomfortably. "I should have immediately apologized about the kiss. I know how it must have looked—" "Stop," I pressed a hoof to his lips. "I saw what it was – a traumatized mother acting from fear, not desire. And I saw how you handled it." "You're not angry?" "At Maple? No. At the nobles who hurt her so badly she thought she had to offer herself to protect her daughter? Absolutely." I settled more firmly against him. "But you... you made it better. Not just by rejecting her advance, but by showing her daughter what a real noble should be." He stroked my mane gently. "I just treated her like any filly deserves to be treated. Safe. Protected. Free to just be a kid." "Exactly." I nuzzled his chest. "That's why I'm proud of you. You didn't just say no to Maple – you showed her why she never needed to offer in the first place. Turned her fear into an afternoon of ice cream and giggles." "Even if I did overdo it with the sprinkles?" "Even then," I laughed softly. "Though I'm pretty sure Summer Breeze is still trying to get her filly down from the ceiling..." "Worth it," he said firmly. "Seeing them all just... playing. No fear, no trauma, just three little ones arguing about proper tactical sundae construction." "You're going to be an amazing father," I said, guiding his hand to where our twins were starting to make their presence known. "Our foals are lucky to have you." "I just want every filly to feel that safe," he admitted quietly. "To never know the kind of fear Maple's daughter could have faced. Even if it means occasionally overdosing them on sprinkles." "Just... maybe warn the spa staff next time? I think Lotus is still finding whipped cream in strange places..." His quiet laughter rumbled through his chest. "No promises. Proper guard training requires extensive ice cream tactical studies." "You're impossible," I said fondly. "But I'm yours." "Yes," I agreed, feeling our twins shift beneath his touch. "Yes you are." And if my husband occasionally needed to deploy tactical ice cream operations to help heal old wounds... well, that was just Tim being Tim. Even if we did need to establish proper sprinkle protocols for future guard training sessions. * * * Maple Leaf After finally getting my sugar-crashed filly tucked into bed, I found Swift Wing and Rose Petal waiting in my small kitchen. They'd known I'd need this – this moment to process everything that had happened today. "She's still smiling in her sleep," I said softly, accepting the tea Rose pushed toward me. "I haven't seen her smile like that since... since before..." "Before the last posting," Swift Wing finished gently. "Before you learned what some nobles really wanted from guard mares with young fillies." My hooves trembled around the teacup. "I panicked when I heard he was alone with her. All I could think about was Lord Bronze Star, how he said my eight-year-old had 'such promising form' during junior guard training. How he suggested private lessons..." "We remember," Rose Petal's voice carried old pain. "That's why we all requested Earth duty. Why we told Tim about... about what some nobles do." "I kissed him," I whispered, shame burning through me. "Offered myself like... like I was still at that post, still trying to protect her the only way I knew how." "And he turned you down," Swift Wing said firmly. "Not just turned you down – he showed you why he never wanted that kind of offer in the first place." "With ice cream and guard games," I managed a weak laugh that was almost a sob. "He taught my daughter proper defensive stances using stick swords and tactical sprinkles." "That's who he is," Rose said softly. "Why we chose to be his sisters instead of what Lady Velvet planned. He doesn't want offerings or submission. He just wants us all safe." "I keep waiting for the other horseshoe to drop," I admitted. "For him to change, to show his true colors. But then I see my little one demonstrating her 'Triple Scoop Defense Roll' and..." Fresh tears spilled down my cheeks. "She's never been so free. So unafraid." Swift Wing's wing wrapped around my shoulders. "That's what real nobility looks like, Maple. Not Lord Bronze Star with his 'private lessons.' Not any of the others who..." She swallowed hard. "Tim's showing us what we should have had all along. What our foals deserve." "He let them tackle him," I said wonderingly. "Let them 'capture' him with grass ropes. Taught them silly ice cream tactics just to make them laugh. And not once... not once did he..." "Not once did he make them feel anything but safe," Rose finished. "Because that's what foals deserve. What we all deserve." "I didn't think stallions like him existed," I whispered. "Nobles who actually protect instead of... instead of..." "We know," they chorused softly, and I knew they did. We all carried those scars, those memories of nobles who saw our foals as leverage, as targets. "But now my daughter's biggest worry is whether rainbow sprinkles are tactically superior to chocolate ones," I managed through tears. "She's... she's just getting to be a filly. A normal, happy filly." "With a commander who will burn Equestria to the ground before letting anyone hurt her," Swift Wing added firmly. "Or deploy an entire arsenal of tactical ice cream," Rose said with a small smile. "Though maybe with fewer sprinkles next time." I laughed despite my tears. "She was practically vibrating by the time we got home." "Worth it though," Swift Wing said gently. "Seeing her that happy, that free..." "Worth everything," I agreed softly, remembering my daughter's joy as she demonstrated her 'guard training' to an increasingly sugar-charged audience. "He's really going to let her just... be a filly, isn't he? No price, no conditions, just..." "Just protection," Rose confirmed. "Real protection. The kind we always deserved." I stared into my cooling tea, feeling decades of fear finally start to loosen their grip. "Thank you," I whispered, not sure if I was thanking my fellow guards or Tim or maybe just the universe for finally showing me what real nobility looked like. "For what?" Swift Wing asked. "For helping me believe again," I said simply. "In good stallions. In real protection. In a world where my daughter can play guard games without fear." "You know," Rose Petal said carefully, refilling my tea, "we'll be returning to Earth soon. Once the embassy reopens..." "Earth?" I blinked, trying to imagine it. "With the humans?" "Tim's not the only good human stallion," Swift Wing added thoughtfully. "Different, yes, but... they seem to have stronger laws about protecting foals. Better enforcement too." I felt my ears warm slightly. "Are you suggesting I should... date a human?" "Why not?" Rose shrugged. "They might not all be Tim, but from what we've seen, they have stricter views about proper behavior with foals. Even their criminals fear being labeled a foal-predator." "And your daughter would be safer," Swift Wing pointed out gently. "Earth has entire organizations dedicated to protecting young ones. Tim says they take it very seriously." I stared into my tea, considering it. "A world where my filly could truly be safe... where I could maybe find someone who..." I couldn't finish the thought. "Someone who would love both of you properly," Rose completed softly. "No power games, no threats, just... normal courtship." "Though maybe avoid the ones Tim works with directly," Swift Wing added with a small smile. "Lady Sparkle's pregnancy hormones are unpredictable enough without adding dating drama." That startled a laugh from me. "Could you imagine? 'Sorry Lady Sparkle, I'm just borrowing one of your husband's human colleagues for coffee...'" "Better than borrowing the actual Tim," Rose teased gently, and I felt my cheeks heat remembering my panicked kiss. "I still can't believe I did that," I groaned. "In front of Lady Sparkle no less!" "She understood," Swift Wing assured me. "She saw what it was – fear, not attraction." "Still," I managed a weak smile, "maybe I should stick to humans who aren't already married to pregnant unicorns." "Probably wise," Rose agreed. "Though... the idea has merit, doesn't it? Starting fresh on Earth? Where nobles don't have the same power over guards?" I thought about it – really thought about it. A world where my daughter could grow up without fear. Where I might find someone who would love us both without ulterior motives. "It's scary," I admitted. "The thought of trusting again. Of letting someone close to her..." "Then start slow," Swift Wing suggested. "Let yourself heal first. Just... keep your mind open to the possibility." "Besides," Rose added with a grin, "Tim will probably insist on interviewing any potential suitors. Complete background checks, tactical ice cream evaluation..." "Can you imagine?" I found myself giggling despite everything. "'Sorry sir, you failed the sprinkle deployment test. Clearly not qualified to date my guards...'" "He would too," Swift Wing snorted. "Probably make them demonstrate proper sundae construction techniques." As we laughed together, I felt something unfamiliar bloom in my chest. It took me a moment to recognize it. Hope. "Maybe," I said softly. "Once we're back on Earth. Once I'm sure she's really safe..." "She is safe," Rose said firmly. "And so are you. Time to start believing in good things again." "Starting with tactical ice cream?" I suggested with a watery smile. "Starting with tactical ice cream," they agreed. * * * Swift Wing Rose and I bid Maple goodnight, both relieved to see her more at peace than she'd been in years. The walk back to our shared barracks room was quiet, each of us lost in thought about the day's events. "So," Rose said as we settled into our bunks, "you going to take your own advice about finding a human stallion?" "No." I kept my voice carefully neutral as I preened my wings, trying not to think about how they'd betrayed me during Twilight's teasing earlier. "I'm still waiting." Rose propped herself up on one elbow. "Even after today? Swift, she practically gave you permission to admit you still want him. That 'raise your hoof' game wasn't subtle." "Maybe." I stared at the ceiling, remembering not just Tim's gentle rejection of Maple, but Twilight's knowing smirks at my wing flutters, her suggestive hints about "future challenges" that might need solutions. Part of me wanted to tell Rose about that morning's conversation, about Twilight's comments regarding pregnancy exhaustion and "additional support," but it felt too private, too uncertain. "You saw how she watches him when he does things like today. Not just proud, but... wondering. Testing the waters, maybe. Like she's starting to understand why Lady Velvet arranged everything the way she did." "Swift..." "I know, I know. He's our brother now. But you saw him with those fillies today. The way he protected them, made them feel safe..." I sighed softly. "And you noticed how Twilight didn't seem angry about my wing flutters. She was... amused. Almost encouraging." I kept the rest to myself - her specific questions about whether I'd still want him, her hints about "certain circumstances." "That's called teasing, Swift," Rose said gently. "She knows she has him completely. That's why she can joke about it." "But what if it's not just jokes?" I rolled over to face her. "What if she's testing reactions, seeing how we'd all respond to... traditional arrangements?" Rose's expression softened with understanding. "Just... don't read too much into playful teasing. There are other good stallions out there." "But none who understand duty and desire the way he does," I whispered, turning to face the wall. The memory of Twilight's knowing smirk when my wings betrayed me played behind my closed eyes. Tomorrow I would be the perfect guard-sister again, but tonight... tonight I could admit that some dreams refused to die, especially when his wife seemed determined to keep them alive. The silence between Rose and me held years of shared understanding. We'd found something real here - family, trust, purpose. If that was all it ever became... well, there were worse fates than being sister to a stallion worth waiting for. * * * Rose Petal I watched Swift Wing roll over, effectively ending our conversation, but her words echoed in my head. She wasn't the only one who'd noticed Twilight's playful probing today, wasn't the only one still waiting, still hoping, still dreaming of 'what if.' My crimson coat hid the flush I felt creeping through me. I should tell her I understood, that I'd seen it too – how Twilight seemed almost eager to expose our lingering feelings, test our reactions. That every time Tim showed another facet of his gentle strength – like today with the fillies – it made the 'brother' title harder to accept, and Twilight's teasing made it even more confusing. But I kept silent, letting Swift think she was alone in analyzing Twilight's intentions. It was better that way. Safer. We were supposed to be sisters now, not... whatever Twilight seemed to be hinting we could still become. Still, watching him today, seeing how he turned Maple's fear into an afternoon of joy and ice cream... Sweet Celestia, Lady Velvet had known exactly what she was doing when she selected us. She'd seen this potential, this capacity for both strength and tenderness. And now it seemed Twilight might be seeing it too, testing the waters with her playful demands for honest hooves. I shifted in my bunk, trying to quiet my thoughts. Swift's gentle wing rustling told me she was still awake too, probably replaying Twilight's knowing smirks and deliberate provocations in her mind. We're his sisters now, I reminded myself firmly. Twilight's pregnancy hormones are probably just making her playful. That's better than what most guards get. Be grateful. In the darkness of our shared room, I listened to Swift's wing rustling and thought of different kinds of strength. Tim had shown one kind today - turning Maple's fear into joy. Twilight had displayed another - the confidence to tease about desires most wives would fear. And we guards demonstrated our own strength - loving him enough to accept the roles he needed us to play. My crimson coat hid more than just blushes; it hid the understanding that sometimes the deepest loyalty meant waiting in silence. Swift could wear her heart in her wings. I would wear mine in quiet service, watching Twilight's knowing looks and wondering if she saw more than she let on. But that was tomorrow's challenge. Tonight, I could simply be grateful for a commander who made waiting worthwhile, even if the wait never ended. * * * Celestia I set down the latest report from Ponyville with quiet satisfaction. The defensive upgrades had been completed ahead of schedule, and Tim's leadership during the Timberwolf crisis had proven exemplary. His handling of both the immediate threat and the subsequent fortification efforts showed exactly the kind of decisive action and careful planning I'd hoped for in Earth's first Military Governor. "The reports are quite favorable," Night Light observed from his position near my study window. As Twilight's father and my trusted advisor, he'd been following the situation closely. "Indeed." I smiled, thinking of Velvet's more... personal reports about Tim's interactions with his guards. "Your son-in-law has exceeded expectations in every way. Though I find it interesting that I've yet to meet him in person." Night Light's ears perked. "Are you suggesting a formal invitation to Canterlot?" "Perhaps." I kept my tone casual, though we both knew there was nothing casual about royal invitations. "The defenses are complete, the immediate crisis has passed... it seems an appropriate time to properly meet the stallion who's captured not only your daughter's heart, but the loyalty of twelve of my best guards." "Velvet mentioned he's taken a rather... unique approach to the guard arrangements you approved," Night Light said carefully. I couldn't quite suppress my amusement. "Yes, I heard about his 'sister' solution. Quite clever, really. Though I suspect certain guards might be hoping that arrangement isn't entirely permanent..." "Celestia!" Night Light looked scandalized. "That's my daughter's husband you're speculating about!" "I'm merely observing," I said innocently. "Though I must say, any stallion who can turn a potential diplomatic incident into an afternoon of ice cream and guard games with frightened fillies... Well, perhaps Velvet's original plans weren't entirely misguided." "Please don't encourage her," Night Light groaned. "She's already planning some sort of noble matchmaking service for Sara." "Is she now?" I raised an eyebrow. "How... innovative of her." "Celestia, no." "I didn't say anything," I protested mildly. "Though perhaps a formal dinner would be appropriate? Nothing too elaborate – just family, a few key nobles, maybe those particularly loyal guards..." Night Light's expression suggested he knew exactly what I was planning. "You're as bad as Velvet sometimes." "I simply think it's time I met this remarkable human who's managed to navigate Equestrian nobility with such... creative solutions." I levitated a fresh scroll. "Besides, I should probably warn him about certain noble families who might take an interest in his command style." "Or certain Princesses who enjoy meddling almost as much as my wife?" "Night Light," I said with perfect royal dignity, "I never meddle. I merely... arrange opportunities." "Right," he muttered. "Should I warn Twilight you're planning to 'arrange opportunities' for her husband?" "Oh no," I smiled serenely as I began drafting the invitation. "I think it will be much more entertaining to let them discover that for themselves. Though perhaps mention the dinner will be completely traditional. Formal attire, proper protocols..." "Traditional?" Night Light's eyes widened slightly. "You wouldn't..." "Would I what?" I asked innocently. "I'm simply planning a proper royal welcome for Earth's first Military Governor. The fact that certain... traditional arrangements might be discussed is purely coincidental." "Velvet's corrupted you," he accused, but I caught his slight smile. "Perhaps. Maybe I corrupted her…" I sealed the invitation with my royal mark. "Or perhaps I'm just curious to meet the stallion who turned your wife's carefully selected seductresses into honorary sisters. While somehow making both arrangements work." Night Light studied Celestia's expression as she sealed the dinner invitation. "You never did explain why you allow these... traditional arrangements to continue. Especially given how some nobles abuse their power." Celestia's serene smile faded slightly. "Do you know how many attempted coups I've prevented simply by allowing nobles their... distractions? When stallions are focused on pursuing guards and maintaining their harems, they spend less time plotting revolution." "That's rather cynical, even for you," Night Light observed. "Perhaps." Celestia's gaze grew distant. "But I learned long ago that trying to legislate morality often leads to worse outcomes. When I first took the throne, I tried banning such arrangements entirely. Do you know what happened?" Night Light's ears flattened. "I can guess..." "The nobles simply took what they wanted anyway, with far more violence and far less restraint. At least this way, there are protocols. Rules of engagement, if you will. Guards can volunteer for noble service knowing what to expect, rather than being taken by force." "Like Tim's guards?" Night Light's tone carried a hint of challenge. "Exactly like Tim's guards," Celestia confirmed. "Velvet may seem... enthusiastic in her matchmaking, but she actually chose guards who were desperately seeking safer postings. Earth duty, even with certain traditional expectations, was preferable to their previous assignments." "That doesn't make it right." "No, it doesn't." Celestia's voice hardened. "But it gives me leverage. Nobles who follow the protocols, who treat their guards with at least nominal respect, maintain my favor. Those who don't..." Her smile turned dangerous. "Well, accidents do happen, especially during training exercises." Night Light's eyes widened. "You mean..." "I mean that certain particularly abusive nobles have discovered that their guards' combat skills sometimes exceed expectations. Fatally so." Celestia's expression remained carefully neutral. "Though of course, such incidents are thoroughly investigated and always ruled accidental." "And Tim? Why approve Velvet's specific selections for him?" "Because he's different," Celestia said simply. "He's showing our nobles a better way - treating guards with genuine respect while maintaining proper authority. The fact that he turned Velvet's carefully selected seductresses into honorary sisters? That sends a powerful message." "About more than just guard arrangements, I'm guessing." "Indeed." Celestia's smile returned. "Change comes slowly to Equestria, Night Light. Sometimes the best way to reform a system is to work within it, showing better alternatives rather than forcing compliance." "Though I notice you still approved particularly attractive guards for his detail," Night Light observed dryly. "Of course." Celestia's eyes sparkled with amusement. "Just because I approve of his methods doesn't mean I can't enjoy watching him navigate Velvet's schemes. After all, what's the point of being Princess if you can't occasionally complicate things? For diplomatic purposes, naturally." "Should I be worried about your interest in my son-in-law?" "Not at all," I assured him, though my smile held centuries of carefully calculated matchmaking. "I simply want to observe this remarkable human in his natural environment. A stallion who can turn tradition on its head while maintaining authority... that's worth studying. Especially given how he's handling those traditional arrangements I approved." "Celestia!" "What?" I blinked with practiced innocence. "I'm just planning a nice, traditional, family dinner. Nothing more. Though I must say, watching him transform potential seductresses into loyal sisters is... refreshingly innovative. Most nobles would have simply taken advantage of the situation." "And that has nothing to do with why you approved Velvet's guard selections?" "Can't I simply appreciate a commander who found a better solution than centuries of noble privilege?" I sealed another note. "Though speaking of proper noble protocols, we should probably formalize young Sara's position. As the adopted daughter of a Countess and the biological daughter of a Military Governor..." Night Light's ears perked with interest, though his expression remained wary. "The title of Viscountess would be appropriate. A junior noble title, but one that acknowledges both her parents' positions." "Precisely." I added the note to the invitation. "Viscountess Sara... it has a nice ring to it. And it would give her proper standing among the noble fillies her age. Perhaps she'll help establish new traditions, just like her father." "Velvet will be delighted," Night Light sighed. "She's already planning Sara's future social calendar." "As she should. A young Viscountess needs proper noble connections." I sealed the invitation with a flourish. "Though I suspect Tim's approach to noble education might be somewhat... unconventional. After all, any stallion who can turn guard seduction into family bonds might have equally innovative ideas about other traditions." "You mean like teaching guard tactics through ice cream deployment?" "Creative problem solving is an important noble skill," I said serenely. "Though perhaps we should warn the castle kitchens about having tactical sprinkles available. Wouldn't want to disappoint our newest Viscountess." Night Light just shook his head, but I caught his proud smile. His granddaughter, a proper Viscountess... The idea seemed to please him despite his protests about traditional arrangements. Perhaps Tim wasn't the only one learning to balance old customs with new possibilities. Though I had to admit, watching Tim navigate traditional noble protocols while trying to maintain his "sister" arrangements with the guards... that promised to be particularly entertaining. Especially once those same guards realized their new "brother" was about to be formally presented at court. After all, what was the fun of being Princess if you couldn't occasionally complicate things? * * * //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 23 - For Our Daughters... //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 23 - For Our Daughters... Twilight The royal scroll appeared in a flash of golden magic, materializing above my morning tea with Celestia's characteristic perfect timing - meaning, of course, the worst possible moment. I was already fighting morning sickness, the twins seemed determined to practice synchronized somersaults, and Tim had just left for his morning patrol with Swift Wing and Rose Petal. "Please just be routine correspondence," I muttered, levitating the scroll with slightly shaky magic. "Nothing complicated, nothing formal, nothing-" The royal seal broke with a crack that seemed to echo my growing dread. As I read, my horn's glow flickered dangerously. "No no no..." The teacup rattled in its saucer as my magic fluctuated. "She can't possibly expect... not now... not with-" "Mommy?" Sara looked up from her breakfast, concern creasing her small face. "Is it bad news? Your horn is doing the scary sparking thing again." I forced my magic to steady, though the words on the scroll seemed to mock my attempts at calm: To Our Esteemed Ambassador and Countess Twilight Sparkle, Sir Timothy Talbert, Military Governor of Ponyville, and Family: Your presence is formally requested at a Traditional Royal Dinner to be held three days hence in the Grand Dining Hall of Canterlot Castle... Traditional. The word seemed to pulse on the page, carrying layers of meaning that made my already unsettled stomach lurch. Not just any dinner - a Traditional one. With all the protocols, expectations, and... arrangements that implied. You are invited to bring an honor guard of six members from your personal detail... My hoof pressed against my slightly swollen belly as I imagined Tim trying to navigate traditional Canterlot dining protocols with six of his carefully-selected guards in attendance. Six guards chosen by my mother, trained in "traditional arrangements," now supposedly his "sisters"... "Oh sweet Celestia," I groaned, finally spotting the postscript in Celestia's personal hoofwriting: P.S. - Do bring young Sara. Certain noble families are quite eager to establish... proper connections for one of her breeding... The teacup didn't just shatter - it exploded, porcelain shards embedding in the walls as my magic surged wildly. The smell of ozone filled the air as sparks crackled around my horn. "That's it," I announced to nopony in particular, my voice shaking with barely contained fury, "I'm going to murder her. Princess or not, I'm going to-" My hoof pressed protectively against my swollen belly as nausea hit from both pregnancy and horror. A knock at the door interrupted my plotting of royal regicide. "Lady Sparkle?" Captain Dawn Star's voice carried more than a hint of concern. "We felt your magical surge from the barracks. Is everything alright?" I looked at the crater where my teacup had been, then at Sara's worried face as she huddled behind her chair, then back at the scroll with its deceptively innocent golden seal. My daughter. My four-year-old daughter. They were already- "Captain," I called with forced calm that cost me dearly, "please fetch my husband. And... perhaps somepony should warn the spa. I suspect we're all going to need some serious relaxation before this dinner." Or a body disposal team, I didn't add. "Dinner?" Sara perked up, creeping out from behind her chair. "Are we having a party?" I stared at the scroll, remembering past Canterlot functions with their elaborate protocols and carefully arranged seating charts. Remembering exactly why certain noble families always seemed to have particularly attractive guards stationed near them during meals... and now they wanted to discuss my baby's "breeding"? "Not exactly, sweetie," I managed through clenched teeth. "Though I suspect your grandmother is involved somehow..." The scroll sparkled innocently in the morning light, but I knew better. Celestia never did anything without multiple layers of purpose. And a Traditional Royal Dinner with my human husband, our soon-to-be-noble daughter, and six of his "sister" guards? This was either going to be a diplomatic disaster or the setup to one of mother's romance novels. Knowing my luck, probably both. Though at this rate, it might just be a massacre. * * * Twilight Tim arrived minutes later, still in his patrol gear, with Swift Wing and Rose Petal flanking him. "What's wrong?" His eyes immediately went to the shattered teacup, then to my agitated state. "The twins?" "Worse," I levitated the scroll to him. "Celestia's summoned us to Canterlot. For a Traditional Royal Dinner." He scanned the invitation quickly, his jaw tightening at the request for six guards. Then his entire body went rigid as he reached the postscript. The temperature in the room seemed to drop. "They want to discuss our four-year-old daughter's... breeding?" His voice was deadly quiet. The kind of quiet that preceded violence. "Tim," I cut him off before he could explode, pointing a hoof at the word 'Traditional' with its telltale capitalization. "There's more. In Canterlot, that means... certain expectations. Including," I swallowed hard, watching Swift Wing and Rose Petal exchange uncomfortable glances, "proper ceremonial guard attire." "You mean..." His expression darkened further, if possible. "The old armor," I confirmed. "The decorative kind. Not real protection - just metal that's designed to be... accessible." "No." Tim's voice carried the same steel I'd heard when he faced down the Timberwolf. "Absolutely not. First they eye our daughter like a prized mare, now they want to parade my guards around like offerings? Over my dead body." Swift Wing shifted uncomfortably. "Sir, in Canterlot, traditional protocols-" "Are going to die. Violently." Tim cut her off, his hand already resting on his sword hilt. "I don't care what's expected. You're soldiers, not ornaments, and Sara is a child, not a breeding prospect. If Celestia wants us at dinner, fine. But my guards wear real armor, and any noble who so much as looks at my daughter wrong won't live to regret it." "It's not that simple," I said softly, watching Rose Petal's crimson coat darken with remembered discomfort. "Traditional dinners have... arrangements. Seating charts designed to put certain guards near certain nobles. The decorative armor is part of those arrangements." "Then we change the arrangements." Tim's jaw set in a way I recognized – the face of man with no fucks to give. "I won't have my sisters put on display like that, and I won't have nobles discussing our daughter's 'breeding' like she's livestock. Not even for Celestia." The words hung in the air, carrying weight beyond mere uniform preferences. Swift Wing's wings twitched slightly, while Rose Petal stood straighter, both guards radiating a mix of pride and uncertainty. "Our guards are ours," Tim continued, his voice carrying that dangerous edge I'd learned to recognize. "Our daughter is ours. To protect. To defend. And if any noble thinks they can treat either like property..." I sighed, feeling the weight of centuries of tradition pressing against my husband's protective fury. "And how will you stop it?" The look Tim gave me could have melted an icecap. "Simple..." his hand went to the sword at his hip, the same blade that had severed the Timberwolf's head. "A duel... to the death. Let's see how many nobles will risk it." Swift Wing's wings snapped tight against her sides while Rose Petal's crimson coat paled visibly. The idea of their brother-commander fighting to the death to protect both them and his daughter seemed to strike some deep chord in both guards. "Tim-" I started, but he cut me off. "No, Twilight. I mean it. Any noble who thinks they can just help themselves to my guards or discuss my daughter's 'breeding' better be prepared to back that claim with steel." His voice dropped to that deadly quiet I remembered from the Timberwolf attack. "They want traditional? Fine. Trial by combat is about as traditional as it gets." The scary part was, I knew he meant every word. The same stallion who'd nearly died protecting Swift Wing would absolutely fight any noble who tried to claim "traditional rights" to his guards or tried to arrange his daughter's future without his consent. And based on the looks of fierce pride now radiating from both guards, they knew it too. Celestia's dinner wasn't just going to be interesting - it was going to be lethal. * * * Tim Rarity had outdone herself with our formal attire. My dress uniform combined Earth military styling with Equestrian flourishes - midnight blue with gold trim that somehow complemented both Twilight's gown and our guards' proper combat armor. She'd even managed to work in subtle protective enchantments, though she'd been suspiciously vague about where she'd learned such spells. Sara practically vibrated with excitement in her miniature formal dress, designed to mirror both my uniform and her "fellow guard-in-training's" armor. Maple Leaf's daughter stood proudly in her specially-sized combat gear, taking her role as Sara's personal guard very seriously. The two fillies had been inseparable since I'd started their "tactical training," and having her friend along seemed to calm Sara's nerves about her first Canterlot visit. Our chosen guard detail formed a perfect defensive diamond around us as we approached the castle gates: Swift Wing and Rose Petal at my flanks, Maple Leaf and her daughter near Sara, Captain Dawn Star taking point while Summer Breeze watched our rear. All wore proper combat armor, polished to a formal shine but still fully functional. The message was clear - we were here as diplomats and warriors, not decorative offerings. "Remember," I said quietly as we climbed the castle steps, "standard defensive formation. No matter what any noble suggests about 'traditional protocols.'" "Yes sir," they chorused, though I caught Swift Wing's wings twitching slightly. The memory of her earlier "ceremonial" armor clearly hadn't faded. "And if anyone tries to invoke traditional rights of hospitality?" Captain Dawn Star asked carefully, using the euphemism for nobles claiming guard privileges. "They can invoke their right to meet me in combat," I replied flatly. "One way or another, those particular traditions end tonight." Twilight pressed closer to my side, her horn giving an anxious spark. "Just... try not to actually kill any nobles? Celestia might forgive you defending the guards' honor, but bloodstains are terrible for diplomatic relations." "No promises," I muttered, watching a pair of unicorn nobles eye our guards with far too much interest. "Though I suppose I could start with non-lethal challenges..." "Daddy?" Sara tugged at my sleeve. "Why do those stallions keep staring at Swift Wing's wings?" "Because they're about to learn some very painful lessons about proper respect," I said firmly, loud enough to carry. The nobles quickly found somewhere else to be. Maple Leaf's daughter nodded sagely. "Guard training!" "Exactly." I smiled as both fillies immediately shifted into proper defensive stances, their synchronized movements drawing admiring glances from the castle guards. "Though maybe we save the practical demonstrations for after dinner." The great doors swung open, revealing Celestia's throne room in all its golden glory. Time to show Canterlot exactly what Ponyville’s first Human Military Governor thought about certain "traditional" noble privileges. Starting with making it very, very clear that my guards were off limits. Though maybe Twilight had a point about avoiding bloodstains on our first official visit... * * * Celestia They made quite the striking picture as they entered my throne room - Tim in his formal uniform, Twilight glowing with maternal radiance despite her obvious nerves, and young Sara practically bouncing with excitement. But it was their guard detail that truly caught my attention. Not a trace of traditional ceremonial armor in sight. Instead, six proud mares in proper combat gear formed a perfect defensive formation, with a tiny filly in matching junior armor standing protectively near Sara. Bold. Very bold. I caught Night Light trying to suppress a proud smile. His daughter's husband was definitely making an impression, though perhaps not quite the traditional one some nobles had expected. "Welcome to Canterlot," I said warmly, descending from my throne. "I believe we have some formal business to attend to before dinner?" Sara stepped forward with perfect poise - clearly somepony had been coaching her on proper court etiquette. Her father's protective stance and her small guard-in-training's alert attention only added to the charming picture. "Sara," I addressed her directly, infusing my voice with formal authority, "as Princess of Equestria, it is my pleasure to formally recognize your position as daughter of both Lady Twilight Sparkle, Countess of Ponyville and Sir Timothy Talbert, Military Governor of Ponyville. By the power vested in me, I hereby grant you the title of Viscountess, naming you Lady Sara, Viscountess of Ponyville, with all rights and privileges thereof." My horn glowed as I conjured a small golden circlet, sized perfectly for a filly's head. As I placed it gently on her brow, I caught Tim's barely concealed pride warring with his protective instincts. His guards had shifted almost imperceptibly closer - not threatening, but making it clear they considered Sara under their protection as well. Interesting. Very interesting. "Thank you, Your Highness," Sara managed the formal response perfectly, though her excitement showed in the slight bounce she couldn't quite suppress. "Now then," I smiled, noting how Tim's hand had never strayed far from his sword hilt, "shall we proceed to dinner? I believe the kitchens have prepared quite the feast in honor of our newest Viscountess." "Before we do, Your Highness," Tim's voice cut through the formal atmosphere like steel through silk, "I believe we should discuss your... interesting postscript. The one concerning my four-year-old daughter's 'breeding' prospects." The temperature in the throne room seemed to drop several degrees. Several nobles shifted uncomfortably, while others looked far too interested. Tim's guard formation tightened almost imperceptibly around Sara. "Ah," I maintained my serene smile, though I noted how his sword hand twitched. "Traditional noble houses often discuss future arrangements early. It ensures proper... connections are maintained." "Then let me be perfectly clear," Tim's voice carried that deadly quiet that preceded violence. "Any noble who views my daughter as a breeding prospect will be viewing their own entrails shortly after. Traditional or not, she is four years old. The only 'connections' she needs to worry about are which friends to invite to tea parties." The shocked gasps from the assembled nobles only seemed to fuel his controlled fury. "Furthermore, any noble who attempts to invoke 'traditional rights' regarding either my daughter or my guards tonight will find themselves in a very... traditional duel. To the death." I caught Night Light's proud grin growing wider. His daughter had certainly married someone willing to challenge the old ways - violently if necessary. "Now then," Tim's voice remained lethal even as he smiled diplomatically, "shall we proceed to this... Traditional dinner?" As we moved toward the dining hall, I couldn't help but notice how Tim's guards maintained their combat-ready formation despite the peaceful setting. Clearly, some traditional dinner arrangements were about to be thoroughly disrupted. This promised to be a most entertaining evening. And likely a bloody one. I can’t wait. * * * Twilight As we entered the dining hall, my heart sank. I recognized far too many faces from my time as Celestia's student - and not in a good way. Lord Bronze Star lounged near the wine service, his predatory gaze shifting between Maple Leaf's daughter and - my stomach lurched - Sara. Duke Sterling sat at the high table, the same stallion who'd once "requested" three personal guards be assigned to his "private chambers." His eyes lingered too long on my daughter's unique human form, clearly calculating how such exotic breeding might benefit his bloodline. Baron Crystal Cut, Count Fair Weather, Lord Golden Crown - Celestia had somehow managed to gather every noble who'd ever abused their traditional privileges, all in one room. If any stallions alive could provoke Tim into fulfilling his throne room promise of entrail-viewing, she'd managed to invite every single one of them to dinner. My hoof found Tim's arm, squeezing in warning as I felt him tense. Lord Bronze Star was still staring at our daughter with that same look he'd worn when... I pushed the memory away, forcing myself to breathe normally. Just because Tim was "only" a knight didn't mean they could treat Sara like another ‘guard-to-be’... No. She was a Viscountess now. Did Celestia do that to protect her? I was afraid to ask. "Easy," I whispered to Tim, though my own voice shook slightly. "You've already threatened to kill them once tonight. Remember what you said about avoiding bloodstains?" "That was before I saw how they're looking at our daughter," he muttered back, his hand never leaving his sword hilt. The protective fury rolling off him was almost physical - I could practically see him cataloging every noble who'd ever harmed a guard, every titled monster who'd used tradition to justify their crimes. And now they dared to eye Sara like she was just another prospect for their "traditional arrangements"? Maple Leaf had shifted closer to her daughter, while Swift Wing and Rose Petal's stances had gone from formal to combat-ready. Even Sara's little guard-in-training seemed to sense the tension, pressing closer to her friend with surprising protectiveness. They'd all seen that look in noble eyes before. "Did Celestia really invite..." Swift Wing's wings were pressed so tight against her sides they trembled. "All of them," I confirmed grimly. "Every noble who ever..." I couldn't finish. Especially not with how they were openly assessing my daughter's "exotic" bloodline potential. "What an interesting guest list," Tim's voice carried that deadly calm. "Almost like someone wanted to ensure certain... traditional protocols... would be thoroughly tested. Though I notice some seem to have already forgotten my warning in the throne room. Perhaps they need a more... permanent reminder about viewing my daughter as a breeding prospect." I caught Celestia watching us with far too much interest, and suddenly wondered if this whole dinner wasn't some kind of elaborate test. But what? And for whom? And why include nobles known for targeting the young and vulnerable, especially when Sara's human heritage might make them view her as somehow less protected by her new title? One thing was certain - this wasn't going to be a peaceful meal. Not with the way they were looking at our daughter. * * * Tim The soup was actually quite good - one of the few dishes without hay mixed in. I kept my movements casual while staying acutely aware of every noble in the room, particularly Lord Bronze Star, who hadn't stopped eyeing both Maple's daughter and Sara since we'd arrived. I didn't have to wait long. "My dear Maple Leaf," Bronze Star's cultured voice carried clearly across the table. "How... unexpected to see you in proper combat armor. Surely you remember the traditional protocols for royal functions?" His gaze slid to her daughter with obvious intent. "Such a promising young filly too. She really should be properly trained in all noble customs..." Maple's autumn-brown coat paled, but she stood her ground. "My daughter and I serve the Military Governor now, my lord. We follow his protocols." "Come now," Bronze Star's voice hardened slightly. "Surely your new commander understands the importance of proper... hospitality? A knight, even a human one, must respect traditional rights." His gaze shifted to Sara. "And speaking of humans... the first of her kind in Canterlot. Such fascinating potential for... diplomatic connections." "I already explained in the throne room what would happen to nobles who viewed children as breeding stock," I cut him off coldly, not bothering to look up from my bowl. "But since you seem slow to understand: Sit down and eat your soup. Before it gets cold. And before I spill something far warmer than soup on the floor." The dining hall went silent. Bronze Star's face purpled with rage. "How dare you!" he sputtered. "These are sacred traditions! Protocols that have existed for centuries! Who are you, some human upstart, to deny noble rights? Your daughter represents an unprecedented opportunity - the first human bloodline in Equestrian nobility! Many houses would pay handsomely for such unique... arrangements." Now I did look up, letting him see exactly what kind of commander he was dealing with. "Your 'traditions' end here. My guards wear real armor. They are soldiers, not toys. And my daughter is a child, not a diplomatic bargaining chip. Sit down, shut up, and eat your soup." "This is an outrage!" Bronze Star's horn flared as he stood. "I demand satisfaction! These traditions are my right as a noble of Equestria!" Perfect. I stood slowly, drawing my sword with deliberate precision. The same blade that had severed the Timberwolf's head gleamed in the candlelight. "Then let's be traditional about this," I said softly, letting my voice carry in the dead silence. "I challenge you to a duel. To the death." My smile held no warmth. "After all, trial by combat is a much older tradition than your 'hospitality rights.'" Bronze Star's face went from purple to pale so fast it was almost funny. "You... you can't..." "I can. I am. Right here, right now." I moved away from the table, creating space. "Unless you'd prefer to sit down, shut up, and keep your eyes and hooves off my guards and daughter?" The noble's mouth opened and closed several times, but no sound came out. "Well?" I prompted, sword ready. "Which tradition shall we honor tonight, my lord? Combat or soup?" Bronze Star's eyes darted around the dining hall, taking in the expectant stares of his fellow nobles. Backing down now would mean losing face in front of the entire court. His horn flared as he summoned his own blade. "Very well," he sneered, though I caught the tremor in his voice. "Let's see how well you handle real noble combat, human." I moved to the center of the cleared space, my stance relaxed but ready. "Captain Dawn Star, if you would do the honors?" She stepped forward formally. "The challenged has accepted. This duel shall continue until death or surrender. Begin." Bronze Star struck immediately, magic enhancing his blade's speed. I didn't bother blocking - just stepped aside and let him overextend. He might have centuries of noble privilege, but I had combat experience and one very clear purpose. His second strike went wide. His third never landed. My counterattack was precisely targeted - no magic, no flourishes, just the clean efficiency I'd learned as a combat medic. I knew exactly where to strike to end a fight quickly. Knowing anatomy helps a lot… It was over in seconds. Bronze Star's eyes went wide with disbelief as he looked down at my sword. He tried to speak, but only blood came out. His blade clattered to the floor as he followed. I cleaned my blade on a napkin, my voice carrying in the absolute silence. "Now then. Would anyone else like to discuss traditional protocols regarding my guards? Or perhaps share their thoughts about my daughter's... diplomatic potential?" The dining hall remained deathly quiet as I resumed my seat. "Pass the salt, please?" I asked mildly. "And perhaps somepony should clean up this trash before it stains the floor." The nobles suddenly found their soup absolutely fascinating, though I noticed several of them steal nervous glances at Sara, clearly reassessing their plans for introducing human bloodlines into their houses. * * * Twilight I stared at the growing red stain on the dining room floor, my horn sparking with a mix of hormonal anxiety and exasperation. "I told you no blood stains!" The words came out before I could stop them. I had made it sound like this was a common occurrence. It wasn’t… at least not yet. Tim wiped his sword one final time before sheathing it, returning to his soup with infuriating casualness. "I'm sorry, I really am," he said, though his smile suggested otherwise. "But after killing a timberwolf with nothing more than this sword and my boot, I fear that unicorns hold little challenge for me. Though I have to say," he added thoughtfully, stirring his soup, "at least the timberwolf had better table manners. And probably a more legitimate claim to nobility." Swift Wing spoke out of turn. “Yes sir, I was clean when the Timberwolf tried to eat me, and he had the grace to spit me out when you forced his mouth open with your bare hands. A better dead noble I’ve never seen… until now.” Time smiled at her. “Hush you, I’ll deal with you after dinner, battle-sister.” The gathered nobles shifted uncomfortably in their seats, suddenly very interested in their place settings. Even the ones who'd been eyeing our guards earlier couldn't seem to look up from their soup bowls. One of them was gripping his spoon so tightly his hoof trembled, sending ripples across the surface of his soup. I was trying to wrap my head around the off topic back and forth before I gave up and continued. "That's not the point!" I hissed, though I caught Swift Wing and Rose Petal exchanging proud looks behind Tim's back. "You can't just... just..." "Defend my guards' honor through traditional combat methods?" he suggested innocently. "I thought you wanted me to respect Equestrian customs? Besides, look how much more peaceful dinner is now. Nothing brings civility to a meal quite like a good old-fashioned stabbing." "I meant the dinner customs! The non-lethal ones!" "Oh." He actually had the nerve to look thoughtful while surrounded by horrified nobles, casually dabbing his mouth with a napkin that now had spots of something decidedly not soup on it. "You should have been more specific about which traditions you wanted me to follow. In my defense, this is actually quite restrained by human military standards. Usually there'd be at least one defenestration by now." I buried my face in my hooves, not sure whether to laugh or cry. The twins chose that moment to do a synchronized flip, as if applauding their father's performance. "You're impossible." "So you keep saying," he agreed cheerfully, then raised his voice slightly. "Though I notice nopony else seems interested in discussing traditional guard protocols anymore. Funny how that works. Almost like having your entrails become part of the dinner service puts a damper on one's enthusiasm for 'traditional hospitality.'" The absolute silence from the noble tables suggested he might have a point. Though I noticed several of them eyeing the windows nervously, probably wondering what "defenestration" meant and why Tim seemed disappointed about its absence. "I suppose we should hire the carpet cleaners again. Celestia shouldn’t have to pay for your mess," I sighed, watching the stain spread. "Though at this rate, we should probably just start paying for the services a year in advance. Maybe see if we can get a bulk discount for 'frequent blood removal.'" "Now you're thinking tactically," Tim grinned, taking another spoonful of soup. "Though I have to say, the red really brings out the pattern in the carpet. Very festive. Perfect for a Traditional dinner, wouldn't you say?" A noble near the end of the table actually whimpered. Tim had proved his point, I conceded happily to myself, even if he had completely ruined the carpet. * * * Celestia "Sir Timothy," I called out, my voice slicing through the heavy silence of the hall like a blade. The assembled nobles froze mid-breath, the shock of the duel still raw in the air, their gaze shifting from the blood-streaked stone floor to the man standing tall before them. "You have triumphed through honorable combat. By our oldest traditions, you are entitled to claim your victor's rights." Timothy stood, his posture emanating the unyielding rigor of a seasoned warrior. His uniform clung to him, torn at the shoulder, rivulets of another's lifeblood marking the fabric. The clash that had just concluded was not just punishment for eyeing his daughter as breeding stock - it was a reckoning long overdue. He drew himself up, a glint of iron determination in his eyes as he spoke. "I claim all of Lord Bronze Star's titles, lands, properties, and wealth. Effective immediately, his living family are to be stripped of all positions, status, and influence. They shall be exiled from Equestrian territories, never to return." A tremor of unease rippled through the seated nobles like wind rustling through brittle leaves. Several of them glanced nervously at Sara, suddenly realizing how thoroughly her father would defend her. Tim's voice, already stern, took on an even sharper edge. "His personal guards will be relieved of any loyalty to him and placed under my embassy's command. They will serve under proper military protocols - disciplined, respected, and treated as the soldiers they are, not the playthings he made them." His gaze swept the room, lingering particularly on those nobles who had been eyeing both the guards and his daughter earlier. A whisper fluttered on the air, silenced as Tim spoke once more, this time with a precision that felt surgical. "And as a trophy of this victory, I demand his cutie mark be cut from his lifeless flank. It shall be stretched, preserved and framed as a reminder to any who think themselves beyond justice's reach." His eyes found Sterling's calculating gaze. "Let it hang in my office, a testament to what happens to those who view children as breeding stock or guards as toys." A collective gasp shuddered through the nobles. The symbolism of a cutie mark was deeply ingrained; to defile it was an insult beyond death itself. But Tim's eyes were pitiless, daring contradiction. He continued, voice low but carrying, unflinching. "The first of many such trophies, should any other nobles need similar... education in proper behavior." He paused, his gaze moving deliberately across the gathered nobles, noting their untouched plates of hay and flower petals. "You know," he said, his tone carrying a dangerous edge of contemplation, "humans can't digest most of your food. Our species evolved as omnivores - meat eaters. In fact," his smile held no warmth as he glanced at those who had been discussing Sara's 'breeding potential', "some human cultures have historically considered horse meat quite the delicacy. It’s outlawed in my own Earthly nation, but I’d love to try it…” The dining hall grew deathly quiet, the implications of his words settling like frost over the assembled nobles. Tim returned to his seat with deliberate calm, one hand resting protectively near Sara while the other remained close to his sword. "You would go so far as to desecrate—" a noble stammered, but his voice cracked before he finished, shrinking under Tim's icy stare. "Yes," Tim said, his tone colder than any midwinter wind. "Let this serve as a warning. Touch my guards, threaten my daughter, eye either as property to be claimed, and I will do more than end your life. I will strip your family of their legacy, shred the very memory of your existence from history until not even a whisper of your name remains." The weight of his words settled over the hall, suffocating and absolute. A tangible fear crept into the eyes of those present; their ambition, the petty posturing that had filled their days, was now laced with the knowledge that there was a limit. A line Tim would defend with the sharpest of consequences. "Granted," I said, my horn flaring with a burst of royal magic that sealed the decree, binding his demands to law. The shimmer dissipated, leaving a palpable tension in its wake. I rose from my seat, my wings extending slightly - a gesture of ceremony that drew every eye. "By right of combat and royal decree, I hereby grant Sir Timothy Talbert the titles, lands, and privileges of House Bronze Star. You are now Lord Timothy Talbert, Marquess of Crystal Vale, Master of the Eastern Marches, and Keeper of the Dawn Gate." The magic swirled again, materializing a signet ring emblazoned with his new house crest - a sword crossed with a medical staff, crowned by a rising sun. "Your territories include the Crystal Vale province, its three major cities, and all associated trade routes. The annual revenue from these holdings..." I allowed myself a small smile, "should prove quite substantial. The Dawn Gate fortress alone commands significant toll rights from the eastern trade caravans." My gaze swept the hall, noting how the nobles' expressions shifted from fear to something more complex - a dawning realization that this human had just become one of the wealthiest and most strategically positioned lords in Equestria. "Additionally, as Master of the Eastern Marches, you now hold a seat on the High Council and command significant military resources. Your authority in matters of border defense is second only to the Crown." Every noble suddenly found the depths of their soup profoundly interesting. Every noble except one. Duke Sterling's eyes glimmered with something other than fear—something calculating, appraising. The gears of ambition did not halt; they shifted, adjusted, braced for what came next. "Of course," I added, my tone deceptively light, "such titles come with certain... social obligations. I trust you'll find appropriate ways to maintain order in your new territories. Perhaps some of your fellow nobles would be interested in discussing traditional methods of governance?" The subtle emphasis on 'traditional' sent a visible shiver through the assembled lords and ladies. Tonight, blood was not the only thing staining the floor, and the machinations of power had shifted irreversibly. Tim was no longer just a military governor or the husband of a countess - he was now one of the most powerful nobles in Equestria, with the wealth, authority, and strategic position to enforce his will far beyond Ponyville's borders. The implications hung in the air like smoke - this human who had already proven willing to kill to protect both his guards and his daughter now had the resources of an ancient noble house at his disposal. The crystal glasses clinked nervously as trembling magic lifted them to anxious lips, and the soup grew cold in forgotten bowls. More than one noble found themselves reconsidering their positions on both traditional guard protocols and the potential advantages of human bloodlines in their houses. Sterling's calculating gaze shifted between Tim and Sara, his expression suggesting he was already plotting how to turn this situation to his advantage - though perhaps with more subtlety than Bronze Star had shown. He would soon learn that subtlety made little difference to a father's blade. * * * Twilight I watched Duke Sterling's calculating expression with growing dread. The noble had a reputation for being cleverer than Bronze Star - and far more dangerous. The way he studied Tim's blood-stained sword and freshly claimed noble titles suggested he was already plotting something. "Perhaps," Sterling's cultured voice broke the tense silence, "we should discuss more civilized matters? After all, Lord Timothy, you've demonstrated your... enthusiasm for certain traditions. Surely we can find common ground on others? Such a unique position you now hold... and such a unique daughter." Tim's smile didn't reach his eyes. "The only ground we'll be finding is the six feet of it you'll be buried in if you continue eyeing my daughter like breeding stock." Several of the watching nobles actually flinched. Swift Wing and Rose Petal stood straighter, their professional masks barely hiding their fierce pride. Maple Leaf shifted closer to her daughter while Sara's young guard-in-training moved protectively in front of her friend. Sara herself watched with that mix of innocence and growing understanding that made my heart ache. "Darling," I whispered urgently, "maybe we could get through the rest of dinner without any more duels? Think of the fillies." "I am thinking of the fillies," he replied quietly. "Every single one who's ever been hurt by these 'traditions.' Every guard who's had to choose between their foal's safety and a noble's demands. Every child viewed as nothing more than a breeding prospect." His voice carried that deadly edge again. "This ends. Tonight. Starting with anyone who looks at my daughter like she's livestock to be bred." I caught Celestia watching the exchange with far too much interest. Had this been her plan all along? Gather the worst nobles in one room and let Tim... what? Make an example? Change centuries of tradition through sheer paternal fury? "The soup's getting cold," Tim announced to the silent hall. "Though I have to say, I've worked up quite an appetite. Perhaps we could discuss how human warriors traditionally dealt with those who threatened their children? No? Then please, enjoy your meal. While you can." The message couldn't have been clearer if he'd carved it into the table with his sword. Which, knowing my husband, was probably his backup plan. Duke Sterling wasn't finished. I recognized that gleam in his eye - the same one he'd worn when proposing "special training" for young guards during my time as Celestia's student. "Your dedication to both your guards and your daughter is... admirable," he said smoothly. "Though perhaps we could discuss more pleasant matters? The young Viscountess represents such unique opportunities. My own son is just a few years older, and the mixing of human blood into noble lines could prove... advantageous." Tim's hand moved back to his sword hilt. "Careful, your grace. Very careful. The last noble who viewed my daughter as breeding stock is currently decorating the floor." "I merely suggest what's traditional," Sterling pressed, either missing or ignoring the warning. "Young nobles need proper connections. The first human blood in Equestrian nobility... such potential for advantageous arrangements-" The sound of Tim's sword being drawn again cut through the hall like thunder. "Sara," Tim said calmly, never taking his eyes off Sterling, "cover your eyes. Daddy needs to explain to the duke why treating his four-year-old daughter like a prized mare at a breeding auction is a terminal mistake." "Tim!" I hissed, my horn sparking. "You can't kill every noble who-" "Why not?" He stood slowly, deliberately. "They seem very interested in traditional solutions tonight. And that wall in my new office at Crystal Vale could use more decorative cutie marks." Sterling's composure finally cracked. "Now see here-" "No, you see," Tim's voice could have frozen fire. "My daughter is four. The only 'arrangements' in her future involve which flavor ice cream to have after guard training. Suggest anything else about 'mixing human blood' into your line, and Bronze Star will have company in the afterlife." Sara's young guard-in-training nodded firmly. "Ice cream tactics are very important! And I won't let anyone hurt Sara!" The absolute conviction in her voice, coupled with Tim's lethal focus, seemed to finally penetrate Sterling's noble arrogance. He sat back, mouth snapping shut. "Now then," Tim resheathed his sword with deliberate precision. "I believe the next course is being served. Unless anyone else would like to discuss the 'breeding potential' of my four-year-old daughter?" The silence was profound. "Daddy?" Sara whispered, though not quite quietly enough. "Can we have ice cream after you finish killing all the bad nobles who want to make me marry their colts?" Tim's lethal expression softened as he looked at his daughter. "Do you want to marry a pony colt, sweetie?" Sara wrinkled her nose thoughtfully. "Ponies are cute, but I want to pick my own special somepony when I'm bigger. Like you picked Twilight." She beamed at me. "Because you loved her, not because some stuffy noble said so!" Several nobles choked on their soup. Sterling looked like he'd swallowed his own tongue. "That's my girl," Tim said proudly, before his expression hardened again as he surveyed the table. "You heard the lady. The only arranged marriage happening here is between my sword and any noble who forgets it." I buried my face in my hooves again. This was going to be a very long dinner. Though I had to admit, some small part of me was pleased at how thoroughly Tim was dealing with these "traditional" noble ideas about our daughter's future. And Sara's answer had been perfect - reminding everyone that true nobility came from the heart, not from arranged bloodlines. * * * Celestia I couldn't suppress a laugh when Sara asked about ice cream and marriage, her big eyes wide with curiosity. The scandalized expressions of the nobles made it all the more delightful - here was this tiny new Viscountess, not only discussing her father's ruthless dismantling of the old guard over dessert plans, but firmly rejecting their precious breeding arrangements in favor of true love. The room, steeped in tension, shivered with a discomfort that only deepened as the conversation continued. "Actually," I interjected, ensuring my voice blended authority with a touch of playful ease, "I took the liberty of arranging something special for our honored guest tonight." With a subtle nod, I signaled a waiting servant, who stepped forward with a large, covered platter. All eyes followed the silver dome, curiosity quickly giving way to unease as the lid was lifted. The gleam of perfectly seared meat greeted them: a medium-well cut taken from the very noble who had, minutes ago, suggested my newest Viscountess would make excellent breeding stock. "This horse steak was cut from Lord Bronze Star. I hope it satisfies you, Lord Tim. I believe this particular cut comes from the portion that was most concerned with... breeding arrangements." The room seemed to inhale as one, the scent of the dish cutting through the air like the sharpest of blades. Several nobles who had been eyeing Sara's "unique bloodline" visibly recoiled, one clutching his embroidered napkin as though it might shield him from what lay before them. The message was unmistakable. "After all," I said smoothly, allowing my gaze to drift across the room, "a warrior requires the right sustenance. Especially if he intends to continue… discussing traditional breeding programs… with my court." My words fell like lead, cold and deliberate. Tim's face, marked with a subtle grin, spoke volumes. He met my eyes, a flicker of dark humor behind his otherwise unreadable expression. "Your hospitality, Princess, remains unmatched," he said, each word soaked in the gravity of the unspoken. "Though I do hope you'll forgive me if I don't share with Sara. She's a bit young for... traditional cuisine." Silence thickened like fog as Tim reached for the knife at his side, its edge still stained with the remnants of earlier violence. He cut into the steak with an unhurried precision, the knife gliding through the meat until a perfect slice rested on his fork. The nobles held their collective breath, the shift in the room palpable as he brought the piece to his mouth, chewing slowly. Twilight, seated beside me, leaned forward, curiosity flaring in her eyes despite the apprehensive glances around her. "How does it taste?" she asked, her voice careful, yet carrying a hint of satisfaction. Tim paused, letting the question hang for a moment as he swallowed. His eyes met hers, hard yet amused. "Like an asshole," he declared, each syllable dropping with deliberate weight. "Just like Bronze Star was. Though I suppose that's fitting for someone who viewed children as breeding stock." A ripple of gasps broke out among the nobles. Duke Sterling nearly tipped his glass, another covered his mouth in shock, eyes darting between Tim and Sara, clearly reconsidering their plans for "advantageous arrangements." The weight of realization settled in; this was no ordinary dinner, no mere performance. It was a declaration wrapped in silk and served with steel. Before the tension could sour into something more volatile, I broke in with a light tone. "Though perhaps," I suggested, glancing meaningfully at Sara and her young guard-in-training, "we might save any further discussions of tradition until after dessert? The kitchen, I believe, has prepared both chocolate and rainbow sprinkles for the ice cream. For tactical diversity, naturally." "OF COURSE!" the two fillies chorused in unison, Sara adding, "Because we get to choose what we like, right Daddy?" "That's right, sweetheart," Tim replied, his smile warm for his daughter even as his next words carried a chill. "Choice is very important in all things." The room relaxed by degrees, nobles shifting their focus to their own plates, more than happy to pretend their host wasn't dining on a stark reminder of what happened to those who viewed his daughter as breeding stock. And while Tim's knife sliced through the meat once more, their relief was tempered by the knowledge that tonight, he had other things to carve besides their legacy. * * * Twilight Recoiling at his blunt statement of how Bronze Star tasted, I could barely respond. "Tim! Of all the things to say about the dearly departed..." I exclaimed, my cheeks blazing with a blush so fierce it felt as if I’d caught fire. The hall, which moments ago buzzed with the quiet clinks of silverware and cautious conversation, plunged into a stunned silence as every gaze locked onto us. I could practically hear the heartbeat of the nearest noble pounding in their chest. Tim merely shrugged, the corner of his mouth curling with a defiant grin. "What else can I say?" He leaned back in his chair, eyes fixed on mine with a spark that only I could read, daring, warm, and infuriatingly amused. "The most I've tasted of unicorns previously was marehoods. You taste much better, my love - probably because you chose me instead of being arranged into it." Gasps scattered across the table like a thrown handful of pebbles, the nobleponies shifting with expressions caught between shock and thinly veiled intrigue. Someone at the end of the table dropped their spoon, the clatter reverberating like a gavel strike, pronouncing judgment on the air. Celestia's expression betrayed only a flicker of surprise, her regal calm reasserting itself almost instantly. Luna, on the other hoof, allowed herself a smirk, a mischievous gleam in her eye as if to say, Well, that’s certainly one way to liven up a dinner. I struggled to maintain composure, my pulse roaring in my ears. "Tim," I said, softer this time, a note of strained humor lacing the word as I met his gaze. He held it, unwavering, his grin settling into something gentler, more familiar - the look he wore on nights when only we shared the moon's glow and the world outside felt so distant. "Daddy thinks dessert is boring?" Sara's voice chimed in, breaking the tension like a ray of sun through storm clouds. "But you always say the best things in life are chosen freely - like ice cream flavors and who we love!" Tim's smile turned warm as he glanced at her, leaning forward just enough to break the charged atmosphere. "That's exactly right, little one," he said, his eyes briefly flickering to the nobles who'd been discussing arrangements earlier. "The sweetest things in life are the ones we choose for ourselves." I took a deep breath, letting the tension release from my shoulders, and reached for my glass, lifting it with a practiced grace that caught the light just so. "Well," I said, my smile edging on wry, "perhaps we should all focus on the ice cream. I promise it's far less controversial." Laughter rippled around the table, growing more confident as nobles relaxed back into their seats. Tim’s eyes found mine again, a look passing between us, shared understanding, shared daring. Tonight, the ice was broken, but not forgotten. And peace in the room held only as long as there were no more provocations - until the next time Tim decided to challenge the edge of propriety. * * * Tim Sterling's eyes narrowed, a smile playing at his lips that didn't reach his eyes. He leaned forward, fingers steepled, as if to pull attention away from the aftermath of Tim's last verbal gauntlet. "Lord Timothy," he began, voice as smooth and honeyed as a practiced orator's. "While your commitment to both your guards and your... unique family situation is admirable, surely you can agree that Equestria's long-standing traditions are worth preserving - if only in some modified form. Traditions of both service and... selective breeding." I lowered my fork, turning to Sterling with the kind of measured patience that promised little tolerance. I can’t believe this asshole is still pushing this. I’ve already killed one noble tonight. How much more do I need to prove? The dining hall grew quiet again, the faint clinking of cutlery and cautious conversation faltering. Even Celestia's attentive gaze flicked to the exchange, interest sparking behind her composed mask. "Traditions?" My voice held an edge that made the word feel like a challenge. I dabbed the corner of his mouth with a napkin, then leaned forward, mirroring Sterling’s posture. "Let me tell you what I think about traditions." My eyes locked on the duke’s, unflinching. "Any custom that puts my guards at risk, any ‘right’ that treats soldiers as disposable playthings for noble amusement, ends tonight. I don’t care if it’s older than the castle itself." Sterling’s practiced mask twitched, but he recovered quickly, flashing a smile that would look more at home at a poker table. "Surely, there is room for... compromise? Adjustments made for modern sensibilities?" My brow rose, the corner of his mouth pulling into a smirk as sharp as his sword. "Compromise? You mean concessions that let you keep just enough of your power to make the younger guards squirm? No, your grace. This isn’t a negotiation. It’s a change." I picked up his wine glass, the red liquid catching the warm glow of the chandelier. "You can either be part of it or get left behind. Nothing stays the same forever, and that change deserves to be good. Filled with the hope that I was told Equestria represents.” Sterling’s jaw clenched, a flicker of annoyance shadowing his eyes. He glanced around, realizing that more than a few nobles were watching this exchange with keen interest. Some nodded subtly in my direction, the tide of sentiment shifting with each firm word. "I would caution you," Sterling said, the silk in his voice now tinged with steel, "not to alienate those who have influence beyond mere titles." My gaze didn't waver. "And I would caution you to remember that titles mean nothing when faced with someone willing to bleed for what he protects. Influence can buy favors, but it can't stop a sword." I took a long sip of his wine, eyes never leaving Sterling's. "Or, if you prefer, I could explain it more traditionally. Say, over another duel. I’ve grown accustomed to having blood on my hands, though, I’ll admit that I’m normally saving lives, not taking them.” The dining hall seemed to draw in a collective breath, anticipation crackling like a storm in the still air. Duke Sterling's thin, practiced smile reappeared as he leaned back in his chair, eyes gleaming with aristocratic contempt. "Marquess Timothy," he drawled, each word soaked in false civility, "while you may have claimed your new titles through... unconventional means, surely we can resolve this like civilized nobles. After all, we're now peers - even if some of us earned our positions through more... traditional bloodlines." The slight emphasis on "civilized" carried the intended insult – the suggestion that my elevation through combat made me somehow less noble than those born to their titles. The distinction wasn't about rank anymore, but about old blood versus new. “I’ll have you know, that on Earth, 1,000 years ago, my family, House Talbert, was once titled the Premier Earl of England. As the most important of all the Earls, our family power was equal to the average Duke’s, and we were very close to ascending to the throne at one point. I’m not quite sure how my family fall from grace in the 1500’s, however I assure you that my blood is very much as noble as yours.” Murmurs rippled across the room, nobles nodding in agreement, their approval palpable. Sterling didn’t care. “Your Earth lineage matters as little to me as my lineage appears to matter to you. You’ve challenged me to a duel twice, but I still outrank you socially, so you’ll fight my personal body guard instead.” The duke raised a hoof, and a mare stepped forward - her silver coat shining beneath the chandeliers, eyes sharp and unwavering. She was dressed in ceremonial armor: polished, ornate, designed for spectacle over substance. “Captain Silver Lance,” Sterling commanded, his tone clipped, “show Lord Timothy the meaning of tradition. Defend the honor of your liege.” Silver Lance’s gaze met mine, a flicker of understanding passing between us. There was no fear, only the resigned determination of a guard ready to act. My eyes narrowed. I’d seen that look too many times before - loyalty willing to bleed for people that didn’t deserve it. Captain Dawn Star signaled the start of the duel, her voice carrying over the silent crowd. Silver Lance moved first, spear cutting the air with a practiced flourish. She was quick, her movements precise, but I was quicker. I sidestepped, feeling the rush of air as her weapon missed by inches. Gasps rippled through the hall, hooves shifting nervously on the polished floor. The nobles watched with rapt attention, their dinner forgotten yet again. She was a better fighter than Lord Bronze Star had been, and I knew I couldn’t allow her the same three strikes I gave him. I couldn’t allow her to gain momentum. Her eyes darted, a split second's realization that she was overextended. I didn't hesitate. One decisive strike, a clean arc of steel, and the fight ended as swiftly as it began. Captain Silver Lance's breath hitched as she crumpled, her blood blooming beneath the shining brass of her ceremonial armor. The silence that followed was absolute. The dining hall held its breath, the only sound the soft, disbelieving murmur of those too stunned to speak. I straightened, studying the crimson staining my blade - the blood of Sterling's finest warrior, his personal guard captain, someone who should have been his Dawn Star. "If she had been wearing real armor," I said, my voice cold and measured, "she might have survived. A captain deserves better than ornamental brass." I wiped my blade clean with practiced efficiency. "You know, as a child on Earth, I was fascinated by swords - the romance of medieval knights, the honor of Renaissance duelists, which was, of course, was influenced by my knowledge of my family’s old noble roots. My father worked extra shifts to pay for fencing lessons. I was never a champion, but... I’m clearly good enough." I glanced at the blood staining the ornamental armor. "I never thought I'd actually use a sword in combat. But the treaty forbids Earth weapons in Equestria, and sometimes old steel speaks louder than modern firearms anyway." The implicit comparison hung in the air - between those who viewed combat as mere ceremony and one who understood its deadly reality. Sterling's face had gone ash-white, his perfectly maintained composure shattering as he stared at his fallen captain. He had gambled his best warrior on this display, and in doing so, lost not just the duel but his strongest protector. "Her family will receive a year's officer's salary and a permanent pension," I added, my tone making it clear this wasn't charity but obligation. "Since I doubt her noble master planned to provide for those she left behind." The implicit comparison hung in the air - between those who viewed guards as disposable ornaments and those who honored their sacrifice. Sara, seated beside me, clutched the edge of her chair, wide-eyed but silent. Then, with that perfect childhood innocence that could cut deeper than any blade: "So, who's next, Daddy?" The noble mares and stallions physically recoiled, some nearly choking on their wine. Their eyes darted between Sara's guileless expression and my blood-stained sword, the tension in the air suddenly suffused with something deeper - uncertainty. Tradition hadn't just collided with reality; it had crashed into a four-year-old's casual acceptance of her father's lethal protection. Duke Sterling's mask had completely crumbled now. His eyes darted between his fallen captain and me with naked fear - the terrible realization that he had just lost his most capable defender to a single stroke. The same guard who had protected him for years, gone in an instant, sacrificed to his own pride. His mouth worked silently, but no words came. The truth was laid bare, undeniable and cutting. "No one else needs to be next, sweetheart," I said, wiping my blade clean with deliberate precision. "As long as everypony remembers their manners." Sara's face fell slightly. "But I liked dinner with a show. We don't have T.V. here." A noblemare's monocle dropped into her soup with a quiet 'plop'. At the far end of the table, somepony muttered a prayer to Celestia. The scraping of chairs against marble echoed as several nobles discretely tried to put more distance between themselves and my bloody sword. With deliberate precision, I sheathed my sword, the soft click of steel against scabbard echoing in the profound silence. The nobles who had once eyed my guards with arrogant entitlement couldn't lift their gazes from their plates. This dinner was no longer a display of pomp and tradition. It was a line drawn in steel, and I stood on its edge, daring anypony to cross - though Sterling, now without his captain, would clearly not be the one to try. My eyes shifted to Princess Celestia, seeking confirmation. The room was heavy with the metallic tang of combat, every flicker of candlelight reflecting off wide eyes and tense faces. Celestia's expression remained composed, but I swore I caught the ghost of a smile at Sara's comment before her golden magic rippled with a subtle uncertainty as she weighed the moment. "His champion has fallen," I said, voice steady and carrying through the vast hall. "Am I owed nothing more than the victory itself?" Celestia's eyes met mine, her wings shifting slightly, a gesture as old as her rule that conveyed command and contemplation. "According to the old ways, the victor may claim a boon," she said, her tone measured but edged with gravity. "If it is your will, Marquess Timothy, the right is yours." A collective murmur passed through the nobles, faces paling, anticipation curdling into dread. I inclined my head slightly, acknowledgment without submission. "Then hear my claim," I said, turning my gaze to sweep the hall, capturing each uncertain glance. "From this day forth, every noble house shall have the right to refuse participation in these 'traditional protocols.' No lord or lady shall be compelled to offer their guards for another's pleasure, nor shall any guard be forced to serve where they do not wish to." The hall erupted in whispers, shock and calculation rippling like a wave. Some nobles blanched, others straightened, eyes darting to one another as they processed the implications. Some, I noted, showed subtle relief - perhaps not every noble house had embraced these traditions willingly. Celestia's gaze sharpened, taking in the room's reaction before she nodded once, her voice clear as a chime in winter air. "Your request is granted," she said, her words resonant and final. "The compulsory nature of these ancient protocols is hereby abolished. Each noble house shall have the freedom to determine their own practices regarding their guard details, and no guard shall be commanded to serve against their will." Her gaze swept the room, wings spreading slightly. "Traditional hospitality may still be offered freely between consenting parties, but it shall never be required nor expected. And any noble who takes what is not freely given..." her eyes flickered to Tim's bloodied sword with a small smile, "will face the full punishment of royal law. Though I suspect Lord Timothy might reach them before my guards do." A collective exhale swept the room, the subtle tension releasing as if every pony had been holding their breath, waiting for this moment to end. The balance had shifted, but not shattered - reform rather than revolution, choice rather than abolition. Several guards throughout the room stood straighter, their eyes bright with newfound dignity. "Daddy," Sara's voice piped up again, "does this mean the bad nobles can't make anypony do things they don't want to?" "That's exactly what it means, sweetie." I turned to face Sterling, whose eyes burned with humiliation and rage. The nobles watched with rapt attention, caught between shock and expectation, each of them seeking the duke's response, willing him to take back control - though many of them couldn't quite meet the gaze of their own guards anymore. "You'll need to kill me to undo it," I said, the quiet in my voice sharper than any shout. I took a step forward, filling the space between us, the challenge poised and unmistakable. "Fight me yourself this time, coward. No more hiding behind loyal guards who deserve better masters." A gasp moved through the room, the word hanging in the air like a drawn blade. Sterling's chest rose and fell, his eyes flicking to Celestia, searching for intervention, for some reprieve. But she remained silent, an impartial arbiter, watching with a gaze that revealed nothing - though her wings remained spread, a reminder of her recent proclamation. "Or will you send another to die for you?" I added, my tone a mixture of disdain and finality. "Another guard to sacrifice while you cower behind tradition and privilege? I wouldn’t mind a second boon. Your captain, at least, died with honor. When your time come, will you be able to say the same?" Sterling's jaw worked, muscles tightening as he grappled with the public scorn, his eyes darkening with rage. But he didn't rise. He remained fixed to his seat, the silence answering for him in a way no words could. His remaining guards exchanged glances, their postures subtly shifting away from him. A flash of disappointment settled in my chest, but I turned away, the moment sealed. The room was charged, the weight of change pressing on every noble in the hall. They knew, as surely as I did, that the old ways would not return without a fight - a fight that Sterling, and others like him, had already shown they were not willing to make. Sara's voice broke the tension once more: "Does this mean we're done with the dinner show, Daddy?" * * * Celestia I watched the exchange unfold, the air around me charged with tension so thick it seemed almost tangible. Tim's words hung in the hall like storm clouds, heavy with the promise of change. My gaze moved to Lord Sterling, whose eyes were wide with fury yet pinned by the sharp sting of humiliation. He didn't rise, didn't meet the challenge issued before the entirety of the court. His silence was a confession, more damning than any words he could muster - especially after suggesting "arrangements" for a four-year-old. Tim's back was straight, his presence commanding even as he turned from the confrontation. There was no arrogance in his step, only the iron confidence of a warrior and father who had spoken his truth and was ready to defend it. The nobles around me shifted, some staring at their plates as if they might find solace there, others stealing glances between me and Sara, as if finally seeing her as a child to be protected rather than a bloodline to be claimed. "Marquess Timothy," I said, letting my voice fill the hall, resonant with authority but tinged with genuine respect. "You have shown valor tonight that echoes through the oldest halls of Equestria. Your courage, your unwavering commitment to justice for those under your protection - be they guards or children - it is a rare and formidable thing." He met my eyes, a flicker of acknowledgment crossing his expression before he inclined his head. Sara beamed up at him with unmistakable pride. I turned my gaze to Lord Sterling, who sat rigid as stone, the muscles in his jaw taut with anger. "And yet," I continued, allowing the weight of my words to press on him like a silent rebuke, "where valor stands firm, cowardice withers. Equestria's future is shaped not just by traditions, but by those brave enough to challenge them. Those brave enough to protect both their guards and their children from the worst of our ancient ways." Sterling's eyes met mine at last, the spark of rebellion in them flickering out as quickly as it had flared. He lowered his head slightly, the smallest of bows, but it was not one born of respect. It was resignation, the unspoken acknowledgment of a power he could not contest tonight - and the realization that his plans for "advantageous arrangements" with the first human noble child had died with his captain. The court shifted again, the subtle rustle of silks and polished hooves breaking the silence. I saw the faces of my subjects - nobles, guards, courtiers - all wearing expressions that ranged from stunned disbelief to cautious approval. Many guards stood straighter, while several nobles with young children of their own seemed lost in thought. Change was a bitter draught for many, but the resolve in Tim's stance and the silence of Sterling spoke louder than any decree I could issue. "Does this mean the bad nobles will stop being creepy about kids too, Princess?" Sara's innocent voice carried through the hall, making several nobles flinch. "Yes, dear one," I replied, unable to suppress a smile. "Your father has made quite sure of that." Tonight, a battle had been won without a kingdom falling, but I knew well that this was just the beginning. Though perhaps, with such clear-eyed children to guide us, the path forward would be straighter than I'd hoped. * * * Celestia The grand dining hall’s tension seeped into the hallways as ponies dispersed, whispers trailing like ghosts. The echoes of Tim’s defiance and Sterling’s humiliation clung to the air, an unspoken promise that tonight would not be forgotten. I led Tim, Twilight, and little Sara into my private study, where the shadows of old tomes and the warm glow of a low fire seemed to absorb the day’s strain. No sooner had the door clicked shut behind us than Twilight’s voice, tremulous with fury, erupted into the space. “I hate you, I hate you, I hate you!” She advanced on me, her eyes brimming with tears and raw, unbridled rage. “How dare you place my husband in such danger?” The words struck like daggers, and I felt the weight of them settle into my chest. Twilight’s breaths came sharp and ragged, her horn sparking in a cascade of uncontrolled magic. I had seen her like this only a few times before - when those she loved were threatened, when everything she held dear seemed poised on a knife’s edge. Tim moved forward instinctively, his presence solid and steady, but I held up a hoof, meeting his eyes with a silent request. He stopped, a flicker of understanding passing between us. This was between her and me. “Twilight,” I began, my voice low and steady, but she cut me off. "No, don't you Twilight me, Celestia!" Her tone quaked with betrayal. "You knew! You invited Sterling, Bronze Star - all of them. You knew what they'd do, you knew they'd look at our daughter like breeding stock, and you let it happen! The first duel was almost expected, they didn't respect Tim as a mere Knight, but then you let them use a veteran Captain as a champion while they were still eyeing Sara for their 'arrangements.' And you didn't step in… at all! You let it play out.” Her voice cracked, and I felt the bitterness of her words settle like ash. I let the silence stretch for a moment, the soft crackling of the fire a painful counterpoint to the raw emotion in the room. Sara clung to Tim’s leg, wide eyes darting between us, the confusion of a child trying to make sense of adult turmoil. “Twilight,” I said again, this time with a softness that was almost a whisper. “I did what I had to.” Twilight’s eyes flashed, her hoof stamping against the rug. “Had to? Had to? You endangered him - endangered all of us! How could you put him in that position? He’s not some pawn for your games!” “No, he isn’t,” I replied, holding her gaze with the weight of centuries behind my eyes. “But he is a warrior, and tonight was necessary.” The sting of her accusation made my chest tighten, but I pressed on. "The nobility needed to see one of their own peers take this stand. They needed to understand that change would come from within their ranks, not just by royal decree. They needed to see him fight - to see that strength with their own eyes. Without that, they would never have accepted this change.” Tim’s jaw clenched, but he said nothing, his arm still resting protectively over Sara’s shoulders. Twilight’s eyes filled with tears again, this time more anguish than rage. “You used him,” she whispered, the accusation softer but no less cutting. “You put my family at risk for your politics.” I stepped closer, the space between us heavy with everything unsaid. "I trusted him," I said. "I trusted that he would do what needed to be done, not just for himself but for all of us. And he did. He has strong moral character the likes of which I’ve rarely seen. He gives Shining Armor and Starswirl the Bearded a run for their bits. I need somepony like him in every generation, but they are exceedingly rare." Twilight's breath shuddered out, her eyes searching mine for something - an apology, an explanation, something more than my solemn justification. But I had none to give. "Twilight," Tim's voice was gentle but firm as he stepped forward. "When we arrived in full combat gear and I wore my sword to a formal dinner, and Celestia said nothing about my challenge to her postscript regarding Sara's 'breeding'... I knew what was expected. What was needed." His hand rested reassuringly on her shoulder. "Would I have preferred to abolish these traditions entirely? Yes. But I'm a military commander - and a father. I understand that too much change too quickly can destabilize a kingdom. Sometimes victory means taking what ground you can hold, protecting what matters most first." He glanced at me, a slight nod conveying shared understanding. "It was an honor to help forge this change. To give guards and nobles alike the choice to break free from these traditions, to ensure our daughter never has to fear 'arrangements.' The rest will come with time, as it should." Sara's small voice broke the silence, tiny but certain. "Daddy made sure the bad nobles can't make anyone do things they don't want to, right? No more creepy marriage stuff?" Twilight blinked, the fire in her eyes dimming as she looked down at her daughter. She gathered Sara into her forelegs, holding her tightly, fiercely. "Yes, sweetie," she murmured, though her voice wavered. "Your father made sure of that. It's over. For now. I suppose I’ll have to give my mother the bad news about no longer having to worry about making arranged marriage prospects for you. It’s ashamed, matchmaking is her favorite thing.” Tim exhaled slowly, stepping closer to them, his hand brushing Twilight's mane with a touch that spoke of forgiveness and unity. “I at least trust your mother enough to introduce her to other colts in safe ways, not sticking them in a room alone and letting nature take its course. Or forcing them to marry to strengthen the wealth and power of the family.” Twilight sighed at the truth of it, giving her mother at least that much credit. I watched them, the three of them together, and felt the ache of my decisions more deeply than I had in a long time. I had risked not just Tim's life, but Sara's innocence, gambling that her father's protective fury would forge the change we needed. It was a small comfort that they were together, even if tonight's victory had come at the price of trust. * * * Tim Twilight stood by the fire in Celestia's private study, the light casting wavering shadows across her face. Her shoulders were rigid, still coiled with the fury she'd unleashed only moments before. Celestia remained a quiet presence by the desk, her gaze solemn, observing but not interfering. I took a step forward, the echo of my boots on the stone floor loud in the charged silence. Twilight's eyes met mine, a storm of fear and anger still swirling there, mixed with the ache of love. She held Sara close, and the little girl looked between us, wide-eyed and silent. "Twilight," I said softly, reaching out. "I don't blame her. We both know change like this couldn't come from a simple decree. It needed to be shown, proven - noble to noble." My voice steadied, finding its conviction. "Sterling sacrificed his best captain rather than face me himself. That tells the other houses everything they need to know about the old ways." Her brows drew together, confusion and pain warring in her expression. I moved closer, making sure every word landed. "Now, every noble house can choose its own path. Those who want to protect their guards can do so without fear of reprisal. Those who've been forced to participate in these traditions against their will can step away. It's not perfect, but it's ground we can hold - ground worth fighting for." Twilight's lip trembled, and for a moment, the anger softened, replaced by something deeper - an understanding of the strategy behind the sacrifice. "But watching you fight..." she whispered, the sharp edge of her fury blunted by raw vulnerability. Sara looked up at her, then at me, eyes shimmering with worry. I crouched, drawing her small hand into mine. "Your daddy is a Marquess now, little one," I said gently. "That means I have to help make things better, not just for us, but for everyone under our protection. Just like we talked about in your guard training - leadership means responsibility." Sara nodded, a tiny, brave gesture, and leaned against Twilight. I stood, feeling the shift as Twilight's rigid posture loosened just enough to let in a sliver of understanding. "Next time," Twilight said, her voice rough but steady, "tell me everything you're planning. Not just that you'll kill them if they step wrong, but that you intend to take their titles, their lands..." She took a shaky breath. "Even if you warned us about the duels, I wasn't prepared for how far you'd go." I met her gaze, a smile ghosting across my face. "I meant what I said in the throne room - anyone treating our daughter like breeding stock or our guards like playthings would die. I just didn't mention they'd die poor and stripped of rank." Celestia stepped forward then, the light of the fire casting golden hues across her coat. "The nobility saw something important tonight," she said, her voice carrying both relief and the weight of responsibility. "A Marquess who didn't just threaten change but executed it completely. You didn't just kill them - you destroyed their legacy, their bloodline, their very place in society. That carries weight no royal decree ever could." Twilight exhaled slowly, the anger finally giving way to the steady warmth of acceptance. She glanced at me, her eyes softer now. We had fought for change tonight, and though it wasn't complete victory, it was a beginning - ground we could hold and build upon. In that quiet moment, surrounded by the ancient books and the warm glow of the fire, we stood as a family, forged stronger by what we'd fought for and what we would continue to protect. Celestia cleared her throat softly. "There is... one other matter, Lord Timothy. As a Marquess, you now hold rank sufficient to marry into the royal family." Her wings shifted slightly as she stepped forward. "I would be honored if you would consider joining me in reforming Equestria... as more than just an ally." The silence that followed was absolute. Twilight's mouth opened and closed, her horn sparking with shocked confusion. I glanced down at Sara, who was studying Celestia with that intense childhood scrutiny that usually preceded devastatingly honest observations. "What do you think, sweetheart? Would you like Princess Celestia as a second mommy?" Sara wrinkled her nose thoughtfully. "I don't know... she's kinda fat. Swift Wing is much prettier." Twilight made a strangled sound, tears forming in her eyes as she physically struggled not to laugh. Even the ancient books seemed to hold their breath. I smiled, meeting Celestia's startled gaze with calm diplomacy. "With respect, Your Highness, I must decline. But I'll let you know if we change our minds in the near future, which for you is within the next 30 or so years, I guess." "Though perhaps," I added, as Twilight finally lost her battle with laughter, "we should discuss Swift Wing's availability at a sooner date, since Sara likes her so much." Celestia's composed mask cracked just slightly, a smile tugging at her lips. "Well, I can't argue with such... honest assessment of my attributes." I gathered Sara into my arms, her small form already heavy with impending sleep. As we turned to leave, I paused at the doorway, some niggling thought making me glance back. Celestia had moved to her desk, but she must have felt my gaze. She turned, and with deliberate slowness, lifted her tail - the motion causing her fuller, more mature form to shift and present itself entirely. Her alabaster coat seemed to glow in the firelight, making the pale pink of her marehood appear almost luminescent, pristine and untouched despite countless suitors. The movement drew attention to her generous teats, fuller than any mare I'd seen, swaying gently with her motion. Despite Sara's earlier assessment, there was an undeniable allure in Celestia's figure - each curve speaking of ancient power and grace, a beauty that remained unmarked by time. Twilight's sharp intake of breath told me she'd caught the exchange. Her body pressed against mine possessively, though I felt a slight tremor run through her at the sight of her mentor's offering. The gentle swell of her pregnancy reminded me where my loyalties lay, even as the image of Celestia's perfect form burned in both our minds. "Time for us to go home," I said quietly, feeling Twilight press closer as we left. The implications would have to wait until Sara was asleep. * * * Twilight The night air outside Canterlot Castle was crisp, a cool balm against the heat of emotions still simmering beneath my skin. The sky stretched dark and vast, studded with stars that seemed to pulse with the echoes of everything that had transpired. Tim walked beside me, Sara cradled in his arms, her head nestled against his shoulder. Swift Wing and Rose Petal maintained their protective positions despite their obvious exhaustion, while the other guards established a perimeter around us as we walked. Our path wound through the quiet streets of Canterlot, lanterns casting soft, golden pools of light as we approached my family's tower home. The familiar structure rose proudly, its stone walls wrapped in ivy, the windows aglow with the warm promise of sanctuary. I noticed Tim's guards exchange glances at the lack of security - unusual for the home of the Duke and Duchess of Unicornia. Before I could knock, the door opened, and my father, Night Light, stood there with an expression that blended worry and delight. His eyes swept over our blood-stained formal wear before noting the guards' protective formation. "Twilight, Tim, you're here!" His gaze softened when he saw Sara's sleepy form, her tiny arms looped around Tim's neck. "Come in, come in. Guards, please, make yourselves comfortable in the security wing - though I'm afraid it hasn't seen much use since your mother and I chose to dismiss our traditional detail." Tim's eyebrows rose slightly. "You dismissed your guards? But as Duchess of Unicornia..." "Twilight’s mother," Night Light said with a slight smile, "decided long ago that if she couldn't treat guards as family rather than servants, she'd rather have no guards at all. Started writing those novels instead - her way of imagining a world where rank didn't determine relationships." He paused. "Though from the state of your uniform, I'm guessing tonight's dinner touched on similar themes?" I exchanged a weary glance with Tim, who smiled faintly. The kind of smile that acknowledged the battle we'd just fought, one marked by both swords and social revolution. We stepped inside, and the warmth of home embraced us: the faint scent of lavender, the gentle crackle of the hearth, and the subtle hum of magic that always seemed to permeate my childhood home. "Grandpa!" Sara's voice was muffled against Tim's collar, but the excitement in it was unmistakable. Night Light's eyes lit up as he reached out to take her, though his gaze lingered on the blood staining Tim's formal wear. "There's my little adventurer," he said, pressing a kiss to her hair. "Though perhaps we should get you settled for bed before the grown-ups discuss why your father is wearing what appears to be..." he sniffed delicately, "Lord Bronze Star's blood?" Tim and I exchanged another look. "You can tell it's Bronze Star's blood by smell?" Tim asked carefully. Night Light's expression darkened slightly. "Let's just say I've had enough interactions with that particular noble to recognize his... essence. Even in this form." He shifted Sara in his forelegs. "Swift Wing, Rose Petal - would you mind?" The guards nodded, moving to defensive positions with practiced ease. I noticed how my father addressed them directly, with none of the dismissive tone most nobles used with guards. Once Sara was tucked into bed in Shining's old room and Tim had cleaned up, we gathered in the living room. The guards maintained a respectful distance while still keeping watch, though they seemed more relaxed in my childhood home. "Now then," Night Light said, his expression turning serious. "Perhaps you'd like to explain how my son-in-law smells of Bronze Star's blood, and why your guards look both traumatized and fiercely proud?" "It's a long story," I started, but Tim cut in gently. "Actually, sir, as Celestia's advisor, you should probably hear everything. Starting with how I'm now Marquess of Crystal Vale, Master of the Eastern Marches, and Keeper of the Dawn Gate. I was awarded House Bronze Star’s lands, titles and wealth after killing Bronze Star for eyeing Sara like breeding stock and another noble's captain for helping him test my resolve." Night Light's teacup froze halfway to his mouth. "I... see." He set the cup down carefully. "And I assume this has something to do with why Velvet's been practically vibrating with excitement about 'traditional arrangements' being abolished?" "I’m surprised she’s already heard but you could say that, that mare must have spies everywhere," Tim said dryly. "Though first - why did you really dismiss your guards? The truth, please. As one noble to another now, I suppose." My father was quiet for a moment, then spoke softly. "Because we couldn't protect them. Not really. Oh, we treated them well enough - no 'traditional protocols' in our household. But other nobles... they have ways of applying pressure. Especially to guards whose families serve other houses." His expression hardened. "The same nobles who were at tonight's dinner, I imagine?" "The very same," Tim confirmed. "Though I have to ask - if you and Lady Velvet rejected these traditions so completely, why did my wife's mother personally select twelve guards trained in these... protocols? For me?" Night Light's smile turned knowing. "Ah. You've discovered my wife's particular talent for plotting. Did you accept any of their traditional offerings?" "No," Tim said firmly, his hand finding my hoof. "Though they were... persistent in their attempts. Until tonight." "As we knew you wouldn't," Night Light said with quiet satisfaction. "Celestia needed to be sure, you see. Sure enough to risk everything on tonight's dinner. And Velvet... well, she has her own ways of testing character." He glanced at Swift Wing and Rose Petal. "Though I suspect these two might have something to say about being used as test subjects?" Swift Wing's wings shuffled slightly. "We... may have been somewhat enthusiastic in our interpretation of Lady Velvet's instructions." "Very enthusiastic," I muttered, remembering the gym incident. "Actually," Rose Petal spoke up, her professional demeanor cracking slightly, "Lady Velvet was quite specific about how we should... present ourselves. She said something about needing to make the temptation genuine for her novels..." "Mother!" I groaned, but Night Light was chuckling. "Your mother has always believed that true character shows itself in how one handles power - and temptation." He looked at Tim appreciatively. "Though I doubt even she anticipated you'd end up killing nobles to protect both your guards and your daughter in the same evening." "About that," Tim said carefully. "As Celestia's advisor... should I be concerned about political repercussions?" Night Light's expression turned thoughtful. "From killing Bronze Star? Half the noble houses will probably thank you privately. That stallion had a reputation..." He stopped, glancing at me. "Well, let's just say he won't be missed. Though I am curious about one thing - after you claimed his titles and lands, did anything... unusual happen?" Tim shifted slightly, and I felt my cheeks warm at the memory. "You could say that. Celestia... made an offer." "Ah." Night Light's expression shifted to something more complex. "The traditional offering of herself to a newly elevated noble of sufficient moral character?" "You knew?" I squeaked. "That she would..." "Twilight," my father said gently, "your mother and I have served as Celestia's advisors for decades. We've watched her test countless nobles, waiting for one worthy of both power and... more personal connections." His eyes met Tim's. "Though I'm guessing, given that you're here with my daughter rather than still at the castle, you declined?" "Of course I did," Tim said firmly. "Though..." he glanced at me apologetically, "I have to admit, it was quite the display. I've never seen such..." "Tim, please," I cut in desperately, "maybe don't describe Celestia's... offerings... to my father?" Night Light waved a hoof dismissively. "I'm well aware of Celestia's... attributes. As is your mother. Why do you think those novels of hers are so detailed? Research has to come from somewhere..." "Father!" But Night Light was already continuing. "The point is, Celestia needed to be certain about Tim's character before tonight's dinner. Your mother's selection of particularly attractive guards was part of that test. If he could resist twelve willing mares trained in traditional protocols..." "Then he could resist anything," Swift Wing murmured, then blushed when we all looked at her. "Precisely," Night Light nodded. "Though I suspect Velvet got rather... carried away with the specifics. She does love her research." He smiled apologetically at Tim. "I do hope the gym incident wasn't too traumatic?" "You know about that too?!" I demanded. "Your mother may have mentioned something about 'field testing' some scenes for her next novel..." Night Light's eyes twinkled. "Though I notice Tim managed to maintain his composure even with Swift Wing's marehood in his face." "Can we please talk about something else?" I begged. "Like Tim's new titles? Or the reforms he enacted? Or literally anything other than my mother's novel research?" "Of course, dear," Night Light said soothingly. "Though you have to admit, Tim's dedication to you despite such thorough testing is rather romantic. Your mother's already outlining the novel - 'The Honorable Human: A Tale of Tested Virtue.'" "Actually," Tim interjected, clearly trying to help me escape my mortification, "there is something else I wanted to discuss. As Celestia's advisor, what do you make of my new position on the High Council? The Eastern Marches are strategically significant..." "Ah yes," Night Light's expression turned more serious. "The Dawn Gate fortress alone commands significant trade routes. Combined with your position as Earth's first human noble... Celestia's positioned you rather perfectly, hasn't she?" He paused thoughtfully. "Though I suspect tonight's violence wasn't entirely part of her plan." "Bronze Star was looking at Sara like-" Tim's voice carried that dangerous edge again. "I know," Night Light cut in, his own tone hardening. "Why do you think we never brought Twilight to court functions at that age? Some nobles view any filly as... potential. Even a Viscountess." His eyes met Tim's. "Though I notice Sara's title was granted before dinner. Celestia does think ahead." I felt my ears perk up. "You think she gave Sara the title to protect her?" "Among other reasons," my father nodded. "Noble status offers some protection - not enough, as tonight proved, but some. Though I doubt she anticipated quite such a... permanent solution to the problem." "Speaking of permanent solutions," Swift Wing spoke up hesitantly, "Lord Night Light... about our new positions as Lord Tim's sisters..." "Ah yes," Night Light's smile returned. "Velvet will be delighted. She's been hoping somepony would finally reject the traditional arrangements in favor of actual family bonds. Though she may be slightly disappointed about losing some plot lines for future novels..." "Father!" I groaned. "Can we focus? Tim killed a nobles and a Guard Captain tonight, claimed their lands, and changed centuries of tradition. Surely that's more important than Mother's writing career?" "Is it?" Night Light asked mildly. "Consider - which will have more lasting impact? The immediate reforms Tim enacted, or the stories that will spread about a noble who chose family bonds over traditional power? About a human who respected his guards enough to make them sisters rather than conquests?" He looked at Tim appraisingly. "Though I am curious about one thing - what made you think of the sister solution?" Tim glanced at Swift Wing and Rose Petal before answering. "Honestly? It came from watching how guards interact with nobles who treat them well. There's a loyalty there that goes beyond duty, but it gets twisted by tradition into something..." he struggled for the right word. "Perverse?" Night Light suggested. "Yes, we've seen it too. Why do you think Velvet writes those novels? She's trying to show what could be - proper relationships built on respect rather than power. Though I suspect she never imagined someone would actually implement her ideas quite so... dramatically." "About that," Rose Petal ventured, "Lady Velvet's instructions were very specific about testing Lord Tim's resolve. She even gave us copies of 'The Captain's Mare' as... research material." Night Light actually laughed. "Oh, that wasn't for research. That was to show you what she hoped would happen - a noble who'd reject traditional power dynamics for something more meaningful. Though the sister solution..." he shook his head admiringly. "That's new. Usually nobles either accept traditional arrangements or reject them entirely. Building family bonds instead... Velvet will be rewriting half her planned novels." "But if you and Mother rejected these traditions," I pressed, "why help Celestia test Tim this way? Why put him - put us - through all this?" "Because change has to come from within the system," my father said gently. "Celestia needed a noble who would reject tradition while holding enough power to enforce that rejection. Your mother and I could step away from tradition, but we couldn't change it. Tim..." he gestured to the blood-stained uniform hanging nearby, "well, he's made his position rather clear. And now he has the authority to back it up." "Through murder," Tim said quietly. "Through justice," Night Light corrected. "Bronze Star's crimes went far beyond tonight's offense. And Sterling's captain..." he glanced at Swift Wing, "she chose her path. As did you. That's the difference - choice. Which is exactly what your new reforms guarantee." "Along with some very interesting plot developments," Swift Wing muttered, then blushed when we all looked at her. "Lady Velvet may have shared some... preliminary outlines. For research purposes." "Oh sweet Celestia," I groaned. "Please tell me Mother isn't actually writing about all this..." "Of course she is," Night Light said cheerfully. "Though I suspect she'll need to revise her planned ending. The sister solution offers so many more interesting possibilities than her original outline. Perhaps a series about guard-sisters learning to navigate their new family bonds while helping their brother reform noble society..." "Father!" "What? It's a compelling narrative. Though she might need to tone down certain scenes. That gym incident alone would require an adult rating-" "Speaking of adult content," Tim interrupted, clearly trying to save me from further mortification, "there is one other thing that happened tonight. After I rejected her traditional offering, Celestia... reinforced her original offer by demonstrating her assets as we were leaving. More explicitly this time. She seemed… sincere.” Night Light's eyebrows rose. "Did she now? And how did you handle that, Twilight?" I felt my cheeks burn. "I... might have been less upset than expected. It was rather impressive, even if her teats are ridiculously oversized-" I caught myself. "I mean... um..." "Ah," my father nodded sagely. "Yes, Celestia does have that effect. Even your mother has written several private chapters about- well, perhaps we should change the subject?" "Please," I begged. "Though... Father? If you and Mother rejected these traditions so completely, why didn't you ever try to change them yourselves?" Night Light's expression sobered. "We did, in our way. Your mother through her writing, me through my advisory position. But we didn't have the power Tim has now - or his particular talent for making permanent changes." He glanced at the blood-stained uniform again. "Sometimes tradition needs more than gentle reform. Sometimes it needs a sword." "And a sister or two?" Swift Wing suggested with a small smile. "Or twelve," Rose Petal added. "Though perhaps with less marehood-to-face contact during training sessions," my father added dryly. "Unless that's going in your mother's next novel..." "Actually," Tim said thoughtfully, "speaking of Velvet's novels... You might want to warn her that her next series will need significant revisions. Traditional protocols are now voluntary rather than compulsory. Though that might give her some new plot angles - nobles having to actually earn a guard's affection rather than command it." "Oh, she'll love that," Night Light chuckled. "She's been wanting to write a novel about a noble actually courting a guard properly. Though I suspect she never imagined her son-in-law would make it legally required." He paused. "Speaking of legal matters... the Dawn Gate fortress does come with its own guard detail. Have you considered how you'll handle that?" Tim glanced at Swift Wing and Rose Petal. "The same way I handle all my guards. They can choose to be family or transfer to another posting. No traditional protocols, no forced arrangements." "Even with Celestia offering herself?" my father pressed. "That's quite a temptation to resist. Most nobles would consider it the ultimate achievement..." "I have everything I need," Tim said firmly, his arm tightening around me. "Though I suppose we should prepare ourselves for Luna's reaction when she finds out. I’ve heard that she can be rather... competitive with her sister." "Tim!" I swatted him, but couldn't help adding, "Though she probably would point out that her 'athletic build' and perky teats are superior to Celestia's more... abundant form." Tim smirked. “Her teats are still probably larger than yours. I like a hand full, not something that flops everywhere.” "Should I be concerned," Night Light asked mildly, "that both my daughter and son-in-law seem to have memorized the royal sisters' physical attributes?" "Blame Mother's novels," I muttered. "She's very... detailed in her descriptions." "Speaking of detailed descriptions," Swift Wing said innocently, "Lady Velvet did request a full report about the gym incident. For research purposes, of course." "No research!" I declared. "No reports! And absolutely no new novels about guard-sisters with complicated feelings about their brother-commander!" "Too late," Rose Petal grinned. "She's already outlined the first three books. Something about a noble who earns his guards' loyalty through respect rather than tradition, only to face the challenge of maintaining professional boundaries when-" "Time for bed!" I announced loudly. "It's late, and we should let Father get some rest. Tim? Coming?" "Actually," Night Light said, his eyes twinkling, "perhaps Tim could stay a moment? I'd like to discuss a few things about his new position on the High Council. Nothing too detailed - just some advice about handling certain nobles who might not appreciate his... direct approach to reform." "Just promise me one thing?" I sighed, knowing I couldn't stop them from talking. "No more discussions about Celestia's assets? Or Luna's? Or anypony else's?" "Twilight, sweetheart," my father’s voice carried a teasing lilt, "you’re lucky your mother isn’t asking about your teats for one of her upcoming novels. Pregnancy changes a mare-” I teleported myself upstairs before he could finish, their laughter following me. The last thing I heard was Tim asking about the historic significance of the Dawn Gate fortress, though knowing my father, the conversation would eventually circle back to Mother's literary ambitions. At least Sara was too young to understand most of what had happened tonight. Though knowing my luck, she'd probably end up helping Velvet research her next novel series... "Traditional Protocols and Family Bonds: A Tale of Twelve Sisters." I could already see the cover art. I was going to kill them all. Eventually. After I finished reading Mother's next manuscript. For research purposes, of course. * * * Tim Sara's gentle snores filled the quiet as we checked up on her in Shining Armor's old room. The space felt frozen in time - shelves lined with toy soldiers, old medals, and framed photos capturing moments of sibling mischief that now seemed worlds away from the violence of our evening. I brushed a strand of hair from Sara's face, remembering how close we'd come to losing this innocence. If I'd been a moment slower with Bronze Star... My hand found Twilight's shoulder, steadying us both. Sometimes I forgot how much she needed that physical connection, that grounding touch that said more than words. She turned to me, and I offered what I hoped was a reassuring smile. The kind that said we'd survived, we were together, and that was what mattered. We slipped out of the room, leaving the door cracked just enough for the hallway lamp's glow to spill in. The quiet of her childhood home felt like a balm after the chaos of the castle - no nobles to kill, no traditions to shatter, just the soft sound of our daughter sleeping safely. Twilight led me to her old room, and something in her nostalgic expression made my chest tighten. Here she was just Twilight, not the Ambassador, not a Countess, just my wife seeking comfort after a hell of a night. The bed was ridiculously small - filly-sized - barely large enough for one pony, let alone a human and a pregnant mare. But I settled onto the narrow mattress and pulled her close anyway, my arm draping over her waist protectively. The warmth of her pressed against me, her ear finding that spot above my heart that always seemed to calm her. Even after everything that had happened tonight - the duels, the deaths, the political upheaval - this was what mattered. This quiet moment where we could just be us. "Are you okay?" I murmured, feeling the slight tremor running through her body. She broke. Tears spilled over as she pressed her face into my chest, her voice cracking. "I'm scared, Tim. Not just of what happened tonight, but what comes next. The pregnancy... the twins... the risks... and you. Every time you step into danger, I feel like I'm on the edge of losing everything." I tightened my hold on her, breathing in the lavender scent of her mane. "Twilight," I kept my voice gentle but firm, "I know. And I wish I could promise you that nothing will ever happen, that we'll never face this kind of fear again. But what I can promise is that I'll keep fighting. For you, for Sara, for our family. I'll keep coming back." A sob caught in her throat, half relief, half anguish. "I know you will," she whispered, her body relaxing slightly as I kissed the top of her head. "But it's so hard. Everything is so much right now, and I can't shut it off." I shifted to press my forehead against hers. "You don't have to shut it off. Not here, not with me. Let it be hard, let it hurt, but know that you're not alone. Tonight I killed a noble and a personal guard, claimed their titles and a boon. Tomorrow we'll deal with the consequences. But right now? It's just us." She pressed closer, her voice small. "How can you still want me? I'm getting fat with the twins, my teats are swollen, and you've had both Celestia and our guards presenting themselves to you... and who knows else now that you have wealth and titles that exceed mine.” "Twilight," I couldn't help but smile at her insecurity, "do you really want brutal honesty about teats? Yours or anyone else’s?" She nodded against my chest, though I felt her tense slightly. "Fine. Swift Wing's are smaller than yours and perky - very athletic, just like I normally prefer. Rose Petal's teats are nearly too big without being pregnant, I’d hate to see how they would change if she ever does get pregnant. And Celestia's are just obscene, anything that takes two hands to hold is too big. Luna probably has a nice athletic build too, but as an alicorn, probably has teats that are also too big for my normal taste, unless being firm makes up for it, though I'll deny ever admitting that." I kissed her horn softly. "But yours? Yours are perfect. Even swollen with pregnancy - especially swollen with pregnancy. Because they're yours, and you're carrying my foals, and that's sexier than any guard's 'traditional presentation' could ever be." "Even if they're getting huge like the rest of me?" she mumbled into my chest. "Well," I teased gently, "I suppose if your giant teats become too much to handle, Swift Wing is always available. She mentioned something about being willing to help out if you need a break..." I felt her tense, hinting that either she’s still jealous, or I had hit close to the mark on something she hadn’t told me yet, and I quickly continued, "But then I'd miss out on watching you grow with our foals. On seeing how your body changes to nurture our children. Besides," I nuzzled her mane, "I happen to like your curves. You're not getting fat - you're getting more of you for me to love." "You're impossible," she muttered, but I felt her relax slightly. "Impossible not to love you," I corrected. "Even with giant pregnancy teats. Though I suppose if they get too big, we could always ask Swift Wing to help balance things out. One small athletic mare, one curvy pregnant mare..." She swatted me with her tail. "Stop offering our guard-sister as a solution to my pregnancy body issues!" "Hey, I'm just being practical," I grinned. "Though honestly? These changes aren't permanent," I assured her, letting my hand drift to her slightly swollen belly. "But my love is. I chose you, Twilight. Not our guards, not your princess, not even Swift Wing's perky athletic build. Just you. All of you. Every changing, swelling, beautiful inch of you." "Even when I'm as big as Celestia?" "Especially then," I kissed her softly. "Though maybe don't tell Celestia I compared your pregnancy size to her... assets. I'd like to live long enough to make a few more meaning changes to Equestrian society. You know… we both may owe your mother an apology. I passed a test that I honestly never thought I could. It’s not hard to be faithful when no one cares, or no one wants you. But having beautiful mares fawn all over you… knowing they’d flag on a single command… that temptation is powerful, and the corruption is dangerous. All my teasing aside, I’ve never been prouder of myself.” She was quiet for a moment, then whispered, "I’m proud of you too… maybe I haven’t given you enough credit for your self-control. But Tim... with everything that's happened... I'm not sure I can remain Ambassador to Houston anymore. Your new titles, the High Council seat, the Eastern Marches... we'll barely have time to visit Earth, let alone maintain diplomatic posts there." I chuckled softly, feeling her tension ease at the sound rumbling through my chest. Looking down at her worried face, I couldn't help but marvel at how much had changed in one night. "I've been thinking about that too. After tonight... I'm almost as important as your mom politically, more important militarily, and probably wealthier." Her ears perked up slightly as I continued, "With everything we're building here - the reforms, the territories, our new position in court - maybe it's time to consider making Equestria our permanent home." I softened my voice, knowing the next part was crucial. "Though if we do, we should bring Dad here. He's alone since Mom passed, and he deserves to finally meet you in person... and be able to spend more time with his granddaughter and the twins when they arrive." A nervous laugh bubbled up from her. "Meeting your father in person? The man who still sends you those long emails about how unicorns are mythological creatures and magic is scientifically impossible?" I couldn't help but grin, imagining Dad's face. "Just imagine his reaction when he realizes his son is not just married to a very real unicorn, but is now a Marquess with a magical fortress. Though I suppose the Houston Gold Exchange will be disappointed they won't get to handle our trading accounts." "You're still thinking about banking at a time like this?" "Well, being Master of the Eastern Marches does come with significant financial responsibilities." I stroked her mane gently. "Besides, we have real duties here now. A seat on the High Council, territories to protect, guards who trust us, reforms to shepherd through. Earth will still be there - we'll just visit as family rather than diplomats." "And a revolution to finish," she added quietly, settling deeper into my embrace. "Though from my stories about him, your father might actually enjoy that part. You said he always did believe in fighting for change... though I doubt he meant the Equestrian noble system." I traced lazy circles on her back, thinking about Dad. He'd always taught me to stand up against corruption, to fight for what was right. Tonight's violence would shock him, but the reasons behind it? I think he’d regret not being here to take up a sword beside me. "You know," I mused, "he might understand better than we think. He always said power corrupts unless good people stand against it. Though explaining why I had to kill nobles at dinner might take some finesse." Twilight snorted softly. "Baby steps?" "Exactly. Magic first, murder of nobility second." I pulled her closer, feeling our twins shift slightly against my hand. "Though I have to admit, going from warehouse leadman to Marquess in a month is quite a career change. Probably should leave that part out of the LinkedIn profile." Her quiet laugh warmed me. "I can see the bullet point now: 'Former Combat Medic Becomes Lord of Magical Kingdom, Reforms Noble Society Through Strategic Application of Violence.'" "Don't forget 'Adopts Twelve Guard-Sisters While Maintaining Professional Boundaries,'" I added dryly. "That'll really confuse the HR department." But beneath our gentle teasing, I felt the weight of everything settling in. Dawn Gate Fortress, the Eastern Marches, a seat on the High Council... positions that came with real power and real responsibilities. Positions I'd earned through blood tonight. "We'll make it work," I said softly, as much to myself as to her. "We'll build something here - something better than what we're tearing down. A home where Sara can grow up safe, where our twins will never know the old ways. Where guards can be family instead of property." "Even if it means giving up Earth?" she asked, her voice small. "Earth will always be there for visits. But this?" I gestured to encompass everything - her, our children, our growing family of guards-turned-sisters, the changes we were fighting for. "This is where we belong now. Besides," I added with a slight smile, "Dad's going to need somewhere to retire once he gets over the whole 'magic isn't real' thing. That fortress has plenty of room for a workshop..." Twilight nuzzled closer, her body finally relaxing completely against mine. "I love you," she murmured sleepily. "Even if you did kill nobles at dinner." "Love you too," I whispered back. "Even if you did marry a revolutionary." As she drifted off to sleep in my arms, I found myself thinking about Dad's old lessons about standing up to corruption, about fighting for what's right no matter the cost. He'd taught me that through his divorce from Mom - that sometimes you had to tear down what wasn't working to build something better. I just hoped he'd understand why his son had to become a killer to be a better kind of noble. Though maybe we'd ease him into that part. After he got used to having a unicorn for a daughter-in-law. * * * Celestia "He actually turned you down?" Luna's laughter echoed through my private chambers. "The mighty Princess of the Sun, flagging her tail like a mare in heat, and he just... walked away?" I maintained my regal composure, though I felt my ears warm slightly. "He chose loyalty to his wife. It's… admirable." "Admirable? Sister, you displayed yourself like the final course!" Luna's grin turned wicked. "All that talk of human dining preferences, and you offered yourself up right after he'd finished eating one of your nobles. Though perhaps he prefers a more athletic build? Something more... lunar?" She turned and lifted her tail with dramatic flair, her midnight blue coat making her marehood appear almost star-speckled in the evening light. Though smaller than me, she still towered over normal ponies, her alicorn heritage giving her a presence that commanded attention. Her teats, while not as full as my own maternal abundance, were still larger than any normal mare's, swaying gently as she struck what she clearly thought was an alluring pose. "What do you think, sister? Should I practice my presentation? After a thousand years, I might be a bit rusty..." "Luna," I warned, though I couldn't help smiling at her antics. "Don't even think about it." "Why not?" She maintained her pose, her starlit marehood still on display as she looked back at me. "You had your chance. Perhaps he'd appreciate a princess with a warrior's build rather than your..." she gestured at my fuller figure with her free hoof, "overwhelming bounty. Though I notice Swift Wing's small athletic teats didn't tempt him either..." "Because," I said patiently, trying not to laugh at her ridiculous display, "Twilight's acceptance of my offer was based on a lifetime of trust and mentorship. You've only recently returned. If you tried flagging your tail at her husband..." I let the implication hang. "She wouldn't dare attack a Princess," Luna scoffed, though her ears flattened slightly as she finally lowered her tail. "Besides, I heard she's already getting quite maternal in build herself. Perhaps Lord Timothy has developed a taste for fuller figures?" "She’s still the same mare who faced Nightmare Moon. Who's currently hormonal, protective, and carrying his foals?" I raised an eyebrow. "Are you really willing to test that theory?" Luna's confident pose wilted slightly. "Perhaps not. Though you have to admit, watching him handle that sword tonight... and the way he commands those guards..." She sighed wistfully. "It's been a thousand years since I've seen a stallion with such natural authority. And Velvet did suggest that humans can handle multiple mares..." "Luna..." "Fine, fine." She waved a hoof dismissively, though her marehood gave one last deliberate wink. "I won't seduce your student's husband. Though..." her grin turned mischievous again, "maybe in a few centuries, once she's had time to get used to me? I'm sure my teats will still be perkier than yours by then." I just shook my head, remembering the way Tim had looked at me - acknowledging what was offered while choosing what mattered more. "Some stallions are worth waiting for," I said softly. "And some are worth respecting enough to let them go." "Now you sound like one of Velvet's romance novels," Luna groaned. "Though speaking of waiting... exactly how long has it been since you've had a stallion properly appreciate your... abundance?" The pillow that hit her face was entirely justified. Even if she did have a point about those romance novels. And the waiting. * * * //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 24 - The Talk //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 24 - The Talk Twilight The morning sun filtered through the library windows, catching dust motes that danced in the early light. I fidgeted with my tea, watching Swift Wing organize patrol schedules with an efficiency that spoke of years of training. The silence between us felt heavy, charged with unspoken questions. "Did you ever tell him?" I finally asked, my voice barely above a whisper. "About what we discussed that day on the balcony?" Swift Wing's wings tightened against her sides, her quill freezing mid-stroke. "No," she said carefully, not meeting my eyes. "Why?" I took a slow breath, feeling my cheeks warm. "He made a joke last night. About how if my pregnant teats got too big, he could always ask you to balance things out." I watched her wings give that telling flutter. "He... admitted he likes your smaller, athletic build." The midnight-blue pegasus set down her quill with deliberate precision. "My lady, I would never-" "I know," I cut her off gently. "But Swift... I'm only seven weeks pregnant with twins. I can barely manage a third of what I used to only three weeks ago, and the hormones are making me..." I trailed off, my hoof pressed against my slightly swollen belly. "I'm afraid." Swift Wing's professional mask cracked slightly. "Afraid of what, my lady?" "That I won't be enough. That these changes..." I gestured to my increasingly maternal form, "will push him away. That he'll start noticing how much more... convenient an athletic pegasus would be." "He loves you," Swift Wing said firmly, though her wings gave another subtle flutter. "He's proven that time and again." "I know. But love doesn't always equal..." I struggled for the right words. "Physical satisfaction. And with everything changing - my body, my energy levels, my magic fluctuations - I can't help but worry." The silence stretched between us, heavy with implications and unspoken possibilities. Swift Wing shifted uncomfortably, her wings twitching. "My lady, what exactly are you suggesting?" "I think you know," I said softly. "The pregnancy is already affecting me, Swift. Seven weeks in and I can barely keep up with Tim's needs. We didn’t even try last night after the dinner party and the train ride back to Ponyville was… quiet. In a few months, or sooner..." I gestured to my swelling belly. "I might need help ensuring my husband stays satisfied." The pegasus guard's midnight-blue coat darkened visibly. "Lady Sparkle, are you actually suggesting that I... that you would allow me to..." "To help meet my husband's physical needs when I can’t. Yes. As painful as it is to admit it, I’d rather share him than lose him and if you told me three weeks ago those works would be coming out of my mouth, I’d have said you were crazy." I met her eyes steadily. "But only if you truly want to. The old requirements are gone - it would have to be your choice." "I..." Swift Wing's wings trembled. "Even if I admitted that I still want him, that being his 'sister' hasn't changed those feelings... I couldn't betray your trust." "It's not betrayal if I give permission." I watched her carefully. "So, tell me honestly - if Tim asked, and if you had my blessing, would you share his bed?" The silence stretched between us before Swift Wing whispered, "Yes. Celestia help me, yes. I've wanted him since that first day in the gym. Being his sister hasn't changed that; it's just made me love him differently too." I nodded, unsurprised. "Then we should probably discuss some ground rules. Before these pregnancy hormones drive all of us crazy. First rule," I said, my voice steady despite my racing heart, "nothing happens without my explicit permission each time. This isn't a blanket approval - I need to know when and why." Swift Wing nodded seriously. "Of course, my lady." "Second, this is about physical needs only. No private dates, no romantic gestures. Those belong to our marriage." I took a deep breath. "Third, you don't hide anything from me. Complete honesty about everything." "I understand," Swift Wing said softly. "Though... what about Rose Petal? She has similar feelings, even if she's better at hiding them." I considered this carefully. "One mare seems less complicated for everyone's emotions. And you're already more... open about your interest." I managed a small smile. "Plus, your athletic build really does counter-complement my current maternal state better. Rose is pretty but her body nearly matches my own in my pregnancy. She’ll be smaller than me eventually, but Tim needs a pony like you, unless you’d rather suggest one of the other three pegasus in the squad? Summer Breeze, Thunder Step or Sky Whisper?” "Rose will understand," Swift Wing agreed, then added hesitantly, "Though the other pegasi wouldn't be appropriate choices. Summer Breeze, Thunder Step and Sky Whisper - they're all excellent guards who would follow orders without question, just as we would have. But now that we have the right to choose..." She shifted her wings. "Well, they each have their own preferences and situations that make such arrangements... complicated. Summer Breeze would be the only other pegasus most likely to say yes, but only to further help protect her filly.” She looked uncertain. "My lady... are you sure about this? I know pregnancy hormones can affect judgment..." "I'm sure that I love my husband and want him satisfied. I'm sure that I trust you. And I'm sure that trying to ignore these feelings isn't helping anyone." I met her eyes. "The question is - are you sure? This would change things between all of us." Swift Wing's wings gave another flutter. "I'm sure that I want to help, in whatever way you both need. Even if that means navigating some... complicated emotions." "Then we should probably talk to Tim soon," I said, feeling another wave of hormones hit. "Before these twins drive me completely crazy." "Wait," Swift Wing caught my foreleg before I could stand, her expression serious. "There's one critical rule we haven't discussed." Her wings shifted nervously. "What about... precautions? If we're talking about meeting physical needs, we need to consider all potential consequences." I sat back down, understanding dawning. "You're right. Having one pregnant mare is complicated enough." I rubbed my swollen belly thoughtfully. "We'd need to be very careful about... timing and boundaries." "Exactly," Swift Wing said carefully. "I serve as your guard first. Carrying a foal would compromise that duty. Not to mention the emotional complications it would create for everyone." "Agreed," I nodded firmly. "We'll add that to the rules. No risks that could lead to... additional complications. This arrangement is about helping manage an existing situation, not creating new ones." "Thank you," Swift Wing's relief was visible. "I want to help, but I also need to maintain my ability to protect you both." * * * Tim I looked up from the medical text as Twilight and Swift Wing entered, noticing an unusual tension between them. The ancient tome's pages crackled as I turned the page. "What are you reading?" Twilight asked, settling beside me while Swift Wing maintained a conspicuously professional distance. "A book about pony pregnancy actually. I wanted to understand what we're facing, like a good husband should." I gestured to the detailed anatomical diagrams. "Apparently pony gestation is quite different from humans. You carry for eleven months, divided into four quarters of eleven weeks each, rather than a human’s three trimesters of twelve weeks." Twilight leaned closer to see the text, her horn sparking slightly. "And?" "And," I sighed, meeting her eyes seriously, "with twins, there are additional risks. The book strongly advises against intimate activities starting in the third quarter. Which means..." I trailed off, letting the implications sink in. "Five to six months?" Twilight's voice cracked slightly. "We won't be able to..." "Not without risking complications," I confirmed, noting how Swift Wing's wings tightened against her sides. "The pressure could trigger early labor or other issues. The book is very clear about this." The silence that followed was heavy with unspoken thoughts. I caught Twilight and Swift Wing exchanging meaningful looks, though I couldn't quite interpret its significance. "I see," Twilight said finally, her voice carefully controlled. "Well, that's... something we should probably discuss. As a family." Something in her tone made me look up sharply, but her expression revealed nothing. Swift Wing, however, seemed to be studying the ceiling with unusual intensity. "Tim," Twilight said carefully, settling beside me. "About that joke you made last night... about Swift Wing balancing things out if my pregnancy changes became too much..." I lowered the medical text, suddenly very aware of Swift Wing's professional stillness by the door. "I shouldn't have teased about that. It wasn't appropriate." "Actually," Twilight's voice wavered slightly, "it made me think. Even before knowing about these restrictions with twins, I've been worried. I'm only seven weeks in and already everything feels different. My energy, my body, my ability to..." she blushed. "Meet certain needs." "Honey," I started, but she pressed on. "I've been trying to figure out a contingency plan. Something to ensure you're satisfied without risking our marriage. That's what Swift Wing and I were just discussing upstairs." She glanced at the pegasus guard. "With the old requirements abolished, any arrangements would be purely voluntary. Based on trust and free choice." I looked between them, processing this. "You're seriously suggesting..." "That we might need help during this pregnancy. Yes." Twilight's hoof found my hand. "And now knowing we'll have at least five months of complete restriction..." She trailed off meaningfully. Swift Wing finally spoke, her voice carefully controlled. "Only with both of your consent. And with clear rules to protect everyone's hearts." I sat back, the medical text forgotten in my lap as I absorbed what they were proposing. The implications were enormous - for our marriage, for our guard relationships, for everything we'd built. "This isn't a decision we need to make right now," Twilight added quickly. "But with these new medical restrictions... we should at least discuss the possibility. As a family." The word 'family' hung in the air, carrying layers of meaning after everything we'd been through. I looked at Swift Wing - our guard, our sister, potentially something more complicated - and saw both dedication and carefully contained hope in her stance. "Perhaps," I said slowly, "we should all sit down and talk about exactly what rules you two had in mind." They shared another look, but I couldn’t tell what was happening. Was I failing a new test? I studied my wife carefully, seeing past her brave face to the genuine concern in her eyes. "Twilight, you know I love you. Only you. All this teasing about Swift Wing's athletic build or the guards' training... it's just talk." "I know," she pressed closer, her hoof finding my hand. "That's why I trust you enough to have this conversation. This isn't about attraction or desire - it's about practical needs during a complicated pregnancy." She gestured to the medical text. "Five months is a long time, Tim. And even before then..." "My lady speaks wisely," Swift Wing added quietly from her position by the door. "This wouldn't be about traditional protocols or even attraction. It would be about supporting a marriage we both respect, under carefully controlled circumstances." I closed the medical text, weighing their words. The logical part of my mind - the combat medic who understood biological needs and medical necessities - could see the reasoning. But the husband in me rebelled at the thought. "You're really okay with this?" I asked Twilight softly. "Not just pregnancy hormones talking?" "I'm okay with having a plan in place," she corrected. "With knowing there's a safety net if these medical restrictions become too challenging. Swift Wing has already agreed to strict rules - no romantic gestures, complete transparency, my explicit permission required each time..." "And absolutely no risk of additional complications," Swift Wing added firmly. "My primary duty remains protecting you both. That can't be compromised." I looked between them - my pregnant wife trying to be practical about our needs, our guard-sister offering a solution while still maintaining professional boundaries. It was so far from the traditional noble arrangements we'd fought against, yet somehow felt just as bad. They were proposing that I use her while Twilight couldn’t. It reminded me of the same conversation I had with Swift and Rose in the Embassy after the ‘training accident’. I wasn’t counting on things moving so fast, but neither was I counting on twins. "We should include Rose Petal in this discussion," I said finally, thinking it through. "Not to complicate things, but pegasi have natural cycles, the same as Earth Ponies, though, hopefully with different ‘in-season’ timings. If we're creating contingency plans, we need to be thorough." Twilight nodded, understanding. "One backup at a time though. Less emotional complications that way." "Agreed," Swift Wing's wings shuffled slightly. "Rose will understand. She's actually better at compartmentalizing these things than I am." "I want to be very clear," I said, meeting both their eyes. "This isn't about desire or traditional rights. This is about supporting my wife through a difficult pregnancy. Any... arrangements would be purely practical." "Of course," they chorused, though I caught Swift Wing's wings give that telling flutter. The words played through my head, and I got sick to my stomach. I can’t do this… * * * Twilight Tim stood up. “If you two will excuse me, I need to take a walk, alone.” I watched Tim disappear through the library doors, his shoulders tense with the weight of our conversation. The silence stretched until the sound of his boots on cobblestone faded completely. "Well?" I turned to Swift Wing. "What do you think?" The pegasus guard finally relaxed her professional stance, her wings spreading slightly in relief. "He's... exactly what we'd expect. Fiercely devoted to you, but logical enough to consider practical solutions." She paused thoughtfully. "Though he's definitely struggling with the idea." "I noticed that too," I shifted on the cushions, my slightly swollen belly a constant reminder of why we were having this conversation. "The way he kept emphasizing that it would be purely practical, not about desire..." Swift Wing's midnight-blue coat darkened slightly. "Even though we all know that's not entirely true. At least..." she glanced away, her wings giving that telling flutter, "not on my part." "He knows," I said softly. "That's why he's walking. Tim needs to reconcile his loyalty to me with the knowledge that you still want him - and that I'm basically giving permission." "Do you think he'll accept?" Her tone spoke of a wayward hope that made my heart clinch. She really does still want him… I considered this carefully. "Eventually. Once he's sure it won't hurt our marriage. Though I have to admit," I managed a small smile, "I didn't expect him to be the one insisting on including Rose Petal in the planning." "That's our commander," Swift Wing's professional mask cracked with affection. "Always thinking three steps ahead about contingencies. You were right about keeping it simple, but he’s right about timing. If we don’t want foals, he’ll need Rose when I’m not available and vice versa." "If we ever activate this contingency plan at all," I reminded her. "This is just... preparation. In case these medical restrictions become too challenging." Swift Wing's wings betrayed her thoughts on that likelihood, but she maintained a diplomatically neutral expression. "Of course, my lady. Just preparation.” We both knew it was more complicated than that, especially with real medical knowledge to back it up, but for now, watching my husband process the possibility of such an unprecedented arrangement seemed complicated enough. I knew that he didn’t date for a whole year after his first wife died in the car accident, but being by my side for six months and not being able to touch me would be far worse. * * * Twilight The sun had long set by the time Tim finally returned. His boots dragged on the floor as he entered our bedroom, exhaustion etched in every line of his face. It was the look of a man who had walked for hours, wrestling with demons of his own making and perhaps a few of mine. He looked like he had walked to Tartarus and back… maybe he did. "Tim," I said softly, reaching for him. He came to me slowly, almost hesitantly, before collapsing beside me on the bed. When his arms wrapped around me, I felt the slight tremor in his muscles - not just physical exhaustion, but emotional depletion. "I'm here," I whispered, nuzzling his chest. "Talk to me." His breath hitched, and I felt something wet against my withers. Tears. My strong, confident husband… was crying. "I've failed you," he choked out, his voice raw. "For you to think... to believe I couldn't wait five months... that I'd need..." He couldn't finish. My heart broke for him. All day he'd been torturing himself with this, turning our practical planning into some kind of moral failure on his part. "Tim, look at me," I said firmly, waiting until his tear-stained eyes met mine. "This isn't about failing anyone. This is about facing reality. I’m already feeling the effects and we might have to stop being intimate before we even reach the third quarter. Depending on the trauma of the birth itself, having these twins could mean months of recovery after birth before we can be intimate again. We're not talking about just five months - we could be looking at the better part of a year." He stilled against me, absorbing this new information. "A year?" "Depending on how much strain the pregnancy puts on my body, yes." I pressed closer, letting him feel the slight swell of our growing foals. "This isn't about your self-control or dedication. It's about me loving you enough to want you taken care of during a long medical separation." His tears fell faster, but something in his rigid posture softened slightly. "I just... I never want you to think you're not enough. That I need anyone else..." "I know," I brushed away his tears with my hoof. "That's exactly why I trust you with this contingency plan. Because you'd rather torture yourself with guilt than risk hurting me." Tim's voice was heavy with emotion. "There's more to my guilt, Twilight. We should choose guards who don't already harbor romantic feelings. Swift Wing and Rose Petal... they already want more than just physical comfort. It feels wrong to take advantage of that, even with your permission." I stroked his mane gently. "You're worried about emotional entanglements." "Yes. If we do this... it should be someone who can maintain professional distance. Dawn Star perhaps, or Forest Shadow. Even Maple Leaf. Not mares who already dream of something deeper." He met my eyes. "I respect what you're offering, but I'm afraid of the consequences. Not because I can't resist them, but because part of me doesn't want to." "You feel it would be a betrayal of their trust," I realized. "Taking advantage of the feelings that they've already developed." "A betrayal of your trust too. You want this to be physical only and I don’t think that’s going to work. Making them sisters was supposed to prevent complications, not create new ones. And now..." He trailed off, unable to finish. I pressed closer, understanding the depths of his conflict. "You're a good stallion, Tim. Most nobles wouldn't even consider the emotional impact on their guards or how it affects me." "That's what makes it worse," he admitted quietly. "I know they'd do anything I asked. But that kind of power... it should be used to protect, not exploit." Tim took a deep breath, clearly struggling with his next admission. "There's something else you need to know, before we finalize this decision. Something I'm deeply ashamed of." I nuzzled closer, encouraging him to continue. "Finishing inside you... it's my favorite part of our lovemaking," he confessed, his voice rough with emotion. "These rules would prevent that. And I hate that I want it anyway, even knowing the consequences. It feels like I’m betraying you on an even deeper level for even thinking about it.” "Tim..." I started, but he pressed on. "That's why Swift Wing and Rose Petal are the wrong choice. Not just because they already have feelings, but because I'm already attracted to them also. If I'm going to hate myself for wanting to finish inside another mare, it shouldn't be with someone I already desire. It's mentally cheating if I want them that way. Physically cheating too if I do it. The permission will expire but what if we can’t stop ourselves at that point?” I absorbed this, understanding the depths of his torment. Most stallions would have jumped at the opportunity without considering such implications. But Tim... he was tearing himself apart over the emotional and physical complexities. "You're worried about crossing a line that can't be uncrossed," I said softly. "Yes," he whispered. "Especially with mares who already mean something to me. Who became sisters to avoid exactly this kind of situation. There's another complexity," Tim said heavily. "With my new titles - Marquess of Crystal Vale, Master of the Eastern Marshes, Holder of the Dawn Gate Fortress... I'll be spending significant time in Eastern Equestria when I'm not required in Canterlot for the High Council or here in Ponyville with you." I nodded, the implications sinking in. "You won't always be able to travel with me, especially as the pregnancy progresses," he continued. "But if Swift Wing and Rose Petal became more than sisters... they'd always be there." His voice dropped lower. "And that's exactly why we can't use them for this arrangement. It would be too easy to justify more permanent changes, especially with my new political responsibilities." "The traditional solution," I said carefully, "would be to take them as secondary wives. Many nobles with multiple holdings maintain separate households..." "A herd," Tim agreed. "If we blur these lines now, it creates a pathway to justify traditional arrangements later. 'Oh, you need companionship at the Dawn Gate while Twilight handles embassy duties.' 'The Marquess should maintain a proper household in Crystal Vale.' We'd be opening a door we promised to keep closed. That herd conversation was 3 weeks ago!" I pressed closer, understanding the weight of what he was saying. My husband wasn't just refusing temptation - he was recognizing how easily practical necessity could transform into something more permanent. "Though now I understand why your mother chose them," he added with a hint of dark humor. "She saw these political appointments coming. Probably already had the household arrangements planned..." "Tim," I said softly, "are you saying you've actually considered...?" "I'd be lying if I said I hadn't thought about it," he admitted. "The political advantages alone... but that's exactly why we can't use Swift Wing and Rose Petal for this temporary arrangement. It would be too easy to rationalize making it permanent. And they deserve better than false hope or political convenience." I shifted uneasily, my hoof resting on my slightly swollen belly. "I've thought about it too," I admitted quietly. "Not just because of the politics, but... they do love you. Not just desire - real love. The kind that made Swift Wing take a Timberwolf's bite meant for you." Tim's arm tightened around me. "That's what makes this so complicated. They've proven their loyalty, their dedication... it would be so easy to justify. 'They already act like family.' 'They'd die to protect you.' 'The nobles would respect a Marquess with a proper herd.'" "Mother would be thrilled," I said with a weak laugh. "She's probably already designing the Dawn Gate's family quarters." "Twilight," Tim's voice grew serious. "I need you to understand something. Yes, I'm attracted to them. Yes, I've considered the political advantages. And yes, sometimes when I'm being completely honest with myself, I wonder what it would be like to have them always there, not just as guards or sisters..." My breath caught, but he continued. "But that's exactly why we can't use them for this pregnancy arrangement. Because every time I took one of them, every time we shared that intimacy... we'd be one step closer to making it permanent. And I won't let political convenience or physical desire change what we have." "Even if it means maintaining multiple households?" I asked softly. "Even when I'm heavily pregnant and can't travel to Crystal Vale or Dawn Gate?" "Especially then," he said firmly. "I won't build our future on compromises that started because you were worried about keeping me satisfied during pregnancy. You and our foals come first. Always." "Tim," I said carefully, choosing my words, "your heart is big, but you're looking at this the wrong way. Yes, Forest Shadow is attractive, and Maple Leaf deeply respects how you protect her filly, Autumn Spice. But we both know something about you - you can't have sex without emotional connection. It would break your heart more to be with someone you don't love than to be with Swift Wing or Rose Petal." He started to protest, but I pressed on. "You're trying to protect everyone's hearts, including your own. But forcing yourself to be intimate with a mare you don't have feelings for... that would damage you more than acknowledging the love that's already there." Tim was quiet for a long moment. "You're suggesting that trying to keep it purely physical would be more destructive than accepting the emotional reality?" "I've watched how you love," I said softly. "You can't separate physical intimacy from emotional connection. It's not who you are. Trying to do this with someone you don't care for would hurt you deeply - and probably them too, since they'd know they were just being used." "But Swift Wing and Rose..." he hesitated. "The political implications alone..." "Are going to exist regardless," I finished. "At least with them, there's real love. Real trust. Even if we never move beyond this temporary arrangement." "But don't you see the contradiction?" Tim sat up straighter despite his exhaustion, voice intense. "Your own rules said this was about physical needs only - no finishing inside, no emotional entanglements. Now you're telling me to choose mares I already love, but I can't fully have them? Can't marry them or love them completely?" I started to speak but he continued, his voice rough with emotion. "You're creating an impossible situation. Either I break the ‘physical only’ rules because I'm with mares I genuinely care for, or worse, I break everyone’s heart when those feelings deepen because you've essentially given permission for the emotional connection while restricting the physical expression, which will leave everyone unsatisfied.” He ran a hand through his hair in frustration. "These rules conflict with each other, Twilight. You can't tell me to pick mares I love but then say I can't fully love them. That's cruel to everyone involved. It's like... like giving a starving man just enough food to keep him hungry." I felt my ears flatten as the truth of his words sank in. "I didn't think of it that way..." "Either this is purely physical - in which case it should be with guards who can maintain emotional distance - or we need to have a much more serious discussion about what we're really doing here." His voice softened. "Because right now, you're asking me to love Swift and Rose just enough to make it meaningful, but not enough to threaten you. That's not fair to anypony." The implications hung heavy in the air between us. In trying to be practical about the pregnancy situation, I'd inadvertently created an emotional minefield. I pressed closer to Tim, feeling the weight of his words. "You're right. I was trying to find a middle ground that doesn't exist. Asking you to love them enough to make it meaningful but not enough to threaten our marriage... that's impossible." "And unfair to them," Tim added softly. "They deserve better than half-measures. Better than being told 'I love you, but only this much.' That's not how love works." "No," I agreed quietly. "It's not." I was silent for a moment, then asked, "When did you become so wise about matters of the heart?" "Probably around the same time I fell in love with a unicorn who turned my whole world upside down," he smiled slightly. "Though your mother's romance novels might have helped. Even if most of them seem to end with everyone in one big happy herd..." "Tim," I hesitated, then pressed on. "What if... what if we're approaching this whole situation backwards? Instead of trying to set rules and boundaries, maybe we should be honest about what's already happening in our hearts?" He stilled beside me. "What exactly are you suggesting?" "I'm saying... maybe we need to stop pretending this is just about pregnancy and physical needs. Stop acting like we can control how hearts work." I took a deep breath. "Maybe we need to talk about what we really want. All of us." * * * Tim I studied my wife carefully, seeing both fear and determination in her eyes. "Twilight, are you really suggesting what I think you are?" "I'm suggesting," she said carefully, "that we stop pretending. Stop making rules we know will break hearts. Stop acting like we can control feelings that are already there." I felt my chest tighten. "You mean acknowledging that I already love them. That making them sisters didn't change those feelings, just gave them a different shape." "Yes," she whispered. "And admitting that I'm not just jealous of their bodies anymore. I'm jealous because I see how they look at you - with the same love I feel. And somehow that's both better and worse than pure physical attraction." "But what about your stance on herds?" I asked cautiously. "You've been very clear about not sharing." "I was clear about not sharing you with mares who just want your body or your position," she corrected. "This is... different. They've proven their love - not just for you, but for our family. Swift Wing took a Timberwolf's bite meant for you. Rose Petal stands guard over Sara like she's her own filly, despite not even being a mother yet herself." "And that makes it better?" I pressed, needing to understand. "The fact that they truly love me makes it easier to consider sharing?" "No," Twilight admitted, her voice barely a whisper. "It makes it harder. But it also makes it more real. More honest than just trying to solve a pregnancy problem with physical arrangements." I pulled her closer, feeling the slight swell of her belly against me. "You do realize if we open this door, there's no closing it? No going back to simple guard-sister relationships?" "I know," Twilight pressed her muzzle against my chest. "And I'm terrified. But I'm more scared of what happens if we keep pretending. If we try to maintain these artificial boundaries until something breaks." I stroked her mane gently. "Like what happened with the Timberwolf? When Swift Wing nearly died for me, and all I could think was 'I can't lose her' - not as a guard or a sister, but as someone I love?" "Exactly," she whispered. "Or when Rose Petal stands watch through the night, not because it's her duty, but because she loves our family enough to sacrifice her own rest. These aren't just personal guards anymore, Tim. They haven't been for a while." "But once we acknowledge that..." I let the implications hang. "Then Mother wins," Twilight managed a weak laugh. "She'll be absolutely insufferable about her guard selections being perfect. Though I doubt even she anticipated them loving you enough to become real family first." "There's still the political considerations," I reminded her. "A Marquess with a herd formed with Royal Guards instead of born noblemares would be seen very differently than a human Knight and General who made his guards honorary sisters." "I know. But maybe..." she hesitated. "Maybe that's not entirely bad? You'll need loyal support at Dawn Gate and Crystal Vale. Mares who love you, not just serve you." I shifted carefully. "You know once we start down this path, the other guards will have... expectations. Velvet-approved expectations." "I know," Twilight sighed. "Though I think Swift Wing and Rose Petal are special cases. They became sisters first, proved their love goes deeper than duty or desire." She gave a small laugh. "Mother probably didn't expect her carefully selected seductresses to take the family route before the romantic one." "No," I agreed softly. "She was counting on traditional arrangements, not genuine love growing from chosen family bonds." I paused, choosing my next words carefully. "But Twilight... if we do this, it has to be all or nothing. No more rules about finishing inside or emotional limits. That would just build resentment." She tensed slightly against me. "You want foals with them too?" "I want honesty," I corrected gently. "If we're going to acknowledge real love, we can't put artificial restrictions on how that love expresses itself. That includes the possibility of foals, even if it scares us. If I marry them, foals would be expected, would it not?" "It does scare me," she admitted. "Not just the physical aspects, but... what if their foals are more athletic like Swift Wing, or stronger like Rose Petal? What if you prefer them to ours?" "Twilight," I drew her closer, resting my hand on her swollen belly. "Our foals will be perfect because they're ours. The first human-pony hybrids, born from a love that crossed worlds. Nothing could make me prefer any other foals more." "But you might love their foals just as much," she said softly. "And that... that's what really scares me. Not that you'd prefer them, but that you'd love them equally. That your heart is big enough for all of it." "I should love all my foals equally, I hope that would make me a good dad," I admitted. "But you'll always be first. The mare who changed my whole world, who gave me a family when I was alone. My first and greatest love." I kissed her horn gently. "Adding more love doesn't diminish what we have - it just means our family grows." "Like with Sara," Twilight said thoughtfully. "Loving these twins doesn't make me love her any less. It just means more foals to cherish." "Exactly. Though we should probably talk to her about all this first. She's already worried about us getting divorced - finding out she's getting two more mommies might be a bit much right now." Twilight actually laughed at that. "Can you imagine? 'Sweetie, remember how Daddy made Swift Wing and Rose Petal his sisters? Well, now they're going to be your other mothers too...'" "At least she already likes them," I pointed out. "Though explaining why Swift Wing's marehood ended up in my face during 'training' might be a conversation we save for when she's older. Much older." "Tim!" But Twilight was fighting back giggles now. "We're trying to have a serious discussion about our future!" "I am being serious and I want to be very clear about something," I said, growing serious again. "I turned down Celestia - the most powerful mare in Equestria - because I didn't want to risk what we have. I don't want a spouse who outranks you politically. Even with my new titles, I wouldn't consider a noblemare above Viscountess for that reason." Twilight's ears perked forward with interest. "You've actually thought about the political implications?" "Of course. Guards have no real political power, at least until they reach General rank. A proper herd would be morally better than keeping mistresses like most nobles do." I squeezed her hoof gently. "But none of that matters if expanding our family costs me my first and truest love." "Tim..." Twilight's voice wavered. "You've really planned this all out?" "I've considered every angle," I admitted. "Political, practical, emotional. I’ve walked all day doing nothing but thinking. But it always comes back to you. I won't do anything that risks our marriage. Even if that means telling Swift Wing and Rose Petal that we have to maintain boundaries." "Even though you love them?" "Even then. Because I love you more." I met her eyes steadily. "This only works if you're completely certain. No jealousy, no resentment, no power plays. Just real love and trust between all of us." Twilight was quiet for a long moment. "And if I'm not certain? If I need more time?" "Then we wait," I said simply. "They're not going anywhere. Being sisters is enough for now." * * * Twilight Tim's next words hit me like a physical blow. "Your health is more fragile than the medical guides suggest it should be at this point," he said carefully. "Maybe that’s because they're hybrids. We don't really know what to expect." I pressed a hoof against my swollen belly, acknowledging the truth in his words. My magic was already unstable, my energy levels lower than they should be this early. "We should have time to discuss this rationally," he continued. "Four months until that third quarter, unless..." He trailed off meaningfully. "Unless the doctor says we have to stop sooner," I finished quietly. "You're right. It feels like we're rushing into this because we're afraid of running out of time." "It's not like I'm marrying them tomorrow just because we're worried about future intimacy issues." His hand found my hoof. "That's not fair to anyone - not you, not them, not to me or our marriage." The weight of his words settled over me. In my rush to solve potential problems, I'd been pushing us toward life-changing decisions without proper consideration. "I've been panicking, haven't I?" I asked softly. "About everything - the pregnancy, the guards, your new titles..." "Most men would just blame the pregnancy for their wives' irrational decisions," Tim said gently, squeezing my hoof. "But we're not just any couple. We're important people - a Military Governor and an Ambassador. Countess and Marquess. Ponies are counting on us." I felt my ears droop slightly as his words sank in. "We can't help them if we can't help ourselves, or each other," he continued. "Making rushed decisions about our marriage and family out of fear or hormones... that's not the kind of leaders we need to be." "Or the kind of parents," I added softly, rubbing my belly. "These foals deserve parents who make careful choices, not reactive ones." "Careful planning. And Swift Wing and Rose Petal deserve better than being a solution to a temporary problem." He paused thoughtfully. "If we do expand our family, it should be because it's right for everyone, not because we're worried about my physical needs during your pregnancy." "Or because we're afraid you'll get hurt when I can't travel with you," I admitted. "I've been so scared of losing you - to injury, to distance, to other mares... I haven't been thinking clearly at all. You know what scares me most?" I asked, settling closer to Tim. "That if we wait, if we take time to think this through... we might realize it's the wrong choice entirely." "And that's exactly why we should wait," Tim replied. "Real love can withstand careful consideration. If expanding our family is right, it'll still be right after we've thought it through properly." "But what if..." I hesitated, voicing my deepest fear. "What if they find someone else while we're being cautious? What if we lose them because we waited too long?" Tim's expression softened. "If their love is that fragile - if they'd choose someone else just because we took time to make sure this was right for everyone - then they weren't the right choice for our family anyway." "There aren’t a lot of male relationship coaches, where did you learn this?" I asked, managing a small smile. "Your mother’s books are good about exploring every possibility, even the distasteful ones." He brushed my mane back gently. "Swift Wing and Rose Petal deserve our best consideration, not our rushed fears. And definitely not, ‘Oh, I dropped the bread in the oven, and I need to bend over completely to reach it…’” I slapped him with my tail while acknowledging his point. "So, we wait," I said softly. "We think. We plan. We make sure this is right for everyone - including Sara and the twins." "Exactly. And if intimacy becomes an issue sooner than expected..." He squeezed my hoof. "We'll face that challenge when it comes. Together." "So, what do we tell them?" I asked quietly. "Swift Wing and Rose Petal have been so patient, learning to be sisters when they wanted more..." "We tell them the truth," Tim replied. "That we care too much about them to rush into anything. That any changes to our family need to be carefully considered, not driven by pregnancy fears or political convenience." "Will they understand?" I pressed closer to him. "After everything they've been through, after proving their love so completely..." "If they truly love us, they'll understand wanting to do this right." Tim's voice carried quiet conviction. "And if they don't... well, that tells us something important too, doesn't it?" I considered this. "Like how they handled becoming sisters instead of lovers. They adapted, showed they could put family before desire." Tim nodded. “They've already proven they can handle delayed gratification, can love us without demanding more." His hand found my belly again. "Let's see if they can handle careful consideration too." "Speaking of careful consideration," Tim said, "I'm curious about something. When did you start seeing them differently? Not just as threats to our marriage, but as potential family?" I considered this carefully. "After the Timberwolf attack. When Swift Wing took that bite for you... it wasn't duty or desire driving her. It was pure love." I paused. "And Rose Petal's face when you were bleeding - she wasn't thinking about seducing you. She was terrified of losing you, just like I was. Shocking… since that was still on the first day they were both with us.” "They proved their love before we even considered this possibility," Tim nodded. "That's worth taking time to honor properly, not rushing because of pregnancy concerns." "Though we should probably tell them soon," I added. "About their potential future with us being a possibility we're considering. They deserve to know why we're taking time to think things through." "Tomorrow," Tim suggested. "After we've both had time to process this ourselves. This isn't just about adding to our family - it's about changing everything we thought we wanted." "Including my stance on sharing," I admitted quietly. "I never thought I'd consider this. But then again, I never thought I'd fall in love with a human either. Sometimes the best things in life aren't what we planned." * * * Tim I watched Swift Wing and Rose Petal enter our private study, their military postures doing little to hide their nervous anticipation. The exchange of glances between them suggested they'd been discussing Twilight's earlier conversation with Swift - though given my wife's penchant for blunt pregnancy-induced honesty lately, that might make this even more interesting. "Please, sit," Twilight said softly. Once they'd settled, she continued, "First, I need to be honest about something. The pregnancy... it's already more complicated than we expected. The medical text says I need to be extremely careful, and I’m worried about what the doctors will say." The guards' ears perked with concern. Swift Wing's wings twitched like she wanted to reach out to comfort Twilight, her protective instincts warring with professional distance. "Which brings us to a difficult conversation," I took over. "Swift Wing, the arrangement Twilight discussed with you earlier... it wouldn't work. Not because it's wrong, but because it's not enough." Both guards stiffened slightly. Rose Petal found her voice first: "Sir?" "Creating rules about physical comfort without acknowledging emotional bonds would only hurt everyone involved," I explained carefully. "So instead of dancing around the issue, I want to ask you both something directly." I met their eyes steadily. "How would you feel about marrying me? Not as a solution to pregnancy complications or political convenience, but because there's already love between us that deserves proper consideration?" Their professional masks cracked completely. Swift Wing's wings snapped tight against her sides while Rose Petal's crimson coat darkened visibly. The silence stretched between us, heavy with possibility. Swift Wing found her voice first, though it trembled slightly. "Marriage? Not just... arrangements while Lady Sparkle is pregnant?" "No more temporary solutions or half-measures," I confirmed. "If we do this, it would be real. Permanent. You'd be my wives, not just guards who help during pregnancy." "But," Rose Petal glanced uncertainly at Twilight, "what about your stance on herds? On sharing?" "That's why we're having this conversation now," Twilight spoke up. "Before making any decisions. We need everyone to understand precisely what this would mean." "When did this change?" Swift Wing asked softly. "Your views on sharing, my lady?" Twilight pressed closer to me before answering. "After the Timberwolf attack. Watching you take that bite meant for Tim... it wasn't duty or desire driving you. It was pure love." She turned to Rose Petal. "And your face when he was bleeding - you weren't thinking about seducing him. You were terrified of losing him, just like I was." "That's what makes this different," I added. "You proved your love before we even considered this possibility. Not through traditional protocols or noble expectations, but through real sacrifice." "There's more to consider," I continued, watching their reactions carefully. "With my new titles - Marquess of Crystal Vale, Master of the Eastern Marshes, Holder of the Dawn Gate Fortress - these wouldn't be merely ceremonial marriages." Swift Wing's wings shifted with interest. "What do you mean, sir?" "Dawn Gate needs a proper commander. Someone who understands both military strategy and noble politics. The griffon clans won't respect a fortress run by a mere guard captain." I met Swift Wing's eyes directly. "They would, however, respect a General who earned her position through both combat prowess and proven loyalty." "And Crystal Vale's trade routes," Twilight added, glancing at Rose Petal, "need protection from someone who understands earth pony connections to the land. Real authority, not just delegated power." Rose Petal straightened slightly. "You're suggesting we'd have actual command? Not just noble titles?" "The positions would come with General's rank," I confirmed. "Though the nobles might have... opinions about guard-wives rising to such positions." "Let them complain," Twilight said with surprising fierceness. "You've both proven yourselves more worthy than any born noblemare." "Though speaking of nobles," Swift Wing ventured carefully, "what about... higher ranking ones? There have been rumors about Princess Celestia's interest..." "I turned down the most powerful mare in Equestria," I said firmly, squeezing Twilight's hoof. "I don't want any wife who outranks Twilight politically. Even with my new titles, I wouldn't consider a noblemare above Viscountess." "You've actually thought about the political implications?" Rose Petal asked, her professional mask cracking with curiosity. "Of course. Guards have no real political power, at least until they reach General rank. A proper herd would be morally better than keeping mistresses like most nobles do." I met their eyes steadily. "But none of that matters if expanding our family costs me my first and truest love. There's another consideration," I said, leaning forward. "How we handle this publicly. The nobles will watch our every move, especially given my new status as Marquess." Swift Wing's wings shuffled thoughtfully. "The griffons especially will want to understand the command structure at Dawn Gate. They respect strength, but they also respect clear hierarchies." "Then we show them," Twilight suggested. "Let them see how Swift Wing earned her position - not through noble birth but through proven loyalty and combat skill." "Though perhaps," Rose Petal ventured carefully, "we need a formal way to acknowledge our status during this consideration period? Something that explains our positions to both nobles and common ponies?" "Actually," Twilight's ears perked with interest, "there is an old noble title for this situation. In traditional Equestrian nobility, a mare being formally courted for marriage was called a 'Lady-Elect.' It indicated serious intent without final commitment." "Lady-Elect Swift Wing of Dawn Gate," I tested the words. "Lady-Elect Rose Petal of Crystal Vale. It has a certain dignity to it. Better than trying to explain 'guard-sister who might become wife.'" "The griffons would understand that," Twilight added. "They respect proper courtship protocols. Some of their own courtship rituals last years." "Using those titles will make this very public," Rose Petal noted, her professional demeanor wavering slightly. "The other guards will know immediately what it means." "Some of them might have hoped for similar consideration," Swift Wing added softly. "Given how Lady Velvet selected all twelve of us..." I leaned back, considering this carefully. "Then we need to handle the announcement properly. The old guard protocols included challenge rights for marriage positions, didn't they?" Both guards tensed slightly. Twilight's ears flattened as she processed the implications. "Challenges?" she asked, her voice carrying a hint of worry. "You want to let them fight over you?" "It's traditional," Swift Wing explained gently. "When positions of such importance are involved..." "Besides," I squeezed Twilight's hoof reassuringly, "I trust our sisters to defend what's theirs. Unless you think Forest Shadow's combat skills match Swift Wing's aerial maneuvers?" "Well, no," Twilight admitted. "Though after that marehood incident during 'training', I'm not sure if that's a good thing or a bad thing..." "My lady!" Swift Wing's wings snapped tight against her sides while Rose Petal tried desperately not to laugh. "What? If we're going to be wives sharing the same stallion, we should be able to joke about these things." Twilight's innocent expression fooled nopony. "Besides, I hear pegasus marehoods have excellent trajectory..." "Twilight!" I stared at her in shock. "These pregnancy hormones really are something else..." "Oh please," she rolled her eyes. "Like you haven't been dying to make that joke since it happened. I just beat you to it." Rose Petal cleared her throat, her crimson coat still darkened from embarrassment. "Perhaps we should focus on the actual announcement? Some of the guards might take this... personally." "Forest Shadow hasn't exactly been subtle about her interest," Swift Wing agreed. "And Maple Leaf clearly wants more than just protection for Autumn Spice." "Then we set clear rules," I decided. "Any challengers must demonstrate both combat ability and command potential. This isn't just about fighting skill - they'd need to prove they could lead armies and protect our family." "We should establish firm timelines," Twilight suggested, her practical nature asserting itself. "We can't have challenges dragging on while you need to establish control of your territories." "One week to declare challenges," I nodded. "Another week to complete them. That gives us time afterward to focus on what truly matters." "And victory conditions?" Swift Wing asked, her wings shifting with professional interest. "Three solid hits or clear submission in combat," I specified. "No permanent injuries. The tactical trials will involve defending your respective territories while protecting family." "Dawn Gate's trial should include griffon diplomatic scenarios," Rose Petal suggested. "And Crystal Vale's could focus on trade route protection." "Speaking of Dawn Gate," Swift Wing ventured carefully, "the griffons will want to understand exactly how a former guard became Lady of such a strategic fortress." "Then we tell them the truth," I said firmly. "That you earned it through real sacrifice - not political maneuvering or noble birth. Warrior cultures respect that kind of dedication." "They have a saying," Twilight added, her voice softening. "'Blood spilled in battle binds deeper than blood of birth.' When Swift Wing took that bite meant for you..." "It proved she was already family," Rose Petal finished quietly. "Just like how I would have done the same, had I been closer." "I need to see what I rule," I said seriously. "I should probably visit all three cities in Crystal Vale and inspect Dawn Gate Fortress. And it needs to be soon - my new subjects should meet their Marquess." Swift Wing and Rose Petal exchanged glances while Twilight pressed closer to me. "I'd love for all three of you to come with me, at least for this first trip," I continued. "Let the nobles and common ponies see us working together. But..." I glanced at Twilight with concern, "I'm not sure if you're well enough to travel. The pregnancy is already affecting you more than we expected." "The doctor did say to be careful," Twilight admitted reluctantly. "Especially with magical transportation. And it's too far to travel by carriage in my condition. A train wouldn’t be much easier. Crystal Vale is four times the distance than Canterlot and the ride to and from Canterlot was hard." "Which means," Rose Petal said carefully, "we'd be alone with you. During this consideration period." "Yes," Twilight replied before I could. "And I need to be okay with that. Need to trust both you and Tim to maintain boundaries while you're away." She managed a small smile. "Consider it a test of everyone's commitment to doing this right." "Alternatively," I suggested, "We split the trips. Dawn Gate first, with just Swift Wing since her aerial abilities would be more useful at a fortress. Then Crystal Vale with Rose Petal, where her earth pony connection to trade and agriculture would be more relevant." "That would be more practical," Swift Wing agreed, though her wings tightened against her sides. "And perhaps... less challenging to maintaining boundaries." "And easier for me to handle emotionally," Twilight admitted softly. "Knowing you're with one potential wife at a time rather than both." "And if I'm feeling stronger," Twilight suggested, "maybe I could join you for the last city? Show a united front to the nobles, let them see us working together..." "I would love that," I agreed warmly. "And we could arrange the itinerary strategically. Make the last city either closest to Ponyville or Canterlot, or wherever the train line runs. We’ll try to make this as easy as possible.” "The southern city of Crystal Vale has a direct rail line," Rose Petal offered. "It's one of the major trade hubs. We could schedule that last, make it easier for Lady Sparkle to join us." "And start with Dawn Gate," Swift Wing added. "It's the furthest away and the most militarily critical. The nobles there will want to meet their new commander quickly, especially with the recent griffon raids along the eastern border. There are rumors that one of their more aggressive clans is testing our defenses." Twilight nodded slowly. "That makes sense. Dawn Gate first with Swift Wing, then the northern Crystal Vale cities with Rose Petal, and finally the southern hub together." She managed a small smile. "By then I should be past the worst of the morning sickness, at least." "And it gives everyone time," I said carefully. "Swift Wing can evaluate what commanding a border fortress would really mean. Rose Petal can assess the trade responsibilities at Crystal Vale. And you, my love, can adjust to the idea of me traveling with them individually." "The winter solstice is in three months," Twilight noted, her practical nature emerging. "Dawn Gate needs proper leadership established before the worst storms, and Crystal Vale's spring markets will need oversight..." "A natural deadline then," I suggested. "Though if everyone's certain sooner..." Twilight's ears flattened slightly. "What if... what if during these trips, things become... heated? Three months is a long time to maintain boundaries, especially with the old requirements gone." Swift Wing's wings snapped tight against her sides while Rose Petal's coat darkened visibly. "My lady," Rose Petal started carefully, "we would never..." "You might not plan to," Twilight interrupted softly, "but feelings happen. Moments happen. And I need to be clear - I'd rather know about it than have you hide it from me. If... if something does happen sooner than three months..." "We tell you immediately," Swift Wing finished firmly. "No secrets, no guilt. Though we'll try our best to maintain boundaries until we're all ready." "And if one of you is certain before the other?" I asked, watching their reactions. "Then we respect that too," Rose Petal replied. "This isn't a race. Each of us needs to be completely sure, even if that means different timelines." "Twilight," I said gently, turning to my wife. "We need to be clear about something. These aren't mistresses or temporary arrangements we're considering. The love is already there - we're just giving everyone time to be sure about making it permanent." Her ears flattened slightly. "I know, but..." "But you're afraid of being hurt," I finished softly. "Of feeling left out or replaced. But love isn't a finite resource - it grows. If I can't trust you to handle their love for me, or if you can't trust me to love you no less if something happens sooner than three months..." "Then we shouldn't be considering this at all," Twilight finished, understanding dawning in her eyes. "You're right. I can't ask them to prove their love while doubting yours." "The winter solstice is a good target," I agreed, "but forcing ourselves to wait if we're all certain sooner would be artificial. Just like rushing would be if anyone needs more time." "Besides," Rose Petal added carefully, "some of us have been loving you both for quite a while already. We just needed permission to show it." Swift Wing's wings gave that telling flutter of agreement. "With respect, my lady... I'd sleep with him today if I didn't think it would damage your marriage. I'm ready now. I'd do it in front of you to show my commitment. I was willing when you asked me to help during your pregnancy." Her midnight-blue coat darkened as she met Twilight's eyes directly. "But this isn't about what I want or how ready I am. You need more time to accept this than I do, and that's okay. Your marriage matters more than my desires." Twilight's breath caught, her cheeks darkening at Swift Wing's blunt admission. Part of her wanted to be scandalized by such boldness, but another part... admired it. This wasn't some noble mare playing political games - this was pure, honest devotion. "I... appreciate your candor," she managed finally. "And your restraint. Knowing you'd put our marriage above your own desires, even when I'm the one who first suggested..." She swallowed hard. "That's exactly why this could work." "Both of your hearts are already his," Rose Petal added gently. "We're just waiting for them to align." "Damn..." I tugged at my collar. "Some guys like a girl that plays hard to get. Don't make it too easy... that tail already doesn't hide much." Swift Wing's midnight-blue coat darkened further, but her reply carried a hint of mischief. "I could have my tail trimmed so it hides less, like a natural thong." "I sure hope Dawn Gate has cold showers..." I muttered, making all three mares blush. "Speaking of arrangements," I said carefully, glancing between Swift Wing and Rose Petal. "Traditional herd wives often... bond with each other. I should know if you two plan to follow that tradition. The current travel schedule would keep you apart as much as it separates me from Twilight." Both guards' coats darkened visibly. Rose Petal found her voice first. "We... haven't really discussed it, sir." "Though it would be traditional," Swift Wing added softly, her wings giving that telling flutter as she glanced at Rose Petal. "Then perhaps we need to adjust the schedule to give you both time together as well," I suggested. "If you're going to be wives sharing the same stallion, you should have the chance to explore all aspects of that relationship." "Tim!" Twilight swatted me with her tail, though her blush suggested the topic wasn't entirely unwelcome. "Are you actually trying to arrange alone time for your potential wives to... bond?" "I'm being practical," I defended. "Besides, if they're going to be my wives, I should know what to expect when we're all together..." "Really?" Rose Petal arched an eyebrow. "Planning for some adventurous nights already?" "What? No! I mean... unless you're all interested..." I tugged at my collar. "Is it getting warm in here?" "TIM!" All three mares exclaimed, though their matching blushes suggested the thought wasn't entirely offensive. "There's something else we need to consider," I said carefully. "How we handle these three months of consideration. We can't just continue as guard-sisters and suddenly become wives." Twilight nodded thoughtfully. "We need time to adjust to being equals, at least in private. To learn how to be family without titles or protocol between us." "Though in public," Swift Wing started hesitantly. "In public, proper titles and protocol matter," I agreed. "But in private, among family? I'd be Tim. She'd be Twilight. You'd be our equals, not our guards." "That... might take some getting used to," Rose Petal admitted. "We've spent so long maintaining professional distance." "Which is why I suggest we have regular family dinners," Twilight offered. "All of us together, learning to be comfortable without ranks between us." "Just family," I emphasized. "No titles, no formality. A chance to truly know each other beyond duty and protocol." Swift Wing's wings shuffled nervously. "You'd really want that? Time together just as... family?" "Of course," Twilight said softly. "If we're considering making this permanent, we need to know we can be comfortable together. All of us." "And not just with Tim," Rose Petal noted carefully. "We'd need to build real bonds between all of us." "Exactly," I nodded. "This isn't about traditional herd dynamics. It's about creating something genuine between all four of us." "There's another aspect of traditional herds we should discuss," Rose Petal ventured carefully. "About intimacy between all of us, not just with Tim..." "You're wondering about relationships between wives," Twilight finished quietly. "It's common in traditional herds for the wives to... bond." Swift Wing's wings gave that telling flutter. "We don't expect... that is... we would never presume..." "No expectations either way," I said firmly. "Whatever happens between you and Twilight - or doesn't happen - has to develop naturally. No pressure, no assumptions." "Exactly," Twilight agreed. "This isn't about recreating traditional herd dynamics. It's about building something real and honest between all of us." "Though," Rose Petal ventured hesitantly, "we do already love you too, Lady Sparkle. Not just as our commander's wife, but as family. As someone we want to protect and support." "That's why this could work," I said softly. "Because the love is already there between all of us - it just needs the freedom to find its own shape." Twilight's ears flattened slightly as she considered this. "I love you both as family, and I want us to be close... but I don't think I could..." She hesitated, choosing her words carefully. "My heart and body belong to Tim alone. I hope you can understand that." "Of course, my lady," Swift Wing said quickly. "We would never expect or pressure..." "Though that doesn't diminish the bond between us," Rose Petal added softly. "Family love takes many forms." "That's exactly right," I agreed. "No expectations, no pressure. Just honest love and respect between all of us." "Though perhaps," Twilight suggested with a small smile, "we should save certain topics for when we're more comfortable. Like training accidents involving specific body parts..." "My lady!" Swift Wing's wings snapped tight against her sides while Rose Petal fought back a laugh. "What? We're all adults here. Besides," Twilight's eyes sparkled with mischief, "if we're going to be wives together, we should be able to joke about these things." I studied them both - these mares who had chosen family bonds over traditional arrangements, who had proven their love through actions rather than protocols. After speaking of such intimacy and future closeness, the moment felt heavy with new possibility. "May I kiss you?" I asked softly. "Not as a seduction or a claim, but as a promise of what we're considering?" Both guards froze, their professional demeanor cracking completely. Swift Wing's wings gave that telling flutter while Rose Petal's crimson coat darkened visibly. They glanced uncertainly at Twilight. "It's okay," she said softly. "A kiss to seal this promise of consideration. To show we're serious about exploring this properly." Swift Wing moved first, her usual athletic grace turned hesitant as she approached. Rose Petal followed, her earth pony strength gentled by uncertainty. I kissed them each softly, chastely - a promise of possibility, not passion. "That's the last until we decide," I said firmly, though my voice had roughened slightly. "Three months of clear minds and careful thought." "Though maybe," Twilight added with a small smile, "we can end each family dinner the same way. One kiss to remind us what we're working toward." The guards straightened, something new in their eyes - not just hope or desire, but real understanding of what we were building. Not a traditional herd or noble arrangement, but something deeper. Something worth waiting for. Swift Wing touched her muzzle gently, where my kiss still lingered. "That was... different from what I imagined." "More real," Rose Petal agreed softly. "Not like the romantic fantasies from Lady Velvet's novels." "Because it comes with responsibility," I explained. "With the weight of what we're really considering. This isn't about passion or politics - it's about building a future together." "Speaking of my mother," Twilight sighed, though there was affection in her voice, "she's going to be impossibly smug about this. Her carefully selected guards becoming real family..." "Though probably not quite how she planned," I pointed out. "I doubt she expected you to become sisters first, to prove your love went deeper than duty or desire." "Oh gods," Twilight groaned. "I can already see the novel outline - 'The Guard Sisters' Choice: From Family to Forever.'" "Complete with detailed descriptions of training accidents?" Rose Petal suggested innocently, her earlier embarrassment giving way to tentative humor. "And tactical marehood deployments," Swift Wing added, her wings giving that telling flutter even as she smiled. "Though speaking of tactics," I said, growing serious again, "we should discuss how to handle the announcement. Captain Dawn Star could gather everyone for an official briefing." "How do you think they'll react?" Twilight asked softly. "The other guards have been watching us closely since you made Swift Wing and Rose Petal your sisters." "Some will understand," Swift Wing replied thoughtfully. "They've seen how our family bonds developed naturally. Others..." "Like Forest Shadow," Rose Petal added carefully, "might feel they deserve similar consideration." "Forest Shadow wants the position more than she wants Tim," Twilight observed with surprising insight. "But Maple Leaf... she truly wants a father for Autumn Spice." I nodded slowly. "After what happened with Bronze Star, she's seen how I protect family. It's not just about marriage for her - it's about securing her daughter's future." "Which makes her a more serious challenger," Swift Wing's wings shifted with concern. "A mother fighting for her filly's future can be surprisingly fierce." "Then we need to be absolutely clear," I said firmly. "These aren't just marriage positions. They're military commands requiring both combat skill and leadership ability." "And love," Twilight added softly. "Real love, not just desire for position or protection." Rose Petal straightened slightly. "You truly believe we can defend our positions? Not just in combat, but in proving our hearts?" "I wouldn't have kissed you if I didn't," I replied simply. "Though perhaps we should head to the main hall. The sooner we make this announcement, the sooner we deal with any challenges." "We should go," I said, rising to my feet. "Dawn Star can gather everyone in the main hall." "Wait," Twilight caught my hoof, her expression turning serious. "Before we face them all... are we absolutely sure about this? Once we make the announcement..." "There's no going back to just being guard-sisters," Swift Wing finished softly. I looked at each of them - my wife, carrying our precious twins; Swift Wing, who'd nearly died protecting me; Rose Petal, who guarded our family with such fierce devotion. Three mares who had already proven their love in different but equally powerful ways. "I'm sure about one thing," I said firmly. "Whatever happens in that hall, whatever challenges or complications arise... we face them together. As family." They shared a look that spoke volumes about the bonds already formed between them. Twilight's earlier jealousy had transformed into something deeper - real trust in these mares who loved not just me, but our whole family. "Then let's do this," Rose Petal straightened, her professional demeanor returning though her eyes still held warmth. "The sooner we're clear about our intentions, the better." "Though perhaps," Swift Wing suggested with a final flutter of her wings, "we should avoid mentioning certain training incidents during the announcement?" "Spoilsport," Twilight grinned. "And here I was planning to explain exactly how you earned consideration..." "My lady!" Both guards exclaimed in unified embarrassment, making me laugh despite the weight of what we were about to do. "Even though all the guards probably already know that story," I added with a mischievous glint, "we might not want to joke about it unless you're willing to witness Forest Shadow publicly proving how far she'll go to marry me." Swift Wing's wings snapped tight against her sides while Rose Petal's crimson coat darkened to nearly black. Twilight actually snorted, then covered her muzzle with a hoof. "Oh gods," she managed between giggles, "now I'm imagining Forest Shadow dramatically throwing herself at you screaming 'Notice me, senpai!'" "I don't know what that means," Rose Petal said carefully, "but I'm suddenly very concerned about this meeting." "As you should be," I grinned. "Though at least Summer Breeze isn't interested. Can you imagine a sonic rainboom centered on-" "TIM!" All three mares cut me off simultaneously. "Right then," I cleared my throat, fighting back laughter. "To the main hall? Before this conversation gets any more inappropriate?" * * * //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 25 - The Arrangement //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 25 - The Arrangement Twilight I watched Captain Dawn Star gather the guards in the main hall, my heart pounding. They assembled with military precision, though their expressions showed curiosity about this unexpected meeting. Forest Shadow and Maple Leaf stood close together, whispering softly. Morning Dew and Sky Whisper exchanged questioning glances. Tim stepped forward, Swift Wing and Rose Petal flanking him while I stood slightly behind. The formation wasn't lost on the other guards - their ears perked forward with growing interest. "I've gathered you all," Tim began, his voice carrying that commanding tone that had first drawn Mother's attention, "because we have an important announcement. Over the next three months, Swift Wing and Rose Petal will be considered for positions as my wives, with the titles Lady-Elect of Dawn Gate and Lady-Elect of Crystal Vale respectively." The reaction was immediate. Forest Shadow's ears flattened while Maple Leaf's eyes widened. Captain Dawn Star maintained her professional demeanor, though I caught the slight twitch of acknowledgment. "In accordance with noble tradition," Tim continued, "any mare who wishes to challenge for consideration has one week to declare their intention. The challenges themselves must be completed the following week." Forest Shadow stepped forward, her stance shifting subtly to something more aggressive. "And the terms of these challenges, sir?" "Combat trials followed by tactical scenarios," Tim explained. "Proving worth as both warrior and commander. Non-lethal combat only, with clear victory conditions. Captain Dawn Star will oversee all challenges." "And you support this, Lady Sparkle?" Maple Leaf asked carefully, though I noticed how she positioned herself closer to Forest Shadow. Already forming alliances. "I do," I said firmly, pressing against Tim. "This isn't about traditional arrangements or noble privilege. Swift Wing and Rose Petal earned consideration through real love and loyalty." "Though we understand," Tim added, watching Forest Shadow's barely contained reaction, "that others might feel they deserve similar consideration. Hence the challenges. I will allow these challenges because it's tradition," Tim continued, his voice firm. "However, I feel I should point out that very few of you even speak to me outside of duty. I haven't seen any grand romantic gestures or signs of genuine love from most of you." Forest Shadow's aggressive stance faltered slightly as Tim pressed on. "Even if challengers were to defeat Swift Wing or Rose Petal, I would need far more to convince me that you love me as much as I know they do." "I intend to challenge," Forest Shadow declared, stepping forward. Her forest-green coat seemed to darken with determination. "For the position of Lady-Elect of Crystal Vale. And I'm prepared to prove my dedication in any way necessary, sir. Publicly or privately." Several guards coughed to hide their laughter, clearly remembering our earlier jokes about her potential... enthusiasm. "As do I," Maple Leaf added, though her manner was more dignified. "My filly deserves a proper father, and you've proven yourself with foals." "These will be real marriages," Tim said firmly, meeting Forest Shadow's eyes. "Not just titles and privileges. I expect love and foals from my wives." Forest Shadow shifted uncomfortably. "Sir... about foals... I'm not ready for that responsibility. Not yet, anyway." Her ears flattened slightly as she added quickly, "Though that doesn't mean I wouldn't want them eventually..." Rose Petal chose that moment to flick her tail deliberately, letting her in-season pheromones waft through the room. "Well, I'm ready for breeding right now," she said with a smirk. Several of the pegasi guards wrinkled their noses at the obvious display. "As am I," Maple Leaf added, flagging her own tail with a knowing smile. "And I've already proven I can handle both foals and duty." She glanced at Autumn Spice's picture on the wall. "I wouldn't mind giving my filly some siblings..." I pressed my hoof to my muzzle, trying desperately not to laugh at the impromptu pheromone warfare taking place in my hall. Forest Shadow's forest-green coat darkened to almost black. "That's... that's not fair! Just because you're both in season..." Suddenly her expression shifted to something almost predatory. "Well, I'm a virgin! Maybe Tim would prefer a fresher mare!" I noticed Tim's breath catch slightly - he couldn't quite hide his reaction to that declaration. After all, I had been his first pony, and I was virgin at the time… and he'd quite enjoyed teaching me... "Quality over novelty," Rose Petal recovered smoothly, though her flagging intensified. "Experience has its benefits." "And some of us know exactly what we're doing," Maple Leaf added with a knowing look that made Forest Shadow blush furiously. Dawn Star cleared her throat loudly. "Perhaps we should return to the matter of official challenges?" I could feel Tim struggling to maintain his composure after Forest Shadow's declaration. Swift Wing and Rose Petal exchanged knowing looks - they'd both noticed his reaction too. "Right," Tim said, his voice slightly rougher than usual. "About those challenges..." "I withdraw my virginal- I mean, my initial challenge," Forest Shadow said quickly, her coat still dark with embarrassment at her outburst. "Though I'd still like to... I mean... perhaps there are other ways to serve?" "I maintain my challenge," Maple Leaf said firmly, maternal pride straightening her spine. "My filly deserves a proper father, and you've proven yourself with foals. I already know how to balance duty with motherhood." Tim leaned close to me, speaking softly. "Darling, I have an idea that might fix this, but it requires you to trust me. Do you trust me?" I studied his expression - that familiar mix of compassion and calculation that meant he was about to do something either brilliant or crazy. Probably both. After everything we'd been through, from guard-sisters to twin revelations to this very meeting, there was only one answer. "Yes," I whispered back. "I trust you." He squeezed my hoof gently before straightening to address the room again. "I will need six captains - two unicorns, two pegasi, and two earth ponies. These captains will lead their tribal divisions at Dawn Gate and Crystal Vale." He paused, letting that sink in before continuing. "However, due to the trust required, these positions will acknowledge... traditional noble privileges. I may never actually invoke them, but you would accept the promotion knowing that I might." Forest Shadow's ears perked forward with new interest. "So... we could still potentially... just without the foal requirement?" The guards shifted, processing this unexpected offer. Tim pressed on. "Yes… What do you get out of it? A pay raise from the increased rank. A safe posting away from nobles who might try to continue abusing their power." His eyes found Maple Leaf. "And for mares who already have foals... I'd be like an uncle to them. Maybe not as close as the fathers you may want, but they would still be part of my family, and my children would be their cousins." I watched understanding dawn in their eyes as Tim concluded: "Perhaps this can give everypony what they seek. I will need six volunteers for this. And I promise - if you volunteer and are chosen, foals will not be part of this. Only my wives will get foals from me." Maple Leaf stepped forward first, her eyes bright with understanding. "I... I withdraw my challenge for Lady-Elect. But I volunteer for Earth Pony Captain at Crystal Vale. My filly would still have the protection of your family, with traditional privileges but without..." she blushed slightly, "the complications of foals or marriage expectations." Forest Shadow straightened, clearly relieved to have a way to save face after her virgin outburst. "Earth Pony Captain at Dawn Gate. If I may, sir. I'd rather fight griffons than manage trade routes... though I might reconsider my position on foals in the future," she added with a meaningful glance that made several guards roll their eyes. "And I'm still quite willing to prove my... dedication to traditional privileges." The other guards exchanged glances before Morning Dew stepped up. "Unicorn Captain at Crystal Vale. My magic would be useful for trade protection." One by one, they volunteered - Sky Whisper for Pegasus Captain at Crystal Vale, Thunder Step for Pegasus Captain at Dawn Gate, and Crystal Light for Unicorn Captain at Dawn Gate. "Just to be absolutely clear," Tim said seriously. "You accept that intimacy may still happen, just without the risk of foals?" The six volunteer captains exchanged glances before Morning Dew spoke up carefully. "Traditional noble privileges without... permanent consequences?" "Exactly," Tim confirmed. "I may never invoke these rights, but you need to accept the possibility. This isn't just about military command - it's about complete loyalty and trust." "Like the old guard protocols," Forest Shadow said thoughtfully, her earlier embarrassment giving way to anticipation, "but with clear boundaries and respect." "And family bonds," Maple Leaf added softly. "Our foals would be cousins to your children, even if we never..." she paused delicately, "share intimate moments." "Even if intimacy never occurs," Tim finished for her. "The family connections would be real regardless. But I need you all to understand and accept the full implications of these positions." I watched the six mares process this, seeing the moment they each made their choice - not just about military promotion, but about potentially sharing my husband while maintaining clear limits. "With my wife's permission, of course," Tim added, looking at me with such love that my heart skipped. His eyes held a silent question - was I truly okay with this arrangement? I took a deep breath, considering everything. This wasn't about replacing me or diminishing our love. This was about protecting mares who needed safety, giving them positions of respect while acknowledging traditional protocols in a controlled way. And most importantly - Tim had asked me first, made it clear my approval mattered above all else. "As long as certain boundaries remain clear," I said carefully. "My position as first wife, no foals except from actual marriages, without prior permission from me, and..." I managed a small smile, "perhaps we should discuss any... traditional privileges before they're invoked." The six volunteer captains straightened respectfully, clearly understanding that while Tim might hold noble privileges, I would have significant say in how and when they were exercised. "Of course, my lady," they chorused, and I noticed how their stance shifted - not just military respect now, but genuine deference to my position. "Captain Dawn Star," Tim addressed our senior guard. "Your thoughts on these arrangements?" Dawn Star stepped forward, her professional demeanor masking any personal reaction. "The structure is sound, sir. Each hub with balanced tribal representation, clear chains of command, and..." she paused diplomatically, "well-defined expectations regarding traditional privileges." "And your own position?" I asked carefully. "As senior guard captain..." "I would prefer to remain independent of such arrangements," she replied firmly. "Someone needs to maintain objective oversight of both military and... traditional protocols." Tim nodded approvingly. "Agreed. You'll coordinate between both hubs while maintaining your current authority." "Though there is one more thing," I added, remembering our earlier discussion. "We'd like you to consider taking command of House Sparkle's security. My parents need proper protection now that these changes are happening." Dawn Star's eyes widened slightly. "My lady, I would be honored. Though... what about traditional expectations from your father?" "Night Light has never participated in such traditions," I assured her. "You'd be purely military commander there." "I'd hate to lose you as a captain under my command," Tim nodded to Dawn Star, "but I respect your right to decline the positions I created. At least this way, you may still serve my extended family with respect." "Though perhaps," Morning Dew ventured carefully, "we should discuss the practical aspects of these new arrangements? Rotation schedules, living quarters..." she hesitated before adding with a slight blush, "and any... traditional protocols?" "About the living arrangements," I suggested, understanding Tim's vision. "Since this is about creating real family bonds, not just military hierarchy... everyone should be housed in the family wing." Forest Shadow perked up visibly at this. "So, we'll all be living in close quarters? How... convenient." "Forest Shadow," Tim said deliberately, making the earth pony mare freeze. "You're sending quite a few mixed signals. You don't want foals now, but maybe in the future. You want to be at Dawn Gate, where I'll probably spend at least half my time, if not more if tensions with the griffons increase. And I can't tell if you're pleased or displeased about being so close to me in the family wing." His eyes narrowed thoughtfully. "Without being too crude… you seem rather eager for a virgin." Forest Shadow's forest-green coat darkened to nearly black, matching her mane, as every guard in the room turned to watch. "With my wife's permission," Tim added with dangerous casualness, "perhaps a brief inspection of your claims?" I had to bite my lip to keep from laughing as Forest Shadow's professional demeanor cracked completely. She opened and closed her mouth several times, no sound emerging. Rose Petal's smirk was positively wicked. "What happened to all that boldness about being 'fresher' than the rest of us?" Forest Shadow's ears flattened against her head, her coat so dark it was almost black. "I... that is... I mean..." She swallowed hard, then lifted her chin with forced bravado. "If Lady Sparkle permits, I would be happy to prove any and all of my claims, sir. Though perhaps not quite so... publicly." "Now who's sending mixed signals?" Rose Petal teased. "Wasn't it you who just offered to prove your dedication 'publicly or privately'?" "That was before..." Forest Shadow squeaked, then cleared her throat. "I mean... I didn't expect..." "The immediate offer of verification?" Tim suggested innocently. Several guards coughed to hide their laughter while Forest Shadow looked ready to sink through the floor. "I think," I said, taking pity on her though I couldn't quite hide my amusement, "that any verification of claims can wait until after we've settled the immediate arrangements. Though Forest?" She looked at me with desperate gratitude. "Maybe tone down the virgin warrior princess routine a bit? We all remember the training accident with Swift Wing. Some things are better left as happy accidents rather than calculated seduction attempts." "Yes, my lady," Forest Shadow managed, though her coat remained distinctly darker than usual. "Though I maintain my offer of... verification. Just... perhaps with fewer witnesses?" Tim nodded. "Some things are best settled quickly. There is a side room over there large enough for three ponies. You may flag me, in private, with Twilight watching, so we may verify your claims. If you're brave enough to get this out of the way, I'm sure the other guards will have less reason to tease you." Forest Shadow's eyes widened comically. Called on her bluff, she glanced between Tim and me, then at the door to the side room, her professional demeanor crumbling completely. "I... that is... right now?" Her voice cracked slightly. "Unless you'd prefer to keep making bold declarations you're not prepared to back up?" Rose Petal suggested sweetly. Tim's expression remained composed, though a flicker of anticipation danced in his eyes. He gestured toward the side room, where the soft lamplight cast a warm glow over polished wood and deep-red cushions. The air grew charged with unspoken tension, each mare watching closely, curiosity plain in their glances. Forest Shadow swallowed, the boldness in her stance wavering. “If Lady Sparkle consents,” Tim said smoothly, holding my gaze, “we’ll make this brief.” I nodded, eyes narrowing slightly as I studied Forest Shadow’s trembling resolve. “Go ahead,” I said, a subtle challenge curling my lips. “Let’s not waste everypony’s time.” Forest Shadow’s ears flicked, then flattened again as she stepped forward. The guards shifted, expressions varying from smug amusement to wide-eyed interest. Inside the side room, the atmosphere turned heavier, intimate. Tim’s eyes darkened as he stood before Forest Shadow, his presence towering and commanding. I became very aware that the sitting room was far from sound-proof and that the other guards outside were probably going to try eavesdropping. No point in hiding anything, I left the door half open. “You still have a chance to change your mind,” he murmured, voice low enough for only us to hear. Forest Shadow stiffened, eyes darting to me before returning to him. “I don’t retract my claims, sir,” she said, though the whisper of a tremor betrayed her nerves. She shifted her weight, back arching slightly as she tried to summon the boldness she'd displayed earlier. Tim stepped closer, the warmth of his body mere inches from hers. He raised a hand, fingers grazing her mane as he studied her. I stood at the edge of the room, heart thudding as his eyes met mine, silently ensuring I was still with him in this. “Relax,” he said softly to Forest Shadow, and she exhaled, shoulders loosening. His fingers traced down her neck, gliding over the tense muscles as he slowly circled her, inspecting each nuance of her posture. She closed her eyes, visibly summoning her courage, the glisten of sweat forming at her temples. His touch reached her flank, where the tremor became more pronounced. “Still so tense,” he observed, the corners of his mouth tilting. “If you’re going to be one of mine, you’ll need to trust me.” Forest Shadow’s breath hitched as she nodded, her coat darkening further under his scrutiny. Tim's fingers brushed lower, hesitating just at the edge of propriety, waiting for her subtle nod of consent. The room seemed to tighten around us, holding its breath. He leaned in, the faintest whisper brushing her ear. “This is the last step. Do you want to continue?” Her green eyes, wide with challenge and vulnerability, met his. “Yes, sir,” she breathed, and I felt a twist of something - pride, jealousy, excitement - pulse through me. Tim's eyes glinted with restrained authority as he stepped back, allowing space between them. His voice, calm and unyielding, cut through the silence. “Turn around, Forest Shadow. Face the wall and lift your tail.” Forest Shadow’s eyes darted to me, searching for confirmation. I met her gaze steadily, allowing no doubt to cloud my expression. She swallowed, then obeyed, pivoting gracefully. Her flank, taut and trembling, faced him now, her tail shifting uncertainly before she raised it fully, exposing the pristine vulnerability beneath. A murmur of approval, so quiet it was almost imagined, rippled through the guards outside who had dared to shift closer to the open door, their interest barely hidden. Tim leaned in, a hand resting on her flank, firm but reassuring. “You’re doing well,” he murmured, his tone both praise and challenge. Forest Shadow’s ears twitched at the compliment, a shiver tracing along her spine. His gaze flicked over her, noting every reaction - every muscle twitch, every sharp intake of breath. He let his fingers trace a line down her back, deliberate, testing. Forest Shadow’s eyes squeezed shut, her breathing shallow, as she fought to keep still, the intensity of the moment pressing into her. “Trust isn’t just a word,” Tim said softly, so only she and I could hear. “It’s what we’re building now.” Tim’s finger traced down Forest Shadow’s delicate slit, a touch so light yet so electric that it pulled a sharp gasp from her lips. Her body tensed instinctively, her tail quivering as she fought the urge to flinch. His eyes narrowed in concentration as he studied her response, testing, feeling the tightness and the heat. He turned to me, eyes locking with mine, and I could see the subtle thrill beneath the surface of his calm facade. “Tight enough that my finger didn’t slip in,” he announced, voice low and clinical but laced with an undercurrent that sent a shiver down my spine. “She’s wet enough that it would be easy to push in. If she’s not a virgin, then it must have been only once… or a very long time ago. Perhaps, when she was just a filly…” Forest Shadow’s ears flattened as embarrassment flooded her features, a blush spreading visibly down her neck. The guards beyond the threshold exchanged knowing glances, some trying and failing to hide smirks. I could see the struggle in her stance - pride warring with humiliation and something else, a glimmer of anticipation. Tim withdrew his hand, his expression unreadable as he met my eyes again. This moment was his challenge to her, but it was also a test of our understanding, our bond. Tim lowered his eyes, saddened by his conclusion. “You were raped, weren't you…” Forest Shadow's body went rigid, the tension radiating from her like a coiled spring ready to snap. Her ears flattened hard against her head, and her tail instinctively dropped. The silence in the room grew heavy, oppressive, as Tim’s words hung between us like a dark specter. A flicker of pain crossed her face, raw and unguarded. I took a small step forward, the room’s air chilling as I saw the unshed tears shimmering in her eyes. Her throat worked as she tried to form words, but all that escaped was a ragged breath, shaky and uneven. "One of the lords your mother served," Tim continued, softer now, almost regretful for having guessed so accurately. "Like what Maple Leaf feared for her filly, Autumn Spice." Forest Shadow’s gaze snapped up, eyes wide and defensive, but there was no denying the truth in their depths. A long-held secret laid bare in an instant. A wave of understanding and anger swept through me, the pieces of her fierce bravado suddenly making perfect sense. “Yes,” she whispered finally, voice tight as if each letter burned her throat. The admission broke over her like a storm, shoulders shaking under the weight. “I was… It’s why I… I never wanted foals, not after that.” Tim’s expression softened, the authority in his stance giving way to compassion. He reached out, resting a hand on her trembling back, anchoring her to the moment. “No one will ever harm you like that again,” he promised, voice low and fierce, a vow sealed in the silence that followed. Tim’s eyes softened as he leaned forward, closing the space between them. He pressed a tender, lingering kiss to Forest Shadow’s brow, the touch so gentle that her eyes fluttered shut, a single tear escaping down her cheek. The tension in her body began to melt, shoulders dropping as she absorbed the warmth of his gesture. “I don’t blame you for lying,” he murmured against her skin, his voice rough with emotion. “Not about that.” Forest Shadow’s eyes opened slowly, meeting his gaze with a mixture of gratitude and vulnerability. The guarded armor she always wore cracked, revealing the pain she had held back for so long. The silence around us was profound, as if the room itself respected the moment of trust and understanding that had formed between them. I felt my own throat tighten, emotions churning as I watched Tim bridge that gulf of hurt with such simple, profound kindness. He turned his head slightly, catching my eye, a silent confirmation that we were united in this - protecting her, showing her that she was safe now. Tim’s arms wrapped around Forest Shadow, drawing her close as the last of her defenses crumbled. She pressed her face against his chest, her body shuddering as deep, silent sobs finally broke free. The sound was raw, aching, each tremor carrying years of hidden pain and unspoken fears. He held her tightly, one hand cradling the back of her head, the other anchored securely at her waist. There was no rush, no expectation - just the steady, reassuring beat of his heart beneath her cheek, a silent promise that she was no longer alone. The scent of him, warm and familiar, seemed to ground her in this moment where safety and acceptance reigned. I stepped closer, resting a gentle hoof on her shoulder. Her tear-filled eyes opened briefly, catching mine, and I nodded, letting her see that we were here for her, unwavering. Forest Shadow’s sobs softened, turning into quiet sniffles as she clung to Tim, allowing herself, for the first time in a long time, to let go. The room remained cloaked in silence, heavy with understanding. Outside, the guards stood vigil, eyes averted from the half-closed door. They would wait - they had no reason not to. They knew their place, respected this raw, vulnerable moment that transcended duty. Forest Shadow’s breathing evened out, though her face was still pressed against Tim’s chest, the last few tears dampening the fabric of his uniform. His fingers traced soothing patterns across her back, silently telling her that time was hers to take. I glanced at the guards, their expressions a mixture of curiosity and newfound respect. The whispers and smirks from before had vanished, replaced by an unspoken recognition of what had just been revealed and what it meant. This wasn’t a moment to interrupt. It was one that called for patience and solidarity. Tim’s eyes lifted to meet mine over Forest Shadow’s head, a soft, silent question in them. I answered with a small nod, acknowledging the trust we had just forged here, deeper and stronger than before. Tim’s voice was warm as he spoke, a quiet, soothing cadence that carried through the intimate space. “You know, there are seven types of love. Most people only recognize two: eros, the passion, and storge, the familial bond between a parent and child.” He paused, letting the words settle as Forest Shadow tilted her head to listen, eyes glistening with the last of her tears. “The other five,” he continued, “are rarely spoken of, but they are just as powerful.” His hand traced the curve of her back as he met her gaze, holding it tenderly. “I will love you twice over, Forest Shadow: with philia, the deep, steadfast bond of friendship, and ludus, the playful, light-hearted affection full of teasing and laughter.” A small smile touched his lips. “Twilight can tell you that I’m quite practiced at ludus.” I chuckled softly, the memories of our shared moments of mischief and flirtation coming to mind. Forest Shadow’s eyes flicked to me, a ghost of a smile appearing, the tension in her features finally beginning to ease. “It’s okay,” Tim said, his voice dipping into a deeper sincerity, “if eros isn’t something you’re ready for or even want. So long as you let me love you in all the other ways that matter, we will find our own path.” The room seemed to breathe with us, filled with the simple promise of unconditional care. Forest Shadow’s eyes searched his face, and in them, I saw the glimmer of hope, a quiet acceptance beginning to bloom. Forest Shadow’s whisper was so fragile, it trembled on the edge of silence. “But I want to love you, I just don’t know how.” The raw vulnerability in her voice pierced through me, squeezing my heart with an ache that words couldn’t mend. Tim’s expression softened further, the weight of her confession settling between us like a fragile crystal. He shifted slightly, his hands moving to cup her face gently, thumbs brushing away the lingering traces of tears. His eyes, dark with understanding, met hers, holding her gaze with a quiet intensity. “You don’t have to know how right now,” he said softly, each word deliberate and steady. “We’ll figure it out together, step by step. Love isn’t just a feeling - it’s a journey, a shared path. And you don’t have to walk it alone.” A tremor ran through Forest’s body, and she closed her eyes as if absorbing the promise. Her breaths came shallow and uneven, but the corners of her mouth twitched with the faintest sign of hope, a delicate glimmer that said she was willing to try. I reached out, placing a hoof over her trembling one. “We’re here for you,” I whispered, my voice steady with conviction. “In all the ways that matter.” We returned to the main part of the meeting room, every guard carrying both newfound respect and sorrow that they hadn’t seen the signs sooner themselves. Picking up the conversation as if it had never stopped, Forest Shadow resumed her duties. "Thank you, sir, madam," Forest Shadow managed with remarkable composure given her still-darkened coat. "I'll... keep that in mind while designing the Dawn Gate training schedules." "Speaking of Dawn Gate," Swift Wing interjected, taking pity on her fellow guard, "the family quarters there should reflect its military nature. Training areas, shared armories, communal spaces that serve both military and family functions." "The griffons will respect that," I added, allowing the subject change. "Seeing our family bonds include warrior training." "While Crystal Vale's family quarters," Rose Petal suggested, still smirking at Forest Shadow, "should emphasize trade and diplomacy. Places for negotiations that feel intimate rather than formal." "And the foals?" Maple Leaf asked, redirecting the conversation to safer territory. "Both current and... future ones?" "Central to everything," Tim said firmly. "Both locations need to be designed around protecting and nurturing children. Your filly, Sara, the twins when they arrive, any future foals from my marriages..." He paused meaningfully. "Or any that might come later from particularly dedicated captains who change their minds about motherhood." Forest Shadow's coat, which had just started returning to its normal shade, darkened again instantly. "I'm willing to give any and all of you foals," Tim continued thoughtfully, "but I can't promise them titles. Permission to cross that line is subject to approval by Twilight, as she said earlier. I planned to hold fast to the 'only wives get foals' rule, but I'm willing to compromise." "Don't worry, sir," Morning Dew managed between giggles. "I'm sure some of us can think of more creative ways to exercise traditional privileges than just throwing our virginity at you." "I hate all of you," Forest Shadow muttered, though her lips twitched with reluctant humor. I was tempted to stop the teasing, given what we knew now, but military gallows humor took many forms, and it seemed to be helping, despite the known truth as it stood. "Speaking of family," Morning Dew ventured, her usual shyness giving way to warmth, "perhaps we should have lunch together? All of us? If we're going to be living as family in both fortresses, we should probably start getting used to sharing meals." "That's an excellent idea," Tim agreed. "No ranks, no titles - just family getting to know each other better." "Sara would love that," I added, realizing how true it was. "She already adores having so many aunts watching over her." Maple Leaf's eyes brightened. "Could... could Autumn Spice join us? If we're really going to be family..." "Of course," Tim said warmly. "All our foals should grow up together. Though maybe we should warn the kitchen about feeding this many hungry guards..." "And their appetites," Sky Whisper added with a grin. "Especially after all this talk of traditional privileges and virginal inspections..." "Sky!" Forest Shadow exclaimed, her coat darkening yet again. "I'll go fetch both fillies," Maple Leaf offered, barely containing her laughter. "They're at the same school, and Autumn Spice would love to walk back with Sara." "Take Forest Shadow with you," Tim suggested with a wicked grin. "Since she'll be one of Dawn Gate's captains, she should start getting used to foal protection duties." "Foal duty will be fine, sir," Forest Shadow managed with remarkable dignity considering her still-darkened coat. "The rest of us should divide duties," Dawn Star said efficiently, though I caught her fighting back a smile. "Some to help arrange the dining room, others to coordinate with the kitchen..." She paused, then added with unusual humor, "Unless you'd prefer to demonstrate more 'verification procedures,' sir?" "Don't tempt him," I groaned, though I couldn't help smiling. "The last thing we need is ten more guards lined up and flagging. As horny as pregnancy makes me, I can’t say if I’d like that or hate it." "Though it would be memorable," Rose Petal suggested innocently. "And Lady Velvet would certainly appreciate the story potential..." "Speaking of story potential," Crystal Light said as she helped arrange the tables, "how do we explain this to ponies outside the family? Noble privileges are one thing, but this level of... closeness..." "We tell the truth," Tim replied firmly. "That I'm creating a new kind of noble household. One based on respect and family bonds rather than exploitation." He paused thoughtfully. "One where every mare feels safe and valued." The subtle emphasis wasn't lost on anyone, and I noticed Forest Shadow's stance soften slightly before she left with Maple Leaf to fetch the fillies. "The nobles will understand the implications," Morning Dew added, levitating extra chairs into place. "Without us needing to be explicit." "And the common ponies?" Sky Whisper asked, hovering as she helped arrange place settings. "Will see a Military Governor who treats his guards like family," I answered. "Who protects foals and values loyalty above privilege." My eyes met Tim's, remembering Bronze Star and understanding even better now why he'd acted so decisively to protect Autumn Spice. Thunder Step smiled as she laid out napkins. "They already do. The stories about Lord Tim facing down the Timberwolf to protect Sweetie Belle, making his guards sisters instead of mistresses... giving second chances to those who need them most. This just adds to that reputation." "Though certain stories definitely shouldn't become public," Tim said, his tone carrying new weight. "Some things stay within the family." "Speaking of family," Morning Dew said, arranging flowers in the center of the table, "where should everyone sit? We want to make sure the fillies feel comfortable." "Sara and Autumn Spice should sit together," I suggested, watching Tim's expression soften at the mention of the fillies. "They bring out the best in each other." "You mean they collaborate on tactical ice cream deployment," Tim grinned, the heaviness of earlier lifting slightly. "I've never seen such coordinated sprinkle attacks." "We'll need to push some tables together," Morning Dew suggested practically. "The dining room wasn't designed for quite so many... family members." "And perhaps arrange the seating thoughtfully," Dawn Star added. "Help everyone get to know each other beyond their usual groups. Forest Shadow might appreciate being between the fillies - their innocence could be... healing." The sound of young voices approaching lifted everyone's spirits. Sara burst in first, her eyes wide with excitement. "Daddy! Did you really make all the guards family?" Autumn Spice followed close behind, her autumn-brown coat matching her mother's as she looked up at Tim with barely contained hope. "Lord Tim... does this mean Sara and I can train together all the time now?" Tim knelt down to their level, his expression softening the way it always did around foals. "That's right. We're all going to be one big family. Though maybe we should establish some rules about tactical ice cream deployments..." "But, my lord," Autumn Spice said with perfect military seriousness that must have been practiced, "guard training requires proper sprinkle tactics. You said so yourself!" I watched Forest Shadow's usual warrior demeanor melt as she watched the fillies, something healing in their pure, uncomplicated joy. "I think I'm beginning to understand why you wanted me to help with foal protection duties, sir. These two are dangerous together." "You have no idea," Maple Leaf said proudly, watching her daughter's eyes sparkle. "Just wait until they start teaching you their 'special guard formations.'" "Special guard formations?" Sara asked excitedly. "Oh! We should show them the ice cream defense triangle! Autumn Spice and I perfected it!" "Maybe after lunch," I suggested quickly, recognizing the gleam in their eyes that usually preceded sugary chaos. "For now, let's all sit down as family." "Can I sit next to Swift Wing?" Sara asked. "She promised to teach me about pegasus aerial maneuvers!" "As long as these aerial maneuvers don't involve throwing food," Tim said dryly. "I've seen your 'tactical deployment' techniques." "What about me?" Autumn Spice looked up at Rose Petal hopefully. "Could you teach me earth pony trade secrets? Since we'll be at Crystal Vale together?" Rose Petal's smile warmed as she looked down at Autumn Spice. "Of course, little merchant. We'll start with basic economics - like how many sprinkles equal a proper ice cream cone." "And I'll teach you about proper guard formations," Forest Shadow added, finding her own smile. "When you visit Dawn Gate for training, that is. Every good merchant needs to know how to protect their goods." "See?" Maple Leaf said softly to Tim. "This is already working. They're forming real bonds across both territories." As lunch wound down, filled with laughter and plans for the future, I watched Tim rise from his seat. He moved around the table deliberately, starting with Swift Wing and Rose Petal - giving each a gentle kiss that promised future considerations. Then to each new captain, a different kind of kiss - one that spoke of family bonds and trust, acknowledging their acceptance of traditional privileges without demanding them. When he reached Forest Shadow, his kiss to her forehead carried special weight - a promise of protection and healing that made her eyes glisten briefly. When he reached Autumn Spice, he knelt down to her level. "And for my new niece..." He gave her a special uncle-kiss on the forehead that made her beam with pride. "Does this mean I get guard kisses too?" Sara asked innocently. "You get daughter kisses," Tim corrected, scooping her up. "The very best kind." I pressed against him as he finished his circuit of the table, understanding now why this could work. Because every kiss had been different - each acknowledging the unique bond being forged, from wives to captains to nieces to daughter. Each promising exactly what that particular mare needed most. Tim left the room first, his expression radiant with happiness and pride at the family he was building. I watched him go, seeing how even this simple lunch had strengthened bonds that would reshape Equestrian nobility. "I might have to reconsider my position on traditional noble arrangements," Dawn Star said softly, surprising me. "Lord Tim makes it special. Maybe I'm not too old for something like this." I swallowed hard, coming to my own unexpected conclusion. "My parents are still part of our family, even if they're technically a different House." I met Dawn Star's eyes. "If all parties agree... we might can share a little more." The Captain's professional mask cracked completely, showing a flash of hope that made her look years younger. After all, family bonds could take many forms - and ours were still growing. * * * Tim The moon cast silver shadows through our bedroom window as I held Twilight close, her slightly swollen belly pressed against me. The day's events weighed heavily on my mind - particularly Forest Shadow's revelation and its implications. "We need to discuss something practical," I said softly, stroking Twilight's mane. "About the traditional privileges with the captains." Twilight shifted to look up at me. "What about them?" "When I'm at Dawn Gate or Crystal Vale, there may be... immediate needs. Cases where I won't have time to write you for permission." I met her eyes seriously. "Especially with Forest Shadow. If she suddenly decides she needs to reclaim control of her past through eros, I won't be able to refuse her. That kind of healing has to happen on her terms, in her time." Twilight was quiet for a moment, absorbing this. "You're right. We can't let our desire for proper protocols get in the way of helping her heal." "And there's something else," I continued carefully. "If you're serious about me not giving in to deeper emotions with Swift Wing and Rose Petal during this consideration period... the captains might be a way to maintain those boundaries. Physical release without emotional compromise." Twilight pressed closer, her voice thoughtful. "You mean using the captains to prevent getting too... intimate with the Lady-Elects before we're all ready?" "Exactly. Swift Wing and Rose Petal deserve pure focus when we finally cross that line. Getting physically desperate during the three months could lead to rushed decisions." I kissed her horn gently. "The captains could help maintain those boundaries while still honoring traditional privileges." "And Forest Shadow..." Twilight's voice softened. "She'll need complete control over when and how she approaches intimacy. No protocols or permissions that might make her feel trapped or powerless again." "Yes. And not just Forest Shadow. Each captain might have moments where they need... immediate comfort or connection. Especially during my longer stays at the fortresses." I stroked her mane thoughtfully. "I need blanket permission to invoke privileges with them, within reason. Though I'll still tell you about each encounter afterward." "That seems fair," Twilight agreed. "Though perhaps we should establish some basic guidelines? Not restrictions, just... understanding." "What kind of guidelines did you have in mind?" I asked, continuing to stroke her mane. "Well, with Forest Shadow, her healing comes first. Complete freedom to approach you when she feels safe enough." Twilight's hoof traced patterns on my chest. "But for the others... maybe just good judgment? No deliberately seducing them, but if natural moments happen..." "And if they flag me?" I asked carefully. "Natural cycles can be... compelling." "Then you take care of their needs," Twilight said practically. "We can't have you getting overly frustrated with the Lady-Elects. Swift Wing and Rose Petal need to know their first times with you are special, not just desperate relief." "Though speaking of natural cycles," I said thoughtfully, "we should probably track them. Make sure we don't have too many mares cycling at once, especially during important meetings." Twilight actually giggled. "Can you imagine? A room full of flagging captains while you're trying to negotiate with griffon diplomats?" "Don't even joke about that," I groaned. "The griffons would never let us live it down." "There's something else we should consider," Twilight said, her voice growing serious. "Forest Shadow's revelation makes me wonder about the others. Not necessarily the same trauma, but... each of them might have their own fears or needs we don't know about yet." "Maple Leaf's protectiveness of Autumn Spice makes more sense now - she's probably seen similar abuses." I pulled Twilight closer. "We need to be prepared for other revelations. The captains might seek comfort for reasons beyond just physical desire." "And we should be clear about foals," Twilight added. "You said you'd compromise on the 'wives only' rule..." "If a captain genuinely wants a foal with me, and you approve, I won't deny them." I kissed her horn again. "But it has to be a conscious choice, not a heat-of-the-moment accident. That's why tracking cycles is so important." "Morning Dew seemed interested," Twilight observed. "Did you notice how she watched you with the fillies?" "I did. And Sky Whisper's been rather obvious about wanting traditional privileges." I chuckled softly. "Though she'll have to be more subtle if she's going to be at Crystal Vale. Can't have her flagging during trade negotiations." "At least we've divided them sensibly," I said. "Three captains at each fortress means I'll only have to manage three sets of needs at a time, plus whichever Lady-Elect is stationed there." "Four mares is still quite a handful," Twilight teased, then added more seriously, "Though I suppose that's better than all six captains cycling at once." "And they'll have different needs," I pointed out. "Forest Shadow will need gentle healing at Dawn Gate. Thunder Step seems more interested in the military aspects than traditional privileges, and Crystal Light's always been professionally distant." "While at Crystal Vale," Twilight continued thoughtfully, "Maple Leaf needs family stability for Autumn Spice more than physical comfort. Though Morning Dew and Sky Whisper..." She trailed off meaningfully. "Are about as subtle as Forest Shadow's virgin warrior princess routine?" I suggested with a laugh. "At least Rose Petal can help keep them in line. She's always been good at maintaining proper decorum." "Unlike a certain pegasus who ended up with her marehood in your face during 'training'?" Twilight's eyes sparkled with mischief. "In my defense," I protested, "that training accident was entirely Swift Wing's fault. Though I suppose as future Lady of Dawn Gate, she'll need to be more... deliberate in her approaches." "Speaking of approaches," Twilight said, her tone turning practical again. "We should probably discuss sleeping arrangements at the fortresses. The family wing layout..." "Ah yes, the eternal noble question - whose bed does the lord sleep in when visiting?" I pulled her closer. "Though I suppose having the captains helps there too. Less pressure on the Lady-Elects if I'm not exclusively sharing their beds during visits." "And less emotional entanglement," Twilight agreed. "The captains understand their role - physical comfort without the deeper commitment of marriage." She paused thoughtfully. "Though I notice you positioned Forest Shadow at Dawn Gate, far from Autumn Spice..." "Forest Shadow picked Dawn Gate herself and even if she didn't, she needs distance from reminders of what happened to her," I said softly. "And Dawn Gate's warrior culture might help her heal. Fighting griffons is simpler than watching another young filly who could have been her. I don't blame her for not caring about trade routes, but Dawn Gate collects tolls, so she won't fully escape it." "You're also reinforcing the territory roles," Twilight noted. "Crystal Vale for trade and diplomacy, with Maple Leaf and Morning Dew's calming presence. Dawn Gate for military strength, where Forest Shadow can focus on becoming a warrior again." "And the captains can support their Lady-Elects," I added. "Thunder Step and Crystal Light will help Swift Wing manage the fortress while Forest Shadow rebuilds her confidence. Meanwhile, Sky Whisper and Morning Dew can assist Rose Petal with trade negotiations." "While flagging you mercilessly during said negotiations," Twilight teased. "Don't remind me," I groaned. "I'm going to need very clear signals for 'not now' without offending any visiting dignitaries. Maybe Dawn Star can develop some sort of code system." "Speaking of Dawn Star..." Twilight's voice turned thoughtful. "About what I said earlier, regarding my parents..." "You want to share more than just security arrangements?" I asked carefully, watching her expression in the moonlight. "She's always been different from the others," Twilight said softly. "More... mature. Professional. She wouldn't complicate things with emotional demands, but..." "But she deserves happiness too," I finished. "And your parents are technically part of our extended family now. Though I have to ask - are you suggesting this because you think she needs it, or because you've noticed how she looks at your father?" Twilight shifted against me. "Both, maybe? Mother's always been... open-minded about such things. And Father works so late at the castle..." She paused. "Dawn Star could offer more than just protection." "Your mother would certainly approve," I chuckled. "She'd probably write a whole new series - 'The Captain's Choice: Guarding Hearts and Homes.'" "Tim!" Twilight swatted me with her tail. "I'm trying to have a serious discussion about my parents' happiness!" "I know, love. And you're right - Dawn Star would be perfect. Professional enough to handle noble politics, experienced enough to manage complex family dynamics..." I kissed her horn. "Though perhaps we should let her settle into the security position first before suggesting any... additional duties." "Yes, with Mother busy overseeing the Earth estate expansion and Father handling his duties in Canterlot..." Twilight sighed. "They need someone they can trust completely." "And Dawn Star's more than capable," I agreed. "Though that 'sharing more' you mentioned earlier... perhaps we should focus on establishing her in the security role first. Everything else can develop naturally, if it's meant to." Twilight nestled closer. "Though knowing Mother, she's probably already designed the Earth estate with... possibilities in mind." "Your mother and her plans within plans," I chuckled. "At least the universe finally seems to be working with her schemes instead of against them." "Speaking of Mother's schemes," Twilight said carefully, "maybe we should write her about all this? Before she starts sending more... educational materials." "Good idea," I agreed, pulling her close and dropping a gentle kiss on her muzzle. "Look at you, trying to hook Dawn Star up with your dad and being so open minded about two extra wives and six mistresses. Velvet was right... you're becoming your mother..." "TIM!" Twilight swatted me hard with her tail, her coat darkening to match Rose Petal's earlier blush. "I am NOTHING like my mother! I would never write educational manuals or try to demonstrate proper breeding techniques or-" She stopped, realizing she was only proving my point as I dissolved into laughter. "I hate you," she muttered, though she couldn't quite hide her smile. "No you don't," I grinned, pulling her closer. "You love me enough to share me with an entire squad of guards. Your mother would be so proud." "One more word about my mother," she threatened, "and you can sleep in the library." "I'll say one more thing about your mother," I said, pulling her close despite her warning glare. "For all your doubt, you are prettier than her. In fact, you're the prettiest mare in my harem." Twilight's ears flicked forward in surprise, then a slow smile spread across her face. "Your harem, is it?" She nuzzled closer, her voice softening. "Well... I suppose the library can wait. This time." * * * Author's Note I write commissions. DM me for details. //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 26 - Forged in Silence //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 26 - Forged in Silence Twilight "It's been three days since you killed Bronze Star and Sterling's captain," I said, watching Tim pack for Dawn Gate. "And now you're heading to inspect your new territories with your Lady-Elect and personal captains?" My hoof pressed against my growing belly, the twins making their presence known. After Pinkie's "Double the Foals, Double the Fun" celebration, there wasn't a pony in Ponyville who didn't know about my pregnancy. Though sometimes I wondered if the party had really been about the twins, or celebrating how Tim had transformed our guard arrangements into something entirely new. "The griffons are already testing our eastern border, the change of noble houses has emboldened them," Tim replied, his newly claimed lord's signet ring catching the morning light. "Dawn Gate needs proper leadership. And Swift Wing needs to start learning her duties as its future lady." I caught Swift Wing hovering near the door, her wings giving that telling flutter - though now it held the promise of future courtship rather than mere attraction. Our arrangement was clear: three months to consider making her and Rose Petal proper wives, while his captains provided any needed "traditional comfort" in the meantime. "About Swift Wing going alone with you..." I started carefully. "Forest Shadow, Thunder Step and Crystal Light will be there too," Tim reminded me gently. "I know we agreed to wait on deeper bonds until we're all certain, but they have both of our permissions for traditional privileges as needed. You don't have to worry about Swift Wing getting... overenthusiastic during our courtship period." "I notice you specifically chose the Dawn Gate captains who aren't currently in season," I muttered, though without real heat. The arrangements we'd made were practical, even if watching my potential future sister-wives flutter over my husband still sparked occasional jealousy. "I'm being careful," he assured me, pulling me close. "Just like we discussed - the captains can handle any immediate needs while we take our time considering Swift Wing and Rose Petal properly. Though I notice you're more concerned about her going than Rose Petal staying..." "The others didn't end up with their marehood in your face during 'training,'" I grumbled. "And now she'll be practicing being Lady of Dawn Gate..." "With three captains chaperoning," he reminded me, kissing my horn. "I promised we'd do this right - take time to be sure about expanding our family. For now, this is just about assessing the fortress and its needs." "Just... be careful?" I pressed closer, feeling our twins shift. "Dawn Gate may need its new lord and lady-to-be, but these foals need their father. And I need time to get used to the idea of sharing you with others." "I'll be back before you know it," he promised. "Besides, shouldn't you be more worried about Rose Petal staying here? She is your other lady-elect..." The pillow that hit his face was entirely justified. Even if his teasing about our complicated new arrangements did make me feel better about him traveling with Swift Wing. "Just remember our agreement," I whispered. "Three months to be sure about making this permanent. No rushing into anything, no matter how pretty her wing flutters are." "Or how conveniently out-of-season certain captains might be?" he suggested innocently. "Tim!" “What? It’s been over a week since I’ve done more than hold you. I know it bothers you too.” His smile and laughter followed me out of the room. Three months suddenly felt like a very long time to sort out all these new feelings. * * * Tim The Ponyville train station bustled with early morning activity as we prepared to depart for Dawn Gate. My captains were already loading our gear while Swift Wing reviewed the travel plans one final time. The way she pored over the maps, wings occasionally fluttering with suppressed excitement about her future position as Lady of Dawn Gate, made me smile. Twilight pressed against my side, looking slightly green despite the early hour. "I'm sorry about this morning," she whispered. "I wanted to give you a proper send-off, but the twins had other ideas..." "That's what captains are for," I teased gently. "Traditional privileges and all that." Her horn sparked dangerously. "Tim! Don't even joke about that..." "What? I'm just being practical. After all, with two future wives and six captains to consider, we should probably start planning the nursery expansions now." I pretended to calculate. "Let's see... I originally wanted five foals, but that was before all these arrangements. Now maybe five per wife, two per captain... so twenty-seven total?" "TWENTY-SEVEN?!" Twilight's outraged squeak drew curious looks from several passersby. "Well, we already have numbers one and two on the way," I continued innocently. "Though I suppose if we're counting Sara, that only leaves twenty-four more to go. Unless any of the captains want extras..." "I will END you," Twilight hissed, though I caught her fighting back a smile. "And don't even think about starting on those twenty-four while you're at Dawn Gate!" "No promises," I grinned. "Forest Shadow did mention wanting to reconsider her position on foals..." The way Twilight's horn crackled with barely contained magic suggested I might have pushed the teasing a bit far. Though watching Swift Wing try to maintain her professional demeanor while clearly doing her own mental calculations about future foal counts made it worth the risk. "You," Twilight declared, jabbing my chest with her hoof, "are impossible." "You love me anyway." "Celestia help me, I do." She pressed closer, her voice dropping. "Just... be careful with their hearts while I'm not there? This whole arrangement is still new for all of us." "Always," I promised, kissing her horn. "Though maybe we should discuss nursery sizes when I get back..." The sparks from her horn definitely singed my jacket. Worth it. * * * Twilight I stormed into the library, my horn still sparking from Tim's parting teases. Twenty-seven foals! “The nerve of him, joking about that while heading off to Dawn Gate with Swift Wing and his "traditionally privileged" captains. Even if we had agreed to the arrangements, did he have to be so... so...” "My lady?" Rose Petal's gentle voice interrupted my fuming. My remaining lady-elect stood in the doorway, her crimson coat darkened with concern. "Are you alright?" "No," I admitted, collapsing into my reading chair. "I couldn't even give him a proper goodbye this morning because of morning sickness, and then he jokes about wanting twenty-seven foals with his future wives and captains!" My voice cracked slightly. "What if he wasn't entirely joking? What if while I'm stuck here being sick and fat with twins, he decides..." Rose pressed closer, her earth pony warmth surprisingly comforting. "He adores you," she said firmly. "You saw how he rejected even Celestia's advances. A few weeks at Dawn Gate won't change that." "But Swift Wing will be there," I whispered, hating how vulnerable I sounded. "And he said Forest Shadow mentioned reconsidering her position on foals... he jokes so much sometimes that I don’t know what’s true, if what he’s saying is at least plausible. What if, while I'm too sick to meet his needs, even before the last five months when we know I can’t, he goes ahead and decides to break in his new wife early? I can barely kiss him right now! More than that is impossible." "That's why we arranged the traditional privileges with the captains," Rose reminded me gently. "So he can have physical comfort without emotional complications while we all figure out these new arrangements." She paused. "Three months will pass faster than you know… and if this works out, me and Swift will both be married to him before you hit that last five months of no intimacy. I hope that you’re already mentally working this out because you don’t need to be jealous once the marriages are finalized. Which brings me to my point… I noticed that you seem more worried about Swift Wing than the captains." "The captains didn't end up with their marehoods in his face at that first time at the gym in the embassy," I muttered. "And now she'll be practicing being Lady of Dawn Gate while I'm here getting bigger and more useless... I really want them to wait… so we’re all sure…" "You're carrying his foals," Rose said softly. "Nothing could make you more attractive to him than that. Though," she added with a small smile, "if you're really worried about meeting his needs, you did give permission for the captains to help... perhaps we could send a letter to jump start that permission, even actually encouraging it… if it keeps him away from Swift Wing. "Rose!" "What? I'm just being practical." Her face flushing in a deep blush. "Besides, if you're counting potential foals, don't forget that earth pony mares are naturally more fertile than unicorns..." The pillow that hit her face was justified, especially since her teasing sounded suspiciously like Tim's. It was almost like he gave her a script to read to torture me in his absence. That wouldn’t entirely shock me. "Not you too," I groaned. "Between him joking about twenty-seven foals and you keeping track of fertility rates..." "Would you prefer I discuss Swift Wing's athletic build?" Rose suggested innocently. "Or Forest Shadow's reconsideration of foal-bearing? She’s younger than us, and she has that petite build he seems to appreciate – complete with smaller teats than either of us, which we've all noticed catches his eye, even if he tries to be discrete about it." I bristled slightly. "Tim's preferences are hardly a secret. He's always been honest about what he finds attractive - including his fondness for smaller teats, which he's mentioned more than once. But let's be clear - his appreciation for certain physical attributes has nothing to do with age." "Of course not," Rose agreed immediately. "This is the same stallion who treats Maple Leaf's filly like his own family. He's proven time and again that his principles are unshakeable, especially regarding the protection of young ponies." She paused thoughtfully. "Which makes his complete honesty rather refreshing, doesn't it? Most nobles wouldn't be so direct about their values, let alone act on them so consistently." "You're doing this on purpose," I accused, noting her satisfied expression. "Reminding me how Tim never hides anything from me, even his appreciation for other mares' features. He tells me everything, just like we agreed..." "Is it working?" Rose asked with a small smile. "Though I notice you're not objecting to the observation about his fondness for smaller teats. Perhaps because he's already told you about it himself?" The second pillow was definitely justified. Even if she had a point about Tim's proven honesty and devotion to our agreement of complete openness. "Twenty-seven foals," I muttered. "He's lucky I love him." "Very lucky," Rose agreed, then added with perfect innocence: "Though about those earth pony fertility rates..." The third pillow caught her mid-sentence. Some things were better left undiscussed. At least until Tim got back. I need firmer pillows. These must not hurt enough… * * * Tim The train pulled into Dawn Gate's fortress station well past midnight, the screech of brakes cutting through the foggy mountain air. Sixteen hours of constant travel had left everyone exhausted, though I noticed Forest Shadow's tension hadn't eased since our revelations the day before. "My lord," she said quietly as we disembarked, her forest-green coat almost black in the darkness. "About the sleeping arrangements..." I caught the slight tremor in her voice - the lingering fear of a mare who'd learned too young that noble "arrangements" usually meant pain. My heart ached remembering her breakdown yesterday, but I kept my tone light. "You mean… where do I plan to rest my... head?" I asked innocently. Her ears flattened briefly before catching my deliberate emphasis. A tiny smile cracked across her lips. "Yes, sir. There are... traditional chambers prepared, but after yesterday's... discussion..." "Forest," I said gently, "you know I'd never take what isn't freely offered. And you're nowhere near ready to offer anything." I gestured to the fortress looming above us. "Show me to the command quarters. The only head I'm interested in resting right now is the one on my shoulders." She relaxed slightly, though anxiety still edged her voice. "But tradition dictates..." "Tradition dictated a lot of things until three days ago," I reminded her. "Now it dictates that I get some sleep before inspecting my new fortress. Unless..." I smiled to take any sting from my words, "you're that eager to have another 'verification' session?" Her cheeks darkened with embarrassment, but her laugh was genuine - if slightly shaky. "No sir. Not... not yet. Maybe not ever, but..." "But you're starting to believe you actually have that choice now," I finished softly. She nodded, something like hope flickering in her eyes. "Thank you. For understanding. For making it safe to say no..." "That's what family does," I said simply. "Now, about those command quarters? Before I fall asleep standing here and you have to explain to Twilight why you let her husband face-plant on the fortress steps?" Her disciplined demeanor had shattered completely as she laughed. "Yes sir. Though perhaps we should avoid any more face-to-marehood incidents? Lady Sparkle might not be as understanding this time... though perhaps she’d give me a free pass given my past trauma…” "Careful," I warned with mock severity. "Or I'll tell her you're reconsidering your position on foals..." "You wouldn't!" "Try me. I already promised her twenty-seven foals between all the wives and captains... that includes you too…" Forest Shadow's scandalized expression was worth every hour of exhausting travel. Some wounds needed laughter to heal properly. Though perhaps I'd wait until morning to tell her exactly how I planned to renovate the "traditional" noble chambers into a proper military command center. One revolution at a time. The fortress guards snapped to attention at the sight of my signet ring, Bronze Star's former crest now transformed into my own sword-and-staff design. Within minutes, chambers were assigned, and my captains were settling in for what remained of the night. "Swift Wing," I called softly, "with me." My lady-elect froze, her wings pressing tight against her sides. "Sir- Tim, I don't think... Lady Sparkle's instructions about waiting..." I caught her hoof gently, drawing her into the main chamber. "I said with me, not under me," I clarified, watching understanding dawn in her eyes. "I've gotten used to sleeping beside a warm mare. It'll be no different than sleeping next to Twilight this past week. Her pregnancy has made moments of intimacy rare and I’m slowly starting to accept it.” "But..." her midnight-blue coat darkened slightly, "the temptation..." "Will be there regardless of where you sleep," I finished pragmatically. "But we made promises about taking time to be sure. This is just about comfort, nothing more." She shifted uncertainly. "The other captains..." "Have their privileges clearly defined," I reminded her. "You're meant to be my wife someday, Swift. That means learning to trust each other with more than just desire." I settled onto the bed, still fully clothed. "Now come here. Unless you'd prefer that I send for Forest Shadow instead?" Her indignant wing flutter made me smile. "That's not fair," she protested, even as she moved closer. "Using my own jealousy against me..." "Now you know how Twilight feels," I agreed, pulling her down beside me. "Now sleep. We can worry about propriety and temptation in the morning." She curled against my side, her warmth already familiar despite our official "courtship" being so new. "Twilight's going to kill us both," she muttered sleepily. "Probably," I agreed, feeling exhaustion finally overtaking me. "But at least we'll die warm. I used to complain that Equestria had no air-conditioning but not only is this fortress drafty, but the mountains make it cold…" Her quiet laugh was the last thing I heard before sleep claimed us both. * * * Tim Dawn Gate Fortress’ mountain air bit cold through my jacket as I settled into the commander's study. I needed to get someone to start a fire in the hopefully functional fireplace. The desk - Bronze Star's until three days ago - still carried the previous lord's preferences: ornate inkwells, perfumed papers, and that telling absence of any actual military documents. "My lord?" Swift Wing hovered near the doorway, her midnight-blue coat still carrying warmth from our shared sleep. "The initial fortress reports..." "Can wait,” I said, reaching for fresh parchment. “Now… I believe my wife deserves to know how... comfortable our sleeping arrangements were." Swift Wing's wings snapped tight against her sides. "Tim! You wouldn't..." "Oh, but I would." I dipped my quill with flourish. "After all, what kind of husband would I be if I didn't keep my beloved informed of all my... activities?" "A living one?" Swift Wing suggested, though I caught her fighting back a smile. "Now now, where's your sense of scientific inquiry?" I asked innocently. "Twilight appreciates thorough documentation..." The look of mingled horror and amusement on Swift Wing's face as I began writing was worth every moment of retribution surely heading my way: My beloved Twilight, I wanted to share something with you in the spirit of complete honesty - Swift Wing slept in my chambers last night. After sixteen hours of travel, we were both exhausted, and I've grown used to having a warm mare beside me while sleeping. Don't worry though - I remained fully clothed and on top of the covers. Though I must admit, having her curled against me reminded me of how you cuddle in your sleep. She even makes similar little contented sounds when she's completely relaxed. She did hesitate at first, concerned about your instructions regarding our courtship period. But I assured her that innocent comfort didn't violate our arrangement about "getting to know each other better first." After all, sleeping beside someone tells you a lot about their character. Forest Shadow offered her chambers instead, but I felt more comfortable with Swift Wing since we'd spent the day working closely together. I hope you understand - sometimes a man just needs the comfort of a future wife near-by. Missing you terribly (though having company helps with the loneliness), Tim P.S. - It's different than sleeping beside you, but there's something soothing about pegasus wing rustles at night. Almost like a lullaby. Crystal Light’s horn glowed as she read the letter, her carefully maintained composure faltered. "Sir... are you sure about sharing such details with Lady Sparkle?" "No," I grinned. "But I believe in complete honesty with my wife. Nothing improper happened - just innocent comfort and sleep." "Yes sir," she replied, magic enveloping the scroll. "Though may I suggest warning the healers at Ponyville Hospital about potential magical discharge? Even innocent bed-sharing might be... provocative news to Lady Sparkle." "Probably wise," I agreed. "Though I hope she understands. Sometimes a stallion just needs the comfort of not sleeping alone. And I hope she’ll accept my seeking innocent comfort more than me taking my privileges with the captains. After all, we’ve only been here one day.” Crystal Light's barely suppressed smile suggested she understood the delicate balance I was trying to strike - complete honesty about innocent comfort, even if it might spark some jealousy. After all, it is better to be truthful about small things than hide them and create larger doubts. Though perhaps I should still warn the fortress healers also. Even honest letters could have explosive consequences when dealing with a pregnant unicorn's emotions... * * * Twilight "Look!" I nearly bounced in my chair as Spike belched up a new letter. "He's already writing to me!" Rose Petal smiled indulgently, setting down her morning reports. "Missing him already?" "Of course I am." I hugged the still-sealed letter close, breathing in the faint traces of Tim's scent that clung to the parchment. "I didn't expect him to write so soon though. Usually when nobles inspect new territories they're too busy for-" My voice died as I actually read the letter. Then read it again, my joy turning to something darker as I processed what he was telling me. "He had her in his CHAMBERS?!" My shriek rattled the library windows. Rose Petal winced, quickly shepherding curious patrons toward the exit as my horn crackled dangerously. "My lady," she started carefully, "he's being completely honest about-" "SLEEPING BESIDE HER? COMPARING HER SOUNDS TO MINE?!" Several books launched themselves off the shelves as my magic surged. "He's barely been gone 24 hours and he's already replacing me with a Pegasus’s wing rustles!" "I'm sure it was just innocent comfort..." Rose tried again, though her crimson coat darkened as she read over my shoulder. "He even stayed clothed and on top of the covers..." "NOT. HELPING." A particularly violent spark sent a nearby lamp floating. "I was sitting here like some love-struck filly, so excited to get a letter from my husband, and he tells me he's CUDDLING WITH ANOTHER MARE?!" The quill I grabbed practically smoked as I yanked fresh parchment closer. "Oh, he wants to talk about innocent comfort? Fine. Let's show him what real 'comfort' looks like." Dearest Tim, How wonderful to hear you're learning to appreciate pegasus wing rustles. Though I must say, your timing is impeccable - I was just discovering some fascinating things about earth pony stamina myself. Did you know Rose Petal can go for hours without getting tired? Something about natural earth pony endurance... Don't worry though - I didn't stay clothed on top of the covers like some nervous colt. When I need comfort, I take it properly. You were right about having a warm, willing mare pressed close being quite pleasant. Especially one with such generous curves. She did remind me that I should respect the same three month wait with her as you are, but I couldn’t wait. I convinced her that sharing my bed wouldn't technically violate our arrangement about "getting to know each other better." And my, the things I've learned... The other guards seemed quite disappointed when I chose Rose for my chambers. I may have to make it up to them tonight. After all, that's what those traditional privileges are for, right? Though I have to say, earth pony stamina is quite different from pegasus enthusiasm... Missing you terribly (though Rose helps ease the loneliness in ways your innocent cuddling never could), Twilight P.S. - Did you know earth ponies purr when they're completely satisfied? So much more interesting than simple wing rustles. "I should be able to deliver this directly to him," I said, watching Rose try to contain her horror at how far I'd escalated things. "Though perhaps we should warn the fortress healers in case he breaks something." "My lady," Rose managed, her coat darkened with genuine concern now. "Don't you think this response is a bit... extreme? He was being honest about innocent comfort and you're implying..." "Good," I snapped, though something in my chest tightened at her expression. "Let him see how it feels to imagine his wife seeking 'comfort' elsewhere." I sent the letter before I could reconsider, ignoring the voice in my head pointing out that I'd just responded to complete honesty with deliberately cruel implications. Sometimes jealousy makes us strike hardest at those who deserve it least. * * * Tim The Great Hall's breakfast spread was impressive, though not as impressive as Twilight's magical letter materializing beside my plate. Swift Wing looked up from her own meal, curiosity evident as I read. My initial amusement at Twilight writing a reply to the letter I sent this morning died as I processed exactly what my wife was implying. Each word felt like a knife, twisting deeper as I realized how she'd responded to my honest admission of innocent comfort. "My Lord?" Swift Wing asked, concern replacing curiosity as she watched my knuckles whiten around the parchment. "Forest Shadow, Thunder Step, Crystal Light," I called out, my voice steady despite my tension. "I need all of you here." Once all three captains were assembled, I passed them Twilight's letter. Their reactions ranged from shock to concern as they read. "My Lord! She wouldn't actually..." Swift Wing started. "No, she wouldn't," I cut her off firmly. "This is fear and jealousy speaking. And I'm not going to let it escalate further." I reached for fresh parchment, but not to write to my wife. Your Highness, I find myself in need of your counsel regarding a delicate situation with Twilight. I've enclosed her latest letter, written in response to my honest admission about seeking innocent comfort while at Dawn Gate. While I understand pregnancy can affect a unicorn's emotions, her implications concern me deeply. I choose not to respond directly to her letter, as I fear any reply would only feed into an escalating cycle of hurt and retaliation. However, I worry that my silence might be interpreted as validation of her fears rather than the tactical retreat it represents. Perhaps a word from you might help her understand that these kinds of implications can damage a marriage beyond repair if left unchecked. I love her too much to engage in a war of words that could leave permanent scars. With respect and concern, Lord Timothy "Crystal Light," I said quietly, sealing both letters together, "please deliver this directly to Princess Celestia." "You're not going to respond to Lady Sparkle?" Forest Shadow asked carefully. "No," I replied, my voice firm. "Sometimes the most effective response is no response at all. Let her wonder why I'm not taking her bait. Let her imagination work against her for a change." Thunder Step nodded approvingly. "She'll drive herself crazy wondering what you're thinking." "Exactly," I managed a small smile. "Though I suspect Princess Celestia may have some choice words for her student about appropriate ways to handle marital concerns." The captains exchanged glances, clearly impressed by this more measured approach to what could have become a devastating exchange of increasingly hostile letters. Sometimes the wisest response is no response at all. Even if that means letting your wife's imagination do all the work while waiting for a princess to provide some much-needed perspective. * * * Celestia The urgent dispatch from Dawn Gate arrived as I was having my morning tea. One look at Lord Timothy's careful handwriting and the letter it enclosed from my student made me set aside my cup with a frown. "Oh, Twilight," I murmured, reading her spiteful implications again. "What dangerous games you're playing with your marriage." I appreciated Tim's restraint in not responding directly. Many nobles would have escalated immediately, turning implications into outright threats. Instead, he sought counsel before letting pride drive a deeper wedge between them. First, a brief response to Tim: Dear Lord Timothy, Your decision not to engage directly with these implications shows wisdom and maturity I wish more nobles possessed. You are correct - any response would likely only feed into Twilight's fears and spark further retaliation. I will speak with my student directly about the damage such "noble spite" can do to a marriage. Your tactical retreat may frustrate her initially, but it gives me room to help her understand the gravity of her actions before permanent harm is done. Continue focusing on Dawn Gate's needs. Let me handle this delicate situation with Twilight. With appreciation for your restraint, Princess Celestia Then, a much sharper message to my student: My less than Faithful Student, I have received a copy of your latest letter to your husband. I find myself wondering if you'd prefer to destroy your marriage quickly through carefully crafted implications, or if you're aiming for a slower death by a thousand spiteful cuts? Your husband showed remarkable restraint in not responding to your provocations. Instead, he came to me for counsel, worried that any reply would only feed an escalating cycle of hurt. Do you understand what that means? He would rather appear weak in my eyes than risk permanent damage to your marriage through hasty words. I believe he told you the complete truth about seeking innocent comfort. You responded with implications designed to wound as deeply as possible. Is this truly how you want to handle your fears? By trying to hurt the one stallion who has proven himself worthy of absolute trust? Consider carefully why he hasn't responded to your letter. Is his silence easier or harder to bear than any reply might have been? Sometimes the most devastating response is no response at all. I suggest you think very carefully about your next move. Your husband's restraint in this matter far exceeds what most nobles would show. Don't mistake that restraint for weakness - or worse, permission to continue these dangerous games with your marriage's future. Awaiting your response with deep disappointment, Celestia I sealed both letters, though my heart was heavy as I sent them. Sometimes being a mentor meant letting your student face the full consequences of their actions. Even if those consequences came wrapped in silence rather than spite. * * * Twilight "Look!" I nearly bounced in my chair as Spike belched out a scroll in a burst of green flame. "He's already writing back-" My voice died as I recognized Princess Celestia's royal seal instead of Tim's familiar handwriting. "Wait... why is the Princess writing to me?" My confusion turned to dread as I read her words. Each sentence felt like a blade, but it was her question about whether I preferred to destroy my marriage quickly or slowly that made me physically ill. "My lady?" Rose Petal moved to steady me as I swayed. "What does the Princess say?" "She... she wants to know if I'd prefer to destroy my marriage quickly through 'carefully crafted implications' or aim for a slower death by a thousand spiteful cuts." A bitter laugh escaped me. "Tim didn't even respond to my letter. He went straight to Celestia instead." The letter trembled in my magical grip. "He showed her what I wrote, Rose. Instead of responding to my provocations, he sought her counsel because he was worried any reply would just make things worse." My voice cracked. "He'd rather appear weak in Celestia's eyes than risk permanent damage to our marriage through hasty words." "Perhaps that shows wisdom on his part," Rose suggested carefully. "Wisdom?" I laughed, though there was no humor in it. "He told me the complete truth about seeking innocent comfort - fully clothed, on top of covers, nothing hidden. And I responded by trying to hurt him as deeply as possible." Fresh tears fell. "Now he won't even write back to me. The Princess says his silence might be harder to bear than any reply..." "Is it?" Rose asked quietly. "Yes," I whispered, one hoof pressing against my belly where our twins grew. "At least if he'd responded with anger, I'd know what he was thinking. But this silence..." I swallowed hard. "The Princess says not to mistake his restraint for weakness. He's not responding because he knows it will drive me crazy wondering what he's thinking." "And is it?" "Of course it is!" I snapped, my horn sparking with unstable magic. "He's probably sitting in his office right now, perfectly calm, while I'm here falling apart because he won't even acknowledge my spite!" The tears came faster. "I tried to hurt him with noble implications, and he responded by showing the Princess exactly what kind of mare he married." I stared at the blank parchment on my desk, suddenly uncertain. "How do I even respond to this? To him? He's not giving me anything to work with, just... silence." "Perhaps," Rose suggested gently, "that's exactly the point. He's giving you space to really think about what you've done, without the heat of an angry response to justify further retaliation." "He's letting me stew in my own spite," I whispered, understanding dawning. "While putting the Princess between us to prevent things from escalating further." My laugh held no humor. "He really does understand noble politics better than I thought. I just... I never expected him to use that understanding against me like this." "And he probably never expected you to use your noble training against him either," Rose said quietly, her words striking deep. "All couples fight, Twilight, but there's a difference between anger and intentional cruelty. Adding lies and deliberately crafted hurt to a marriage... that only leads to one place - divorce. Is that what you want?" The word 'divorce' hit me like a physical blow. I'd been so caught up in my own fears and spite that I hadn't truly considered where this path might lead. My ears flattened as I remembered how Tim had fought to protect our marriage by seeking counsel rather than retaliating. Meanwhile, I'd been wielding noble politics like a weapon, as if our vows meant nothing... "You should write to him anyway," Rose continued more softly, seeing how her words had affected me. "Even if he doesn't respond." "What's the point?" I asked bitterly, though my voice had lost some of its edge. "He clearly doesn't want to engage-" "The point," Rose interrupted gently, "is that just because he's chosen silence doesn't mean he isn't hurting. He went to Celestia, Twilight. That shows how deeply your words wounded him - deeply enough that he needed help to avoid making it worse." I stared at the blank parchment before me, tears threatening again. "What could I possibly say? 'Sorry I implied I was sleeping with you to hurt him'?" "How about the truth?" Rose suggested. "That you were jealous and scared, and you lashed out in the worst way possible - by taking his honest admission and turning it into a weapon." She paused thoughtfully. "He told you the complete truth about seeking innocent comfort. Maybe start by acknowledging how badly you repaid that honesty." My horn glowed as I pulled the parchment closer, forcing myself to write: Dearest Tim, I know you've chosen not to respond to my spiteful letter, and I understand why. You're showing more wisdom than I did by preventing an escalation of cruel words. But even if you maintain your silence, I need you to know how deeply I regret what I wrote. You told me the complete truth about seeking innocent comfort - fully clothed, on top of covers, nothing hidden. I repaid that honesty by crafting implications specifically designed to hurt you. I took your trust and turned it into a weapon, and I will never forgive myself for that. The fact that you went to Celestia instead of responding shows both how deeply I wounded you and how determined you are to protect our marriage from further damage. I didn't deserve such consideration after what I wrote. I love you. I'm terrified of losing you. But that fear doesn't excuse using noble spite to hurt the one stallion who has always been honest with me. Your silence speaks volumes about your character, while my letter revealed the worst of mine. Even if you choose not to respond - which I would understand - please know how sorry I am. Your wife, Twilight "Do you think he'll write back?" I asked softly as I sealed the letter. Rose's expression was gentle but honest. "No. But that's not why you're writing this. You're writing it because he deserves to hear that you understand exactly what you did wrong, even if he maintains his silence." Sometimes the hardest letters to write are the ones you know won't receive a response. Even if that silence is meant to protect rather than punish. * * * Tim "The southeast tower is completely unusable," Thunder Step reported, her dark storm-cloud coat almost black against the morning fog. "Bronze Star let the ward stones degrade to nearly nothing. One good griffon attack and the whole defensive line would collapse." I made another note on the growing list of critical repairs. Dawn Gate's previous lord had apparently been more interested in "traditional privileges" than actual military readiness. The thought made my jaw clench, remembering Forest Shadow's breakdown yesterday. "My lord?" Swift Wing called from above, her wings cutting sharp patterns through the mist. "You need to see this." I followed her up the crumbling steps, trying not to think about how the stone beneath my feet felt more like loose gravel than proper fortress masonry. The view from the top made my blood run cold. "They stripped the copper wiring," Swift Wing said quietly, pointing to where the magical warning system should have been. "Probably sold it for quick bits. The entire early detection grid is dead." "How did this place not fall?" I muttered, watching Storm Cloud test another wobbling stone with her hoof. "Because nopony truly challenged it," Forest Shadow maintained her practiced restraint despite last night's vulnerability "Bronze Star's... interests... lay more in collecting proper traditional presentations than maintaining military strength. Thank Celestia that war is rare, or we would have lost the East before we even knew we were under attack.” I caught the slight tremor in her voice, the way her forest-green coat darkened at the memories. But before I could offer comfort, she straightened and added with deliberate lightness: "Though perhaps we should document these structural weaknesses properly? For your next research paper on noble incompetence?" Swift Wing nearly fell off the tower trying not to laugh. Even Thunder Step's professional demeanor cracked slightly. "An excellent suggestion, Captain," I replied gravely. "Please prepare a full report. With diagrams. I'm sure Lady Sparkle would appreciate thorough documentation of Bronze Star's... inadequacies." Forest Shadow's answering smile held real warmth. "Should I include a comparative analysis of proper versus improper noble behavior? With detailed notation about leadership qualities?" "Don't forget the statistical breakdown of noble integrity versus traditional expectations," Swift Wing added innocently from above. "You're all insane," Thunder Step declared, though I caught her fighting back a grin. "Now, about these ward stones..." I let their banter wash over me, noting how Forest Shadow's shoulders had slowly relaxed, how she could now joke about the very things that once terrified her. Sometimes healing happened in the quiet moments between the grand gestures. "Right," I said, turning back to the very real problems facing us. "First priority is securing these walls. Swift Wing, get me a complete aerial survey. Thunder Step, I want a full assessment of every ward stone by sundown. Forest Shadow..." "Already drafting the report, sir," she replied crisply, then added with perfect innocence, "Complete with anatomical diagrams of proper noble posture for wall inspections." The pebble I threw at her was justified, even though it missed completely. Her laugh was worth it and made the crumbling tower feel a little more like home. Home. The thought stuck with me as we descended back into the fortress proper. Not just a military posting or a political appointment. These mares - my captains, my future wives, my family - were making this broken fortress into something more. Now I just had to keep it from literally collapsing around us. "Sir?" Crystal Light's voice interrupted my musings. "Another letter from Lady Sparkle..." I gathered my captains around, sharing Twilight's apologetic letter with them. Each mare read it carefully, their expressions thoughtful. "She seems genuinely remorseful," Forest Shadow observed quietly. "Yes," I agreed, reaching for fresh parchment. "But I need to understand why this is happening. First, the Princess needs to see this development." Your Highness, I've enclosed Twilight's response to your intervention. While her apology seems sincere, I remain concerned about the underlying causes of her reaction. That she would respond to my honest admission with such calculated spite, even if she regrets it now, suggests deeper issues that need addressing. I maintain my position of not responding directly for now. Perhaps you can help me understand if this is purely pregnancy-related emotional volatility, or if there are other factors I should consider. With respect, Lord Timothy I considered my options and then crafted a second letter: Lady Velvet, I write to you seeking insight into your daughter's current state of mind. I've enclosed copies of our recent correspondence, including her reaction to my sharing innocent comfort with Swift Wing and her subsequent apology. As her mother, you understand both noble traditions and Twilight's character better than most. I need to know - is this behavior typical of pregnant unicorns, or should I be more concerned about how quickly she turned to noble spite when feeling threatened? She's never shown this tendency before. Your daughter is carrying my children, and I love her deeply. But I cannot help her if I don't understand what's truly driving these reactions. Any insight you can provide would be greatly appreciated. Your son-in-law, Tim "Crystal Light," I said quietly, sealing both letters. "Please ensure these reach their recipients." "You're still not going to respond to Lady Sparkle directly?" Swift Wing asked carefully. "No," I replied, turning back to our fortress inspection. "Sometimes silence speaks louder than words. And right now, I need to understand why my wife's first instinct was to wound rather than trust." I picked up my notes again. "Now, about those ward stones..." Sometimes the best way to handle emotional wounds was to seek understanding rather than immediate resolution. Even if that meant asking difficult questions of those who might not want to answer them. * * * Velvet The letter materialized during my afternoon tea, Tim's distinctive handwriting immediately catching my attention. As I read through the enclosed correspondence between my daughter and her husband, my customary smile faded completely. "Oh, my foolish daughter," I whispered, reaching for fresh parchment. I had to write to them both. Dear Tim, Thank you for bringing this situation to my attention. While pregnancy certainly affects unicorn mares deeply - both emotionally and magically - Twilight's response goes beyond typical maternal volatility. Unicorn pregnancies, especially with twins, can cause extreme emotional reactions and magical instability. Add to that the unprecedented nature of carrying hybrid foals, and we're in uncharted territory. However, this doesn't excuse her deliberate cruelty. You told her the complete truth about seeking innocent comfort. She responded by crafting implications specifically designed to wound you. That's not pregnancy hormones speaking - that's noble training being misused in the worst possible way. Your choice not to respond directly was wise. Twilight needs to understand that actions have consequences, and sometimes those consequences come in the form of silence rather than retaliation. Keep doing what you're doing - focusing on Dawn Gate while letting her sit with the weight of her choices. I'll speak with her directly about this behavior. Your concerned mother-in-law, Velvet Then, a much sharper message to my daughter: Ungrateful Spawn, I've seen the letters between you and Tim. I find myself wondering if pregnancy has addled your mind completely, or if you've simply forgotten everything I taught you about being worthy of the love you're given. Your husband told you the complete truth about seeking innocent comfort - fully clothed, on top of covers, nothing hidden. You responded with carefully crafted implications designed to wound him as deeply as possible. Then, when he showed wisdom by not retaliating, you sent an apology that, while seemingly sincere, doesn't address the core issue. Do you understand what you have in Tim? A stallion who chose to seek Celestia's counsel rather than respond in kind to your spite? Who even now writes to me seeking understanding of your behavior rather than condemning it? Let me be absolutely clear - this isn't just pregnancy hormones affecting your judgment. This is you taking noble training meant to test devotion and turning it into a weapon against the one stallion who has proven himself worthy of absolute trust. He's trying to understand why you reacted this way. He's worried about you, even after what you wrote. And how do you repay that concern? By making him fear what other cruelties you might be capable of when feeling threatened. Fix this, Twilight. Not with more letters or apologies, but by understanding exactly how close you came to damaging something precious beyond repair. Your husband deserves better than having his honesty turned against him. With deep disappointment, Mother I sealed both letters, my heart heavy. Sometimes being a mother meant helping your daughter understand exactly how badly she'd mishandled something precious. Even if that understanding came wrapped in necessary disappointment rather than gentle guidance. * * * Celestia The noon sun streamed through my study windows as I reviewed the morning's correspondence. Setting aside a trade agreement with the griffon kingdoms, I noticed another dispatch from Dawn Gate - the second this morning. My heart grew heavy as I recognized Lord Timothy's careful script. Opening the letter revealed not just his words, but a copy of Twilight's apology. My student's remorse seemed genuine, yet something in Tim's restrained tone suggested he needed more than just my confirmation of this fact. He was handling this delicate situation with remarkable wisdom for someone so new to noble politics. First, a response to Tim: Dear Lord Timothy, I appreciate you keeping me informed of these developments. While Twilight's apology seems genuine, I share your instinct not to respond directly yet. Her words show she understands what she did wrong, but not necessarily why she did it. Your continued silence is serving its purpose - forcing her to truly examine her actions without the comfort of a response to react against. The fact that she wrote anyway, knowing you might maintain your silence, suggests she's beginning to understand the gravity of her actions. Continue as you are. Let her sit with this discomfort while focusing on Dawn Gate's needs. Sometimes the hardest lessons come wrapped in silence rather than words. With appreciation for your continued wisdom, Princess Celestia Then, another message to my student: Twilight, I see you've written to your husband despite his chosen silence. While your apology seems sincere, I wonder if you truly understand why he sought my counsel rather than responding to your initial spite? He's not being cruel by maintaining his silence. He's showing remarkable restraint - choosing to protect your marriage from further damage rather than engage in a war of words that could leave permanent scars. That you would write anyway, knowing he might not respond, shows you're beginning to understand the weight of what you did. However, understanding what you did wrong isn't the same as understanding why you did it. Why was your first instinct to respond to his honest admission with carefully crafted cruelty? What were you truly afraid of? Consider carefully why a stallion who values honesty above all else would choose silence rather than risk further damage to your marriage. Perhaps when you understand that you'll understand why your apology, while welcome, doesn't address the deeper issue. Awaiting your insights, Celestia I sealed both letters, noting how this situation had evolved. Sometimes being a mentor means guiding your student toward deeper understanding. Even if that understanding had to come through uncomfortable self-reflection rather than immediate reconciliation. * * * Twilight Spike belched twice in rapid succession, two scrolls materializing in bursts of green flame. One bore Celestia's royal seal, the other my mother's familiar signet. My heart clenched as I recognized them - clearly Tim had reached out to both for insight. "More letters?" Rose asked carefully. "From Mother and the Princess," I said, my voice shaking slightly as I opened Mother's first. My breath caught at the address - 'Ungrateful Spawn.' Each word that followed felt like I was being choked, but it was her stark assessment of my behavior that hurt most. Not just pregnancy hormones, she said, but a deliberate misuse of everything she'd taught me. Then Celestia's letter, its measured tone somehow worse than Mother's rage. The Princess wasn't just disappointed - she was pushing me to examine why I'd responded with cruelty to Tim's honesty. "They're both responding to the apology I sent Tim," I whispered, the letters trembling in my magical grip. "He showed them both. He's still not writing to me directly, but he's trying to understand why I did this." "What do they say?" Rose asked softly. "Mother called me 'Ungrateful Spawn,'" I laughed bitterly. "She's furious that I took her noble training and twisted it into a weapon against Tim. And Celestia..." I swallowed hard. "She wants me to examine why my first instinct was to respond to honesty with cruelty. They both say my apology, while sincere, doesn't address the real issue." "Which is?" "That I didn't just hurt Tim - I proved his worst fears about nobles right." Fresh tears fell. "He values honesty above everything, and I showed him exactly why he shouldn't trust noblemares with his heart. Mother says he's still trying to understand why I reacted this way, even after what I wrote. He's worried about me, Rose. Even after I tried to wound him as deeply as possible." "Perhaps that's why his silence hurts so much," Rose suggested gently. "He's not punishing you - he's protecting your marriage while trying to understand what drove you to such cruelty." "And I can't even blame pregnancy hormones," I whispered, touching my belly where our twins grew. "Mother's right - this was me deliberately misusing everything she taught me about noble politics. I took training meant to test devotion and turned it into a weapon against the one stallion who never deserved it." I stared at both letters, feeling smaller by the moment. "How do I fix this? Not just what I did, but what it revealed about me? About how quickly I turned to spite when feeling threatened?" "Maybe that's what you need to understand first," Rose said quietly. "Not just what you did wrong, but why you did it. The Princess is right - there's a deeper issue here than just jealousy over Swift Wing." Sometimes the hardest letters to read are the ones that force you to examine truths you'd rather avoid. Even if those truths come wrapped in a mother's rage and a mentor's careful prodding. * * * Tim "I suggest we take lunch in my office," I told my captains as we finished the morning's inspections. "We have letters to review, and I'd rather discuss them privately." Once settled with our meals, I shared Celestia's and Velvet's responses. The mares read them carefully, passing each letter until all had seen them. "Lady Velvet's insights about unicorn pregnancies are interesting," Forest Shadow observed. "Especially about the unprecedented nature of carrying hybrid foals." "But both she and the Princess support your choice not to respond directly," Thunder Step added. "They seem to agree that Twilight needs to examine why she reacted with such calculated spite." Swift Wing shifted uncomfortably. "Sir... do you think this goes beyond simple jealousy over me?" "I do," I said quietly, reviewing our morning's inspection notes. "But right now, I need to focus on keeping this fortress standing. The southeast tower's ward stones won't fix themselves, and the copper wiring for the early warning system needs complete replacement." Crystal Light's horn glowed as she organized our findings. "The priority has to be the ward stones. Without them, we're practically defenseless against magical attacks." "Agreed," I nodded. "Thunder Step, what resources would you need to begin repairs?" "Fresh ward stones, obviously," she replied professionally. "But also specialized tools for the installation. The old mounting brackets are corroded - we'll need to replace those too." "The copper wiring will be expensive," Swift Wing added from above. "But we might be able to salvage some from less critical areas to patch the main detection grid temporarily." "No," I said firmly. "No half measures. Order what we need to do this properly. I won't have this fortress's security compromised by budget concerns." I managed a small smile. "Besides, proper documentation of these repairs might help certain ponies understand where my priorities truly lie." Forest Shadow caught my meaning first. "You're going to show Lady Sparkle exactly what you've been focused on instead of responding to her letter." "Eventually," I agreed. "But for now, we have work to do. Crystal Light, draft a complete materials list. Swift Wing, I want detailed aerial surveys of every potential weakness in our defensive line. Thunder Step, prioritize the ward stone replacements - start with the most critical points. Forest Shadow..." "Continue documenting everything," she finished with a knowing smile. "Complete with those anatomical diagrams of proper noble posture?" "Focus on the structural issues," I corrected, though I couldn't help returning her smile. "Though perhaps a small section comparing Bronze Star's priorities with proper fortress management..." "You're all insane," Thunder Step declared, but her professional demeanor had lightened considerably. "Now, about those ward stone specifications..." I let their technical discussion wash over me, grateful for their mix of competence and careful humor. These mares understood - sometimes the best way to handle emotional turmoil was to focus on practical problems. Even if those problems involved completely rebuilding a fortress's magical defenses while certain ponies dealt with the consequences of their choices. "Sir?" Crystal Light's voice drew me back to the present. "Should I include the cost estimates in the documentation?" "Everything," I confirmed. "Let's show exactly what Bronze Star's neglect has cost us. Both in bits and security." "Before we place orders for everything," I said, reviewing the growing list of materials, "we should check what's available in Dawn Gate town. No sense waiting on shipments if we can source things locally." Crystal Light's horn glowed as she consulted a map. "The town has developed a decent trade district to support the fortress. They should at least have basic supplies." "And the merchants might be more willing to extend credit to their new lord than distant suppliers," Thunder Step added practically. "All of you, with me then," I decided, standing. "I want to see what this town has to offer, and it's about time they met their new lord properly." The walk into town revealed a bustling market district that had clearly grown up around servicing the fortress's needs. Shops lined the main street, their signs advertising everything from basic metalwork to specialized magical components. "My Lord," Swift Wing called from above, her aerial view giving her a better perspective. "There's a promising looking magical supply shop three buildings down. And I see what might be a metalworker's forge near the square." Forest Shadow's ears perked up at the sight of a particularly well-maintained storefront. "That's Wei's Trading Post. They specialize in copper wire and other conductive materials. Bronze Star may have stripped the fortress, but at least we know where he likely sold it..." "Wouldn't that be interesting to track," I mused. "Though right now, I'm more concerned with replacing what's missing than investigating where it went." The locals were clearly curious about their new lord's presence, though they maintained a respectful distance. I caught snippets of whispered conversations about how different this inspection felt from Bronze Star's rare appearances. "My Lord," Crystal Light said quietly as we approached Wei's shop. "Perhaps we should split up to cover more ground? Thunder Step could check the magical suppliers while Forest Shadow and I investigate the metalworkers." "Good idea. Swift Wing, maintain aerial surveillance. I want to know if any of these merchants try to hide inventory when they see us coming." I managed a small smile. "Let's see what Dawn Gate can provide for its own defense." Sometimes the best solutions could be found close to home. Even if those solutions meant walking the very streets your predecessor had likely sold your fortress's security through. * * * Twilight "I've barely touched my lunch," I muttered, pushing the plate away. "How can I eat when I can't even figure out why I responded so... cruelly?" Rose looked up from her own meal, her expression thoughtful. "Perhaps we should break this down logically. What was your first feeling when Tim sent his letter about sharing the bed with Swift Wing?" "Betrayal," I answered immediately, then frowned. "But that doesn't make sense. He went to Celestia instead of responding to my spite. He was completely honest about seeking innocent comfort..." "Yet you responded as if he'd been unfaithful," Rose pressed gently. "Why?" I placed a hoof on my swollen belly, feeling our twins shift. "Because... because Swift Wing can give him what I currently can't. Physical comfort, intimacy..." My voice cracked. "I can barely kiss him without getting sick some mornings. And there she is, perfectly capable of meeting his needs..." "But he didn't take advantage of that," Rose reminded me. "He went to the Princess instead of retaliating. Doesn't that tell you something?" "That he loves me more than his own needs," I whispered, fresh tears threatening. "And I repaid that love by crafting implications designed to hurt him as deeply as possible." I looked at Rose desperately. "But why? Why was my first instinct to wound rather than trust?" "Maybe," Rose suggested carefully, "because it's easier to strike first than to admit how vulnerable you feel? You're carrying his foals, your magic is unstable, you can't even travel to be with him... and then you learn he's sharing his bed, even innocently, with a mare who could give him everything you currently can't." Understanding started to dawn. "I turned to spite because I was afraid," I said slowly. "Not just of losing him, but of being... replaced. Of not being enough." A bitter laugh escaped me. "So, I tried to hurt him before he could hurt me, even though he's never given me any reason to doubt his love." "And now he's staying silent," Rose observed. "Letting the Princess handle this rather than engaging in a war of spiteful letters." "Which only proves how deeply I wounded him," I whispered, touching my belly again. "He's trying to protect our marriage by not responding, even after I tried to hurt him so deeply. And here I am, still sitting in my own spite while he focuses on his duties." "Maybe that's what you need to focus on," Rose suggested. "Not what you fear might happen, but what's actually happening. He chose silence and sought counsel rather than retaliating. That says more about his love than any spiteful letter could." Sometimes the hardest truths to face are the ones that reveal our own fears. Even if those fears drive us to wound the very ones who deserve it least. * * * Tim "These bank notes will transfer the bits directly to your accounts," I explained to the merchants as we completed our purchases. The pile of construction supplies grew steadily - fresh copper wire for the early warning system, ward stones for magical barriers, and enough lumber and stone to begin critical repairs. Crystal Light's horn glowed as she organized the transport arrangements. "The first wagons are ready to head back to Dawn Gate, sir. Thunder Step and Forest Shadow can escort them while we finish here." "Good," I nodded, watching the heavily laden carts begin their journey. My stomach growled, reminding me we'd been at this for hours. "Let's grab something to eat before we head back." The aroma from a nearby food cart drew us in - fresh hay fries and daisy sandwiches for the guards, and what looked like a surprisingly good vegetable stir-fry for me. The vendor's eyes widened at my human appearance but accepted the bank note without comment. We walked as the guards discussed the morning's purchases; their professional demeanor slightly relaxed by the successful shopping trip. A movement in a shadowy alley caught my eye - just a slight shift that most might have missed, but combat had made me alert to such things. A filly huddled there, her coat so dirty its original color was hard to determine. But what struck me most were her eyes - huge in her thin face, watching us with a mixture of fear and desperate hunger. Without hesitation, I approached, my untouched food extended. "Here." She shrank back initially, but the smell of hot food proved too tempting. Her magic, weak and flickering, took the container. The way she devoured it spoke of too many missed meals. "Sir," Crystal Light started softly, "your lunch..." "I'll eat when we get back to the fortress," I said, watching the filly practically inhale the food. "This is more important." Swift Wing's wings shuffled as she studied the scene. "Military towns like Dawn Gate often have more orphans than most, my lord. One-night stands with guards, nobles taking liberties..." She studied the filly's silvery coat thoughtfully. "Given her coloring, she might even be one of Bronze Star's abandoned foals." The filly tensed at the former lord's name, confirming Swift Wing's suspicion. My jaw clenched as I processed this. No wonder she was afraid - she'd been abandoned by the very nobles meant to protect her. "I am the lord here now," I said, my voice carrying the weight of my new title. "And this... this is one of my ponies." I knelt down to her level. "No more bureaucracy, no more passing the buck. Dawn Gate is my responsibility, and that includes every foal within its borders." The guards exchanged glances, their earlier relaxed mood replaced by something more somber. They'd seen enough of how I handled my duties to know what was coming next. Crystal Light's horn glowed as she cast a gentle warming spell around the shivering filly. Sometimes even the most professional guards revealed the hearts beneath their armor. "Not on my watch," I said quietly, my voice carrying an edge that made the guards snap to attention. "Not in my territory." I turned to Crystal Light, decision already made. "Contact every orphanage in Equestria. I want lists of every foal without a home." "Sir?" Her horn glowed as she readied a message crystal. "These are my lands now - Crystal Vale, Dawn Gate, all of it. And I won't have foals starving in alleys while we repair fortress walls." My voice hardened with purpose. "Find them. All of them. Bring them to Dawn Gate." Swift Wing's wings rustled with growing understanding. "Sir... are you suggesting..." "The Foal Guard," I confirmed, watching as the filly finished the last bites of food. "A training program for orphaned fillies and colts. Real purpose, real family - brothers and sisters in arms." I knelt down to the filly's level. "Would you like that? A home, training, others like you?" Her eyes widened, hope warring with disbelief. Crystal Light's voice was carefully neutral as she asked, "The logistics would be considerable, sir. Housing, supplies, instructors..." "Then get started on the requisition forms. I want quarters prepared, medical examinations arranged, training armor sized and ordered." I stood, my decision crystallizing into something deeper than mere duty. "These foals need a family. We'll give them one - a real one, built on shared purpose and belonging." The guards exchanged glances, then straightened with new determination. They'd seen what happened when I set my mind to something. "Swift Wing," I ordered, "coordinate with the other pegasi. I want aerial sweeps of every city, every hidden alley. Find them. All of them. No foal left behind. No foal abandoned." "Yes sir!" Her wings snapped tight with purpose. "Crystal Light, contact the orphanages. Make it clear - this isn't a request. Every foal deserves a real home. We will take every foal that wants to believe in belonging to a military family. "Of course, sir." Her horn glowed brighter. I turned back to the filly, who watched this exchange with growing wonder. "What's your name, soldier?" She swallowed hard before answering in a small voice: "Star Shine, sir." "Well, Star Shine," I smiled, "how would you like to be the first member of Dawn Gate's Foal Guard? Your own armor, your own purpose... and more brothers and sisters than you can count." The hope that blazed in her eyes was all the answer I needed. Sometimes the best families are the ones we build ourselves. Even if those families start with a single hungry filly in an alley and grow into something that changes lives across an entire nation. * * * Twilight My quill hovered over fresh parchment, tears falling onto the page as I forced myself to write: My beloved Tim, Your silence has given me time to truly examine why I reacted with such cruelty to your honest admission. The quiet has been harder to bear than any angry response, but I think I finally understand what drove me to such spite. I'm afraid. Terrified, actually. I can barely kiss you without getting sick some mornings. My magic is unstable, my body is changing, and I can't even travel to be with you. When I read about you sharing a bed with Swift Wing - even just for innocent comfort - all I could think about was how she could give you everything I currently can't. Instead of trusting the love you've proven time and again, I let my fears drive me to strike first. I tried to wound you before you could wound me, even though you've never given me any reason to doubt your devotion. I twisted your honesty into a weapon because I was terrified of being replaced, of not being enough. The fact that you went to Celestia instead of responding shows both how deeply I hurt you and how determined you are to protect our marriage from further damage. You'd rather appear weak before the Princess than risk permanent harm to what we have. Your silence speaks volumes about your character, while my letter revealed the worst of mine. Please write back - even if it's just to tell me you're angry. This silence, while I deserve it, is almost worse than any response could be. At least if you were angry, I'd know what you were feeling. Instead, I'm left wondering if I've damaged things beyond repair. I love you. I'm sorry. And I'm grateful that you chose to seek counsel rather than let my spite provoke you into matching cruelty. Your wife, Twilight P.S. - Thank you for giving me time to understand why I reacted so poorly. Your silence forced me to really examine my own fears instead of just reacting to them. I just... I need to know if there's still hope for us. I sealed the letter with trembling magic, praying it wasn't too late to fix what my fears had nearly broken. Sometimes the hardest letters to write are the ones that force us to face our own insecurities. Even if those insecurities drove us to wound the ones we love most. * * * Tim "There you go," I said, helping Star Shine towel off. Bath time reminded me so much of Sara - the same careful attention to not get soap in eyes, the same gentle reassurance that being clean wasn't scary. The filly's coat turned out to be a pale silver, almost starlit once the dirt was gone. She'd just settled into her second meal, this one properly served at a table, when Crystal Light brought me Twilight's letter. Reading it, I felt something tight in my chest loosen. Understanding replaced hurt as I read her explanation. I reached for parchment, pausing to ruffle Star Shine's freshly cleaned mane. My beloved Twilight, Your letter means more than you know. Understanding why you reacted that way helps heal the wound those words caused. I need you to promise never to use our love as a weapon again - no matter how afraid you are. We're stronger than that. That said... I've found a new purpose, a new passion that I think you'll understand. We found a starving orphan filly today. One meal turned into a much bigger mission. I'm emptying every orphanage in Equestria, bringing them all to Dawn Gate. I'm creating the ‘Foal Guard’ - giving homeless fillies and colts a real purpose, a real family. Our first recruit wants to write to you. I think you'll understand why this matters so much to me once you read her words. All my love, Tim I helped Star Shine with her very first letter: Dear Lady Mommy Twilight, Thank you for accepting me into your family of guards. All my love, Star Shine Her writing was shaky but determined. Just like her spirit. Swift Wing asked to add her own letter: Lady Sparkle, Lord Tim has just created something extraordinary. The Foal Guard will provide homes and training for orphaned fillies and colts across Equestria. But more than that - it will give them family. Real family. You should have seen him bathing Star Shine, our first recruit. The same gentle care he shows Sara, the same patient love. He's already ordered proper quarters prepared, training armor sized, medical examinations arranged. Every detail considered. This isn't just another guard unit. This is about building something bigger than ourselves. Something that changes lives. I thought you should know - this is who you married. A stallion who sees a hungry filly and creates an entire program to make sure no foal goes hungry again. Your sister-wife, Swift Wing I sealed all three letters together, knowing Twilight would understand. Sometimes love grows in unexpected ways. Even if those ways start with one small act of kindness in an alley and grow into something that reshapes an entire nation. * * * Twilight "Spike!" I called out in surprise as three letters materialized in his green flame at once. My heart leapt as I recognized Tim's handwriting on one of them, though the other two were unfamiliar. After his silence, any response felt like a gift. "Three at once?" Spike asked, gathering them up. "That's unusual. At least one's from Tim - maybe he's finally ready to talk?" "Yes," I whispered, my hooves trembling slightly as I took the letters. "Though I don't recognize the other writing..." I sorted through them carefully, setting aside the mysterious letters to read Tim's first. Just seeing his familiar handwriting made my chest tighten with hope. After the silence that had felt like forever, even though it had only been a day, any word from him was precious. I opened Tim's letter first, my heart lightening at his words of forgiveness. His excitement about this new purpose was palpable even through ink and paper. By the time I finished Swift Wing's letter, describing Tim's gentle care with the orphaned filly, tears were already forming. But it was Star Shine's simple note that broke me completely. Those few wobbly words - Dear Lady Mommy Twilight - written in a child's uncertain hoof, destroyed every wall I had left. "Oh Tim," I whispered, tears falling freely now. "This is why I fell in love with you." Of course he wouldn't just feed one hungry filly. Of course he wouldn't walk away once she was clean and fed. My Tim, my wonderful, impossible Tim, saw one filly in need and decided to reshape all of Equestria to help every foal like her. The Foal Guard. Not just a training program or a way to help orphans - but a real family for those who had none. I could picture him so clearly, showing the same gentle patience he used with Sara to help a frightened filly trust bath time. The same love that made him such a wonderful father to our daughter, now expanded to embrace every foal who needed it. "My lady?" Rose asked softly, concerned by my tears. "He's building them a family," I managed through my sobs. "Not just giving them food or shelter - he's giving them purpose, belonging, real love." I pressed my hoof to my belly where our twins grew. "This is the stallion who's going to be father to our foals. Who sees one hungry foal and creates an entire guard program just to make sure no foal goes hungry again." Fresh tears fell as I reread Star Shine's letter. Those carefully formed letters calling me "Lady Mommy" spoke of such hope, such trust. Tim hadn't just given her food and shelter - he'd given her a future. A family. A place to belong. "He's impossible," I whispered, but my voice held nothing but love. "Absolutely impossible. Only Tim would look at a starving filly and decide the solution was to empty every orphanage in Equestria." Sometimes love shows itself in the grandest gestures. Even if those gestures start with one simple meal and grow into a mission to change the lives of every orphaned child in the realm. * * * Author's Note Last Chapter for awhile. I have commissions to work on and college final exams coming up. //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 27 - Griffon Relations //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 27 - Griffon Relations Tim Dawn Gate fortress looked nothing like the crumbling shell I'd inherited a month ago. The morning sun caught the fresh stonework of the rebuilt eastern towers, their new positions offering overlapping fields of fire that would make any griffon think twice about testing our defenses. Bronze Star's neglect had been entirely reversed - every ward stone humming with fresh power, every wall restored to its original strength. Where new or additional towers wouldn't fit, we'd mounted siege engines. The massive ballistae and catapults filled the gaps in our defensive line, their freshly-oiled mechanisms ready to answer any enemy siege equipment. The familiar weight of my sword felt almost unnecessary now, with Dawn Gate's teeth finally bared properly, although we were still understaffed. But it wasn't the fortress's physical transformation that filled me with pride as I made my morning inspection. The sound of young voices calling cadence drew me to the training yard, where the first class of the Foal Guard ran their morning drills. 120 foals strong, ranging from barely-teens to almost-adults, all rescued from orphanages across Equestria. Star Shine led her training squad through their exercises, her silver coat gleaming as she demonstrated proper guard stances. She was the youngest at barely twelve, special permission granted due to being our first recruit, but what she lacked in age she made up for in dedication. Watching her guide the other foals through their forms, it was hard to believe this was the same filly I'd found starving in an alley just a month ago. "Time!" called the drill instructor, a gruff earth pony sergeant who'd taken one look at our rescued foals and volunteered on the spot. "Water break, then we're running the wall circuit. Full gear this time!" I watched the young ones trot to the water barrels, their practice armor clinking. We'd had to special order smaller sizes but seeing them standing tall in Dawn Gate's colors made every bit worth it. This wasn't just a military unit we were building - it was a family. "Lord Tim!" Star Shine spotted me and snapped to attention, her salute wobbling slightly under the weight of her training armor. The other foals followed suit, though several grinned at my presence. They'd learned quickly that while I expected proper military discipline, I wasn't above joining their training sessions or sneaking extra dessert to hard workers. "At ease," I spoke warmly. "Looking sharp out there, recruits. Though Star Shine, remember what I said about keeping your back hoof planted during that defensive spin?" Her eyes lit up. "Yes sir! Like this?" She demonstrated the move again, this time with perfect form. "Exactly. See how much more stable that feels?" The pride in her smile was worth every sleepless night spent reviewing adoption paperwork and arranging training schedules. These foals weren't just learning to be guards - they were learning to believe in themselves again. Lady Elect Swing Wing sneaked up behind me and surprised me with a kiss, causing the foals to giggle. I smiled as Swift Wing pulled away, trying to maintain some dignity despite the foals' poorly concealed laughter. In the last month, she'd grown more confident in these small displays of affection, though she still maintained perfect professional distance when actual duty called. "Shouldn't you be reviewing aerial patrol schedules?" I asked, raising an eyebrow at her playful smirk. "Already done, my lord," she replied, producing a scroll from her saddlebag. "Along with the latest toll collections. The northern trade caravans are finally moving again now that word's spread about our improved defenses." I scanned the figures, my eyebrows rising. The numbers were... impressive. Even after accounting for the fortress repairs, new equipment, and supporting over a hundred growing foals, we were still showing a substantial profit. "I don't understand," I muttered, double-checking the totals. "Bronze Star let all this fall apart when the tolls alone could have kept everything running perfectly? The ward stones would have paid for themselves in less than a month." Swift Wing's wings tightened slightly, a ‘tell’ I'd learned meant she was choosing her words carefully. "From what we've discovered in the old records, most of the toll money went to... personal entertainments. In Canterlot." I caught her meaning and felt my jaw clench. The foals were still watching us, so I kept my voice carefully neutral. "Well, that explains the state of the guard quarters we had to demolish and rebuild. And the missing copper wiring. And pretty much everything else we had to fix." "At least the repairs are almost complete," Swift Wing offered, her wing brushing against my arm in a gesture that made several of the older foals exchange knowing looks. "Though we may need to expand the dining hall soon. Some of these recruits are hitting growth spurts." "Good," I said firmly, watching Star Shine demonstrate that defensive spin for some of her fellow trainees. "They're supposed to be growing. Proper food, proper training, proper-" "Proper love?" Swift Wing finished softly. "Exactly." I caught Star Shine's eye and nodded approval at her form. Her beaming smile reminded me exactly why we'd started this program. "Speaking of which, how are the new family quarters coming along?" "Almost finished. Though you might want to check the plans for the classroom wing. Some of the instructors think we need more space for academic lessons." "They're probably right. We're not just training guards here - we're raising foals. They need more than just combat drills and tactical training." The giggles from the water barrels suggested our audience was thoroughly enjoying this domestic moment between their commander and his Lady-Elect. Swift Wing's ears twitched slightly as she noticed their attention. "Perhaps we should continue this discussion somewhere more private?" she suggested. "Unless you'd prefer to give the recruits more entertainment during their break?" "How about we walk the eastern wall?" I suggested, noting the drill instructor preparing to resume training. "I'd like your input on the new siege engine placements anyway." Swift Wing nodded warmly, though her wing brushed against me again as we turned to leave. Behind us, I heard one of the older fillies whisper something about "so romantic" before the instructor's sharp command brought them back to attention. The walk to the eastern wall was quiet, both of us lost in thought. "You're quiet," Swift Wing observed as we reached the first guard tower. "Thinking about the foals?" "Among other things," I admitted, pausing to study the defensive layout. "Sometimes I wonder if we're doing enough. 120 slots sound like a lot until you realize how many we had to turn away." Swift Wing's wings shifted thoughtfully. "We could expand the program eventually. Once this first class proves successful..." "But that doesn't help the ones we couldn't take now," I sighed. "Some of those rejection letters were hard to write. Especially the younger ones that really wanted to be here." "Tim." Swift Wing's voice softened as she used my name rather than my title. "You can't save every foal in Equestria. What you're doing here is already more than anypony expected." "I know, but-" Her kiss cut off my brooding, more insistent than her playful peck in the training yard. When she pulled back, her eyes held that mix of affection and exasperation I was becoming very familiar with. It reminded me of the spousal affection I get from Twilight. "But nothing," she stared into my eyes so deeply I could feel my heart tighten. "You've given 120 foals a real future. A real family. Stop torturing yourself about the ones you couldn't help yet and focus on the ones who need you now." I leaned against the wall, feeling the solid stone beneath my hands. "I need to leave for Crystal Vale soon. Rose's last letter mentioned the trade routes need attention, and I'm at the end of the one-month time frame I had planned to be here." I sighed, watching the morning patrols circle below. "A month seemed like plenty of time when we planned this rotation and under ideal circumstances, I would have been leaving today for the next inspection…" Swift Wing settled beside me, her wings shuffling slightly. "The fortress needed more work than expected. Nopony blames you for staying to oversee the critical repairs." "It's not just the repairs though," I admitted quietly. "Every time I think about leaving, I remember Star Shine's face when we found her. How many other fillies are out there, just waiting for somepony to care? To notice?" "You can't be everywhere at once," she reminded me gently. "Rose needs you too. And Twilight..." "Twilight." Just saying her name made my chest ache. "Her letters say she's doing well, that the twins are growing normally, but... I'm missing it. All those little changes, those precious moments..." I ran a hand through my hair in frustration. "A few letters a week isn't the same as being there to feel them kick, to watch her belly grow, to hold her when the morning sickness hits." Swift Wing pressed closer, offering silent comfort. "She understands why you needed to stay. The fortress had to be secured first." "Understanding doesn't make it easier though, does it?" I glanced at her knowingly. "For any of us." Her wings drooped slightly - I'd hit a nerve. This arrangement was hard on everyone, not just me. Swift Wing had her own adjustments to make, balancing her new role as Lady-Elect with maintaining professional distance during our agreed separation period. Despite Twilight's permission to use my noble privileges, I hadn't touched Swift Wing or any of the captains beyond simple kisses. That faithfulness kept me grounded, even if it tested the limits of our patience. "No," she agreed wistfully. "It doesn't make it easier. But it makes it worthwhile." * * * Twilight The morning sun streamed through Crystal Vale castle's windows, catching the gems embedded in the walls and casting rainbow patterns across my growing belly. At three months pregnant, the twins were making their presence increasingly obvious, though the castle's earth pony healers had finally helped me get the morning sickness under control. I reviewed the latest trade reports while nibbling on crystallized ginger - a local remedy that had proved surprisingly effective. The numbers were staggering. Between the toll roads and proper taxation of merchant caravans, Crystal Vale's wealth rivaled that of Canterlot itself. No wonder Bronze Star had been able to afford his... proclivities. "My lady?" Rose Petal's voice drew my attention from the scrolls. As Tim's Lady-Elect of Crystal Vale, she'd taken to her new duties with remarkable efficiency. "The eastern merchant guild is requesting an audience. Something about standardizing the new escort fees." "Schedule them for tomorrow morning," I replied, shifting position to ease the twins' latest acrobatics. "And send a messenger to check on my parents. I want to be sure the new guard detail is working out." Rose shifted her weight between her hooves, her ears flicking uncertainly. She still wasn't entirely comfortable seeing herself as my equal although we shared Tim. "Are you certain you should be taking meetings in your condition? The healers said-" "The healers said to avoid magical strain and excessive travel," I corrected gently. "They didn't say anything about helping manage my husband's territories." I managed to smile. "Besides, keeping busy helps me miss him less." "His last letter suggested he'd leave Dawn Gate soon," Rose offered hopefully. "Which could mean anything from tomorrow to next month, knowing how protective he is of those foals." I rubbed my belly thoughtfully. With the morning sickness under control, I found myself needing my husband more than ever, except that he still isn't here. "Though I hope having both of us here will... Well, these pregnancy hormones are quite something, and time isn't on our side. I'd rather not waste the few weeks we have left before the third quarter makes everything impossible." "If you're that frustrated," Rose teased gently, "I seem to remember your mother joking about traditional arrangements for you during your pregnancy. Though after everything this past month, and Tim having noble privileges, I'm surprised he hasn't invoked his yet..." "ROSE!" I swatted her with my tail, though I couldn't help smiling. "I could never cheat on Tim, with or without traditional arrangements. And he loves me too much to causally invoke his. Even with all twelve of you practically throwing yourselves at him, he's been a perfect gentlestallion." My voice softened. "Though I have to admit, a month is a long time... he will use his privileges eventually. I won’t allow jealously to ruin us…" "He'll be thrilled to find you here, if he ever gets here," Rose assured me with genuine warmth. "Though perhaps we should warn him? The surprise might be a bit much after such a long... abstinent journey..." I grinned wickedly. "Oh no. He had planned to stay at that fortress for a whole month and that time is coming to an end. He's not expecting to see me for another whole month until the final stop of his tour and I think he deserves a proper surprise. Besides-" My voice softened with affection, "-I think he needs to see that I trust you both. That I'm comfortable enough with our arrangement to stay in your territory without him." Rose ducked her head slightly, but her smile was genuine. "I won't let either of you down." "I know," I said simply, because I did. The past month had shown me exactly why Tim had chosen these mares - not just for their beauty or devotion, but for their genuine love of our whole family. "Though speaking of trust," Rose ventured carefully, "I've been reviewing the castle's capacity. We have an entire unused wing that's almost identical to Dawn Gate's training facilities." I looked up from the trade reports, catching her meaning immediately. "You're thinking about a second Foal Guard company?" Rose nodded, her professional demeanor warming with enthusiasm. "Our family treasury could easily support another 120 trainees. And while Dawn Gate focuses on military and defensive training, we could specialize in trade protection and diplomatic security. Give these foals different paths based on their interests." "Tim would love that," I said softly, remembering his letters about having to turn away so many hopeful recruits. "Being able to save twice as many..." "And it would strengthen ties between the territories," Rose added pragmatically. "Foals from Dawn Gate could train here if they're more interested in trade than combat, while ours could transfer there for military specialization." I felt the twins shift as I considered the implications. "We'd need proper instructors. Teachers who understand both guard protocols and merchant operations..." "Already working on it," Rose admitted with a slight blush. "Several retired merchant guards expressed interest when they heard about Dawn Gate's program. They have experience protecting trade caravans and teaching young recruits." "You've really thought this through," I observed, noting her barely contained excitement. "I just... I've seen how much the program means to him," she said softly. "And after meeting some of the foals we had to turn away..." Her sorrow turned to conviction. "Crystal Vale's future lady should help as many foals as Dawn Gate, shouldn't she?" I felt a surge of pride - both in Rose's initiative and her growing confidence in her future role. "You're absolutely right. Let's not wait for Tim's approval - he'd tell us to start immediately anyway. Draft letters to the orphanages today. We'll prioritize the foals who were interested in the Dawn Gate program but couldn't get in." Rose's eyes lit up. "I've already compiled their names, actually. The older ones especially - there were several fourteen and fifteen-year-olds who showed real promise for merchant protection work." "Perfect." I levitated a fresh scroll, then paused as the twins gave a particularly energetic kick. "Though perhaps you should handle the actual writing. My magic's a bit unpredictable these days." "Of course, my lady." Rose moved to the writing desk, her quill already flying across parchment. "Should we mention the trade specialization in the letters? It might help the orphanages match us with foals who have the right temperament." "Absolutely. And make sure they understand we're primarily looking at ages twelve and up, just like Dawn Gate." I shifted position again, my maternal instincts making me even more determined to help these orphaned foals. "We'll need to start ordering training equipment too - smaller sizes just like Dawn Gate commissioned." "Already have suppliers lined up," Rose admitted with another slight blush. "I might have been planning this for a while... ever sense Tim’s program at Dawn Gate was officially full." "You really are perfect for this role," I said softly, watching her work. "Tim chose well." She blushed at the praise, and her smile was radiant. Between managing trade routes and planning to save more foals, she was proving herself worthy of far more than just Tim's love. I encouraged her as best I could. "Get those letters out quickly. I want to surprise Tim with both pieces of news when he finally arrives - his growing foals and his growing Foal Guard program." * * * Tim The glint of sunlight on metal caught my eye first. Through the morning haze, what initially looked like distant birds resolved into something far more concerning - armed griffons, dozens of them, their weapons and armor marking them as warriors rather than merchants. "That's not a trade caravan," Swift Wing's wings snapped back as she assessed the approaching force" "No," I agreed grimly, my hand finding my sword hilt. "That's a war party." I stepped to the edge of the wall, drawing breath to shout the alert that would transform Dawn Gate from a training facility back into the fortress it was meant to be. "EVERYPONY TO ARMS! THIS IS NOT A DRILL!" The words echoed across the courtyard below. The effect was immediate - training exercises halted mid-stride as foals and instructors alike snapped to attention. Years of guard training kicked in as Swift Wing launched herself skyward, her voice carrying clear commands to the aerial patrols. "Get the foals to the secure barracks," I ordered the nearest guard. "Combat-ready recruits to secondary positions only. I want all primary defensive posts manned by experienced guards." The fortress came alive around us, the quiet morning transforming into controlled chaos. Hooves thundered on stone as positions were taken. The massive siege engines creaked as their crews rushed to ready them. Every ward stone we'd replaced hummed with fresh power, creating a barrier that would force any aerial attack to face our walls directly. "They're moving into attack formation!" Swift Wing called from above. "Three wings, classic pincer approach. I count at least sixty warriors!" I watched the griffon force spread out, their tactical formation suggesting this was no mere raid. They'd come prepared for a real fight, probably expecting to find the same crumbling fortress Bronze Star had left behind. They were about to learn just how much had changed at Dawn Gate. "Show them our teeth," I commanded, my voice carrying across the wall. "Let's give them a proper welcome." The sound of siege engines being armed echoed through the morning air. Dawn Gate's wake-up call was about to get very loud indeed. "Parley flag spotted!" Swift Wing's voice carried from above. "The lead griffon's holding white feathers - their traditional sign of temporary truce!" I studied the approaching force through narrowed eyes. Even with the parley signal, their combat formation and heavy armament spoke volumes about their true intentions. This wasn't a social call. "Stand ready," I called to the wall defenders, "but hold your fire. Let's hear what they have to say." I turned to the nearest guard. "Signal our acceptance of parley. And make sure the foals stay in the secure barracks - I don't want them anywhere near this conversation." As the guard raised our own white flag in response, I caught Swift Wing landing beside me. "You should stay back," she said quietly. "Let me handle the parley. Griffon warriors can be... unpredictable." "No." My voice carried lethal softness, my hand resting on my sword hilt. "They need to understand exactly who commands Dawn Gate now." I managed a grim smile. "After facing down a Timberwolf with just this blade, a few griffons don't seem quite so intimidating." "At least let me translate," she offered. "Their dialect can be tricky, and any misunderstanding could-" "Could start a war?" I finished dryly. "Pretty sure they've already decided about that. Look at their positioning - that's not a diplomatic formation." Swift Wing stiffened beside me as she realized that I was right. "No," she agreed softly. "It's not." The griffons drew closer, their weapons glinting in the morning sun. Time to find out just how diplomatic these warriors were feeling. Though something told me we'd be testing those new siege engines before the week was done. "We're here for the tribute payment," the lead griffon announced, his beak curling in what might have been meant as a smile but looked more like a predator's sneer. I felt my jaw clench. "What tribute?" The griffon leader clicked his beak in apparent amusement. "Lord Bronze Star has been paying us 500,000 bits every three months not to attack." His eyes swept the walls, taking in our improved defenses. "We haven't received this quarter's payment. We'll take bits or mares. Fillies are worth double, under ten, triple..." He shrugged his wings casually. "But we'll get every bit's worth." My heart practically stopped at his bold request. Bronze Star hadn't just neglected the fortress - he'd been paying protection money. Worse, he'd been offering alternatives that made my blood run cold. That’s why the fortress was stripped. Bronze Star was paying bribes and then hiding them as expenses elsewhere to hide his shame of not being able to carry out his duties. It was easier for him to double down on noble privileges to hide his failures… 500,000 bits is a lot, even with what I’m earning from tolls. Bronze Star’s reduced trade revenue from poorly protected caravans would have never been able to afford it without offering the suggested alternatives. "Lord Bronze Star is dead," I said, my voice carrying that deadly quiet that Swift Wing had learned to recognize. "I'm the Marquis now. And the only thing you're getting from me is blood." The griffon's eyes narrowed, all pretense of diplomacy vanishing. "You dare-" "I dare a lot more than that," I cut him off. "Look around. See these walls? These siege engines? This isn't the broken fortress Bronze Star left behind. And those aren't helpless mares you're threatening - they're my soldiers." Swift Wing's wings flared slightly, her stance shifting to combat-ready even as she maintained parade rest. "So here's my counter-offer," I said coldly, my drawn sword glinting in the morning light. "Leave now, and I'll let you keep your feathers. Stay, and find out exactly why Bronze Star isn't the only noble who died testing my patience." The griffon leader's talons scraped against the stone as his warriors bristled. "You would risk war?" "No," I replied darkly. "I would end one. Your choice how many of your warriors die in the process." The lead griffon's eyes blazed with fury at my rejection of their extortion. Behind him, his warriors shifted restlessly, talons scraping against stone. One of his lieutenants - younger, more aggressive - suddenly bristled. "You dare mock our traditions?" the lieutenant snarled, his wings flaring. "Let me show you how we handle disrespect!" He launched himself forward with explosive speed, talons extended toward my throat. I started to move, knowing I'd be too late to block – THWACK! The crossbow's report shattered the morning air. The charging griffon's eyes went wide as the bolt buried itself in his chest with a meaty thud. His forward momentum carried him another few feet before he crashed to the stone floor, wings twitching as he slid to a stop. I spun around, already knowing what I'd find. Star Shine stood proudly at the wall's inner edge, her small recruit's crossbow smoking slightly as she worked the reload mechanism with practiced precision. Her silver coat caught the morning sun, making her look almost ethereal - if not for the decidedly un-ethereal grin of satisfaction on her face. "Star Shine!" I fought to keep my voice stern despite the inappropriate surge of pride at her marksmanship. "What did I tell you about combat protocols?" "Shoot first, ask questions later!" she chirped, clicking the fresh bolt into place with the efficiency that came from countless hours of practice drills. "No," I pinched the bridge of my nose, painfully aware of our griffon audience. "The protocol is to fire a warning shot first if active combat hasn't been declared." Her grin only widened as she finished her reload. "That was a warning shot!" "You shot him in the chest," I pointed out, trying desperately to maintain proper military discipline while Swift Wing quietly shook with suppressed laughter behind me. "And now his friends are warned!" Star Shine declared with the absolute conviction only a twelve-year-old could muster. She settled the crossbow against her shoulder, eyeing the remaining griffons with an eagerness that seemed to make them extremely nervous. I turned back to face our visitors, noting how their aggressive postures had shifted to something more cautious. The sight of their lieutenant being dropped by what appeared to be a small filly had apparently given them pause. "So," I continued conversationally, "about that tribute payment. I think we were discussing how Lord Bronze Star's arrangements died with him?" The lead griffon's beak opened and closed several times, his eyes darting between his fallen lieutenant, my all-too-eager young recruit, and the very obviously combat-ready fortress around us. The siege engines creaked ominously as their crews adjusted their aim, while dozens of crossbows like Star Shine's tracked every movement of the griffon warriors. "We... may have been hasty in our assumptions about Dawn Gate's new leadership," he managed finally, his wings shifting with barely concealed unease. "Probably wise to reconsider those assumptions," I agreed pleasantly. "Especially since that was just one of my youngest recruits. Would you care to meet the rest of my guard? I'm sure they'd love to demonstrate their own warning shots." Behind me, I heard Star Shine whisper to Swift Wing with perfect twelve-year-old innocence. "See? I told you aiming for the chest was more efficient than wasting time with warning shots!" Her voice turned cold and matter-of-fact. "He charged. Not my fault they broke parley. They should all die." I nodded slowly. “Hard to argue with results. Come back with an army or don't come back. I'm more than happy to kill every damn one of you.” The lead griffon's wings tightened against his sides as he studied me - not just my words, but the absolute certainty behind them. His gaze swept across our walls again, taking in the gleaming siege engines that weren’t there before, the new towers, the restored ward stones, and the dozens of crossbows still trained on his warriors. Finally, his eyes settled on Star Shine, who was quite obviously hoping he'd give her an excuse for another "warning shot." "You would allow foals to die to protect this fortress?" he asked carefully. "No," I replied coldly. "I will allow foals to kill to protect their home and their family. I’ve killed nobles to protect foals. Rebuilt this fortress to give them a home. And I'll slaughter any warrior stupid enough to threaten that home." I stepped closer, letting him see the steel in my eyes. "Those aren't just recruits up there - they're my family. Every single one of them. So yes, I'll kill anyone who threatens them. Including an entire griffon army, if that's what you choose to bring." His feathers ruffled slightly at my tone. "You sound very certain for someone who's never faced griffon combat wings." "And you sound very confident for someone who just watched a twelve-year-old drop one of his lieutenants." I smiled, but there was no warmth in it. "Bring your army. Test these walls. Find out exactly how much has changed since Bronze Star's time." "The clans will hear of this," he warned, though he was already backing away. "Good," I sheathed my sword with a click. "Make sure you tell them everything. Especially the part about how your mighty warrior got killed by a little filly. Imagine how embarrassing it would be if the whole army met the same fate." "We will take his body with us," the leader growled, his warriors already moving to collect their fallen lieutenant. "Take him," I said in a measured tone. "And remember - the next ones won't get warning shots. I doubt I’ll allow parley next time either if you plan to break it." The remaining griffons took wing, one carrying their dead, their retreat barely maintaining dignity. As they disappeared into the morning haze, I turned to find Star Shine practically vibrating with excitement. "Can I shoot the next ones too? Please? I've been practicing really hard and-" "Back to the secure barracks," I cut her off, though I couldn't quite hide my pride. "And we'll discuss increasing your allowance later." I sighed. I have letters to write. Very hard letters… * * * Celestia The morning's stack of correspondence held the usual mix of noble complaints and diplomatic missives, but Lord Timothy's seal caught my immediate attention. The parchment carried a faint scent of Dawn Gate's mountain air, and something else - bowstring wax and treated leather, the unmistakable aroma of a fortress readying its weapons for war. As I read, my serene mask cracked slightly. Bronze Star's betrayal went deeper than we'd known - not just neglecting his fortress, but actively paying tributes to prevent attacks. Offering alternatives that made my blood burn as hot as my sun... Your Highness, I regret to inform you that Dawn Gate's situation is more complex than initially understood. Bronze Star had been paying the griffon clans 500,000 bits quarterly in "tribute" to prevent attacks. When they arrived to collect this quarter's payment, they made it clear they would accept... alternative forms of payment. They demanded bits or mares, with fillies under ten counting for triple value... I refused. Forcefully. One of their lieutenants took exception to this refusal and attacked. He was killed by one of my youngest recruits - Star Shine, age twelve, whom we rescued from Dawn Gate's streets last month. The remaining griffons retreated, but made it clear they would return with an army. The fortress is ready. The ward stones are replaced, the walls rebuilt, and the siege engines prepared. But I feel I should warn you - this will likely mean war with the griffon clans. They're not used to being refused, especially by a human lord. I take full responsibility for this escalation. However, I will not pay tribute, and I will never offer them what Bronze Star did. If they want Dawn Gate, they'll have to go through me and every one of my guards - including 120 very enthusiastic young recruits who are quite handy with crossbows. Your faithful servant, Lord Timothy Marquis of Crystal Vale, Holder of the Dawn Gate, Master of the Eastern Marshes P.S. - You might want to warn the griffon ambassador that the next "tribute collectors" won't get a chance to retreat. My recruits are getting quite competitive about their marksmanship scores. Flying targets are worth triple points. I set the letter down carefully, considering its implications. War with the griffons would be costly, but the alternative... My blood boiled thinking about Bronze Star's "arrangements." "Night Light," I called to my advisor. "I believe we need to compose a response to Dawn Gate. And perhaps arrange a meeting with the griffon ambassador." This would require delicate handling. Though I had to admit, the image of a small filly dropping a griffon warrior with one shot... perhaps Tim's direct approach had merit after all. * * * Twilight Rose burst into my study, happy for once. "Letters from Tim!" She held up two identical scrolls bearing Tim's seal. "Finally," I muttered, levitating my scroll open. My irritation at his prolonged absence vanished as I read, replaced by growing alarm. "He doesn't know I'm here," I mused, scanning the urgent warnings. "He's trying to protect both territories at once..." Rose was already reading her own copy: "'Be especially wary of diplomatic envoys - they could be assassins in disguise. Protect the trade routes and reinforce the guard patrols...'" She looked up. "He's worried they'll strike at Crystal Vale while he defends Dawn Gate." My maternal anger overwhelmed me. "Bronze Star was paying them tribute. Offering them..." I couldn't finish the thought. "No wonder Tim refused to continue the arrangement." "'My dearest Twilight,'" Rose read from my letter, unable to help herself, "'Stay in Ponyville where it's safe. I've sent extra guards to protect you and the twins...'" She grimaced. "He's going to be quite surprised when he finds out you're already here, helping me fortify Crystal Vale's defenses." "Well, he shouldn't have taken so long rebuilding that fortress," I said primly, though worry crept into my voice. "Do you think we should tell him? About me being here? About the plans for Crystal Vale's Foal Guard?" Rose considered this carefully. "He'd rush here immediately if he knew you were potentially in danger. And Dawn Gate needs him right now..." "Then we don't tell him," I decided firmly. "We focus on protecting Crystal Vale ourselves. Between your leadership and my magic-" "Your magic that's currently unreliable due to pregnancy?" Rose reminded me gently. "Fine, your leadership and our guard forces," I corrected. "The point is, we can handle this. Tim needs to focus on Dawn Gate without worrying about us." Rose nodded, though her concern was clear. "He's going to be furious when he finds out we didn't tell him." "Probably," I agreed, managing a small smile. "But better furious and alive than distracted during a griffon attack. Besides, by the time he gets here, we'll have Crystal Vale's defenses ready and the new Foal Guard program underway. He can't stay mad at us for expanding his favorite project... or for having an early shot at reconnecting with me." "No," Rose's smile turned slightly wicked. "Though he might have some thoughts about his pregnant wife secretly relocating to a potential war zone..." "Details," I waved a hoof dismissively. "Now, about those trade route patrols..." * * * Celestia The griffon ambassador, Iron Wing, shifted uncomfortably under my gaze, his confusion appearing genuine as I questioned him about Bronze Star's tribute payments. "Your Highness," he said carefully, "this is the first I'm hearing of any such arrangement. The official trade agreements between our nations don't include any tribute payments." "And yet," I kept my voice deliberately calm, "a force of sixty armed warriors arrived at Dawn Gate demanding payment. They seemed quite... familiar with the process." The ambassador's feathers ruffled slightly. "Rogue clans, perhaps? Some of the mountain territories operate outside official channels..." "Rogue clans equipped with military-grade weapons and armor?" I raised an eyebrow. "Organized enough to maintain and expect regular quarterly payments?" "I... will need to investigate this matter thoroughly," he hedged. "If certain clans have been operating unauthorized extortion schemes..." "They offered to accept mares and fillies as payment," I said coldly, letting just a hint of my true anger color my words. The mood in the room seemed to shift darker. The ambassador's eyes widened in genuine horror. "Your Highness, I assure you - such practices are forbidden by our most ancient laws. Any clan engaging in... in such barbarism would face immediate exile, if not execution." I studied him carefully. His reaction appeared authentic - this wasn't just diplomatic posturing. "Then perhaps you should investigate quickly," I suggested. "Before Lord Timothy is forced to demonstrate exactly how he handles threats to foals under his protection. I understand he's quite... direct in such matters." "The human lord who killed Bronze Star?" The ambassador's feathers flattened. "Yes, we received reports about his... methods." "Then you understand the urgency of the situation," I smiled serenely. "Either your government reins in these 'rogue clans,' or Dawn Gate's new lord will do it for you. I suspect you'll find his solution considerably less diplomatic than mine. You crossed our borders; he will cross yours." "I'll send word immediately," the ambassador stood. "Though... perhaps you could emphasize to Lord Timothy that not all griffons support such disgraceful actions?" "Of course," I agreed pleasantly. "Though you might want to mention that to the next group of warriors who visit Dawn Gate. I understand one of his twelve-year-old recruits is quite enthusiastic about greeting uninvited guests." The ambassador's hasty departure suggested he'd caught my meaning perfectly. Now to see whether the griffon government moved faster than those "rogue clans" dared. * * * Tim The training yard echoed with the rhythmic thud of crossbow bolts striking targets. Where just yesterday we'd been teaching basic guard stances, now mannequins shaped like griffon warriors bristled with projectiles. Star Shine led her fellow recruits through rapid-fire drills, her silver coat dark with sweat as she demonstrated proper aim points. "Remember," she called out, her young voice carrying surprising authority, "griffon wing joints are vulnerable! One good hit and they can't stay airborne! Chest shots are super effective!" I watched from the wall as our youngest recruits transformed into something harder. They were still foals - some barely older than twelve - but there was steel in their eyes now. The reality of war had stripped away any romantic notions of guard service. "They're learning fast," Swift Wing observed, landing beside me. "Though I wish they didn't have to." "Neither do I," I admitted, watching an older recruit help adjust Star Shine's stance. "But better they learn properly than face griffon warriors unprepared." The sound of sword practice rang from another corner of the yard, where recruits practiced countering griffon attack patterns. The instructors had shifted all training to focus on our likely opponents - their strengths, their weaknesses, the best ways to survive their typical tactics. "Target acquired!" Star Shine's voice rang out again. "What do we do?" "Shoot first, ask questions later!" her fellow recruits chorused, followed by another volley of crossbow fire. I pinched the bridge of my nose. "We really need to work on that warning shot protocol..." "Why?" Swift Wing's words dripped with sarcasm. "They're right - griffon warriors don't give warning shots. Why should we?" She had a point, even if it hurt to see these rescued foals becoming so pragmatic about combat. But watching Star Shine drill her peers with fierce determination, I remembered why we were doing this. These weren't just recruits anymore. They were family. My family. And family protects its own. Later that night, the quill felt heavy in my hand as I wrote separate letters to Twilight and Rose, knowing neither would be happy with the news. The flickering candlelight cast shadows across my desk in the commander's study as I struggled to find the right words. My beloved Twilight, I know I promised to leave Dawn Gate soon, but circumstances force me to remain here longer than planned. The griffon threat isn't just about one skirmish - we're facing the real possibility of war. I can't leave these foals undefended, not when they're finally starting to feel safe. Star Shine leads their combat drills now. You should see her, love - twelve years old and already showing more courage than most grown guards. But watching her teach other foals how to kill griffon warriors... it breaks something in me, even while filling me with pride. I miss you desperately. Every day I don't get to help with the pregnancy feels like torture. But I have to see this through. These foals trusted me to protect them. I won't fail them like Bronze Star did. All my love, Tim I sealed her letter and started the next one: Rose, I know you're waiting for me at Crystal Vale, but Dawn Gate needs me more right now. We're training day and night, preparing for what feels inevitable. The griffons won't forgive being refused - especially not by a human lord. Protect our trading interests. I trust your judgment in strengthening our defenses there. Do everything you can that’s legal. I'm sorry to delay our plans further, but I can't leave until I'm certain these foals are safe. They've already lost too much to noble politics. I won't let them lose their home too. Stay safe, Tim I stared at both letters, hating the necessity of writing them. Above me, the sound of wing drills echoed through the night as our pegasus recruits practiced aerial combat maneuvers. We were turning foals into warriors because we had no choice. The least I could do was stay to see them through it. * * * Twilight Rose and I sat in my study, Tim's latest letters spread before us alongside the responses from various orphanages. The contrast was stark - his grim warnings about war next to eager replies from foals hoping to join our program. "The first group arrives next week," Rose said softly, reviewing the manifest. "The armorers have already started on the smaller sizes, just like Dawn Gate's order." I felt ill at the thought of foals needing armor at all. "We're teaching them to kill, Rose. Just like Tim is at Dawn Gate. These are foals..." "Foals who would die anyway if the griffons attack," Rose's voice carried a hard edge I'd never heard before. "Or worse - sold into slavery. It was hard enough watching nobles treat fillies like toys… imagine a griffon-” She took a steadying breath, “-At least our foals will have a chance to fight back." The truth of her words hit me hard. "Like Star Shine," I whispered. "Twelve years old and already dropping griffon warriors." "She survived because Tim taught her how," Rose confirmed. "That's what we're really doing here - giving them the tools to survive. The training to protect themselves and each other." I looked at the class roster again - so many names, so many young lives now under our protection. "The crossbow shipment arrives tomorrow," I said, making a decision. "We'll start combat training immediately after basic guard protocols." "No warning shots?" Rose suggested with a hint of gallows humor. "No," I agreed grimly, remembering Tim's story about Star Shine. "They'll learn to shoot first, just like their Dawn Gate siblings. We can't afford to be gentle, not with war coming." Rose's expression darkened slightly. "Tim will hate that we're doing this without him. Turning his trade protection program into a war preparation course..." "Tim will understand," I said with conviction. "He's doing the same thing at Dawn Gate. Besides," I managed a weak smile, "he can hardly complain about us protecting more foals, even if our methods are more... direct than originally planned." "True," Rose agreed in principle. "Though maybe we don't mention the combat training in our reply letters? Let him focus on Dawn Gate without worrying about us turning his merchant guard program into a small army." I nodded, turning back to the orphanage responses. We had foals to protect, whether Tim approved of our methods or not. Besides, he could hardly lecture us about aggressive training methods when his own twelve-year-old was dropping griffon warriors without warning shots. "There's something else we need to consider," I said, setting down the training rosters. "The position Tim inherited... Marquis of Crystal Vale and Holder of Dawn Gate... it carries more responsibility than just these territories." Rose looked up from the equipment manifests. "What do you mean?" "Historically, these positions combined were meant to match the entire Equestrian Army in military strength," I explained, my academic nature emerging. "The Marches were our first line of defense against any eastern threats. That's why the titles were usually held by different nobles - to prevent any one lord from controlling too much power." Understanding dawned in Rose's eyes. "And Tim holds both..." "Exactly. All of Equestria is counting on us to stand against any griffon aggression. That's why Bronze Star's betrayal was so devastating - he weakened our entire eastern defense network, not just half of it. Duke Sterling and others might get nervous about Tim controlling so much wealth and military power, but this is bigger than noble politics." "This is about protecting all of Equestria," Rose finished softly. "That's why we need both programs - Dawn Gate's military strength and Crystal Vale's trade protection forces." "And why we can't afford to be gentle with the training," I added. "These foals aren't just learning to protect themselves - they're learning to protect an entire nation." I managed a wry smile. "Though perhaps we shouldn't phrase it quite that way in the recruitment letters. No need to terrify them with the full scope of their responsibility." "They'll rise to it though," Rose said with quiet confidence. "Just like Star Shine did. Just like all our foals will." "They'll have to," I replied grimly. "Because if we fail here, there's nothing standing between the griffon clans and the heart of Equestria." * * * Celestia Ambassador Iron Wing's feathers were distinctly ruffled as he presented his preliminary findings. "Your Highness, this situation is... complicated. The Mountain Talon Clan appears to have been operating an unauthorized protection scheme, but Bronze Star's... alternative payment options were kept very quiet." "I imagine they would be," I replied coolly. "Such arrangements tend to draw rather permanent responses when discovered. However… you admit that it’s true. They accepted mares and… fillies, as tribute?" Iron Wing's beak clicked in distress. "The High Clans are outraged. Taking tribute is one thing - it's technically illegal but traditional in border regions. But foals?" His wings tightened against his sides. "There will be consequences for the Mountain Talons." "Assuming Lord Timothy doesn't deliver consequences first," I observed. “The knowledge that it’s happened, not just hypothetical, might drive him to… react.” "That's why I'm here," Iron Wing shifted uncomfortably. "The High Clans want to negotiate. Perhaps some form of official tribute-" "No." My voice cut through his diplomatic maneuvering. "Dawn Gate will not pay tribute, official or otherwise. Not in bits, not in foals, not in any form." "But surely some arrangement-" "Ambassador," I smiled serenely, though there was steel beneath it, "perhaps you misunderstand. This isn't a negotiation. This is me giving you an opportunity to handle this internally before Lord Timothy decides to demonstrate exactly how he deals with threats to his foals." Iron Wing's feathers flattened. "You speak of mercy yet threaten us with the same lord who executed two nobles in a single dinner." "And who now commands the military might of both Dawn Gate and Crystal Vale," I reminded him. "With a rather impressive force of highly motivated young recruits who are apparently quite skilled with crossbows and are willing to use them." The ambassador paled slightly. "The High Clans won't be pleased..." "Neither will Tim if another 'tribute collector' threatens his foals," I pointed out. "Though I hear his youngest recruit is always eager for target practice." Iron Wing left my study looking distinctly unsettled. Good. Perhaps the threat of facing an angry human lord and his protective young recruits would motivate the griffon clans to handle this diplomatically. If not... well, I had a feeling Dawn Gate's new crossbow corps would be happy to help them reconsider their position. Still, I needed to warn Tim. I settled at my desk as the moon rose, choosing my words carefully for this delicate message: Lord Timothy, The griffon ambassador claims his government will "handle" the Mountain Talon clan's unauthorized activities, particularly their acceptance of foals as tribute. I confess outrage that the arrangement happened and that Equestrian foals are now Griffon slaves. However, their proposed solution - officially sanctioned tribute payments - suggests a deeper problem. They perceive Equestria's military presence as weak enough to risk open conflict. Lord Bronze Star's neglect of our eastern defenses has emboldened them beyond simple border raids. Your refusal of tribute, while absolutely correct, has forced their talons. I recommend preparing Dawn Gate for serious assault. The next group of griffons won't come bearing parley flags - they'll come in force. Your young recruits impressed them with that first confrontation, but that will only make them more determined to demonstrate their strength. Do not expect diplomatic solutions. The High Clans cannot afford to appear weak by accepting your refusal. They will test your walls, if only to prove they can. I have complete faith in your ability to handle this situation as... directly as necessary. Equestria needs Dawn Gate's teeth bared. Show them why we allowed a combat medic to command our eastern defenses. Your Princess, Celestia P.S. - Do give young Star Shine my compliments on her marksmanship. Sometimes the most effective diplomatic statements come from unexpected quarters. I sealed the letter with my royal mark, knowing Tim would understand its implications. The time for gentle solutions had passed. Dawn Gate needed to remind the griffons why it was called the Shield of the East. * * * Tim I gathered Swift Wing and the other Dawn Gate captains in the commander's study after receiving Celestia's letter. The mountain night pressed against the windows as I shared its contents, watching their reactions carefully. "No diplomatic solution?" Thunder Step's storm-gray coat darkened with concern. "The High Clans have never been this aggressive." "They've never perceived us as this weak," Swift Wing countered. "Bronze Star didn't just neglect our defenses - he showed them Equestria could be bought." Forest Shadow's forest-green coat was nearly black in the lamplight. "And now they want to make that arrangement official. To prove they can force tribute from Equestria itself." "Which means we have to prove them wrong," I said firmly, studying the fortress maps spread across my desk. "Celestia's right - they'll test our walls, if only to show they can. We need to make sure that test becomes a lesson they'll never forget.” Crystal Light's horn glowed softly as she marked defensive positions. "The ward stones are fully charged. The siege engines are ready. But sir... we're still training foals, not hardened warriors." "Those foals dropped a griffon lieutenant with one shot," I reminded her. "And they're learning fast. But you're right - we need to accelerate combat training. No more basic guard protocols. From now on, everything focuses on griffon warfare." "The nobles won't like this," Forest Shadow observed quietly. "A human lord building a private army, training foal soldiers..." "I'm expected to have a private army," I corrected her. "The Marquis of Crystal Vale and Holder of Dawn Gate traditionally commands enough force to match the entire Equestrian Army. These positions were meant to be Equestria's shield against all eastern threats. Griffons and Dragons." "That's why the titles were usually split between different nobles," Thunder Step noted. "Too much power in one set of hooves..." "Usually split, but not always," Crystal Light corrected. "Bronze Star inherited both titles when the Crystal Vale line failed without an heir thirty years ago. The crown probably meant to separate them again, but he used his political connections to maintain control of both territories." "And now they're combined under my command," I added grimly. "Through right of combat rather than political maneuvering. Though I doubt Celestia minds - she seems rather pleased about having a commander who'll actually use this power to protect Equestria rather than line his own pockets." "The question is how to use it effectively," Thunder Step prompted. "We're building our strength, but time isn't on our side." "No, it isn't," I agreed, turning back to the duty roster. "We have skilled adult warriors - proper guards who know their craft. Just not as many as we should have. Bronze Star left us understaffed, undertrained, and vulnerable. The foals aren't replacing our adult guards; they're filling gaps that should never have existed." Crystal Light's horn glowed as she reviewed the numbers. "With the current adult guards below strength and the Foal Guard at full strength, the combined number is still below traditional garrison levels. Dawn Gate is supposed to have a full legion. 4,200 to 5,000 strong. We have just over 2,000 total, including the foals." "What about hiring mercenaries to fill the gaps?" I suggested. "Or taking volunteers from Dawn Gate Town below? We could offer combat training and steady pay - many would jump at the chance to defend their homes." "Mercenaries are expensive," Thunder Step cautioned. "And their loyalty only extends as far as their next payday." "And untrained townsfolk would need time we don't have," Swift Wing added. "Though having them train alongside the Foal Guard could work - let them learn together, build those family bonds..." "Which is why every warrior counts," I said firmly. "Adult or foal, they all need to be combat-ready. The griffons won't spare the young ones or the civilians if they break through - we can't spare them from the defense." "They've already proven themselves," Swift Wing added, pride evident in her voice. "Star Shine isn't the only one showing real combat potential." "No," I agreed, remembering yesterday's training sessions. "She's just the most enthusiastic about demonstrating it. The point is, we're not just building a private army - we're rebuilding Dawn Gate's traditional strength. The strength it should have had all along." Forest Shadow's expression darkened slightly. "And if that strength comes partly from foals?" "Then we make sure they're the best-trained, best-equipped foal warriors in the history of Equestria," I said firmly. "Because they're not just fighting for us - they're fighting for their home. Their family. Everything Bronze Star would have sold to the griffons. Hell, Bronze Star would have sold those foals to the griffons… never again. You hear me. Never. Again. They already have some of our foals… I want them back. Whatever the cost.” The captains exchanged looks, understanding the weight of what we were undertaking. This wasn't just about defending a fortress anymore. This was about restoring Equestria's strength, starting with its youngest warriors. * * * Twilight I read Celestia's forwarded letter twice, my horn sparking with barely contained emotion. The twins kicked restlessly as if sensing my distress. "This changes everything," I said, passing the letter to Rose. "Celestia's practically telling him to prepare for a siege." Rose's voice trembled with tension. "She believes they'll attack in force." "Which means more delays," I couldn't keep the frustration from my voice. "Even after they're dealt with, he'll need to secure the territory, establish new diplomatic protocols... He's already missed so much of the pregnancy. Every week brings new changes that I know he wants to see. That is… if he even survives the battle.” "The griffons won't risk a prolonged campaign," Rose offered thoughtfully. "Not in mountain territory with winter coming. They'll either make their point quickly or wait until spring." "I know," I sighed. "I just... I want him here. Safe. With his family." "All of his family," Rose corrected gently. "Including those foals at Dawn Gate." The implications settled heavily between us. Dawn Gate would face the griffons' fury first. And Tim would face it with an army of rescued foals at his back. * * * Author's Note College is out for the Winter, writing shall resume. I write commissions. DM me with story ideas, //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 28 - The Price of Tribute //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 28 - The Price of Tribute Tim Dawn Gate's morning air carried the bite of early winter, the kind of cold that made every breath visible in pale clouds. The fortress training yard blazed with torchlight, creating harsh shadows as guards and foals moved through their drills with grim determination. My new outdoor command center overlooked it all, letting me watch as Star Shine worked with the latest group of recruits. "Pull tight against your shoulder," her young voice carried up to my position. "You want to control the recoil, not fight it." She demonstrated with her own crossbow, her silver coat catching the torchlight as she showed proper firing stance. The other foals watched intently, their own weapons ready. The sight made my chest ache. Yesterday they'd been learning basic guard protocols. Now they were practicing killing shots. "My lord." Swift Wing's quiet landing behind me barely disturbed the air. "I have the volunteer list." I took the scroll without turning, unable to look away from the training below. "How many?" "Over two hundred responded. I've narrowed it to the hundred you requested - combat veterans, most with experience in mountain operations." Now I did turn, studying her face in the dim light of my office. "And their personal situations?" "Verified, sir. No dependents, no young families." She hesitated. "Though there have been... requests from the Foal Guard. Star Shine won’t stop asking…" "No." The word came out harder than intended. Below us, another group began their drills, steel glinting in the torchlight. "They defend the fortress. This raid requires... a different kind of violence." Swift Wing's wings seemed to shrug slightly, her take on the human expression. "They're already preparing for violence, sir. The griffons won't spare them for being young." "I know." I moved to my desk, covered now in maps of griffon territories. "That's why we strike first. But there's a difference between defending their home and what we're going to do in that city." I met her eyes steadily. "This won't be a noble duel or a border skirmish. We go in hard, we hit everything that moves, and we leave their capital in ruins. Let them deal with refugees and rebuilding while we fortify here." The sounds of training drifted up - bowstrings, marching hooves, young voices that should have been laughing instead of learning war. Swift Wing watched me with that mixture of pride and concern I was becoming too familiar with. "When do we leave?" "This evening." I traced our planned route on the map. "We should arrive under the cover of darkness. No warning, no parley this time." My hand dropped to my sword hilt - the same blade that I had carried since Ponyville. "Let's show them what happens when they threaten our home." Swift Wing's wings tensed at my words. "My lord... about the raid. As your lady elect-" "You want to come," I finished, still studying the map. "I won't stop you. Your aerial combat experience will be invaluable, and I trust your judgment." I looked up, meeting her gaze directly. "But Forest Shadow, Thunder Step, and Crystal Light stay here. Someone needs to command the defense if the griffons attack while we're gone." "They won't like that," she said weakly. "Being left behind." "They don't have to like it. They just have to do their duty." I traced another line on the map - the most likely attack vector if the griffons tried to strike Dawn Gate directly. "Forest Shadow knows every defensive position. Thunder Step understands the ward stones better than anyone. And Crystal Light's magic gives us the best chance of detecting an incoming force." "And me?" There was an edge of challenge in her voice. "You're my best aerial commander, and I need someone who can coordinate multiple strike teams from above." I managed a grim smile. "Besides, after facing down that Timberwolf with me, I trust you to watch my back in a real fight." Her posture straightened with pride, though concern still edged her voice. "The other captains... they're family too." "Which is exactly why they have to stay." I rolled up the map with deliberate care. "If something goes wrong, if we don't come back... Dawn Gate will need strong leadership. Three captains who understand what we're fighting for. Who'll protect these foals like they're their own." The sounds of training continued below - a constant reminder of exactly what we were risking, what we were fighting to defend. Swift Wing moved to the window, watching the drills continue in the growing light. "They won't forgive us easily," she said finally. "For leaving them behind. And… I need Thunder Step. I need a second commanding pegasus." "Fine, she can come. As for the rest… it’s better they be angry than dead." I joined her at the balcony. "Now go brief the volunteers. We move out at dusk." * * * Twilight The words blurred on the parchment as I wrote, exhaustion and worry making my normally precise quillwork shaky. Dawn's first light crept through Crystal Vale's windows, marking another sleepless night spent imagining all the ways this could go wrong. Dearest Mother, I know it's early, but I need your help. War is coming to Dawn Gate - not the kind found in your romance novels, but real war with the griffon clans. Tim has only 2,000 guards total, including the foals. The fortress should have over 4,000. Please, use whatever influence you have with the retired guard community. Dawn Gate needs experienced warriors, ponies who understand what real combat means. These foals Tim rescued... they're brave, but they're just foals! They need proper mentors, real soldiers who can teach them how to survive. I know you and father chose not to maintain a traditional guard detail, but you still have connections. The noble houses respect you. If you could convince even a few retired veterans to volunteer... My quill trembled as another wave of nausea hit - morning sickness or fear, I couldn't tell anymore. The twins shifted restlessly, as if sensing my distress. Mother, I'm terrified. Tim's planning something - I can feel it. He won't tell me details in his letters, but I know that tone. He's going to take the fight to them rather than wait for an attack. I close my eyes and all I can see are those foals training for war, preparing to defend their new home while their commander risks everything to protect them. Help me protect what he's building. Please. Use your influence, call in favors, do whatever you have to. Dawn Gate needs warriors, and I can't bear the thought of those foals facing griffon armies alone. Your desperate daughter, Twilight P.S. - Don't tell Tim I wrote to you. He's got enough to worry about without knowing how scared I am. I sealed the letter with trembling magic, then pressed a hoof to my swollen belly as the twins kicked again. "Your father's going to do something brave and stupid," I whispered. "Let's just hope we can gather enough help before the griffons realize what he's planning." My words seemed to echo in the room, the morning light catching Crystal Vale's gems, casting rainbow patterns across my desk. Somewhere to the east, Tim was preparing for war. All I could do was write letters and pray they'd bring enough reinforcements before it was too late. The door opened softly, and Rose entered with a carefully balanced tray. The aroma of ginger tea and crystallized root mingled with fresh hay muffins. "You need to eat something," she said gently. "The healers were very clear about maintaining your strength." I managed a smile weakly as she set the tray down, though the sight of food made my stomach roll. "The twins aren't exactly cooperative about keeping anything down this morning." "Try the tea first." She pushed the cup closer. "I added extra ginger root. Though... while you're sitting here anyway..." Her voice trembled with nervous energy. "I had an idea I wanted to discuss." I sipped the tea carefully, grateful for its soothing warmth. "What kind of idea?" "What if we built a training yard in Ponyville? Maybe even a small fortress?" Her words tumbled out in a rush. "Not as large as Dawn Gate, but enough for another training company. 120 more foals, properly trained where it's safe." The teacup paused halfway to my lips. "A Foal Guard Academy?" Rose nodded eagerly. "Ponyville is far enough from the border for safe training, but close enough to provide real support when needed. The town would benefit from the extra protection, and as Countess..." She trailed off meaningfully. "I could authorize the construction," I finished slowly, mind already calculating possibilities. "And we can certainly afford it now that we're not paying griffon tribute. Though where would we put it?" "There's open land near the west edge of town. Close enough for protection, far enough not to disrupt daily life." Rose's eyes lit up with growing enthusiasm. "We could build training halls, dormitories, maybe even a small wall for practice drills. Nothing as imposing as Dawn Gate, but enough to give these foals a real chance." I set down my tea, thoughts racing despite my exhaustion. "A third training center would triple our recruitment capacity. And having foals train in a peaceful setting first..." "Exactly." Rose pulled out a rough sketch she'd obviously prepared. "They could learn basics there, then transfer to Dawn Gate for advanced combat training or to Crystal Vale for trade convoy protection when they're ready. It would take some pressure off Tim's fortress while still building our strength." Looking at her carefully drawn plans, I felt a surge of pride mixed with relief. This wasn't just about building defenses - it was about creating something sustainable, something that could grow beyond this immediate crisis. "You've really thought this through," I said softly, noting the detailed layouts and cost estimates. Rose's blush deepened. "I may have spent my sleepless nights being productive rather than just worrying. Though speaking of productive..." She pushed the plate of muffins closer. "Eat something. You can't build fortresses on an empty stomach." I picked up a muffin, my mind already spinning with possibilities. Maybe we couldn't stop this war from coming, but we could build something that would last beyond it. Something that would protect our foals long after the fighting ended. "Start drafting the formal proposals," I said, surprising myself with how steady my voice sounded. "We'll need town council approval, but with the current situation..." I managed a small smile. "I think they'll understand the need for more trained guards." * * * Velvet The Earth Estate gleamed in the morning sun, its newly completed wings standing proud against the Texas sky. I sat with Billy Talbert on the back porch of his father-in-law cabin, sharing coffee and watching the sunrise paint the grounds in shades of gold. The expansion projects were finished - perfect spaces for diplomatic functions that would never happen now. "More coffee?" Billy offered, already reaching for the pot. He'd adapted surprisingly well to having a unicorn for company, though he still muttered about 'optical illusions' whenever I used magic. The letter materialized before I could answer, appearing in a flash of magical light that made Billy jump. His coffee splashed slightly as he steadied his cup, eyes wide at the casual display of what he insisted had to be "advanced holographic technology." I recognized Twilight's magical signature instantly, but the urgency of its arrival made my coat prickle with concern. As I read, my heart sank. "Velvet?" Billy asked quietly, using my name with careful precision. He'd gotten better at reading my expressions these past weeks. "Bad news?" "War," I said softly, the word feeling strange on my tongue. "The griffon clans are threatening Dawn Gate. Tim's preparing defenses, but..." I swallowed hard. "They don't have enough trained warriors." Billy set his coffee down carefully. In the past two or so weeks since moving into the cabin, he'd learned to take my "fictional stories" more seriously, even if he couldn't quite accept their reality. "My son is facing war?" "Twilight's asking me to find reinforcements. Retired guards, veteran warriors - anyone who can help train the foals Tim's rescued." I looked up, meeting his worried gaze. "Your son built something wonderful, Billy. He's giving homeless fillies and colts a real future. But now they're all in danger." "Foals?" His brow furrowed. "You mean children? He's training child soldiers?" "He's protecting orphans," I corrected gently. "Giving them purpose, family, a home worth defending. But yes, they're young. Too young for what's coming." Billy was quiet for a long moment, staring at his coffee as if it might hold answers. When he spoke, his voice carried an edge I hadn't heard before. "Velvet... my son. The combat medic who could never quite leave the war behind. Is he really building an army of orphans?" "He's building a family," I said softly. "The army part... that wasn't his choice. But when someone threatens your children..." "You fight," he finished grimly. "With whatever you have." I nodded, rereading Twilight's desperate words. My daughter was terrified, pregnant with twins, and watching her husband prepare for war. And here I sat on Earth, surrounded by beautiful new buildings that suddenly felt hollow. "I need to write some letters," I said finally. "There are retired guards who owe me favors. Warriors who might still answer a call to arms. Though I suppose you still think I'm writing fantasy novels?" Billy looked at me for a long moment, then reached for the bottle of bourbon he kept for emergencies. "Velvet... I think it's time you told me exactly what my son has gotten himself into. No more 'fictional' stories. I want the truth." I watched him pour two generous measures and felt an odd mix of relief and dread. "You might need something stronger than bourbon for this conversation." "Try me." His eyes were steady, determined. "My son is at war. Fantasy or not, I need to understand." "Griffons aren't just large predatory birds," I explained, watching Billy take another sip of bourbon. "They're warriors, bred for combat. Their claws can tear through steel, and they fight in organized battle formations. One griffon warrior can match a trained guard and easily overwhelm a poorly trained one." Billy's hands tightened around his glass. "And my son is facing how many?" "The Mountain Talon Clan fields around 6,000 warriors. If they ally with other clans..." I took a steadying breath. "Tim holds two of the most strategically important positions in Equestria. The Marquis of Crystal Vale and Holder of Dawn Gate - together they're meant to match our entire army in strength. He's our shield against eastern threats." "My son," Billy said carefully, "the combat medic turned warehouse leadman and then turned noble lord, is now responsible for defending your entire eastern border?" I nodded. "Through right of combat. He killed the previous lord for threatening his daughter and claimed his titles." The bourbon burned pleasantly as I took another sip. "The nobles didn't expect him to be so... direct about enforcing change." "That sounds like Tim." A ghost of pride crossed Billy's face. "Never could stand bullies. Or seeing kids hurt." His expression darkened. "But now he's facing an army." "With barely half the forces he should have," I confirmed. "Though that's not the worst part. The griffons... they took tribute from the previous lord. Not just gold, but..." I hesitated, knowing how he'd react. "But what?" "Foals," I said softly. "They accepted young fillies as payment. Tim refused to continue the arrangement. That's what started this." The glass in Billy's hand cracked. Bourbon seeped between his fingers, but he didn't seem to notice. "They wanted children as tribute?" "And Tim killed the noble who allowed it. Now he's preparing to take the fight to them." I met his eyes steadily. "Your son could die a hero defending these foals. Or he could win and be offered Celestia's hoof in marriage - she's already expressed interest. Either way, he'll be remembered as the noble who finally stood against these traditions." "Tim," Billy's voice shook slightly, "is fighting a war to protect children from being sold as slaves?" "He's fighting for more than that now. For every foal who needs protection. For a chance to change how nobility treats its subjects." I managed a sad smile. "He's become everything I write about in my novels - the warrior who fights for real change, who protects the innocent no matter the cost." "Then he'll need help," Billy said firmly, standing. "If even half of what you're saying is real... my son is fighting a war that needs fighting. So." He looked at me with steel in his eyes. "How do we get him reinforcements?" I smiled. “I’ll write some letters to old friends. Friends with more friends that know how to fight.” Billy said nothing as I started writing. Using the same basic message, it didn’t take long to write the letters. My magic flowed steadily as I sealed the last letter, adding it to the pile that would go to every Veterans' Hall in Equestria. Each scroll carried the same urgent message - Dawn Gate needed warriors, and these foals needed proper mentors. I'd called in every favor, invoked every friendship, reminded every retired guard who'd ever appeared in my novels that real heroes were needed now. "That's the last one," I said, setting down my quill. Dozens of scrolls lay ready for magical delivery, each bearing my personal seal. "All the major halls - Canterlot, Manehattan, Las Pegasus, everywhere retired guards gather to share war stories and remember old battles." Billy watched the letters disappear in sequential flashes of magic, his expression caught between wonder and worried determination. "And now?" "Now we wait." I poured us both fresh bourbon. "The Veterans' Halls are more than just social clubs. They're where old warriors go to remember who they were, to feel that sense of purpose again. When they learn that foals need protecting..." I managed a small smile. "Let's just say some battles are worth coming out of retirement for." "You really think they'll come?" "To defend foals? To teach young ones how to survive?" I thought of Tim, building his family of rescued children, preparing them for a war they should never have to face. "They'll come. The only question is whether they'll arrive in time." I lifted my glass, and Billy matched the gesture. We both understood - sometimes all you can do is send out a call for help, and pray it's answered in time. * * * General Iron Shield The Canterlot Veterans' Hall buzzed with its usual midday energy - old warriors sharing battle stories over warm cider, retired guards reliving glory days between games of horseshoes. The massive stone hearth crackled with eternal flame, a gift from Celestia herself to honor those who'd served. The letter materialized directly in front of me, Duchess Velvet's seal glowing with urgent magic. Conversation around me continued as I read, but my sharp intake of breath drew attention from nearby tables. "Brothers! Sisters!" My voice cut through the chatter, decades of command experience silencing the hall instantly. Every eye turned to me - scarred veterans, battle-worn warriors, guards who'd given their best years to Equestria's defense. "I hold in my hooves an urgent request from the Duchess of Unicornia herself." I stood straighter, letting my voice carry to every corner. "Dawn Gate fortress faces siege. But this isn't just another border skirmish. There are hundreds of foals within those walls - orphans given new purpose by Lord Timothy. The griffon clans want blood, and these foals need proper warriors to teach them how to survive." Murmurs rippled through the crowd. Several older guards exchanged knowing looks - they remembered what griffon raids could do to the unprepared. "The Duchess calls for volunteers. Who among us will stand with these foals? Who will teach them what we learned through blood and steel?" Steel Hoof, his greying mane testament to decades of service, stamped one massive hoof. "Iron Shield, you crazy old warhorse. Are you suggesting we come out of retirement to train foals for war?" "I'm not suggesting anything," I growled. "I'm telling you our skills are needed. These aren't noble brats playing at being guards - they're orphans Lord Timothy rescued from the streets. They chose to defend their new home. Now they need teachers who understand real combat." Thunder rolled across the wooden floor as dozens of hooves stamped in approval. Winter Storm, her wings still bearing scars from the last griffon war, landed on a nearby table. "Well then," she grinned fiercely, "what are we waiting for? Those foals need proper combat instructors, and I'm tired of telling the same old war stories anyway." The hall erupted in cheers. Retired guards who'd sworn never to don armor again began discussing travel arrangements. Veterans who'd settled into quiet lives felt the call of duty spark anew. I smiled, feeling the weight of my own armor-scarred past lift slightly. "Then let's show these young ones what real warriors can do. For Dawn Gate!" "FOR DAWN GATE!" The cry shook the rafters, and I knew similar scenes were playing out in Veterans' Halls across Equestria. The foals would have their teachers. And the griffons would learn why you never threaten warriors who still remember how to fight. * * * Tim Midnight shadows cloaked our approach to the Mountain Talon city. No walls, no real defenses - they'd grown complacent in their mountain stronghold. My hundred volunteers moved like ghosts through the darkness, their armor spelled for silence by Crystal Light before we left. Swift Wing landed beside me without a sound, her expression grim. "The fields are still worked, even at this hour." Her voice carried barely-contained fury. "They're using our mares as beasts of burden." A scream pierced the night, muffled but unmistakable. It came from a low stone building near the city's edge. Swift Wing's wings snapped tight against her sides, and I felt the tension ripple through our gathered forces. "We're too late for that one," I said quietly, "but not for the others." I surveyed our assembled warriors. "Listen carefully. Primary objective is rescuing any ponies we find. Get them clear of the city - Thunder Step's team has an evacuation point ready in that grove we passed." My hand found my sword hilt, its familiar weight a comfort in the darkness. "Secondary objective - any griffon who resists, any who raises so much as a claw against you, dies. I don't care about age or gender. If they fight, they fall." The gathered guards nodded grimly. They'd all heard the stories of what happened to ponies taken as "tribute." "Move in quietly. Teams of four. Clear buildings systematically." My voice hardened. "And if you find any being used for... entertainment... kill their abusers first. Make it quick - we're here for rescue, not revenge." Swift Wing's wings trembled with barely-contained rage. "And if we find foals?" "Get them out first. Then burn everything." I drew my sword, its steel dark in the moonlight. "Show them exactly what happens when they treat our people like property." The rescue teams spread out, moving through shadows toward their assigned sectors. Another scream echoed across the night, then died suddenly. We were about to teach the Mountain Talon Clan a very painful lesson about the cost of their "traditions." The first building yielded three mares chained to the wall, their coats dull from malnutrition and abuse. The sight made my sword hand twitch, but we maintained silence as my team worked the locks. One of the guards, an earth pony named Stone Heart, lifted a mare who was too weak to walk. "Get them to the evacuation point," I whispered to half our team. "We'll clear the next structure." A commotion erupted two buildings over - the sounds of combat mixed with griffon screeches. Our element of surprise was fading fast. "Movement!" Swift Wing called from above. "They're mobilizing defenders!" I nodded grimly. "Signal the other teams. No more stealth - get our people out and leave nothing standing." Torches began lighting across the city as alarm spread. A griffon warrior burst from a nearby door, talons extended. My sword met his charge with practiced efficiency. He dropped without a sound, but others were already taking wing. "South quarter secured!" A guard captain's voice carried over the growing chaos. "Six mares, two fillies rescued. Building torched!" Similar reports began flowing in from other sectors. Our teams moved with ruthless precision, years of guard training focused into pure tactical efficiency. For every griffon that rose to fight, two more fell before they could reach their weapons. Swift Wing dove past me, her wings cutting air as she engaged a griffon trying to rally defenders. "Western approach still clear!" she called between strikes. "Evacuation route holding!" I moved to the next building, hearing sounds of struggle inside. The door splintered under my boot. The sight froze my blood - a young mare, barely more than a filly, chained to the wall. Her guard's uniform hung in tatters, Dawn Gate's insignia still visible. The griffon turned from his "entertainment," talons bloody. At his feet lay another guardmare, unmoving, her neck at an unnatural angle. Probably the mother, based on their similar coloring. My sword moved with surgical precision. Not a quick death. Not for this. When I stepped back into the street, my blade dripped red. "Keep moving!" I ordered, my voice tight with controlled rage. "Get our people clear and burn it all! Show them exactly what it costs to take our foals as tribute!" Flames began catching between buildings as our teams worked methodically through the city. The griffons had built too closely together, their confidence in their mountain stronghold now working against them. Fire spread rapidly, creating chaos that worked to our advantage. "Contact!" A guard shouted from my left. A group of griffon warriors had formed up, trying to organize a proper defense. Their commander barked orders in their harsh language. "Take them," I ordered, my voice carrying across our lines. "Don't let them rally!" Our guards struck with coordinated precision. Crossbow bolts found wing joints while earth ponies engaged in close combat. The griffons fought with desperate fury, but they were disorganized, caught completely off guard by the ferocity of our attack. Swift Wing landed beside me, blood matting her midnight-blue coat. Her wing brushed my arm briefly - our private signal of affection - before she straightened to report. "Beloved- Tim. We found their slave quarters. There are dozens more of our people, but the guards there are dug in hard." "How many defenders?" "At least thirty, fighting from stone buildings. They know what we're here for." I nodded grimly. "Get Storm Wing's squad for support. Hit them from above while we breach from the ground." I turned to the nearest team. "With me! We're not leaving anyone behind!" As we moved through the burning streets, I caught glimpses of other rescue operations succeeding. Teams of guards escorting wounded ponies toward the evacuation point. Buildings systematically cleared and put to the torch. The Mountain Talons were learning exactly what it meant to face warriors fighting for something more than mere territory. A young griffon, barely more than a fledgling, launched himself at me with a crude spear. His attack was clumsy, desperate. My sword ended him quickly - youth bought no mercy tonight. Not after what they'd done to our foals and their mothers… "Primary target ahead!" Swift Wing called from above. "Stone building, heavily guarded!" I raised my sword, its steel reflecting the growing fires. "Break them! No prisoners! Get our people out!" The stone building's defenders met us with organized resistance - the first we'd encountered. These weren't just random warriors, but dedicated guards protecting what they saw as valuable property. The thought made my blood burn hotter. "Breach teams! Multiple points!" I ordered, watching Swift Wing's aerial units move into position. "Hit them hard, keep them scattered!" The first explosion rocked the building's eastern wall - Crystal Light's parting gift put to good use. Guards poured through the breach while Swift Wing's team engaged defenders on the roof. The sounds of combat merged with screams of terror and rage. "Underground level!" someone shouted from inside. "There's a cellar full of-" The voice cut off in combat. I moved through the breach, sword leading. The interior was chaos - guards and griffons locked in close combat, the air thick with feathers and blood. A griffon commander barked orders from a raised platform, trying to maintain control. My sword ended his commands permanently. "Get those cellar doors open!" I fought my way toward the heavy wooden barriers. "Swift Wing! Status!" "Roof secured!" Her voice carried over the din. "They're not getting aerial reinforcement!" The cellar doors finally burst open, releasing the stench of unwashed bodies and despair. Cages lined the walls in cruel symmetry - smaller ones for fillies positioned to face larger ones holding their mothers. Some still wore traces of guard armor, proof of which noble house they'd been taken from. The way they'd been arranged, each mother could see her daughter but never reach her. "Get them out! All of them!" The fury in my voice carried command enough. Guards moved quickly to break locks and support the weakened prisoners. "Swift Wing! Begin final phase!" She knew what that meant. The rescue teams would clear the building, then burn it like all the others. But first... "Gather their records!" I ordered, spotting ledgers on a desk. "Let's see which nobles have been paying their tribute in flesh rather than gold." The Mountain Talons weren't just losing their slaves tonight. They were losing their leverage over corrupt nobles. And when we were done, there'd be nothing left but ash to mark where their city stood. "Last group coming out!" Stone Heart called from the cellar. More guards moved to support the weakened prisoners, many too malnourished to walk on their own. The ledgers we'd found were secured in waterproof bags - evidence that would prove very interesting to Celestia. The sounds of combat had shifted from organized resistance to scattered pockets of desperate fighting. Flames lit the night sky as more buildings caught fire, creating a hellish backdrop to our operation. "My lord," Swift Wing landed beside me, her wings dark with soot. "Evacuation teams report all rescued ponies are clear of the city. Final count..." her voice caught slightly. "Over two hundred, including forty-three fillies." The number hit me like a physical blow. Two hundred slaves. Forty-three fillies. All "tribute" from nobles who'd chosen to pay in flesh rather than gold. "Signal all teams to pull back," I ordered, watching another building collapse in flames. "Once everyone's clear, trigger the remainder of Crystal Light's gifts." Swift Wing's wings twitched. "The whole city, sir?" "Every stone." I met her eyes steadily. "Let them see the smoke from Dawn Gate. Let them understand exactly what happens when they piss me off." She nodded grimly and took wing, carrying my orders to our scattered forces. I turned to survey what remained of the Mountain Talon's capital. The fires had spread beyond control now, turning their proud city into an inferno. A young griffon - female, barely adolescent - stumbled from a burning building. She carried no weapons, made no aggressive moves. Just stared at me with terrified eyes. "Run," I said quietly. "Run far. And tell your people what happened here. Tell them why their city burns." She fled into the night as the first of Crystal Light's demolition spells triggered. Stone exploded into shrapnel, bringing down entire structures. The Mountain Talons would rebuild eventually, but they'd never forget this night. And they'd think twice about ever taking "tribute" again. "Last charges set!" The call came from multiple sectors as our teams withdrew systematically. The Mountain Talon city burned behind us, Crystal Light's demolition spells continuing their work. Each explosion brought down another building, ensuring nothing salvageable would remain. "Form up on me!" I called out, watching our scattered forces converge. The rescued ponies were already well ahead with the first evacuation teams, moving swiftly toward Dawn Gate under heavy guard. "Combat formation, defensive spread. They'll be pursuing once they recover from the shock." Swift Wing landed beside me as the last of our forces assembled. Her wings were streaked with ash and blood, but her eyes burned with fierce satisfaction. "All teams accounted for. Three wounded, none serious. No dead." I nodded grimly. "Get us back to the fortress. Double time. Dawn's only a few hours away, and I want to be behind our walls before they organize a proper pursuit." As we moved out, a final series of explosions lit the night behind us. The Mountain Talon's proud city was now nothing but flame and rubble. Two hundred rescued slaves and forty-three freed fillies would tell the story of this night. "You know they'll retaliate," Swift Wing said quietly as we marched. "Let them try." I kept my eyes forward, focused on the path home. "They've lost their slaves, their city, and their reputation. Every noble house that was paying tribute in flesh is about to face Celestia's justice. Let them come for revenge - they'll find Dawn Gate's teeth properly bared this time." The fortress waited ahead, its walls our shield against what would come next. We'd struck first, struck hard, and shown the griffons exactly what it meant to threaten our people. Now we just had to prepare for their response. "Move out!" I ordered, picking up the pace. "Let's get our people home." The night had been costly for the Mountain Talons. The war was about to become much costlier. * * * Celestia Morning sunlight streamed through my study windows, catching dust motes in golden beams as I read Tim's urgent dispatch. Each line made my blood run colder, even as a part of me felt grim satisfaction at his decisive action. Your Highness, The Mountain Talon capital lies in ruins. Our raid recovered two hundred enslaved ponies, including forty-three fillies taken as "tribute." We struck at midnight, rescued our people, and burned their city to ash. Casualties were extensive - I estimate at least four hundred griffons fell defending their slave quarters. We seized their records. The enclosed documents detail every "tribute" payment made in flesh rather than gold. Bronze Star's transactions were extensive, but he wasn't alone. Duke Sterling's name appears repeatedly, along with several other prominent houses. The rescued ponies are being treated at Dawn Gate. The physical evidence of sexual abuse is extensive, particularly among the older fillies. Medical examination suggests systematic and prolonged torture. My horn sparked slightly as I read his clinical description of what they'd found in the underground cells. The ledgers he'd included were damning - detailed accounts of which noble house had "traded" which guards or fillies to avoid paying monetary tribute. I take full responsibility for ordering the city's destruction. Every building was put to the torch, and Crystal Light's demolition spells ensured nothing remains standing. Let the smoke be visible from Dawn Gate - a reminder of what happens when they treat our people as property. The Mountain Talons will retaliate. We're preparing defenses, but I felt you should know exactly why their city burns. And exactly which of your nobles have been paying their tributes in flesh. Your faithful servant, Lord Timothy I set the letter down carefully, my composure strained as I processed its implications. Two hundred slaves freed. Forty-three fillies rescued from spirits know what fate. And Duke Sterling... I'd suspected his involvement, but seeing the proof in his own ledgers... "Luna," I called softly, knowing my sister was still awake. "I believe it's time we had a very pointed discussion with certain members of our nobility. Starting with Duke Sterling." The morning sun caught my wings as I stood. Tim had struck the first blow in what would become a very costly war. But reading those ledgers, seeing the names of nobles who'd sold their own people into slavery... Perhaps it was time for the crown to bare its own teeth. * * * Tim The fortress infirmary was filled beyond capacity. What I'd seen while treating the rescued ponies made our raid's violence feel gentle by comparison. Each examination revealed new horrors - the kind that made me wish we'd killed more of them. "Easy now," I kept my voice professionally gentle as I approached the next patient, a young mare whose chart indicated severe reproductive tract infection. Her eyes held that thousand-yard stare I recognized from war zones. "I'm a combat medic. That infection needs immediate treatment, or it could become life-threatening." She pressed herself against the wall, trembling. The older nurse who'd been assisting stepped forward. "It's alright, dear," she said softly. "Lord Timothy is a healer first. He's the one who led the rescue." "The griffons..." the mare's voice cracked. "They didn't care if they hurt us. Used us until we bled, then kept using us..." I maintained clinical focus while preparing the antibiotics. "I know you have no reason to trust a noble. But I swear on my daughter's life, I won't hurt you. That griffon-transmitted infection needs treatment now, or you could lose the ability to bear foals." Slowly, hesitantly, she allowed the examination. My combat medic training let me work with efficient precision, though each revealed injury fed the cold fury building in my chest. The infection was aggressive, typical of cross-species transmission. Without treatment, it would have left permanent damage. "The antibiotics will clear the infection," I explained, finishing the treatment. "But you'll need regular care for at least two weeks. The nurses will monitor your recovery." As I moved to the next patient, I caught Swift Wing watching from the doorway. Her expression matched my controlled rage. "They treated our people like toys to break," she said quietly. "They did." I checked the next chart - similar injuries, different patient. "And they'll learn exactly what that's going to cost them." "My lord," Swift Wing's voice was tight with controlled emotion as she caught me between patients. "There's something you need to know about the rescued mares." I finished writing treatment instructions before looking up. "What is it?" "They were guards. Dawn Gate guards." Her wings shifted with barely suppressed rage. "Most of them served under Bronze Star before being traded as tribute." The quill in my hand snapped. "What?" "One of them asked to speak with you. She was a captain before..." Swift Wing's voice trailed off, her professional demeanor cracking slightly. "She wants to tell you everything. About why there were so many foals in captivity." I found the mare in a private corner of the infirmary. Despite her weakened condition, she carried herself with a warrior's bearing. The others gathered near her showed similar signs of military training beneath their injuries. "We were Dawn Gate guards," Silver Dawn's voice carried quiet strength despite everything she'd endured. "Bronze Star sold us by rank. Captains first, then lieutenants. But he didn't just sell us - he took our daughters too. Said the griffons would pay triple tribute for a guard and her filly together." She took a steadying breath. "Some of us fought when we realized. Combat training just made it worse for us. But when they threatened our fillies..." Her voice cracked. "We submitted. What choice did we have?" "The fillies we rescued..." I kept my voice steady despite the rage building in my chest. "The older ones..." Silver Dawn's eyes held a haunted look. "They stopped crying eventually. Stopped fighting. The younger ones were kept separate, 'unspoiled’ as they called it. Said they'd be worth more if they were 'fresh' when they came of age." Her voice turned bitter. "Made the mothers watch what happened to the older ones. So we'd know exactly what awaited our younger daughters." "And any colts born in captivity?" "Seventeen." The word fell like lead. "Killed at birth. They said male slaves were worthless. Some mothers tried hiding pregnancies when they felt the colts kick differently. It never worked. After watching both - their older daughters broken and their sons murdered..." She swallowed hard. "Some just stopped eating. Faded away." "The ones you saved," Silver Dawn continued, her composure cracking slightly. "Some are still... untouched. The younger ones. But the others..." She looked away. "The healers say some may never bear foals of their own. Too much damage, too young." I thought of the infections I'd been treating, the internal injuries that spoke of calculated cruelty rather than mere abuse. "How long?" I asked quietly. "How long had this been happening?" "Bronze Star started with just adult guards. But then they discovered fillies were worth more." Her voice turned clinical, distancing herself from the horror. "They had a system. Age groups. Different... purposes. The young ones cleaned, served food. Until they were 'ready.' The older ones..." She stopped, collecting herself. "They kept families together. Made mothers watch their daughters' first... session. Said it ensured cooperation." Swift Wing's wings snapped tight against her sides, an involuntary sound of disgust escaping her. "Some of the mothers tried to end it," Silver Dawn whispered. "For their daughters. But they caught on. Started keeping the fillies separate. 'Insurance' they called it. One mother steps out of line, her daughter pays." I felt my sword hand tighten. "How many? How many guards did Bronze Star trade?" "Forty-seven transactions." She quoted the number with bitter precision. "Most with young daughters. Some pregnant. He called it 'investing in future tribute.'" The clinical horror of it - not just abuse but systematic breeding and breaking of generations - made my earlier violence feel gentle by comparison. "The ones we couldn't save..." Silver Dawn's voice finally broke. "The ones who faded, or fought back and were killed, or just... couldn't survive what they did... their daughters are still out there. In other cities. Other clans. Being 'prepared' for their futures." I met her eyes steadily. "Then we'll burn every city. Find every slave. And make them pay for: Every. Single. One." I thought of Sara, of the twins Twilight carried. Of every foal now training in our guard program. "You'll have justice," I promised quietly. "All of you. Bronze Star is already dead by my blade. The Mountain Talon city burns. And this is just the beginning." "Not justice," she said, meeting my eyes with cold determination. "Vengeance. Give us armor, give us weapons. Let us show them what happens when they break guardmares and murder our sons." I studied these survivors - warriors who'd endured hell but kept their spirits unbroken. They deserved more than just rescue. They deserved the chance to burn the whole griffon nation to ash. "What's your name, Captain?" I asked quietly. "Silver Dawn, my lord." A ghost of her former pride flickered in her eyes. "Though I haven't held that rank since..." "Since Bronze Star betrayed everything a commander should be." I met her gaze steadily. "I won't ask you to serve again. What you've endured... no one would blame you for wanting peace. But if you're willing, Dawn Gate needs leaders who understand what we're really fighting for." She straightened slightly, some of that warrior's steel returning to her posture. "What are you offering?" "Your rank restored. Command of the Foal Guard as our fourth captain, alongside Forest Shadow, Thunder Step, and Crystal Light." I gestured to Swift Wing. "These foals need teachers who understand both combat and what failure of command can cost. They need leaders who'll never treat them as disposable." Silver Dawn looked at her fellow survivors, an unspoken communication passing between them. "And the others? Those who still wish to serve?" "Full reinstatement for any who want it. Proper armor, real weapons, and my personal oath that no guard under my command will ever be traded as tribute." I let my voice carry to all the rescued warriors. "House Talbert treats its guards as family, not property. You'll have everything you need to show the griffons exactly what happens when they break their chains." "House Talbert," Silver Dawn tested the name carefully. Then, with deliberate precision, she drew herself into perfect attention and saluted. "I, Captain Silver Dawn, swear my sword and service to House Talbert and the defense of Dawn Gate." One by one, the other former guards who still had strength to stand followed her example. Their salutes were shaky, their bodies still weak from captivity, but their eyes burned with renewed purpose. "Welcome home," I said softly. "Now let's show the griffons what happens when they face real guards instead of slaves." * * * Swift Wing I couldn't help but smile as the rescued guards filed out, purpose restored to their steps. "So," I kept my voice light, "a fourth captain now? Your privileges as Marquis do extend to multiple-" "Swift." Tim's voice carried fond exasperation. "This is neither the time nor the place, my lady." Before I could tease him further, the infirmary door burst open. Star Shine bounded in, her silver coat practically glowing with indignation. "Daddy!" She skidded to a stop in front of Tim. "Why didn't you take me on the raid? I wanted to go! I'm good with a crossbow!" I watched Tim's entire demeanor shift - the hard-edged commander who'd just burned a city becoming the gentle father his daughter needed. He knelt down to her level, though his voice remained firm. "You're too young for raids, sweetheart. This wasn't like training or defending the walls." Star Shine's lower lip quivered in a pout that would have done any noble filly proud. "But I want to kill griffons! They hurt ponies and take foals and-" "I know." Tim pulled her into a hug, his eyes meeting mine over her head. The weight of everything we'd seen in the Mountain Talon city passed between us. "But the war isn't over, little one. You'll get your chance. God help me, you’ll get your chance." The promise in his voice sent a shiver down my spine. Star Shine might be too young for raids now, but the way she clutched her adoptive father, the fierce protectiveness in her small frame... Captain Silver Dawn watched the exchange between Tim and Star Shine, something complex passing across her face. The sight of a noble treating a rescued filly with such genuine paternal affection seemed to shake her more than any declaration of restored rank. "She's your daughter?" Silver Dawn's voice carried careful neutrality, though her eyes never left the pair. "She is." Tim kept one arm around Star Shine while meeting the captain's gaze. "All these foals are my children. I've personally adopted all 120 of my trainees. Most still call me Lord Tim out of habit, but I am their father in every way that matters." Star Shine beamed up at him, then studied Silver Dawn with that intense focus she brought to everything. "Are you going to help train us, Captain?" Silver Dawn's composure wavered slightly at the direct question. Tim's next words carried the weight of absolute trust. "I'm entrusting my children to you, Captain. Do you understand what that means?" The former slave, restored warrior, and newly appointed captain straightened. In that moment, I saw what Tim must have recognized - not just a survivor seeking vengeance, but a protector who understood the true cost of failed leadership. "I understand, my lord." Her voice carried steel and oath together. "No harm will come to them while I draw breath. No one will ever treat them as tribute." "Does this mean we get new combat lessons? What kind of tactics did you teach in the old guard?" I watched Silver Dawn's eyes fill with tears she wouldn't let fall as the filly's innocent question brought back memories of training young guards before her captivity. Tim had given her more than just rank and purpose - he'd given her a family to protect, and a chance to teach again. The griffons had no idea what they'd unleashed. Not just in our youngest warriors, but in their former slaves now turned protectors. * * * Celestia "This is an outrage!" Iron Wing's talons scraped against my study's stone floor. "A cowardly night attack on a civilian population! The Mountain Talon city lies in ruins!" I maintained perfect regal posture, though my wings shifted slightly with barely contained fury. "Civilian population?" My voice could have frozen flame. "Tell me, Ambassador, since when do civilians keep over two hundred enslaved mares? How many of the forty-three fillies they imprisoned were truly 'civilian' property?" Iron Wing's feathers ruffled. "Traditional tribute arrangements-" "Were never meant to include flesh and blood!" My guards shifted nervously as my control slipped. "They kept guardmares as breeding stock, Ambassador. Raped them until they conceived, then murdered any colt born for the crime of his gender." "Your Highness-" "Seventeen." I cut him off coldly. "Seventeen newborn colts killed because the Mountain Talons 'had no use for male slaves.' Some of the mothers stopped eating afterward, just faded away while your 'civilians' continued using them." Iron Wing's beak clicked shut, his eyes widening as he finally understood the depth of my rage. "So yes, Ambassador. Lord Timothy burned their city. He killed their warriors and freed their slaves. And if your people wish to call this an act of war..." My wings flared, casting shadows across the room. "Remember that they drew first blood when they accepted foals as tribute." "The High Clans never sanctioned-" "Never sanctioned?" My voice dripped with lethal sarcasm. "Yet moments ago you called these 'traditional tribute arrangements.' Tell me, Ambassador, how does something become traditional without sanction?" Iron Wing's feathers ruffled as he realized his mistake. "I meant-" "And how interesting," I continued, my voice growing colder, "that you knew immediately the High Clans would refuse to return slaves from other cities. You seem very certain of their response to something they supposedly never sanctioned." "Your Highness, the political realities-" "Are quite clear now." Sun-fire edged my words. "The High Clans didn't just look away. They built an entire system of plausible denial while profiting from slavery." I levitated the ledgers. "These show exactly which houses participated in this obscenity. Both griffon and pony nobles will face justice. The only question remaining..." I met his eyes steadily, "is whether your people wish to compound their crimes with war." "The High Clans will never agree to-" "Then the High Clans will face both Dawn Gate's wrath and the full might of Equestria. Choose carefully, Ambassador. You've seen what one human lord did to a single city. Imagine what he'll do with my entire army at his back." The ambassador stared at the damning evidence, then at my barely contained fury. He swallowed hard. "I will... convey your message to the High Clans." "Do that." My voice carried sun-fire's heat. "And remind them of what one human lord did to a single city. The next clan that accepts slaves as tribute will learn what it means to face the full might of Equestria. Return my little ponies - all of them - or watch everything you've built turn to ash." * * * Tim "Write to Twilight about the raid," I told Swift Wing as we finished reviewing the morning reports. "She needs to know what we found, what we did." "Of course, my lord." She reached for parchment, but I held up a hand. "Just... make all references to me in past tense." A small smile played at my lips. "He was brave in battle, he led with honor..." Swift Wing's eyes widened. "She'll think you died in the raid! My lord, that's cruel - especially with the twins..." "Well, don't actually say I died," I smirked. "Just... imply it. Heavily. Maybe throw in something about how nobly I led the raid, from the front lines..." "Tim!" She tried to look scandalized but couldn't quite hide her own smile. "Lady Sparkle will kill us both when she finds out." "Probably," I agreed cheerfully. "But imagine her face when I walk into Ponyville very much alive after she reads that letter. Besides," I added innocently, "you're the one writing it. I'm just a noble who was very brave and totally-not-dead in battle." Swift Wing shook her head, but her quill was already moving. "I hope you realize this means war. And not with the griffons." "Worth it." I peered over her shoulder at the opening lines. "Oh, add something about my 'last noble sacrifice saving those fillies' Really sell it." "You," she muttered, though her shoulders shook with suppressed laughter, "are a dead stallion." I smirked. "That’s the general idea." * * * Twilight Crystal Light's magical delivery materialized before me, Swift Wing's familiar script visible through the seal. My heart lightened - news from the fortress at last. But as I read, that hope turned to ice in my veins. My Dearest Lady Sparkle, I write to inform you of the events at Dawn Gate. Lord Timothy was everything a noble should be - brave, decisive, caring for his people above all else. He led us in a night raid against the Mountain Talon city, where we discovered over two hundred enslaved ponies, including forty-three fillies. Your husband's dedication to justice was absolute. His sword struck without mercy as we freed the prisoners. The city burned at his command, a testament to his unwavering protection of our people. He was magnificent in battle, every inch the warrior-noble Equestria needed. The raid succeeded beyond expectations. The rescued ponies are safe at Dawn Gate, receiving treatment. Among them were former guards, traded as tribute by Bronze Star. Lord Timothy's last command restored their ranks and positions. He would want you to know that every action was taken to protect our people. His final orders ensured the rescued foals would have proper teachers, real warriors to guide them. The legacy he built will endure. I know these words bring little comfort, but please understand - he was everything a commander should be. Everything a noble could aspire to become. His memory will live on in the changes he brought, in the lives he saved, in the justice he delivered. Dawn Gate stands stronger for having known his leadership, however briefly. We will honor his example, protect his foals, and ensure his sacrifice was not in vain. With deepest respect, Swift Wing P.S. - He faced the end as he lived - protecting those who needed him most. We could ask for no finer example of nobility. The letter fell from my trembling magic as the world spun around me. "No," I whispered. "No, no, no…" I whispered again, tears blurring my vision. "He can't be..." "Morning!" Rose trotted in cheerfully, a letter held carefully in her mouth. She set it on my desk. "Just got word about the raid. Sounds like it went perfectly. The griffons might even reconsider-" "WENT PERFECTLY?!" My shriek made her jump. "TIM IS DEAD!" Rose's crimson coat paled as she stared at me. "Dead? What are you talking about?" I shoved Swift Wing's letter at her with my magic, my voice cracking. "Read it! She wrote about him entirely in past tense! His 'final orders,' his 'sacrifice,' his 'memory living on'..." "That's... strange," Rose said slowly. "Because I just got this..." She nudged the letter she'd brought closer. My magic snatched it up, recognizing Tim's familiar handwriting instantly: My dear Rose, The raid was a complete success. Though Swift Wing might be slightly dramatic in her report to Twilight. Something about writing everything in past tense? I may have suggested it. In my defense, I wasn't in any real danger - the element of surprise worked perfectly. Please make sure the letter reaches Twilight in Ponyville... eventually. After she's had time to properly appreciate Swift Wing's literary talents. Let me know how many books she destroys when she reads it. Your not-dead-yet commander, Tim P.S. - You might want to warn Ponyville's healers to stand by. I suspect Twilight's reaction will be... energetic. The library might need repairs. The letter burst into flames in my magical grip. "I'M GOING TO KILL HIM!" My horn sparked dangerously. "AND SWIFT WING! AND- AND-" Rose backed away slowly. "I'll... just go warn the healers about potential magical discharge..." "HE HAD ME THINKING-" Books began floating off shelves as my magic surged. "AND SWIFT WING ACTUALLY-" A nearby lamp exploded. "Should I postpone your morning meetings?" Rose called from the doorway. "SCHEDULE HIS FUNERAL BECAUSE WHEN I GET MY HOOVES ON HIM-" Rose's retreating hoofsteps set a new speed record for diplomatic withdrawals. * * * Tim Twilight's letter materialized in a burst of angry purple magic. Short, simple, and to the point: You're an asshole. I couldn't help grinning as I showed it to Swift Wing. "I think she got your letter." "We're both going to die when she sees us again," Swift Wing observed under her smile. Before I could respond, the warning horns sounded from the walls. We rushed to the battlements, but the sight that greeted us wasn't an attacking army. Instead, a massive column of armored ponies approached Dawn Gate, their formations speaking of years of military experience. "My lord," Forest Shadow called from her observation post, "that's General Iron Shield leading them. The old Canterlot Veterans' Hall commander." The column drew closer, and I could finally appreciate its size. Hundreds of retired guards, their armor polished to a parade shine, marched in perfect order. Earth ponies, unicorns, and pegasi moved with the coordinated precision that only comes from years of service. Iron Shield himself approached the gates, his grey coat showing the scars of countless battles. "Lord Timothy!" his voice carried the natural command of a career soldier. "The Veterans' Halls answer Dawn Gate's call! Over a thousand warriors from across Equestria, ready to serve!" I studied the approaching force - not just guards, but real veterans. Warriors who'd faced griffons before, who understood what real combat meant. "Open the gates!" I ordered. "Welcome them home!" As the massive doors swung wide, I caught Swift Wing's wings trembling slightly. "A thousand veterans," she whispered. "With their experience teaching our foals..." "The griffons wanted war," I said quietly. "Now they'll face warriors who remember how to wage it properly." The sound of armored hooves on stone filled the air as Dawn Gate welcomed its new defenders. These weren't just reinforcements - they were living history, coming out of retirement to ensure the next generation survived. The next meeting would prove to be interesting. "One-on-one training would be most effective," Iron Shield said, his battle-scarred form commanding attention in the command center. "Match them by race - each foal learns from someone who understands their natural abilities." I studied the training rosters spread across my desk. "You have enough veterans to pair each foal with a personal mentor?" "More than enough." Iron Shield's voice carried gruff pride. "Every unicorn foal gets a unicorn veteran who can teach them proper combat magic. Pegasi learn aerial tactics from warriors who've actually fought griffons in the sky. Earth ponies..." he smiled slightly, "well, we have some of the toughest old warhorses still breathing." Swift Wing landed silently through the office window. "The pegasus veterans are already assessing the aerial training yard. They've got ideas for improving our anti-griffon defenses." "And the unicorns want to reinforce the ward stones," Forest Shadow added from her position near the door. "Some of them fought in the last griffon war. They know exactly where to strengthen our magical barriers." Iron Shield nodded approvingly. "Your foals have heart, but they need more than just courage. They need skills passed down from warriors who've faced real combat. Let us teach them how to survive what's coming." "Do it," I decided. "Pair them up, start training immediately. I want every foal to have a personal mentor by nightfall." I met the old commander's eyes. "Just remember - they're foals first, warriors second." "We know." Something haunted crossed Iron Shield's face. "That's why we came. Some battles need fighting, so the young ones don't have to." The sound of training already echoed from the yard below - veteran voices giving instruction, young ones eager to learn. The Mountain Talons had wanted war. They were about to face an army where every young warrior had a battle-tested mentor teaching them exactly how to fight. "My lord," Iron Shield spoke after a moment's hesitation. "The ledgers... they mention other cities?" I nodded grimly. "At least three other clans holding our people. Celestia has demanded their return, but..." "But the griffons won't give them up without a fight." The old commander's scarred face hardened. "We'll need more than just defensive training then. These veterans didn't just come to teach, my lord. We came to fight. To save every last one of them." "You're proposing more raids." "I'm proposing a campaign." Iron Shield's voice carried the weight of decades of military experience. "Strategic strikes, coordinated attacks. The Mountain Talons weren't ready for you. The other clans will be. We'll need every advantage." I studied the old warrior. "How many of your veterans would be willing to leave these foals to strike other cities?" "All of us." His reply was immediate. "Half stay to train and defend, half go to free the others. Rotate the forces to keep both missions strong. These foals need protection, yes, but those slaves need rescue." Swift Wing's wings shifted thoughtfully. "We could coordinate with Crystal Vale's forces. Hit them from multiple directions." "Plan it," I ordered. "But carefully. We only get one chance at surprise with each city. Make them count." Iron Shield saluted. "A pleasure to serve under a commander who understands that some wars need fighting, my lord." * * * Celestia Duke Sterling struggled against the royal guards as they dragged him into my throne room. His normally immaculate mane was disheveled, his expensive robes wrinkled from rough handling. The ledgers from the Mountain Talon city lay open before my throne - damning evidence in his own hoofwriting. "Your Highness," he managed a shaky bow despite his restraints. "Surely there's been some misunderstanding-" "Silence." The word carried centuries of command. I descended from my throne slowly, deliberately. "The evidence is quite clear, Sterling. Payments to the Mountain Talons, made in guardmares and fillies. Your own ledgers detail every transaction." "Tribute arrangements-" "Were never meant to include flesh and blood!" Sun-fire edged my words. "You sold your own people into slavery. Guards who trusted you. Fillies who depended on your protection." He drew himself up, some of that noble arrogance returning. "As a Duke of the Realm, I demand-" "You demand nothing." My wings flared, casting him in shadow. "Those ledgers show twenty-three separate transactions under your seal alone. Twenty-three lives sold to save yourself some gold. And that's not counting Bronze Star's trades. Tell me, Sterling - do you know what happened to the colts born in captivity?" His face paled slightly. "I- I don't-" "They killed them." My voice could have killed if directed at the right angle. "Every colt born to the mares you sold. Murdered for the crime of being the wrong gender." I stepped closer, letting him feel the weight of my fury. "You didn't just commit treason against Equestria. You condemned innocent lives to slavery and death." "Your Highness, please-" "Lord Timothy has already claimed your captain's life. Now I claim everything else. Your titles, your lands, your wealth - all forfeit to the crown. And you..." I met his terrified eyes. "You will spend the rest of your days in the deepest cells beneath Canterlot, where the sun never reaches." "You can't-" "I can. I am. And you should thank me for my mercy." I turned away as the guards moved to drag him out. "Lord Timothy would have added your hide to his wall." His screams echoed through the castle as they took him to his fate. A fitting end for a noble who'd sold foals into darkness. Let it serve as a warning to any others who thought to treat my little ponies as property. "What will you do with Sterling's holdings?" Luna asked as Sterling's screams faded into the depths of the castle. "The Moonflower Valley estates alone are worth a fortune." I settled back on my throne, letting the sun-fire fade from my mane. "Perhaps I'll grant them to Lord Timothy. He seems to have a talent for managing problematic territories." Luna's laughter echoed through the throne room. "He's not going to marry you, Tia." "I'm well aware," I said dryly. "Though you seemed quite interested in offering yourself as an alternative." "At least I didn't flag my tail at him in front of his wife." Luna's grin turned wicked. "Though I notice you still haven't given up hope. Adding more titles to his name won't change his mind, sister." "This isn't about marriage," I protested, though perhaps a bit too quickly. "Sterling's lands need proper management. Someone who'll protect the ponies there instead of selling them. Silver Vale is on the Griffon border too." "Mhmm." Luna's knowing smirk was insufferable. "And the fact that giving him more titles would make him an even more suitable royal consort has nothing to do with it?" My wings shifted slightly in annoyance. "Your opinion on the matter is noted, sister." "Says the alicorn who tried to seduce a happily married human with what you called your 'royal assets.' The Crystal Empire also shares a Griffon border. Would you like Tim to marry Princess Cadance as well?” I snorted. “I don’t think Prince Shining Armor would like that much…” Luna stuck out her tongue. “He’ll get over it… eventually.” I maintained my dignified silence, though I couldn't quite hide my own smile. Luna did have a point about Tim's loyalty to Twilight. Though perhaps I would give him Sterling's lands anyway. Just to see Luna's face when I added "Duke" to his growing list of titles. * * * Twilight I was still fuming over Tim's "death notice" prank when Celestia's royal scroll appeared. The seal bore official markings - not personal correspondence, but a formal decree. "More news?" Rose asked carefully, having finally deemed it safe to return to my study. Several scorch marks on the walls testified to my earlier reaction. "From Celestia." I opened the scroll, then had to read it twice to be sure I understood: By Royal Decree, The titles, lands, and holdings of House Sterling, including the Duchy of Silver Vale and all associated territories, are hereby stripped from Duke Sterling for crimes against the crown. These holdings, being vital to Equestria's eastern and northern defense, are granted in perpetuity to Lord Timothy Talbert, elevating him to Duke of Silver Vale in addition to his current positions as Marquis of Crystal Vale, Holder of Dawn Gate and Master of the Eastern Marshes. Let it be known that this award recognizes both his service in exposing these crimes and his demonstrated ability to protect those under his authority. Princess Celestia Sovereign of Equestria Rose read over my shoulder, her expression thoughtful. "Well, that's convenient - Silver Vale connects our other territories. The entire eastern and northern border will be under unified command." "Under Tim's command," I corrected, still processing the implications. "He now controls everything from Crystal Vale through Silver Vale to Dawn Gate. At least Shining and Cadance will feel better knowing Tim's defending the border," I said, trying to focus on the positives. Rose's expression turned thoughtful. "You know... between your Countess title and his three provinces, Tim rules six major cities now. Being Duke puts him at your mother's rank, and his combined forces probably exceed Equestria's standing army." She paused meaningfully. "He's practically his own nation at this point." I hadn't considered that. Dawn Gate, Crystal Vale, Silver Vale, Ponyville... each with their own garrison, trade routes, and authority… "A human ruling that much Equestrian territory," Rose mused. "No wonder Celestia keeps trying to marry him. Though..." Her tone shifted to deliberate innocence, "with another duchy added, he might need a third lady-elect. Maybe a unicorn this time? For balance?" The ink pot that flew at her head was completely justified. Even if she did have a point about political representation among Tim's future wives. "A unicorn would make more sense politically," Rose continued, easily dodging another flying object. "I mean, you've got me for earth pony concerns, Swift Wing for pegasi..." "Rose..." My warning tone didn't seem to deter her. "Crystal Light has that sophisticated noble background." She tapped her hoof thoughtfully. "Though Dawn Star's more the warrior type. Either would complement the current arrangement nicely." My horn sparked dangerously. "Are you done?" "Just thinking ahead!" Her barely suppressed mirth was irritating. "A unicorn would definitely make you more jealous than Swift Wing or me. All that magical connection during intimate moments..." "That's it!" Books began floating off shelves. "Out! Before I show you some magical connections right now!" "I'll just start a list of qualified unicorn candidates then?" Rose called from the doorway. "For the good of the realm, of course!" The door slammed behind her just as my magic unleashed. Though I could still hear her laughing as she trotted away. I looked back at Celestia's decree, trying not to think about Rose's observations about magical bonds and intimacy. Tim had enough territories now. Probably. Maybe. ...I really needed to hurt him for that death notice prank before this got any more complicated. * * * Author's Note I write commissions! DM me with story ideas! //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 29 – New Responsibilities //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 29 – New Responsibilities Tim The winter chill crept through Dawn Gate's command post despite the roaring fire. Maps and tactical reports covered my makeshift desk, the fresh parchment carrying Celestia's royal seal sitting atop the organized chaos. I rubbed my chest absently, phantom pain from the Timberwolf wounds making itself known as I read the decree for the third time. "Duke of Silver Vale," I muttered, still processing the implications. "As if two territories weren't complicated enough." "Your Grace," Swift Wing teased from her position by the window, her wings finally healed enough for light patrol duty. "Has a nice ring to it." "Don't start," I warned, though I couldn't help smiling at my future wife's playfulness. "We have more immediate concerns than titles." Crystal Light cleared her throat delicately, her white coat reminding me of Celestia herself as she stood at perfect attention. The rainbow shimmer of her mane caught the firelight as she spoke. "Actually, sir, tradition dictates that each major holding should have its own Lady or Lady-Elect and captains. Silver Vale will need proper leadership structure established quickly to maintain stability during this transition." I studied her carefully. Of all my guards, Crystal Light had always maintained the most professional distance, balancing her noble background with genuine military skill. Even during the early days of "traditional arrangements" at the embassy, she'd never crossed lines or played games like some of the others. "Crystal Light," I said thoughtfully, "your diplomatic experience and noble heritage would be valuable for managing Silver Vale's political landscape. You are a Dame, yes? The territory connects Dawn Gate to Crystal Vale - we'll need someone who understands both military and trade protocols." Her noble demeanor cracked slightly, showing a flash of genuine interest. "Are you suggesting...?" "Lady-Elect of Silver Vale," I confirmed, watching her reaction carefully. "With Summer Breeze, Moonbeam, and Autumn Mist as your captains. The same arrangement we have with Swift Wing and Rose Petal - three months of consideration before making anything permanent." Crystal Light's rainbow mane seemed to shimmer as she processed this, her composure slipping just enough to reveal the mare beneath the soldier. "I... would be honored, sir. Though this leaves Dawn Gate without a unicorn captain." "I have someone in mind," I said carefully. "Though it will require some delicate discussion. Silver Dawn has proven herself an excellent leader with the Foal Guard." Swift Wing's wings rustled with understanding. "Sir... given what happened to her at the Mountain Talon city..." "I know." I touched my chest again, remembering the raid that had saved Silver Dawn and the others. "That's why this conversation needs to happen carefully. She needs to understand exactly what being a captain means - including the traditional privileges she'd be accepting." "She knows your character," Crystal Light offered quietly. "We all saw how you nearly died saving Swift Wing while bleeding out yourself. And the stories about Forest Shadow..." "Have spread through the ranks," Swift Wing finished. "The guards talk. They know you can be trusted with... sensitive matters." I stood, decision made. "Send for her. But Swift Wing - I want you there too. She'll need to know she has support from her future Lady of Dawn Gate." As Crystal Light left to fetch Silver Dawn, I caught Swift Wing's concerned expression. "This won't be easy," she said softly. "Some wounds run deeper than Timberwolf bites." "No," I agreed grimly. "But she deserves the chance to reclaim her rank properly. To heal on her own terms, just like Forest Shadow." The wait felt eternal, each crack of burning wood in the hearth marking moments heavy with anticipation. When Silver Dawn finally entered, her silver coat caught the firelight in a way that made her name seem prophetic - like the first rays of dawn breaking through darkness. Silver Dawn entered with military precision, her horn glowing faintly as she maintained the subtle spells that had become second nature during her previous time as captain. Her silver coat caught the firelight in a way that made her name seem prophetic - like the first rays of dawn breaking through darkness. "Sir," she said crisply. "You requested my presence?" "At ease, Captain," I said gently, noting how she still tensed slightly at her old rank. "I have a rather delicate matter to discuss. Crystal Light has accepted the position of Lady-Elect of Silver Vale." "Congratulations, Crystal," Silver Dawn said, genuine warmth entering her voice for a moment. "You'll make an excellent Lady." "Thank you," Crystal Light replied. "Though this creates an immediate opening that concerns you directly." I met Silver Dawn's eyes steadily. "Dawn Gate needs a new unicorn captain. You've already proven yourself an exceptional leader with the Foal Guard." Her horn's glow flickered briefly - a tell that revealed more than words could. "Sir... I..." "Before you answer," I said carefully, "we need to discuss exactly what this position entails. All of it - including the traditional privileges that come with being one of my captains." Silver Dawn's breath caught audibly. Swift Wing moved closer, offering silent support as understanding dawned in the silver mare's eyes. "Like Forest Shadow," she said quietly. "The guards told me how you handled her revelation. How you gave her complete control over when and how she approaches... such matters." "Yes." I kept my voice gentle but firm. "Any captain under my command accepts the possibility of traditional intimacy. But it's never demanded, never forced. You'd have complete control, just like Forest Shadow." "And if I'm never ready?" Silver Dawn asked, her horn's glow dimming further. "Then you're never ready," I replied simply. "The position is about trust and loyalty first. Everything else happens only if and when you choose it." Swift Wing stepped forward. "As your future Lady of Dawn Gate, I give you my word - no one will ever pressure you. We protect our own here." Silver Dawn's eyes found mine again, searching. "When you saved us from the Mountain Talons... you carried me out yourself. Even with all your other duties as commander, you made sure each of us got proper medical care." "You were my responsibility," I said quietly. "Just like you'd be my responsibility as captain. Everything else - all the traditional protocols and noble privileges - that only happens if you want it. If you feel safe enough to choose it." "The other guards," Silver Dawn said carefully, "they say you make them feel... valued. Even the ones who accept traditional privileges. That it's different with you." "It is different," Swift Wing confirmed. "He sees us as family first. Everything else grows from that foundation of trust." Silver Dawn straightened. "There's something else you should know, sir. Something that might affect your decision." "You have a daughter," I said gently. "One of the fillies we rescued. I know." Her eyes widened. "How did you...?" "I pay attention to my people, Silver Dawn. I've seen how you watch her during Foal Guard training. She has your eyes." "Morning Dawn," she whispered. "She's only eight. After what happened... I couldn't protect her then. But now..." "Now she has an entire fortress protecting her," I finished. "And her mother would be one of its commanding officers." Tears glimmered in Silver Dawn's eyes, but she remained composed. "Permission to speak freely, sir?" "Always." "I'm not ready for... traditional privileges. I may never be ready. But I trust you. After what you did in that city, how you've treated Forest Shadow, the way you protect all our foals..." Her voice steadied. "I would be honored to serve as your captain. To help make Dawn Gate strong enough that no filly ever faces what Morning Dawn and I did." "The position is yours," I said firmly. "With all the trust and responsibility that entails. Everything else happens only if and when you choose it." "Thank you, sir." Silver Dawn's voice caught slightly. "For understanding. For giving us both a real home." "That's what family does," I replied simply. "Now, let's discuss your new duties. Starting with making sure Morning Dawn knows her mother is a proper captain again..." * * * Crystal Light I sat at my desk in Dawn Gate, quill hovering over fresh parchment as I considered how to phrase such delicate news to my fellow guards. The white of my coat caught in the mirror, reminding me of Celestia, though my rainbow mane spoke more of common heritage. How strange that both would serve me well as Lady-Elect of Silver Vale. Dear Summer Breeze, Moonbeam, and Autumn Mist, I write with news that will affect us all. I have accepted the position of Lady-Elect of Silver Vale, and Lord Tim has named you three as my captains. This comes with all the responsibilities - and privileges - such positions entail. I know this may seem sudden, but with the griffon threat growing, we need every territory properly secured. Silver Vale connects Dawn Gate to Crystal Vale. Our role will be crucial in maintaining those supply lines and defensive positions. The traditional arrangements remain as previously discussed - Lord Tim will hold noble privileges with his captains, though he never demands such rights. Each of you must decide if you can accept such possibilities. I paused, considering how to phrase the next part. We leave for Silver Vale within the week. There will be much work to do - establishing proper defenses, organizing trade routes, creating a command structure that bridges both military and diplomatic needs. I look forward to serving with each of you in this new capacity. Your future Lady, Crystal Light Across the room, Lord Tim sat at his own desk, his quill moving across parchment with unusual urgency. From his expression and the tension in his shoulders, I knew he was writing to Lady Sparkle about relocating to Crystal Vale. The griffon threat made Ponyville too exposed now, especially with all her former personal guards taking command positions. He wouldn't phrase it as an order - he knew his wife too well for that. But his concern was evident in every line of his posture. The way his free hand kept drifting to his sword hilt spoke volumes about the threat he sensed coming. I sealed my own letter, understanding now why he'd chosen me for Silver Vale. Some battles required more than just military might. Sometimes the strongest defenses were the ones built on careful planning and diplomatic steel. "We won't fail them," I said softly, though whether I meant my future captains, Lord Tim's family, or all of Equestria, I wasn't quite sure. Perhaps it didn't matter. In the end, they were all connected, all part of what we were building here. * * * Tim I waited until Crystal Light sealed her letter before starting my own. The words needed to be perfect - firm enough to convey the urgency without making Twilight feel ordered about. My wife didn't respond well to commands, especially about her own safety. My beloved Twilight, With Crystal Light accepting the position of Lady-Elect of Silver Vale, and Silver Dawn taking her place as Dawn Gate's unicorn captain, all your former personal guards now hold command positions. This leaves Ponyville's defenses more vulnerable than I'm comfortable with. Please consider relocating to Crystal Vale as soon as possible. The library may be your home, but Crystal Vale's fortifications are stronger, and Rose Petal has experience protecting you. The twins deserve every protection we can provide. I know you hate being told what to do, particularly about your safety. But the griffons test our borders daily. I need you safe, love. Don't wait for them to prove me right about this. All my love, Tim Crystal Light's horn glowed as she accepted both letters. "I'll deliver these magically, sir. Direct magical transfer is more secure than standard post." "Thank you." I hesitated, then stepped closer. "Crystal... I'm sorry we didn't have more time before this promotion. The traditional three months of courtship seems impossible now with everything happening." "Some things matter more than tradition," she replied softly. Her white coat caught the morning light, making her look almost celestial. For a moment, I understood why even Celestia seemed to favor her. I cupped her face gently, pressing a light kiss to her lips. Not the passionate claiming of a future wife, but a promise of what could be, when time and circumstance allowed. Her rainbow mane shimmered as she leaned into the touch briefly before stepping back. "We should get you packed," I said, reality pressing in again. "Silver Vale will need its lady as soon as possible." "Does it bother you?" she asked as we headed toward her quarters. "Having four wives, each with her own territory to govern?" "Less than it probably should," I admitted. "Though I suspect Velvet will write an entire series about it. 'The Tireless Duke' or something equally dramatic." Crystal Light's laughter echoed through the hallway, and I found myself wishing again that we had more time. But war was coming. And Silver Vale needed its lady more than I needed traditional courtship. At least this time I was sending a noble to govern who actually understood what that responsibility meant. * * * Twilight Crystal Light's magical delivery materialized before me - two letters, one for Rose and one bearing Tim's familiar script. I tore into mine eagerly, then froze as I processed its contents. "Crystal Light accepted the title of Lady-Elect of Silver Vale?" I blinked, rereading the passage. "Already? When did this even happen?" Rose looked up from her own letter, her crimson coat catching the morning light streaming through Crystal Vale's windows. "It does seem rather... sudden. Though as a captain, she and Tim might have already..." She trailed off meaningfully. "Used his noble privileges?" I finished, my horn sparking slightly. "He would have told me. We agreed - no secrets about such things." I paced the study, my pregnant belly making the motion less graceful than usual. "Unless... they haven't yet? But then why choose her so quickly?" "Crystal Light has always been the most diplomatic of the guards," Rose offered thoughtfully. "And her noble background would help with managing Silver Vale's politics. Maybe Tim's choice was purely practical?" "Four wives," I muttered, still processing. "Me, you, Swift Wing, and now Crystal Light. Though at least she's sensible." "Focus on the other part," Rose suggested gently. "About him wanting you to come to Crystal Vale for safety." I snorted, gesturing at the room around us. "Bit late for that. I was trying to surprise him by already being here when he finally arrived." My ears drooped slightly. "So much for that plan." "Write back," Rose said, moving to nuzzle me comfortingly. "Let him know you're already safe. One less thing for him to worry about while he's setting up these new arrangements." "And dealing with Crystal Light," I added, unable to keep the slight edge from my voice. Rose's smile turned knowing. "Who he hasn't been intimate with yet, or you'd know about it. Maybe that's why he chose her - he trusts her judgment without needing traditional privileges to confirm it." I felt my cheeks warm. "I suppose that makes sense. Though Mother will be thrilled - another noble unicorn in the family. Even if Tim did completely bypass the usual courtship period." "Some things are more urgent than tradition," Rose said softly. "Like keeping you and the twins safe." She paused thoughtfully. "Though perhaps we should discuss sleeping arrangements before he arrives? With four wives to manage..." The pillow that hit her face was justified. Even if she did have a point about the logistics involved. "Write your letter," she laughed, dodging a second pillow. "Let him know you're safe. Everything else can wait until he gets here." "Fine," I muttered, reaching for fresh parchment. "But we are not discussing sleeping arrangements. I get enough of that from Mother." I dipped my quill, choosing my words carefully to balance reassurance with the excitement of sharing my own news. My beloved Tim, Your concern is touching but unnecessary - I'm already safe at Crystal Vale. I came here right after you left for Dawn Gate as soon as I could travel, planning to surprise you when you finally arrived. Rose Petal has been an excellent hostess and protector. But that's not all I've been doing while waiting for you. Remember how you had to turn away so many hopeful foals from Dawn Gate? We've fixed that. Crystal Vale now has its own Foal Guard - 120 strong, focused on trade protection and merchant security rather than pure combat. You should see them training, love. They're already mastering convoy escort formations and diplomatic protocols. And there's more. We're building a proper Foal Guard Academy in Ponyville. Think of it as a military high school, teaching the basics before foals specialize at either Dawn Gate or Crystal Vale. Once it's complete, we'll be able to take another 120 foals, maybe more. Three hundred and sixty foals, Tim. That's how many lives we can save now. How many futures we can change. Dawn Gate for combat, Crystal Vale for trade, and Ponyville for foundational training. A real system to protect and educate them properly. So yes, I'm safe. And I've been quite productive while waiting for my husband to finally make his way here. Though I suppose with Crystal Light becoming Lady-Elect of Silver Vale, you'll have even more responsibilities keeping you busy. Come soon. These aren't the only new children waiting to meet you. All my love, Twilight P.S. - Mother will be thrilled about adding another unicorn noble to the family. Though traditionally, one is supposed to inform one's first wife before selecting additional ones. Just saying. "There," I said, sealing the letter with perhaps more force than necessary. "That should ease his mind about my safety while giving him something else to think about." Rose smirked as she accepted the letter for delivery. "The postscript might distract him a bit." "Good," I replied primly. "He deserves it for not telling me about Crystal Light first. Even if she is a sensible choice." "At least he's predictable," Rose offered. "Always choosing mares who can properly manage territories rather than just... what was it Forest Shadow said? 'Throwing their virginity at him'?" The third pillow hit her squarely on her flank despite her attempts to dodge. "Just send the letter," I muttered. "Before I start calculating exactly how many beds we'll need in the family wing." Rose's giggles grew more pronounced. "Oh yes, I remember Tim's calculations. Five foals per wife and two per captain, wasn't it?" Her eyes sparkled with mischief. "Let's see... four wives and nine captains would mean thirty-eight foals. Though if we need three captains for the Ponyville Academy..." I groaned as she continued, clearly enjoying this too much. "Four wives and twelve captains would make it forty-four foals total. Better start planning those nursery expansions now," Rose teased. "I hate you," I muttered, though I couldn't quite hide my own smile. "Just send the letter before you start naming them all." "Speaking of names," Rose said innocently, "we should probably coordinate. Wouldn't want any of the wives or captains accidentally choosing the same ones..." The fourth pillow knocked the letter from her magical grip, but her laughter echoed down the hall as she retrieved it. Sometimes I wondered if she and Tim practiced their teasing techniques together. Though she did have a point about the nursery expansions. Not that I'd ever admit it. * * * Tim Twilight's letter materialized in a burst of purple magic just as Crystal Light finished packing the last of her personal items. The relief that flooded through me as I read about her already being safe at Crystal Vale made my knees weak. "She's already there," I said, letting out a breath I hadn't realized I'd been holding. "And she's expanded the Foal Guard. Crystal, listen to this - 120 foals at Crystal Vale focused on trade protection, plus plans for an academy in Ponyville that could train another 120." Crystal Light paused in her packing, her rainbow mane catching the light as she turned. "360 total once you count Dawn Gate? That's... impressive. Though perhaps Silver Vale should have its own branch as well?" "You're not even officially Lady yet and already planning expansions?" I couldn't help smiling. "Though you're right - Silver Vale connects both territories. Having trained foals who understand both military and trade protocols would be valuable." "And it would give those we had to turn away another chance," she added softly. "The applications keep coming… I never thought so many would choose military service over a real family." I kissed her again. "We are a real family with 240 foals now and 480 soon," I said thoughtfully. "If we add another 120 at Silver Vale. That's a lot of lives to protect." I met her eyes seriously. "Think you're ready for that kind of responsibility?" "Are you ready for that many children to consider you their father figure?" she countered with surprising warmth. "Because they will, you know. Just like the Dawn Gate foals do." I felt my expression soften. "They already are my children, even the ones we haven't met yet. Just like you and the other wives and captains are my family." I paused, choosing my words carefully. "Though speaking of family - Twilight seems a bit pointed about me not telling her about your promotion first." Crystal Light actually laughed. "I noticed you haven't invoked any traditional privileges with me yet. Is that why?" "Partially," I admitted. "Though mostly I trust your judgment without needing that kind of confirmation. You've always been the sensible one. But for the record, I haven’t used my privileges with any of the captains or my lady-elect. I’ve been as faithful to Twilight as if I didn’t have the option.” "High praise indeed," she said dryly. "Though perhaps we should focus on getting Silver Vale's Foal Guard established before discussing other traditional matters?" "Probably wise," I agreed, though I caught the slight darkening of her white coat that suggested she wasn't entirely opposed to such discussions eventually. "Let's get you moved in first. Then we can talk about expanding our family - both with foals in training and... other possibilities." Her rainbow mane seemed to shimmer with something like anticipation, but her voice remained practical. "Four branches of the Foal Guard first. Traditional privileges later." "Deal," I said, tucking Twilight's letter away safely. "Though we should probably warn the builders about all these nursery expansions everyone keeps planning..." * * * Silver Dawn The morning sun caught Crystal Light's white coat as she boarded the train, making her look almost ethereal. Her papers, bearing the official seals that would confirm her position as Lady-Elect of Silver Vale, disappeared into her saddlebag with practiced efficiency. I watched until the train pulled away, carrying our newest lady toward her destiny. My horn tingled with repressed magic as I turned to Tim. "She spent more time with you than Thunder Step or Forest Shadow ever did," I said, trying to keep my voice steady. "Crystal Light, I mean. I've been watching. And with Lady Sparkle being a unicorn..." I swallowed hard. "I suspect you have certain... preferences. That I might be needed sooner than we discussed, your assurances aside." Tim's eyes met mine, carrying that mix of authority and compassion I was starting to recognize. "And?" "I..." My horn flickered slightly. "I'm willing to try. Not because of duty or privilege, but... You've earned that much trust. From me." He studied me for a long moment before nodding. "Good. I need you, Silver Dawn. More than you know." I followed him back through Dawn Gate's corridors, the familiar stone walls somehow more comforting than confining now. In his office, he sat and wrote with focused intensity, the letter hidden from my view by his body. The scratching of his quill seemed unnaturally loud in the quiet room. When he finished, he sealed it with deliberate care. "Could you send this to Lady Velvet? Magical delivery would be more secure than the regular post." My horn glowed as I transported the letter, curiosity burning about its contents. "What now?" He stood and crossed to me, pressing a gentle kiss to my forehead - not demanding or claiming, but full of future possibilities. "Go find Morning Dawn," he said softly. "She's probably watching the Foal Guard train. Spend time with her. Some things are more important than duty or privilege." The understanding in his voice made my chest tight. Of course he knew - he always seemed to know what we needed most. Time with my daughter was more precious than any noble arrangement. Walking away from his office, I caught myself smiling. Not the forced smile of a mare accepting her duty, but something real. Something that spoke of growing trust and healing. Maybe that's what he'd been waiting for all along. * * * Velvet The letter materialized during my morning tea with Billy Talbert at Tim’s Earth Estate. My son-in-law's distinctive handwriting drew my immediate attention from the construction plans we'd been reviewing. Dear Velvet, Circumstances have changed rapidly. Celestia has granted me the title of Duke of Silver Vale, in addition to my positions at Dawn Gate and Crystal Vale. With Twilight's control of Ponyville as Countess, that makes four territories under our family's protection. More importantly, Crystal Light has accepted the role of Lady-Elect of Silver Vale, joining Swift Wing and Rose Petal in consideration for marriage alongside my existing marriage to Twilight. Four wives, four territories, and growing threats on our borders that make the embassy's temporary closure necessary to be extended. There is no telling when we will be able to return to Earth so it's time for you and Dad to return to Equestria. The Earth Estate will keep until diplomatic relations resume. And Velvet... I have a request that I suspect you'll enjoy far too much. Dad has been alone since his divorce. He needs someone - a proper mare who can handle both his earthly perspective and our noble complications. I trust your judgment in such matters, though perhaps with less elaborate schemes than you used with my guards? Your son-in-law, Tim "Well," I said, unable to keep the satisfied smile from my face. "It seems your son has finally embraced proper noble arrangements. Four wives, four territories…" Billy looked up from his coffee. "Four? I thought he was just married to Twilight." "Oh dear," I patted his hand gently. "You've missed quite a bit. Though speaking of arrangements..." I studied him thoughtfully. "How do you feel about mares who appreciate human males? I know several who would find your silver hair quite distinguished." The way he choked on his coffee was delightfully reminiscent of his son. "Now Velvet," he managed once he could breathe. "I'm not sure I'm ready for-" "Nonsense," I cut him off cheerfully. "If Tim can handle four wives and nine to twelve captains with traditional privileges, surely you can manage one mare. Though perhaps we should start with introductions before discussing privileges..." His expression of growing alarm was absolutely precious. Like father, like son - they never saw it coming until it was far too late. Billy set his coffee down carefully, his silver hair catching the morning light in a way that really would appeal to certain mares I knew. "Let me get this straight. My son now controls the entire eastern border of your country?" "From Ponyville to Dawn Gate," I confirmed cheerfully. "Four territories, four wives, twelve captains... he's quite efficiently securing our eastern defense network." "And now you want to... what? Find me a pony girlfriend?" His expression wavered between disbelief and something that looked suspiciously like curiosity. "Wife, dear. Not girlfriend." I poured more tea, watching his face carefully. "Tim's success with cross-species marriage has opened quite a few minds. Several noble houses have expressed interest in human connections." "Velvet..." His tone carried a warning note, but I caught how his eyes lingered on my horn when it glowed to add sugar to his coffee. Just as I'd noticed over the past weeks. "You've been watching unicorn magic rather intently," I observed innocently. "Particularly certain... demonstrations. Perhaps we should start there? I know several lovely unicorn nobles who would be delighted to show you more." The blush that crept up his neck was absolutely charming. "I was just... scientifically curious." "Of course you were," I agreed, my smile widening. "Just like how Tim was 'scientifically curious' about pegasus flight mechanics and earth pony strength. Now look at him - four wives, each bringing unique talents to their marriage. Though a second unicorn will make my daughter jealous…" "That's different," Billy protested weakly. "He's young, adapting to a new culture..." "And you're a distinguished human male with a fascinating Earth perspective," I cut in smoothly. "Do you know how rare that is here? The stories you could share, the insights you could offer..." I paused deliberately. "The magic you could experience firsthand..." His coffee cup rattled slightly as he set it down. "You're as bad as those romance novels Tim warned me about." "Worse," I corrected cheerfully. "I write them. Speaking of which, how do you feel about being featured in my next series? 'The Earth Father: A Tale of Second Chances' has such a nice ring to it... Though there is another consideration," I added, my tone turning more serious. "Tim's position is... complicated. Four territories, substantial military power, growing political influence. Some noble houses are bound to feel threatened." Billy's expression shifted from flustered to thoughtful. "You're saying he needs allies." "Exactly. A proper noble marriage for his father - especially to a unicorn from an established house - would help secure Twilight and Tim's position." I stirred my tea delicately. "Several ancient families have already expressed interest in connecting themselves to Earth's first noble house." "You're manipulating me," he accused, though I noticed he hadn't actually refused. "Obviously." I smiled serenely. "Just like I manipulated twelve royal guards into protecting your son. And look how well that turned out - three new wives, several devoted captains, and the entire eastern and northern border under proper protection." "Does Tim know you're planning to marry off his father?" "He suggested it," I said smugly, sliding his letter across the table. "Though I suspect he didn't realize quite how thoroughly I'd embrace the task." Billy read the letter, his expression cycling through several emotions before settling on resignation. "I'm as doomed as he was, aren't I?" "Completely," I agreed cheerfully. "Though I was thinking we'd start with a nice dinner party. Just a few select noble houses, some subtle demonstrations of unicorn magic..." I paused meaningfully. "Unless you'd prefer I arrange something more... traditional?" The way he choked on his coffee again was simply delightful. Like father, like son indeed. "I'm thinking House Starweaver," I mused, my horn glowing as I levitated a small notebook from my saddlebag. "Their eldest daughter, Aurora Weave, is a widow with excellent breeding and a fascination with Earth culture. Her magic specializes in creating intricate patterns of light and energy..." "Velvet..." Billy's warning tone held less conviction now. "Or perhaps House Moondancer? Their second daughter has been studying human literature. Quite thoroughly too - she has an entire collection of Earth novels." I flipped through my notes with obvious satisfaction. "And her coat is such a lovely shade of midnight blue..." "You already have a list?" He shouldn't have sounded surprised. He really should know better by now. "Several, actually. Categorized by magical specialty, noble rank, and potential political advantages." I smiled innocently. "I may have started compiling it when Tim first mentioned bringing you to Equestria." "Of course you did." He ran a hand through his silver hair - a gesture so like Tim's that my smile widened. "And I suppose you've already arranged meetings?" "Nothing so forward," I assured him sweetly. "Just a small gathering next week. A dozen or so eligible noble mares who happen to be interested in Earth customs..." My horn glowed as I levitated more construction plans. "Which is why the new east wing includes properly sized quarters for you and your future wife." "My future- Velvet!" "The unicorn mares I've selected all have excellent magical abilities," I continued as if he hadn't spoken. "Lady Aurora's light shows are particularly renowned. Though Lady Moonweave's telekinetic precision is quite... impressive. Perhaps a demonstration of both would help you decide?" Billy's expression suggested he was finally understanding how Tim had ended up with four wives and twelve captains. "I'm not ready to-" "Nonsense. You've been watching unicorn magic with increasing interest for weeks. And several of these mares have specifically asked about you..." I paused deliberately. "Though if you prefer earth pony stamina or pegasus flexibility, I do have other lists." The way he blushed to his ears was absolutely precious. "I've only been studying the magic academically!" "Of course you have," I agreed, my smile turning wicked. "Just like how Tim only studied pegasus aerial maneuvers and earth pony strength academically. Now he has such a diverse and educational family..." "Tim is young! I'm-" "Distinguished," I cut in smoothly. "Mature. Experienced. All qualities these noble mares find quite appealing in a potential husband. Especially given your unique Earth perspective and connection to such a powerful new noble house." His resignation was becoming more evident by the moment. "There's no way out of this, is there?" "None whatsoever," I confirmed cheerfully. "Now, about those demonstrations... Lady Aurora has offered to show you some particularly intricate magical patterns. In private, of course. For academic purposes." Billy sighed, squaring his shoulders in a way that reminded me so much of Tim facing his own arranged marriages. "If it will help my son... I'll meet these mares. He's taken on so much responsibility - four territories, four wives, all those foals to protect. The least I can do is help secure some political alliances." My expression softened. "Oh Billy, you're so like your son - always putting others first." I reached across to pat his hand gently. "But you might find that a mare has more to offer than you think. We're quite loyal and loving once we choose our stallions... or in your case, human." His eyebrows rose at my tone. "Plus," I added with deliberate casualness, "cross-species foals are entirely possible, as Twilight has proven. You could have a second chance at fatherhood." "Velvet..." "If I wasn't happily married," I said thoughtfully, "I'd show you myself just how magical such arrangements can be." The way his coffee cup clattered against the saucer made me smile. Sometimes the direct approach worked best. "Now then," I continued briskly, "shall we discuss which mares you'd like to meet first? Lady Aurora's magical light shows really are quite... stimulating." * * * Billy I double-checked my suitcases one final time, mentally cataloging what I'd chosen to bring into a world of magic and talking ponies. Good coffee beans - Tim had warned me their coffee was terrible. My favorite shaving kit because who knew if they even had proper razors. The tablet loaded with family photos and engineering books, even though Tim said their magic played hell with Earth electronics. A few tools I wasn't sure existed in their world yet. Forty years of construction work distilled into two bags. Everything else would stay at the Earth Estate until the embassy reopened. If it reopened. "Ready?" Velvet asked, her horn glowing with that soft purple light that still fascinated me. My bags lifted smoothly into the air - such casual power masked by gentle precision. Even after weeks of watching unicorns, the magic still seemed impossible. "Almost," I said, taking a last look around. "Hard to believe I'm really doing this. Moving to another world because my son married into the nobility and needs political allies." "And because certain noble mares find human males quite intriguing," Velvet added with that knowing smile that reminded me uncomfortably of how Tim had ended up with four wives. "Lady Aurora is particularly eager to demonstrate her magical talents..." The portal site hummed with energy - some massive government facility dedicated to connecting worlds. The actual portal looked like something from a sci-fi movie: a swirling vortex of pure magic that somehow seemed both solid and ethereal at once. Colors I didn't have names for danced around its edges. Velvet stepped through first, my bags floating alongside her as if gravity was merely a suggestion. One deep breath, then I followed. The sensation defied description - like being turned inside out while standing perfectly still, every atom of my body singing with foreign energy. Then reality snapped back into focus, and I found myself standing in Equestria. The sky was wrong. Not dramatically, but just... different. The sun seemed closer somehow, its light carrying an almost tangible warmth that spoke of divine power rather than mere fusion. Tim had tried explaining about Celestia raising the sun each morning, but seeing that light firsthand... Ponyville spread out before me, and it was nothing like the pictures or Tim's descriptions had prepared me for. The buildings weren't just quaint or rustic - they were organic, as if they'd grown from the earth itself rather than being built. Thatched roofs curved in ways that should have been impossible, held together by some mix of engineering and magic that made my fingers itch to understand their construction. Ponies filled the streets, going about their daily business as if humans stepping through magical portals was perfectly normal. Though from the excited whispers and pointing hooves, maybe it wasn't quite that normal yet. The variety was staggering - earth ponies with impossible strength moving massive loads, pegasi casually dancing through clouds, unicorns using magic for everything from carrying shopping bags to adjusting the weather itself. Colors were different here too. Not just the coats and manes, but everything seemed more vibrant, more alive. The cobblestones beneath my feet shimmered with tiny crystals that caught the light. Even the air felt different - charged with some subtle energy that made my skin tingle. "Welcome to Equestria," Velvet said softly. "Your new home." A pegasus filly zoomed overhead, leaving a trail of rainbow light that slowly faded. An earth pony stallion casually pushed a cart that had to weigh several tons. A unicorn mare adjusted her hat with magic while simultaneously organizing her entire market stall. "This is..." I struggled for words. "Tim's letters didn't do it justice." "Of course not," Velvet agreed, leading me toward what looked like a massive tree with windows. "Words can't capture magic. Though speaking of capturing things..." Her horn glowed as she produced a scroll. "Lady Aurora wondered if you might be interested in seeing some light sculptures this evening? Just a small demonstration of unicorn precision..." I barely heard her matchmaking schemes. My attention was caught by a group of young ponies practicing some kind of formation flying while others maintained magical shields below them. They moved with military precision despite their youth, working together in ways that spoke of serious training. Could that be the foal guard? "My son really runs all this now?" I asked, gesturing at the incredible scene before me. "Four territories worth?" "From Ponyville to Dawn Gate," Velvet confirmed. "Though he'll need help. Political allies. Noble connections..." She paused meaningfully. "Perhaps through marriage?" "You're impossible," I muttered, though I couldn't quite hide my smile. The enthusiasm of her matchmaking was almost endearing now. "I prefer 'determined,'" she corrected cheerfully. "Now, about Lady Aurora's demonstration... She's quite skilled with magical light patterns. Very... educational." A unicorn foal teleported past us, giggling as she rematerialized nearby. An earth pony casually bucked an apple tree, somehow hitting it with exactly the right force to make only the ripe apples fall. Two pegasi adjusted a small raincloud with the precision of artists working on a canvas. Maybe, I admitted to myself as Velvet continued outlining her plans, learning more about unicorn magic wouldn't be such a bad thing after all. * * * Velvet The Friendship Express gleamed in the morning sun as we boarded at Ponyville station. Billy's eyes widened at the sight - not just at the train's elegant design, but at how earth pony workers were coupling carriages by hoof with casual displays of impossible strength. "First class," I announced, leading him to our private compartment. "As befits the father of a Duke." "I'm still getting used to that," Billy admitted as he settled into his seat. His attention was immediately caught by the pegasi clearing our route ahead, actively pushing clouds away from the tracks. "They're really controlling the weather..." "Of course. Though I'm more interested in controlling your social calendar." I smiled as my horn glowed, producing my planning notebook. "Lady Aurora is quite eager to meet you. She's been studying Earth architecture - something about the interplay of physical engineering and magical reinforcement..." The train pulled away smoothly, offering stunning views of the countryside. Billy pressed closer to the window, watching unicorn farmers tending magical crops while pegasi adjusted the rainfall patterns above specific fields. "Tim described all this," he said softly, "but seeing it... the way everything works together..." "Integration of the three tribes," I explained, though I noticed how his eyes lingered particularly on the unicorns' magic. "Each bringing their own strengths to serve the whole." The landscape began to change as we approached the mountain, Canterlot's gleaming spires becoming visible through gaps in the clouds. Billy's sharp intake of breath was gratifying - the castle really was spectacular on first viewing, seemingly defying gravity as it clung to the mountainside. "How does it not fall?" he asked, the engineer in him clearly fascinated. "The structural support required for that cantilever..." "Magic reinforcing physical engineering," I said innocently. "Something Lady Aurora specializes in, actually. Her thesis on magical load-bearing enhancement was quite revolutionary..." Billy shot me a knowing look. "You're not going to stop, are you?" "Not a chance." I smiled serenely as the train began its climb up the mountain. "Lady Aurora is a widow of excellent breeding, with a genuine interest in Earth construction techniques. And you're a distinguished human engineer who clearly appreciates unicorn magic..." "Velvet..." "She's also quite lovely," I continued blithely. "Her coat is the color of moonlight, her mane flows like the dawn itself, and her magical talents with light and shadow are renowned throughout Canterlot." The train curved around the mountain, giving us a spectacular view of the valleys below. Billy watched a group of pegasi practicing aerial maneuvers while earth ponies adjusted the mountainside terracing beneath them. "It's all so impossible," he murmured. "Beautiful but impossible." "Just wait until you see Canterlot proper," I said, my smile widening. "The magical gardens where we're meeting Lady Aurora are particularly impressive. The way the light plays through the enchanted fountains..." "You already arranged the meeting, didn't you?" "Of course. Night Light is expecting us for afternoon tea. And if Lady Aurora happens to be there..." I paused meaningfully. "Well, what kind of matchmaker would I be if I didn't arrange a proper introduction?" The train began its final approach to Canterlot station, the city's full grandeur becoming apparent. Billy's attention was caught between the architectural impossibilities above and the intricate magical gardens below. Perfect timing. By the time we reached the gardens, he'd be properly impressed by unicorn magic. And Lady Aurora's demonstration would only enhance that impression. Canterlot station bustled with activity that made Ponyville seem positively rural by comparison. Unicorn nobles in elaborate regalia strode past while their earth pony servants managed luggage with casual displays of strength. Pegasi swooped between platforms, delivering urgent messages and adjusting the perpetual light cloud cover that kept the mountain city's climate perfect year-round. "Different from Ponyville, isn't it?" I asked as Billy took in the controlled chaos. His eyes lingered on a unicorn noble levitating an entire tea service while dictating letters to her floating quills. "The magic is more... deliberate here," he observed. Trust an engineer to notice such details. "Less practical, more elaborate." "Noble unicorns do love their displays," I agreed, leading him toward the castle gardens. "Though some combine showmanship with genuine skill. Lady Aurora's thesis on combining magical and physical engineering principles revolutionized several construction techniques." The gardens themselves were a testament to that combination. Fountains defied gravity, their waters flowing in intricate patterns that seemed impossible. Flowering vines grew in geometric shapes that spoke of careful magical guidance. Even the pathways shifted subtly, adjusting to each visitor's stride. Night Light waited for us by the eastern fountains, his smile warm as he greeted Billy. "Welcome to Canterlot! I trust Velvet hasn't completely overwhelmed you with noble protocols yet?" "She's trying," Billy admitted with a wry smile. "Though I'm more overwhelmed by..." he gestured at the impossible garden around us. "All of this." "The gardens are rather spectacular," a new voice agreed, its musical tones carrying subtle harmonics that spoke of careful magical training. Aurora Weave approached with perfect noble grace, her silver coat catching the enchanted light in ways that made her seem to glow from within. Her mane flowed in shades of dawn - soft pinks and golds that shifted like the sunrise itself. But it was her eyes that drew attention - deep violet that reminded me of twilight skies just before the stars emerged. Her horn glowed softly, and the air around us filled with dancing motes of light. Not just simple illumination, but patterns that told stories in their movement. One sequence showed the basic principles of load-bearing architecture, translated into pure light and shadow. "Lady Aurora," I said smoothly, noting how Billy's attention was caught between her magical display and her natural grace. "Allow me to present Billy Talbert, father of Lord Timothy, Duke of Silver Veil." Billy managed, clearly fascinated by the architectural diagrams floating in light around him, "These models - they're incredibly precise..." "An interest of mine," Aurora smiled, letting the light show expand to demonstrate more complex principles. "The interaction between physical structure and magical enhancement. Your Earth techniques are particularly fascinating - achieving such results without magical reinforcement..." I shared a knowing look with Night Light as they fell into detailed discussion of construction methods. Aurora's genuine enthusiasm for the topic was obvious, but so was the way she kept creating displays that highlighted both her technical knowledge and her natural beauty. "Perhaps we should have tea while you discuss the relative merits of cantilever support?" I suggested innocently. "The eastern pavilion has such lovely views of the mountain engineering..." Sometimes the best matchmaking was simply knowing which ponies would find each other naturally fascinating. * * * Billy I followed Lady Aurora's floating diagrams of light with growing fascination as we settled into the eastern pavilion. Forty years of construction work, and I'd never imagined anything like this - mathematical principles turned into pure illumination, shifting and flowing to demonstrate complex engineering concepts. "The real challenge," Aurora was saying, her violet eyes bright with enthusiasm, "is balancing magical reinforcement with physical support. Too much magic can actually weaken traditional load-bearing structures over time." "Because the magic takes over the structural role?" I asked, forgetting momentarily that I was supposed to be on some kind of diplomatic date. "The physical materials stop being stressed enough to maintain proper integrity?" Her smile widened. "Exactly! Most unicorns overlook that - they think more magic is always better. But you understand instinctively..." Her horn glowed, creating a miniature model of a bridge. "See how the magical support here would actually cause material fatigue in the support beams?" I leaned forward, studying the interplay of light and shadow that somehow conveyed material stress patterns perfectly. "Could you adjust the magical field to work with the natural load distribution instead of replacing it?" Velvet and Night Light exchanged looks that I pretended not to notice as Aurora's magical display shifted, showing exactly what I'd suggested. Her silver coat caught the light of her own magic, making her seem to glow from within as she demonstrated the modified support pattern. "That's... brilliant," she said softly. "Using magic to enhance rather than replace the physical engineering. Would you like to see how we applied similar principles to Canterlot's mountain anchoring?" "I'd love to," I heard myself say, then caught Velvet's knowing smirk. "I mean, if that would be appropriate..." "Quite appropriate," Aurora assured me, though there was a hint of something playful in her smile. "Though perhaps we should have tea first? The diagrams for the mountain supports are rather extensive..." Her horn glowed again, and the tea service arranged itself with delicate precision. I watched in fascination as she poured with pure magic, each movement graceful and controlled. Even this simple act demonstrated the casual mastery of her abilities. "I've been studying Earth construction techniques," she admitted as she levitated a cup to me. "The way you achieve such amazing results without magic... it's incredibly impressive. Though I imagine you find our methods equally fascinating?" "Impressive doesn't begin to cover it," I said honestly. "Everything here seems impossible, but it works. The way you combine different types of engineering..." "Then you must let me show you more," she said, her mane catching the light. "The ancient unicorns developed fascinating techniques for magical reinforcement that parallel your Earth methods surprisingly well..." I realized I was staring at the way her magic made the air itself seem to shimmer around her. Velvet's satisfied expression suggested this had been her plan all along. Somehow, I couldn't bring myself to mind. * * * Aurora I found myself creating increasingly elaborate light displays, not to show off my magical prowess as originally planned, but because Billy's eyes lit up with such genuine fascination at each engineering principle I demonstrated. His questions were thoughtful and precise, showing a deep understanding that went far beyond mere polite interest. "The stress patterns here," he said, pointing to a particular junction in my floating model of Canterlot's mountain supports, "they're distributed differently than I'd expect. Is that because of the magical field's influence?" "Exactly!" My horn glowed brighter with enthusiasm as I expanded the diagram. "Most unicorns just force the magic to hold everything up, but that creates weakness over time. The ancient builders understood it's about working with the mountain's natural structure..." I caught Velvet's knowing smile and realized I'd completely forgotten this was supposed to be an introductory meeting. But watching Billy trace the light patterns with such focus, his silver hair catching the afternoon sun, I found I didn't care about politics or nobility. "Would you like to see the actual support chambers?" I heard myself ask. "The magical resonance patterns are quite beautiful, and they demonstrate the principles much better than these models." "I'd love to," Billy replied warmly, then glanced at Velvet. "If that would be appropriate?" "Oh, quite appropriate," Velvet assured us with barely concealed delight. "Night Light and I have some matters to discuss anyway. You two should absolutely examine those support chambers... thoroughly." I felt my coat warm slightly at her implication, but Billy just smiled. "The benefits of having a professional matchmaker for a daughter-in-law's mother." "Indeed," I agreed, surprising myself with how little the matchmaking bothered me now. "Though I'm more interested in your thoughts on cantilever support spells than whatever schemes Velvet's plotting." His answering laugh made my heart skip in a way that had nothing to do with noble alliances or political connections. "Lead on then, my lady engineer. Show me how your magic makes the impossible possible." As we walked toward the mountain access, I found myself creating small patterns of light almost unconsciously - not the showy displays meant to impress a noble, but the genuine expression of joy I felt at finding someone who understood my passions. The fact that he was rather handsome for a human was just an added benefit. The support chambers were even more beautiful than I remembered, ancient spells creating patterns of light and force that held the mountain city secure. My horn glowed as I illuminated the space, highlighting key structural points for Billy's benefit. "The primary support matrix runs through here," I explained, my magic tracing the complex network. "Each node reinforces the natural rock formation while distributing the weight of-" "Wait." Billy's voice carried sudden tension. "That connection point - the magical resonance looks different. Unstable." I frowned, examining where he pointed. The spell matrix did seem slightly discolored, though I'd never have noticed if he hadn't mentioned it. "Good eye. The stress patterns are... off somehow." A deep groan echoed through the chamber. Billy's eyes widened. "The physical support is failing. The magic's been compensating, but-" The crack appeared before I could finish processing his words. Ancient stone shifted, the weakened spell matrix unable to hold as centuries of pressure found its breaking point. I froze, my horn glowing uselessly as tons of rock began to move. Then Billy slammed into me, knocking us both clear as the section we'd been examining collapsed. We rolled together, his body covering mine as debris rained down. My magic flared instinctively, creating a shield, but we were already safely beyond the collapse. When the dust settled, I found myself pressed against him, his arms still protectively around me. His silver hair was dusted with rock particles, his breathing heavy from the exertion. But his eyes... "Are you alright?" he asked softly, genuine concern overriding any awkwardness about our position. "You saved my life," I whispered. Being this close, I could see the flecks of green in his brown eyes. "How did you spot that weakness so quickly?" "Forty years of construction work," he said with a slight smile. "You learn to recognize when something's about to give way." He paused, seemingly realizing he was still holding me. "Though I suppose this isn't very proper noble behavior..." "I think saving my life earns you some impropriety," I heard myself say. Then, feeling bold, I added: "Though perhaps we should continue this discussion somewhere less likely to collapse?" His laugh was warm and rich. "Probably wise. Though I'd like to examine that support matrix more closely - there might be other weak points we should check." "Always the engineer," I teased, though I made no move to pull away from him. "Even in the middle of a rescue." "Says the mare who's still maintaining perfect magical illumination despite nearly being crushed." I realized he was right - my horn was still glowing steadily, lighting the chamber with perhaps more dramatic flair than strictly necessary. Though the way it made his silver hair shimmer was quite striking... "We should report this," I said reluctantly. "The other support chambers will need inspection." "Together?" he asked, finally helping me up. His touch lingered slightly longer than needed. "Together," I agreed. "After all, we seem to make a good team - your practical experience and my magical theory." "Is that what we're calling it?" His eyes sparkled with humor. "Not a 'traditional diplomatic arrangement' or whatever Velvet's planning?" I felt my coat warm. "I think we're past diplomatic arrangements, don't you? Though perhaps we should discuss it over dinner..." * * * Celestia I watched with interest as Aurora led Tim's father into my private dining room. The way she stayed close to him, her magic creating small patterns of light almost unconsciously, spoke volumes about their developing connection. Their report about the support chamber collapse had been precise and professional, but there was nothing professional about the way her coat brightened whenever he spoke. "Princess," Aurora said formally, "may I present Billy Talbert, father of Duke Timothy." "Welcome to Canterlot," I smiled, gesturing for them to be seated. "I understand you've already had quite an adventurous first day in our world." "Between magical trains, floating cities, and collapsing support chambers?" Billy's eyes crinkled with good humor. "You could say that." He paused, glancing at one of my personal guards. "Though I have to ask... is there a reason the guard's armor seems designed more for display than protection?" I caught the slight disapproval in his tone - so like his son's when Tim first encountered our "traditional" guard arrangements. "Ah, you've noticed our custom of traditional hospitality. As an honored guest, especially one of your new noble standing..." "Princess," Billy interrupted carefully, "I appreciate the offer, but I'd rather just enjoy Lady Aurora's company." His eyes met mine steadily. "No offense to your guards, but I prefer my relationships to be based on mutual interest, not duty or tradition." Aurora's coat brightened noticeably at his words, while my guard maintained careful neutrality despite the rejection. "I see where Tim gets it from," I said, unable to keep from smiling. "Honor must run in the family." "Not honor," Billy corrected, glancing at Aurora with genuine warmth. "Just respect. If someone's going to share my bed, I want it to be because they want to be there." "A refreshing perspective," I agreed, noting how Aurora's magic created a brief pattern of hearts before she caught herself. "Though I hope you'll forgive our cultural differences. Tim had similar reactions to many of our traditions." "Before or after you tried to marry him?" Billy asked dryly. I actually laughed. "He told you about that?" "Velvet did, actually. Right before explaining how you helped arrange his guard detail." His expression turned thoughtful. "Though given what's happening on the griffon border, I'm starting to understand why you wanted someone like Tim in charge of the eastern territories." "Someone with strong principles," I agreed. "Who would fight to protect those under his care, regardless of tradition or politics." I studied Billy carefully. "Someone who got those qualities from his father, perhaps?" Billy's hand found Aurora's hoof under the table. "I'm just a construction worker who raised his son to do what's right. Though apparently that's enough to earn me my own matchmaker." "Velvet is rather... enthusiastic," I admitted. "Though in this case, I believe she chose well." Aurora's coat brightened again as she created another small light display - this one showing the moment Billy had saved her in the support chamber. Yes, Velvet had chosen very well indeed. "Speaking of traditions," Billy said carefully, setting down his wine glass, "I should probably ask about proper protocols. If I wanted to court Lady Aurora..." He glanced at her with clear affection. "Who exactly do I need permission from? I'm not familiar with noble arrangements." Aurora's silver coat darkened with a blush, but she answered before I could. "Traditionally, my father could grant permission, but in this case..." She paused, gathering her thoughts. "We would also need approval from your son." Billy's eyebrows rose. "From Tim? Why?" "I'm only a Viscountess," Aurora explained, her magic creating small patterns that seemed to illustrate the noble hierarchy. "The same rank as Sara holds as Tim's daughter, and below Lady Twilight's position as Countess. And with Lord Tim holding both two Marquis titles and an even higher Duke title..." She glanced at me before continuing. "As a lower-ranked noble, I would need his permission to enter his family." "That seems..." Billy frowned slightly. "Complicated. Though I suppose Tim understands these protocols better than I do now." "He's adapted remarkably well," I agreed, hiding my smile behind my teacup. "Though I suspect he'd be more interested in your happiness than noble rank. Especially given how little he cares for such formalities himself." "Still," Aurora added softly, her horn glowing as she created a delicate light pattern between them, "proper protocols should be observed. Even if only to avoid gossip at court." Billy caught her hoof gently. "I suppose if you're really interested in pursuing this, you should write to Tim first. I may not understand all your noble protocols, but I know enough to realize his permission matters now." Aurora's ears perked forward with interest. "You'd want me to write to him?" "Seems proper," Billy said with a slight smile. "Besides, I've seen how seriously Tim takes his responsibilities. If we're going to do this, we should do it right." "He's correct," I added, watching Aurora's magic unconsciously shape patterns of light that looked suspiciously like interweaving hearts. "As a Viscountess courting the father of a Duke, certain protocols should be observed." "Then I shall write to him tonight," Aurora said, her silver coat seeming to glow with inner light. "Though I suspect Lady Velvet has already begun arranging matters in her own way." "Almost certainly," I laughed. "She's nothing if not thorough in her matchmaking schemes." The way Aurora's magic danced around her suggested Velvet's schemes were working precisely as intended - even if they would now proceed through proper noble channels. * * * Aurora I sat at my desk in Canterlot Castle, enjoying being a guest of Princess Celestia, quill hovering over parchment as I considered how to phrase this delicate request. My silver coat caught the moonlight streaming through my window, reminding me of Billy's hair. Dear Duke Timothy, I write regarding a matter of both personal and noble significance. During your father's first visit to Canterlot, we discovered a shared passion for engineering and architecture. His insights into physical load-bearing principles perfectly complement my magical reinforcement theories. As a Viscountess, I am below your noble rank and must therefore request your formal permission before initiating courtship with your father. While my title might seem a humble match for the father of such an influential noble, I assure you my interest stems from genuine connection rather than political ambition. Your father's quick action saved me from reliving my worst nightmare. Three years ago, my late husband died in a similar structural collapse while inspecting fortifications for Duke Sterling. I was barely twenty-three, and that loss drove me to master magical reinforcement techniques - determined that no other mare would lose her love to failing architecture. The Starlit Spires, though now under your authority as part of Silver Vale, still bears scars from that tragedy. More than his technical expertise, however, I find myself drawn to his integrity. When offered traditional hospitality by Princess Celestia herself, he declined, stating he preferred to focus on genuine connections rather than noble protocols. Such honor appears to run in your family. I realize this request may seem forward, but Equestrian customs often place the responsibility for initiating courtship on the mare. If you grant permission, I would like to pursue a formal relationship with your father, following all proper noble protocols. With respect and hope, Lady Aurora Weave Viscountess of the Starlit Spires I sealed the letter with my personal crest - an intricate pattern of interwoven light and shadow. Looking at the crystalline formations outside my window that I'd helped reinforce, I smiled remembering Billy's animated discussion of load distribution. Celestia's offer of "traditional hospitality" had revealed so much about his character. Like father, like son - both Talbert men seemed immune to noble seduction. My hooves fidgeted as other concerns crept in. At twenty-six, I was younger than Tim himself. Any foals from a union with Billy would be Tim's siblings - aunts or uncles younger than his own children. The thought of Tim having to explain to Sara why her aunt or uncle was years younger than her... Still, I could only hope Tim would see my genuine interest in his father, beyond any political considerations. After all, what mare wouldn't be intrigued by a distinguished human engineer who could spot magical structural weaknesses at a glance? Would Tim object to having siblings younger than his children? Or would he understand that in a society with more mares than stallions, such unusual family dynamics were not uncommon? The moonlight caught my silver coat again as I paced, creating scattered patterns across my study walls. At least Billy hadn't seemed concerned about our age difference when we discussed the possibility of foals. If anything, he'd seemed intrigued by the idea of being a father again... I shook my head, forcing such thoughts away. First, I needed Tim's permission. Everything else would have to wait. * * * Tim I read Aurora's letter twice, my initial amusement at the formal tone fading as I processed the tragedy behind her engineering passion. Swift Wing hovered nearby, waiting for my reaction. "Lady Aurora Weave," she offered without prompting. "Twenty-six years old, eldest daughter of House Starweaver. Widowed at twenty-three when her husband died in Sterling's failing fortifications. That loss drove her to revolutionize magical reinforcement techniques - she's quite brilliant, actually. Even Canterlot has adopted her methods." "Twenty-six?" I raised an eyebrow. "And already experienced such loss... though that explains her connection with Dad. Both know what it means to lose a spouse." I paused thoughtfully. "Though any children she has with him would be my siblings... and younger than Sara." "That's actually not uncommon in Equestria," Swift Wing said carefully. "With more mares than stallions..." "Still," I mused, reaching for fresh parchment, "let's make sure Dad knows exactly what he's getting into." Dear Lady Aurora, Your letter regarding courtship with my father both moves and intrigues me. While I appreciate the proper observation of protocols, what resonates most is how your shared understanding of loss has fostered genuine connection. That said, I do find myself in the unusual position of potentially having siblings younger than my own children. However, I am willing to grant preliminary permission for courtship under the following conditions: First, I require character witness statements from three nobles of good standing, not related to either of our families. I need to know the mare who might bear my future siblings is of sound character and genuine intent. Second, understand that regardless of any future union, I will never address you as "mother" as our similar age makes such formality impossible for me to maintain with a straight face. Given that your estate is within my lands, I will remain your lord. Finally, as you control the Starlit Spires, I would require your support in establishing a branch of the Foal Guard there. Your engineering expertise would be invaluable in training young ponies in both magical and physical construction principles. A foal guard version of the American Army Corps of Engineers. My fortresses will need expert hooves maintaining them to prevent future accidents. If these terms are acceptable, you have my blessing to pursue a relationship with my father. Your shared passion for engineering and understanding of life's fragility suggests this could be more than mere noble arrangement. Though I warn you - he's quite immune to noble seduction techniques. As you've already discovered, genuine connection means more to him than any traditional protocols. With amusement and cautious approval, Tim Duke of Silver Vale, etc. "Perhaps I should warn her about Dad's terrible engineering puns?" I mused as I sealed the letter. Swift Wing actually giggled. "I think she's already experienced those firsthoof and as an engineer herself, she probably doesn’t mind…" "Poor mare doesn't know what she's getting into," I grinned. "Though expanding the Foal Guard into Starlit Spires would be useful. Especially with her magical engineering knowledge." "Always thinking about saving more foals," Swift Wing said softly. "Even while arranging your father's love life." "Well, someone has to keep the family tradition of impossible achievements going," I replied, handing her the letter for delivery. "Besides, can you imagine the engineering projects those two will come up with together? We might need those Foal Guard engineers sooner than we think." * * * Aurora I had to read Tim's letter three times to fully process his conditions. My magical light patterns danced erratically around my guest room, reflecting my mix of emotions - relief at his preliminary approval, amusement at his blunt refusal to ever call me "mother," and excitement at the prospect of establishing a Foal Guard branch focused on engineering. "Three character witnesses," I mused aloud. "That shouldn't be difficult. Princess Celestia herself saw Billy reject traditional hospitality..." My horn glowed as I began making a list of potential references. The bit about never calling me "mother" made me laugh out loud. The very thought of trying to act maternal toward a stallion older than me... though technically he'd be my step-son. The light patterns around me shifted into geometric shapes as I considered the strange family dynamics we'd be creating. But it was his last condition that truly caught my interest. A Foal Guard engineering program... The possibilities made my horn spark with excitement. Those support chambers had needed maintenance for years - what if we had properly trained young ponies who understood both magical and physical engineering? I moved to my window, looking out over Canterlot. Young ponies could learn so much from me… "I see you got Tim's response." I turned to find Billy in my doorway, his silver hair catching my magical light patterns. He must have come to check on me after Swift Wing delivered the letter. "He's given preliminary permission," I said, unable to keep from smiling. "Though apparently I shouldn't expect him to call me 'Mom' anytime soon." Billy's laugh was rich and warm. "Can you blame him? You're what, two years younger than him?" "And he wants me to start a Foal Guard engineering program at home," I added, my magic unconsciously creating miniature models of potential training facilities. "Saving foals while playing matchmaker," Billy shook his head fondly. "That's my son." I caught his eye, suddenly serious. "You understand what this means? Any foals we have would be his siblings... younger than his own children." "Aurora," Billy said softly, stepping closer. "I'm old enough to be your father. If you're worried about age differences..." My magic reached for his hand, drawing him nearer. "I'm worried about getting those character references. About building a proper engineering program. About making this work." I paused meaningfully. "I'm not worried about age." His answering smile was worth any number of awkward family dynamics we might create. Though perhaps we should wait to tell Tim about the improved load-bearing spells we'd already started designing together... * * * Tim After finishing my response to Aurora's courtship request, I found General Iron Shield waiting in Dawn Gate's command center. The old warrior's battle-scarred coat seemed to gleam with renewed purpose. "The news has spread, sir," he reported, his voice carrying a hint of pride. "Word of the Mountain Talon raid, of the mares and fillies we rescued... it's lit a fire across Equestria." I looked up from my desk. "What kind of fire?" "The kind that brings warriors out of retirement," Iron Shield said with satisfaction. "Veterans from every major city are heading this way. The first 1,000 were just the beginning. The Veterans' Halls are practically emptying themselves." "How many?" "At last count? Over 800 more confirmed, with more coming daily." His scarred face broke into a fierce grin. "We'll be above traditional garrison levels within the week. 5,000 strong, maybe more." I sat back, processing this. "These aren't just any soldiers. These are experienced veterans..." "Warriors who remember the last griffon war," Iron Shield confirmed. "Who understand what we're really fighting for. The rescued fillies' stories have spread - about their mothers being forced to watch their first 'sessions,' about the colts being killed at birth..." His voice hardened. "No soldier who's ever had a daughter could hear those tales and stay retired." "And they're all coming here?" "To Dawn Gate, Crystal Vale, Silver Vale - wherever you need them. Though most want Dawn Gate." He paused meaningfully. "They say if a human lord is willing to burn a city to save our foals, they can damn well pick up their swords again." I thought of Silver Dawn and Morning Dawn, of all the other mothers and daughters we'd rescued. Of the ones still held in other cities. "Tell them to keep coming," I said quietly. "We're not done saving foals yet." Iron Shield saluted sharply. "Yes, sir. Though you should know - they're calling you something in the Veterans' Halls now." "Do I want to know?" "The Shield of the East," he said simply. "The lord who makes griffons remember why they used to fear Equestria's borders." "Good," I replied, thinking of those cells beneath the Mountain Talon city. "Let them remember. Let them know exactly what happens when they threaten our foals." The old general's eyes gleamed with approval. Dawn Gate would have its army - not just garrison troops, but battle-hardened veterans ready to remind the griffon clans why some lines should never be crossed. And if 5,000 experienced warriors weren't enough to make that point... well, we'd just have to see how many more retirement parties we could ruin. * * * Author's Note I write commissions. DM me with story ideas. //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 30 – Calculated Courtship //-------------------------------------------------------// Chapter 30 – Calculated Courtship Celestia The medical reports from Dawn Gate turned my stomach. Each page detailed horrors that Tim's healers had discovered - systematic abuse, calculated torture, breeding programs designed to break both mothers and daughters. The examination results spoke of injuries that would never fully heal, of fillies too young to understand what had been done to them. When Iron Wing entered my study, I was still processing Tim's descriptions of how they'd arranged the cells - mothers forced to watch their daughters' "first sessions," young fillies positioned to see what awaited them when they came of age. The clinical tone of his report couldn't hide his rage. "Your Highness," the griffon ambassador bowed low. "I bring word from the High Council regarding the Mountain Talon incident." I kept my voice carefully neutral. "Proceed." "The Empire has decided not to retaliate for Lord Timothy's attack," Iron Wing said smoothly. "The Mountain Talons acted without official sanction in their... tribute arrangements." "And the other mares and fillies?" I asked, sun-fire edging my words. "Those given as tribute to other clans? The foals born in captivity?" Iron Wing shifted uncomfortably. "Those are... considered legally acquired property. The nobles who provided them signed formal documents-" "Under duress," I cut in, my wings flaring slightly. "To protect their territories from attack." "Nevertheless," he continued carefully, "the Empire cannot simply return them. However..." he paused diplomatically, "they might be willing to discuss proper compensation. A financial arrangement-" "You want me to buy back my own subjects?" The temperature in the room rose noticeably. "The High Council feels this is a reasonable compromise," Iron Wing said quickly. "No retaliation for the Mountain Talon incident, and a chance to peacefully recover any... tributes... that Equestria wishes to reclaim." I studied the ambassador, noting how he carefully avoided looking at Tim's reports spread across my desk. "And if we refuse to pay ransom for ponies who were stolen from us?" "Then they remain legally acquired property of their current owners," Iron Wing replied, his voice carrying rehearsed precision. "The Empire cannot force private citizens to give up their... investments." Investments. Such a careful word for foals born into slavery. For mothers watching their daughters' innocence being stripped away. "I see." My voice could have frozen flame. "And what price does the Empire suggest for Equestrian citizens?" Iron Wing produced a scroll from his diplomatic pouch. "The Council has prepared a complete inventory. Each... individual... has been assessed based on age, abilities, and potential value." "Value," I repeated, the word tasting like ash. "Show me." His talons trembled slightly as he unrolled the document. "Adult mares are valued at 50,000 bits each. Fillies at breeding age at 100,000 bits and under breeding age at 150,000, given their... future potential. Those of noble blood or special magical talent are priced accordingly higher." I forced myself to look at the list. Hundreds of names, each with a price tag attached. Mothers and daughters reduced to numbers in a ledger. Some I recognized - guard families that had disappeared during Bronze Star's tenure. "And the foals born in captivity?" "200,000 bits each," Iron Wing said carefully. "The Empire considers them griffon-bred property, but is willing to release them as a... diplomatic courtesy." The sun flared visibly through the windows, making the ambassador flinch. "Tell me, Iron Wing," I said softly, dangerously. "How many bits would your own daughter be worth? How many pieces of gold would it take to watch her innocence stripped away?" "Your Highness," he protested weakly, "I'm merely conveying the Council's terms..." "Terms that assume we'll pay ransom for ponies who were stolen from us." I stood slowly, letting him feel the weight of centuries of controlled power. "Tell your Council this: Equestria does not negotiate with slavers." "But-" "Lord Timothy's raid on the Mountain Talons was merely a warning," I continued, my mane beginning to flicker with barely contained fury. "A demonstration of what one human lord will do to protect his people. Imagine what all of Equestria might do." Iron Wing's feathers flattened against his sides. "The Empire cannot simply-" "Cannot?" Sun-fire edged every word now. "Let me be perfectly clear, Ambassador. You will return every mare, every filly, every foal taken as tribute or born in captivity. You will do this within one month. Or I will give Lord Timothy command of the entire Equestrian army and my personal blessing to retrieve them by force." "The Council will never agree-" "Then the Council will learn exactly why the Mountain Talons were merely a prelude." I gestured to Tim's reports. "He's already proven what one fortress can do. How many cities would you like to lose?" Iron Wing stared at me, clearly trying to find diplomatic words to salvage this situation. Finally, he managed: "The cost of freeing so many slaves-" "Will be far less than the cost of keeping them," I finished coldly. "One month, Ambassador. After that, I stop restraining Lord Timothy's more... direct approaches to problem solving." "I... will convey your message to the Council," he said stiffly. "Good. Oh, and Iron Wing?" I caught his eyes as he turned to leave. "Do remind them that Dawn Gate's Foal Guard is quite enthusiastic about target practice. I understand flying griffons count for triple points." He seemed to dismiss the notion as an empty threat, Bronze Star’s legacy. The sun dipped lower outside my study windows as I settled at my desk, Iron Wing's retreating form still visible in the courtyard below. My quill felt heavy as I considered how to phrase this missive - one that would effectively give a human lord permission to wage total war in Equestria's name. Dear Lord Timothy, The griffon ambassador has just left my study. Their "offer" was as insulting as it was revealing - they sought to put a price on my little ponies' freedom. Adult mares at 50,000 bits, fillies under breeding age at 150,000, and foals born in captivity valued at 200,000 bits each. They spoke of "investments" and "future potential" while avoiding looking at your medical reports. I have given them one month to return every mare, every filly, and every foal taken as tribute or born in captivity. They will not comply. We both know this. The Empire has grown too comfortable with their "traditional arrangements" to give up such practices willingly. I have studied human history extensively, Tim. I know the depths of both compassion and ruthlessness your species is capable of when protecting the innocent. While I cannot officially order what must be done, know that you have my complete blessing - and my advance forgiveness - for whatever measures you deem necessary to bring our people home. The Empire believes they can hide behind diplomatic niceties while treating my subjects as property. Show them exactly why that was a fatal miscalculation. You needn't worry about political consequences or official censure. Dawn Gate's teeth were meant to be bared. Use them as you see fit. I trust you understand my meaning, and the gravity of what I am authorizing. May the sun guide your path forward, even through darkness. Princess Celestia P.S. - The ambassador seemed particularly unsettled when I mentioned your Foal Guard's enthusiasm for aerial target practice. Perhaps a practical demonstration is in order. I sealed the letter with my royal mark, the wax glowing briefly with sun-fire. The fate of hundreds now rested in the hands of a human lord who had already proven his willingness to burn cities to protect the innocent. May the griffons prove wiser than I feared. Though given their "offer," I somehow doubted they would. * * * Tim I stared out the war room's window, watching another group of veteran guards arrive at the fortress gates. Iron Shield's report still rang in my ears - Dawn Gate was now at full legion strength for the first time in decades, with more retired warriors volunteering daily. Celestia's letter materialized just as I was processing these numbers. The timing felt significant. "General," I said, not turning from the window, "gather the captains and Lady Swift Wing. War room, immediately." "Yes, my lord." His salute was crisp, professional. The old warrior had seen enough combat to recognize pivotal moments. The war room still felt new - we'd converted Bronze Star's "entertainment chambers" into something actually useful. Maps covered the walls, tactical displays occupied the tables, and a proper planning board dominated the center of the room. The previous lord's ornate furniture had been replaced with functional military gear. As my commanders filed in, I poured drinks. Not celebration - preparation. The kind of drinks warriors share before difficult decisions. "Swift Wing," I said quietly, passing her Celestia's letter. "Read it aloud. Everyone needs to hear this directly." The others settled into defensive positions around the room - Forest Shadow near the door, Thunder Step by the maps, Silver Dawn at the planning board. Years of guard training evident in how they automatically covered every angle, though I caught the slight tremor in Silver Dawn's stance. As a former slave herself, this would hit closest to home for her. Swift Wing's voice carried clear and steady as she read, though I caught her wings tightening against her sides at certain passages. When she reached the part about the Empire's "offer," something broke in Silver Dawn's composure. The planning board cracked under her hooves as she processed what her fellow captives were "valued" at. The silence when Swift Wing finished felt heavy with purpose. I turned from the window to face my commanders, noting how each had shifted from defensive positions to combat-ready stances. Silver Dawn's silver coat seemed to glow with barely contained fury - she knew exactly what awaited those still held captive. "Well," I said quietly, "it seems we have some planning to do." I stared at the amber liquid in my glass, the pieces suddenly clicking into horrible clarity. "I understand now," I said quietly, the words tasting like ash. "Bronze Star's ledgers always bothered me - the numbers didn't add up. 500,000 bits every quarter is impossible for a fortress with reduced trade revenue. But ten mares?" My laugh held no humor. "Or three fillies under ten and one mare - same value by their calculations. Bronze Star's diplomatic terms preserved in his own accounting." I threw my whiskey tumbler, the glass shattered against the wall, whiskey running down like amber tears. "He didn't care. It wasn't his family being torn apart. Just numbers in a ledger." Silver Dawn's silver coat had darkened to slate, her eyes haunted with understanding. She'd lived the reality behind those cold calculations. "Our Princess," I continued, my voice carrying lethal softness, "has very politely asked me to be a monster. To do what she can't while maintaining her diplomatic position." I met each of their eyes in turn. "The question is - who here is willing to follow orders that would have made King Sombra proud?" "My lord," Silver Dawn spoke first, her voice steady despite her trembling legs, "some of those mares were my sisters-in-arms. I watched their daughters..." She swallowed hard. "There is nothing monstrous about burning every griffon city until they're free." Forest Shadow nodded grimly. "The real monsters are the ones who put prices on foals." "Sir," Thunder Step added quietly, "King Sombra enslaved for power. You'll be destroying slavers to free the innocent. There's a difference." Swift Wing's wings flared with conviction. "We follow you, Tim. Whatever it takes." I looked at my commanders - my family - and saw the same steel in their eyes that I felt in my heart. Dawn Gate's teeth would bare properly this time. "Expeditionary force," I said, turning to Iron Shield. "At least one thousand warriors. Veterans who understand exactly what we're going to do." My voice hardened. "Not just burning buildings this time. Every griffon that resists dies. Every griffon that surrenders gets to carry the message to the next city." Iron Shield's battle-scarred face showed grim understanding. "The Silver Claw city is three days' march east, my lord. Smaller than the Mountain Talons, but they've been accepting 'tribute' for generations." "Then they've had generations to reconsider their choices." I met his eyes steadily. "No shame in refusal, General. What we're going to do... there won't be any glory in it. Just necessity." The old warrior straightened, his steel-grey coat catching the war room's lamplight. "You misunderstand, my lord. These veterans didn't come out of retirement for glory." His voice carried decades of contained fury. "They came because they remember the last griffon war. Because they've spent years watching nobles sell our people while we could do nothing." He saluted sharply. "Give me two hours. You'll have your thousand warriors - and more waiting to take their place." "Good." I turned back to the maps, already planning approach vectors. "We march at dusk. Let's show the griffons exactly what Dawn Gate's teeth feel like when they close properly." The war room felt colder somehow, though the fire still burned. Sometimes the most terrible decisions were also the most necessary. * * * Swift Wing The dawn wind carried the scent of coming violence as I hovered near the command ridge, watching Tim survey the Silver Claw city spread below us. Three days of marching had transformed our forces from individual warriors into something harder - a weapon forged from righteous fury and terrible purpose. Tim stood at the ridge's edge, his figure silhouetted against the pre-dawn sky. The past days had changed him too. Gone was the noble lord learning to manage territories. In his place stood a commander who understood exactly what kind of monster he needed to become. Our warriors - over a thousand strong - maintained disciplined silence behind us. Veterans who'd come out of retirement, who remembered the last griffon war, who understood what real combat meant. The weight of what we were about to do hung heavy in the mountain air. "Listen carefully," Tim's voice carried across our assembled forces with cold precision. "What we do today isn't about glory or honor. This is their final warning - the last chance for the griffon empire to understand exactly what they've brought upon themselves." His hand rested on his sword hilt - the same blade that had already tasted griffon blood at the Mountain Talon city. But this attack would be different. Calculated. Coldly precise in its horror. "We attack at dawn," he continued, his words carrying that deadly quiet I'd come to recognize. "Every male who resists dies. No exceptions, no quarter given. The females and chicks are to be captured unharmed - properly cared for, properly fed." His laugh held no humor. "We'll show them exactly how their 'traditional arrangements' feel from the other side." Understanding rippled through our ranks. This wasn't just revenge - it was calculated strategy. Using the griffons' own tactics against them. How many of our mares and fillies might be freed when griffon lords suddenly discovered their own families in chains? Silver Dawn's silver coat seemed to glow with grim satisfaction among the commanders. She understood better than most - she'd lived through what griffon "mercy" meant. Now they would learn what it meant to have their own families used as bargaining chips. "Remember," Tim's voice hardened further, "this isn't random violence. Every death today serves a purpose - showing the griffon empire exactly what awaits them if they continue treating our people as property. When they discover their wives and daughters are now 'tribute' to be ransomed back..." He let the implications hang heavy in the air. Forest Shadow shifted beside me, her forest-green coat nearly black in the pre-dawn light. "He's going to make them understand exactly what they've done to us," she whispered. "Using their own families as leverage..." "Sometimes," I replied quietly, "the only way to stop monsters is to speak their language." My wings tightened against my sides as I remembered the medical reports from the Mountain Talon city. "At least we'll treat their families better than they treated ours." Thunder Step's stormy coat bristled with barely contained energy. "The males won't surrender easily. Not with their families at stake." "Good," Tim said, having overheard our whispered conversation. "Let them fight. Let them die defending their homes. Let their deaths serve as object lessons for every other griffon city that thinks about resisting." His voice carried that lethal softness that made even hardened warriors shiver. "By sunset, the empire will understand exactly what refusing Celestia's terms means." I watched the first rays of true dawn paint the sky blood-red, remembering how different Tim had seemed just days ago. The noble lord who'd gained titles through combat had become something far more dangerous - a commander willing to match the griffons' brutality with calculated precision. The Silver Claw city still slept below us, unaware that Dawn Gate's teeth were about to close around its throat. They would learn, as the Mountain Talons had, that Tim's warfare carried none of the traditional Equestrian restraint. Sometimes the only way to end evil was to become a monster yourself, if only temporarily. And Tim had chosen to bear that burden for all of us. Dawn's light caught my future husband's face, highlighting the steel in his eyes. The griffons were about to discover exactly what it meant to push a human commander past the point of mercy. May the sun forgive what we were about to do. Though somehow, I doubted Tim would seek forgiveness for any of it. * * * Tim The pre-dawn silence shattered as our forces descended on the Silver Claw city. No warning shots this time, no parley flags or diplomatic chances. Just the thunder of armored hooves and the whisper of drawn steel. My blade caught the first rays of sunrise as we breached the outer defenses. The griffons had grown complacent in their mountain stronghold, just like the Mountain Talons. Their guard posts were understaffed, their reactions sluggish. They'd forgotten what it meant to face real warriors. "Strike teams, move in!" My voice carried over the growing chaos. "Remember your targets! Males who resist die, females and chicks captured unharmed!" Thunder Step's aerial squadrons engaged the first defensive wings, preventing any messengers from escaping. The sky filled with precise violence - our pegasi veterans had trained for exactly this kind of combat. No griffon would carry warning to other cities. Forest Shadow's teams breached buildings with practiced efficiency, their movements showing years of guard training. The sounds of combat merged with screams of terror as we drove deeper into the city. Somewhere in the chaos, I heard Silver Dawn's voice rising above the din, directing rescue teams to secure griffon families. "My lord!" Swift Wing called from above. "They're trying to organize a defense at the central plaza!" Perfect. Let them gather. Let them try to protect their families the way we couldn't protect ours. "Converge on the plaza," I ordered, my sword already wet with griffon blood. "Show them exactly what Dawn Gate's fury feels like!" The battle crystallized into something coldly precise. Every death served a purpose - showing the griffon empire exactly what awaited them if they continued refusing Celestia's terms. Each male who died defending his family became another message for the empire to consider. Time blurred as we pushed deeper into the city. My blade rose and fell, adding to the growing count of warriors who would never accept "tribute" again. The sounds of combat mixed with the crackle of spreading fires - Dawn Gate's veterans remembered how to properly sack a city. When we finally reached the central plaza, the remaining griffon warriors had formed a defensive circle around their families. Their commander stepped forward, wings spread in challenge. "We invoke the ancient laws of parley!" he called out, desperation edging his voice. "Our families-" "Parley?" My laugh held no warmth as I advanced. "Like you offered parley to the mares you took as tribute? Tell me, commander - what's the current market rate for a griffon's wife? His daughters?" Understanding dawned in his eyes as I continued: "Your empire put prices on our families. Now you'll learn exactly how that feels." I raised my voice to carry across the plaza. "Surrender your females and chicks unharmed, and you can die quickly. Resist, and we'll show you exactly how your 'traditional arrangements' feel from the other side." The battle that followed was brief but intense. Griffon warriors fought with desperate fury to protect their families - exactly as we would have, had we been given the chance. But fury alone couldn't match the cold precision of Dawn Gate's veterans. By noon, the Silver Claw city had fallen. Our rescue teams worked efficiently, gathering griffon females and chicks for transport back to Dawn Gate. They would be treated well - far better than our own people had been treated in griffon chains. I stood in the blood-soaked plaza, watching my warriors secure our "tributes." The griffon empire was about to discover exactly what it meant to have their own families used as bargaining chips. Swift Wing landed beside me in the blood-soaked plaza, her midnight-blue coat darkened with combat grime. Even in the heat of battle, she'd maintained precise count of our "acquisitions" - ever the professional guard captain beneath her role as my future wife. "Initial reports complete, my lord," she said, her voice carefully controlled. "We've secured 342 females and chicks. No serious injuries among the captives." She paused, something like grim satisfaction entering her tone. "And sir... among them is Ambassador Iron Wing's entire family. His wife, three daughters, and his sister's chicks." I turned from watching the burning city, letting that information settle. Iron Wing - the same ambassador who'd so carefully quoted prices for our enslaved mares and fillies. Who'd spoken of "investments" and "future potential" while avoiding looking at those medical reports on Celestia's desk. "His family specifically," I said quietly. "Are you certain?" "Positive, sir. His wife confirmed it herself." Swift Wing's wings tightened against her sides. "She seemed... quite concerned about ensuring we knew exactly who she was. Apparently, she expected diplomatic immunity." "Diplomatic immunity," I repeated, tasting the irony of those words. "Like the immunity our noble families were supposed to have before becoming 'tribute'?" I studied the ordered lines of griffon females being prepared for transport. "Make sure the Ambassador's family receives... special attention. Proper quarters, extra comfort. Everything their status deserves." Swift Wing caught my meaning immediately. "Of course, sir. We wouldn't want any accusations of mistreating such valuable... investments." "After all," I added with deliberate precision, "their future potential must be properly protected. I'm sure the Ambassador will understand - he seemed quite knowledgeable about assessing such values." The fires of the Silver Claw city painted the sky crimson as we prepared to march home. Somewhere in Canterlot, an ambassador would soon discover exactly how his careful diplomatic phrases felt when applied to his own family. * * * Celestia The evening sun cast long shadows across my study as Tim's letter materialized. His familiar handwriting carried an edge of steel I'd rarely seen before. Your Highness, The Silver Claw city has fallen. We encountered minimal resistance - their defenses had grown soft from years of accepting "tribute" rather than maintaining proper military readiness. We've secured 342 females and chicks as prisoners. All are being treated well - far better than our own people in griffon chains. Though I must say, my warriors are finding these new "traditional arrangements" quite... educational. Amazing how quickly one's perspective on "tribute" changes when you can enjoy the spoils of war. However, in the interests of peace, I'm prepared to be reasonable. A one-to-one exchange: their females and chicks for our mares and fillies. After all, that seems fair given how they've valued our people previously. Of particular note - Ambassador Iron Wing's entire family is among our guests. His wife and daughters send their regards. I'm personally ensuring they receive all the "traditional hospitality" their status deserves. Perhaps you could inform the Ambassador that I'm following his own careful guidelines about proper treatment of valuable investments. I await the Empire's response with great interest. Though I suspect their next diplomatic offering may carry a different tone. Your faithful servant, Lord Timothy Duke of Silver Veil, Marquis of Crystal Veil, Holder of Dawn Gate I set the letter down carefully, understanding exactly what Tim was implying - and more importantly, what Iron Wing would fear he was implying. Sometimes the most effective diplomatic messages carried edges of calculated brutality. Though I noticed Tim had been very precise in his wording. His warriors were "enjoying" these arrangements, but he specified the prisoners were being treated well. The threat was in the implication, not the action. Quite clever, really. Let Iron Wing imagine the worst while actually maintaining moral high ground. I reached for fresh parchment, composing a response even as I prepared to summon the Ambassador. Let him process this development while imagining his family experiencing the same "traditional arrangements" he'd so carefully quoted prices for. Sometimes the most effective lessons carried personal costs. I composed my reply to Tim before Iron Wing's arrival: Dear Lord Timothy, I understand completely the delicate nature of these new "traditional arrangements." How interesting that Ambassador Iron Wing's family should be among your guests. I trust they're experiencing all the diplomatic courtesies he so carefully outlined in our previous discussion about tribute values. Your offer of prisoner exchange seems eminently reasonable. One-to-one trades feel appropriately diplomatic, don't they? Though perhaps we should adopt their previous valuation system - three griffon females for each filly under ten, as that seemed to be the rate they considered fair. I look forward to the Empire's response to your generous offer. I suspect our next diplomatic discussion will carry a rather different tone. Keep Iron Wing's family comfortable. I'm sure he'll appreciate knowing they're receiving the same careful consideration he suggested for our own people. With complete understanding, Celestia I had barely sealed the letter when Iron Wing burst into my study, his feathers noticeably ruffled. Gone was the smooth diplomatic demeanor that had so carefully quoted prices for enslaved fillies. "Your Highness!" His voice cracked with barely controlled panic. "I've received reports- The Silver Claw city- My family-" "Ah, Ambassador," I smiled serenely, gesturing to the same chair where he'd sat discussing "tribute values" just days ago. "I was just about to summon you. Lord Timothy has sent the most interesting update about his new... traditional arrangements." Iron Wing's talons scraped against my study floor as he processed my deliberate echo of his own diplomatic phrases. "Your Highness, please- My wife, my daughters-" "Are being treated as valuable investments," I cut in smoothly. "I believe that was your phrasing? Though perhaps we should discuss their specific value. What was your suggested rate for fillies again? 150,000 bits for those under breeding age?" "These are my children!" His composure shattered completely. "Not some- some tribute to be bartered!" "Fascinating distinction," I noted, letting sun-fire edge my words. "Tell me, Ambassador - how many Equestrian mothers made that same plea while your empire assessed their daughters' 'future potential'?" Iron Wing's feathers flattened completely as understanding dawned. "Your Highness... surely there can be some arrangement-" "Oh, there can be," I agreed pleasantly. "Lord Timothy has made a very reasonable offer - one-to-one exchanges for the 342 captives from the Silver Claw city. Mature mares for mature females, adolescents for adolescents, and those under ten years matched by age." I paused deliberately. "Of course, if you have more of our people than we have of yours... well, I'm sure we could discuss a reduced valuation rate for any excess. To avoid the necessity of further military action, of course." "I'll send word to the Council immediately," he managed, his wings trembling slightly. "Surely we can expedite-" "Do remind them," I added with terrible lightness, "that Lord Timothy's patience regarding our enslaved citizens is rather limited. Though I'm sure having your own wife and daughters in his keeping has given you a new perspective on such matters." The ambassador stared at the letter on my desk - Tim's careful script visible even from where he stood. "Your Highness... my daughters... are they..." "Are being treated far better than our fillies were," I finished coldly. "Lord Timothy ensures they're properly fed, properly housed. Though I understand his warriors are finding these new traditional arrangements quite... educational." Iron Wing made a strangled sound as I deliberately echoed Tim's phrasing. "He wouldn't- They're innocent-" "Like our fillies were innocent?" Sun-fire blazed in my mane. "The same fillies you so carefully assessed values for? Tell me, Ambassador - how many bits would you pay to ensure your daughters' safety? Their dignity? Their innocence?" "Anything," he whispered, his diplomatic mask completely shattered. "Name your price." "Interesting choice of words," I noted. "Though I believe Lord Timothy's price is quite simple - the immediate return of every mare, every filly, every foal taken as tribute or born in captivity." I let my smile sharpen. "Unless you'd prefer to continue discussing traditional arrangements? I'm sure he can find room for more griffon families in Dawn Gate's keeping." "I'll send word immediately," Iron Wing managed, already backing toward the door. "The Council- They'll have to understand-" "Yes," I agreed pleasantly. "I believe they will. Amazing how perspective changes when one's own family is involved, isn't it?" I watched him flee my study, his wings trembling too badly for flight. Sometimes the most effective diplomatic solutions required personal investment in the outcome. And Iron Wing had just discovered exactly how "valuable" his own family's "future potential" might be. * * * Tim The private dining room felt oppressively quiet as I studied Iron Wing's wife across the table. Lady Steelfeather maintained admirable composure, though her feathers trembled slightly when servants moved too quickly near her. "I trust your quarters are comfortable?" I asked, my voice carrying deliberate lightness. "I insisted on the finest chambers for such... distinguished guests." "You're very... accommodating," she managed carefully. Her talons gripped her fork too tightly. "Though perhaps unnecessary. Surely diplomatic channels-" "Like the channels that put prices on Equestrian fillies?" I cut in smoothly, watching her flinch. "Tell me, Lady Steelfeather - how many bits would you value your own daughters at? I'm quite curious about proper diplomatic assessments." Her composure cracked slightly. "Please... they're innocent..." "Like our fillies were innocent?" I kept my tone conversational while letting ice creep into my eyes. "Though I must say, your eldest daughter shows remarkable poise. Such... future potential." The fork clattered from her grip. "Lord Timothy, I beg you-" "To what?" I smiled without warmth. "Consider traditional arrangements? I believe your husband outlined those quite carefully to Princess Celestia." I gestured to the writing desk nearby. "Though perhaps you'd like to send him a letter? Share your thoughts on these new... diplomatic protocols?" Understanding dawned in her eyes as she processed my careful implications. "You want me to write to him." "Merely suggesting that a wife's perspective might prove persuasive," I said pleasantly. "Silver Dawn would be happy to deliver any message you wish to compose. Though I'd write quickly - I find myself quite drawn to certain... diplomatic possibilities." She moved to the desk with barely controlled panic, quill shaking as she began to write. Sometimes the most effective messages required personal investment in their delivery. Even if that investment came wrapped in carefully worded implications rather than direct threats. * * * Lady Steelfeather My talons trembled as I put quill to parchment, acutely aware of Lord Timothy's presence behind me. Each carefully chosen word felt like a plea for salvation: My beloved Iron Wing, I write to you from Dawn Gate fortress, where our family is being treated with what Lord Timothy calls "appropriate diplomatic courtesy." The chambers are comfortable, the food excellent, but my love... the implications of our situation grow clearer with each passing day. Our daughters are currently safe, untouched, but I see how the guards look at them. How Lord Timothy speaks of "traditional arrangements" and "future potential." The same words you used, I'm told, when discussing Equestrian fillies with Princess Celestia. I've seen the rescued Equestrian mares here. Seen their haunted eyes, the way they flinch at sudden movements. Witnessed what our empire's "tribute system" truly meant. And now I understand - we are experiencing the same fear those mothers felt when their daughters were taken. My love, whatever it takes, whatever price must be paid - get us out of here. Lord Timothy grows more... interested in diplomatic possibilities each day. He speaks of proper courtship periods and traditional protocols while eyeing our eldest in ways that make my feathers crawl. I beg you - do whatever is necessary. Return their people. All of them. Before Lord Timothy decides to demonstrate exactly how our empire's "traditional arrangements" feel from the other side. Your desperate wife, Steelfeather P.S. - He's watching me write this. Says he wants to ensure the "diplomatic tone" is appropriate. Please hurry. I sealed the letter with shaking talons, understanding exactly why Lord Timothy had arranged this private dinner. Some messages carried more weight when wrapped in a wife's desperate plea. May the high council understand before it's too late. I watched Silver Dawn collect my letter, my heart pounding as Lord Timothy approached. Every carefully controlled step reminded me of a predator closing in on wounded prey. When he leaned in, pressing his lips against my beak in a mockery of courtly gesture, I forced myself not to recoil. "Now then," his voice carried that terrible softness I'd come to dread, "shall we finish our meal? I find diplomatic discussions go so much better over good food and... proper company." My wings pressed instinctively against my sides as I returned to my seat, remembering how he'd spoken of my eldest daughter's "potential" earlier. The food before me might as well have been ash - every bite tasted of fear and desperate hope that Iron Wing would understand my letter's urgency. The candlelight caught Lord Timothy's eyes as he resumed his place across from me, that calculated smile never leaving his face. In that moment, I finally understood what true diplomatic terror felt like. My daughters' chambers suddenly felt very far away, and the night stretched endlessly before me. Sometimes the most horrifying threats were the ones wrapped in perfect courtesy. Even if that courtesy carried darker promises beneath its polished surface. * * * Iron Wing I read Steelfeather's letter for the tenth time, my talons trembling as I processed the carefully worded implications. Each phrase carried layers of meaning that made my feathers flatten with barely controlled panic. The way she described Lord Timothy's "interest" in our eldest... Celestia had been unmoved by my pleas. The Council was still debating appropriate responses while my family remained in Dawn Gate's "keeping." Traditional diplomatic channels were failing me for the first time in my career. But perhaps... perhaps there was another approach. I settled at my desk, choosing my words with desperate care: Lady Sparkle, I write to you not as an ambassador, but as a father. Your husband holds my wife and daughters at Dawn Gate, and while they are being treated well, his implications about "traditional arrangements" grow more concerning each day. I understand now the horror of what our empire's tribute system truly meant. The fear every Equestrian parent felt when their daughters were taken. My wife's letter speaks of Lord Timothy's growing "interest" in diplomatic possibilities - the same terrible implications we once forced upon your people. You are with foal - you understand what it means to protect family. I beg you, speak with your husband. Help him see reason. The Council moves too slowly, bound by ancient protocols, while my daughters remain under his... consideration. I will do anything, pay any price, support any reform you desire. Just please, help me get my family back before Lord Timothy decides to demonstrate exactly how our "traditional arrangements" should feel. A desperate father, Iron Wing I sealed the letter with shaking talons, praying that maternal instinct might succeed where diplomatic channels had failed. Surely Lady Sparkle would understand a parent's desperate plea? Though remembering how many Equestrian parents had made similar pleas while we calculated their daughters' "value"... I walked to Celestia’s throne room, knowing that she had no reason to see me on short notice, but I had to try anyways. The guards let me in, and I was prepared to humble myself. "Please, Your Highness," I actually knelt before Celestia's throne, my diplomatic dignity forgotten. "I know I have no right to ask favors, but Lady Sparkle can get messages to Dawn Gate instantly through magical means. Every hour my daughters remain there..." "Feels like torture?" Celestia's voice carried deadly softness. "Not knowing what might happen to them? What 'traditional arrangements' might be considered?" I flinched at her deliberate echo of diplomatic phrases. "I deserve your scorn, Your Highness. But please - send my letter to Lady Sparkle. Let me try to reach Lord Timothy through his wife before... before..." "Before he decides to treat your daughters as your empire treated our fillies?" Sun-fire edged her words. "How interesting that you seek maternal sympathy now, Ambassador. Tell me, how many Equestrian mothers begged for their daughters while you calculated proper tribute values?" "I was wrong," I whispered, pressing my forehead to the cool stone floor. "Everything we did was wrong. Please, Your Highness. I'm not asking as an ambassador anymore. Just a father trying to save his children." The silence stretched unbearably before Celestia finally spoke: "Very well. I will send your letter." Her horn began to glow. "Though perhaps while waiting for Lady Sparkle's response, you might consider how many other fathers are still waiting to hear about their daughters in griffon chains." I watched my letter disappear in a flash of royal magic, understanding finally dawning. Sometimes the most effective lessons came through experiencing exactly what you'd inflicted on others. Even if that lesson threatened to break you completely. * * * Twilight I stared at Iron Wing's letter, my horn sparking slightly with unstable pregnancy magic as I processed his desperate plea. The parchment trembled in my magical grip as I turned to Rose. "He's asking me to intervene," I said quietly, my voice shaking. "To convince Tim to show mercy before he..." I swallowed hard. "Before he demonstrates how 'traditional arrangements' feel from the other side." Rose's crimson coat darkened thoughtfully as she read over my shoulder. "Interesting that he appeals to you as a mother. How many Equestrian mothers begged while the griffons took their daughters?" "That's what scares me," I whispered, touching my swollen belly where our twins grew. "Tim's using their own tactics against them. Making them feel the same fear, the same helplessness..." Fresh tears threatened. "The stallion I married would never actually harm innocent females and chicks. But he's making them believe he might, and I'm not sure which is worse." "He's showing them exactly what they've done to us," Rose said softly. "Making them understand the horror of their 'tribute system' by putting their own families at risk." She paused thoughtfully. "Though notice - even in his wife's panicked letter, she admits they're being treated well. Tim's using implication and fear rather than actual cruelty." "But the psychological torture of believing your daughters might be..." I couldn't finish the thought. "Rose, is this who we married? Someone capable of this kind of calculated brutality?" "We married someone willing to do whatever necessary to protect the innocent," Rose corrected gently. "Remember how he dealt with Bronze Star? With Sterling's captain? This isn't new - Tim's always been capable of terrible things when the cause was just enough." I reread Iron Wing's desperate plea, understanding dawning. "He's not going to stop, is he? Not until every captured mare and filly is free." "No," Rose agreed. "And he shouldn't. The griffons need to understand exactly what they've done. Need to feel the same fear they inflicted on others." She touched my belly gently. "Though I notice he's being very careful about what he actually does versus what he implies might happen." "That's what makes it brilliant," I whispered, the realization hitting hard. "He's letting their own guilty consciences do the work. They know what they did to our people, so they imagine the worst about what he might do to theirs..." "While actually treating the prisoners with perfect diplomatic courtesy," Rose finished. "Quite clever, really. Let them torture themselves with possibilities while maintaining moral high ground." I stared at Iron Wing's letter, feeling the weight of his desperate plea. "Should I respond? Try to moderate Tim's approach?" "Would you want anyone moderating him if it was our daughters in griffon chains?" Rose asked quietly. "Sometimes the most effective justice comes through making monsters face their own reflections." I pressed both hooves to my belly, feeling our twins shift. "Then we let him continue? Let him be the monster they need him to be?" "We let him be exactly what this situation requires," Rose corrected. "A commander willing to match their brutality with calculated precision, while actually maintaining higher moral standards than they ever did." I couldn’t reconcile my feelings and so I wrote to Celestia, praying for answers. I composed my letter to Celestia carefully, my magic still unstable with pregnancy: Dear Princess Celestia, I've received Ambassador Iron Wing's desperate plea regarding his family at Dawn Gate. His description of Tim's "diplomatic discussions" and implied threats concerns me deeply. This calculated psychological warfare seems unlike the husband I know. Did you authorize this approach? These implied threats against innocent females and chicks to force compliance? Tim's letters have been sparse with details, but what I'm hearing suggests a level of calculated cruelty I never thought him capable of. Your faithful student, Twilight Sparkle Celestia's response materialized almost immediately: My Dearest Twilight, Your husband is doing exactly what I asked of him - becoming the monster the griffon empire needs to fear. When Iron Wing sat in my study quoting prices for enslaved fillies, I realized diplomatic solutions alone would not suffice. Some lessons require personal investment to truly understand. Tim's methods may seem cruel but examine them carefully. Every prisoner is treated well, fed properly, housed safely. The only true cruelty is in the implications - letting the griffons' own guilty consciences torture them with possibilities. They know what they did to our people, so they imagine the worst of what might happen to theirs. I specifically asked Tim to handle this situation in ways I cannot. To be the diplomatic monster who makes the empire reconsider its choices through fear rather than reason. That he manages this while actually maintaining higher moral standards than they ever did speaks volumes about his character. The griffons put prices on innocence, Twilight. They calculated the "value" of fillies based on breeding potential. Now they learn how those calculations feel when applied to their own daughters. Sometimes justice requires becoming what our enemies fear most. Your mentor, Celestia P.S. - Your husband's psychological warfare is proving remarkably effective. The High Council has already begun drafting new laws about "tribute arrangements." Amazing how quickly reform happens when personal stakes are involved. I set down the letter, feeling the weight of understanding settle heavily. Tim wasn't just acting on his own moral judgment - he was carrying out Celestia's carefully calculated plan for reform through fear. Rose read Celestia's letter over my shoulder, her crimson coat catching the afternoon light. "As I thought," she said quietly. "He's not truly evil, but he's capable of embracing darkness when the cause demands it." I raised an eyebrow at her calm acceptance. "That doesn't bother you? Knowing your future husband can be so... calculatedly cruel?" Rose actually laughed, though the sound held more understanding than humor. "Twilight, I'm a soldier. Gallows humor and necessary brutality are my bread and butter." Her expression softened. "Besides, look at how he's actually handling it - perfect diplomatic courtesy while letting their own guilt do the real work. That's the mark of a commander who understands the difference between necessary force and needless cruelty." She rested one hoof gently on my swollen belly. "Our foals with Tim will be wonderful - protected by a father who knows exactly when to be kind and when to be terrible. Who better to teach them the balance between mercy and necessary action?" "You're impossible," I muttered, though I couldn't help smiling. "All of you military types with your pragmatic views on calculated violence..." "Says the mare who married a combat medic," Rose teased. "You had to know this side of him existed. He just usually keeps it carefully leashed until something truly deserves his darker attention." Sometimes the most reassuring perspectives came from those who understood necessary violence. Even if that understanding came wrapped in soldier's pragmatism rather than scholar's ideals. * * * Lady Steelfeather The morning sunlight streaming through Dawn Gate's windows felt like a mockery as I watched Lord Timothy approach my eldest daughter. Sky Wing's silver feathers caught the light in ways that made my heart clench - she was too beautiful, too perfectly poised in her diplomatic training. Everything I'd taught her about courtly grace now felt like a vulnerability. "Lady Sky Wing," Lord Timothy's voice carried that terrible smooth courtesy I'd come to dread. "I couldn't help but notice you watching the gardens from your chamber window." His smile never reached his eyes. "They're quite lovely this time of year. The roses are in full bloom - blood red, like traditional diplomatic seals." My daughter's composure wavered only slightly, years of ambassadorial training holding firm. At 22, she understood political maneuvering all too well. Perhaps too well, given our current situation. "The gardens do look beautiful, my lord." "Then you must allow me to give you a personal tour," he said, each word carrying carefully measured weight. "I find diplomatic discussions flow so much more naturally in pleasant settings. Away from the... constraints of formal chambers." Sky Wing's eyes met mine briefly, carrying that silent communication that only mothers and daughters truly understand. We both knew this wasn't really a request. "I... would be honored, Lord Timothy." "Excellent." He offered his arm with perfect noble courtesy - the same courtly gestures I'd once taught my daughters to expect from diplomatic gatherings. Now those same gestures felt like shackles. "Shall we?" "Your daughter is a credit to your diplomatic training," he added, the words aimed at me with surgical precision. "Such poise, such... potential. Almost a shame to waste such talents on mere garden tours when there are so many... traditional arrangements to consider." I fought to maintain my composure as Sky Wing accepted his arm. The way her feathers trembled slightly beneath her diplomatic mask made my heart ache. She was playing her role perfectly - the graceful noble daughter accepting courtly attention. Just as I'd trained her. Just as I'd prepared her for a life of political maneuvering. I never imagined those lessons would be used like this. "Perhaps later," he added with terrible casualness as they turned to leave, "you'll join us for dinner, Lady Steelfeather. We can discuss developing diplomatic possibilities. After all, proper courtship should involve family guidance, shouldn't it?" The word "courtship" landed like a physical blow. I watched them depart, Tim's perfect noble manners a dark mirror of everything I'd taught my daughters about diplomatic protocol. Each graceful step took Sky Wing further from my protection, deeper into this game of calculated implications and carefully measured threats. "The gardens truly are lovely," he called back, his voice carrying that edge of steel beneath silk. "Such interesting things grow in proper cultivation. Rather like watching traditional arrangements blossom into more... permanent diplomatic relations." I stood frozen until they disappeared from view, understanding exactly what messages lay beneath his courtly phrases. Everything I'd trained my daughters for - all the diplomatic polish, all the noble grace - had become weapons in his careful hands. My talons trembled as I rushed to the writing desk, each hurried scratch of quill against parchment carrying desperate urgency: My beloved Iron Wing, He's taken Sky Wing to the gardens. Our eldest, our perfect diplomatic daughter - he speaks of "courtship" and "traditional arrangements" while using every lesson I ever taught her about noble protocol against us. You don't understand - he's brilliant in his cruelty. Everything is perfectly proper, perfectly courtly. Not a single action that could be called inappropriate. But the implications... the careful way he twists diplomatic phrases into knives... He's going to court her properly. That's the true horror of it. Every step exactly as nobility demands, every gesture precisely correct. Using our own traditions, our own protocols, to force this "arrangement." And I taught her too well - she knows exactly how to play her role in this diplomatic dance. Do something. Anything. The Council must understand - this isn't just about prisoners anymore. He's going to forge a permanent alliance through "proper channels." Our daughter, married to Lord Timothy in a perfectly legitimate noble union. Think what that would mean for the Empire's position. I can't watch this. Can't bear seeing everything I trained her for become chains binding her to Dawn Gate forever. She's so beautiful, so perfectly diplomatic... exactly what a noble lord should want in a political marriage. Help us. Please. Before his "courtship" progresses any further. Your desperate wife, Steelfeather I sealed the letter with shaking talons, looking desperately for Silver Dawn. The former slave's eyes held something like satisfaction as she took the message for delivery. Sometimes the most effective tortures were the ones that followed every rule perfectly. Even if those rules were being used to forge chains from courtly protocol. * * * Iron Wing I burst into Celestia's study, all pretense of diplomatic protocol abandoned. My wife's letter trembled in my talons as I practically collapsed before her throne. "Your Highness!" My voice cracked with desperation. "Please, you must intervene! Lord Timothy is courting my daughter now - speaking of traditional arrangements and proper noble marriage!" Celestia set down her teacup with deliberate care. "Intervene in what, exactly? A perfectly legitimate diplomatic courtship?" Her serene smile never wavered. "Tell me, Ambassador, what protocols has he violated?" "None!" I admitted, my feathers flattening in distress. "That's what makes it so terrible. Every gesture exactly as nobility demands, every step perfectly correct. He's using our own diplomatic traditions against us!" "How fascinating." Celestia's voice carried that terrible lightness. "A noble lord following proper protocol while pursuing a diplomatic marriage. One that would forge permanent bonds between our nations." Her mane flickered with barely suppressed satisfaction. "Really, Ambassador, you should be honored. Lord Timothy holds multiple territories now. Any noble family would welcome such an alliance." "This isn't about alliances!" My composure shattered completely. "He's twisting everything - making courtly protocol into chains! My wife says he takes Sky Wing walking in the gardens, speaks of proper courtship phases..." "Yes," Celestia agreed pleasantly. "Rather like how your empire used 'traditional arrangements' to justify taking our people as tribute?" She examined her tea with careful precision. "Though I must say, your daughter sounds perfectly suited for such a match. Such excellent diplomatic training." "You're enjoying this," I whispered, horror dawning. "Watching him use everything we built our system on..." "Immensely," she admitted, her smile sharpening. "Besides, Duke Timothy can have as many wives as he pleases. It's quite common in Equestria for powerful lords to forge multiple diplomatic marriages. Your daughter would be joining quite the distinguished household." "Multiple wives?" My voice caught. "Your Highness, please - there must be some arrangement..." "Oh? Like the arrangements you suggested for our enslaved fillies?" Sun-fire edged her words. "Though I suppose you could always offer alternative tribute. That's traditionally acceptable, isn't it? Perhaps some other noble's daughter instead of your own?" "I..." Words failed me completely as the full weight of her implications sank in. "Though personally," Celestia continued with terrible pleasantness, "I think Sky Wing would make a lovely addition to Dawn Gate's nobility. Such poise, such... future potential. Those were your words for our fillies, weren't they?" "Your Highness," I managed weakly, "I beg you..." "Like how many Equestrian parents begged?" She set down her teacup with a sharp click. "How many mothers pleaded while your empire calculated their daughters' value? At least Lord Timothy is offering proper marriage rather than chains." Her smile turned razor-sharp. "You should be grateful he's being so... traditional about it." "He'll bind her to Dawn Gate forever," I whispered. "Use her to forge permanent ties..." "Yes," Celestia agreed serenely. "Rather elegant diplomacy, don't you think? Using your own protocols to ensure lasting peace through proper noble channels. Almost poetic, really." She poured fresh tea with deliberate grace. "Though I'm sure the Council will have fascinating reactions to such a prestigious marriage proposal. After all, refusing such an honor could be seen as... diplomatically unwise." I fled her study, my wife's letter still clutched in trembling talons. Behind me, I heard Celestia's voice carry one final, terrible observation: "Do give Sky Wing my congratulations on her courtship. I'm sure she'll make a lovely bride once all the proper diplomatic phases are observed. Traditional arrangements can be so... rewarding when handled correctly." I ran back to my chambers, barely able to breathe. My talons trembled so badly I could barely hold the quill, but I forced myself to write: Lady Sparkle, I write to you again in desperate urgency. Your husband has begun courting my eldest daughter, Sky Wing. Everything is perfectly proper, exactly as nobility demands - and that's what terrifies me most. He's using our own diplomatic protocols to forge chains that can never be broken. My wife writes of garden walks and courtly gestures, of how he speaks of traditional arrangements while twisting every lesson of noble etiquette into weapons. Princess Celestia speaks of "multiple wives" and "distinguished households" while watching our family's desperation with terrible satisfaction. You are a mother. You understand what it means to protect your children. I beg you - speak with your husband. This courtship would bind my daughter to Dawn Gate forever, force permanent ties between our nations through means we cannot diplomatically refuse without risking further retaliation. The Council moves too slowly, bound by the very protocols Lord Timothy now uses against us. Every day he courts my daughter is another day closer to a marriage we cannot prevent without violating our own noble traditions. I know I have no right to ask this of you. Know that my empire's actions were unforgivable. But please - help me protect my daughter from becoming a permanent "diplomatic arrangement." A father's desperate plea, Iron Wing P.S. - Your husband follows every rule perfectly. Uses every proper gesture exactly as nobility demands. That's what makes his courtship so terrifying - we cannot refuse without breaking the very protocols we built our empire upon. I sealed the letter with shaking talons, praying that maternal instinct might succeed where diplomatic channels had failed. I returned to Celestia, knowing I would have to humble myself. I knelt before Celestia's throne for the second time that day, my latest letter held in trembling talons. "Please, Your Highness. Send my letter to Lady Sparkle. She's a mother - she might understand..." "Understand what, exactly?" Celestia's voice carried that terrible lightness again. "How it feels to watch your daughter drawn into 'traditional arrangements' beyond your control?" She paused deliberately. "Though at least Lord Timothy offers proper marriage rather than chains." "Your Highness," I pressed my forehead to the cool stone floor, every shred of diplomatic dignity abandoned. "I know we deserve this. Know our empire's actions were unforgivable. But please... help me reach Lady Sparkle before this courtship progresses further." "How interesting," she mused, her horn beginning to glow. "That you seek mercy through the very channels you once denied other parents." The letter floated from my grip. "Though I must say, Sky Wing and Lord Timothy would make quite the diplomatic match. Such a... valuable union." I flinched as she used the same word - "valuable" - that I'd used when discussing tribute prices in this very study. Sometimes the most effective torture came through perfectly measured words. Even if those words were delivered by an alicorn who clearly enjoyed watching you suffer. * * * Twilight I set Iron Wing's latest plea aside with a deep sigh, rubbing my temples as a pregnancy-induced headache threatened. Rose looked up from her reports, concern evident in her expression. "Another desperate letter?" she asked, moving to pour me fresh tea. "He's panicking about Tim courting Sky Wing." I touched my swollen belly as the twins shifted restlessly. "Going on about diplomatic protocols and permanent alliances through marriage." "It's not an unreasonable diplomatic solution," Rose observed carefully. "Political marriages have ended wars for centuries. And Tim already has multiple wives considering..." "That's not helping," I muttered, though I couldn't quite keep the fondness from my voice. "It's just... why does it have to be my husband arranging these diplomatic marriages? Wasn't agreeing to share him with you and Swift Wing complicated enough?" "Would you prefer another lord handling these negotiations?" Rose asked with deliberate innocence. "Perhaps one less concerned with treating prisoners properly while maintaining perfect diplomatic courtesy?" "No," I admitted grudgingly. "Tim's probably the only noble who could arrange this without actually crossing moral lines. He's just letting them torture themselves with possibilities while following every protocol perfectly." I sighed deeply. "It's actually rather brilliant, in a terrifying sort of way." "And that's why it has to be him," Rose said softly. "He understands how to use diplomatic pressure without becoming what we're fighting against." She paused thoughtfully. "Though I notice Iron Wing doesn't mention how many of our nobles were forced into similar 'arrangements' to protect their territories from griffon raids." I stared at the letter again, understanding dawning. "They're experiencing exactly what they inflicted on others. Every perfectly proper gesture, every diplomatic protocol..." "Being used to forge chains they can't refuse without violating their own traditions," Rose finished. "Rather elegant revenge, don't you think?" "You're enjoying this too much," I accused, though I couldn't quite hide my own grim satisfaction. "Perhaps," Rose agreed with a small smile. "Though you have to admit - Tim does make political marriage negotiations uniquely... educational. What are you going to do about it though?” "Nothing," I decided finally, reaching for fresh parchment. "No - better than nothing. I think I'll write back endorsing the courtship." Rose's eyebrows rose sharply. "Oh? That's... deliciously cruel." "Tim knows exactly what he's doing," I said, my quill moving with deliberate care. "This is about more than just one potential diplomatic marriage - it's about making them understand exactly what their empire's actions truly cost. Besides," I managed a small smile, "I trust my husband. If he's pursuing this course, there's purpose behind it." "A purpose wrapped in perfectly proper courtship protocols," Rose agreed with that soldier's dark humor. "Though I have to wonder... what exactly would griffon-human offspring look like?" "Foals, chicks, hatchlings..." I mused, warmth creeping into my voice. "Whatever they end up being, they'll be family. Just like how Tim's building his Foal Guard into something bigger than blood." I touched my belly thoughtfully. "These twins will have quite the interesting family tree." I focused on composing my response: Dear Ambassador Iron Wing, I've received your letter regarding Lord Timothy's courtship of your daughter. I must say, I'm quite pleased to hear of this diplomatic development. Sky Wing's noble breeding and perfect diplomatic training make her an excellent candidate for such an alliance. You seem concerned about Tim's intentions. Let me assure you - he takes his noble responsibilities very seriously. I'm certain any offspring from such a union would be treated with the same care and consideration he shows all his children. Though I suppose we'll have to determine whether to call them foals, chicks, or hatchlings. As his first wife, I fully endorse this courtship. Tim has proven quite capable of managing multiple diplomatic marriages, and Sky Wing would be joining a truly distinguished household. I look forward to watching their relationship develop through all the proper traditional channels. Perhaps we should begin discussing nursery arrangements? Cross-species offspring might require special accommodations, after all. Though given how well human-pony breeding has worked out, I'm quite optimistic about the possibilities. Your future co-daughter-in-law, Lady Twilight Sparkle Countess of Ponyville P.S. - I'm particularly interested in exploring the magical implications of human-griffon hybridization. Such fascinating research potential... Rose read over my shoulder, her professional demeanor cracking slightly. "That's beautifully vicious. Especially the bits about offspring and nursery planning." "Well," I said with careful innocence, "as first wife, I should show proper enthusiasm for expanding our family. Besides, Tim does seem to collect wives with interesting talents. A griffon noble would add such fascinating diplomatic possibilities." "And watching Iron Wing process the idea of his precious daughter actually bearing cross-species offspring..." "Purely diplomatic considerations," I assured her, though I couldn't quite hide my satisfaction. "After all, permanent alliances require proper family connections. I'm simply being supportive of my husband's diplomatic initiatives." "Of course," Rose agreed, her eyes dancing. "Though perhaps we should start planning those nursery expansions. Between potential griffon offspring, the current captains' interests, and your own twins..." "Tim did say he wanted a large family," I mused. "Though I doubt this is quite what he meant originally." "The best diplomatic solutions often come from unexpected directions," Rose offered philosophically. "And who knows? Maybe griffon-human hybrids will be adorable." "We're terrible ponies," I said, though I couldn't keep the smile from my face as I sealed the letter. "No," Rose corrected. "We're soldiers' wives learning to appreciate the elegant brutality of diplomatic warfare. There's a difference." "Besides," I added, rubbing my belly thoughtfully, "can you imagine how effective Dawn Gate's defenses would be with griffon-human hybrid warriors? The perfect blend of human tactical thinking and griffon combat capabilities..." "Now you're thinking like a proper military spouse," Rose approved. "Though perhaps we shouldn't mention that particular possibility to Iron Wing just yet." "One psychological torment at a time," I agreed. "Let him process the idea of grandchildren first." * * * Iron Wing I read Lady Sparkle's letter for the third time, each pass making my feathers flatten further against my sides. My last hope for maternal sympathy had transformed into something far worse. "No," I whispered, the parchment trembling in my talons. "No, no, no..." "Lady Sparkle seems quite enthusiastic about expanding her family," Celestia's voice made me jump. I hadn't even heard her enter my embassy office. "Such detailed interest in nursery arrangements. Though she does raise some fascinating points about accommodation requirements for cross-species offspring..." "Your Highness," my voice cracked, "you can't allow this. His own wife is encouraging-" "A perfectly legitimate diplomatic marriage?" Celestia smiled serenely. "I found her academic curiosity about human-griffon hybridization particularly intriguing. And she makes excellent points about the research potential. Cross-species magical theory is so rarely studied in depth..." "Research?!" The word came out as a strangled squawk. "My daughter isn't some breeding experiment!" "Of course not," Celestia agreed pleasantly. "She's a perfectly suitable noble bride for a diplomatic marriage. The research aspects are merely... additional benefits. Though I must say, Lady Sparkle's enthusiasm for documenting the hybridization process is quite admirable." "This is madness," I whispered. "They work together - his perfectly proper courtship, your diplomatic pressure, and now his wife's enthusiastic plans for my future grandchildren's 'research potential.'" "Indeed." Celestia examined her teacup with careful precision. "Though you must admit, the academic possibilities are fascinating. Human-pony hybrids have already proven quite viable. I wonder if griffon genetics will prove equally compatible?" I reached for parchment with trembling talons. I had to warn Steelfeather about this new development. My beloved, The situation becomes more horrifying. Lady Sparkle - Lord Timothy's wife - has responded to my plea with enthusiasm about welcoming our daughter into their family. She speaks of nursery arrangements and cross-species offspring with academic detachment. They mean to breed Sky Wing with him, create permanent hybrid bloodlines that bind our nations forever. They work in perfect concert - his courtship, Celestia's pressure, and now his wife's eager plans for our grandchildren's "research value." She debates whether to call them foals, chicks, or hatchlings with clinical curiosity. Even his existing wife embraces this madness. There is no hope of appealing to maternal sympathy when she views our daughter as a fascinating breeding experiment. Your desperate husband, Iron Wing "Your Highness," I managed weakly, holding out the letter. "Please..." "Of course," Celestia's horn glowed as she took the message. "Though perhaps you should start considering those nursery arrangements yourself. Lady Sparkle raises valid points about specialized accommodations. Cross-species offspring can have such... unique needs." "You're all insane," I whispered, collapsing into my chair. "His wife actually wants him to breed with my daughter for research purposes..." "For multiple purposes," Celestia corrected serenely. "Diplomatic alliance, scientific advancement, permanent peace through familial bonds... Rather efficient solution, don't you think? Though I suppose watching your grandchildren being studied might be somewhat uncomfortable." I stared at her in mounting horror as she continued: "Still, Lady Sparkle is an excellent researcher. I'm sure she'll document the hybridization process with proper academic rigor. Your daughter will be making quite the contribution to cross-species magical theory." The future stretched before me in terrible clarity. They would bind Sky Wing to Dawn Gate through perfect protocol, use her to forge chains we couldn't refuse without violating our own traditions. And Lord Timothy's wife would record every moment of our humiliation with scholarly enthusiasm. * * * Lady Steelfeather I had barely finished reading Iron Wing's terrifying letter when Sky Wing practically floated into our chambers, her silver feathers ruffled in a way that spoke of more than just the garden breeze. My heart froze at her expression - that slight blush, that barely suppressed smile. "The gardens were lovely," she said dreamily before I could speak. "Lord Timothy knows so much about Earth flowers. Did you know they have roses that change colors with the seasons? He's having some imported..." "Sky Wing," I tried to keep my voice steady, the letter trembling in my talons. "Darling, we need to discuss-" "And he's so properly courtly," she continued, settling onto her favorite cushion with unusual grace. "Every gesture exactly as protocol demands, but there's this... intensity beneath it. When he helped me over that small stream, his touch was so carefully correct, but his eyes..." Horror mounted as I recognized that tone - the same soft wonder I'd felt during my own courtship with Iron Wing. But this wasn't just innocent noble romance. Lord Timothy's wife was already planning nursery space for cross-species offspring. "His wife writes of breeding experiments," I blurted, desperate to break through her romantic haze. "She wants to study the hybridization process!" Sky Wing's blush deepened rather than faded. "Lady Sparkle's research interests are quite fascinating actually. Lord Timothy mentioned her theories about cross-species magical resonance. Did you know human-pony hybrids can channel both forms of energy? The implications for griffon magic..." "You can't seriously be considering..." My voice failed as I processed her academic interest. They'd already drawn her in with scholarly curiosity. "It would be groundbreaking research," she said thoughtfully. "The first documented human-griffon offspring. Though Lord Timothy says any such studies would proceed with proper noble courtesy, of course. Everything exactly as protocol demands." "That's what makes it so terrible," I whispered. "They use our own traditions to forge chains we can't refuse." "Not chains, Mother," Sky Wing corrected gently. "Diplomatic bonds. Permanent peace through proper channels." Her eyes took on that scholar's gleam I'd always encouraged before. "Besides, think of the academic possibilities! Lady Sparkle's work on hybrid magical theory is already revolutionary. Adding griffon energy patterns to the research..." I stared at my eldest daughter in mounting dread. They'd captured her completely - not through force or threat, but through perfectly measured courtship and intellectual fascination. Every lesson I'd taught her about noble protocol and academic pursuits turned against us. "He's ordered more roses for tomorrow's walk," Sky Wing added, practically glowing as she settled deeper into her cushions. "Not just Earth varieties either - he's having some special magical hybrids brought in from Crystal Vale. Says proper courtship deserves proper settings." She sighed dreamily. "He's such an enigma, Mother. Everyone sees the warrior who burned the Mountain Talon city, but there's this whole other side to him..." "Sky Wing..." I tried again weakly. "He quoted poetry today," she continued, lost in her romantic haze. "Ancient Earth verses about gardens and growth and new beginnings. Can you imagine? This fearsome commander who makes armies tremble, speaking so softly about flower meanings and diplomatic possibilities." Her feathers ruffled with barely contained excitement. "And he's so knowledgeable! Not just about military matters - he understands art, literature, science..." "The libraries," I managed, remembering Iron Wing's letter about Lady Sparkle's research plans. "Oh yes!" Her eyes lit up even further. "Lord Timothy says his wife maintains the most fascinating records on cross-species magical theory. He thought I might enjoy reviewing her work while we discuss... diplomatic arrangements." She blushed prettily. "He says I have an academic mind, that my questions about human-griffon magical resonance were quite insightful." "Darling, please..." "You don't understand, Mother," she insisted, standing to pace with nervous energy. "He's not what everyone thinks. Yes, he's powerful and sometimes terrible, but there's this gentleness too. The way he tends the garden himself, how carefully he handles delicate things..." She touched her wing where he'd helped her over the stream. "He has such control, such perfect courtesy even when you can feel the strength beneath it." "That's what makes him dangerous," I whispered. "That's what makes him fascinating," she corrected, still lost in her romantic dreams. "Did you know he personally oversees the Foal Guard training? This fearsome warrior who burns cities also teaches orphaned fillies proper table manners." She sighed again. "Mother, he has such depths. Such complexity. When he speaks of building something permanent between our peoples..." I watched my daughter float through romantic fantasies, unable to break through her scholarly and emotional enchantment. They'd captured her completely - not through force or threat, but through perfectly measured courtship and intellectual fascination. "Tomorrow he's going to show me his research on griffon-human magical compatibility," she added, practically vibrating with academic excitement. "Lady Sparkle's preliminary theories are revolutionary, but adding actual griffon energy patterns to the study..." She blushed deeper. "Of course, any practical experiments would proceed with proper noble protocols. Lord Timothy is very... traditional about such matters." "Magical compatibility?!" I sputtered, my feathers fluffing in maternal panic. "You speak of such things as if- as if you want to bear his hatchlings!" Sky Wing actually giggled, her silver feathers catching the evening light as she twirled. "Five per wife, according to Forest Shadow. Apparently it's Lord Timothy's preferred number for proper family sizing." She settled onto her cushions with unusual grace. "Though Captain Silver Dawn mentioned the unique nature of human-griffon pairings might require additional... research opportunities." "Research opportunities?!" My voice reached a pitch I hadn't managed since my own courtship days. "You're talking about your future children!" "Future diplomatic bonds," she corrected, then her expression turned more serious. "Besides, Mother - let's be practical. I'm 22. You and Father have turned down every marriage offer waiting for someone of sufficient rank and influence." Her beak curved in a slight smile. "Well, you can't do much better than an Equestrian Duke who controls the entire eastern border." "Sky Wing..." "Three territories, Mother. Crystal Vale, Dawn Gate, and Silver Vale. More military might than the entire Equestrian army." She smoothed her feathers with careful precision. "And he's actually interested in intellectual pursuits. Do you know how rare that is among nobles of sufficient rank?" "He burned the Mountain Talon city!" I protested weakly. “He burned our home in Silver Claw!” "Exactly - he has the power to protect what's his." Her eyes took on a dreamy quality. "Besides, you should see him with his Foal Guard. He acts like their father. To all of them. There's such... complexity to him." "Complexity won't matter when he's breeding you for research purposes!" "Better than being bred for simple political advantage," she countered practically. "At least this way my children will be part of something revolutionary. The first human-griffon hybrids! The magical theory implications alone..." She sighed happily. "And he's so properly courtly about it all. Every gesture exactly as protocol demands, but there's this intensity beneath it..." I watched my practical, scholarly daughter float through romantic fantasies, unable to break through her combination of political pragmatism and growing infatuation. He’s captured her completely - through career opportunity and careful courtship all at once. "Besides," she added with careful innocence, "Captain Silver Dawn says he's quite... skilled in traditional matters. Though of course, everything proceeds with proper noble courtesy." Sometimes the most terrible traps were the ones that offered exactly what your children wanted. Even if those traps came wrapped in perfect protocol and advantageous political connections. * * * Tim I paced the commander's study, considering the delicate next steps of this diplomatic dance. Sky Wing's scholarly enthusiasm about cross-species magical theory had been unexpected, but potentially useful. Her practical acceptance of political marriage even more so. Swift Wing landed silently through the window, interrupting my thoughts with a gentle kiss. "You're brooding again." "Planning," I corrected, though I couldn't help smiling. "Sky Wing's response to the courtship has been... interesting." "Interesting?" Swift Wing's wings rustled with amusement. "The poor thing is half in love with you already. All those garden walks and discussions of magical theory..." She paused thoughtfully. "Though you should write to Twilight about this. If you're seriously considering a diplomatic marriage, she needs to know." I reached for parchment, choosing my words carefully: My beloved Twilight, I need to update you on an unexpected diplomatic development. Ambassador Iron Wing's eldest daughter, Sky Wing, has become quite interested in our research on cross-species magical theory. This academic curiosity has led to certain... diplomatic possibilities. To be direct - I'm considering a political marriage to secure permanent peace with the griffon empire. Sky Wing would be my fifth wife, after you, Rose, Swift Wing, and Crystal Light. She's actually quite brilliant - her insights into human-griffon magical resonance are fascinating. I know this is a lot to process. Adding a griffon noble to our family would have significant political implications. But watching Iron Wing panic about his daughter potentially bearing cross-species offspring has been remarkably effective in moving diplomatic negotiations forward. Your thoughts on this matter are important to me. While this began as diplomatic pressure, Sky Wing's genuine intellectual curiosity and practical acceptance of advantageous marriage has made me consider the actual possibilities. All my love, Tim P.S. - The research implications of human-griffon offspring are genuinely interesting. Though perhaps we should wait to discuss nursery expansions until you've had time to process this development. "There," I said, sealing the letter. "Direct and honest, just as we agreed." Swift Wing read over my shoulder, her wings twitching with suppressed mirth. "You're actually considering it, aren't you? Not just as diplomatic pressure anymore." "She has a brilliant mind," I admitted. "And her practical understanding of political advantage is refreshing. No romantic illusions about why noble marriages happen." "Though she's definitely developing some romantic notions about you," Swift Wing teased. "All those sighs about warrior poets and complexity..." "That's just diplomatic bonus," I countered, though I couldn't quite hide my smile. "The real value is in binding the empire permanently through family ties." "Of course," Swift Wing agreed with perfect innocence. "Nothing at all to do with expanding your collection of intellectually fascinating wives..." The look I gave her only made her laugh harder. I surrendered to laughter, rising from my desk to pull Swift Wing into a proper kiss. "Maybe she'll taste like chicken," I quipped as I gathered Twilight's letter. "Tim!" Swift Wing's scandalized expression only made me laugh harder. "You're awful!" "What? Just considering all the diplomatic possibilities." I dodged her wing swat with practiced ease. "After all, cross-species relations require thorough research." "And here I thought you couldn't get worse," she called after me as I headed for the door, her tone caught between exasperation and amusement. "Oh, trust me," I tossed back over my shoulder, still chuckling as I went to find Silver Dawn, "we haven't even started exploring the diplomatic possibilities yet." Her muttered "Celestia help us all" followed me down the hallway, but I caught the hint of laughter beneath her mock outrage. After all, sometimes the best way to handle potential war was to find humor in its absurdities. Even if that humor involved questionable taste in more ways than one. * * * Twilight I read Tim's letter twice, my horn sparking slightly with pregnancy-induced magical instability as I processed his words. Rose looked up from her reports, concern evident in her expression. "Another update from Dawn Gate?" she asked, moving to pour fresh tea. "Tim's considering a diplomatic marriage," I said, my voice carefully controlled. "With Iron Wing's daughter, Sky Wing. Apparently she's shown genuine interest in cross-species magical theory." "A griffon wife?" Rose's eyebrows rose sharply. "That would certainly ensure lasting peace. Hard to restart hostilities when your daughter is married to the enemy's commander." "He says she'd be his fifth," I touched my swollen belly absently. "After me, you, Swift Wing, and Crystal Light. Though apparently she's quite brilliant - genuine insights into human-griffon magical resonance." "Of course he'd find her intellectual curiosity appealing," Rose said dryly. "Trust Tim to turn diplomatic pressure into actual academic interest." She paused thoughtfully. "Though I notice he's being completely honest about considering it seriously now, not just as political maneuvering." "That's what worries me," I admitted. "He started this as calculated pressure on Iron Wing, but now he's actually contemplating the research implications of human-griffon offspring." I couldn't quite keep the edge from my voice. "Apparently Sky Wing has 'fascinating theories' about magical compatibility." "Jealous?" Rose asked carefully. "Concerned," I corrected, though perhaps too quickly. "Adding a griffon noble to our family would have enormous political implications. And Tim's already juggling multiple territories and marriages..." "While maintaining perfect diplomatic courtesy and genuine respect for all involved," Rose reminded me gently. "Besides, think of the academic possibilities. The first documented human-griffon hybrid magical studies..." "Now you sound like him," I muttered, though I couldn't quite hide my own scholarly interest. "All excited about research potential and diplomatic innovations." "Well," Rose said with careful innocence, "we did marry an impossible human who collects interesting wives and revolutionary research opportunities. Though perhaps we should start planning those nursery expansions he mentioned..." I grinned as I pulled fresh parchment closer, pregnancy hormones making my horn spark slightly as I composed my response: Dear Ambassador Iron Wing, I write to inform you that Lord Timothy has requested my blessing regarding his courtship of your daughter Sky Wing. As his first wife, I'm delighted to give my enthusiastic approval. Her intellectual curiosity about cross-species magical theory makes her a perfect addition to our academic household. We should begin discussing wedding arrangements. While Ponyville isn't the most romantic venue, our party coordinator Pinkie Pie is legendary for making any celebration unforgettable. Though perhaps Crystal Vale or Silver Vale would be more appropriate, given Tim's status? The crystalline architecture would make such a lovely backdrop for joining our families permanently. I look forward to having you as a co-father-in-law. Such fascinating diplomatic possibilities ahead! And the research opportunities... I'm already planning a comprehensive study of human-griffon hybrid magical resonance. Your daughter's theories on the subject are quite promising. Do let me know your thoughts on venue preferences. Though given recent events, perhaps you'd feel more comfortable letting Sky Wing make those decisions? She seems to have such excellent judgment about diplomatic arrangements. Your future son-in-law's first wife, Lady Twilight Sparkle Countess of Ponyville P.S. - Should we discuss nursery arrangements now, or wait until after the courtship phase? These things do require proper planning... Rose read over my shoulder, her professional demeanor cracking slightly. "That's deliciously cruel. Especially the bit about letting Sky Wing make wedding decisions." "Well," I said with perfect innocence, "as his first wife, I should show proper enthusiasm for expanding our family. Besides," I touched my belly thoughtfully, "the twins will need playmates eventually..." * * * Iron Wing I was in the middle of pleading with Celestia about expediting the Council's response when Lady Sparkle's letter materialized. My talons trembled as I read, each word driving the knife of despair deeper. "Oh my," Celestia's voice carried that terrible pleasantness I'd come to dread. "Lady Sparkle seems quite enthusiastic about the wedding arrangements. Though she does raise an excellent point about venue..." Her smile sharpened. "Perhaps Canterlot would be more appropriate than Crystal Vale or Ponyville?" "Your Highness," I managed weakly, "surely you can't be seriously considering-" "Why not?" Her smirk was lethal. "It would be the perfect symbol of our new alliance. The greatest diplomatic wedding since Princess Cadance married Shining Armor." She examined her tea with careful precision. "Though Lady Sparkle's suggestions about nursery planning do merit consideration. Cross-species offspring might require specialized facilities..." "This isn't happening," I whispered, the letter crumpling in my grip. "You can't actually support this madness-" "Support it? Ambassador, I insist upon it." Her smile carried centuries of calculated cruelty. "After all, what better way to ensure lasting peace than binding our nations through proper noble marriage? And Sky Wing does seem so... academically enthusiastic about the arrangement." "She's being manipulated!" I protested desperately. "They've twisted her scholarly interests into-" "Into a perfectly legitimate noble match," Celestia finished smoothly. "One that combines diplomatic necessity with genuine intellectual compatibility. Really, Ambassador, you should be delighted. How many fathers can say their daughter's marriage will literally make history?" "History," I echoed weakly. "You mean as a research subject for cross-species breeding experiments..." "Among other things," she agreed pleasantly. "Though I do think Canterlot would make the perfect venue. The gardens will be lovely that time of year. And the nursery wing in the castle could easily be modified for hybrid offspring..." I fled her study, her serene voice following me: "Do let me know about those venue preferences soon! The greatest diplomatic wedding in centuries requires proper planning time..." Back in my own room, my talons shook with barely controlled panic as I wrote: My beloved Steelfeather, You must talk sense into Sky Wing immediately. She forgets herself - forgets her duty to our people, to our bloodline. She was meant for a proper griffon noble marriage, not this... this madness with a human lord. Now even Princess Celestia speaks of hosting their wedding in Canterlot! The greatest diplomatic ceremony since Princess Cadance, she says, while casually discussing nursery modifications for hybrid offspring. Our daughter, reduced to some cross-species breeding experiment in the name of "diplomatic necessity." Remind her of her heritage! Of the proud griffon lords who sought her talon before all this began. She cannot truly want to bear human children, to have her offspring studied like some fascinating new magical discovery. Lord Timothy's wife writes of research potential and hybrid magical theory as if our grandchildren would be nothing more than academic subjects. And Sky Wing - our perfectly trained diplomatic daughter - actually seems enthusiastic about this degradation of our bloodline! Stop this, my love. Whatever it takes. Remind her that she is a griffon noble, not some fascinating new branch of magical research. She was meant to strengthen our empire through proper marriage, not bind us forever to Equestria through cross-species breeding experiments. Your desperate husband, Iron Wing P.S. - Lady Sparkle speaks of wedding venues and nursery arrangements with such casual certainty. As if our daughter's future is already decided. Make Sky Wing understand what she risks - what she would become. No proper griffon noble will ever look at her again if she goes through with this. I sealed the letter with trembling talons, praying my wife could reach whatever remnant of proper griffon pride still remained in our eldest daughter's heart. Though remembering Sky Wing's dreamy sighs about warrior poets and magical theory... I feared we'd already lost her to their careful manipulations. * * * Steelfeather I paced our chambers, my husband's letter clutched in trembling talons as I rehearsed what to say. How to remind our daughter of her proper place, her duty to our bloodline. But when Sky Wing practically floated through the door, cheeks flushed and feathers delightfully mussed, I knew we'd already lost her. That radiant smile, that dreamy look in her eyes... "The library research got rather... intense," she sighed happily, collapsing onto her cushions. "Mother, I don't think I truly understood what love could be until today. The way he explains magical theory, how his eyes light up when discussing resonance patterns..." "Sky Wing," I tried desperately, "you can't possibly-" "He's brilliant, Mother. Not just about warfare and politics. The depth of his understanding about cross-species magical compatibility..." She touched her wing tips together, practically glowing. "We were discussing thaumic resonance and suddenly everything just... sparked." "This isn't love," I protested weakly, "it's academic fascination twisted into-" "Into something wonderful," she finished dreamily. "Something that could change everything - magic, diplomacy, the future itself." Her smile turned secretive. "And Mother... there's so much more to him than anyone suspects. Such carefully controlled power, such hidden depths..." I watched my perfectly trained diplomatic daughter float through romantic fantasies, remembering Iron Wing's warning about proper griffon marriages and bloodline duty. But looking at Sky Wing's radiant expression, I feared we'd already lost this battle to a warrior poet with fascinating theories about magical resonance. "Do you really love him?" I whispered, watching my daughter's radiant expression. Her feathers still held that telling ruffle from whatever 'academic discussions' had occurred in the library. "Could this truly work? A human and a griffon..." Sky Wing's smile turned surprisingly gentle, though her eyes held a heat I'd never seen before. "Return their ponies, Mother. All of them. Let the empire do what's right for once." She smoothed her silver feathers with careful precision, though I noticed her talons trembled slightly when she touched where his hand had apparently rested. "And I'll marry him as the happiest griffon to have ever lived." "You sound so certain," I managed, remembering Iron Wing's desperate warnings about bloodlines and proper matches. "Because I am." She sighed dreamily, settling deeper into her cushions. "You don't understand what he's like when we're alone. The way he explains complex theories, yes, but also how he'll pause mid-sentence just to admire how sunlight catches my feathers. Or how his hand shakes slightly when he helps me with research texts, like he's fighting to maintain that perfect noble control." "Sky Wing..." "This isn't just about diplomatic necessity anymore," she continued, her eyes taking on that scholarly gleam that had always made us so proud before. "Yes, it started as political maneuvering, but..." She touched her wing where they'd apparently engaged in rather heated 'theoretical discussions' in the library. "He sees me, Mother. Not just as a noble bride or a diplomatic prize, but as someone whose mind he actually values. Though," she added with a blush, "he seems to appreciate other aspects as well..." "He's still the monster who burned our home," I reminded her weakly. "No," she corrected, her voice turning serious. "He's the warrior who'll burn the world to protect what's his. And soon," her smile carried an edge of triumph, "I'll be his to protect as well. You should see how he looks at me when he thinks I'm focused on research - like he can barely believe I'm real. Like everything he thought he understood about diplomacy and duty has been completely upended." I stared at my daughter, understanding finally dawning. He captured her completely - not through force or diplomatic pressure, but by offering exactly what she'd always wanted. A partner who could match both her intellect and her ambitions, while apparently stirring other passions as well. "Besides," she added with that secret smile, stretching in a way that spoke of recently discovered pleasures, "imagine the research possibilities our children will create..." * * * Iron Wing I read the Council's response three times, each pass making my feathers flatten further against my sides. The carefully worded diplomatic phrasing couldn't hide the brutal calculation behind their decision. "No," I whispered, the parchment trembling in my talons. "No, no, no..." The numbers were precise, coldly mathematical. Lord Timothy had captured more chicks than adult hens. When balanced against the number of mares and fillies held in griffon territories, the exchange rate left exactly one adult female griffon unaccounted for in the trades. And the Council, in their infinite political wisdom, had decided Sky Wing would be that sacrifice. "Given the cessation of traditional tribute arrangements," the document read with terrible formality, "and considering the diplomatic advantages of permanent alliance through noble marriage, the Council sees fit to leave Lady Sky Wing in Lord Timothy's care while facilitating the exchange of all other captives..." They were abandoning my daughter. Using her as the final piece of tribute to ensure peace - a permanent "diplomatic arrangement" to bind our nations together. I collapsed into my chair, bile rising in my throat as I processed the full implications. The Council wasn't just accepting Lord Timothy's courtship - they were officially sanctioning it. Making it part of the formal peace settlement. My own daughter, traded away like the final accounting entry in a ledger. "The Council considers this an elegantly appropriate conclusion," the document continued with devastating precision. "As the tribute system ends, one final noble marriage ensures lasting peace. Lady Sky Wing's evident enthusiasm for the match makes this solution particularly diplomatic..." They'd even twisted her academic fascination into political justification. Her scholarly interest in cross-species magic became "evidence of diplomatic compatibility." And somewhere in Dawn Gate, Lord Timothy would soon receive word that his carefully orchestrated courtship had received official imperial blessing. I reached for fresh parchment with trembling talons, but what could I possibly write? What words could express this final, terrible betrayal by our own government? The Council had solved their diplomatic crisis perfectly - trading mares for hens, fillies for chicks, and my daughter for permanent peace. My beloved Steelfeather, The Council has made their decision. The numbers are precise, cruelly so. Lord Timothy captured more chicks than adult hens, and when balanced against our captive mares and fillies... one adult female griffon must remain behind in the exchanges. They've chosen Sky Wing. They dress it in diplomatic phrases - "permanent alliance through noble marriage" and "elegantly appropriate conclusion to the tribute system." They even cite her "evident enthusiasm" as justification, twisting her academic fascination into political convenience. Our own government has abandoned our daughter to him. Made her the final tribute payment to secure peace. They speak of "diplomatic advantages" and "cross-species research potential" while signing away our eldest child. I failed her, my love. Failed to protect her from becoming exactly what Lord Timothy intended - a permanent chain binding our nations together. The Council sees it as perfect symmetry - as the tribute system ends, one final noble marriage ensures lasting peace. They're exchanging all other captives. Every hen, every chick will come home... except our Sky Wing. She is to remain in Lord Timothy's "care" as his noble bride, binding our empire to Equestria through blood and magic forever. Even Princess Celestia speaks of wedding venues now. Of nursery modifications for hybrid offspring and diplomatic ceremonies to rival royal marriages. Our daughter's future has been decided by calculated ledger entries and political convenience. Forgive me, my love. I couldn't stop this. Couldn't prevent our perfectly trained diplomatic daughter from becoming the final entry in this terrible accounting. Your broken husband, Iron Wing P.S. - The Council expects us to attend the wedding. To smile and celebrate as our daughter becomes the living symbol of everything we once forced upon others. They call it "poetic justice." I sealed the letter with trembling talons, understanding finally the true horror of watching your child become a diplomatic "arrangement." * * * Lady Steelfeather I read Iron Wing's letter twice before looking up at Sky Wing, who was once again studying magical theory texts from Lord Timothy's library. My talons trembled as I prepared to deliver news that should have devastated her. "The Council has made their decision," I said quietly. "About the prisoner exchanges." Sky Wing looked up, her silver feathers catching the afternoon light. "And?" "They're trading all the captives - mares for hens, fillies for chicks." I swallowed hard. "But because Lord Timothy captured more chicks than adult hens... one adult female must remain behind to balance the numbers." Understanding dawned in her eyes. "They've chosen me." "Yes," I whispered, waiting for her horror, her outrage at being sacrificed for political convenience. "They're making you the final tribute payment. The last noble marriage to seal peace between our nations." But my perfectly trained diplomatic daughter smiled - not her careful public smile, but something radiant and real. "Perfect," she breathed. "Absolutely perfect." "Perfect?" I stared at her. "Sky Wing, they've traded you away like-" "Like a diplomatic prize?" She actually laughed. "Mother, don't you see? This is exactly what I wanted. No more questions about proper griffon matches or bloodline duty. The Council itself has sanctioned my marriage to Tim." "You truly want this?" I asked weakly. "Want this?" Her eyes sparkled. "Mother, I get to marry a brilliant warrior-scholar who actually values my mind. Who discusses magical theory with the same passion he shows for poetry. Who looks at me like..." She blushed prettily. "Well, let's just say our library research sessions have been quite... enlightening." "But your father-" "Will have to accept that his perfectly trained diplomatic daughter is creating the perfect diplomatic alliance." She stretched languidly, every feather radiating satisfaction. "Though perhaps we should start discussing wedding plans? I hear Princess Celestia is offering Canterlot as a venue..." I watched my eldest daughter practically glow with genuine joy at becoming exactly what Lord Timothy had intended - the living chain that would bind our nations together forever. I left my room, desperate for answers. I found Lord Timothy in his study, maps and reports spread across his desk. He looked up as I entered, his expression shifting from commander to something gentler as he noted my distress. "The Council has made their decision," I said quietly, my voice trembling. "They're exchanging all captives except... except Sky Wing. She's to be the final tribute. The last noble marriage to seal peace." "I know," he said softly. "The diplomatic correspondence just arrived." "Please," I whispered, my maternal dignity forgotten. "She's my eldest daughter. My perfect diplomatic child. I beg you - take care of her. Love her truly, not just as some political arrangement..." He rose from his desk, approaching with that careful grace that somehow made him more terrifying than any display of power. When he kissed me, it carried none of the threatening implications of our previous encounters - just gentle understanding. "You still don't understand," he said quietly as he pulled back. "I follow the way of the warrior. If you love, love without reservation. If you fight, fight without fear." His eyes held absolute conviction. "Sky Wing will be my fifth wife, yes. But I will love her with everything that I have." He gestured to the window, where young voices carried up from the training yard. "I have 241 foals out there, with more on the way. Every one of them is my child, regardless of blood. Your daughter won't just be joining a marriage - she'll be joining a family." His smile turned gentle. "She will be loved, Lady Steelfeather. I promise you that." "Even though this began as diplomatic manipulation?" I had to ask. "The best marriages often start from unexpected places," he said simply. "And your daughter's brilliant mind matches her beautiful heart. How could I not love that combination?" I left his study understanding finally that we hadn't lost our daughter to a monster. We'd given her to a warrior who knew how to love as fiercely as he fought. I returned to my room and wrote to my husband. I had to explain that this was okay, and I now supported it. My beloved Iron Wing, I spoke with Lord Timothy after receiving your letter. I went to beg him to treat our daughter well, to love her truly rather than just as some diplomatic prize. What I found instead has changed everything. You need to understand - we haven't lost Sky Wing to a monster. I've seen how he looks at her, how he speaks of her. This isn't just political maneuvering anymore. He follows what he calls "the way of the warrior" - if you love, love without reservation. If you fight, fight without fear. He has 241 foals in his care already, with more on the way. Every one of them his child, regardless of blood. Our daughter won't just be his fifth wife - she'll be joining a real family. One built on love and protection rather than mere duty. And Sky Wing... oh my love, if you could see her. This isn't just academic fascination or political ambition. She glows when she speaks of him. Not just about magical theory and research, but about the man himself. The warrior who quotes poetry, who looks at her like she's the most fascinating creature he's ever encountered. The Council's decision is a blessing in disguise. Our perfectly trained diplomatic daughter has found something we never expected - true love wrapped in political necessity. He will cherish her mind as much as her heart. We must accept this, my love. Not just as political reality, but as the best future our daughter could have. She will be loved, truly loved, by a man who knows how to love as fiercely as he fights. Your understanding wife, Steelfeather P.S. - Perhaps we should start considering those wedding arrangements? Princess Celestia's offer of Canterlot as a venue really would be perfect for such a historic union... * * * Tim I watched from Crystal Vale's grand balcony as the prisoner exchanges took place in the courtyard below. Each griffon family reunited with carefully documented precision, while our own mares and fillies were welcomed home by their loved ones. The sound of joyful reunions carried up on the mountain breeze. "A far better tribute than chains," Swift Wing observed quietly beside me. "Indeed." I turned as familiar hoofsteps approached. "Though speaking of better arrangements..." Twilight stood in the doorway, her pregnancy now clearly visible. My heart clenched at the sight - it had been too long since I'd held my wife. "You impossible man," she said, though her smile betrayed her attempt at sternness. "Only you would turn capturing prisoners into a diplomatic marriage. Though I must say, your letters about Sky Wing's interest in cross-species magical theory were intriguing..." I crossed to her in three strides, pulling her into a careful embrace. "I missed you too, love. And here I thought my scholarly wife would appreciate a new research partner." "Well," Twilight pressed closer, her horn sparking slightly, "I suppose having another academically-minded wife in the family could lead to some fascinating studies. Though you might have consulted your first wife before starting a courtship..." "As if your letter to Iron Wing didn't thoroughly encourage the match," I teased gently. "I heard all about your enthusiastic wedding venue suggestions." "Just doing my part for diplomatic relations," she smiled up at me. "Though perhaps we should focus on more immediate reunions before discussing future research possibilities..." Swift Wing discreetly excused herself as I finally, properly kissed my wife. Below us, the sounds of families reuniting continued. But here, in this moment, I held my own greatest treasure. * * * The crystalline chambers seemed to shimmer with Twilight's own magic as Tim gently lowered her onto the bed. The weight of her pregnancy softened her curves, her belly a prominent testament to the love they had created together. He moved with reverence, his hands never leaving her as she shifted to recline. Her violet eyes gleamed, a sly smile curving her lips. "You’re staring," she teased, her voice a melody that made his heart race. “Can’t help it,” Tim murmured, brushing his fingers along the curve of her jaw, down the swell of her neck. “You’re radiant.” He leaned in, kissing her with a tenderness that soon gave way to hunger. Twilight’s magic hummed between them, a pulse of warmth that seemed to synchronize with his touch. Her body was softer now, her form lush beneath his hands. His fingers slid along her sides, tracing every change and committing it to memory. The swell of her breasts pressed against him as her breath hitched, her horn sparking faintly as she arched into his touch. “Tim,” she murmured, her voice thick with need, “don’t stop.” He chuckled lowly, his lips trailing from her jaw to her throat, each kiss lingering, savoring the way her pulse quickened beneath his touch. His hands caressed her, roaming the expanse of her belly, her hips, every inch of her claimed in reverence. She gasped when his lips found the sensitive hollow of her collarbone, her hooves flexing as she pulled him closer. Twilight’s magic coiled around them, a soft lavender glow that brushed over his skin like a lover’s caress. It heightened every sensation, and Tim’s groan was guttural as he pressed her further into the plush bed. Her body arched against his, and she nipped at his shoulder with a playful growl. "If you don't hurry, the twins might start complaining." He laughed, low and throaty. “Let them. Their mother deserves all the worship in the world.” Twilight’s laugh melted into a soft moan as his kisses trailed lower, worshipful in every touch. His hands traced the underside of her belly, his lips exploring the sensitive skin. Her hips bucked slightly, and her tail swished against the sheets. “Tim...” Her voice was breathy, trembling, every syllable laced with anticipation. He looked up, his eyes blazing with devotion. “Let me remind you,” he whispered, his voice thick with promise, “of just how much I missed you.” Her magic wrapped around him, pulling him closer, her body yielding completely to his love. Tim’s lips pressed to the gentle curve of Twilight's belly, reverence in every touch as he worshipped the changes her body had undergone. The soft glow of her magic bathed them both in a faint lavender hue, and her breaths came unevenly, every exhale a trembling invitation. She lay back against the pillows, her body pliant beneath his hands as he took his time rediscovering her. “Tim…” Her voice carried a note of urgency, her tone heady with longing. Her violet eyes shimmered with unshed tears, her horn sparking faintly. “I’ve missed this. I’ve missed you.” He paused, lifting his head to meet her gaze, his hand resting on the gentle swell of her belly. “You’ll never have to miss me again,” he said softly, leaning in to brush his lips against hers. “I’m here.” Twilight sighed into the kiss, her hooves finding his shoulders and pulling him closer. Her magic swirled around them, a warm, protective cocoon that amplified the sensation of his every touch. His hands roamed over her body, relearning the softness of her hips, the delicate curve of her sides, and the slight tension in her thighs as her need grew. “You’re beautiful,” he murmured, his lips trailing to the sensitive hollow of her throat. She gasped as his teeth grazed her skin, her hooves flexing against him. “All of you, Twilight. I don’t know how I ever stayed away.” “By sheer willpower, I suppose,” she teased breathlessly, though her voice cracked as his kisses moved lower. Her belly quivered beneath his lips, the intimate caress drawing a shiver from her. “But you’re making up for lost time.” “I intend to,” Tim said, his tone low, promising. His hand slid lower, brushing the inside of her thighs, and she gasped, her head falling back against the pillows. Her body responded eagerly, her tail swishing in restless anticipation. Her magic flared, her horn glowing brightly as her body trembled under his touch. “Tim,” she moaned, the sound raw and pleading. Her hips shifted, seeking more as he teased her with deliberate, measured strokes. “Please, don’t make me wait.” He couldn’t resist her. Positioning himself carefully, he moved to join with her, her warmth enveloping him inch by inch. She gasped, her hooves clutching at his back, her magic flaring in a pulse that seemed to ripple through the room. “Twilight,” he whispered, his voice shaking with restraint. “Are you okay?” Her eyes fluttered open, filled with love and passion. “Yes,” she whispered, her voice trembling but resolute. “More than okay. Don’t stop.” He began to move, slow and deep, his motions deliberate as they found their rhythm together. Her cries grew louder, her body arching to meet him with every thrust. Her magic flared again, tendrils of light wrapping around them, binding them in an unspoken connection. The room was filled with the sounds of their love—her moans, his ragged breaths, the soft rustle of sheets beneath them. Twilight’s body shuddered as she neared her peak, her hooves gripping him tighter. “Tim—I—” Her words dissolved into a cry of pleasure as she climaxed, her magic surging around them in a final burst of brilliance. Tim followed her over the edge, burying himself in her as his release took him, her name a broken whisper on his lips. They clung to each other as the waves of pleasure subsided, their breathing slowing in unison. In the quiet aftermath, Twilight rested her head on his chest, her magic a faint glow that seemed to hum with contentment. “I’ve missed this,” she murmured, her voice soft but resolute. “Missed you.” Tim pressed a kiss to her mane, his hand brushing her belly as he held her close. “Never again,” he promised, his voice steady. “No more separations. We’ll face everything together.” Twilight sighed, her tail curling against his leg as she nuzzled into him, the tension in her body fading into the warmth of his embrace. * * * Twilight Tim’s arms were strong and steady, his warmth radiating into me as we lay together. His heartbeat was a soothing rhythm beneath my cheek, but I could feel the weight pressing on him, even now. It was the same heaviness he carried in his shoulders when the subject came up, though he always tried to mask it with resolve. I sighed softly, tracing idle patterns on his chest with my hoof. "You’ll end up with them all eventually," I said, my voice quiet but even. “When your courtships are complete, and the marriages are official… it’s inevitable, Tim.” He stiffened under my touch, though he didn’t pull away. His hand slid to my back, his fingers stroking absently as if trying to anchor himself in the moment. “Twilight, I-” He stopped himself, exhaling heavily. “I don’t know if I can ever see it the way I’m supposed to. It feels… wrong.” “It doesn’t have to feel wrong,” I said softly, lifting my head to meet his gaze. His eyes, dark and full of conflict, met mine with a searching intensity. “This isn’t something you’ve chosen out of indulgence or desire. It’s duty, tradition, and the responsibility you’ve been handed. And you’ve carried it all with more honor than anyone else would have.” “But that doesn’t make it fair,” he muttered, his voice low and bitter. “Not to you. Not to them. Not to me.” I leaned closer, pressing my hoof to his chest, right above his heart. “It’s not about fairness, Tim. It’s about what is. And you’ve done everything to make this as fair as it can be. You’ve courted them properly, respected their boundaries. You’ve given them time to prepare, even when it cost you.” He let out a soft, humorless laugh, his fingers pausing in their absent-minded motions. “And in the end, they’ll all expect consummation,” he said, his tone sharp. “I’m supposed to just—what? Forget everything I’ve ever felt about keeping this kind of power from taking over my life? Pretend that it’s just… fine?” “No,” I said firmly, my hoof pressing against him more insistently. “I’m not asking you to pretend. I’m asking you to accept that this is your life now. You’re building something that will outlast all of us, something that will bring stability and peace. And yes, it means sharing yourself in ways that feel unnatural now, but that doesn’t diminish what we have.” His eyes softened slightly, the edges of his frustration dulling as he gazed at me. “You’ve always been too understanding for your own good,” he murmured, brushing a strand of my mane away from my face. “Because I love you,” I said simply. “And because I know you’ll find a way to love them too. You may not believe it now, but you will. You have a way of making people feel seen, Tim. That’s why they follow you, why they trust you. Sky Wing, Swift Wing - they’re not just pawns in a political game. They’re ponies and griffons with hopes and dreams. And eventually, they’ll be your wives in every sense of the word.” He winced at that, his jaw tightening. “And you’re okay with that?” he asked, his voice barely above a whisper. “With sharing me?” I hesitated, my hoof stilling on his chest. “I don’t know if ‘okay’ is the right word,” I admitted. “But I’ve made peace with it. I know you, Tim. You don’t love lightly, and you don’t give yourself to just anyone. If you choose them - truly choose them - then I’ll know it’s because they’ve earned a part of your heart. And I’ll be here, always, as the one who earned you first.” His hand cupped my cheek, his thumb brushing against my fur. “Twilight…” he began, his voice thick with emotion. But whatever he wanted to say, he swallowed it down, pulling me closer instead. I rested my head against his chest once more, listening to the steady rhythm of his heart. The road ahead would be complicated, tangled with expectations and duty. But this moment, here and now, was ours, and I would hold onto it for as long as I could. * * * Author's Note Merry Christmas